Thanks a lot @Rajibalan for providing new story writing Section.... hope you are doing good Enjoy ur life and Thanks for providing such a beautiful Platform
Love Kajal
#2
Kashmiraa(Tuesday, 16 August 2016 22:25)
Hi... Sisters! New page new beginning... . Thanks Raji . Expecting alot of existing stories . Hopefully kajal ma'am will consider writing again. SRS , PRIYASREE, SHARMILA DEVI,SNEHA and all our very
own writers, you spend your valuable time for us hopefully we will be fortunate to read from you again. Best of luck.
#3
ex-q-zit(Wednesday, 17 August 2016 09:15)
Hi all,
I am posting my story 'THE EVIL TWIN' tonight on amazon n post the link in blog. You can download it or if you have amazon prime you can read for free.
I shall be posting stories regularly now on amazon.
Regards,
Ex-q-zit
#4
Arun(Wednesday, 17 August 2016 12:17)
@ex q zit
Very very thanks , was waiting eagerly for it.
#5
Priya(Thursday, 18 August 2016 02:10)
"He's here, Sissy- answer the door," she calls confidently from the dining room where I just poured her a cup of tea.
I steel myself for the humiliating ritual that's been perfected through rote repetition- though the number of times it's performed, like every other degradation I suffer through on a daily basis,
does little to lessen the sheer gut punch of the act of pure submission.
I open the front door and step back to allow Sir through, my gaze downcast as not to make the punishable offense of eye contact. In my mind, the ridiculousness of this situation is heightened as he's
quite a few years younger than me, not particularly well muscled, and not even
as tall as me in flats, let alone the 5" inch stiletto heels constantly required of me.
But while he's wearing a trendy button up shirt and simple slacks, I'm attired in a ridiculous ensemble that's more of a bride than a man. My entire wardrobe now consisted of sarees and
appropriate accessories of an indian bride, most of which were pink.
My naturally straight dark hair was dyed and exhaustively maintained long till my mid back, curled with pink highlights and held with ribbons into the occasional ponytail, or, more likely (like
today), a french bun.
Of course I have to maintain full, overdone makeup at all times, with requirements of married indian wife like sindoor and mangalsutra.
Today's outfit was a particularly heavy embroidery saree with puffy organza short
sleeve blouse and two full petticoats, beneath that are the bow tipped stockings that highlight my smooth legs and dainty ankles, my feet encased and contorted in pink patent high
heels laced shut with sheer ribbons. Both my hands are adorned in 24 bangles, 3 rings on fingers and mehandi.
Despite the physical superiority I would have felt over this man in another life, now our roles were universally clear. Unfortunately, it's not just the outrageous clothing I wore, but the enforced
behavior that cemented my role.
#6
Priya(Thursday, 18 August 2016 02:10)
Part 2:
I immediately curtseyed deeply, a ridiculously revised one Mistress taught me that consisted of exaggerated movements and a deep bow that showed off my enhanced cleavage. In addition, I grabbed the
front portion of my saree and petticoats in each hand, lifting it so my tiny,
inescapable titanium chastity device was on full display to him, it's integrated PA piercing securely compressing my once proud seven inches to a mere inch and a quarter.
Panties for me was forbidden so that my emasculated state could always be shown easily when required, which was often.
When Sir had expressed concern over another "man" living under her roof, Mistress brutally trained me to increase my submission to him, which included this completely degrading Greeting ritual. In
addition, the only key to the device, which she had once proudly worn around her neck,
was replaced with a ceremonial, decorative one.
#7
Priya(Thursday, 18 August 2016 02:12)
Part 3:
The real key, a specialized hand forged affair, was given to me for the first time in over three years - so that I may immediately and tearfully present it to Sir on the same platter I delivered wine
and condoms to Mistress with.
He had laughingly taken it with the smuggest expression- the same one I sensed he had now as I mentally counted to three as I struggled to maintain my curtsey and expression.
Despite being a scholar and intellectual, Mistress insisted my IQ was 85- as such I must always maintain a vacant, doe eyed stare and a wide, simpering smile.
After three seconds I straightened, just long enough to sink steadily down to my knees. Slowly clasping each elbow behind my back, then crossing my ankles, ("No rushing, Sissy!") I knelt down, to
kiss the top of each of his black wingtips - two seconds of contact exactly with my pursed, moist and colored lips on each shoe.
Still staring at his shoes, I slowly straighten up until I'm back upright on my knees before performing the next act of my choreographed sissified submission.
I slowly and deliberately unclasp my arms and bring them up to my sides like I'm nothing more than a mechanical doll, elbows tucked in against my slender waistline, wrists limp at shoulder height,
fingers spread outwards to show off my pretty polish. ("Sissy
Presentation Pose", for Two seconds.)
Then my right hand comes to my mouth so I can "hide" a practiced, nervously high pitched giggle into my straightened fingertips as my gaze shyly darts between his shoes and the zipper of his pants.
(Three seconds.)
Then both my arms are back into Sissy Presentation (one second) before finally transitioning into "Sissy Princess", where I bend my wrists up, both palms facing outwards, finger tips ever so slightly
curled in- a dainty pose familiar to Disney lovers everywhere.
But the Disney comparison ends there as, arms still prissily posed, I bite the corner of my lower lip and hesitatingly lean forward slightly to gently place my nose against the bulge in his slacks,
then more firmly as I slowly nuzzle and giggle, while occasionally inhaling his musky scent deeply and sighing with wonton lust. ("Fifteen full seconds
Sissy, and not a moment less!")
He rests his hands confidently on his hips, (Superman style, in strict opposition to my Sissy Submission) as I feel his member stir and then grow under his pants, and while mentally counting I
reflect on how much I HATE this and oh my god how did I let this happen and I'm going to punch him in his smug face and...
#8
Priya(Thursday, 18 August 2016 02:13)
Part 4:
...And then, still nuzzling, I direct my gaze up as I plant a kiss on the thin material covering his hardened manhood- the only time I'm allowed to make eye contact is with a penis or semen in the
vicinity of my mouth.
And my wide, faux blue eyes maintain his arrogant, sneering gaze, his firm crotch hot against my lips as I lean back a bit and look up to face him, force a smile, and gigglingly dart the tip of my
tongue out to playfully touch his bulge for a moment as I make my eyes sparkle
naughtily and wink like this is our little secret...
...I want the Earth to open up and swallow me whole, to put an end to this miserable spectacle of sissy servitude that I had in a way helped create, that I had at one point SOUGHT OUT, a game I
nearly had to force my beautiful, formerly sweet and innocent girlfriend to partake in which has spun completely out of control...
But of course, the Earth doesn't open up. Instead, I feel another powerful stirring, this one within my chastity device, and I'm reminded what put me on the path that lead me here. At the moment, I'm
wearing this ridiculous outfit, pathetically forcing a pose that took months of
practice, tongue out, smiling prissily on my knees before the man I would be intimately catering to later in the evening to physically prepare him to make rough love to my former girlfriend, to which
I was now an unpaid maid and source of endless amusement for.
...The same man I would be allowed to, a few times a year, beg for him to unlock my cage and let me masturbate in some degrading way of their choosing...
...The man who's watched Mistress serve me his spent cum in all manner of humiliating ways- most recently by "allowing" me to pour his used condoms on to my tear streaked but always smiling upturned
face, which I then delicately and diligently collected and sucked and kissed off my pinky tips, endlessly moaning and lisping my thanks for the "wonderful gift" as they laughed at my disgusting
display...
And I'm brought back to the present again as a gush of sissy juice squirts out of my cage, trailing slowly down my thigh- my forced smile turning into an O as an unrehearsed moan escapes my lips and
a tiny full body spasm partially unbalances me for a moment.
My cheeks flush anew as Sir sees my body betray me in the most intimate way, and I know being a pathetic sissy is exactly what I deserve to be.
My training takes over as I know exactly what to do during all too frequent leakages like this, and the consequences if I don't.
"Oopsies!" I lisp loudly in shocked surprise, touching my index finger to my cheekbone, downcasting my eyes again with a giggle. "Pardon me, Sir, but your-" (I almost choke on the words)
"-magnificent cock has caused this sluts pathetic dolly to leak it's worthless, naughty fluid
again. Please allow me a moment to freshen up!" One arm still ridiculously posed in the air, the other hand comes down, scooping up the slimy trail on my thigh with a long painted nail before
suckling most of it up into my mouth, rolling on my tongue before swallowing loudly. The last bit gets quickly pat on my pursed lips with a smacking kiss. "Ding! Hehehe! There, all gone where it
belongs!"
I then fluidly return to my heavily arched feet, all efficiency now as I take his coat. "Sir, Mistress awaits you in the dining room, Sir," I say, lisping excitedly. ("A good sissy is always
flamboyantly happy!")
It's then that I finally get to close the front door, stopping dead for a moment when I catch the laughing gaze of the nosy, gossiping woman across the street who is well aware of the pathetic
neighborhood sissy, but probably just got to witness this full, pathetic spectacle for the
first time.
#9
supraja rani(Thursday, 18 August 2016 03:50)
Madam Prius please write some interesting stories. Not waste stories
#10
ex-q-zit(Thursday, 18 August 2016 15:13)
Hi all,
My latest story 'THE EVIL TWIN' can be bought (or downloaded for free if you have amazon prime subscription). It can be accessed any of amazon local country website like amazon.com amazon.co.UK
etc.
Please do put in your reviews in amazon as it will be helpful.
Regards,
Ex-q-zit
#11
Nisha(Friday, 19 August 2016 03:01)
Dream comes true:
Hi, this is me Shafana. I was born in an conservative Muslim family in Tamilnadu. Right from my birth, my parents induced being conservative on me. I had an elder brother, his name is Shafiq. I hate
the partiality at my home right from my child hood. This makes me feel irritated every single time, that my brother was treated special and i was denied to have very nominal things and small small
happiness which i can enjoy.
I was good at studies right from the beginning, on the other hand my brother was an below average student. He was 3 years ahead to me. When i crossed 10th standard, my parents were forced me to wear
burqa, I really didn't liked that costume. Especially during summer, it was hard to manage the burqa, in my house, i was not permitted to wear anything beyond traditional. So, i will be wearing a
chudidhar or half sari, and over to that, i need to wear burqa. So it created lot of uneasiness for me while going public.
As my father is into business and his business is doing so good, we were enjoying all luxuries. But, entire household works has to be done by mother and as i crossed my 10th standard, i was also
forced to take active part in all the works. I really envy my brother, he just do nothing and laze around home or go out for roaming with his friends.
My dad always used to have frequent travels and I, my mom and my brother will be there in the home most of the time. As like my father, my mom also has traditional mindset, so she always ensure that
I m under her control and follows all the values and rituals.
In my home, we have individual bedrooms, and I used to sleep or study or do whatever in my room. Eventually 10th board exams came and I wrote it very well. After that nearly there was 2 months
holiday. As my father is in abroad and my brother just joined in college first year, we didn’t had chance to go for any trip.
So, I was forced to stay indoors. My mom taught me, how to cook different cuisines and lot of household activities, which I least interested, as I had no other options, I learned it. My mom has the
habit of sleeping in noon.
One fine day, in afternoon, my mom was sleeping and there was no power in home. So, I felt very bored and I was taking a stroll in my home, and just like that I went to my brother’s room. I found
pile of clothes been washed, ironed, folded and kept on his wardrobe, I thought about me, where I was forced to wash my clothes and wear it.
A spark clicked on my mind. I took a jean and shirt, rushed into my room. As my mom was sleeping, I didn’t have to fear about being caught by her. So I went to my room, locked it and start
undressing, I wore his clothes. After my childhood, that was the very first time I was wearing men’s wear and to my astonishment it gave me ultimate pleasure. And the fit was perfect, as we both were
lean and almost had same height.
I removed all my inners, jewels, Mac up and accessories. I tied my hair in a bun behind; I looked somewhat close to a male. After two hours, I changed to my clothes and replace his clothes in his
room as it was kept.
Then it became my favorite hobby. I steal two pairs of jeans, a shirt, t shirt, and short one pair of his old underwear set. Every night, I used to wear his clothes and sleep peacefully. I never
shared this happy secret of mine to anybody else in this world.
I finished my 12th and I secured 1149. My parents were very much happy and my dad gifted me a I phone along with lot of advices like should not misuse it and should never share no with boys and
strangers like that.
My family members were started discussing about my higher studies. All preferred to put me in reputed women’s college in the same town I resided. I thought myself, if I didn’t utilize this chance, I
will never get another chance to enjoy in my life. So I decided to join in an reputed engineering college in Chennai. So that I will be independent and can able to enjoy my life as I wish.
#12
Nisha(Friday, 19 August 2016 03:28)
I proposed it to my parents and they were deadly against it, after lot of struggles, crying, not eating food, I was able to win it. I was put up in an engineering college in Chennai, 300 kms away
from my home. I was made to join in college hostel.
I had two more room mates, they are deepthi and harini, both of them are very sweet, and to my bad luck they are very much introvert in nature. So I felt bored. They used to study, pray, mingle only
with girls, being sweet all the time.
As my college is strict, we didn’t have any ragging nuisance. I happened to meet one of my senior girl named Ramya. She was an athlete and always be fit. She used to sport tomboyish look all the
time. I had a great respect to her.
As being in metro city, there is no difference or partiality between boys and girls in our college. Only 3 of us hail from small towns, so we use to be very conservative in nature and rest of our
friends use to bully us for this purpose. Even though, I love to be modern and stronger, I didn’t tried in public.
One fine day, I went myself and met ramya in gym, she spoke very nice, we met often and I shared my family background and my wishes to her. She assured that, she help me to get transformed. As per
her advice, I make a first move, I nominated myself for the class representative post, and I bagged it for my Excellency in academics. My class mates and friends were astonished and at the same time
felt happy for me.
I did my duty to the perfection and it gained me more respect from my friends, seniors and staffs. Within first semester end, I was the known personality in my college. My parents used to call me
every day and visit me often.
After the first semester holidays, I went to my native and again boring lifestyle. I came back to college after a month of holiday and the very first day, I joined in gym. That was the first time; I
wore tracks and t shirt in public for the very first time in gym. As my parents won’t permit this and all, I hided all this from them and I purchased those sportswear from my savings.
Going to gym was my eye opener. I used to spend around 6 hours per day in gym. This gave me lot of courage and helps me to become confident. I used to carry heavy lifts and I practice the same in my
room by carrying my roommates.
Eventually second semester flied and I entered into second year. I can see myself, lot of changes in me. I no longer wore chudis to my classes, I always wore shirt and jeans, sporty canvas, and
literally no jewels or accessories. My friends and classmates, used to give a shocked reaction first, later they accepted me as I was.
I also induced the same thoughts on deepthi and harini, slowly they to started transforming as like me. In the second year, second semester, our college management, brought karate classes for all
students. I took participated on that and I secured black belt.
In the second year end, one of my friend veena was continuously abused my batch mate. He used to threaten her by telling that, he will send all their happy times picture to her parents. He forced her
to share bed with him. She was telling this story to me full of melted eyes. I decided to act on this.
I took the help of ramya. Ramya was also hails from an effluent family. She stays in a individual apartment little close to college. So, the spot was fixed, Ramya’s Apartment. We made veena to
spoketo him and ask him to come to that apartment. That stupid, didn’t had any doubts and came there. Me and ramya was hiding in another room, he came and started bouncing on her. In no time, he
became nude, and started undressing her upper clothes, we jump on him and took hold of his hands and legs.
It was a absolute shocker for him. He didn’t expected this. We tied his hands and legs on the four poles of the bed. He was immovable. Ramya inserted his boxer on his mouth, so that he won’t scream.
Veena was shivering to see the things which are happening.
We three moved out, and ramya said to veena, that she is gonna punish him. Veena became nervous. We calmed her and told what are the troubles she faced because of him, after some time, veena became
confident.
Initially veena went and took pictures of him at his nudity. He tried his best to remove the bondage, but he couldn’t. So his nude pictures was our trump card, immediately we transferred the photos
from mobile to lap and mailed it to harini and deepthi for our safety. As Ramya, lived alone, she had very limited things on her apartment. We were thinking what the ways to punish him.
#13
Nisha(Friday, 19 August 2016 03:47)
We searched in net, we found ball busting. We tried to implement that first. So I went and sat on his legs and we made veena to crush his penis. Veena was scared to do. We coaxed her to do and she
accepted as he deserved it. We all three hide our faces with masks. Ramya started recording the entire event in her phone.
After seeing the video on internet, veena got an idea and started crushing his penis. He was shivering and he was literally in pain and crying. She did it for full five minutes and slowly he started
fainting. So, we stopped it.
After that, we went and had lunch, and he was lying in the bed and was very tired due to the extreme pain and hunger. So we made our next move, which was spanking. We just re tied on his back facing
upwards and body facing bed. As he was deadly tired, he didn’t showed any resistance. This time ramya took the charge and I recorded the video.
She started spanking his bums with stainless steel ruler and Ramya was spanking him really hard, within a minute, there were several cuts and blood started oozing from his bums. We mailed this video
to our friends.
We untied him and he was all the time crying and bowed his head down. Ramya being the natural leader showed his phone to him, we took his father’s mobile no in watsapp and attached all his videos and
nude pictures, and threatened him, he felt at her leg and cried for mercy. To our shock, veena went forward and started slapping him hard. We both were amazed with her sudden outburst, he felt at the
legs of veena and asked for apology.
Veena asked us to throw him on the roads as it is. But we felt, that was not enough for him. Our thought is that, he doesn’t value a woman and mistreated veena and used her friendship. So, we both
proposed veena that we should dress him feminine. So he will not forget on his lifetime. But Again veena came with an idea to our surprise, it is that, let him feminine himself, and let him make
video of it. We were very much happy.
So, we gave him food to eat, and warned him about the consequences if he failed to obey us. He was not that macho guy, normaly built person with average height and was wheatish in complexion. He had
lot of chest hairs. So, we removed the sim card from his cellphone and asked him to take a self video, of his feminization.
We made him to shave his body hairs first and then his facial hairs. We taught him to wear bra and then he wore it himself and panty, then he applied Mac up on his face with eyeliner, foundation,
lipstic, finally he wore a nighty and walked feminine. Everything was recorded by himself. Ramya obtained the phone from him and transferred the videos to our phone and mailed to our friends.
We made him to write a letter that, he was torturing veena for having sex and what all the things he did it to her and made him to sign below on the letter. We also made him to write another letter,
if anything to happen to three of us, he was responsible for that.
After that, we let him wash his face and gave his sim card and gave his clothes, he was unable to wear his boxer due to pain. Somewhat he managed and wore it. We warned about the consequences and
send him out. We three felt very content and happy that we taught a lesson to him.
#14
ex-q-zit(Friday, 19 August 2016)
@Nisha : Ohhhhhhhhhh god its unbelievable. I have started writing a story about a muslim girl too n I have written exactly till she good to IIT chennai to study have very freedom.
I am shocked at how similar out thoughts were. But as my ways I am sure after this point our stories would be different.
My next story title is tentatively 'YOU WILL BE MY WIFE' or 'THE HIJABI WIFE - TABLES TURNED'.
All the best Nisha. Good going
Regards
Ex-q-zit
#15
Nisha(Friday, 19 August 2016 04:24)
Hi ex-q-zit. I m equally excited to read your comment after my story. How similar our thoughts were !!!
#16
Nisha(Friday, 19 August 2016 04:37)
So I often used to hang out with Ramya, we used to share lot of lighter moments together, I moved to third year and Ramya is on her final year, along with me, veena, harini and deepthi also became
close with ramya.
So in my 3rd year, I almost started and behaving likes a boy in all aspects. So whenever, I go to home, it was extremely hard for me to dress and behave as traditional girls. During third year
holidays, my mom scolded me daily for not doing house hold chores as I forgetted it. So third year second semester opens and ramya came with the good news that she bought a bullet. Within next three
weeks, I became master in driving bullet.
Driving bullet became my favorite pass time, at the mean while I was still holding the class representative post right from the first semester till now and I was the topper in my class too. So my
parents are happy on that way.
So I started being strong in every aspect, most of my guys in my class are my friends and they feel very comfortable with me and share their boyish things with me. I too felt being in their company.
At the same time, I enjoyed having my good time with veena, ramya , deepthi and harini. I never indulged in the activity of smoking or drinking. According to me, whoever does it is wrong for their
health.
Meanwhile my brother, passed his graduation with lot of difficulties and started accompanying my dad in his business. I came to fourth year, ramya moved to higher studies for states. We missed her
company terribly. I focused on being strong and practicing my gym, karate and as well as studying well. Final semester came and I got selected in one of the reputed IT Firm.
As usual, my parents were against working and this time I am unable to convince them. They were very adamant and they forced me to get married. My mom started blackmailing me emotionally. So, I gave
up. I thought of myself, all my good days are gonna end and my dreams going to get shattered.
One of our relative came with the marriage proposal. My parents showed interest on that particular profile. His name is Asif. Asif was working in a reputed software firm in Chennai. He hails from a
very poor background. My dad never considers wealth as an important constraint, as he also hails from poor family and earned his own fortune. Asif has no father, as he died at asif’s younger age. His
mom was a school teacher, working in the government school. Asif had two elder sisters and one younger sister. All of them are married and now living their life comfortably.
So my mom shared his photo to me. Very first glance, I liked him, reason is that, he looks beautiful, yes you read it correct, he looked beautiful rather than looking handsome. He had no facial
hairs, absolutely no hairs except his head, he looked like me with same height and skin tone. I had the confident that, I can make him to dance on my tunes and live like I wish. So I nodded yes, and
the marriage was fixed.
As you can imagine, our marriage was a very grand event. And it is time for first night. Even though I wish to by boyish in nature, that girly feel aroused on me during marriage and after it
increased to its peak on my first night.
So I was waiting there in my bedroom wearing expensive silk lehenga and lot of jewels. Even though I felt uncomfortable, I felt happy to wear that on that occasion. After waiting for few more
minutes, he came to the room. We didn’t spoke a word before marriage or during marriage also there was no conversation between us.
I didn’t have the courage to look at his face. So I remained calm looking at the bed. I am sure that, it has been more than 15 minutes; there was no movement in the room. So I decided to look up, to
my surprise, he was still standing near the door and looking the floor.
I was very much happy inside and zolt of electric current passed on my body due to excitement, at the same time girl inside me felt worried. So I decided to call him near me, I just uttered amir, he
looked up and he smiled slightly. I can read the blush on his face. Wow. Wat am I seeing on my husband’s face, a blush!!
As we both were in the same age, I decided to take the liberty and called him near, he came and sat on the other corner of bed, exactly opposite to where I was sitting. More than hour passed away,
pin drop silence was maintained on the room.
#17
Nisha(Friday, 19 August 2016 04:43)
I take this time to thanks to Raji for creating the new page for 2016 - 2017. So let's friends make this forum as useful one. Let's try our best to avoid arguments/ fights with any of the members in
the comments section. It take lot of space on 1000 comments.
Comments are always welcomed either positive or negative. But kindly take into consideration , that we authors take lot of our time and energy in penning down a story. So dear friends, come with new
stories. Try to write on your own. Language is not a barrier. If you write in any regional language also, you can easily convert it with google translator.
#18
ex-q-zit(Friday, 19 August 2016 05:06)
Hi Nisha, I have no words as except fit the events in college everything else in my story too is the same. In fact including the name Asif.
Please continue. If it goes as I am thinking then I shall drop my story as it's no user having 2 similar stories
Dear srs & writers can u finish story but i need it tamil if u can write in tamil font....(Thursday, 07 July 2016 08:06) engcom 15-16 #735
#22
Kumkum(Sunday, 21 August 2016 06:47)
Superb writing Nisha, continue plz. I am waiting with a lot of excitement.
#23
vasantha(Sunday, 21 August 2016 08:45)
nisha continue plz I am waiting with a lot of excitement. very super pa
#24
Pooja(Sunday, 21 August 2016 15:22)
Hey ex-q-zit, why isn't your role reversal story not available here in India? The one set in British Raj? I tried looking for it, but it is only available for UK users
#25
Pooja(Sunday, 21 August 2016 15:23)
Hey Raji, trying desperately to look for stories from 2011 and before too, there were some lovely stories from 2010-2013. Can you look to bring the archive back?
#26
ex-q-zit(Sunday, 21 August 2016 16:53)
Hi Pooja
The family secret story is available in amazon.in at the below link
https://www.amazon.in/dp/B01KCXEHLW
Also my latest story of a Muslim girl is shaping very well. Will try to finish it ASAP n post it online.
ex-q-zit
#27
Srs(Monday, 22 August 2016 01:30)
Iam really happy to continue my story here, I thought it's over தண்டனை ur story is awesome but what to do same problem happening in tamil blogs. Hope any one can solve this problem so I can njoy
reading Tamil stories.
#28
Pooja(Tuesday, 23 August 2016 01:42)
Hey ex-q-zit
Thanks I have downloaded that link. Thanks a lot. I want you to a lot of gender role reversal/couple crossdressing stories.
What about a story where they change mid-way and the wife's friends become the husband's sahelis and the husband's friends become wife's pals. And both the set of friends comment about how now they
fit the genders they are.
Would be good fun, the same scenario where they go out for parties before, and then later, when the roles are reversed. The push for the change has to come from the wife.
#29
ex-q-zit(Tuesday, 23 August 2016 04:29)
Hi pooja,
Your idea seems interesting. I shall work on it. But my next 2 stories are already locked. So may be I shall try this concept after that.
I have never written a story based completely on school life. That will be the one after I complete my current story.
Guys please can you also pay your reviews in amazon.
Regards,
Ex-q-zit
#30
ex-q-zit(Tuesday, 23 August 2016 04:31)
Please can you put in your review agree you read them in s mm amazon
#31
Raju(Tuesday, 23 August 2016 06:18)
Oraye ex q zit mundu nee story finish chaye ra jaffa
#32
ex-q-zit(Tuesday, 23 August 2016 08:41)
Nee lanti vaalla valley evaru rayadaniki Ishta padaru.
Do you know how much of personal time I need to invest to write each story. I need to do this while doing my day job n family life. Also incurring the wrath of my spouse at times for picking the
laptop after coming from work or in weekends.
Also a story is a flow of thought. I am not a machine to just type without thinking. Anyways How does that matter to you.
Regards
ex-q-zit
#33
hema(Tuesday, 23 August 2016 22:54)
Am a boy aged 26 working in a software company. Am very lean, smooth body, no hair at all, looks like a girl if I wear girls dress. I don't know it is luck or bad luck to posses the features of a
girl.
One day I was supposed to go to my flat where I stay alone. On that night I was totally drunken. So by mistake I entered D-Block instead of B-Block. Because all the flats and blocks are designed
similarly. I just went to the flat and tried to opened it. It was opened. No one locked it. As I was drunken I went straight to the bedroom. There I saw a beautiful in her 20's changing her dress.
She was so beautiful. I became harden. I want to sex with her. I called her, hey baby looking sexy. She quickly ran to the front door and locked it. She again ran to the dining table and arranged
drinks and came to me hugged me. I was so excited. I kept my hand at the place of her vagina and i found a cock there. I was shock. She was only wearing towel. She is having good boobs but don't know
why this cock. I slapped her for trying to do such a sex. She said am sorry. Please at least give a company for drink. I said OK. She wore a T-shirt and a denim short. We sat for drink. We started
drinking much and much until I fell unconscious. I woke up by 11 AM. I saw her sitting in front of me wearing my clothes. I asked why are you wearing my clothes. She gave a silly answer because you
are wearing my clothes.
I just stood up and ran to the mirror. I was wearing a blue coloured silk saree, 3/4 sleeve blouse, and its back open added only two threads. She added some ear rings, she placed a nice wig which
make me look girls with the addition of the makeup and all. She placed a watch on my right hand.
I got lots of angry and went to her to beat. Suddenly she took her mobile and shown me some pics of me which I never expect. I was in shock and she started saying what have happen last night.
After heavy drunk she took me to the bathroom and did a nice bath for me by applying turmeric powder and brought me to the bedroom and put in a bra and panty on me and she inserted her cock in my
mouth. I don't know I sucked it. She is having those pics and she even fucked me. She is have those too. She at last spouted her sperm on my face and later took a bath again and she dressed me in
this saree and left me for sleep.
I begged her to delete those pics. She said some conditions. She said me to go out in this saree and all to buy some vegetables & fruits, and some staff from the supermarket. I was tensed. She
gave her scooty keys and pushed me out from the flat with a handbag.
Now am starting for shopping. Actually am feeling very happy to show my inside girl to this outer world. But if I feel happy infront of her she will punish me more. So I just behaved like that.
It's 1PM, lets go out and have some in this city and kill the heart of some guys............
#34
vasantha(Wednesday, 24 August 2016 09:59)
ex-q - exit pls give link pa
#35
Vaishali(Wednesday, 24 August 2016 13:30)
Can i not read ex-q-zit's story for free. See dear author i am not able to pay this much to you and never ever have read your story but i want to read your story can you give free it to me than it
will be very very very big favour for me so plzzz give it to me i am very very eagerly want to read it i am dieing to read yr...
#36
vasantha(Thursday, 25 August 2016 09:27)
Can i not read ex-q-zit's story for free. See dear author i am not able to pay this much to you and never ever have read your story but i want to read your story can you give free it to me than it
will be very very very big favour for me so plzzz give it to me i am very very eagerly want to read it i am dieing to read yr... pls pls input stories in sites i am request very much
#37
ex-q-zit(Thursday, 25 August 2016 12:56)
here is a short preview of my latest story. I am really excited about this. Its about a muslim girl who becomes the husband and makes her husband the wife.
CHAPTER 5 – SHOCKED TO SUBMISSION
Sathwik came to his senses after an hour and slowly got up from his bed. He didn’t understand what happened. His rear was burning and was wet & sticky. Sathwik touched and found something sticky.
He had a closer look at it and his brain went numb after realizing what it was. He didn’t understand what had happened and wondered where Salma was.
Just then he received several messages on his WhatsApp. On opening it he was shocked beyond belief. There were several pictures sent my Salma which had him dressed in a salwar kameez with full
make-up wearing a bra. Before he could digest came the final knockout punch. He received the video of him being raped by a man. Sathwik’s hand started to tremble in fear.
Gradually his fear turned to fury and he called Salma on her mobile.
“You bloody bitch………….how……………..how dare you…………you cheat me” Sathwik could hardly speak in anger. Salma laughed at his plight.
“What happened Sathwik? Wasn’t it a memorable occasion as you envisaged?” Salma teased him.
“How dare you? You have made a big mistake. I shall send your pics to your Dad right now and have you killed by him” Sathwik said in anger.
“OK, you can do it by all means. But the whole college will receive the video and pics of your sexual endeavour and cross-dressing. Imagine what will happen to your reputation. The macho Sathwik will
be seen as a gay boy. Is that fine with you, honey?” Salma asked him innocently.
Sathwik was taken aback. It would just ruin his life completely. Sathwik immediately begged her not to do so.
“Hmmmm since my sweetie is pleading I cannot dare do it. But from this moment you are going to do as I say. Is that clear?” asked Salma dominatingly. Sathwik agreed.
“I am a person who stands by her word. I shall still go with you to the farewell party but it will be on my terms and conditions. I shall meet you tomorrow morning in your flat, so don’t go anywhere”
Salma told Sathwik and disconnected the call.
Sathwik just lay on the bed in a daze still not able to get over the fact that the tables had now turned.
********************************************
The next morning Salma and Bobby went to Sathwik’s house. Sathwik who was ready to pounce on Salma was taken aback on seeing Bobby with her and also felt embarrassed that even she knew what had
transpired the previous evening.
The girls gave him exactly 10 mins to get ready and leave with them. He got no answer on asking where they were going.
********************************************
An hour later they entered a upmarket boutique owned by a famous fashion designer. The designer was called Rohit Gupta who was a gay. On learning that it was this group that had booked an appointment
he welcomed them inside. Salma and Bobby left Sathwik alone and took Rohit aside.
“What can I do for you darling?” asked Rohit.
“Next week is your college farewell day for which my boyfriend Sathwik and I plan to attend in a saree and tux” informed Salma. Rohit clapped in happiness.
“That’s great what a lovely couple you both make. I have the right sarees and ensemble for you and also a variety of suits for your boyfriend” Rohit said happily.
“No, you don’t understand. Sathwik is the one who will wear a saree while I will be the one in a tux” clarified Salma leaving Rohit bemused for a moment and thought they were playing with him because
he was gay.
Salma narrated the history between the two and how it came to this and asked for his expert help in getting them ready for the D-day. All the while Sathwik stood idly I the boutique wondering why he
was there in the first place.
Rohit was doubly excited and he clapped twice in happiness and was more than ready to help. He found it a exciting challenge to cross-dress a couple.
The three went to Sathwik. Rohit closely examined in all angles.
“Fair complexion, slim and trim body, good height. Everything is perfect. I think I had loads of clothes that fit you as well as your girlfriend. Why don’t we start off with taking your
measurements?” said Rohit.
Sathwik was puzzled as this was the last thing that he was expecting. He didn’t understand what Salma planned to do by buying them designer clothes for the farewell party. But he decided to silently
follow suite for the time being.
#38
ex-q-zit(Thursday, 25 August 2016 13:00)
I shall complete the full story by tomorrow or Saturday. Hoping you all will like it.
@Vaishali : i am really very very very sorry as I will be cheating all the others who pay for it. I understand your plight but if I make an exception for u then have to do it for others too.
But i shalld efinitely think of something in futiure
#39
priya(Thursday, 25 August 2016 13:12)
thank u ex q zit u understanding our feelings we are waiting for your story's pls write for us ..
#40
Vaishali(Thursday, 25 August 2016 14:31)
Yeahhhh ex-q-zit try please if it is possible....i will pay you double in future but right now i can't pay...my condition is so poor but as i get job i will pay you i am doing mbbs...i have faught
aipmt with good rank but because of my poor condition i can't pay fee my college is going because of only i have taken a education loan
#41
aj(Thursday, 25 August 2016 23:35)
ex-q-zit , i am disappointed that you have gone paid route
but at the same time i understand you reasons for going for paid route
writing story requires lot of time and effort and its only fair that you get some sort of monetory benefit from it
jut a few suggestions
may be once a while you write free story that everyone could read
and if its possible may be few months after you have released story , you can make it free so that everyone can read it
#42
Srs(Friday, 26 August 2016 00:49)
ex-q-zit it's a bad idea for making money by selling ur stories. Please don't do like that it will hurt many fans and all the author will do same.
#43
ex-q-zit(Friday, 26 August 2016 01:12)
Hi all,
I feel bad for Vaishali and others who cannot afford. But for the near future i have no option as I have a few commitments which cannot be avoided. I want to see how it goes as a amatuer
writer.
Also do you know I have slept for getting hardly 4-5 hours per day for last one week as I leave at 6 in the morning and come back in the evening. After spending some time with family I sit late night
to write.
@aj: thanks for being understanding. At some point I may think about doing a promotion for a day or two where it can be read for free. But that will be at least 6 months after releasing the
story.
I am sorry if I appear money-minded but this is all I can do for those who cannot afford it. Please do wait until I make it free for a short period at some point later on.
I shall no longer be posting any comments here as I don't want to hijack this thread. If you have anything to say please say it my blog. I shall be posting my latest story sometime today. Please do
visit my blog to check the link m details.
Sorry to my fans who cannot afford to pay but u will have to wait for some time to read.
Regards
Ex-q-zit
#44
Ritu(Friday, 26 August 2016 07:19)
God knows where is NISHA. Plz come back and complete your story. Plz plz plzzzzz
#45
JRS(Friday, 26 August 2016 14:02)
All the readers & writers, just ignore the comments, stop your reply, this place is for story posting, don't request, don't beg, don't show your wealth for stories, an open blog to post story, if
u hav time - write, If hav Time - read, I've stopped writing stories, now reading when i have time, as simple as that, don't waste another post by a reply to my comments..
Next thread shud be a story! Hopefully......JRS
#46
radha shaym(Friday, 26 August 2016 14:02)
ex.q.zit i am yours great fan but i am not able to read your story because i download on my mobile but now what to do to read it
#47
Sania(Friday, 26 August 2016 22:02)
Dear ex-q-zit love your story. Early waiting for your next story of a Muslim guy . Please post it asap... <3
As I have read all your stories it awesome.
I thanks all of them..
@ashwini we really miss your stories please come back.
@raji if possible please we need stories of 11-12 & 12-13 pages back or you can update on visitors page
#48
Ajaab peem ki gajaab kahani(Saturday, 27 August 2016 01:42)
Smile rahul, priti says. Rahul gives shy smile. Dam rahul you are soo pretty, if had a cock I would bang you then and there. Rahul knows very well what priti says she mean it. He remembered what
priti said in there 1st night when he compelled priti to suck his cock. That day In wet eyes priti said rahul, one day I will make you realise how it feels to suck a cock. What can he do now?
Nothing, 3years from their marriage and now priti , not only controls his entire estate but also his personal life. Despite of being a woman , Priti is now even physically stronger than him, she can
carry him easily. And shame is that it makes him horny. Though rahul has his dick still but priti calls it a clit . Rahul remember that shameful day in clinic, when priti wanted his doctor Ritu to
hav a look which she mentioned as clitty, rahul was soo horrified, he thought they going to remove his dick , he began to cry loudly... Other patients become worried and both priti and Ritu began to
laugh, at last they calm him down and said Ritu is just checking . Priti said rahul , don't worry I am not going to remove your dick, I will make you a woman with out removing you dick. Mare a dick
can't make you a man, see inspite of having a pussy, I am more man than you . 3 years ago your are millionaire, infact you still are, but you are just a doll of mine now, I have your power of
attorney in all matters.
#49
mansi(Sunday, 28 August 2016 14:42)
Ex-q-zit pls write your story in ur blog
So we all read that story for free
Pls understand .
#50
ash(Sunday, 28 August 2016 23:13)
Ex-q-zit , plz make your stories free
#51
Srs(Monday, 29 August 2016 00:49)
Please anyone write new stories
#52
shyam(Monday, 29 August 2016 01:31)
hell friends so many stories and threads are here not finished if anybody likes then they can finish those stories its a suggestion
#53
akshay(Monday, 29 August 2016 13:24)
srs and jrs are absent and not writing stories,sharmiladevi and kajal have stop writing,and worst of all ex q zit will not write any story here so it means..no one will write a story now..?a
#54
Srs(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 00:58)
akshay not like that i will continue my story soon please wait
#55
Ritu(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 04:13)
Raji, ex q zit , kajal were the pillars or our dreams and fantasy. Raji stopped writing a long time ago, kajal even blocked her blog , and ex q zit is now charging for stories.... Jo vi hamari bachi
khuchi sanpe the , Jo ki hum stories me aape aapko dhundte the , wo vi sayed tutne wala he... And ek taraf duniya Hume thukrati he... Ham jiye to jiye kese.... Bin aapke.... !!!
#56
shemalesana(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:37)
Mookuthi part 1
Its 6.00 am in the morning I had to get up, had a deadline to meet. The five stone diamond stud mookuthi in my nose reminded me about all my tasks at hand. I had to cook breakfast for my family pack
their lunch, get hot water for their bath prepare my elder son to school and pamper my 6 months old baby daughter. I am a born male with masters degree in engineering, worked as an assistant
professor in reputed engineering college but now am a house wife mother of two running a beauty parlor for likeminded people.
It all started with a mookuthi, nose stud in tamil. Ours is a small traditional family with my father mother jaya my elder sister varhini and myself viki. My sister is 3 years older to me. It was
during my 15th birthday my parents took me to native place to get my and my ears pierced in a traditional manner. My parents wanted to get it done before my board exam so that I could concentrate on
my studies. It was on Thursday that we reached our native village and we stayed in our grand-parents home. As per the tradition I was spared from hair cut for a year so my hair was shoulder length.
My grand-parents were happy to see us and have already prepared for the ear piercing ceremony in our family temple. Since there was less time we were taken for shopping soon after breakfast. I loved
my grandparents more than my parents and I never disobeyed them. Infact I wanted to continue my studies with them but father was against it. During shopping my grandfather brought two sets of pattu
pavadai one for me and the other for my sister. But I preferred to be in jeans and shirt but I couldn’t disappoint them. Since I hadn’t hit the puberty I had a unisex face and body. Then we went to a
movie and then returned home. Since I was so tired I slept as soon as we reached home.
#57
shemalesana(Wednesday, 31 August 2016)
It was Friday 5.00 am just the time for sunrise I was woken by my grandmother. I was insisted to have an oil bath. Then she took me to her room and dressed me with pattu pavadai. I was already red
being shy as it is normally worn by girls and now I was closely resembling my sister. To add to my shyness she make me wear golden bangles, necklace and anklets which was our family jewel as my skin
refused to wear them before me. Till now I had accepted it to please my grandmother and she too was happy with me. All the preparation took us until 7.00 am and it was already late for the auspicious
time. We hurried to the temple but my mother and sister started to tease me on our way. We reached the temple on time and the aasari and temple priest were ready for us. We were asked to wash our
feet and then worship the god. When I lifted my skirt to wash my feet everyone saw the anklet and started to laugh. Then we were made to sit on a kollam at the rear of the temple and a lamp was
lighted on both sides. My father made us wear a flower garland. First it was my sister turn. My grandma gave the aasari big hoop umbrella danglers for her to get pierced. But being a modern girl my
sister refused to wear. Since they brought only two pair one for me and the other for my sister. Mine was a small stud. As the time was running out my mother requested me if I can wear it. I did not
want to disappoint them but I was scared because those were traditional earring passed on by generations and it had a thick stem. So I was to get pierced first. My grandma marked the point to pierce
my ears. Then the aasari removed the screw from the stud fixed a pointed needle and started to heat it in the lamps flame. Fearing the pain my eyes already started to water. I was made to sit on my
uncles lap and he hugged me preventing any motion. I could move myself. My mother had a banana in her hand. As the needle was about to turn to red the aasari approached near me to pierce my ears and
I closed my eyes out of fear then there was a buring smell and a sharp pain. I started to shout only to be muffled by the banana from my mother. The aasari was strong guy he did not let go of my ears
and pushed it all the way through. I could feel the earring in my right ear. It was paining and it was heavy. I thought that my ear was going to tear out. After a few seconds he screwed the earring
tightly in my ears. I vision was completely blurred due to my tears. Again he started to hold the needle in the lamp flame. I pleaded my parents to stop it as I was really paining. But they just
consoled me and repeated the same process. I nearly fainted after my ear piercing. Seeing all this my sister refused to get her ear pierced as she feared pain and started to run. I had no energy to
do anything. My grandmother took to pray to god again for well being. I was asked to fell on my grandparents and my parents feet to get their blessing. My grandparents gifted me another set of pattu
pavadai and my parents gifted me a golden ring. But I was in no mood to be happy. By this time they had pierced my sisters ears and she was now sporting a small stud which was supposed to be mine.
But she was angry for making her feel the pain for piercing.
This is the turning point in my life. I had to wear a female dress and now I sported a dangler which added to feminine feature.
#58
shemalesana(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:38)
Mookuthi -2
After the ceremony in the temple I was so exhausted that I went straight to bed. I was so tired that I never knew they made me wear a nighty for sleep. I let out a yelp which the blouse caught my
ears when removing it. My ears were still paining and I was unable to turn my head as I felt a slight pain as the earring swinged. Seeing me my mom felt pity and made me sleep on her laps the entire
night. I had removed the bangles and anklet. It was Saturday and it was already 7.00 am but I was still in bed. My grandparents have asked not to disturb me but they made my sister clean the whole
house. She had grudge on me since then. When I woke up I was asked to take a bath and wear the dress kept on my bed. I was surprised to see the new pattu pavadai and matching jewels. When in enquired
my grandma just convinced me to go with flow and help me to get dressed.
Just then our neighbor pavithra who is the same age as me came to our home to ask me to play with her. When she saw in this dress she couldn’t stop laughing. Normally I should be angry but I felt shy
and hid myself behind the window curtain. Then grandma left us alone to talk by ourself. Pavithra started to praise my beauty and said I should have been born as a girl and god had made a mistake.
Hearing this we both laughed again. Until now I had loose hair which I used to cover her earring. But when I turned she saw something shiny and insisted to tie my hair to prevent hair loss. Then she
saw the earring and had an open mouth. She pulled it to check if it real which resulted in me screaming and in tears. I couldn’t stop me tears as it was really paining. Before I knew she hugged to
tight that for a second I forgot about my pain. It was a brief one. She apologized and brought saline water and cotton swab to help me clean the wound on my ears. Then as we were talking she wanted
to take me out to the market for which I denied. But I promised to go with her the other day. Since it was our vacation father and mother left us in the village and returned back to Coimbatore the
Sunday night. My sister wanted to escape from the chores and joined them in their travel. So I was left alone with my grandparents. Pavithra used to visit me every now and then. She even brought her
clothes for me as male dress did not suit my hair and my earring. At Sunday night pavithra wanted to have a sleep over with me. So she brought a suitcase with her.
#59
shemalesana(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:39)
Mookuthi 3
At Sunday night pavithra wanted to have a sleep over with me. So she brought a suitcase with her. Few dress and few other small boxes. We had dinner together with grandparents and then we left for my
room. First she wanted me to wear her nighty. Initially I declined her wish but in the end she did convince me. I ended up wearing her nighty. She asked to lie down which I gladly did as long as she
did not pull my ears. I heard her plug something to the power socket. Then I could smell wax. I just drifted to deep sleep. Then I felt my legs getting hot. But I was too lazy to wake up which was
followed by a sharp pain. Just as I was about to shout I felt her lips on mine warm and tempting. It was a brief one. I started to close eyes without paying attention to the pain. Then she let me go.
I still had my eyes closed. She asked if I wanted another. I kept silent. Then she poured hot wax on my other leg and stripped it. I got another kiss for each strip. I laid still. I had few blood
spots too. She gave me a towel bath and asked to feel my legs. True to my surprise it felt like a baby skin too soft and flawless. She asked if I wanted more but I denied as it was enough kiss for a
day.
She too accepted and we both went to bed and we slept in each others arm. On Monday morning she woke up early and woke me with a kiss. She packed her stuff and left for her home. Today she invited to
have a sleep over in her house to which I just smiled. When having bath I noticed my legs. It was smooth and flawless. She left some of her dress for me. I wore a pink tops which had shortest sleeves
and a denim blue jean. When I went to have a breakfast my grandma was not pleased with my dress but she was happy to see my wearing the traditional earring as per her wish. I reasoned out that I had
only two pattu pavadai and both are still wet after laundry. She just sighted and promised to buy me more but I didn’t care. My entire vacation I spend with my grandparents and pavithra. By now I had
my full body waxed. We waxed each other and I was accustomed to wearing nighty and other female dress and my earring. But I wanted to be my male self soon though I enjoyed it. Just the day I left to
Coimbatore I asked my grandma to remove my earring as I had no idea. But she refused to do so. Then I asked pavithra to help me. She was sad to get departed but made me lay on her lap and removed it
slowly. It was a new experience. As soon as she removed it I felt like missing something. She caught that sigh but said nothing. I checked the mirror but the holes were clearly visible due to the
thick stem. It wasn’t ugly but weird.
I was in tears when they sent me off to Coimbatore. But they made a promise if scored good marks in my exam they will make sure to invited me for the next vacation due in 3 months.
#60
shemalesana(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:39)
Mookuthi 4
Two day after reopening of my school I caught up to being a naughty boy but I missed my happy days. Then we received a call from pavithra’s mother saying that she had attained puberty and a function
was held for her and they wanted to invite my family for it. Initially they planned to send my mother and sister but I too went with them. It was Wednesday morning that we reached their place. At the
auspicious time she was called to the centre hall and was made to sit on a wooden plank. It was an all ladies function. I was the only male there except a few close relatives. I was asked to dress
with pattu pavadai and ofcourse the earrings. So I was one of the ladies now. Pavithras mother was the first to apply sandal paste on her and inserted few bangles on her. Then I was asked to do the
same and i sat next to her. My sister had no interest in it and standing there. I was a long day. Even sitting next to her made me tired. The function ended in the late afternoon and she was taken to
separate room and I was not allowed to talk to her. We left to our place and the day just went on. My sister thought the whole ritual was torture and warned mom never to make her undergo such
function. Mom just kept quiet but was worried as my sister has not yet attained her puberty.
It was the next day when we were about to leave my sister did not join us for breakfast. We called her a few times but there was no response so my mom left to check on her. Then after few minutes she
called my grandmother to her room. They came out smiling. Only then I realized that she too had attained her puberty. They asked me not to disturb her as she was not in good mood and they started to
make the preparations. When they asked her to prepare for the function they just fainted. Soon a doctor was called to check on her. The doctor said that she was physically healthy but is in very
emotional state and not to add any pressure to her. Now we had a problem in hand. Before we knew the news of my sister has reached every ears in the village and a crowd started to pour to our house.
But my sister refused to leave her room. We scared to force her as it may lead to any complication but we had to prepare her for the function the next day. Also all our relatives were on the way to
attend a function as she was the only girl child in our family tree and they expected to make it a big function.
#61
shemalesana(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:40)
Mookuthi 5
All our relative had arrived but still my sister refused to come out. She even refused to wear the family jewel. All our relatives started to gossip as it was false alarm. My grandma had no other
choice. She wanted someone to be seated on the centre fall to perform the function to save the family name. just then mom looked at me and asked if I can replace her for few hours. I was shocked to
hear this from her. How can I replace a girl. After a little thought my grandma too agreed for this but I wasn’t convinced. Then mom made an offer to help me get admitted in our village school if I
help to save the family name. Even before I could answer I was taken to my mother room and they applied the hair removing cream brought for my sister. I had a weird smell. Then they gave me a warm
water bath and was made to wear a half saree. It revealed my navel which felt weird. Then came the earring which I missed, a pair of bangle, rings on my fingers and anklet. Then I was made to sit on
the dressing table and was asked to close my eyes. When I checked in the mirror I saw myself with earring not like my sister. After a brief time I was allowed to open my eyes but mom blocked the view
of the mirror. I was hurried to the centre hall and was make to sit. The switch between me and my sister was known only to the four of us and was agreed to be maintained as such.
Sitting in the function and being the cause of the function are two separate things. I was nervous if someone will identify me that will lead to complete humiliation. But I also started to enjoy
being the attention. After almost the entire day I was covered with sandal and turmeric paste, hand full of bangles and forehead full of kumkum. At around 5.00 pm I was taken to my room was some
rest. I just laid on the bed and dono went I dozed off. I was woken by my mom and had some milk and fruits to eat. I ate in half sleep and dozed off again.
#62
shemalesana(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:40)
Mookuthi 6
I was woken up early the next morning. I thought I had a weird dream. But I realized that I was still in half saree and I was in deep trouble. My relatives had stayed back because there was another
problem in hand. Being a traditional family it is our custom to pierce a girls nose within the first week after puberty. I was not aware of this. We thought that they has stayed back to visit the
family temple or so. It was the third day we again tried to convince my sister but she was in no condition to hear us out. But our family name has to be saved. On third day they started to ask about
mooku kuthu ceremony to my parents but they just skipped the topic but they knew that cant do the same forever. When they asked me I was dead against it. I told the holes will be clearly visible and
I cant go back to normal male life. They said if I remove the stud within 10 days there will be no mark of the piercing. The scar will be made only if you wear for a whole month. It seemed logic but
I was not convinced. Mom asked pavithra to convince me but I said first pierce your nose then tell me. For which she answered she is ready to get her nose pierced with me. Now I had no choice except
to accept it.
My mother announced the mooku kuthu function on next day to everyone. It had gathered all their attention. That morning again I was asked to take head bath. Then I was decorated with jewels and new
saree. We went to our family temple. There a jewel box was kept in the goddess feet and I was asked to pray. Our entire relatives had gathered in the temple. It was more like a carnival than a
temple. After prayer the priest handed over the jewel box to us and blessed me for a bright family life. I just blushed. I came to know that my nose will pierced by the same aasari in a traditional
manner at 3 pm at the centre hall. Now I was scared of the pain. I request my mom to have a gunshot or even better a non piercing magnetic stud. But I know that was impossible. I asked to get some
beauty sleep and rest. Like I could even close my eyes I had vision of the painful nose piercing.
#63
shemalesana(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:41)
Mookuthi 7
I was woken up at 3 pm was asked to get ready. I was made to sit in the centre hall. The hall was filled with ladies of all age. All of them sported rettai mookuthi nose stud on both side that too
bigger and heavy. Now I was scared am I going to double pierced too or on a single side. But I dare not speak bcoz if I do they may recognize me by my voice. The aasari came there on time and started
to make initial preparations. I searched for pavithra but she was no-where to be found. I just felt tricked by her and promised never to talk to her again.
Just then one of the relative put a garland on me and asked to do the nose piercing in a painful way to ease the child birth. I just cursed her. Mom just whisper me that she had spoken to the aasari
to make it really painless. Now I had my grandma holding both my arms and my mother holded by head covering my eyes to prevent me from shaking my head. I could smell the needle being headed. This
time in was in fear like the end of the world. Within few second I had a pain in my right nose. But it was bearable I thought it was over. But I was wrong. He had just pinched my nose to prepare for
the piercing. Just as I let go of my breath came a sharp pain, smell of burning flesh. I screamed at top pitch. I stood up pushing my mother and grandma. The needle was only half a way inside. Now a
dozen of our relative came together, caught me and made me sit again. The aasari again pushed the needle inside my nose but now my eyes was not covered and I could see his hands. His hands came again
to put the thirugani the nose screw in the place. I begged him to let it be and to put the screw after the pain had reduced. But he just laughed. He said the pain will not go for few days. He pushed
my hands away which was caught by my mom and forcibly flipped my nose and tightened the screw. Till now I was holded my by relatives. I thought I was over. But one of them told to tighten the screw
with molten wax or she will remove it. Had a second phase of pain he then remove the screw took some wax from his box applied in on the screw showed in it in flame. Again she flipped my nose and
screwed it tightly. I just fainted. Now I will be with nose stud forever in my live.
#64
ex-q-zit(Wednesday, 31 August 2016 07:11)
Hi friends,
I have requested you to please contact me on my blog inoted of posting here so that the 1000 post limit can be utilised well.
Anyways, I have posted my solution in my blog for those who cannot afford to buy them. This is the least I can do. Hope you understand.
Also I have posted a preview of a couple of chapters of my new story THE REVOLUTION. Hope you will like it. It is currently in progress and will post by this weekend.
Any comments you have for me please make in my blog.
Regards,
Tulasi
#65
priya(Thursday, 01 September 2016 01:02)
mookuthi pls continue your story really nice. ex q zit thank you for accept our request..
#66
Srs(Thursday, 01 September 2016 02:02)
shemalesana this the first time iam reading ur story an is simply awesome, i don't know y i can't write such kind of stories please continue don't stop.
#67
Srs(Thursday, 01 September 2016 02:17)
shemalesana i request you to please make him double pricing in ear and nose, it would be nice. Make him by forcing
#68
Shemalesana(Thursday, 01 September 2016 06:21)
Part of my story is true
I am still working in an engg college
Yet to be a house wife & mother of two
#69
priya(Thursday, 01 September 2016 10:23)
really awesome ur truly blessed
#70
Kumkum(Thursday, 01 September 2016 21:34)
Nice story writing Sana. Please update as early as possible. You are doing a great job.
#71
Srs(Friday, 02 September 2016 00:51)
Shemalesana i can't believe this, how do you feel please continue
#72
Vaishali(Friday, 02 September 2016 03:47)
The video game
No.... i can't do this?? I can't wear this and get fucked by a girl!! No god please help me get me out of these please but if i don't cross these stage i will be captured in this video game for
forever...
10 year ago!!!
my name is Vishal. I am very very fond of playing video games and i am working in video game company online and so i never go outside for more time just stuck in home with my games.
Because of not going outside i have long hair and don't get contact with sun so my skin is very fair.
I am so talented and this video game is my passion so i give my 100% to it. Whenever i design games all go viral and i get best game award.
One day i get offer of making a game of wwf worth rupees 5crore from sneha. I fixed a meeting in 5star hotel at 5pm.
I went there and we met and ordered two Cappuccino.
Sneha-- hi Vishal nice to meet you
Me--me too tell me some more details about the game
Sneha-- Vishal i want a wwf game in which a girl who is very muscular..longer...and...stronger
Me-- yeah i will design no problem
Sneha-- yeah but i want also that make boys thinner and shorter and less stronger and make fight b/w them and always make girl winner
Me-- sorry sneha but it can't possible i can make this type of game but after publishing it will go flop because no one play game if they know that the opposite side player will Win. So dear i will
not make
Sneha--no you have to make..i will raise the money offered you
Me-- i don't want money but i can't flop my name i am very successful game designer and don't want to put stop point in my life. No bye.. and i leave the hotel
Sneha got angry and told me You will have to make it otherwise what gonna with you... you can't even imagine it.
I reached home and started my work...past 5years i was researching a technology to put a humen in video game but still i didn't get success
One day....
I was playing games and got and idea that if i can make a living things scanner i will be successful in my research and started to make the scanner and in 2 years i made the scanner i was very happy
but i will be 100times if the scanner will connect to video game and i connect. i scan a rabbit through it and started the video game and it was just a miracle yeahhh my research is completed.. now i
will change the whole world i was very happy.
I offered my company about these technology....they also got very happy and offered me 100 billion USD but they bet that the technology will be the name of company i refused i told no i will be on my
name otherwise i will offer other company the company CEO got angry and scared he told me ok dear MR. Vishal come to the office and meet me we will purchase this technology and will give your name
but don't offer other company.
#73
Vaishali(Friday, 02 September 2016 05:04)
The video game--2
I reached the company office and CEO offered me a coffee and i give the technology for testing i took coffee and i slept.
When i waked up i found myself nude and handcuffed. I saw a man and woman were sitting near to me. Saw that man was CEO and he introduce other woman as his sister she is none other than she is
sneha.
Sneha-- you told me no than i came to my bro and told about you and we are waiting to take revenge...now see what gonna be happening...
We have also another game designer and we will put you in this game with your technology and will humiliate you so much...and for going out of the game you will have to complete all stages. You know
the game name....--transgender---
Hahaha....lets see than they scan my full body and import me into the game...
1 stage-----. Make a girlfriend
Now i am in the game and it is looking like real game than i read instructions and found that it is a real life game what i will do in game i will also be happen in real life and my goal is to find a
girlfriend to complete the stage. Instructions told a girl to make me approach amd she is also sneha she is also import herself.
I told myself she will never accept my praposal and i will be captured for lifetime in this game but i told lets try what gonna happen...
When i praposed to her to be my gf she accepted easily i was confused how can it be possible but she told that she has some conditions if i change myself according to condition she will be my gf i
told what conditions she told
1. You will have to put 24×7 chastity lock
2. No body hair
3. Have to wear lacy penty and bra insight the male clothes
4. Get always painted nails.
5. Nose and ear and naval pierced.
Me--- no i can't do this i am not a Sissy slut..
Sneha---ok as your wish you asshole... always stuck in this stage i am going to out of the game than you will never ever complete the stage and prisoned in this game.
Me--ok ok please don't go i am ready please...
Sneha--- yeah good my little sissy slut
#74
Shemalesana(Friday, 02 September 2016 08:48)
I got my ear pierced along with my sister in childhood
My nose was pierced instead of her during her puberty function but with a gold wire by our family goldsmith
I had to do my schooling from home for a year to recover from trauma I got bcoz of the function
I still have the mark on my right nostril
Now I am working as an assistant professor in reputed engg college & am in search of a life partner who can fulfil my wish
I would like to have a organ transplant; bear two kids & live as an homemaker
#75
kavi(Friday, 02 September 2016 09:46)
vaishali very super pls continue
#76
Srs(Saturday, 03 September 2016 01:12)
Shemalesana is story end?, please continue one by one
#77
Parikalpana(Saturday, 03 September 2016 06:53)
It was little late ..... but I am happy - Part 8
As soon I stepped in institute I realized I need to recognize seniors for which I was not prepared and I expected I was the one who recognized least number of seniors. For next one month my seniors
used me as model instead of dummy for trying out there creation. They dressed me up in variety of their creations for males and females both but mostly females. I liked when I got chance to wear male
cloths but wore female cloths as part of punishment. Some times dressing as female involved makeup and jewelry as well. I was OK with male cloths and unwilling but without any fuss I did what they
asked for mostly trying out their creations again and again. I didn't speak much either. For male cloths I did model for mix group of seniors (male and female) but one day I found all female seniors
are gone and only male seniors showed up which was surprising to me. An announcement was made that now they will work on female costumes and handed me a bra and a pair of big breast forms to fill the
cups. I didn't like this and said no for putting on bra. Seniors threatened to publish my pictures and videos they have taken earlier. I agreed to put on bra with breast forms but my behavior was not
any different then a dummy. In short no cooperation. They tried to work with my attitude which didn't help them a lot. After couple of days when I reached to room where all this was happening, I
found a change there were snack items and all seniors did welcome me and they started talking with me but I didn't show any interest. One senior explained me why my cooperation is important for them.
They even deleted all the video's and pictures from cell phone. They said there career depends on the cloths they are designing. They need to exhibit their creation as part of final exam where big
cloth makers do visit and if they like designs they may offer employment or contracts. While working on designs they can ask me to try their work and they will not hesitate to touch me (my body) to
get the accurate measurement for adjustments they need to make. They cannot touch female models freely.They can ask me to stand in a certain pose which is not possible with dummy. For final trial
they have arranged a model who has same body structure like me and she has 38DD breasts and this the reason they picked the breast forms they picked. They started begging me for help and I agreed and
said sorry to them for not cooperating. Now I started having fun modeling.
#78
Rajibalan Reader(Saturday, 03 September 2016 18:41)
Sorry, i have a question.
Where are the post from 835 to 1000 in EngCom15-16 section?
Please include that post back. There are many stories in that range.
thank you.
#79
Shemalesana(Saturday, 03 September 2016 23:51)
Srs my last post is not my story but my wish & statement
#80
Parikalpana(Sunday, 04 September 2016 13:57)
It was little late ..... but I am happy - Part 9
We went through male dress one more time quickly then cam turn of ladies dresses, I did spend almost three evening half naked in my under pants and bra with breast forms. Relationship with seniors
was getting better day by day and all of them were teasing me and I was also pretending like girl, acting to be irritated and this made evenings very enjoyable. They tried all types of dress from
salvar kameej to lehanga choli, tight jeans to shorts.
any one pls wriiite story like slowly forced feminize by mom sister in law sister and gf
pls wrte with concept of hair ..... Shemalesana ur story super
#82
Pooja(Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:48)
Turning it around-Part 1
Pooja and Ranjit were a happily married couple, based out of Mumbai. From the outside the couple was what they call a 'normal' couple. One day while watching TV, they happened to chance a song from
an old Hindi movie, Kismat. The song had Biswajeet dressing up as a woman and Babita as a male Pathan.
Pooja found it very interesting, while Ranjit claimed there was nothing much to it. "Why do you say that,?'' enquired Pooja. "Even I have played female in plays in school and college. In fact before
we met I played a female character in professional plays with a theatre group," said Ranjit as a matter of fact.
This was a revelation for Pooja. She was shocked. Her husband as a female. Pooja's mind started working over time.
She had a lot of questions for Ranjit, which he answered patiently. Ranjit did not find the whole thing strange or hillarious, but for Pooja this seemed to be a life changing experience.
That night, Pooja was waiting for Ranjit in the bedroom. "What?," asked Ranjit. "Why are you looking at me like this?," he enquired. "Did you wear a saree or a dress?," asked Pooja. "Oh my god, you
are still on that subject?," said an exasperated Ranjit. "Tell me please," begged Pooja. "I wore all feminine dresses, did make up, wore inners. I even got my body waxed. Anything else?" said
Ranjit.
Pooja smiled. She had got her replies.
That night while making love, Pooja took the on top position and was decidedly more aggressive. Ranjit found it a bit odd, because in three years of being married, this was the first time Pooja had
shown this much aggression.
Next morning, Pooja woke up a little late. Ranjit got up early and made some tea for both. He woke Pooja up. Pooja woke up smiling and said:"Thanks meri chamakchallo (my beautiful)". Ranjit ignored
it and carried on.
Little later Pooja came towards him with a night gown. "I want to check if this gown fits you. Can you wear this for me?,''asked Pooja. "No way," hollered Ranjit. "You never for a moment hesitated
wearing this while acting, why not now?," said Pooja in response and showed some mock anger.
#83
Pooja(Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:49)
Turning it around-Part 2
Ranjit felt bad for her and said, "okay give it to me". Ranjit wore the gown and it fitted him perfectly. "Something is missing...hmmmm...now it fits," said Pooja as he applied some lipstick even
before Ranjit could react. "You know what would help?," said Pooja. "If you also wore a bit of inners...here put these on and remove those ugly ones," she said as she threw a panty and bra. Ranjit
looked confused. "Do you want me to wear these?", he asked. "Yes, why not? Just for now, wear it, please, pretty please?" said Pooja. Ranjit did as he was asked. Pooja turned to him after he had worn
everything. "Now there look at yourself in the mirror. I now get an idea about how you would look with a bit more make-up, hair etc. You must have been a knockout chamakchallo," teased Pooja. Ranjit
went into a trance as he was reminded of his acting days. "Yes, had a lot of admirers and fans. But that was then," he said snapping out of his trance. "Now can I go back to be dressed normally?" he
begged.
"Not now, just for sometime today, continue wearing this," she said. Ranjit just shrugged his shoulders and carried on his work. He worked as a creative designer, whereas his wife worked as an
automobile engineer. They had a close group of friends, who all incidentally grew up together in the same neighbourhood. They were a group of five married couples. They would spend a lot of time
together on weekends, driving down to nearby hillstations.
Pooja was always keen to try adventure just like the other guys, but she would be forced to stay indoors with the wives. Ranjit on the other hand would love to spend time indoors with the females. At
the time, the group did not think this was odd. But there was a feeling among the other members that they do not quite fit in.
Pooja had been a basketball player in her school and college days. She was always considered to be a tomboy. Ranjit was a homebody and preferred to be indoors, drawing and pursuing creative
interests. He had also been trained in stitching and cooking.
Ranjit's revelations about his acting days as a female switched something inside Pooja. She thought of something. That evening she old Ranjit to take care of the house.
Pooja had long flowing hair and would be the envy of the group. But that evening when she came back home the hair was cut short like a man with short side locks. Ranjit opened the door, Pooja smelled
of cigarettes and beer!
#84
Pooja(Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:49)
Turning it around-Part 3
This was a first for Ranjit. But it turned out that Pooja used to smoke and drink when in college, but had given up just before courtship with Ranjit.
Pooja seemed to have changed her look completely. She was decidedly wearing a man's trousers, shirt and shoes. It was almost as if Pooja went out as a woman and came back as a man. Ranjit was stunned
to see Pooja.
But Pooja was in her senses as she tried to make sense. "Listen...Having seen you dressed as a female, really switched something inside me. I have always wanted to be a guy, but somehow suppressed my
feelings. But seeing you like this has really revived those thoughts.
"I have thought about it long and hard. We don't need to take any drastic steps right now. We can start off by dressing and living as we are really meant too. You can really be the wife and I can
really be the husband. This way we can correct something that should have been done at the birth. This is not about you, but about us."
Ranjit stood shell shocked! He really didn't know what to say.
Pooja made him sit and just shook him a bit. "I know it is all a bit too much for you. But I guess...I think this is how it was always meant to be."
"But I just mentioned in passing.." said Ranjit as Pooja cut him off. "You must see yourself you are a natural as a woman. You carry yourself off very very well. The nuances that you have, are
something that I have only seen in girly girls. I am clearly not one of them, because I am not meant to be a woman. You are," cornered Pooja in a strong voice.
Ranjit still wondered what what was going on.
"See it is simple. We start living as man and woman. We start going out with our group. We can start getting more authentic with our dressing, make-up etc. Eventually we can...down the road...go the
whole hog. I have really thought this through," said Pooja.
"But...what about our families...." said Ranjit."Our work places..Our friends won't they all find it odd," he added.
"Do you love me?," she asked. "Yes I do," replied Ranjit. "Then from now on just follow my lead. We will break this slowly to everyone. First our friends circle, then our families and then our work
places," said Pooja.
#85
Pooja(Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:50)
Turning it around-Part 4
"As a matter of fact I have spoken to our group. I have not told them anything in detail. Just said that we are inviting them over for dinner this weekend," she revealed.
"Oh my..." said Ranjit. "Don't worry we will manage," she replied.
"...And one more thing....I think we need to pick names that suit our lifestyle from now. I like Raj and Ranjita fits you well. Agree?" she asked. Ranjit was just staring at the floor not knowing
what to do.
For the next four days, Raj (earlier Pooja) just pushed Ranjita towards feminity, even as he embraced things that a guy would do. Raj started watching football again, drank beer, while Ranjita did
all the household work. Raj also handed over jewellery which he expected Ranjita to wear and even bought her a long wig.
Then as the lock struck 8 pm on Saturday, the group of friends, a group of four married couples knocked on the door almost at the same time. But when the door opened, they were left speechless.
Standing in front of them was Raj dressed in a suit and tie, whereas Ranjita stood there all decked up in a saree, flowers and jewellers and payals.
It was all a bit too much as they walked in. The ladies went over to one side and the gents to the other.
Raj cleared his throat and explained.
"Guys I know it is a bit too much for you. But this is the real us. We are meant to be this way. Her (pointing towards Ranjita) as my wife and me as he husband. I have always wanted to be a guy. You
know go out biking with you (pointing towards the men), smoking a cigarette, drinking beer and watching sports.
"Ranjita here...did not want to be one of you (men)," he added.
Ranjita looked down. But Raj motioned her to speak.
"It took a bit of time for me, but I realised that there was a woman inside me. I never felt comfortable. When I looked at the ladies, doing girly things, cooking and generally chatting, it really
made me feel like wanting to be part of it," said Ranjita.
There was a moment's silence...but then one of the guys Ravi stood up and embraced Raj. He shook his hands and said. "You are ready to go to a pub tomorrow to watch the EPL match. Guys you are
joining right (looking at the other three men)," said Ravi. Soon Vijay, Rahul and Rakesh got up and high-fived Raj.
It was almost instantly that Raj was inducted as a man.
The ladies meanwhile looked at each other and then smiled at Ranjita. They too got up and welcomed her to their group.
The ice had been broken and the group was back to being what it was...a fun gathering of friends. The old Ranjit and Pooja had been forgotten. It was almost as if they did not exist anymore.
#86
Pooja(Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:51)
Turning it around-Part 5
They met regularly as a group together, sometimes the guys met separately and the women on their own.
"You know Raj you really fit in...This has really added life to our group," remarked Vijay as the others agreed as they drank beer and watched their favourite EPL match.
The ladies meanwhile ran their own small kitty club, cooked together and discussed about dresses and other things that make ladies comfortable. Ranjita found herself right in the middle very soon and
loved being part of these coffee kitschs. It was almost as if she was always there.
"You know Ranj, we have really loved having you here. It is so much fun. We can learn a lot from each other, " remarked Sunita.
Ranjita had a tear in her eyes as the other women came close to her and embraced her.
That night when Raj returned home, Ranjita in her night gown awaited her.
She had a smile as Raj entered. "Thanks for opening my eyes. I am feeling finally comfortably in my skin," said Ranjita.
"Guess this is what it was meant to be. Maybe Gods are happy too," remarked Raj as he kissed his wife and called it a day.
NEXT PART 2: BREAKING IT TO THE FAMILY
#87
Radha(Thursday, 08 September 2016 11:45)
Hi Pooja,
I just loved your story. It's very enjoyable. Looking forward to hire the family reacts to the reversal. Hope ranjit gets to keep her first karwa chauth fast attend weddings etc
Nisha please continue your story
#88
preeti(Thursday, 08 September 2016 13:25)
wowo poojia lovely story please continue
#89
mahesh(Thursday, 08 September 2016 13:45)
Amazing pooja
Outstanding
#90
Kashmiraa(Friday, 09 September 2016 08:50)
Salute to pooja. It's been a long time we had such a nice and well written story. Pooja, it was mind blowing . Really looking forward for next updates. I will recommend my friend to read your story.
#91
Kumkum(Friday, 09 September 2016 08:58)
Pooja your story is very good. Like Raji used to write.plzz continue the story quickly.
#92
vasantha(Friday, 09 September 2016 09:26)
hai pooja i like your stories p a
#93
Ashima(Saturday, 10 September 2016 00:57)
Pooja absolutely amazing . Have not heard such refreshing story in a long time. Please please continue.
#94
Shalma(Saturday, 10 September 2016 04:10)
Monisha Part 1
------------------
Hi My name is Monish. I am working in a MNC company. I am a middle class boy. I was not done the haircut for past six months. Just for a change, I didn't do the haircut.
One weekend I was working in office and I was having lunch in cafeteria. There was not that much of crowd in cafeteria because that day was saturday. While I was having lunch, a beautiful girl sat
near by me for lunch. And she introduced me as Shalma. I also introduced with her. She was wearing nice little transparent short top and jean. While having lunch, we discussed our projects and while
we finishing lunch, she said we will meet in coffee break and left from that place. I also went to my seat.
She pinged in the office messenger for coffee break and I came to cafeteria and we chit chat our personal life for sometime. After that, daily I was going with her for cofee break and lunch. I am not
going with my project mets. She always worn jean with t-shirt or sort top only. As because, she don't like traditional dresses. Day by day, we became close friends.
It was her birthday on one weekend saturday. So, I gifted makeup items(Mascara, eye liner, lipstick, nailpolish) to her on friday evening itself because saturday is holiday. She opened the gift pack
there itself and she liked the gift very much. She invited me to her home tomorrow for her birthday.
She liked my gift but she wants some other gift. I asked her what she wants. She said, she don't like my moustache. so she asked me to shave permanently. I got shocked and I can able to shave but how
it can be permanently. She asked me to do a laser hair removal for moustach. she convinced me and in the friday evening itself, she booked an appointment in a parlour. I went to parlour in the
evening. She was not came with me. They removed my moustach permanently. I am not having beard and also hairs on body.
I went to home and I seen my face in the mirror. I got shy because my face is not like a guy face. because I am having hairs upto my shoulder because I was not done the hair cut for past 6 months.
Saturday morning, I woke up and I worn Jean and tshirt and I went to Shalma's home @11am.
Shalma was in full length gorgeous white gown with full makeup. I went inside to Shalma's house. Shalma was very happy about my attire. she hugged me and she said thanks for shaving the moustach. I
am also very much happy because that hug gives that much happiness. Along with shalma, her friends also was there in her house. She cut the cake and celebrated her birthday.
Her friends are planning to leave. So, I also said bye to Shalma. But, she asked me to wait for some more minutes. Her friends are left. We both only in the house. She hugged me and she given a deep
kiss and she proposed me. Whatever she is asking, I am doing. So she liked me very much and she proposed me. I was in a shock because I didn't expect this. Because, I am a middle class guy but she is
well rich girl. I just explained about my situation to her. But she said, those things and all not an issue. She convinced me to accept her proposal.
She presented me a ring for her symbol of love. Its like a ear stud with pearl stone. I asked her what is this. How can I wear this. She said, it is a navel stud. For my symbol of love, you have to
wear. By using ear gun, she pierced my navel and put that pearl stud. I dont like that stud in my navel but I like her love. so I worn.
#95
Mohini(Saturday, 10 September 2016 05:13)
Hello Rajibalan ....You have been doing wonderful work by creating this page since many years. Ya It did well.Hope it will be running like this in coming future too. This is better way of
communication between writers and readers. Its right platform from them. It also encourage the beginner to know about crossdressing....so congrats all writers they gave their best and will do again I
think.....espc. pooja u did a nice start....write like this again..
Thanks
Mohini
#96
Maddy(Saturday, 10 September 2016 09:11)
Sharma great story just simply awesome
#97
mithra(Saturday, 10 September 2016 09:27)
Superb story shalma continue plz
#98
Nisha(Saturday, 10 September 2016 09:29)
Sorry for the delay friends. Happy to read the story of Pooja. Awesome writer you are. Dear friends, come with your new stories. I will continue my story from here.
So the dreadful first night of my life got over. As due to extreme tiredness, I slept like a log and it was around 7 in the morning, I was sleeping peacefully; I heard some sweet voice calling “ wake
up ji” “ someone knocking the door”. I slowly opened my eyes, it was my sweet hubby referring me as ji. I immediately jump and sat on the bed due to astonishment and surprise that my husband is not
taking my name.
I felt wet at my panties due to extreme happiness and sexual excitement. But, I then realized it was not the time for it. I quickly went near to door and peeped into a key hole, it was my mom, so I
made myself untidy like removing my flower, shrinking my dress, I asked asif to pretend as he was sleeping. I don’t want to make my parents get upset about my first night.
So, I went and answered the door. My mom was extremely happy, and she had a look into my room and found asif was sleeping. She asked me to take bath immediately and wear new saree, jewels and
flowers, oh my f*** I thought in my mind, but I cannot help myself. So again reluctantly , I dolled up myself, asif was witnessing everything, but he didn’t dared to speak with me. I just ignored
him.
Then he prepared to get his bath, to my surprise, he took all his clothes and went inside bathroom, and I was waiting, it was more than 30 mins, I decided to knock the door, as my mom said, both of
us should come for having breakfast. He told me, it will take 10 more minutes. I was wondering, being a girl, I completed my bath in 10 minutes, but a guy taking around 1 hour. I was happy that, I
was marching towards my dream comes true life.
Finally after an eternity, he came outside fresh like a flower. He was wearing blue shirt and cream pant, I liked that color combo, I imagined wearing that costume. Even though I was tomboyish, I was
wearing mostly girly western wear or casuals. I never tried formals so far. I thought for myself, that day is not so far.
So we joined with the entire family for breakfast, it was a usual routine. My mom made me serve him the food, which I didn’t like, but as I was left without any option, I did served. He finished his
breakfast and after that I had mine. Rest of the day, he was with men, and I was with ladies, I felt very much bored.
Like this manner, three more days flew away; nothing big happened between us, I too didn’t want to initiate anything as of now. So all the relations went and it was the time for us to leave to
Chennai from our native. My parents gave me a tearful bye. Even I was emotional and cried my heart out.
My father gifted us a 4bhk flat in one of the gated community in omr road. Along with that, he gifted us a Brand New Audi A6. All this luxuries were new for Asif. I made myself very clear that, even
though if I going to dominate him, let I should not make him feel inferior in terms of wealth or his earlier financial status. Whatever that belongs to mine is now his too ; So we landed in Chennai,
and went to our new home. I really loved my palace, yes it was beautiful like a palace and we set the things, and fixed people like paper, milk and other errands.
#99
Mohini(Saturday, 10 September 2016 21:18)
The life has changed
(Disclaimer: This is fiction based story.Character names are also imaginary .Its not related to anyone life If it relates to anyone life then it would be a as only co-incidence only so keep enjoy
reading this story and gives your precious feedback)
Episode: 1
There was a boy named Rishab age 27 who always used to tease and tried to dominate the girls in his society.He used to think him so handsome and proudy guy that he is superior over girls. One day he
was going towards college . A unknown van comes near him and their some gang of women kidnapped him and took him away. After few hours when he regained his senses he found himself in dark basement
tied with rope and also gagged his mouth with a smelly cloth and tape on it. He found himself weak and wanted to shout for help but couldn't. Then after few hours , He got tired for struggling to
release for that situation but couldn't and then he heard a sound of feet coming towards him.Then after few minutes a woman around came near to him .He became strange after looking to a woman. The
woman is around 45 years and she was just looking him and replied.Her name is Kanti bai.
Kanti: Hey handsome! what are u looking at me .Aren't am I looking hot..huh? I am Kanti bai leader of gang. I am a shemale .I used to kidnap a boy like u and make them shemale and used them in our
work.I earn money to make them whore and also sell them to those who wanted to buy them ,Now you will also do this job and become the whore. Now you no longer will be guy now we will make u shemale
and now on we called you Radhika.Nice name huh!
(now on 'HER' denotes radhika). Then Kanti bai removed gagged from Radhika mouth and Radhika replied in anger.
Radhika: WTF! What are u saying? I will not accept your job and will leave from here. what are u saying u bitch! untied me I will show you who am I and what can I do with u.
then kanti behen called a named 'Bhairav' then a 6'6" tall black face and bald head around 35 years 85 kg guy came with a sword in his hand.He was looking so dangerous and ugly like devil. then Kanti
behen called girls Hema and Malini .Hema was 25 years girl weaing kurta salwar and Malini was 23 years girl wearing modern dresses.they both are looking so hot and beautiful.No one said that they are
not real girls but they are shemale too and They are left and right hand of Kanti behen and bhairav was a special guard of their team. Then Kanti behen told to bhairav throw lt of water over Radhika
and untied her .Bhairav did same .Radhika didn't do anything due to feared from bhairav. When Radhika got wet then bhairav looked Radhika just like hungry dog such as he will jumped over Radhika and
fucked her ass but he respect the Kanti behen so coudn't tell her because she helped him for police case he killed many guys and very furious guy and still police used to arrest him but they coudn't
have a any crimnal record of him and also feared from him.Everyone used to frightened with him. But Kanti behen read his face and told to Bhairav
Kanti:Hey Bhairav what are you looking at ? I knew U liked Radhika . Yeah she is looking hot but wait till she changed into shemale. then you can do whatever you wanted to do with her. She is all
yours.
Bhairav : Thank u didi. After her transformation she will be mine first. Hey Hema Malini .Do fast and transformed into shemale I can't control myself,
Hema: Of course Bhairav g I and Malini will do our work. We will make her beautiful shemale.Don't worry after transformation we will take her with u with in 1 months.
Then Kanti behen and Bhairav went outside away and then Hema and Malini started transforming Rishabh into Radhika.
kajal hi im a straight guy but just get relaxed by reading the cd stories only cd and among all the others on the net u got some sensibility of close to life reality stories so pls allow me to read
your stories
#101
Deepak(Monday, 12 September 2016 05:58)
Ex-q-zit,
Ur muslim girl story is super... but seems incomplete after marriage... I have expected more dominance from salman on Asifa... and expected satwika to come back for revange ... but he should became
2nd wife (the modren wife) to Salman. Include more sex and romance... Keep writing... keep it up.
#102
ex-q-zit(Monday, 12 September 2016 07:26)
Hi Deepak,
Even I thought of making Sathwika Salmans 2nd wife. But so ready the story was lengthy do I spotted it at that.
Thanks
#103
Shalma(Monday, 12 September 2016 08:01)
Monisha Part 2 (Continued from #96)
-----------------------------------------------
Thanks for the valuable comments.
I worn that navel stud. I got confused after wearing that stud. because, how I am going to face the life with this stud. I just seen my navel in the mirror. Its so cute with that stud. Shalma
noticed, what I am doing infront of the mirror and she teased me. I got shy and I hided my navel with t-shirt.
Next day, we both met in cafeteria and we are having cofee together. At that time, she asked me whether I am still wearing stud or not. I said, I am wearing. But she wants to check whether its there
or not. She put her hand in the gap between the 2 buttons and she touched the navel stud. And she is happy as I am wearing that stud still. She told me to not to remove that at any situation. I
promised her.
She wants to check everyday whether I am wearing or not. I am wearing top inner wear called banian inside the shirt. But she dont like that banian. she cant able to touch the stud directly because of
that banian. So, I informed her, I will not wear banian from tomorrow onwards like that. But she told, you have to wear the top innerwear. But it should be upto your navel. I asked her, whether any
kind of inner is there like that. she told yes and we will purchase today evening. I just said ok to her.
#104
SRS(Monday, 12 September 2016 11:25)
Shalma nice, its completely different than another stories. please continue.
#105
mithra(Monday, 12 September 2016 12:05)
Shalma going very nice eager to read nxt part
#106
Jay(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 05:26)
Pooja shalma pl continue
#107
Kumkum(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 06:33)
Salma really nice story. Please post more parts.
#108
Shalma(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 07:59)
Monisha Part 3 (Continued from Part #105)
------------------------------------------
Thanks for the valuable comments..
In the evening, she called me and she reminded me as we need to go for shopping. I said ok and I informed her I will be in the office reception in 5 minutes. She is waiting for me in the reception
and we both started from there. We went to one unisex shop. First time, I am going to that shop and its a very big one. She said, they are selling only unisex dresses.
We went directly to inner wear section. Whole one floor, inner wear only it was there. so many types of inner wears were there. She asked me the my banian size. I said its medium size. She asked the
salesgirl in the floor, we need small size top inner wear and It should be upto navel only. I asked to Shalma about small size because I am using medium size only. She said, medium size is not fit
for you. Try small size, if its not good then lets see like that she told.
Salesgirl shown some inner wears which was in cotton material and she told these are all sort camisole and it will come upto navel only. While seeing that inner wear, its too small. I dont know,
whether it will fit for me or not. And length also too sort. Salma asked her to show some satin type transparent inner wear. Salesgirl shown gold color satin type inner. Salma took that inner and put
it on my shirt and she said it looks nice and it is too good for you.
Salma asked me to try that it in the trial room. I just took the cloth and went inside the trial room. Salma also came along with me. I asked her to wait outside. But she didnt go outside. I removed
my shirt and banian. I am standing infront of salma with half nude. She seen my upper body and said wow. I am not having any hair in my body. She liked that and she told you are having perfect slim
body with no transe of hair. Superb and I like you very much like that she told.
Please post comments on which knot you are liking from this part. It will encourage me to write more.
#109
sudha(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 08:00)
nisha pooja salma pls continue ur stories are really gud
#110
Jay(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 08:58)
Shalma pl continue
#111
Puneet(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 11:48)
Salma super story plz write fast I am waiting to read
#112
mithra(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 12:07)
Awesome shalma wtite more parts
#113
mansi(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 13:04)
Kajal maam pls send me invitation to read ur stories pls i m big fan of ur stories
Pls
#114
Kumkum(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 14:52)
Amazing writing salma please continue. Nisha , pooja , mohini... All please continue your stories.
#115
Ashu(Tuesday, 13 September 2016 14:55)
Salma plz continue Your super cool story. Don't stop.i am
Enjoying Your story very much.all the best.
#116
Shalma(Wednesday, 14 September 2016 08:11)
Monisha Part 4 (Continued from #110)
------------------------------------
I worn that camisole with the help of Shalma in the trial room. It is perfectly fitting for me. Shalma is too happy and she hugged me and she said, its too good for you. In this inner, you are so
superb like that she wished me. I just seen me in the mirror in trial room. It is exactly coming above my navel. and It is fitting perfectly.
Because of the correct tight fitness of camisole, my chest is exposing like small boob. Shalma also noticed that one and she teased me like a booby guy. I got shy and I put hands on my chest. She
said, I like you very much. I liked your attidude and I love you so much like she praised me.
I got confused, How I am going to go to office wearing this like that and I asked her. She said, you are going to wear inside the shirt only. So no one is going to see that. And atlast, she convinced
me. And after that, I tried to remove that camisole. She stopped me and she told don't remove. from now onwards, you have to wear this inner wear only. We can pay for this like that she told. I also
said ok to her. We came outside from trial room.
Salma informed to salesgirl, that gold color camisole is perfect fit. So, please show the same size satin camisole in different colors. Salme picked dark red, pink and light blue satin camisoles and
already I am wearing golden color camisole. So totally four camisoles, she selected.
Salesgirl informed to shalma, if you buy one more camisole, you can get 2 panties with free of cost. Salma got excited and she picked one more dark grey color satin camisole. Salma asked the small
size satin panty to salesgirl. She shown some of the panties. Salma picked golden color and dark red color panty which is matching for the camisole. I thought the panty is for her thats why she is
not asking my size like that.
After selecting the panty, salma asked me whether you like these 2 panties. I said, these 2 are good for you. Salma told, hey these two are for you only. you only going to wear these two like shalma
told to me. I got tensed, how I will wear panty. panty is for girls only naa. Salma got sad after hearing my words and she said ok. let us leave now like that she said. After that, I said sorry to
shalma and hereafter I will not make u sad. I will do whatever u said like that I promised to Shalma. She got happy while hearing those words from me and She said I like you very much. I love u so
much.
Please post more comments. As it will encourage me to write more parts.
#117
SRS(Wednesday, 14 September 2016 09:12)
shalma ur simply awesome, please continue pleseeeee
#118
mithra(Wednesday, 14 September 2016 12:35)
Shalma really superb story i loved it
#119
Chameli(Wednesday, 14 September 2016 13:28)
Shamal
Very nice story, please write more and post fast please
#120
SRS(Wednesday, 14 September 2016 13:29)
"fashion part 3 from 810 engcom 15-16
At that time my aunt got a call from her phone an she was shocked on hearing that an after she started to cry,i asked her what happened an she cant able to tell instead she was crying a lot after few
minutes i took her phone an dialed last no an asked what is the problem an i too get shocked on hearing the news. They told that due to short circuit our company an business is catch up fire an i too
shocked an i told that dint worry aunt v will claim the insurance but she told due to money crises she dint pay the insure an now v dint know what to do at that time my 3 Gf told that if they want
they could help an for that v have to me them 50% partnership then they will take care of everything , on hearing that my aunt was happy an told to sing me i too dint think about only thing to get
rid of this problem and i do as per the contract an after she smiled an told to get relax an they give a room in hotel so that they will clean the repair which is caused in my house an told to join
from next month. our everything was destroyed includes cloths now v r staying in hotel. From next day i started to join in company, yet v dint have house right now so v stay in hotel for few days, i
dint have dress so i sold my bike an bought some dress to go for company.Next day i woke up get ready for company, i wore a jeans an formal shirt, my hair is up to my shoulder an i felt sad about
that an on seeing that my aunt told that y cant u put ponytail cause its usual for boys having that an she took rubber band an put low ponytail an i start to go by bus. after when i reach the office
every girl start to see me cause am the only guy over there, they told my post in the company its a data entry operator but i felt anger for giving me such low post for my qualification, an this went
for few days, what ever it is i showed my best in my work an i started to become macho guy, an i always tease girls for there weakness , i grow big mustache like mangal panday, i used to start
wearing tight jeans an on seeing the girls i get rock hard an girls started to notice my bulge, many like it an some not. 1 day i was doing work an i went to took a coffee from machine an that time 1
girl put the document paper in the floor an i dint help her for picking it up but instead i went back to her an started to rub her butt through my bulge , the girl like it she dint tell anything but
my gf who is the MD of the company saw this an call me inside the room an warned me , i told if any girl complained about this than u can take action other wise u dint need to warn me an y ur so
jealous about that an i came out of that room an saying that , this make her angry. 1 day there was going a board meeting about the growth of the company i just went inside to know what was going on
an there all talking about to inverts a money in another company so that they can get a profit an they r lill bit confuse for which company they can ponscer an at that time i just went inside an i
was laughing an told for so many years ur working but u all dint able to guess which 1 is best r not such a waste an at that time 1 girl told mr if u can do it then do it other wise just shut up,
after i chose few company but they dint want to take risk an i told what u only ask for then y u r afraid an after long discus they have been agreed an by my luck what ever i told about the company
everything was get success an in short time i become popular but thus my boss dint like it. After i become popular they discuses an increased my salary from 30k to 80k an given the post of manager an
i was too happy an i got a car an separate cabin , in my under there also a secretary working its was so happy but they r all planing to get me down. 1 day my secretary came in an gave me a coffee an
by accidentally she spilled the coffee in my pants an she took the tissue paper an started to clean on doing that when she touch i got hard an she saw that an smiled an she suddenly took open the jip
an suck my cock it was awesome now this become routine, i became the chockalte boy in my office but my 3 boss is jealous an she dint like this, even i used to ponser the company who r all only female
owner an have a sex with them. After few months complete my house is still in under process an i earn a lot with side income an now bank balance is more than 20 lack.
#121
SRS(Wednesday, 14 September 2016 13:30)
"fashion part 4
1 day a rich female owner come to know that i was doing the same to all of the female owner an had a sex so every company female owner joined an come to suggestion that they will not pay the signal
amount to my company so that my company will get loss an they will through me out. But this and all i dint know. after a weak i got a call from my boss an when i entered in the boss cabin i saw my 3
gf which r the boss of the company is sitting an they r angry but i dint care i just went inside an they never told me to sit but i do an done like a macho an tough they told that i believed in u an
put a risk but for few weak the payment is not coming what happens an i told that its happens man from starting u have earned a lot an this the first time they payment delay an u have to believe me
cause u woman cant do anything except dressing like a whore an on saying that i leve from the cabin an they r angry an priya told to divya better through him out of the company an divya told that can
be happen cause v have inverts a lot for his plan ya but what about his behavior is worst he even dint respect us if continue this than everyone will not respect us at that time Ramaya told look at
his dress an beard an hair if u say yes than i will grab his hair an make him blad an divya told if u did like that an that too he will consider as a style, then priya told what if v do instead of
making him blad v completely shave his beard an mus touch an oiled his long hair make it tight bun an put a jasmine flower than he will not consider as style by saying this 2 of them started to laugh
an told but who v can do this an priya told i have an idea about this let him go.this went another month an again they called an this time also i behave harsh an they too shout i i told that if u
dint like then i will quit from here on saying this they shout u busted v inverts on u an u singed a contract v r now 60% major partner of ur aunt company an v through u out in jail for black money
an bribe an v have so many complainant about ur harassment an here u go for jail an ur aunt come to road did u want this ? i was shocked on hearing this an she through 1 document to me an told that
here is the rules if u dint wan to do this to ur aunt .no 1( if u dint got the payment in every weak then u have to loose any 2 item from ur manhood that will be either permanent r temper very) No 2.
( this changes will cost by ur own) no 3 ( u did not to tell anybody about this that includes ur aunt) No 4( an for every weak if u dint get the payment u have to loss ur position in this company
untill for the last an basic post). These r the condition an agreement if u agree this then its good other wise just 1 phone call v will send u to the jail an through ur aunt in the middle of the
road. I was scared about this my entire color in my face was drain i dont know what to do.
#122
SriRamya(Wednesday, 14 September 2016 15:01)
Hi raji balan, I would like to contact you about crossdressing. Discuss like friends..please mail me at sriramyanishapriya@gmail.com
#123
Radha(Wednesday, 14 September 2016 22:09)
Superb story add more humiliations.
#124
Sanju(Thursday, 15 September 2016 04:37)
Nice start Salma waiting for next part...
#125
SANJU(Thursday, 15 September 2016 05:26)
After a long gap starting a story..hope all will like it....
Sanju..1
Life was all fun for sanju he is a successful fashion designer..happily married to Shweta for more than a year...life was going good..one fine day he got sad news that his father in law passed away
shweta was broken and he took care of in laws family & wife..His in laws remaining family is of all ladies his mother in law, her daughter who is not married and daughter in law who is
widow..Hence sanju has to do all the rituals and take care of all of them..
#126
Shalma(Thursday, 15 September 2016 08:03)
Monisha Part 5 (Continued from #118)
-------------------------------------
Thanks SRS, Mithra, Kumkum, Puneet, Ashu and Chameli for your valuable comments.
Salma told that whatever I am doing that is for our comfort and happiness only. I will not do anything against about you. I
love you so much. I will make you to feel more happy and I will show you the different world with full of happiness like
that she told. I said I love you so much and hugged her there itself.
We paid the amout for the camisoles and we left from shop. Salma started the two wheeler and I just sat beside her and my
both the legs are one sided. Salma teased me like why you are sitting like a girl. She asked me to sit like two sided
legs.She drove very fast. She put sudden break in a speed breaker. because of that, I hugged her hip suddenly. She stopped
the two wheeler and she turned and saw my face in an anger.
I said sorry Salma because of that sudden break only I kept my hand there. She pulled my left hand to her shoulder and she
pulled right hand infront of her stomach. And she said, Sit comfirtably and you are my lover. unknowingly my fingers
roaming her navel above her dress.It gives a superb feel for me. My room came and she stopped the two wheeler. I get down
from two wheeler. She said she enjoyed my touch and she wants more from me like this. I said I also liked these moments and
I got shy. We just both hugged and said bye. And she left from there.
I just went inside the home and I removed my shirt. Golden color camishole is shining like a star. I just feel its too
comfort and it gives something superb feel. I seen me in mirror. My shape is clearly visible in that camisole. I was
touching my body above that camisole and it gives superb feel.
My chest is exposing like a boob and I can able to see my nipples shape also in that camisole. I really like it and I am
enjoying by touching my chest and nipples.That camisole is too light cloth. While touching the camisole itself, I can able
to feel the sensation. It gives good immense feel. In that camisole, my navel is fully visible. In my navel, stud is there. While seeing me in that dress with navel stud, I feel like I am so sexy and
I got shy.
Once shalma reached home, she given a call to me. She said she was very much enjoying those moments in the two wheeler. She
can't able to come out from those moments and it gives full of happiness like that she told me. And she wants to show the
same feeling to me also in future like that she told. I said love u dear and thank you so much to her. We chit chatted all
the things happened today for an hour in mobile.
I didnt change the camisole in the night. I slept by wearing camisole itself. I got a good sleep after a long time. I thought because of this camisole only. I took the bath next day morning and I
came out by wearing towel only. I opened the shopping bag which was purchased yesterday. In that, I took the red camisole and I just worn that. For bottom innerwear, I just searched in my cupboard.
After that only, I thought I have a panty for me in the same color. So I took the red panty and I worn. I just removed my towel and I seen my whole body in mirror. I feel like I am a sexy guy in that
dress. It gives good feel. I seen my full body shape in that dress. Red panty fits me very well. That material gives superb feel. While touching itself, I got some sensation feel. Nearly half an hour
I enjoyed me in front of mirror.
Please post more comments. As it will encourage me to write more parts.
#127
Kumkum(Thursday, 15 September 2016 12:03)
Enjoying your story very much dear. Making of sensation story I guess. But because of teasing only Plz post quickly other wise flow gets ruined.
#128
mansi(Thursday, 15 September 2016 12:34)
Nice story salma
#129
Srs(Thursday, 15 September 2016 13:36)
Salman u mentioned that he had a long hair, y can't you do something about that.
#130
Salma(Thursday, 15 September 2016 19:55)
Hi
@kumkum, Thank you so much. I really liked your comments. I will post stories as early as possible.
@srs, thanks for your suggession. I have a idea about that. I will write.
@mansi, Thank you mansi
Regards
Shalma
#131
Salma(Thursday, 15 September 2016 23:48)
Monisha Part 6 (Continued from #128)
-----------------------------------
I went to office in the morning by wearing camisole and panty inside my shirt & pant. I am having so much of work and I was deep in my work. Around 11am, salma pinged me and she asked shall we go
for a walk in a garden. There is a garden in our office. I said ok and I came to reception at that time itself. She is also there in the reception. We both went to garden. There we both are walking
slowly by chitchatting.
Salma is taller than me. She is around 6 feet and I am 5.5feet only. So she put hand in my shoulder and walking with me. She slowly put her hand inside my shirt in my shoulder and her hands are
moving inside while walking. I am just thinking what she is doing and after she said I just checked whether the camisole is there or not. It is there. I am happy like that she told.
And after that, She put her hand in my hip. On that day, I didn't inshirt my shirt. So her hands slowly moving inside and her hands are touching my camisole and it gives superb feel. I got shy and
took her hand from me. I just ran from there. She chased me and she hugged me from behind. No one was there in the garden. Salma removed 2 buttons in the top of my shirt. And she was rubbing my chest
from behind. I was not in a sense and I am just enjoying her touches. Salma is pinching my nipples above my camisole. I got sense and I came out from her. I liked her touches very much. I got shy and
put my buttons. Salma asked hope you are wearing panty also. I said yes and its too comfort for me. I really liked it. After sometime, we left from garden and we went inside the office.
In the evening, Shalma pinged me and she is planning to leave now and she is having some work near by my area. So she is going on the way to my home. So, She asked me to come with her. I also left at
that time itself with her. We both left from office in her two wheeler. She drove fastly. My hairs are flowing in hair and she seen this in mirror. And she stopped there itself and she said your
hairs are flowing and it will damage your hair. She told we have to do something for this. She said let me think on this and I will inform you after sometime like that she said and started the two
wheeler.
She dropped me near my room and she asked me to come to her home tomorrow because tomorrow is weekend. And in the next day morning, I had a good bath and I worn golden color camisole and same color
panty. I liked that golden color so I worn that set inside my jean and tshirt. And @11am I went to Salma's home. She is watching TV in her home. She greeted me and I am also sitting with her to watch
tv.
While watching TV, I said my hairs are disturbing. Its flowing near my eyes oftenly and its disturbing very much. So I am planning to cut my hair like that I told to Shalma. She said, for this reason
and all who will cut the hair. Then how the girls are growing hairs upto hip. Even nowadays boys also growing hairs. I asked her what is the solution for this. She went inside her room and she bring
the headband and she said this is the solution for this. Nowadays so many guys also wearning this. In our office itself, some of the guys are wearing na. I said ya and I seen so many guys in our
office itself. She put that headband in my hair and hairs are not coming in front now. She said she likes my hair very much and she asked me to dont cut ur hair. I given a promise I will not cut my
hair.
I am watching TV and she went inside and bring the coffee for me. I am watching TV and I didnt take the coffee cup properly. because of that, it is splitted on my dress. She asked me to remove my
dresses. So that she will give it for wash otherwise those stains will not go like that she told. I asked to give some other alternate dress. She said first give me those dresses. I am having a dress
for you like that she told.
Please post more comments. It will encourage me to write more parts.
#132
alone 133(Friday, 16 September 2016 00:24)
Great going Salma.. Can't wait to read the rest..
Pooja, we are waiting for your story equally..
#133
Srs(Friday, 16 September 2016 00:43)
Salma thanks for including the hair part, and ur updates r super fast really thanks a lot.
#134
Shalma(Friday, 16 September 2016 04:11)
Hi All,
I have posted my story (Monisha) from part 1 to part 6 in my fb page.
My fb id link is
https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5
Please like my story and give valuable comments.
Regards
Shalma
#135
Kumkum(Friday, 16 September 2016 05:59)
Nice update again.keep it up sweetheart. Your story is so exciting.
#136
mithra(Friday, 16 September 2016 06:02)
Awesome shalma i felt very happy while reading ur story
#137
Shalma(Friday, 16 September 2016 07:20)
Monisha Part 7 (Continued from #133)
------------------------------------
Thanks Priya, Shathya & Kumkum for your valuable comments.
I went inside one room in her house and I removed my shirt and pant. And I asked her the alternate dress for me. She asked me to come her outside then only I will give dresses to you like that she
told. I said I will not come outside. She requested me to see me in the new innerwear. I asked her to come inside the room. She came inside and I hided my body by using one towel in that room.
She came inside and removed that towel and thrown it outside. Now I was in camisole and panty exposing my navel infront of my lover. I got shy and I hided my face with hands. She was stunned while
seeing me in that dressed. She said I am maintaining my body perfectly. She likes me very much. She teased me as I am having good shape. She came near me and she touched my navel and suddenly I got
some sensation and I hugged her.
She said I am so sexy in that dress. she requested me to stand in some sexy pose. For fun, I also given some sexy pose. she taken picture of those poses in her camera. We seen those poses in her
camera and it came very sexy. Salma said pictures and all it came good but we need to some touch up to make this poses into excellent sexy pose.
I am sitting in Guest room and she went to her room and bring some makeup products. At that time, My mind says I wants to give a best pose. So that whatever salma said I just accepted. She sat near
me and she put Kajal and eye liner to my eyes. And she tried to increase my eye brow thickness by using kajal pencil. And also she put false eye lashes to my eyes and she put mascara.
Salma took deep red color lipstick and she put it to my lips and for shining, she put something to my lip. I just seen my face in the mirror. My eyes are so gorgeous and its like heroine's eye. And
my lips are so sexy. Those things made me into sexy mood. I am just wearing sort camisole upto my navel and shining golden panty. That sexy mood make me to give more sexy poses in that attire. I
given so many sexy poses. She captured so many photos.She asked for some bed poses also. I given those sexy poses also. I liked all those things.
As per Salma instructions, I have given 30 different poses near wall, near mirror and in bed. Salma captured all the poses in her camera. If any poses are not came properly, she asked me to give a
pose once again and she took those poses perfectly. She wants something more and for that, she put table fans in the table in my both the sides and my hairs already loose free hair only. It is coming
below my shoulder. She started those table fans with full speed. She asked me to give poses now and my hairs are flowing in the hair and I am giving too sexy poses. Those poses and all came very well
and Salma satisfied with those poses. While seeing those poses in camera, its too sexy.
I was so hungry and I asked her about lunch. She also having hungry. She said, she will buy lunch for us from outside. Meanwhile she asked me to have head bath. She given some lotion for my hair and
for my body. I went inside bathroom and I had a good bath and came outside by wearing towel in my hip. She forgot to keep dresses for me in the room. So I was sitting in towel dress only. She came
after thirty minutes. I asked her why u forgot to keep dresses for me and I am wearing only towel for more than 15 minutes. She said, I did purposefuly only and I have a plan to dress up for
you.
Please like this story in my fb id (https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5) and write more comments.
#138
Ritu(Friday, 16 September 2016 09:25)
Shalma your story is nice. GARDEN PART of the previous post was extremely good. Slow feminisation is good, keep some Twinkling moments like the garden part. And please keep posting. Dont stop like
the other busy writers.
#139
Kashmiraa(Friday, 16 September 2016 09:31)
PUJA, SHALMA , NISHA , MOHINI , SRS .... Thanks for keeping the page alive with your lovely contributions. Puja , Nisha both had tremendous potential stories, but stopped now... Salma giving quick
updates , that's great. Few more writers are also trying to contribute, deseve application.
#140
Kumkum(Friday, 16 September 2016 09:33)
Super story Shalma . You are a great writer.
#141
Srs(Friday, 16 September 2016 13:48)
Salma please make him priced ear and nose and don't stop thanks a lot for quick updates
#142
Heena(Friday, 16 September 2016 23:33)
Salma make him pierce nose
#143
Nidhi Shah(Saturday, 17 September 2016 02:12)
what a story salma. keep it up
#144
vasantha(Saturday, 17 September 2016 03:04)
salama story nice pa pls continue pa
#145
Shalma(Saturday, 17 September 2016 03:48)
Monisha Part8 (Continued from #139)
----------------------------------------
Thanks Ritu, Kumkum, Srs, Heena and Nidhi shaa.
I am wearing only towel and I was asking some dresses to shalma because its too chill. She gives her night dress which is having satin pant and satin top and she said wear these and we will have a
lunch and after that I will do a dress up for you and we will have one more phtoshoot.
While eating lunch, I asked her about her cooking skill. She repeated same to me. I said I know cooking but not that much. She wants me to learn cooking and she wants I have to be expert in cooking.
I said for time pass I did cooking. Salma knows one aunty and she is expert in cooking. She said she will speak with her about teaching cooking for me. She requested me to learn cooking. I said ok
because I dont want to make sad her. So I just accepted.
After having lunch, Salma asked me to come inside her bed room. She asked me to remove the night dress which I am wearing and she gives dark red panty to me to wear. I worn that red panty and sitting
in her bed. She asked me to sit in the dressing table. This time she put heavy thick dark lipstick to me. And she put mascara, eyeliner to my eyes and eyebrows.
And after that, She took one satin black color cloth and she tied that cloth above my eyes. Now I cant able to see anything. I asked her why you have tied my eyes. She said for photoshoot purpose
only I tied that cloth in ur eyes. That cloth also gives a romantic attire for you. She took a push up bra and put it on me. I am not aware, she is keeping bra on me because my eyes are tied with
cloth. With a romantic touch, she put bra hooks on me. It made me to go to the romantic mood.
She changed my navel stud. Previously I was wearing Pearl stud. She took one dangling navel ring and put it in my navel. While I am walking, It is moving and it is making me crazy. Her fingers are
making me so romantic. She is behind me and her hands are going inside the bra and she is rubbing my chest. It made me heaven. In that mood, I given so many romantic poses in that attire itself. I am
wearing bra and panty only. But I am not aware I am wearing those dresses only. Without knowing what I am wearing, I have given so many poses. She took each and every poses in her camera.
#146
Shalma(Saturday, 17 September 2016 03:49)
Monisha Part 8 Continued
------------------------------
After finishing the photoshoot, she didnt remove the cloth from my eyes. She removed that pushup bra and she put her red camisole on me. And after that only, She removed that cloth from my eyes. I
asked her, which dress I worn in the photoshoot. She didnt tell what I have worn in the photoshoot and also she didnt show me the pictures also.
I have seen me in the mirror. Her red camisole also coming upto my navel only. My navel is clearly visible. And In my navel, dangling ring is there. Its too so cute. I liked it. But I just said to
shalma, pls I dont want this. Please put stud itself. But she wants, I have to wear that dangling ring only. At last, I accepted and I just seen the wall clock and it was around 6pm in the evening.
So I asked her, I have to leave now. She said ok and she gives my dresses and I worn those dresses and I left from her home on that day.
Next day is sunday. So I thought to have a long sleep. And I reached room and I removed my shirt. And that dangling ring is making me too shy. Next day morning, salma called me and asked me to come
to her home for cooking class appointment, we have to meet her aunt.I had a bath and I went to Salma home. We both went to her aunt home.
Her Aunt name is Khusboo. She is staying alone in her home. because her husband is working in foreign. We went inside Salma's aunt home. She greeted us. I thought her aunt will be aged person like
that. But she is so young. Salma requested her aunt to teach cooking for me. She said, nowadays I am not teaching anyone. But I am searching a maid for me who will help me in cooking and cleaning the
house.
Salma just thought for a minute and she said to her aunt that Monish will work as a maid in your home. Her aunt said, I am so strict and I want a perfect work from my maid. If anything is wrong, I
will get tense and I will give a punishment for my maid. Aunt asked if you are fine for this, then I can appoint you as my maid. Shalma called me separately and said just accept it. And she said I
want to show best in cooking. So she convinced me to accept it.
I said ok to Khusboo aunt but I said I dont know cooking. She said I will teach you everything about cooking, cleaning house and washing dresses.And also she said daily 2 hours in the morning from
6am to 8am I have to work. She will provide food for morning and afternoon and she will pay 2000Rs as salary. But if you are not listening or not doing properly whatever I am saying, I will give you
a punishment like that she told. I said ok for that and I am going to work in Khusboo aunt home from tomorrow morning.
Please like this story in my fb id (https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5) and write more comments.
#147
Amutha Valli(Saturday, 17 September 2016)
Shalma your story is awesome, please right more with some humiliation scenes
#148
Jay(Saturday, 17 September 2016 06:21)
Nice plot shlama. Slowly feminisation is best. Keep it up.and thanks for writing
#149
Jay(Saturday, 17 September 2016 08:30)
Shalma if possible pl made fingering of boy.
#150
shilpa(Saturday, 17 September 2016 15:55)
@pooja:what a story dear...
after many days i have read such beautiful story....
plz plz plz continue.. so exciting and beautiful story...
#151
archana(Saturday, 17 September 2016 16:07)
@ shalma: very nice story...
but according to me. dont add anyone in cding story..
lets be cding between them only.
Cding is very private thing..
and exciting..
#152
Rashmi Patel(Saturday, 17 September 2016 21:40)
Shalma your story is awesome
#153
Srs(Sunday, 18 September 2016 05:25)
Salma remember to make him always force and that should be against him without his willing, please concentrate in his hair to make girly it would be great.
#154
Pooja where r u(Sunday, 18 September 2016 08:06)
Pooja please comeback we are waiting for your great story's continuation
#155
Kumkum(Sunday, 18 September 2016 13:11)
Shalma great writing going on. Keep it up dear
#156
Ritu(Sunday, 18 September 2016 13:13)
Such a nicely written story , Shalma please don't stop , we are waiting for more and more.
#157
payal(Monday, 19 September 2016 13:11)
Riya plz complete ur story amir to amina
#158
Shalma(Monday, 19 September 2016 21:09)
Monisha Part 9 (Continued from #148)
-------------------------------------
Thank you all for great comments.
I woke up on monday morning. I had a bath and got ready. And I went to khusboo aunt house @6am sharp. Aunt invited me inside. She shown her house hall and after that kitchen. Kitchen is so neat and
clean. And She showed each and every room of her house. Aunt asked me how is the house and I replies its so beautiful, neat and very clean.
Aunt asked me to take care of the house same like this now onwards. And she agreed to help for this. If Its not clean, then she said she will give punishment for me. And after that, we went to
kitchen. So many vessels are there in the wash basin. She asked me to wash all those vessesls. She explained how to wash a vessel properly. And after that, I washed all the vessels. It took half an
hour time. She checked the washed vessels and some of the vessels are not cleaned properly. She asked me to do it with proper care from next time onwards.
Aunt called me to her bedroom. Aunt kept several clothes in bed and she said these clothes are washed yesterday and she was not folded and put it in her cup board. So she asked me to fold those
clothes and she asked me to put it in her cupboard. Aunt took one saree from that and she given to me to fold that saree. That saree is so soft and silky. Without folding the saree, my hands are
touching each and everywhere of that saree. Aunt asked me about what i am doing. After that only I realized and I folded the saree. But I dont know why I did like that. I have not folded the saree
properly. She taught me to fold the saree.
Some of the sarees are too transparent and so silky. While touching those sarees, it gives nice sensation to me. Her blouses are so modern with lots of design and deep neck. Some of the blouses are
sleevless and some of them are half sleeve with transparent cloth. All of the blouses are so superb. Aunt bras also so modern. most of the bras are so silky, satin type and also transparent bras.
around more than half an hour I took to fold all of her dresses and put it on her cupboard.
Aunt asked me to wash her dresses every sunday and she asked me to wash her inners alone everyday. Her inners are in bathroom and I went inside the bathroom. Pink color panty and satin bra is hanging
there. I took those things and washed those things. While touching those inners, it gives a superb feel. I came out from bathroom and my dresses are wet. But I have to go to office with this dress
only. But its too wet.
Aunt suggested me to have a bath in her house and get readied to office in her home itself from tomorrow. I got fear, while hearing this. because, I am wearing camisole and navel ring inside. If I am
having bath in her house, she may get noticed. I got fear because of this. I returned to my room and change the dress and I went to office.
one hour late to office because of wet dress and I got scold from my manager. So, I planned to get ready in aunt home itself. In coffee break, I met Shalma. Shalma asked me about the maid work in
aunt house. I just said, I cleaned vessels, I folded her dresses and I washed her clothes like that. I didnt express my sensations and all to her. Otherwise she will teaseme or she may do something
to me like that I thought and I didnt say those things to her. But I am having a fear inside, how i am going to face aunt with camisole and navel ring. And also, why i felt like that while touching
those dresses. I just confused because of those feelings and I didn't do work properly in office and I got scold from my managers.
Next day morning, I kept my pant, shirt and camisole & panty in one bag and I went with that bag to aunt house. I went to wash vessels. While washing vessels, my hairs came front and it was
disturbing me oftenly. Aunt noticed that one and she put hair clip to my hair and she said it will not disturb you now. But I said, aunt please I dont want hair clip. Because I am a boy. But Aunt
said who is there here. you and me only are there and also your hair is disturbing you. thats why I put hair clip on you. If you are not keeping, you can't work properly. So you must keep the hair
clip while doing work like that aunt said. And atlast I just accepted.
Please like this story in my fb id (https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5) and write more comments.
#159
vasantha(Tuesday, 20 September 2016 02:57)
Monisha pls continue your story very super pa
#160
Srs(Tuesday, 20 September 2016)
Salma while u telling about the hair it's getting interesting. Please continue
#161
Hari as hema(Tuesday, 20 September 2016 20:16)
Hi SRS im big fan of you please continue ur stories im dyng to read yours please post in eng and tamil too
#162
kavi(Wednesday, 21 September 2016 00:38)
Monisha very superb...eagerly waiting for next part
#163
Srs(Wednesday, 21 September 2016 11:44)
Hari iam really happy that after so long still i got 1fan for me, please wait i will continue soon
#164
guru(Wednesday, 21 September 2016 11:54)
i have read all stories of you it was awsome plz contine Shalma goooooooooooooooooooooooooooooood and awsome friend
hi guys i am rajesh i crossed with my sister its big story i complete afterwards now i want ur help to grow my hair up to hip i want the reason to tell my family so pls tell ur suggestion & ideas
pls dont tell vow because i am not religious person so easy caught if i told that...so pls give idea...
#167
Kajal's Big Fan(Thursday, 22 September 2016 00:44)
Hi friends I am big fan of Kajal and her stories. I got link of her personal fb page. here I am sharing with you. guys
https://www.facebook.com/kajal.kapoor.1426
#168
pooja(Thursday, 22 September 2016 20:23)
Hai I read some beautiful stories from "Shilpabindanicrossdresser.blogspot.in" That is very realistic and heart touching stories . So Plz read these stories. you will also like these stories...
#169
Jay(Friday, 23 September 2016 08:02)
Hey have heard abt Gaurav Arora???
#170
Ritu(Friday, 23 September 2016 09:30)
Yes I saw post about gaurav Arora... Now gauri arora
#171
aj(Saturday, 24 September 2016 05:55)
well gauri arora looks beautiful
#172
Ritu(Saturday, 24 September 2016 08:51)
Gauri Arora is like goddess
#173
ash(Saturday, 24 September 2016 09:00)
gaurav has such nice legs
#174
rajesh(Saturday, 24 September 2016 10:13)
Hi. My name is Sunil and i am 30 years old. Last month i had to go to a official trip to pondicherry. My company provided me a beach resort. My room was very big and the balcony was facing the
beach.
I finished my work early so i still had 4 days to spend in this city. I went to a bar in the evening. I was having my drinks when i saw a girl entered the bar wearing jeans a top. The top was little
short exposing her belly button. She was fair in complexion and a nice well toned body and very beautiful. I could not take my eyes of her. Soon after getting her drink she looked here and there and
started coming towards me. She said if she can sit here. Well how i could say no to her.
After few sips she asked me about myself and i told her how i have 4 days time to roam here. She said she can give me company for 4 days but she will charge money for that. I suddenly was taken back.
I said “O so you are a slut”. She immediately stared at me and replied “i think you should learn how to respect a girl”. I said i am sorry. she said i can call her a call girl or escort but better if
i call her by her name Sunaina. She asked me if I have got any place. I told her my resort is there and no body knows me there so we can go.
We entered my room. she was really impressed by the resort and was very happy to see the view from balcony. She was carrying a bag with her. I asked what is there inside the bag. She said i will come
to know soon. Then she asked me to take a bath. As i took my towel and was about to move she said what are you doing. will you take bath in these clothes. I said no then she said take of the clothes
here only and go. I smiled at her. I started taking off my clothes in front of her. My shirt, pants and vest.
Now i was in underwear only. She was smiling at me. She said look at your body fair slim smooth curvy hairless body just like girls. You have got girlish body. Hearing this some current went inside
me and my dick suddenly jerked. She noticed that. Her smile became very broad. She oh look at that. You liked it when i called you a girl. You like being treated as a girl? and she blinked at me. I
got very embarrassed and just looked down and nodded my head in no. She said “Ahh look at that you are even blushing like a girl”. The tent in my underwear was rising now which she noticed.
#175
rajesh(Saturday, 24 September 2016 10:13)
I immediately wrapped the towel around me and took off my underwear and threw it on bed along with my other clothes. She suddenly said “Hey are you going to take bath in towel.No na. Then take it off
too and winked again at me”. I smiled and went inside bathroom without taking off the towel. Then i opened the door little bit and my hand came out holding the towel and threw it at her. She started
laughing loudly and came to the bathroom door and asked me what are you wearing darling? I replied back “Nothing”. she replied “Means?” . I said “Main nanga hun” (I am naked as in male). She laughed
and replied “Nanga nahi nangi ho tum” (you are naked as in female).
After my bath i called her “Sunaina please hand me my clothes” . She came and handed me the clothes from a small gap in the door which i opened. I was shocked to see the clothes. It was a one small
girls teddy and a padded bra and a backless thong the one which only has a thread on the back. I asked her what is this where are my clothes? She replied “These are your clothes only”. I said what is
this joke give my clothes. She said “If you dont want then give them back and stay like that. You are getting this or nothing. Your choice”. I knew i dont have any option now. So i wore those clothes
and saw myself in the mirror. I was shocked. I was looking just like a girl. The dress was hardly reaching my thighs and from top it only had straps and the bra straps were visible.
I slowly came out of the bathroom trying to pull the dress down a bit. She saw me in that state and started laughing loudly. She was pointing a finger at me and was continuously laughing. Then she
said “How are you feeling standing in such a short sexy dress in front of a fully dressed girl. Well now this is what i call… A SLUT!” . I immediately looked at her hearing that word. She said “Yes
baby now i will teach you what a slut is.Now for next four days you are not Sunil but Rani.
Now Rani move your hands above head and make a 360 degress turn. And make sure you turn very fast like a dance move”. I begged her please return my clothes. She said if you want your clothes then do
what she is saying. I raised my hand and made a very fast turn. But that made the dress go up in air exposing my thong and ass. She laughed so loudly and said “Wow look at that. You have got such a
beautiful girlish ass. It is so much fuckable”. I was getting red in embarrrassed. Then she ordered me to go and turn towards the wall. The she asked me to put my hands on the wall and bend. As i did
that the dress rid up exposing my ass to her. She was still laughing.
She went and sat on the sofa just behind me so that she can get clear view of my ass. Then suddenly my heard dropped a beat when i heard a click sound. I turned and another click sound. She was
holding her mobile and taking my pics. I begged her and she ordered me to go back to my position or she will leave me like that and all my clothes are locked and she has the key. I had no option so i
turned back and she went to her mobile. 10 minutes went like that and she was laughing loudly after every few moments and when i turned to see she was doing something on mobile and laughing.
She then got up and came to me and said “You know what is the difference between a call girl and a slut”. I nodded no. She said “The call girl do everything secretly but the slut tells everyone
openly that she is a slut”. Saying this she turned her mobile towards me and my jaw dropped. It was her facebook page and there my photo she had taken from the back bending and exposing my thong and
ass was posted on her wall. It already had 100+ likes and 30 comments in 10 minutes. She said if I dont obey what she says for next 4 days then she will post my other pic also which has my face
exposed and the whole world will know that such a slut i am.
And then she said that she had asked suggestions from people on what should be done with such a slut and the replies included some girl suggesting to push me out of room like this or spank my ass and
some of the guys had suggested to make me do a mujra (sexy dance and post the video on facebook) and few guys even wanted to fuck my ass.Saying that she laughed and said “Wow you have already become
a very famous slut”. Then she grabbed my hair and pulled my face back and said “Now you will do what i say for next 4 days. Got it you bitch.” I nodded my head with yes quitely.
#176
Amutha Valli(Saturday, 24 September 2016 11:19)
Above story also avaliable in https://www.indiansexstories.net/couple/slut-part/
Written on 2014-10-16
#177
rajesh(Saturday, 24 September 2016 13:22)
Taken fron site oly Any one write aft this....
#178
Sanju(Sunday, 25 September 2016 12:40)
Part 2
After all the rituals i came back to my place leaving behind my wife.. My in laws family was completely broken..My wife stated their for more than ten days a use to talk to her daily but not asked
much about when will return..My wife suggested me to look for a big house as she wants to bring her family to stay with us..Firstly I thought I will loose privacy with my wife but still I searched
house I hot one three bhk house and shifted their than my wife came with her family..
Let you tell you about my mother in law she was still good looking but bit on heavier side her name was Vidya..her daughter in mid thirties was bomb shell her name was Veena and her sis in law was
similar her name was UshA..
It took few days to adjust for all of them..Veena got her job transferred to our city..and joined the same..My job was more or less from home only I use to design than send the images to tailoring
shops by mail..and go out once a while..
I got isolated in home as all ladies use to spend time together..I complained to my wife she told you are well come to join ladies club and just had a smile on her face..I told I will join..
The journey begins:
In the morning after Veena left for job..Usha and shweta were in kitchen I joined them..Just had casual good morning and tea..Then started discussing of some daily soap and new type saree worn by
heroine as I was fashion designer I got fascinated as how much detailed explanation Usha gave about that saree.. Shweta told I can design like that..Than Usha asked me to join to watch daily soap
which I obliged immediately..
#179
SRS(Sunday, 25 September 2016 13:10)
"fashion part 5 #123
After deep thinking i was ready to sign an i was lill bit afraid an i know that i will con vise them to pay the amount so that i can escape from this torture.An after that they i give me a card in
which there was an address they have told to go there an this was the first punishment starting an i took the card an saw the address an start living while i was living they r giggling an i dint know
y , my work was complete it was 5pm an i went to car parking an start to move for the address i just type the address in my google maps an i went quickly found it.i park my car side an went inside
there was a young lady about my age an she saw me an smile she was gorges an i told my boss name an company an after that she laugh an told ohh its u i have been waiting 4 u come in an i saw that it
looks like some sort as clinic as i went inside she took me to an room an asked to remove all my cloths an give 1 towel to were it ,i was afraid after she forced an done it an she lie me in table an
started to apply oil to my whole body i was so relaxed an felt sleep after she finished she told to lie down in bath tub after when i did i thought that she will do cleaning as a nice bath , i closed
my eye in there an kept my hands in 2 coiner when i relisted an click sound i saw that she locked my two hands in both side an except my face everything is in under water , she give 1 rubber like
thing an asked to bite it i did it after she opened some bottle like liquid an pore it into the water an took to electrode rod an dip it under the water an told this would be lill pain so for
preventing screaming i gave u rubber an she bring some sort of electrical equipment which look like current voltage etc an turn on it while doing i get jolt of electric shock to my whole body an my
whole body started to burn like a hell after it was done she took me an again make me lie down in bed an she took sponge an cleaned my whole body an apply lotion now she started to shave my face an
side burs i protect but nothing use n again she took a small device an she placed 1 dark glass both of our eyes an now again she started to work , she is doing whole area in my face beard, mustache
which has been remove an side burs after it done my face started to itch like hell an burns she took cream an apply in my face an few hours she told that it was done. After when i get up i saw my
whole body is completely hairless an smooth an my face too i dont know what to do i went near to mirror an saw that without makeup an bushy eyebrow i look like a girl if they dint notice, i saw that
my side burns r removed i dint ask anything she just keep on smiling an asked do u like it , i told that everything was ok but y u removed my side burns its not fair with this long hair i look ugly
an for that c told ohh no u look pretty u need not to worry an i felt shame an came out from there. I took car i started to went home on the way i got tensed that how iam going to show my face to
everyone its total shame what my aunt going to tell while driving i stop to the near by shop i saw a monkey cap which used to were for not getting cold , it covers my ears an comes up to my mouth
only my nose an eyes will be opened an i bought it , it was only 100 bugs an i gave 1000 bugs cause i dont have a change an on seeing that shopkeeper told what madam u dont have change for 100 u give
1000 ok wait i will look for a change in another shop. i was shocked on hearing that he called me as madam. after he came with change an i took it an went to home. I put the mask i went home my aunt
open the door an get scared i told that it was me an i got cold tats y i straight went to bedroom in told that i ate b4 i will go for sleep an i removed my dress an put the blank sheet into me an
slept.Next day morning my aunt came i was in deep sleep she came an saw my hair r all get mess an iam still wearing the monkey cap she removed my blanket an i used to were shorts only i dont were
banyan an she was shocked on seeing my hairless body n she removed my cap an get another shock on seeing my hairless face with out side burns. she smiled an took my mess hair an put it like a bun an
put hair clip.
#180
SRS(Sunday, 25 September 2016 13:14)
fashion part 6
After when i woke up i was shocked that my face mask is been removed i was scared whether my aunt did this r not , if she then what iam going to explain i got tens an went silently to bathroom an
started to brush my teeth after finishing it i wash my face an i was shocked on seeing my hair , i through the clip an went straight to my aunt for y she put the clip but when i went there on seeing
me my our servant an aunt both started to laugh , i felt shame in front of them. My aunt asked y i did this but i cant tell the truth to them so i lied that i our office there is a new rules that
nobody should grow beard an mus touch cause iam the only male. my aunt asked then y u removed ur body hair, i dont know what to tell an i got 1 idea a told that i want to be male model with six pack
tats y an my aunt was silent. After i got ready an went to office i took 1 nose mask i were it, every body asked about that i told it was dust allergy tats y an i went to my cabin after some time my
bosses called me an i went to them an while seeing me they told u can fool every body by wearing the mask but not me please remove it u have to face it tats the punishment, an removed it slowly an
they saw an lol i felt shame, i came out side an every body started to ask about this an i told its a new trends an they asked then y u removed ur side burs i told by mistake an told dont worry it
will grow, an my boss noted the chatting an came closes to me an silently told in my ear that u have to worry cause its permanent on hearing that i felt shocked i dont react anything just went
silently .i got really tense i dont know what to do at that time 1 woman game an told sir there was some file is missing in ur sap so can u please get me an i went to her system an sat there 1 girl
about 11 was there an asked her who was she she told that it was her daughter she bring her with her , i told this is office u should not bring her here an she asked sorry for that an i started to
work in her system at that time that lill girl asked to her mom that ( mama who was this aunty , an she told it was my superior an she told that i was beauty full, an she came near to me an smiled an
said hi an i too told hi an give her a chock let an she told thanks. an i started to work an she told ur hair is nice but u dint get proper style shall i , i dint concentrate to her an told go a head
but dont disturb me an i keep on working at that time she went to her mother an took something an came nere me an started to work on me she slowly comb my hair an i felt really relaxed cause her hand
is so soft an after she started to took small section hair from the top of my hair an gather it an do something after she took a rubber band an place it in bottom of the hair an she went to her
mother an her mother told something an give it 1 thing to her she again came to me an placed something in my hair an went , i thought that b4 my hair disturb me cause of lose hair but now i dint get
any disturb cause it is neatly arranged an i too finished my work, after my boss called me to come to her cabin i went there an she asked that tomorrow is 2nd weak an what u going to do whether i
will receive any payment r what , i told to not worry that i will get the payment an she told i hope so an while iam living she stopped me an told nice hairstyle an i said thanks it was 1 of our
worker daughter who did it an she smiled an told she did a nice work on u, i cant understand i went off from there an i was getting scared about tomorrow.
#181
SRS(Sunday, 25 September 2016 13:15)
fashion part 7
i reached to my aunt an i went slowly there my aunt saw me an get surprised i dont know y an she too asked about my hair i told n she was happy, our servant too saw that an lol but i dint understand
that y, my aunt took her phone an started to take selfie with me an my servant came an give my aunt a rose an she placed to my aunt hair an told that now it will look same an she took many pic, my
servant took the phone an started to take pic an while me an aunt sitting in the sofa she went back side an from the top view she took another pic an came near to aunt an told that from back side we
cant tell who is who an they both started to lol, i got irate an asked her y u laughing like mad an while i tell my aunt show me the pic an i saw tat many pic in that 1 pic my aunt sat in the sofa an
the photo was taken from the top view in that my aunt was in french braid in that was rose flower an the same hairstyle was in the other an i dint understand that when it was taken an i told nice on
seeing the pic an asked her that who was the girl an by asking 2 of them cons tally laughing an my aunt told my my u dint saw ur hairstyle it was u ideate an i was shocked an i touch my hair an the
rose flower came an i through it an undo the hair an get shame an went to the room , i was scared that every body in my office saw me in this hairstyle it was really humiliating. Next day i woke up
an get ready for my office my aunt dint asked anything about yesterday an i too live for my off n i asked for the payment to my client but there was not proper response i was afraid an get digressed
i dont know what to do an my boss called me an asked about that an she know that an she told ok than ready 4 ur next punishment 1 v will start with inner than v will go 4 outer an by telling she
again give me a address an told to meet there i was scared now what they going to do an how i will face it.
#182
vasantha(Monday, 26 September 2016 02:49)
thks of srs
#183
Radha(Tuesday, 27 September 2016 01:19)
Dear all, plz don't post comments here, we have just 1000 comments space here.
#184
Hari as hema(Tuesday, 27 September 2016 20:55)
Lovely SRS you are awesome write more
#185
poonam sinha(Wednesday, 28 September 2016 04:42)
Wife's new doll -I am mohini. My wife anuradha's new doll. I was not mohini earlier it all started as i was having extra marital affair with my gf named pooja. It had been 2 yrs of our marriage but i
was not happy with itEven anuradha was not happy. I used to spend time with pooja alot. From starting pooja thought i am little feminine as i had hairless body. She used to take me all the time for
shopping sometimes while trying lingerie she putted on me to see how it looks, i ignored it. She used to say me to apply her nailpaint. We were madly in love.We wanted to be together but anuradha was
not ready for divorse. One day pooja came with idea that if we make anu realize that i like to be lady she will leave me but i was not sure of it. With no option i agreed and pooja took control of
me. Firstly she made me feel how to wear bra panty. When ever we meet she made me wear her diff. Styles lingerie. Then she made me understand about makeup. Even applied alot of makeup on me.I got
used to it and i used to ask pooja about wearing her tops and skirts. We now were besties rather than gf bf. Intentionally i used to talk about makeup with anu. I used to wear pink shirts. Then pooja
taught me to wear saree and webought few wigs and pierced my ears.Pooja thought i am ready now and we planned one day anu was out for shopping. I called pooja. She made me wear red lingerie. Red
anarkali style dress of anu. Heavy makeup. Earrings. Lots of bangles. Heels. I was looking way better than anu.As anu came pooja was hidden in bathroom. I saw anu and pretended to be shocked. Anu was
surprised seeing me as lady. I told her i want to be a lady and suddenly she blushed came close to me and kissed me. And said honey i love ur look. From now on you are my doll. From now we both
ladieswill stay here nd love each other come on bed now.. seeing this me n pooja knew how much trouble we are in and this way i beacame anu's doll
#186
Srs(Friday, 30 September 2016 00:45)
Shalma where ru please continue, iam eager to read ur story pleaseeee
#187
amit(Friday, 30 September 2016 09:21)
does guys here remove body hair , if yes how do you do it
i shave all over every 2-3 days , it takes lots of time and lot of times i get small cuts too
#188
ash(Friday, 30 September 2016 10:13)
u should wax , its best way to remove hairs
#189
Grammer(Saturday, 01 October 2016 06:22)
SRS, you seriously need English lessons, reading your posts gives headache.
#190
Ritu(Saturday, 01 October 2016 10:39)
Dear
#191
SRS(Saturday, 01 October 2016 11:54)
Mis Grammar ,am not writing any exam here an sorry am not forcing u to read my story, so u need not to teach me a English lessons.
#192
Pooja please come back(Saturday, 01 October 2016 13:38)
Pooja we are missing u pls come back and finish 'Turning it around' story
#193
Grammer(Saturday, 01 October 2016 16:37)
SRS, at least use an editor like microsoft word for spelling check and statement constructs. May help with your carrier
#194
Riya(Saturday, 01 October 2016 17:32)
Serendipity
Intro
Riya looked at her reflection in the mirror and let out a deep breath. The makeup girl was giving the final touches. . Her face was adorned with jewels. A big nose ring which touched her red pouty
lips. A maang-tika which sat perfectly between her brown silky hairs. Big dangling jhumkas decorated her ears. She looked at her hands which looked lovely in the mehendi with bright red nail polish.
For a moment she couldn’t believe its all true. It was all too hazy for her. Her chain of thoughts were interrupted by a message alert on her phone. It was her soon to be husband Amit. She blushed as
she read “Lene tujhe o gori, a rahe hai tere sajna”. The makeup was complete by now. She got up and took many selfies with her new friend Rekha. She sent the one with shades to Amit with
#kalachashma. Rekha reminded her that the cab is ready and they should leave. Riya found it difficult to walk with the heavy lehenga and all that jewellery but a part of her was cherishing this
experience of being a bride.
They started from the Makeup studio, Riya sat at the back and Rekha sat next to the driver giving him directions to the wedding hall. It was Wednesday evening and Gurgaon traffic was moving at a
snail pace. Riya started getting tensed again started typing a message to Amit: “ We are stuck in the traffic, why did you choose a Tuesday day for our wedding. You could have choosen weekend but you
had to do this and make me late”. It was followed by some angry smilies. The bangles filling her both hands made sounds while she typed those messages angrily, she both loved and hated these feminine
sounds. She took a few deep breaths and remembered how Neha used to get angry with him when things didn’t work out as per his plans. Yes, he alias Vaibhav alias Riya had a complete female mind now
and even giggled at her thoughts. She remembered Neha again:the damsel who had proposed to Vaibhav: “She might have been my wife today, sitting here in my place and me being the hunk Amit out to get
her”. She felt pity for Vaibhav, how he still lives inside her, how he has gone quiet nowdays and wondered what kind of life he might have had if things were different today.
> Please tell if you guys liked this intro, I would write more if you feel its good, thanks<
#195
Kumkum(Sunday, 02 October 2016 00:58)
Yes Riya,I like your story . But I am frustrated coz like everyone before you will also stop writing in the middle with our completing the full story. This has now become a bad tradition here,
leaving story in the middle. Pooja, Neha, shalma and others also did this before. I guess you will also follow them. So do as you wish.
#196
kavi(Sunday, 02 October 2016 01:24)
Riya pls keep going <3
#197
Nisha(Sunday, 02 October 2016 09:20)
Sorry kumkum and others.
Due to my hectic schedule, i am unable to continue my story. Hope i will finish this within this weekend and upload.
And request people to write more stories. We have abundant creativity with us. Let's utilize it.
#198
Srs(Monday, 03 October 2016 06:44)
Grammar it's nice but i have not getting time to write story itself better u write then it would help to gain knowledge.
#199
Riya(Monday, 03 October 2016 08:30)
Guys, I have written a very long story. It will take around 13 posts here. So I have posted it on fictionmania. I hope you guys enjoy it:
http://fictionmania.tv/stories/readtextstory.html?storyID=1475437312343276205
Pls someone write story on crossdressing in navratri
#203
Sanju(Tuesday, 04 October 2016 11:44)
Riya.. nuce try...ending letter was best part.. try to be short and write here .. episode wise next tym
#204
Priya(Tuesday, 04 October 2016 12:35)
Yes, we need a crossdressing story on navratri theme where elder sister takes brother to garba in ghagra and humiliates him.. Send him in ghagra to school garba function too..
I have posted a new story in hindi on my blogspot.
#207
Rashmi Patel(Tuesday, 04 October 2016 21:09)
@Neha: pls shar link...
#208
Sandya(Wednesday, 05 October 2016 13:13)
great stories by Neha and Riya .. there is no shortage of talent on this page.. keep entertaining us sisters..
#209
Anisha(Saturday, 08 October 2016 00:08)
Nice story
#210
Shalma(Sunday, 09 October 2016 20:47)
Monisha Part 10 (Continued from #160)
-------------------
After finishing the work, I planned to go for bath. Aunt wants to check whether I cleaned the vessels properly. today also, I have not cleaned some of the vessels.
Aunt gives a warning to me. If it happens one more time, she will give punishment surely. I said I will ensure it will not happen once again. And after that, I went to
bath in aunt home.
While going inside the bathroom, Aunt said her inners are hanging in the bathroom. She asked me to wash those things, while I am having bath. I just said ok and went
inside the bathroom. Aunt bra and panty are hanging in the bathroom. Both Panty and bra are deep red velvet cloth. While seeing those clothes itself, I am getting
sensational feel. I touched those clothes and it made me to wear those things in the bathroom. Somehow I managed and I put the bra hooks. I am feeling so sexy. Around
30 minutes, I was enjoyed in that dress. Aunt shouted from outside, how much hour you will take bath like that. After that only, I realised and I had a quick bath and
came out from bathroom.
After coming out from bathroom, I quickly put camisole and panty and I wore my office formals. because If aunt see these things, then it will be a problem for me.
After dressing up, I said bye to aunt to go for office. Aunt asked me to have break fast and she already prepared breakfast. While I am having breakfast, Aunt styled
my hair with hairbrush. Aunt is a professional beautician. She owns one beauty parlour in the city.She styled my hair very nicely. And she said, you are so cute in
this hairstyle. And after having breakfast, I just seen my face in mirror. I also feel its nice and I asked to aunt its like girls hairstyle. Aunt asked me to go
office in this hairstyle itself. If someone teases me means, she will leave her job like that she promised.
Aunt put cream to my face and she put some compact powder on my face. It gives some shining to my face. Aunt said you are so cute. I got so shy. I left from Aunt house
and reached the office. While going inside the office, I am getting fear because of my hair and shining face.
In my team, two girls are there. Those girls names are Sana and Ridhi. I didnt speak freely with them previously. And even they also not care about me previously. My
manager name is Mohini. She also strict on me always. While I am going to my seat in the office, I have to cross these 2 girls Sana and Ridhi. Sana noticed me while I
am crossing. Sana comes with Ridhi to my seat. And they both praised about my new hairstyle. It looks good on me like that they said. Suddenly Sana hugged me and she
said you are so cute. Sana took her mobile and she wants me to take selfie with me. She took some selfies in the seat itself. She asked me to sit in different poses
and she captured only me.
While Sana hugging me, She noticed I am wearing camisole inside the shirt. After taking those selfies, Sana called me personally. She asked me what you are wearing
inside. I got fear and I was so silent. Sana said she will not tell to anyone about this. its so nice and she likes me very much. Salma noticed that I am sitting with
Sana. And Salma came and said she was the owner of this beauty(me). I just introduced salma as my lover to sana. Sana said you are very lucky girl.
Please like this story in my fb id (https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5) and write more comments.
#211
vasantha(Sunday, 09 October 2016 22:54)
monisha your very good pa continue story pls & srs pls continue your story very very pls i am your fan i early wait for story pls contiune pa pls pls
#212
ZARA(Tuesday, 11 October 2016 00:39)
nice story shalma ..
#213
Tejaswini(Tuesday, 11 October 2016 04:01)
Shalma
Please continue your story, just waiting for the update...
#214
Srs(Wednesday, 12 October 2016 00:05)
Vasantha it's nice that fan, but here someone tells that i make huge grammar mistakes i already told that I am not good in grammar so you all have to decide whether i continue or not.
#215
Srs(Wednesday, 12 October 2016 00:12)
Shalma it's nice to see after long, please continue don't live please
#216
vasantha(Wednesday, 12 October 2016 03:06)
Srs Don’t think about person who are saying that grammar mistake don’t think like that person pls pls continue story I really I like your stories pls pls continue pa
#217
Grammar(Wednesday, 12 October 2016 13:58)
srs tre maa ke bhosada dont write your fuucking story
#218
Unknown(Thursday, 13 October 2016 00:29)
Grammar you son of whore, if you can't able to write then just shut up you fucking bitch.
#219
Another grammar(Friday, 14 October 2016 03:51)
Srs please stop writing
#220
Kajal tilak(Friday, 14 October 2016 03:55)
You don't have that talent srs ....so stop kardo yaar
#221
Mean girl(Friday, 14 October 2016 10:48)
This is site for stories of special girls not for Grammer, if you want Grammer, go away this is not place for you, SRS is a best story teller and one of the best creator in this site,
If you don't like it, don't read it, go away
#222
Menaka rani(Friday, 14 October 2016 10:55)
Hey Grammer, best place for you is to stay with dictionary not here
You better look up your grammar skills, seems you are not so good at this to advice another, you skills are only with MS WORD I this. Stop acting like genius and get away from her
#223
Nikita(Friday, 14 October 2016 10:57)
Those who speak about talent, first write a story here and then speak, fucking bitches
#224
cd lover(Friday, 14 October 2016 13:23)
please every stop fighting @plz some one write a genuine cd story
#225
Grammer(Friday, 14 October 2016 19:36)
Thanks to all Grammers for speaking up their mind, SRS stories suck
#226
Ashwini(Friday, 14 October 2016 19:46)
Sisters, I think both views are right...... one should not write because their english is poor is not correct. The rich content and an exciting plot is the main reason why we come here to read. Yet,
as an author, having written 2-3 long stories ( 60 plus long chapters each ) here I feel it is our moral responsibility to write in correct english. The flair, the originality will differ, as it
should. Each sister writing here is unique, special and respectable. ......I think with the help of simple tools like spellcheck - that are available just on the right click of mouse..things can be
improved...... writing is an act of creating a captivating plot and making it presentable, so the reader becomes one with the main character and 'feels like her'.....hence both are vital.... so
sisters, cheer up our sisters who write, and sisters who write, with little effort, you can also improve.
#227
Kumkum(Friday, 14 October 2016 22:20)
Srs continue writing and ignore negative comments
#228
SRS(Friday, 14 October 2016 23:37)
La directora de Expansión del Grupo Meliá Hotels Internacional, María Zarraluqui, ha dicho que «están emocionados» por ser la compañía que «va hacer realidad» la puesta en marcha el Palacio de
Congresos», y ha mostrado el «compromiso» de la cadena hotelera «para que comience a dar sus frutos a la sociedad mallorquina lo antes posible».
En declaraciones a los medios de comunicación, Zarraluqui ha remarcado que están «muy satisfechos» por haber sido los adjudicatarios del Palacio de Congresos y el Hotel anexo, y ha recordado que la
empresa «ha hecho una apuesta muy importante por esta infraestructuras desde hace años, presentándose a todos los concursos públicos».
«Nuestro compromiso es absoluto y haremos todo lo posible para lo antes posible que el Palacio comienza a dar sus frutos a la sociedad mallorquina, que lleva esperando más de diez años», ha afirmado
la directora de Meliá, quien ha dicho que el proceso de apertura del centro de convenciones se hará «sin prisas, de forma correcta, con calidad y cumplimiento con todos los pliegos de
condiciones».
«Por supuesto, será para la fecha concreta de marzo, pero si puede ser antes, bienvenido sea para todos», ha enfatizado Zarraluqui.
Gabriel Escarrer y María Zarraluqui
«Creemos que la captación va a ser muy importante»
Con todo, la directora de Expansión de Meliá ha explicado que han realizado un plan de negocios «muy exhaustivo» sobre la captación de congresistas, y que tienen «focalizado dónde quieren crecer y
cómo hacerlo en los principales mercados», como puede ser el alemán, inglés, escandinavo y el español.
Así, ha afirmado que la captación de congresistas «dará sus frutos casi de forma inmediata», teniendo en cuenta que Palma es un «destino nuevo» para los segmentos. «Creemos que la captación de
congresitas será muy importante», ha recalcado
#229
Grammar(Friday, 14 October 2016 23:49)
Never said don't write, suggestion was to write in correct English to make reading more fun. One should learn from criticism instead of defending.
#230
Unknown(Saturday, 15 October 2016 00:42)
Grammar if you think your best than start writing your own stories you mother fucker and i know you wrote the fucking word in #231. better go away from this blog busted grammar.
#231
Unknown(Saturday, 15 October 2016 07:45)
I am sorry Grammar. My English knowledge is poor but I am addicted to stories and SRS is one writer who is writing regularly.
#232
cd lover(Saturday, 15 October 2016 11:50)
plz plz Stop fighting @some one write role reversal story
#233
SRS(Saturday, 15 October 2016 14:05)
#231 is not from me
#234
Raghav(Sunday, 16 October 2016 07:07)
Part 1.
This story is about tarun. Tarun’s parents were very wealthy and he was the only kid so he got pampered a lot. Tarun loved to crossdress since his childhood and every day after coming back from
school he would crossdress in his mothers clothes and spend time at home as a girl till his parents came back from office in the night. This was his daily routine for many years until he finished his
schooling. For his college education his parents decided to send him to ooty in one of the best colleges. Tarun was sent to his aunt’s house in ooty where he was supposed to stay and attend college
which was very close by his aunt’s house.
Tarun did not want to go to ooty as it would not be possible for him to crossdress and tried to convince his parents but his parents did not listen to him and finally tarun had to agree with his
parents and go to ooty. Just before he left to ooty he had one last day to crossdress so he decided to make the most of it and as soon as his parents left to office he went into his mothers dressing
room and opened her wardrobe and started looking at all the clothes and was thinking what to wear. As he was looking at all the different types of sarees, salwars etc. He found a red colored velvet
bag and to his surprise when he opened it he found his mothers wedding saree and all other accessories that his mother was wearing when she had got married. Tarun got very excited after looking at
all this and taught since this is his last day and was going to leave his parents and go to ooty just like when a girl gets married and leaves her parents home, he quickly decided to wear it and took
the bag and kept it on the bed.
Now let me tell you about taruns appearance. Tarun was thin and very fair and did not have any facial or body hair, he looked very feminine and was 5 ft 3 inches tall, he looked just like his mother
and also had shoulder length hair to which he would attach extensions when ever he crossdressed. Because of having a very similar body like his mother her clothes would easily fit him.
After keeping all the clothes on the bed tarun went into the toilet to take bath and applied hair removal cream to his body making it even more smoother and shiny and after taking bath he came out of
the toilet by tying the towel up to his chest like a girl and stood in front of the mirror and admired his beautiful body.
First tarun wore a bra and filled it up to give him the perfect looking breast and admired himself in the mirror then he wore a panty and tucked his cock between his legs so that his panty did not
have any bulge. Now he was standing in front of the mirror just in bra and panty and was looking very very beautiful and no one could tell that he is a boy. He already had a hairless and feminine
body to which the bra and panty added the need curves and made him look just like a girl. Next tarun wore the petticoat and then the blouse and adjusted his breasts to give the perfect look and
shape, and finally he draped the saree. Tarun used to crossdress every day so he had become an expert in wearing girls clothes.
Once he wore the saree he added the hair extensions and tied his hair and put some fancy hair clips and did his makeup just like bride would do on her wedding day and finally he wore his moms
necklace and clip-on earrings and completed his makeup by applying lipstick. And took a full look of himself in the mirror. He looked so beautiful that he couldn't control himself and had tears in
his eyes. These were tears of a mixed feeling. First of all he was sad that he is going to ooty and secondly he was happy looking at himself in his mothers wedding clothes and was feeling himself as
a bride who is going to get married and leave her parents house.
As his mind was flooded with different taughts he controlled himself and wiped off the tears and came out to the living room covering his head with the palo of the saree just like how a bride would
cover her head on her wedding day. After coming to the living room he sat on the sofa and was thinking of all his wonderful memories in the house when he used to crossdress and spend his time every
day and the fact that he would not be able to do this from tomorrow made him very sad.
Next he got up from the sofa and walked around the entire hose and every thing reminded him of all the wonderful moments he spent in the house as a girl and made him extremely emotional and couldnt
control himself and he ran to bed room and sat on the bed and started crying just like how a bride would cry.
To be contd...
#235
RIA(Sunday, 16 October 2016 09:34)
It felt a bit unusual and why wouldn’t it wearing a bra was not what my life allowed me. Done she said giggling as I tried to cover my empty padded cups with my palms. She brought some foam already
cut into pieces to look like breasts and filled it in my bra. There came the added weight. She altered the hooks on the strap a little bit and then it felt comfortable.
Not normally does it happen with a guy that he stands in front of his wife wearing a sexy frilly piece of women innerwear but this happened in my case. Before proceeding and explaining everything
letme introduce myself. My nave is avinash, 26, extremely fair, fair like my wife feels envious of me, rather short just 5’5’’ tall, slim like a babe married to a beautiful software engineer
suhani.
It had been just 3 months that we had come together in this arranged marriage and things were going rather sweet. The love the bliss surrounded us always. Mornings in each other arms, nights in each
other’s lips, things were way above romantic. The eagerness of knowing each other more, the anxiety to know about how would she act when something happens or the responses, everything was making life
so exciting, and in the course of this exiting journey came a point when I was standing in front of my wife as Avantika in her bra.
It was a weekend when I just brought my old pend drive to show her my college pics. Eager she sprang up, going through the pics she found something, it was me, but a bit different, initially she was
not able to recognize but when she did she was all around the couch laughing. Maybe you people would had guessed, it was me posing as a housewife in a beautiful silk saree and a lots of ornaments,
holding a clutch in my hands with beautifully painted nails, and a face made up so brilliantly that even I loved the feel of the makeup. No! it was not out of fun but a college fest in which I had to
act as a women, I did it convincingly but the real applause came 7 years later from my wife.
#236
RIA(Sunday, 16 October 2016 09:41)
Later that night as we sat having dinner my wife asked, how was it, I mean how did it feel like being a women. I was shy to answer and just said it was good. She giggled hearing my answer, so was it
fun wearing a saree, a saree I had to wear three of those I blurted out, she was in tears laughing, literally you wore three of those she said, and what else did you wear, nothing I said, oh! Don’t
lie dear Avantika she said teasing me, ok I wore a gown too but nothing more than that, and now she was out of control.
When on bed, I went to the wasroom to change for the night, as I came out I found a cunning smile on suhani’s face, what is it I asked? Jaanu she said playfully, you love me na!! where is it coming
from I asked, do you or do you not, I do I said, would you do anyting for me, yes I will I replied, be sure will you, of course I said, then please wear my nighty naa, wha…why!! Please I wanna see
you in that, but how could I
#237
SRS(Sunday, 16 October 2016 11:56)
Sisters pleese belive me #231 is not from me . Somebady writing my name and destroy my great image. My readers know that I am best .
#238
Unknown(Sunday, 16 October 2016 12:25)
Great Image !!!! SRS, you sound Like Donald Trump now.
#239
SRS(Sunday, 16 October 2016 14:18)
some body mis using my name
#240
Story fan(Sunday, 16 October 2016 21:47)
Some fucking bitch is trying to disturb writing. Stop it you idiot bastard .
#241
Raghav(Monday, 17 October 2016 00:41)
Part 2 – Ooty
From here the story will be said in Tarun’s words
.
As the bus took sharp turns in the ghats I could see small houses and realized that I will be reaching very soon. Even though I was sad as I can’t crossdress I was eager to meet my aunt. My aunt is
my father’s elder sister and is in her 60’s and lives alone as her husband died 5 years back and that was the last time I had seen her. My parents used to visit her once in six months but she has not
seen me in the last 5 years. The last time she saw me I was in 5th grade, since then a lot of things have changed and i was sure she will not recognize me. The constant honking of the bus driver made
me come out of my taughts and wen I looked outside the bus I realized that I have reached the bus stop and everyone started getting down the bus.
After getting down the bus I looked around but could not find my aunt. I waited for few minutes and then called her up, she told me that she is waiting for me outside the bus stop in a taxi , on
hearing that I quickly went out with my luggage and as I walked outside I saw my aunt right in front of the gate. I went close to her and touched her feet and hugged her to which she responded with
equal excitement and caught me by my shoulder and looked at me carefully and said that I have grown big kissed me on my forehead and that’s when I realized that she was struggling with her vision and
had to look at me carefully for 2 minutes to see my face.
Tarun: aunty why are u struggling so much?? Is your eyesight ok ?
Aunt: no tatun my eyesight is extremely weak
Tarun ; then why don’t you wear specs ?
Aunty: I don’t need that tarun, I am old now and will die soon so there is no need for all that
Tarun: please don’t say that aunty. You still have a long way to go.
Then we sat in the taxi and left for aunt’s house
Few days later..
Its been almost one week since I came to ooty and I have settled down in my aunt’s house, my college has also started and everything is going on smooth but still my mind is restless and constantly
keeps wanting to crossdress but I have to control my desires.
One day after coming back from college I saw aunty cleaning the house so I went and started helping her to which she stopped me and said its ok and she can manage. My aunt has strictly told me that I
have come here to study and should only concentrate on that and she will do all the work but I cant see her doing everything alone and no matter how hard I try still she doesn't let me do any work I
started feeling as a burden on aunty so I decided to talk to my parents and tell that I wanted to stay alone by renting a house for myself. Initially my parents did not agree but after much
persuasion they finally agreed. Once my parents agreed I immediately started searching for a house, in ooty there are many colonial houses with a huge garden and the rent is also affordable and since
I was going to stay alone and fulfill my dream of living as a girl full time I wanted to rent a house in a calm location where there was no disturbance from any neighbors so that I can comfortably
live.
Soon I found a house and started packing up my stuff, my aunt was sad that I was leaving her but I promised her that I will be with her every Sunday. As I left my aunts house there was no limit to my
happiness I was so excited that I couldn’t control myself thinking of the fact that I will be all alone in the house and can live like a girl 24x7, just this taught gave me a hard on and soon I
reached my new house.
As I reached my new house I now knew that this is going to be the beginning of a new chapter in my life, perhaps the most beautiful chapter of my life
To be contd…
#242
sudha(Monday, 17 October 2016 02:35)
riya raghav ur stories r fantastic pls continue
#243
Raghav(Monday, 17 October 2016 03:23)
Part 3.
My new house was a spacious 2 bhk villa with a huge garden in front that connected it to the road. It was a posh location with similar kind of houses and most of the houses were vacant so i was
assured that i had complete privacy. I decided to keep all my male clothes in one of the bedroom and use that bedroom when i was a boy and on the other hand i had converted the other bedroom into a
princesses room with pink colored walls, fancy curtains etc. My parents had always given me more money then i actually required so i always had a lot of money and this time since i was going to stay
alone on my own they gave me even more money so that i buy all necessary items for my new house so once i bought all the necessary things like crockery, kitchen items, microwave etc. i was still left
with a lot of money so then i decided to have my own cute girls wardrobe with everything from inner wear to dresses, frocks, sarees etc. i was very exited just by thinking about it as before this i
never had my own girl clothes, as i always used to crossdress in my moms clothes so the taught of having my own wardrobe gave me Goosebumps and my face had turned red.
Thanks to all online shopping websites it has become dam easy to buy stuff, otherwise imagine if i had to go to the store to buy bra and panties it would be so embarrassing for a boy to buy that
stuff. So i quickly made coffee for myself and took my laptop and sat on the dining table and started browsing through different websites. First i decided to buy innerwear as thats the most important
component to dress.. unless you are comfortable from inside and your body has the perfect breast and ass how can you feel like a girl..?? so i decided to buy inner wear first.
I started off with bra’s and bought different types of bra’s – padded, non padded, bikini top, non strap etc.. and all in many different colors and once i selected all the bra’s i was shocked to see
that i had selected 11 bras and 11 panties to match that.. i was surprised but did not worry as i had a lot of money still left to buy other things so i quickly placed the order and couldn't control
my imagination and in my mind i had already started visualizing myself wearing those bra and panties and it sent chills through my body.
Once i was done with bra & panties i ordered one sexy, short, sleeveless, black dress and one pink frilly short frock, one short skirt, one long skirt and one long western dress. so with that i
was done with shopping for western dresses. Now i started placing order for Indian dresses. In Indian dresses i ordered 4 different colored salwaar’s, 4 sarees and 4 ready made blouses and petticoats
to match the sarees. And i also placed order for 2 nighties and few jeans, t-shirts and leggings. Now i had finished ordering all types of clothes so now i was left with only foot wear and
accessories, so without wasting time i ordered 3 pairs of foot wear and lots of things for makeup and finally few clip on earrings and jewelry, i did not order any wig because my hair had already
grown till my shoulder.
Once i finished placing order for all the things i looked at the total bill which a huge amount but the amount was very small compared to the satisfaction i was going to get once i crossdressed. So
with that i kept my laptop aside and was so excited that i wanted one week to pass by as soon as possible as my order was going to be delivered after one week
To be contd....
#244
ishu(Monday, 17 October 2016 03:32)
ria ur story was awesome kindly continue that
#245
ZARA(Monday, 17 October 2016 03:37)
@Rajeev excellent story, one of the best stories I have read so far, please continue. :-)
#246
ZARA(Monday, 17 October 2016 03:38)
I Mean @ Raghav :)
#247
Kareena(Monday, 17 October 2016 03:43)
Hi I am a cd,
I want Cd Real Cd Friend If Intrested Please give me your No.
I am areally beauty full
And want to be connected with beauty full cd friends
#248
Kareena(Monday, 17 October 2016 04:10)
I am really desperate, I am new in crossdressing
I am married & and straight but after marriage I got the intrest in my wifs dresses
ireally wanted to explore
so I want cd friends please give me your watsapp no.
Only real cd please
#249
Grammar(Monday, 17 October 2016 07:12)
A for Apple, B for ball, C for cat, a e i o u. iam the one who knows everything in grammar, i teach for my English teacher because I am the son of English man.
#250
Rani(Monday, 17 October 2016 11:54)
Hai ....
Nice stories Raghav.keep write more stories, we are waiting for your stories
Do you like to wear saree with ghunghat (veil)? ,become bahu of a family
and undercontroled by strict mother in low.
Please replayyy
#251
ishu(Monday, 17 October 2016 12:18)
hi kareena
#252
Rupali(Monday, 17 October 2016 15:20)
Hi ladies
RIA you are one of my favorite writer. Your stories also help the girl inside me to be a bit naughty and have feel of outer world and it is my request to you to complete you story with the same aura
that you have produced in your previos works.
Raghav your work is also got and have that essence keep it up and make it more beautiful.
#253
Raghav(Monday, 17 October 2016 16:01)
Thanks for the comments Rani & Rupali.
Rupali I would like to inform u that I am not a crossdresser, and this story is not about me. This story is about a crossdresser called Tarun who I was in love with. But due to some unavoidable
circumstances we had to break up. But I was really fascinated about taruns life story so I wanted to share it with the world and that's when I got to kno about this website so I decided to write
#254
Kareena(Monday, 17 October 2016 16:03)
Hi is hu
Thanks for your reply. R u a real crossdresser u can contact me we can bee friends watsapp me please. Give me your number
#255
Raghav(Monday, 17 October 2016 16:18)
Thanks for the comments Zara & Sudha
#256
Grammar(Monday, 17 October 2016 23:04)
Raghav,
Nice job, engaging story.
#257
tyuihjk(Monday, 17 October 2016 23:24)
bnm
#258
Raghav(Tuesday, 18 October 2016 01:23)
Part 4.
It has been almost a week since i shifted to my new house and was very busy with setting up things and i had kept myself busy. It was the first Sunday after i shifted so as promised i was getting
ready to visit aunt, so after taking bath i was getting ready and thinking that just one more day and after that my girl clothes will arrive and i will not have to wear these male clothes at home. In
the past week waiting for my order to arrive was very bad, every single day felt like a year as i was very exited and desperate to become a pretty girl.
I spent the entire Sunday with my aunt and took her to the temple and we also had lunch outside, my aunt seemed to like the outing as she was always at home and never really went out, she thanked me
many times for taking her out as she felt very good. After spending the entire day with aunt i left for my house after dinner with aunt and as soon as i reached home i quickly got fresh and jumped on
the bed to sleep but was sure i would not be able to sleep as i was on cloud nine thinking about tomorrow and my order to be delivered, and for that reason i had also decided to bunk college and stay
back at home and crossdress. Lost in my taughts i don't know when i fell asleep and woke up in the morning by the constant ringing of my cell phone. I did not pay much attention to the cellphone and
just kept it on silent thinking it was my friends from college who had called to enquire why i did not come to college today and turned to sleep again and that's when my eyes fall on the clock and
the time is 11 am. I got up with a sudden force as it was time my order was going to be delivered and quickly took my phone and answered the call the person on the other side was furious as he has
been calling me from 10:30am and i was not answering the call.
Me: hello
Delivery boy: is this Mr. Tarun?
Me: yes
Delivery boy: sir i have been calling you from so long, don't you want your order?
Me: yes yes i want it.. where are you now ?
Delivery boy: sir i am near the park
I quickly guided him from that park to my house and ran outside to the main gate to receive the parcel. The delivery boy reached the main gate of my house and hands over the bill, i pay him and also
give him tips and i carried all the boxes to my house. As i was carrying all the packages to my hose i felt i had quite a lot of things as it was very heavy.
I took every thing and went into my bedroom (girl) and kept it on the floor and started unpacking all the boxes and packets. The first box which I unpacked had all the makeup products, and one by one
i unpacked all the packets and kept everything on the bed, once i had unpacked everything i picked up all the trash boxes, packets etc and dumped it in the dustbin outside the house and ran to my
bedroom and when i entered i saw ha heap of clothes and other girly stuff on my bed. I was very happy to see all the things and got a little emotional but quickly came out of my taught and took each
and every thing in my hand and one by one and keenly observed it. Every thing was so girly and colorful and felt so good when i kept it against my body and it gave a completely different pleasure,
something that i had never felt like in the past 17 years of my life from when i was born, it felt like i was always meant to wear these clothes and be a beautiful girl.
After keen observation of each and every thing i decided to wear the short, black, sleeveless dress as i had never worn western dresses because i used to crossdress in my moms clothes and she never
had any western dresses so wanted to see how good i looked in it so i took that dress, matching bra & panty and sexy heels and kept it in one corner of the bed and kept all the other stuff in the
wardrobe and took my towel and went in to take bath as i was soon going to start a new phase of my life
To be contd.....
#259
Raghav(Tuesday, 18 October 2016 03:59)
Part 5.
Once i finished bathing i came out and walked towards the mirror, every thing around felt so beautiful- pink walls, fancy curtains, sexy ladies dress on the bed, makeup kit in front of the mirror, it
was like the entire world had changed for me, i sat in front of the mirror and applied body lotion which gave a very feminine fragrance and made my body smoother and shiny. After that i wore the
panty followed by the bra and pulled my chest skin closer with tape which gave a nice cleavage and stuffed the bra with cotton to give it the perfect shape and size. Till now whenever i crossdressed
i always wore my mothers bra and panty which was a little big and old fashioned but this time i wore my own padded bra which was perfect in size & made me look very very sexy and the cleavage
made by pulling the chest skin closer added more substance and i looked just like a girl and any guy would drool looking at me. after that i wore the dress and using a hair straightener to straighten
my hair which were below my shoulder and then gave them curls at the bottom giving it a very feminine look.
Once i was done with dressing and setting my hair i started my makeup, by now i had become an expert in doing makeup as i learned it by watching videos online. I took about an hour to do my makeup
and the end result was just fantastic. I just stood there dumbstruck with my mouth open as i looked so sexy in the makeup and short dress that i couldn't recognize myself. I just stood there staring
at myself and what perfect body i had and the dress looked just amazing. Next i sat on the chair and wore my new heels and applied more lotion on my hands and legs, as i don't have any body hair and
my skin is very fair the lotion enhanced my beauty by making my skin look even more smoother and shinny. And finally to top it off i sprayed plenty of perfume. As i moved around in front of the
mirror i could see myself and i looked like a dream.
Next i came out of my bedroom and walked around the house and after sometime i made coffee for myself and went and sat in the garden. This was the first time i came out in the open because before
this when ever i would crossdress in my mothers clothes i would never come out. as i was sitting in my garden the cold breeze ceased my exposed legs and hands and blew my hair a little, this made me
very very Horney and i could feel my boner get hard in my panty. I spent my entire day in the same clothes and walking around the house and in the garden, it felt so good as i had completely lost
hope of crossdressing when my parents sent me to ooty.
In the night after dinner i changed into a semi transparent black nighty and slept and had a wonderful sleep, it felt like i have achieved everything in life. The next day i went to college and after
coming back home i spent the rest of the day as a girl at home and this continued for one week, one day when i was sitting in the garden dressed as a girl i decided to walk down the road outside my
house to a park that was there at a few minutes distance from my house and wanted to see if i can face the outside world as a girl but it was late evening and i was wearing a short skirt & the
weather was also very cold so i decided not to go that day and planned to wear Indian clothes(as it is more comfortable in public) the next day and go outside, so i quickly went into my room and
selected a very pretty salwar and a matching legging and kept it out so that tomorrow as soon as i come back from college i can get ready and go out. with this feeling and excitement i had dinner and
slept thinking about the next day.
To be contd...
#260
ZARA(Tuesday, 18 October 2016 05:16)
Hey Raghav superb story, its getting more and more interesting with ever part you post. you seem to be a very good writer
#261
Rupali(Tuesday, 18 October 2016 15:47)
Wooow what a sweet story Raghav and also read about your inspiration quite interesting you know. So you both changed your rolls in the real??? Or something else is there you would like to share with
your audience
#262
Raghav(Tuesday, 18 October 2016 23:49)
Thanks for the comments.
No Rupali we did not have a role reversal, this story is completely about Tarun (girl name Tanya) and her beautiful transformation and how she opens up to the world, her parents abd how she finds
love. it is a very long story and I intend to write it in complete detail so that the actual charm of it is not lost. I have just written about 5% of the story and there is still a long way to go so
please bear with me
#263
savita(Wednesday, 19 October 2016 03:13)
Great raghav plz continue
#264
Raghav(Wednesday, 19 October 2016 06:47)
Part 6.
Today was a big day for me as it was the first time i will be going out in public as a girl. This is one thing that i was not prepared for but sooner or later i will have to mingle with people, just
the taught made me extremely nervous and it was evident in my behavior, i couldn't concentrate in college i dint talk to my friends properly, there were many questions going on in my mind.. what if i
get caught ? will people recognize me ? will people make fun of me? etc etc. My classes ended for the day and i quickly rushed home. As soon as i reached home i quickly got rid of my male clothes and
ran to take bath and once i finished bathing i dried my self and sat in front of the mirror still in my towel and today i decided to first do my makeup and set my hair followed by dressing up.
First i cleansed my face and applied an even coat of foundation and did all the makeup – from eye liner to shadow to lipstick etc. and then straightened my hair and today i decided to braid my hair
as i was going out in salwar i taught braided hair would look better. So once i was done with hair and makeup i removed the towel and wore my bra and panty and quickly filled it up to give the
perfect shape and size and once that was done i first wore the legging and then the cute pink knee length top. I looked at my self in the mirror and believe me i looked very very pretty , infact much
prettier than most of the girls i know. This gave me tremendous confidence and all my nervousness had vanished. After that i picked up a cute pair of flip flops to wear as i did not want to walk
outside in heels as it is not comfortable. Once i was completely ready i did a light touch up to my makeup and walked out
I locked the gate of my house and started walking down the street, at first there were no people around so it was not that difficult but once i took a turn towards the main road there were many shops
and it was a busy road with a lot of people around, as soon as i saw this i was out of my comfort zone and started shivering. The taught of getting caught brought butterflies in my tummy and i was
fumbling a bit but just then a voice from within was telling me ‚‘ you have always been a pretty girl and even now u look stunning just be confident and keep yourself strong and then u see how
wonderful u will feel“ it gave me tremendous confidence and i started walking with full on style, just like a girl will move around , i felt like its my daily routine and walked with grace and
attitude. As i walked i noticed a lot of boys checking me out and a lot of girls were feeling jealous looking at my beauty and every one had just one question in mind – who is this beautiful girl ??
as they had never seen me in the locality before.
I walked into a coffee shop and sat and looked around and every one were staring at me. i felt extremely shy and my cheeks had turned red. In few minutes the waiter came and took my order. I spent
around 1 hour in the coffee shop and it felt great. Every one addressed me as madam and i enjoyed all the attention i got. And once it was dark i came back home and finished my studies and finished
everything else and changed into my nighty and slept.
The next day again after returning home i would dress up like a pretty girl and go around the locality and to the coffee shop and return home once it got dark, this became a routine for me and
continued for a few days.
To be contd....
#265
Raghav(Wednesday, 19 October 2016 06:48)
Part 7.
One Saturday as i did not have college i rested the entire day at home it was evening and i was still in my nighty. I had got up in the afternoon and did not change. In the evening when i was
drinking coffee & browsing i saw breast foams with adhesive, i saw a small video advertisement on the internet. It was very good and looked like original breasts. I dint think twice and
immediately called the store to place my order but the shopkeeper said that they do not have home delivery option. I was sad as the store was very far from my house and it was already evening but
couldn't control myself so i decided to go get it. I quickly ran into my bedroom got ready in half an hour and rushed out of my house. It was already 7pm and the store was at an hours distance from
my house so i quickly got into a taxi and asked the driver to go as fast as possible.
I reached the store around 8 and quickly went inside to buy the foam. Inside the store there was a salesman who was in 40’s but had a very cunning look on his face. He kept staring at my ass and
breasts. He kept on coming close to me and i was getting annoyed and was feeling very uncomfortable. He was going on trying to talk to me but i was not interested and went towards another salesman
and asked him to give the breast foams, he said madam please wait and went inside to bring the foams, as he went in the other pervert salesman came close to me and started telling – “you have such
good breasts why do u need foam “ i got extremely angry and couldn't control myself and gave him one tight slap on his face and started shouting at him, hearing that the manager came running and
asked what happened. I told him that this man is trying to misbehave with me, hearing that the manager caught him and asked him to apologize and once he apologized he threw him out of the store and
came back and apologized on behalf of his staff. By then the sales man who went to bring the breast foam had also come so i quickly took it, paid the bill and left the store.
On the way back i could not control my self and had tears in my eyes, that's when i felt its not easy to be a girl. That mans words kept coming in my mind again and again.. i just couldn't control
myself and started crying. i opened the window of the taxi and started breathing fresh air and as i saw outside i realized we were on the temple street. I remember this street as i had once visited
the temple, as the taxi passes the temple i noticed a woman standing at the taxi stand waiting to a taxi. I asked the driver if its possible for that woman to get a taxi at this time because it was
already 9:30pm to which the driver said its very difficult so i asked him to turn and told him that we will drop her. So the driver took a u urn and as we went close to that woman i got the shock of
my life... my hear had just skipped a beat when i saw that woman's face.. that woman was none other that my own AUNT !!!!
As soon as i saw my aunt i immediately started sweating & my body became numb, it felt like i was going to get a heart attack and before i could react the driver stopped the taxi.
Driver: Maji where do you wana go ?
Aunt: 4th street, near rose garden.
Driver: please get into the car i will drop you there.
Aunt: but looks like you already have a passenger inside
Driver: its ok maji the passenger herself has asked me to take you
Aunt: oh ok
Until this moment i am still numb and freezed. I am not able to move a muscle and aunt opens the back door and gets into the taxi and sits beside me.
Aunt: thank you so much dear
Me: i..it...it..its o ok Aunty
Aunt: is every thing ok? why do u sound so scared ?
As aunt was speaking she came closer to me in a concerned manner and my heart almost stopped beating i was sure that i am going to get caught. Aunt came close to me and touched my cheeks and since i
was crying sometime back my cheeks were still moist and sensing that she said
Aunt: is everything fine dear ?
Me; yyy yy yess..
Aunt: i think you just cried.. tell me what it is.. you helped me by giving me lift now its my turn tell me.
Me. everything is fine please don't worry
Aunt: ok .. what is your name ?
I was stumped by that question, i had never taught of a girl name for me and this question completely knocked me. aunt asked again and with a fumbling voice i said- my name is tanya .
I had never taught of a name so just told whatever came to my mind.
Aunt: very nice name tanya
Me: thank you maam
Aunt: please call me aunty.
Me: ok aunty
As aunt was speaking she was constantly staring at me. i was getting scared that i may get caught and i was trying my best to speak in the most girly manner so that she doesn't recognize my voice.
After looking at me for a while aunt said i am very beautiful to which i blushed and said thanks. Now i was sure she dint recognize me .
It was a half an hour drive from the temple to aunts house so on the way she asked everything about me so i told her that i am studying in a girls college and stay in hostel. While we were speaking i
noticed aunt was laughing and smiling and talking so nicely, it reminded me of her when uncle was alive, she used to be just like this at that time. By the time we reached aunts house we both had
become really good friend and were chit-chatting like 2 ladies. We reached aunts house and as she was getting down the taxi even i got down to say bye and i was relieved that she is going now and i
was not caught so it was seriously a big relief. She gave me a hug and said
Aunt: tanya tomorrow is Sunday and i am sure you will have a holiday why don't you come home for lunch tomorrow?
I was shocked by this question i did not know what to say because tomorrow is Sunday and tarun will have to meet aunt so how can tarun and tanya be here at the same time so i told aunt i cant come,
on hearing that she got sad and i couldn't see her sad face because after so many years she was happy so without thinking much i said ok aunty i will come. On hearing that she got so excited and
hugged me like a young girl hugging her friend. then she said good night and went inside her house and I sat in the taxi and left for my house
To be contd..
#268
Tinuu(Wednesday, 19 October 2016 10:38)
Nice story Raghav....keep write moreeeee
#269
Rupali(Thursday, 20 October 2016 00:57)
Glad to hear that your stories will be coming for a long time Raghav
#270
Shivaranjini(Thursday, 20 October 2016 04:33)
great write story raghav pls continue More part
Shivaranjini
#271
Raghav(Thursday, 20 October 2016 05:48)
Part 9.
On the way back home after dropping aunt to her house i was still in a state of shock. I couldn't get over the fact that i had spent about an hour with my aunt and she dint catch me. my house was
just 15mins away from my aunts house, as i reached i paid the taxi driver and went into the house, i was so tensed thinking about today and what's going to happen tomorrow that i dint even try the
breast foams, i just threw it on the sofa and went into my bedroom and lied down on the bed. When i closed my eyes to sleep everything that happened today was flashing in front of my eyes. From the
incident that happened in the store to spending time with aunt as a girl every thing kept repeating in my mind and thinking about tomorrow i had Goosebumps all over my body, with these taught i dint
realize when i fell asleep.
I woke up early on Sunday as it was a big day, and the first thing i did was to call aunt as tarun and i informed her that i am going out with friends and if i return early then i will come to your
house if not i will come tomorrow evening, aunt was little sad on hearing that but when i promised to come the next day she agreed, she also told me that she had invited her friend for lunch, but she
didn't know that i am not coming for the same reason so that she can spend time with her friend.
Once i spoke to aunt i looked at the clock and it was 10am so i had 2 hours to leave but before that i had to buy a new sim card because if aunt asks for my number then i cant give my actual mobile
number because she already has taruns number so i dint want to get caught hence i just wore a track pant and a shirt and went out to bring a sim and returned in half an hour as it is very easy to get
a sim. Once i came back i got rid of my male clothes and took my towel and went in to take bath. Today was a special day as i would be spending time with aunt as a girl and moreover today i was also
going to wear the breast foams which would enhance my beauty and make me feel even better. As i was taking bath i was thinking what to wear today, as it was a big day for me i decided to wear a
saree, because i loved sarees and a woman looks the best in saree and moreover i had not worn a saree since i came to ooty so was really excited.
After bathing i came out and dried myself, then wiped my hair and blew them dry with a drier, after that i applied lotion and wore my panty then i went out to the hall and took the box containing the
breast foams and came back to the bedroom and sat on the bed, i read all the steps mentioned in the directions to use and as mentioned i wore a bra and marked out the shape on my chest using
eyeliner, then i removed the bra and took the foams whose one side had sticker material to stick on to the chest. Then i carefully took one at a time and kept it on my chest and pressed it and once i
did both as advised in the manual i lied down on my back pressing my breasts with my palm for 15 minutes. After 15 mins when i got up i felt the best pleasure of my life. I could feel my breasts
hanging and when i walked the breasts were bouncing. It felf so good and now i felt like a complete woman. The foam stuck on to my skin and due to the weight my skin was getting pulled downwards and
i cant explain how happy i felt.
Keeping my excitement aside i wore a bra and when hooked the bra i pressed my boobs close to each other creating a natural cleavage. I now had sexy boobs popping out of my bra and the color of the
foam was exactly the color of my skin and with some makeup at the joints i looked so real the no one could tell its fake.
To be contd ...
#272
Raghav(Thursday, 20 October 2016 05:48)
Part 10.
After that i took out all the 3 sarees i had and kept it on the bed, i was unable to decide which one to wear as all 3 were equally good. Then i choose to wear a black saree with a thin red border.
It was a very beautiful & simple saree and i was sure that many would drool looking at me after i wore it..
Once the saree was decided i took out the matching black blouse and petticoat and wore it. Today i had covered the mirror as i wanted to see myself in the mirror only after i was completely
ready.
I started draping the saree ad as the cloth touched my skin it gave a very good feeling. A feeling that cant be explained. I carefully draped the saree and ensured that my fair and perfectly shaped
stomach was visible. Then pinned up the saree wherever necessary and i was done wearing the saree. Next i took a hair brush and neatly brushed my hair which were now almost touching my back and due
to regular straightening and conditioning it looked beautiful. After the hair i took out a small mirror and using that i started doing my makeup. Today i had decided to keep it simple as i would be
with aunt in the house only so i applied little foundation and gave a light pink blush on my cheeks, then used eyeliner followed by lip-gloss. Once the makeup was done i took out clip on earrings and
wore them and also wore a simple chain in my neck and after that sprayed some perfume and took out my simple 2“ heels that i had bought only to wear on saree, and once i wore it i was completely
ready now and it was time to unveil the princess so i lifted my hand to pull out the cloth that was over the mirror and closed my eyes, once i pulled the cloth i slowly opened my eyes and saw in the
mirror...
to be contd...
#273
Zara(Thursday, 20 October 2016 11:40)
Superb story Raghav... I am your fan now ... please post next pat asap ... :)
#274
vasantha(Friday, 21 October 2016 10:03)
raghav your very super pls continue srs pls continue your stories very earlier to read your stories pls pls continue i am your fan pa
#275
Anisha(Friday, 21 October 2016 21:07)
Nie story raghav
#276
Grammar(Friday, 21 October 2016 22:46)
Raghav stop writing this is the worst story i ever seen. It should be forced crossdressing not gay theme. Please stop writing i can't tolerate anymore.
Thanks for the comments
Grammar is it compulsory to write a forced crossdressing story ? I taught this place is for all types of stories ... guys if only forced crossdressing stories should be written then please let me
know I will stop the story
#279
sirisha(Saturday, 22 October 2016 00:38)
Raghav continue the remaining parts
#280
khushi(Saturday, 22 October 2016 06:11)
If you cant tolorate then dont read and shut the fuck up @grammar.
Raghav you continue...
#281
Chandani(Saturday, 22 October 2016 06:22)
Sweet story.. Please continue this
#282
Grammar(Saturday, 22 October 2016 11:39)
Khushi i think you and raghav both are fucking each other and raghav please stop writing this story.
#283
preeti(Saturday, 22 October 2016 13:01)
Ragav plzzz plzzzzz plzzzz write storiess.We are waiting for your stories
#284
Grammar(Saturday, 22 October 2016 14:16)
i apologise raghav and kushi. i also wanted to write a good stories but i couldn't. that's why i m jealous of any story writers. i accept that i am nuts, kutriya, harami, etc... pls forgive me.
#285
seetha(Saturday, 22 October 2016 21:01)
HaibRagav your stories is beautiful pleaseeee post stories
#286
Srs(Sunday, 23 October 2016 01:00)
Shalma please continue ur story pleaseeee.
#287
Vishakha kumari(Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:07)
Welldone. Raghav
#288
Vishakha kumari(Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:10)
Hllo i am vishakha if any body in online friendship snd eould like to be feminised on my command reply with e mail id
#289
Vishkanya(Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:14)
A Bet was all I lost to my Bhabhi and my fate was changed. I was on a trip to Delhi to visit my Cousin. After mingling with them for a few days, I and Bhabhi had become quite acquainted with each
other. My cousin had to leave country for his usual overseas assignment for around a month. We two were left at home and were enjoying each other’s company. She often called my girly faced because I
hadn’t grown too much of beard on my face for the age of 21. She used to tease me by calling me sweety, dolly etc. Little did I know that one of these names will be picked for me very soon. She was
beauty of heaven, too fair, average body with flesh at right places, ample bust and hips. Always wore Sarees and Salwar Kameez whether at home or out. One usual day we were having discussion on some
movies. We got into a bet and it came down that one who loses will comply to winner’s orders for 1 week. I eventually lost and had to submit gracefully. Now she dropped the bomb of her wish. She
wanted me to be and live like a GIRL for a week. Do everything that girls do and try my best to become a girl for the period. I resisted, requested, pleaded to ask me something else to do but she was
adamant and said I shouldn’t worry because I am almost half a girl already by looks and ways and behavior she will teach me. Besides, she got a little dominant with authority of winning the bet. So I
had to submit.
#290
Vishkanya(Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:15)
It started then, first Bhabhi took me to the bathroom and asked me to get naked. I was pretty embarrassed but had to comply as I had lost the bet. She started applying hair removing cream all over my
body. I got a hard with sensations of her soft palm rubbing everywhere on my body. She rubbed a little longer on my nipples. Finally when she was done, she asked me to bathe and come out wrapping a
towel in girls’ way. I did as asked. Then she gave me a black chudidaar salwar and kameez and asked to wear. It was too tight to get on and besides the smoothness of the fabric was sending tingling
sensations in my now hairless body. I somehow managed to get in to the dress and appeared before her. I kind of liked the sensation on my skin and was embarrassed for the fact. She looked happier as
my face got red with shame. Then she fixed a wig on my head and did the full girls’ makeup. Filled my hands with bangles and bracelets. Tied a pair of anklets to my feet with ghunghroos and jingling
rings in little fingers of me feet. With nail polish and little brush up, my transformation was complete. She adored her work and my beauty as a girl and started taking pictures with her camera
making me pose in different ways. I was feeling very uncomfortable with tightness and silkiness of the dress, jingling noises of anklets, bracelets, bangles and rings which I was carrying. Worst was
the dupatta, which I could hardly carry on both of my shoulders at the same time. I could hardly believe what was being done to me and just wanted it to get over soon.
#291
Vishkanya(Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:16)
After my whole transformation and photo session, she asked me to get along with the work. Moving around in such position was highly problematic and walking in tight high heels was almost impossible.
When I did all the work she gave, she asked me to go on the terrace and gather dried up clothes. She wanted me to be displayed like this to whole neighborhood. I almost pleaded not to make to go up
where anyone could see and recognize me wearing girl’s clothes. But she denied my request and said, first, rules are rules. I had to comply all her orders for the day. Secondly, no one will recognize
or think that I was not a girl. I somehow gathered courage and moved towards the staircase. Hesitatingly and with all the trouble of dupatta, heels and jingles of accessories, I climbed up and found
a lady on the roof adjacent house. I got frightened and bowed my head down and moved toward clothes. Quickly I gathered all clothes and rushed down as fast as I could fearing what would the lady say
if she recognizes that I am a boy dressed as a girl. In the process I hurt my feet and ran down to the room.
#292
Vishkanya(Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:16)
I then requested her to get this over as I have already hurt myself and gone through enough embarrassment. She looked even in more playful mood and said, this is just the beginning and you have whole
week to stay like girl. Then she said, I will be called Dolly for my feminine avatar.
So Dolly, you have seen some of the troubles that girls get through in their lives and fortunately for you, you cannot go through all the trouble which they get as you are only half a girl. But I
should learn to be a girl as much as possible and also enjoy pleasures that girls get.
What’s that Bhabhi please tell so that I get some relief in my ordeal.
#293
Raghav(Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:21)
Part 11.
When i looked in the mirror i was simply amazed, it was a beautiful girl looking back at me. i could not believe my eyes as i had not seen myself look so beautiful. My fair thin waist line and navel
was visible and since the saree was black my white stomach looked very cute, the blouse was perfect fit and the breast foams gave it a very natural look. Everything looked perfect with my silky
smooth hair falling on my shoulders. i saw my fair, smooth hands and realized something was missing and that's when it struck me that i was not wearing bangles, so finish off my dressing i wore a
dozen of black metallic bangles and trust me it gave a very very good feel and look. Finally i was done dressing and left for my aunts house.
I reached my aunts house by taxi in 15 mins and to my surprise aunt was waiting for me at the door. On seeing me get down the taxi aunt came forward and welcomed me and praised my beauty and said i
look very very beautiful in a saree and i should wear it more often. She told me that her niece Tarun couldn't come today to which i just replied with an ok as i dint want to discuss on that topic
because i dint want to get caught. We went and sat in the hall and started talking like long lost friends, i saw a lot of difference in aunt, she looked more happy and spoke so much, she was giggling
and laughing like a young girl. After talking for an hour we decided to have lunch and while having lunch my aunt told me that she had a surprise for me. i was a little tensed after hearing that and
many questions came to my mind. And as we were eating i was only thinking about the surprise.
To be contd....
#294
Raghav(Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:25)
Part 12
Once we finished eating i helped aunt in cleaning all the vessels, i tucked my saree palo in my waist like a house wife and did all the work, that was an amazing feeling and i had completely
forgotten that i was a boy, i felt like i was born as a girl and was doing this every day, my ant appreciated me that i carry off myself very well in a saree. Once the cleaning was done aunt took me
to her bedroom and asked me to sit on the bed, she opened her wardrobe and took out a bag and kept it on the bed. She asked me to open it and after i opened it i saw many pretty designer sarees, the
sarees were very very beautiful and looked new. I told aunt that these sarees are very beautiful and why don't you wear it. Aunt got little sad on hearing me and i very low voice she said “my husband
loved to see me in designer sarees, every time we went for shopping he would buy me at least one designer saree there are 10 sarees in this bag which i never wore as i had many, but now my husband is
not there i cant wear these so please take this as you can wear it and i will feel very good““ i was sad after hearing that, i consoled aunt and hugged her and told her that i cant take it but aunt
was in no mood to listen she forced me to take it and when i was still resisting she said that she will not speak to me or meet me in future if i don't take this. Then i had to agree, i thanked her
and hugged her and she kissed my forehead and blessed me. then aunt walked to the wardrobe and took out a box and kept it on the bed and opened it, there were many beautiful designer jewelry sets in
it she asked me to take this also but i refused as it would be very expensive stuff but aunt said that this was artificial and not original and again forced me to take it so i had to listen. The box
had many sets and beautiful earrings and danglers, there was a beautiful set of black jhumkas and necklace so aunt picked it up and put the necklace around my neck and tightened the end to make it
look perfect, next she took the jhumkas and moved my hair to put it and that's when she realized that my ears were not pierced, she was shocked and asked me why have not pierced my ears ?? i was
stunned to hear that, i dint know what to say i.. i was thinking that now i will get caught.. aunt asked again..“ tell me tanya why have you not pierced your ears ?“ i told her “when i was small my
parents took me to pierce bout there i saw a girl who was crying when the pierced her ears so i got scared and started crying and did not let them pierce my ears and since then i have been wearing
clip on earrings and when ever my parents would ask me to pierce i would cry so they never forced me after that““ on hearing this aunt started laughing and said “ o dear for that little pain you have
not done it, there are so many ways now to pierce your ears and they pain vey little. Do you want me to get your ears pierced ?““ i immediately said “no no aunty its ok i will manage with clip ons“
but aunt said that you cant enjoy many beautiful jhumkas as clip ons don't have many designs, finally i agreed and told her that i will pierce but not now after few days. Aunt said ok and asked me to
come to her as soon as i pierced so that she can see me. i agreed and with that we packed all the stuff and went out and kept it in the hall, we had our evening coffee and snaks and after that i left
to my house with all the bags.
On my way back i was thinking about the day and was so happy to spend my day with my aunt as a girl as was happy and excited to get so many gifts from her. I reached home and kept all the sarees my
aunt gave and arranged my wardrobe. I now had quite a big girls wardrobe and lot of pritty clothes and beautiful saree. After that i finiched my work for the night and did arrangements for college
next day and slept. The next day after comming back from college i met aunt again and now it had become a routine for me to spend atleast one hour with aunt every day as a girl and on Sundays i would
be with her as a boy..
to be contd...
#295
Raghav(Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:31)
Part 13.
Slowly time passed and it had been 3 months since me and aunt became friends ( tanya and aunt) it was my birthday after two days and my mom was coming to ooty to spend a few days with me and also
celebrate my birthday. During my moms visit she was going to stay in my aunts house and even i had to stay there which meant that no crossdressing for a week, i was sad that i will not be able to
crossdress for a week and moreover i was sad that i cant crossdress on my birthday as i had planned a lot of things for my birthday. As i was sitting at home thinking about all this i got a call from
my aunt.. that means tanya got a call from aunt, aunt told tanya that it was her nieces birthday (tarun’s) day after tomorrow so she wanted to buy him a gift and wanted my help so she told me to meet
her tomorrow and also invited me for the birthday party but since tarun and tanya cant be there at the same time and since mom was going to be there for a week and i cant crossdress and meet aunt i
told aunt that there is an emergency and tomorrow night i am going to my hometown for one week. On hearing that my aunt was sad and told to cancel my trip but i told her its compulsory to go so she
agreed but on one condition that i spend the entire next day with her as she has to buy gifts and she also had some other things to do. So i agreed and we decided to meet at 11am at her house.
The next day i got up and decided to bunk college as i had to meet aunt. I was going to be a busy day as we were going out and will be walking a lot i decided to wear a punjabi salwaar suit as it is
comfortable and girls look good in that. So i wore it and as decided i went to aunts house. Aunt was already outside her house waiting for me and as I reached there she got into the same taxi and me
went to the ooty commercial road which was the main place for shopping in ooty. We got down the road and first went to a big hotel there and ordered food for the next day as aunt had invited many of
her friends also to celebrate. After that we started walking and we reached a big ladies clothing showroom and as we were going to enter aunt asked me to get a bottle of water from the next store and
by the time i came back aunt was outside the store, i asked her why she came out? to which she replied that she did not like anything so she came out.
After looking for a gift for an hour we got tired and aunt told me that she had an appointment at the beauty parlor and it was getting late so she said that we can resume shopping after her session
at the parlor. I was shocked to hear that as my aunt had stopped going to the parlor after her husbands death, aunt saw my shocked face and said “I know that u are shocked but let me tell you that
when my husband was alive i used to go to the parlor every month to set my hair, eyebrows and other things “ i nodded my head and said that's great u have stated to maintain yourself again to which
she replied that is all because of me and she gets inspired looking at me. i was happy to hear that and hugged her, after that we went to the parlour.
To be contd..
#296
Raghav(Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:39)
Part 14.
After we reached the parlor every one there was happy to see aunt, as she was a regular customer and everyone came and greeted her and were happy to see her after a long time. They taught i was aunts
daughter and told aunt that she has a very beautiful daughter, aunt laughed and said that i was her friend and not daughter.
The ladies in the parlor took me and aunt to our seats which were next to each other and started to wash and set out hair, once that was done they saw my eyebrows and said i had beautiful eyebrows
naturally and did not need threading. Next they did my facial and shaped my nails and asked me to choose a colour for nail paint , i was hesitant as tomorrow onwards i was going to be tarun and not
tanya but aunt forced me and i taught its ok as i can remove it after going home so i selected a light pink color. After that they applied a nice and cool face pack and asked me to close my eyes and
sit for half an hour, and in that that time i dint know when i fell asleep, i was woken up after and hour and when i opened my eyes i saw aunt and she looked so beautiful with a new hairstyle, shaped
eyebrows and lipstick etc. we got up started to walk outside, aunt paid the bill and when we were walking outside i just glanced at the mirror to see myself, i was shocked, shocked beyond
imagination, my hair looked different and i had a very girly hairstyle, it looked extremely good and made me even more beautiful, aunt saw my face and said “u look wonderful“
Me: thank u aunt but when did they style my hair ?
Aunt: when you were sleeping dear, i told them to style your hair
Me: oh
I was sure to get caught if my mom saw me in this hair style, it was the most girly hairstyle. I taught it was for aunts hipness and after going home i can straighten it and set it like before. I
noticed my pretty nails and we walked out of the parlor. As we were walking i noticed that my aunt kept looking at my face with a smile. Initially i looked at her and smiled back but she continued
looking at me and smiling so i got suspicious but before i could ask aunt she spoke.
Aunt: dear i am feeling hungry can we eat?
Me ok aunty lets go to that restaurant on the opposite side
Aunt: yes that's a good one
We crossed the road and entered the restaurant, we found a nice place to sit and ordered food, after that when i was looking around, i could still see aunt smiling. This time i asked her why she is
smiling from that time ? aunt got up from her seat and asked to to come with her. I got up and followed, she went to one corner of the restaurant which had a big mirror and stood there, i followed
and stood next to her. She turned towards me and gently with one finger she moved the hair that were covering my ears. After that what i saw shook me completely, MY EARS WERE PIERCED. I was shocked
to see my ears pierced and couldnt control my self and started crying, i now knew that tomorrow when mom comes and wen i become tarun and go in front of them with my ears pierced and in this girly
hairstyle aunt will find out and my crossdressing is going to end and thinking about that i couldn't control and started crying even more, aunt looked at me and said
Aunt: why are you crying dear ?
Me: why did u ask them to pierce my ears ?
Aunt : dear you look beautiful, just see yourself in the mirror
Me. no i cant pierce ... because ...
And i start to cry even more. Aunt suddenly pulled me towards her and gave a tight hug. I was still crying and dint stop at all, aunt gently started rubbing my back and said
Aunt: its ok now. Calm down tarun.
Me: WHAT ??? Tarun ?
Aunt: Yes sweetie its enough now i know everything
Me: no , i mean i am tanya
Aunt: Tarun now its no point hiding, i kno everything so its better u accept
On hearing that i hung my head in shame i dint kno how to react or what to tell i was still hugging her and dint know how to face her
Aunt: I know there are a lot of questions in your mind but first lets have lunch and then we shall speak
To be contd...
#297
sirisha(Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:56)
Well continuation raghav maintain the same
#298
Raghav(Sunday, 23 October 2016 05:42)
Part 15.
As we were eating i kept my head down and was eating quietly, even aunt dint say anything, i was so tensed that i couldn't even swallow the food and even my ears had started to pain and i was
constantly touching my ears and that's when aunty spoke “they maid your ears numb before piercing, now it will start paining but don't worry it will be fine by tomorrow morning“ i just shook my head
and did not utter a single word. As we were eating i slowly raised my head to see aunts face and she was smiling and i still had tears in my eyes, looking at me aunt said “o dear please don't cry, i
am not angry“ on hearing that i felt a little relaxed and sat comfortably. After we finished eating aunt ordered for ice cream and as the waiter went she turned towards me and said
Aunt: yes tanya now we can speak
Me: aunty you the truth now so y are u calling me tanya ?
Aunt : because i love tanya and want you to always remain as tanya
Me: are u serious aunty ?
Aunt: yes dear i am serious and its no problem at all
I got so happy that i jumped out of my seat and hugged aunt, she responded with equal excitement and kissed me on my cheeks
Me: now tell me aunty when did you come to know about me ?
Aunt: i came to know the first time itself when i met you that night in the taxi but still i had a doubt but it was confirmed when you came home the next day in that black saree
Me: but how ?
Aunt: my dear girl you are like my kid, when you were born we were staying in a joint family and i have helped your mother in taking care of you till you were 3 years old. And when you were 2 years
old you had hurt yourself and got stiches on your back, that day when you were in a saree i could see that mark on your back, and moreover u are like my kid and don't you think i will find out just
by touching you.??
As aunt was talking i was feeling so shy and aunt said
Aunt: o my baby is blushing ?? now you tell me when did you become this cute little girl ?
i told everything to aunt right from the beginning when i used to crossdress in moms clothes and everything else. On hearing that aunt said
Aunt: o dear why dint you tell me or your parents about your feelings ?
Me: i was scared aunt that you people may not understand
Aunt: baby for all parents their child's happiness is the most important thing no matter what. If the kid is happy then the parents are also happy, now lets not waste time and get going as i have a
lot of work to do for tomorrow.
I was so happy that i cant explain t was like i had got the entire world i was just too happy. Before i walked out aunt said
Aunt: my dear, beautiful girls like you always need to look perfect. You have ruined your makeup by crying. I will wait outside and you go to the washroom and do touchup to your makeup and come , and
remember you are a girl so go to the girls washroom
To be contd...
#299
vasantha(Sunday, 23 October 2016 07:37)
raghava your stories very super pa pls continue pa & srs pls continue your fan pa pls continue fashion stories pls pls pls i am request very very very much pa pls pls pls continue
#300
Meena(Sunday, 23 October 2016 08:15)
@Raghav : Nice story..
#301
guru(Sunday, 23 October 2016)
Yes raguv nice story i ever hear plz continue pa
#302
Zara(Sunday, 23 October 2016 15:09)
Superb Raghav ... :) :)
#303
Vani(Sunday, 23 October 2016 16:18)
@Vishkanya: Beautiful plot. Please continue the story
#304
Raghav(Monday, 24 October 2016 11:15)
Thanks a lot for the comments everyone ... will post the next 4 parts tomorrow
#305
Poornima(Monday, 24 October 2016 14:57)
Vishkanya, please continue your story. Its very beautiful
#306
sirisha(Monday, 24 October 2016 15:46)
Nice go through raghav maintain same
#307
sirisha(Monday, 24 October 2016 15:52)
Nice continuation raghav go on
#308
JRS(Monday, 24 October 2016 23:53)
Changed
Hi my name is mark. I live in outer part of Chennai, a IT graduate and working in a software firm. I'm married and no children. Our life goes well when a regular change of shift happened, She works
in morning shift 6 to 3 she will be home only by 3:30pm and my job timing is usual UK shift I go by 3pm we hardly meet only on Saturday and Sundays even if we stay at same home. We have a maid she
usually come morning at 9 am and leave by 11 am and before I leave I'll handover the house keys to her. So this is a regular routine that happen. Let's move into story, I've a secret fetish cross
dressing, I've stopped this after my marriage. after a break since me and my wife hardly meet I've decided to restart my dressing. One fine Monday, after my maid left. I quickly searched my wife old
saree and other dresses abandoned, I managed to take few old blouses and stretched bra's and panties and few inskirts that lost colours, and her old sarees. I kept all these separately in a bag, and
placed in a separate cover and hid it with my wife old abandoned junks. I kept looking at my new stash of dresses and desperately wanted to wear immediately, time is twelve and I got to start to
office only by 3 so I had time. Quickly dressed up in her stretched panties and bra, I wore her inskirts and looked in mirror, yes it is a perfect fit, I'm quite equal to my partner size, but a
little big, hence her stretched clothes were a perfect fit for me, then I wore her blouse, and took the saree,i touched the saree, same old feel the sexual pleasure without touching myself, that was
a great feel I quick draped the saree as fast I was, and pinned the pleat in skirt and blouse i looked perfect, and a little makeup will surely give me a perfect picture, I don't usually keep beard
on my face, so it was quick and easy to start my makeup with a little primer and a basic foundation and little bit of mascara with a bindi, wow I looked amazing, if my wife look at me now she will
definitely fall in love with me, I had a little walk with my wife heels and went into my bedroom and had a peaceful sleep after so long years, I woke up by 2 and quickly removed all traces of makeup
and got ready to office and left, and this has become a regular routine, everyday dress up for 2 hours to 3 hours and dream about dressing up in weekends, and this made our relationship more stronger
than before.
To be continued….
#309
JRS(Tuesday, 25 October 2016 00:27)
Changed 2:
And another usual day of my dressing, I dressed up with usual makeup and was walking inside my house, a quick heart attack came when I heard the front door knocked, I quickly peeped through the door
lens and saw it's my maid,
Five minutes Selvi, my maid's name
I went to bathroom and quickly removed my little makeup first and found the mascara is still there on my eyes I took a cotton and dipped on coconut oil and wiped the mascara, and this already took a
little long I only removed the saree and covered my skirt with a dhoti and wore a round neck T-shirt and she rang the bell again, completely covered in sweat I opened the door she looked at me and
asked
Any problem sir? Why u look so wet? Fever? She quickly came inside and wait for 10 minutes I'll make a strong tea…
In that tension I didn't speak up Much and said ok yes. Just bring me a cup of tea.
She went to kitchen and I slowly walked to my sofa and sat, she was looking at me weird from kitchen, she quickly made tea and gave me the tea. She looked here and there and asked why is everything
seems messy?
No nothing I just dropped my old collection coins , was searching that. Why did u come?
Sir I need my salary five days in advance I spoke to madam last evening and she asked me to collect it from you.
Oh is it! Wait I'll get that for you. I slowly got up and walked toward my bedroom and came with my wallet and gave her the salary, told her i was short with 1000rs I'll give the same tomorrow
morning.
She said ok, shall I ask u something Sir?
Yes selvi, what is that?
Are u wearing something underneath your shirt and dhoti? She laughed.
I stammered, no ah.. why? Am I looking fat?
It looks like you are wearing a blouse and skirt, look it dhoti is strictly sticked to skirt and doesn't flow as it does normally when I see my husband wear and look at your back the sweat covered
your T-shirt but not the blouse worn area. Why are u behaving like this Sir?
Selvi don't joke I'm not wearing anything like u imagine, u go on we will meet tomorrow morning.
Oh is it?sir if u r not wearing skirt then fold it above your knees! If u r not wearing a blouse remove your T-shirt !
I hesitated a bit and started sweating again, selvi please do me a favour,
Yes Sir! What is that?
Don't tell this to my wife please..
She laughed aloud, and so it's all true is it? So were you wearing a saree? Can I see you dressed like that please?
Selvi please don't joke, forget it u saw nothing and that's it.
So is it mark? Then I've to discuss about this to your wife tonight Sir… and I think I won't see you again as a SIR.
Don't threaten me, Selvi I'll do Anything for you, okay! But please don't tell to my wife. I need to go office let me go, bye I asked her to Leave.
She stood there and said, you said you'll do anything, now go wear the saree finish the little makeup and come here fast.
With so much tension I went to my room, removed my dhoti and t-shirt and wore the saree, stuffed my bra cup and as usual a little makeup and came out.
She saw me and praised wow Mark Sir you look so much like a woman, and why are you wearing an old saree, I too have these model sarees , and this is a cheaper one how did u got it?
Thanks selvi this is my wife's old saree she wore when she was in village, it's her mom's saree and she never wore it.
What do u call yourself when you wear a saree?
malathy … I'll call myself malathy..
Nice name malathy, I'll call you like this itself,ok I've to leave bye. Tomorrow morning I'll come for balance 1000rs. You be ready as malathy. I'll be here by 9am.
But selvi I'll wake up by 11 only I'll come home only by 1am.
That's your problem Malathy, you as malathy tomorrow 9am, else I won't come inside this house until I tell your stupid hobby to your wife.
I stood there in silence and said OK selvi.. bye now..
She left and I quickly changed and started to office.
To be continued...
#310
Grammar(Tuesday, 25 October 2016 00:47)
Omg what's going on both raghav and jrs are writing the same concept story. You have to learn from Vishkanya. I beg you please please please stop writing your story.
thanks i verry understand about your article , verry nice
#312
JRS(Tuesday, 25 October 2016 01:17)
Changed 3:
Next day morning I woke up late by 8:45 am I quickly dressed in saree and little makeup, morning face light makeup cheap old saree. My usual wig with tied bun behind, I looked in mirror and realised
I look more alike my maid. Not big difference.
Doorbell rang, I peeped through the lens, it's my maid. I opened the door, Malathy look how you look, beautiful dear, I will take you home as the way you are, you are such cute you know.
Thanks Selvi, Here is your 1000rs.
Thanks dear, and one minute. Selvi went out and brought the mop and broom, and hold this malathy. I took the broom and about to close the door,
Suddenly selvi pushed me out of my door and locked the door. Now I am standing outside of my own house, panicked and in shock I rang my door bell, Selvi asked me to clean the terrace and come.
Selvi I'll get caught, please neighbours are office going time and if they see me. Please….
Malathy don't panic it's your Beauty, no one will notice finish and come back soon, if u stand still everyone will look at you, act normal and finish work asap and come ring the bell.
I quickly started cleaning and finished the Terrace, people crossed by, my neighbours crossed none give a big notice, a very few gave a look and just passed, I quickly ran to my door and rang the
bell. Selvi opened the door.
I went inside with sweat, I looked selvi in anger, she smiled, look don't behave, I may have to tell your wife.
Selvi what is wrong with you ?
Shut up and go to kitchen wash everything That your wife kept.
I looked selvi in disbelief, what is she really thinking? How far it's all going to go?
I started washing and selvi was standing behind inspecting me in every action and guiding me how to wash properly.
After kitchen she asked me to make two cup of tea. One for her and one for Mark Sir.
I don't know how to make tea selvi, she came with me and taught how to.make it and advised me not to forget this. I did as she told.
Malathy arrange everything on this house and got back to your normal self, and I'll meet you tomorrow morning as Malathy.
Selvi this won't work out, we have to stop this. I said
Malathy you should stop this or else I have to tell your wife.
I stood in silence and tired from today works. Selvi left.
I went had my tea, and remained in saree for a while till 2 pm and refreshed myself and started to office.
Next day morning I again woke up same timing same makeover Selvi asked me to repeat the same. I did as she told. And Friday came usually we keep everything in washing machine and costly clothes to
selvi for washing. And this time Selvi did the same thing to me i washed all the costly dress and she asked me to go terrace and dry all our clothes I did as she told, before she leaves I
called
Selvi tomorrow and day after tomorrow is weekend and please don't make me do this , my wife , if she know I'll be in trouble.
Malathy tomorrow I'll be here and you as Mark. Our deal is deal, I won't let this secret to your wife. And you can still live your secret life, I'll help you…
thanks Selvi… and thanks for this wonderful experience.
My weekend job continued. I woke up early with my wife, and she was surprised to see me awake early, and selvi came by 9am and she started Her duties.
While me and my wife were talking, I was looking how selvi was working so fast and elegant.
To be continued..
#313
JRS(Tuesday, 25 October 2016 01:27)
This story I write for myself and people are interested only to read, if not interested shut the fuck up and get lost. Don't mess with me I'll pull your balls to your hole and staple it and u don
shit... Ass hole... Grammar..
#314
JRS(Tuesday, 25 October 2016 02:27)
Changed 4:
My wife stood and went to take bath..
Selvi took all the clothes washed yesterday and whispered Malathy, tomorrow I won't come and you fold and iron all these clothes ok.. time up I got to leave by 11 am. I smiled and shoes thumbs up
symbol to her.
Next day Selvi was in leave, my wife sadly told me, I told her ok dear today is your mark Day, I'll do all the works you take rest. And you sonyhe cooking I'll do the ironing and folding! What do you
say?
My wife felt so happy and happily said ok mark now times on let's start.. full day I enjoyed doing all works and imagined myself wearing saree and doing all works.
Next day morning came, I eagerly dressed up as malathy and waited for Selvi, and she came as usual and I continued my work as well. She appreciated my works this week.
Selvi said from next week she will come only on weekends and I suppose to do all work in my home.
I asked so you will get paid for what I work?
She said yes, and if you like this living I'll arrange to earn by working 11 to 2 and I can still earn.
I was laughing and asked selvi how you think I can fool people and work outside.
Malathy you look perfect and you can easily fool anyone, you think any of your neighbours questioned in last 2 weeks who that new lady doing brooming the terrace?
No Selvi, if you think I can still perform, I'm ready.
A smile crossed in her face. Malathy I'll let you join in a local housekeeping, projects based on companies, no uniforms just a feminine coat over your saree, you interested?
I thought for a moment, I liked to cross dress and why is this? Is this really what I want? All the sexual feel I get by working as a women is making me urge to do more, being Malathy I said a quick
yes.
Malathy tomorrow morning 8am be ready let's meet that leader and apply for that job. They only need your signature, so prepare one sign as malathy ok.. with that she kissed on my forehead and
left.
Next day morning for the first time Selvi came and took me outside of my house, myself as malathy I took small steps looking at the whole world as a woman I felt different. The company was very next
to my street, when I met the lead, they asked did selvi told you about the job?
I said yes. They pulled some papers and InkPad for sign, I said I can sign, selvi looked at me and gave a no look, I understood the situation and acted like a illiterate, and I didn't had the
opportunity to read the papers, they asked me to sign the papers.
I looked at Selvi, she smiled and asked me to sign ..
I just signed… and the lead said. You have to report here by 10:30 and cab will take me to places where I have to do chores till 1:30 and they drop u by 2pm . I smiled and said ok.
While walking back home, I asked selvi. What is that paper I signed?
I don know Malathy, my mom is working there, while going back home we will meet her and get the details ok.
Ok selvi, we quickly reached her home. Her mom looked at me asked who is this beautiful girl. Selvi said she is her new housekeeping friend. I smiled to her MOM.
Selvi told her what happened and what I signed.
Her mom looked Selvi very seriously why did u took her to that place?
She looked me and said, Malathy it's an agreement you have to work there for next one year. Failed to do you have to face legal formalities. Saturday Sunday they will call all day. It's hard to take
leave. But you have to forget all these in that two hours. Don't worry Malathy.only in year know adjust.
Hearing this I was completely shocked and looked at Selvi… I called selvi shall we leave?
Yes Malathy she came with me till home.
I was silent till I reach home once I reach home I came inside soon and locked the door.
Selvi what have you done? How will I work every Saturday and Sunday?
Sorry Malathy I gave them my address only the cab will come my house, you go there get ready and join the work with my mom. Our little secret will be secure…
It sounds to be a plan.. ok Selvi. But.. I dunno where this all going to end… if my wife knows my life will come to an end… sadly I started my work again.
Being Malathy…
To be continued...
#315
JRS(Tuesday, 25 October 2016 03:06)
Changed 5:
Sorry to rush and finish this story. I've got only such time. This may be my last story for this year. If anyone talented please build up this story.
Second weekend started, I woke early in morning and my secret belonging are already taken by selvi to her place. Ive informed my wife that I'm going for a special work during weekends 2 hours all
weekend and this will last for next 1 year. My wife looked me weird what?
Yes dear and I will get some 6000 every month. Hearing this. Ya ok. If it really give us some money. Yes I insist you go. I kissed my darling good bye and reached Selvi house, there her mom was
smiling at me Malathy sir ah hmmm come get changed quickly we have to go… I quickly dressed and went with her. Cab came and as usual we reached a corporate and worked two hours cleaning all bathrooms
and floors allocated to us. And I reached back home.
My wife called me and asked why do you smell so filthy, u look terrific! Tel me what exactly you are doing?
I said it's a human resource team we got to engage some little fresh up workout that will keep us fresh, but I actually end of smell bad. Ha ha..
She believed what I said…
Life was going smoothly for about two months, my wife never doubted.
One day that one bad day, I usually woke up and dressed as malathy was doing my chores, and went for job and returning home and when I try to enter, I found the door was open. Without any male
clothes I can't even go to Selvi house to change back.
I sneaked inside the house she was Busy in the bathroom I quickly ran inside my bedroom and was removing my dress, and then I heard stop this mark, just stay as you are and open the door.
I slowly opened the door. To my added shock selvi was there. My eyes filled with tear I started to speak.
Honey I can explain…
Stop it mark I know what a bitch job you are doing. I saw you in one of my client branch clearing and cleaning those stinky bathrooms
But how did you found?
#316
JRS(Tuesday, 25 October 2016 03:10)
Changed Final:
Last story for this year, sorry to rush and close..
How did I? Ive been living with you for past 4 years. I know how you'll do all stupid job. Just as you help me all weekend.
Initially I doubted and noticed you dressing up and working at home, I enquired selvi what the fuck is really happening, and she told me your stupid desires. as she was helping you to live your
fantasy in secret I'll let you live that stupid fantasy 24/7. Today you are going to your company dressed like that as a maid.
What? Dear what about my job? Please don't do this to me?
What if that stupid housekeeping company sent you to company you work?
Sorry honey I didn't thought about that,
You will never think about that you shit. Ive emailed to you boss saying you got a better opportunity.
What? When? No please stop this. I can't take this anymore.
Oh yes you are. Come with me. She took me outside with Selvi to the nearest housekeeping company.
Dear please I won't do this again please don't come there honey please please please…
I was begging my wife and she never listened to me…
Selvi in the other hand In shock said only sorry to me..
Once we reached the place. She called the lead, they actually welcomed her. I was shocked, it was her friends actually running this firm. I was sitting quietly outside. She called me in.
They asked Malathy as you have some family issues and you wants to work as a full time in different projects for next 5 years? As you informed your madam you are ready for this?
I looked at my wife with eyes filled tears…
Oh look at her.. tears of happiness, come on girl sign this…
I silently signed the papers…. Before I reach home she gave me another set of papers.
I asked what this all about.
This is your property, bank accounts, Savings, FD’s everything to be on my name and you with nothing with your name changed as Malathy.
She looked at me straight… What?
You are serious honey? Me as a housekeeping lady and you survive alone?
No you goddamned fool. Look at Selvi, She is my lesbian baby… and we are going to get married officially and get settled in Delhi..
And my dear hubby, as a useless zero… you will stay here at Selvi place…. As MALATHY…
I looked at Selvi! Is everything planned?
Selvi started, yes dear, I told the very first day I caught you, and your wife shared her little secret and with my secret I gave her the life she Wishes… and thinking about you, we wanted to get rid
of you somehow with nothing, with no identity… this plot we created… and everything is as planned…
Hope you are doing well Malathy…
Next day I woke up at 8:00am as Malathy in Selvi House and my new routine continues from here….
#317
Vani(Tuesday, 25 October 2016 15:05)
Nice story SRS.
#318
Jalaja(Tuesday, 25 October 2016 15:06)
Vishkanya, very nice story dear but why you stopped. Please continue
Jrs ur right the same problem is going on with me, telling that i made grammar mistakes and I told already that I am not professional story writer that's why I stopped writing my story.
#321
PriyaSri(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 01:59)
The two men eyed each other with caution. Both were embarrassed by their near nudity and the displayed feminine items. Both men were in chastity both wore identical stainless steel chastity cages of
the ball trap design. Their enclosed penis pointed down and the balls extended and were on display. Sneha sat in a comfortable chair and smiled at the boys. She crossed her legs and sipped her
coffee. Helen had on a pair of wide legged comfortable jeans, a white tunic top with silver trim and comfortable silver boat shoes. The boy that was her husband was called Shyam. Shyam no longer had
husband privileges. He was nude except for the chastity device, earrings, nosering, bangles, mangalsutra, bindi, payals, sindoor with a five inch heel. The other boy was called Ramesh and was a new
friend of Helen. Ramesh was attired the same as Shyam except sindoor and mangalsutra.
Both boys hated the chastity device but were secretly glad to have it on today. Each boy was sexually excited by the appearance of the other boy and the exquisite humiliation of being exposed this
way. Neither boy wanted Sneha or the other boy to see the erection growing in the cage. Both boys and Sneha saw the humiliating erection trying to form. She called the boys over and had them stand in
front of her. Each boy was instructed to put a hand on the others cage and keep it there. Both Shyam and Ramesh did not want this intimate contact with another male and of course Sneha knew this but
because she asked them to touch they touched.
Both boys worried about what she might ask them to do later on. Shyam was worried anytime there was another man around Sneha even if that man was in chastity also. Sneha's age was unknown to Tinker.
She was in fact in her fifties, had black hair with flecks of grey, tall at five feet ten inches in flats, wore Jewelry with minimal make up. She was beautiful and very striking, Shyam was a handsome
man but feminization process had taken its toll. Still good looking and if allowed masculine attire could turn a woman's head. In the sissy costuming he was required to wear the head turning was
usually followed by giggles or the quiet "Oh my God - is that a man?"
Shyam lost his husband privilege the day he was locked in the device around his penis. He of course held on to the hope that it would someday be granted. Ramesh met Sneha on line and even dated her
once or twice. He had tried to seduce her only to be rebuffed and told by her he was getting close to being spanked. He made the mistake of daring her to try it and found himself in the embarrassing
position of being over her knees with his pants down. Ramesh learned this was not a game. Sneha paddled his ass till it shined then she switched from her hand to the sole of her flat shoe and Ramesh
was in tears. With his pants still down he replaced the shoe and then received instruction on shoe worship. Ramesh was a quick learner and his erection told Sneha all she needed to know about
him.
Sneha stood the sobbing Ramesh in front of her and told the poor man that the only way he would be allowed any of her time is to accept his position as a sissy in chastity. Once fitted to the device
Ramesh was trained by Sneha in the sissy arts. She had decided that Ramesh should meet Shyam and the two of them would become matching sissies. Shyam was not taking this news well. Shyam very much
wanted to return to his former status as husband with husband privilege and he knew that with another sissy around that possibility was very distant. Besides he did not want Ramesh to be assisting
Sneha with the intimate tasks that he now did. His leg saving and the once in a while pussy lick and ass sniffing was as close as he was getting to his husband privilege He sure as hell didn't want
to share that with Ramesh.
#322
PriyaSri(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 02:15)
Shyam was almost sure that there were other men Sneha was seeing. He sometimes helped Sneha dress in very dressy outfits for an evening out. There was no explanation ever give to him as to why she
was dressed so nicely or what she was doing. He just hooked the bra, buckled the evening shoe and clipped the jewelry closed as though he was the personal maid. And now this simpering sissy in high
heels shows up and is promised the same serving position as him. Ramesh was hoping that the day would come when he would bed the lovely Sneha the presence of a husband even a sissy husband in
chastity was making that dream fade. To make matters worse for Ramesh, he knew that Sneha had been looking for a man to date and to have casual sex with. Ramesh had hopes of being that man. Instead
she had turned him into the sissy that was holding the caged cock of the woman he desires husband.
Sneha said Shyam meet Ramesh and Ramesh meet Shyam. You girls will become best friends, now kiss cheeks. After an embarrassed cheek kissing by the two boys Sneha went on to explain the new rules. The
boys would greet each other with what she called sissy style. Ramesh would bend forward and Shyam would spread her rear cheeks and smell her special spot then she would kiss it. The positions would
then reverse and Shyam would bend forward and present her ass and Ramesh would sniff and kiss in sissy greeting. Each boy would be the personal assistant of the other and would help with body
shaving, hair, makeup and other deeply personal things such as making sure each boy was clean after using the toilet. The boys would care for the others feet and the hair removal around each other's
anus. The boys would function as one and would both be punished for any infraction. Each boy would only be addressed in the feminine unless Sneha decided that the term boy was to be used. On the
nights Ramesh stayed over they would share the bed in the cuddle position. Of course there would be no sexual contact between the boys unless Sneha requested it then both boys would do exactly as
instructed no matter how humiliating it may be. Sneha then clapped her hands and said OK boys practice the sissy greeting.
A very red faced Ramesh bent forward while a totally humiliated Shyam sniffed and served at this most intimate of spots. It was a surprise to Ramesh to experience the sexual stimulation of the ass
lick and to know that he was about to stimulate another male the same way. The excitement showed in the poor boy's partial erections that did not go unnoticed by Sneha or the other boy. Practice make
perfect Sneha told the boys. As the boys were practicing Sneha was telling them that on the nights that Ramesh was staying over they would sleep together in the classic spoon position. When they were
out in public they would hold hands. No matter how they were dressed they would always carry a purse and be wearing pretty shoes. Sneha reminded both boys that they had small delicate feet as well as
a small delicate penis. Sneha told the boys that they would dress alike even if not the same colors if one wore a saree the other one would also, if one wore a salwar suit the other would also. They
would help each other with body shaving, wiping, pedicures and the cleaning of each other's bits and openings. Sneha said that when she had a guest over the boys would serve as a team and if a guest
was a man he may stay for just a short time or the night even a weekend or longer. The boys would give Sneha all the privacy she and her fellow desired Shyam was to never try to play the marriage
card but instead would welcome any fellow of her's choosing and each boy or both would be available for sexual service should a man desire that. If service was not sexual the boys would be available
for foot rubs, toilet assisting, shoe polishing and laundry duty should a man need that. The boys were told to kiss the tube to show they understood. Each very embarrassed boy bent and kissed the
others chastity device.
The boys were back to back, bent forward at the waist and joined by a double ended dildo their hands were joined at the wrists and drew the boys back so as to make sure the dildo stayed in. Both boys
wore their chastity devices and high heeled pumps and were practicing their movements. Sneha wanted them to "move as one" in this humiliating dance of submission. The boys kept moving and
concentrated on smooth movements. Sneha had a small crop she was more than willing to apply to the back and legs of each boy. In fact she rather enjoyed the little yelps each boy emitted when struck.
#323
PriyaSri(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 02:21)
Sneha was on the phone with her mother and outlined the training process to her. It seemed that her mother approved of humiliating Shyam and looked forward to meeting Ramesh as well as the new fellow
she said she had in her life. Sneha told her how the new fellow had come up with the idea of the double dildo bondage and the training procedure. When the training was complete the boys would not
need the wrist restraints and would be able to gracefully glide around and have their hands free for serving or to guide a penis to their mouths. It seemed that Sneha's new fellow was not opposed to
a nice little blow job from a sissy and both Shyam and Ramesh had been gifted with that experience. Boys had become best friends forever and the close contact and mutual humiliation had formed a bond
between them that Sneha enjoyed exploring and exploiting. Her mother as well as the new fellow would be over tonight and Sneha was hoping the boys would be trained to serve by then.
The boys finished their makeup and checked each other for any mistakes. They hooked each other's bra straps and made sure their sarees were wrinkle free they helped each other slip on the black 6
inch heels and then the humiliating jewellery, the sarees had opening at the front and back showing their chastity and butt holes, as they wore no panties or petticoat. Each boy checked the other's
chastity device and the two of them walked in to the living room. Each boy had installed a condom on the other and reinstalled the chastity devices.
Sneha was on the phone with her mother and outlined the training process to her. Sneha wanted Shyam and Ramesh to be maids of the house, Shyam would be taking care of all the kitchen duties and being
personal maid to Sneha and Ramesh would take care of cleaning house and washing clothes. It seemed that her mother approved of humiliating Shyam and looked forward to meeting Ramesh as well as the
new fellow she said she had in her life. Sneha told her how the new fellow had come up with the idea of the double dildo bondage and the training procedure. When the training was complete the boys
would not need the wrist restraints and would be able to gracefully glide around and have their hands free for serving or to guide a penis to their mouths. It seemed that Sneha's new fellow was not
opposed to a nice little blow job from a sissy and both Shyam and Ramesh had been gifted with that experience. Boys had become best friends forever and the close contact and mutual humiliation had
formed a bond between them that Sneha enjoyed exploring and exploiting. Her mother as well as the new fellow would be over tonight and Sneha was hoping the boys would be trained to serve by
then.
The boys finished their makeup and checked each other for any mistakes. They hooked each other's bra straps and made sure their sarees were wrinkle free they helped each other slip on the black 6
inch heels and then the humiliating jewellery. Both wore identical red embroidery saree with strapless blouse, the jewellery included long earrings wording sissy, two noserings, big bindi, payals, 12
bangles in each hand, mangtika. Shyam also had sindoor and mangalsutra. the sarees had opening at the front and back showing their chastity and butt holes, as they wore no panties or petticoat. Each
boy checked the other's chastity device and the two of them walked in to the living room. Each boy had installed a condom on the other and reinstalled the chastity devices.
Shyam carried a velvet lined wooden box and Ramesh carried a black velvet bag with a draw string, their payal and bangles were making sweet sound with heels clicking on floor. Sneha and her new
fellow Rajesh sat on the couch and watched the humiliated boys approach them. Sneha and her fellow just smirked and waited. Shyam presented Sneha the wooden box and Ramesh opened the velvet bag.
Rajesh could not suppress his laughter as each boy bent forward and Sneha used the personal lubricant in the bottle that was in the sack to lube up the double ended dildo that was in the box. Rajesh
inserted the dildo deep into Shyam's back side and then guided Ramesh onto the other end. Both boys let out a small gasp as the dildo found it's home. The bottle of lube and the bag was handed back
to Ramesh and the box to Shyam. The happy couple sat on the couch and watched the two sissy boys in this humiliating but graceful dance of submission return the box and bag to the bedroom. Each boy
was quiet as the extent of their humiliation and submission sank in.
The end
Original: http://www.asubmissivesissy.com/index.php?option=com_content&view=article&id=427:the-boys&catid=9&Itemid=107
#324
sirisha(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 05:14)
SRS and raghav continue your stories
#325
JRS(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 05:59)
Srs don't stop your stories for some filthy scum bags ... U share whatever u write..
#326
Kashmiraa(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 06:16)
Raghav... Great Great Story ... Amazed by your Story Writing... please cntinue Writing Such Superb Writing.
Jesika Rani Silpa...(jrs) great To Hav U Back ... nice Story by You Too... Please Keep Up The Great Work.
A request Too All Writers.... Please ignore negative Remarks About Grammar.... It Has never Been An Issue For The Readers And Fans... We Used to Enjoy Story before And Now Also... correct english was
Never A Concern For Us Before And Even Not Now Also. Plzz Understand readers passion .... We Just Love The Story ... Please Give More Importance To Readers and Ignore others. SRs Plz Continue Ur
Story If U Care For Readers.
#327
Raghav(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 07:54)
Part 16
After doing touchup to my makeup i came outside the hotel and saw aunt talking over the phone, i went and stood next to her, i dint kno who she was talking to but after she kept the call i was
shocked to hear that she was talking to my mom and when i asked if mom knows about tanya, aunt smiled and said that she had informed mom about my crossdressing and she also spoke to mom everyday and
kept her updated. After hearing this i felt like the entire world was going to end, i just felt so scared that i dint move or speak. Aunt shook me and told not to worry as mom always had a doubt on
me but never asked me as she taught i might get offended. But i couldnt get it out of my mind that now even mom knows about it. I quickly asked aunt if dad also knows to which aunt replied that dad
doesn't kno and mom will tell him only after she meets me and discusses it with me. After hearing that i felt some relief but my tension did not decrease as mom was coming tomorrow and i dint know
how to face her, i also told aunt that i dont know how to face mom, but aunt told me not to worry as mom is very excited and loves me even more now.
After our discussion we crossed the road and were walking towards the taxi stand and on our way aunt calls someone and tells him that we will be near his shop in 5 mins please keep the bag ready. I
asked aunt what it is but she just smiled and said its a surprise. As we walked a little further we reached that big clothes showroom and on seeing us a man came out with 2 huge bags and gave it to
us and thanked aunt for shopping in their showroom, then we got a taxi and left the market. On the way i asked what was in those bags and thats when i get the biggest surprise,
Aunt: dear tanya in this bag there is a dress that you will be wearing for your birthday party tomorrow.
Me: aunt there are two big bags .. how many dresses did you buy ?
Aunt: their its just one dress baby but it is a very special one and has a lot of accessories to it.
I was shocked and tried to guess a lot but the dress was not coming to my mind and as i was in my imagination we reached aunts house. As soon as we entered i quickly took the bags and kept it on the
table and started to unpack and aunt also joined me, as i opened the bag there was another cloth bag inside, i pulled it and took it out, it was very heavy, i looked at ant and aunt was smiling, as i
was opening the cloth bag i could see a lot of fancy stone work and purple colored cloth, i got hold of the cloth and pulled it out and my mouth was completely open after seeing that, it was a heavy
ghagra with a lot of fancy stone work, it looked very very beautiful just like the one heroin's wear in movies it was very pretty and heavy, looked like a brides ghagra i looked at aunts face and
immediately hugged her and kissed her cheeks,
me: thank u aunty, its such a beautiful ghagra, looks so elegant, i had never imagined myself wearing a ghagra choli
aunt: tanya u dont have to thank me. its your first birthday as tanya and i wanted to make it the best day of your life and this is just a small thing
me: thank you so much aunt. This bag has ghagra and the choli so what's there in the other bag?
Aunt: the chunni, your foot wear, purse, bra and panty and some makeup accessories
Me.: o my god aunty its just my birthday but looks like you have decided to make me like a real bride
Aunt: yes my dear its your birthday but all my friends and your mom will be seeing you for the first time tomorrow so i want you to look the best
Me: when is mom coming aunty?
Aunt: Sudha (mom) will come directly to the party in the evening
Me: aunty i am very scared to come in front of everyone
Aunt: dont worry baby i have also called 2 beauticians who will get you ready for tomorrow
Me: aunty i seriously dont know how to thank you, you are doing so much for me
Aunt: next time u say this and i will stop talking to you, its late now and tomorrow is a big day so lets have dinner and sleep early so that we wake up early as there is a lot of work
tomorrow.
Me: ok aunty
With dad we had dinner and went to sleep and i was already imagining myself in that ghagra choli and couldn't control and had a hard boner in my panty
To be cond.....
#328
Raghav(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 08:25)
Thank u all for the comments,
Sorry to keep the readers waiting. my story is very big and I have not been getting time to write so please bare with me. I want to take my time and write slowly because if I write in haste then the
essence and charm will be lost.
#329
vasantha(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 09:50)
raghav pls continue story good srs pls continue your story pa pls pls pls pls pls pls pls pls continue very early wait for the fashion stories pa ppls its rumble request pa
#330
Rachna(Wednesday, 26 October 2016 14:29)
Great story raghav pls continue
#331
Srs(Thursday, 27 October 2016 00:31)
Thanks for your support, I will continue my story soon
#332
JRS(Thursday, 27 October 2016 01:43)
Prey
Milan and his wife Merlin a cute couple with no understanding. There couple life is as bad as they beautiful are. Merlin is a freak when she was a teenager and dare to go extended level of freak.
Milan is a soft subtle and down to earth person and more a submissive person. Milan never interested in anything Merlin wish to and never oppose to anything. Merlin always seen Milan as a soft robot
at her home doing nothing a jobless junk.
With her character she could never able to handle both of her office and home and thousands of time she has asked her hubby to take care of the house.but he never turned back. His things their room
and his stupid old story books.yes Milan is a story writer and never sold a book in path 2 years. This made Merlin so frustrated about her husband.
Merlin appointed a maid from her freak friends reference. She looks like a freak. A dominant 30 year old lady. Looks she can handle anything , appointed as a maid.
Now story starts from here. Merlin before she leaves office she curse her useless hubby sitting in his room doing nothing before in front of her maid.
After Merlin leaves office, maid maya noted milan sitting in his room thinking about story. She went next to him slowly teasing his hair, milan ignoring her teasing and got up, asked what u
want?
I dont want anything, ah can I call u mila?
I'm Milan,
Yeah I know Milan. Isn't Mila a short name.
Ya may b, what is all about my name? Why did u come here? Go do ur job.
I'm here to do my job Mila. I noticed your hair is getting longer everyday and I thought a little style touch can make it look beautiful, u know more manly.
I think I don't need such attention to my hair. I never did it.
Yes, never did it. So try once if u don't like it I won't touch your hair. If u like it I'll come and do it everyday. Is that a deal?
Ok maya. Try and this should b d end.
Only if u don't like Right?
Milan sat on his chair and asked maya to go-ahead.
Maya went in front of Milan pushed his head to her breast, making him breath hard but the scent of her breast and sweat gave a pleasure feeling to him.
Maya slowly cleared all the locks in his hair and started combing his back hair and finished and she gone behind and tilted his head towards her stomach milan got a full view of her breast shape even
if she wore a saree.
Milan didn't noticed what maya was doing, she quickly combed in centre with small fringe in front and braided his hair as a normal girls do. Maya showed the mirror to him and asked whether he likes
it. He looked and said this looks like a woman face if I shave I may look like one. Can u undo the braids?
Maya without saying anything and undid the braids a d arranged in messy bun style with fringe in front and said it's a normal men cut.
Milan found that to be attractive and said ok.
Maya said I'll try different hairstyle tomorrow, but only if u shave your face clean I'll let that happen.
Milan smiled and said ok. He liked the way how maya did today and the scent of her makes him horny he wanted to try next day.
Milan woke early next day and shaved his face and kept the same messy bun hairstyle. Merlin looked at him and said bitch and left to office.
Next day maya walked behind Milan and appreciated,
Mila u did what I told you? U like the hairstyle?
He stammered and said yes can we go for a different style today?
Mila I'm glad to give you one but on one condition.
Yea what it is?
Today I'll arrange your hair in my wish and you keep this till I come and change tmrw, deal?
Milan immediately said ok.
Maya did as she did yesterday, pushing him towards her, caressing him, his hair and making him more more horny she gave him Mose side swept and little bangs and side braided.
Maya said he looks very cute and asked him promise me you won't see your mirror and don't change even if anyone comment about it.
In pleasure, milan said ok. Maya finished her work and left. Milan was eager to watch him in the mirror but he made his words true and stayed in his room.
His wife came and when she looked and him she went next to him and gave a deep kiss and asked him to join the night, that night was his most romantic night. Next day morning he slept so long and woke
to find his wife not available and maya is started her work. He went and fresher himself and met Maya and told her what happened last night and he asked her what hairstyle she gave him. She gave him
the mirror and Mila was shocked to see how girly his hair was and took it positively as his wife likes it more.
Mila asked maya to give a different hairstyle again. Maya repeated her magic and gave him a long Bob look and this time she made him feel little more mood and took him to his wife bedroom and they
were together. After she is done with him she gave her bra to him and asked him to wear it till tomorrow for her. Initially he hesitated, but thinking about the last night and what happened today he
wanted to do more and said yes.
Maya helped him wear it and helped him wear his shirt.
Merlin came that night and appreciated how milan is looking good and how he changed like this. He explained about Maya magic work and suggested to have a hairdo for herself. She said she will think
about it.
To be continued...
#335
JRS(Thursday, 27 October 2016 02:43)
Prey 3:
Mila requesting maya to do hairstyle. She finally decided to teach him how to do each hairstyle and how to take care of his hairstyle.
Maya daily made Mila to wear her bra, she also gave him spare Bras and panties after few times they had *”” together, she made him wear bra and panty everyday and also taught him how to keep it
washed and fresh everyday.
Following weekend maya went to Merlin room and half day it took and she finally came out to see his wife having a similar hair like the one he had a fishtail braid.
Following night Merlin and Milan were together and his without his wife revealing what he is wearing underneath, he managed to remove and hid his bra and panty that night and had gr8 n8 with his
wife.
This routine was following Mila and Maya together on several weekdays and Mila and Merlin together for several weekdays. Being with Maya, Mila always wore bra and panties while together.
One day Maya asked Mila she will give him new style with little work on his face. He said ok. Maya started to begin her work on Mila face, and she was talking.
Mila your hair looks more beautiful with the little bangs on front and the braids I gave you at the back Will look more sexy. Like a desi girl… u like to be a desi girl right Mila?
Yes Maya… I like to be one…
Maya screwed his chest and asked what you like to be Mila?I can't hear u!
Maya I like to be a desi girl…
Yes… Mila wants to be a desi girl.. now what is missing.. a little makeup… and dress up.. and accessories…..
Hearing all this Mila had an erection noticing… Maya…
Maya slowly took a tweezers from her pocket and kissing Mila ear and said stay there my little darling a little prick.. that's it.. she quickly plucked his eyebrows neatly thin and feminine…
Milan was enjoying closing his eyes….
And look what , Mila darling is not having a pierced ears? Isn't it bad? Mila shud be punished right?
Maya…. Do anything… this feels so good…. Mila slowly cane to Maya lips and had a tight kiss…
Maya same time took desi non coloured ear rings and pushed in his ear, Mila felt a small prick in his ear, making him move, Maya holds him tightly and have him the deepest kiss and pierced another
ear with just earrings, she screwed the earrings tight to Mila Ear..
After Kiss Mila felt something heavy and moving inn his ear, asking Maya what was that?
Maya said… shhhhhh.. Mila… I'll do everything for you to look sexy…… you will love it my darling…
To be continued...
#336
JRS(Thursday, 27 October 2016 03:08)
Prey final..
After Kiss maya made little makeup like eyeliner lipgloss she took him to his bedroom..
When Mila was ready, Maya asked him to try wearing one of her wife skirt…
Mila without hesitation with his bra and panties he started searching for a skirt, asking Maya which colour she likes the most, she chose Red colour as it go with Bra colour.
Maya paralelly took one of Merlin Yellow colour blouse and saree and waited Mila to come.
After wearing the skirt Mila came and asked maya how does it look?
Maya asked yes u r as beautiful as me my darling… she hugged him and .. close your eyes and keep your arms loose.. I have a surprise…
Mila did as she told… she slowly slid the blouse to his hands and started buttoning in the back, and stuffed the blouse with some tissues…
Maya without wasting time, quickly draped the yellow saree around Mila and Pinned the Pallu to his shoulders and pleats to his skirt.
Maya asked Mila to open his eyes, Mila found him to be most beautiful, hung his head down in shy, told maya you did a great work Maya, love you so much, I never knew I have a beautiful women in
me..
Mila now you know, and you go live with it.
Thanks Maya, this took a lot of hard work, I must appreciate your creativity for all the combinations.
They both together had fun together In bed, and Mila stayed in saree till Evening, while maya finished all her works and started chit chat with Mila
Mila realising it's time his wife will come. Asked maya to leave home and he will change back.
Maya hold's his hand and stopped.
Mila you are not.
Maya, stop joking, my wife will kick Me out If she ever caught me like this.
Maya smiled. No Mila , you think all the hard work I did with you is just to let you go? Come with me.. she took Mila to the centre of house and made him sit on sofa and wait for his wife.
Mila heard his wife car coming, fearing how she will react looking at him in a saree. He hid himself with saree Pallu.
Merlin opened the door and found, who is the new girl in my house? Oh is this Mila .. my pretty baby .. look how gud u are.
Merlin u are not angry with me?
R u joking? Maya and I are sexual partners since college, she always knew I like only girl's in d bed.
I married u looking at your subtle submissive character. Hoping one day I will be my prey as I designed to be. Maya really did a great work . You can stay and wear all the sarees in d wardrobe, it's
all for you.
Merlin became the house husband, and Mila became her wife. Maya sometimes occasionally visit and have fun with her pet Mila, and Merlin got no objection about that.
Tq for reading...
#337
JRS(Thursday, 27 October 2016 12:11)
#325 is not mine , sisters beware someone writing in my name. SRS you are the best
#338
Kumaari(Thursday, 27 October 2016 13:22)
@JRS one of the best and hot story I ever read... Gr8 work... Keel tat coming... Waiting for a similar story....
#339
SRS(Thursday, 27 October 2016 13:41)
JRS i think grammar is doing all this , must be careful.
#340
Grammar(Thursday, 27 October 2016 22:22)
JRS I will never request SRS to write #325 is not mine either
I'm Jessica Rani Shilpa, #325 is mine and all stories I wrote is mine, y on earth i have to say this here? Who wrote #337 in my name ?, I refer the filthy scum bag is Grammar. So what? I know what
I'm writing, my next story will be next year, I won't b in India and busy in my career, For your information, going forward any comments on this page in JRS name will not be mine. In 2017 i will b
back with my next story.
Keep Writing Friends ! Miss u all.... Sweet candies.... !
#343
JRS(Friday, 28 October 2016 23:45)
And ofcourse you idiots need to learn some grammar.
#344
sirisha(Sunday, 30 October 2016 13:33)
Raghav SRS JRS nice stories and do complete them with more parts
#345
Grammar(Monday, 31 October 2016 22:14)
Jrs you have to learn both grammar and how to write stories, your story are such a waste. You need not want to continue your story, please stop writing.
#346
sirisha(Monday, 31 October 2016 23:50)
It's not a thesis to require correction GRAMMAR but just an aid to help our imaginations which do not require a perfect grammar so if you are not interested better not to visit this site but you have
no right to suggest our writers to stop writing stories
#347
Trollan(Monday, 31 October 2016 23:51)
Grammar Sir,
Where the hell did you learn grammar. I am not an expert but 'your story "are" such a waste' and a sentence creation using 'need not want' looks like a whole new level of grammar knowledge. Please
don't write english comments if you don't know english (as per your logic used to annoy our good friends who are taking their time to write wonderful stories).
With hate,
Trollan
#348
Sharmi(Sharmila Devi)(Monday, 31 October 2016 23:58)
Hi all,
I think you remember me (my sister-in-law made me her second wife) is my first story thanks for liking my story. And now am coming with my second story "I became sister to my wife" .Hope u will
enjoyy
#349
Aditi(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 01:55)
call me or msg me 08543059511
#350
Aijt(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 04:14)
Super sharmila devi we r waiting for you plz write quickly
#351
latha(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 04:38)
Hi friends I return to new story .the story name is satya turn to satyabhama how my story I think all likes this other wise I write another story please tell me friends.
#352
Grammar fan(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 04:59)
Thank God , that some so called story experts left. Please go on and have a life JRS. We don't care even if you are some Jasoos Rascal Scumbag ...
#353
vasantha(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 05:01)
latha pls write your story pa & sharmila devi wirte your story we are early wait for story pa
#354
latha(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 06:56)
Satya turn to satyabhama part:1,
My name is satya.I am software engineer.I living with my family.my mother name is suverna I have sister also she's name is swapna.my father died last year.in my family one rule is their that is all
family members name started with 'S' this is a main rule. But i am not like this ,thi is my family back ground.now i come to my figure i am fair guy and slim .my height is 5.7 inch,I working in gen
pact software company in morning shift . I already in love with colleague Bhama. She is very buetiful and intelligent,she is also loved me .we both are same size and same hight,my love matter not
tell to myother because she's not accept love marriage and she name not started with a S name that's why I am not telling to my mother,my sister is a fashion designer,she is one year smaller then me
but we both are behave like a friends.now we now the bhama family background she's father is a Vithal K Rao, a renowned scientist who did experiments on cloning related subjects.bhama mother name is
vasantha.she is a house wife.bhama also having one sister she's name is latha.I am not seen him. because she is out of station.
Please give comments to write next parts.
#355
sirisha(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 09:22)
Nice starting continue latha
#356
Sharmila Devi(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 13:14)
I became sister to my wife - part 1
Let me introduce myself and my family .My self sudhakar every one calls me sudha my age is 21 and currently am free searching for Job. I got married in a early age at 19 with kiranmayi everyone call
her Kiran and her age is 21, yes she is also equal to my age and she is 1 month bigger than me. You heard it right as she is a orfan, my dad’s daughter in law she lost her parents in her childhood .
So she was bought up along with us and my parents decided to make both of us married. My mom Malathi is a house wife and dad Rajesh is sales staff head in a cloth showroom. Even my wife goes along
with my dad to work in cloth showroom as a sales girl but my father never told anyone in the showroom that she is his daughter in law as he felt shame. so my dad likes her very much and always scolds
me being free with out job. And last member in our family sirisha my sister as she is very much intelligent my father sent her to banglore of free seat for finishing her Btech and her age is 20 one
year younger to me.
Let me describe about my self I am very fair and slim and height 5.6(jus like a average young girl) and my wife is 5.8 height and she is taller than me so my parents asked her to where only flats and
me shoes with high heels when we are going out. Daily my mom and me stay in home my mom working in kitchen and I watching TV and roaming out with friends which does not liked my dad and always scolds
me. Even my wife scolds me now and then for not going to any job. The days are passing and we don’t have any problems in the house as both my dad and my wife are woking which is really enough for our
house. But all the days are not same suddenly as one day we got call from my sister that she got married to rich guy and she is going to US along with him and asked us not to search for her. This
made us feel unhappy and all are sad. Then dad and mom decided not to reveile it out and asked us to forget about my sister.
#357
JRS(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 13:43)
Grammer thuje aiche gand madharchodo bhosade cha gup bas
#358
Poornima(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 15:24)
@Sharmila devi: Welcome back. Hope to see this story being as good as ur previous one!!
#359
Radha(Tuesday, 01 November 2016 21:27)
Sharmila devi garu welcomed.
#360
vasantha(Wednesday, 02 November 2016 02:28)
latha & Shamila Devi both good pls pls continue pa thks return for shamila devi I like your stories before on pa
#361
kavi(Wednesday, 02 November 2016 05:20)
sharmila devi pls continue ur stories
#362
JRS(Wednesday, 02 November 2016 05:44)
Guys please note that I said earlier that I left the group for this year the following comments #357 are not mine. Fuck you Grammar.
#363
Srs(Wednesday, 02 November 2016 06:08)
Grammar I have wrote more than 3 stories and i told my English is poor than y u irritating me. If u don't want to read my stories than don't read .
#364
preeti(Wednesday, 02 November 2016 13:54)
plz dont spoil this site we all r were to drame our fantastic so plz whp can't write plz patently read or live the site & Jr's srs this is a humble request to u is plz write your story it nice
&entertaing
#365
Savita(Wednesday, 02 November 2016 16:29)
Hiya girls.
Pls suggest me sites and blogs for stories of cds
Obviously with saree dressing stories. .
But only indian content...
Cheers girls..
Enjoy..
#366
RIA(Saturday, 05 November 2016 01:39)
contd #236
In tears of laughter she was when I came out in her nighty. It flowed down perfectly over my body, soft with flowers all over it, the ends had attached frills. And the bra ofcourse!! filled with some
of her dupattas gave me an ample cleavage to call myself a woman. Seductively se came close to me and kissed me on my lips, I love u my Avantika she said as I blushed, I tried to kiss her back but
she tapped my forehead to to give that sexy gesture of no, and she giggled hard, her smile was now notorious. So Avantika how do you feel she asked, in that inskirt of mine flowing down ur legs,
uncomfortable I said in a low tone, accha!! Low she said, aaj I asked you toh u feel low, sexy I replied as an answer I feel sexy suhas I said gathering some courage to make my love feel happy. Yes
you look sexy in lipstick and that bindi dear avantika. What??? When did that happen I thought and then it struck, all that seducing, the kiss gave me the lipstick and that tap on my forehead the
bindi, lakin abhi kuch missing missing hai meri jaan as she came close, she inserted a few glass bangles on my wrists, and her mangalsutra in my neck and then finally covered my cleavage with her
dupatta. Now u look like my wife Avantika…………
The night then ended me surrendering to my husband, she was all over me, makin me feel like a girl. It hasn’t ever happened but once in a while a little roleplay doesn’t hurt I guess, she enjoyed I
did…..........
#367
Grammar(Sunday, 06 November 2016 00:21)
Dear SRS, you are so funny..hehehe...bad that youre still here...
#368
PriyaSri(Sunday, 06 November 2016 06:49)
fucking Grammar there is nothing use of you but that too your here then why not SRS. Get lost you mother fucker.
#369
Raji(Sunday, 06 November 2016 09:13)
Sharmila devi it's not a fare u r not updating stories we are eagerly waiting for your stories.
#370
Grammar(Sunday, 06 November 2016 11:56)
Everyone mind your language, I'm a sissy guy , doesn't mean I'll fuck every men I meet. I fuck only for money.
#371
SRS(Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:30)
i dint care about those negative comments. if i got 1 fan to read my stories tats enough for me an Grammar ur nothing in front of us cause u cant only put negative comments instead of writing
stories. show me ur talents to us.
#372
SRS(Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:49)
"fashion part 7 # 181
I was scared about that an i took that card an search for the address an when i reached in that place i saw it was looks like some sort of clinic, i went slowly there an i there was a lady seems to
be my age, she came near me an asked what do u want sir an i give that card to her after seeing that she smiled an told me to come inside, i was lill bit of scare what she is going to do . After i
slowly asked mam may i know now what ur going to do with me an she laughed an told due u like banana an i told no an she told huh ur boss to dint like that , an i asked sorry i cant understand an she
told u need not want to be sorry i will explain u everything an told ur showing ur bulge a lot to prove ur macho kind an that she dint like an for that only u came here tats all . on hearing this i
was scared an started to shout for that what ur an she told relax an told dint worry nothing is permanent just relax an i told what nothing is permanent i have lost all my body hair with side burns
an ur telling nothing is permanent who should i cant be worry. after so much of struggle she can near to me an asked me to remove all the dress an were a towel , i do as she told to do i went to lie
on the table , after she came near to me an removed my towel now i was completely nude in front of her an i was lill bit of shy after she saw my penis an she was surprised on seeing that an told ya
its looks like a huge banana an all the men will be jealous an suddenly she started to give blowjob an i felt great after she finished she told now u happy an let get to our work an she took an
syringe an filed with some sort of strange liquid an inject directly into my penis i was scared due to the pain an its seems like burning after few minutes it went num i cant feel anything down there
an she took some ice cubes an placed into my penis an after it was done she smiled an told huhh ur huge banana now become the size of my lill finger an she took some thing from the box it looks like
flesh like material , she put on the surgical gloves an took some jelly like substance an started to rub down to my penis an abdomen an she fixed the flesh like object down there an it took hours to
complete an after it came the boobs which it looks like artificial real like boobs which seems to be big an she done the same procedure an fixed, after she asked me to turn around an she cleaned my
butt completely an she was mixing something in the bowel it look like white liquid paste after she filled with a huge syringe on seeing that i was afraid an started to getup an she quickly called 2
ladies an they strap my 2 hands an legs i started to beg cause i was afraid of injection an when i got fever on that time to i never went to the doc for this afraid of this injection but now this is
the first time am seeing such a huge injection which filled with strange liquid. she came near to me an started to inject to 1 side of my bum an while she was injecting it was burning an i cant
tolerate the pain an started to shout an while shouting the 2 ladies put cloth in my mouth so that i cant able to screem, after she did 1 side she started to do in another side an after an hour she
completed all the bowl she made, an my bum was in huge pain.
#373
SRS(Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:51)
fashion part 8
After i was felt week for this pain an she came near me an showed some videos an explained what she did. First she told about that fake vagina an how does it work, it has an small pouch inside it an
in that my lill penis was fixed into it that pouch has an hole from the outside an when ever i need to urine i must sit an do it an no more erection an bulge its for temporary it looks like real
vagina an that too it has a deeper hole even some body can fuck an she lol, i was scared on hearing that , an she explained about the next thing which is fake boobs it looks like real an big which
difficult to hide an she told that this are fixed with some type of super glue which impossible to take it of if i try means my real skin will come of with it an the only thing can remove is by
solvent an that too she doesn't have the stock right now, an the last thing she told what she did in my but it was some type of fat collagen to increase my bum size an shape cause before there was
bulge in front an now there was bulge in my back an she started to lol. After she told me to were panties an bra which should were every day an i protest an after so much of struggle i wore it an i
get dressed back but now i cant able to put my jeans it get lill tight in my back an the shirt button is too tight , i put it anyway an left that place an i start to my home , while going on the way
i saw 1 shop there selling some sort of bandage etc, i stopped my car an went inside the shop an i saw that there is some belts to adjust tummy fat etc, i bought like that one an went inside the car
an i opened my shirt an tuck that thing into my fake breast tightly an put on the shirt now its doesn't semis like first an its easy to put the shirt button but to breath is difficult , i start my
car an went home. While getting home my aunt opened the door i dint say anything an she dint notice , i went straight to my room an locked down, due to the pain i got fever so i cant able to go for
work, i took leave for 2 days. after my fever went down i come back to normal position. Now i got completely cured an am getting ready for my work, i went to bathroom an i saw my self that what was
happened to me it was ridicules an i saw that there is no strand to see my penis all i can see is a clean shaved pussy. I sat down to pee after i dint i can feel my penis inside my fake vagina an
after i got shower an put the panties an bra , it was difficult to were the bra, after so much of struggle i put the bra, now come the jeans , my jeans is difficult to fit in my bum like it will get
tore an i hide my fake breast with that belt an put my shirt which is dark in colour so that no 1 can see inside me an i put the jacket too, i saw my butt it was huge an it look strange for me after
came outside of my room. While walking i can fell that my butt are bouncing an my hips are swing like a girl , i cant able to walk like a boy, on seeing that my aunt asked what happened an i told
that nothing i got injured in my knee tats y an after i took the breakfast an went to my office.
#374
SRS(Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:53)
fashion part 9
I parked my car an enter to my office, i cant control my walk it real strange i went straight to my boss cabin an i was angry about what she did she came closer to me an told that this all ur fault
we believed u but u showed ur manly ego tats y v did like this. An she observed me an told nice bum who do u like it , i felt shame an she watched my boobs but there is no trace of it an asked what
did u do to ur boobs its impossible to get off an i laughed an opened my shirt an showed to her she was shocked on seeing that, an i told that u singed an agreement that what ever punishment u give i
have to accept it an dint try to remove it but instead of that there is nothing told about that i cant hide it , so tats y i did it , on saying that she got really angry an told ok v will see how
much u can escape. After i went to work i prepared some of the documents an i went to her to show it but she was not there after i came back to my work an at that 1 girl doing her work an she got
some dubbed about it an i came close to her an remember she was the same girl whose daughter did my hair braid , i dont know y this woman offensively called me to clear some doubt after i cleared her
at that time my boss came an i showed the document an she was checking, behind me there was few girls standing there an it was a main room but still they work as silently, if any 1 talk then the was
can here clearly cause of the silent of the room. After she checked my documents she told good an say attention everybody see here is shyam who is only the male working here an he never mind about
that but still he works hard for this company please claps together for him, i dont know y she was doing like this drama queen , after she told me to leave an i collect the documents from her an
started to walk from her while walking she told excuse me 1 minute i thought now what, again everybody started to watch her an she asked how many months ur working for this company i told its 2 moths
completed an she told vow for 2 months i dint notice u got a nice ass looks like sunny lieon an ur walking style is also like that which called cat walk, on saying this everybody started to lol i
dont know y she did like this i felt humiliating in front of all the woman workers. I slowly started to walk from there, while walking they again started to laugh i dont know what to do after when i
finished my work i started to go home at that time my boss came an told u have to come with me after i will drop u to ur home an i started to go with her , her car was rolls royce one of the top most
luxury car i sat in that an after she started to talk with me an with her she got her personal secretary infarct she is the only reason who giving such kind of stupid idea, an she asked about my bum
an how did i felt while she humiliating in front of all, i hung my heads down. After when the car was stopped an they started to get down an i saw where the place was an it was a lakme saloon , i
told no problem mam i will wait u go an come, i thought i will njoy some sort of time in this luxury car , an she suddenly grab my hand an told to come in an she told that its for u only thats y we
came here, i was shocked i told whattt an after i went silently inside there i thought it waste of struggling and fighting an what can she do more to me than the fake vagina an pussy.
#375
SRS(Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:54)
fashion part 10
while we entered into the salon the salon manager came near to us an welcomed us , she is an young lady an she is very hot. My boss secretary told some thing to her after they took me inside 1 room
an lie me down to the table an i thought that they will remove my fake thing but instead they took 1 sponge with liquid an cleaned my naval after they marked my naval i priced it an they put long
dangling navel ring, i started to screem cause of pain, i have no idea what they did an i started to get up but they all garbed an tie it in the table post , after they again came to me an told to
open my mouth but i dint, they forced to open my mouth by pricing my nose so that i cant able to breath an for that i will open my mouth after when i did that lady hold my toung i was afraid. that
lady told please cooperate otherwise u will get cut ur tongue by mistake, on hearing that i was scared an let them do what they want. They took 1 small marker an marked in my lower of my tongue an
they took 1 hot needle an priced, i cant tolerate that pain its incredible an my tears are coming constantly from eyes, they have put a stud in my tongue, i cant able to speak for that pricing an
they again turned me in that table an unzipped my jeans an again they cleaned my lower back, After i can here an humming sound an slowly they started to do something which cause lot of pain to me. i
cried a lot but there is no use of it an my total energy was out an i felt tired. due to pain i felt sleep so after that i dont know what they r doing, i can hear only the giggling sound. After they
finished they bring me to the main room an sit me to the salon chair an they started to do the work. first they removed my hair band from my messy hair, after they started to wash my hair an started
to apply some kind of sticky paste in it an they leave it for few minutes an after they again started to wash my hair an trim it. i can only feel they water an the cool air of paste but i dont know
what they r doing to me. they put an hair straightener an doing for an hour after they have finished an they took me to the car. While i was sleeping they took some photo an after when i slowly woke
up they i laughed i cant under stand y they r laughing ,my boss told that u only told that u can hide the thing what ever i dit so this time u need not want to hide the thing cause i did some
hide-able thing but if u want to show than thats ur wish an she to her cell an showed to me. 1st thing was my naval it was long ring which hanging, i have seen this in sort song when the item girl
dance, An the 2nd thing is tongue stud an that too i have seen in the item song were Mumaith Khan wore it, an the 3rd is a tattoo which is permanent in my lower back. while seeing all this my hair
comes an fall in front of my eyes an i put my hand in my hair i noticed that there was no hairband thats y an my hair looks like smooth like silk while seeing she told ohh sorry i forgot 1 thing to
tell u that v have did ur hair rebounding so now ur hair will always look straight like a shampoo add girl an they lol. After we have reached my home an i was scared how i will face my aunt an they
took me inside my house an when they rang the bell my aunt opened the door an i was shocked on seeing my aunt, she was wearing the same dress like what i had were jeans an shirt, this is the 1st time
iam seeing like this, she even dint used to were chudidar now she was wearing the jeans an shirt an her hair is smooth an silky, wait a minute my hair too is smooth an silky ohh my v two having the
same hairstyle. my aunty saw this an get surprised an asked that what did u do to ur hair its look like mine at that time i dont know what to tell but by boss told that it was my idea that u and him
to look alike for tomorrow work u will work in our company, i was surprised that my aunt is going to work in our company an my boss told yes she is ur superior an our partner from tomorrow so u have
to work for her too. i was thank god at least my aunt will help me from this, after so much of struggle i have saved my aunt , while thing my aunt told to my boss that its not fair, iam his superior
but here i have to dress like him y he wouldn't dress like me in saree, on hearing this i felt a jolt of shock an my boss an her secretary started to lol an told he will aunt after all he is the only
male working there but not now an she left, i slowly went to my room an locked the door i dont know that if my aunt come to my office that will be good for me r not. ohh god please help me from
these.
#376
Chandrika(Sunday, 06 November 2016 20:06)
MAN WHO GOT TO BE WORSHIPPED AS GODDESS:01
Well,it is 1983 Kerala.A poor couple from Andhra migrated to there with their 10 months old boy child.As being uneducated and unable to understand the local language they got no job.And the
starvation in their life is started.As they can withstand that but their child can't so,they began begging.With the begging experience they reliased that their child's life is going to be ruined if
he grew and starts begging.So with all the money they got.They gone a forest zone village which is 100 km far away from Kocchi.At that village they left their child at a saint aashramam with deep
sorrow and hope that his life is going to be good and not like to be theirs.And they left.As saint woman heard a baby's cry from bushes at the entrance.She found that boy and brought him to the
Saint.
#377
SRS(Sunday, 06 November 2016 22:21)
Grammar, he he he he .... posted load of crap. You cannot stop me
#378
Srs(Sunday, 06 November 2016 23:56)
# 377 Is not mine, grammar don't play with my name you sissy.
#379
shyam(Monday, 07 November 2016 00:14)
chandrika good starting pl continue
#380
ishu(Monday, 07 November 2016 04:17)
SRS pls continue ur story
#381
Srs(Wednesday, 09 November 2016 23:56)
Latha and sharmila please continue ur story pleaseeee
#382
padmaja(Thursday, 10 November 2016 22:24)
latha nee story eppudu start chesthav please i am waiting for ur story Satya turn to satyabhama
Kajal Mam please accept r invité ur stories to read..... Im big fan of u m'y mail id sdeepika290@gmail.com
#384
Mansi(Saturday, 12 November 2016 21:55)
Kajal sis, please let me read ur wonderful stories...I love reading ur stories...pls pls
mail id rammy4835@gmail.com
#385
Ashwini(Saturday, 12 November 2016 22:07)
All characters , places and references are purely fictional
Devi Maithika ---- Part 1
My name is Varun. I am a 21 year old college guy, born in a rich family as a single son to business minded career oriented parents, who provided me with all luxuries and amenities of the modern life,
but not the time - the most precious commodity in the upbringing. Our Import - export Industry - Varun Enterprises was well known in the country and abroad.
I am a lone ranger, with very small friend circle. I made some so called 'friends' , the usual 'chamchaa' kind or some girls as well for that matter, who were pretending to be my friends , yet they
were eyeing the single guy who was to inherit the VE Empire later on.
There was only one true single friend I had made in my college days, who resonated with me because our natures were matching. She was a nice peppy and chirpy girl called Divya. I could see that she
could see my soul , my likes and dislikes and was a very open minded and expressive soul herself. A very rare attribute, I could see. She was like a lovely fresh rose in a group of thorn like other
'friends'.
Divya came from a town surrounded by forests and tribals around, which was about 500 Kms. away from the city. She also had a good financial background, although she had unfortunately lost her mother
in her school days. Her father had remarried, but Divya couldn't relate with her step mother. The remarried husband was quick enough to 'send' the young daughter away from their home, for her 'better
education prospects' not to add the 'precious privacy' the couple wanted for themselves. So there used to be monthly cheques for tuition and the rest of the expenses, but those were the only papers
she received from her father. There were bundles of notes sent, but not a single letter of warmth and support. Things then had gone even worse, as Divya told me , that her dad had purchased a bunglow
on the outskirts of their town and had sent the keys to her, informing verbally, that she is supposed to stay there if and when she is to visit the home town, as 'dad and mom' were planning to shift
to another state.
So in a way, our very detachment from respective families had brought us closer, and we were satisfying our emotional needs.
so during the vacation, just after our final exams, we decided to roam round together, in the embrace of nature, away from the city, in the serene, quiet and inviting mother nature. We discussed a
few options for visiting. Somehow the common options seemed unsuitable - too crowded, polluted and business like for our choice. Next morning, when we met again in the canteen, Divya shared the
latest 'breaking news' , that her father had sold their ancestral house, and have left for the new location, where he was to stay at his new in-laws and look for another grand mansion, where needless
to say she was not expected.
" Hmmmm....thats so sad Divya" I mentioned. After a gap of a minute or two, during which none of us spoke, strangely I could see a sparkle in her eyes. "hey, how about now visiting my native place?
There would hardly be anyone who would recognize me...afterall I have been away from our place for about 9 years now. " I was listening." Plus I have the keys for MY bunglow. So we won't have to pay
......" It seemed a grand idea. She pressed my hands with enthusiasm. "That's the way it goes then Varun!! we would explore the nature around our town, wander into the jungle , really really close to
the nature. I had been dying to go to the lovely scenic surroundings of our town in the jungle of Devi Maithika, the Mythological Goddess of the land there!!"
#386
Xyz(Sunday, 13 November 2016 06:40)
Write stories
#387
ishu(Sunday, 13 November 2016 11:56)
ashwini conyinue ur stoires
#388
Jay(Sunday, 13 November 2016 12:27)
Plz continue Ashwini.u r awesome writer.
#389
Suji(Monday, 14 November 2016 07:53)
Pls continue stories
#390
Srs(Monday, 14 November 2016 21:18)
AsHWiNi nIce to see u again
#391
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 02:53)
Hi there. In all these years I was just another silent reader, so this is my first post ever. Eventhough I planned to make a BLOG of my own couple of years ago with 6-7 stories in my mind; which
didn't happen. So I gave out 5 of my storylines to one of the popular page in FB. Which they inturn published with their own imagination, but RUINED completely according to me. While browsing through
my old files, lying hidden, dusting forever, I found this, one of my first story, which never found the light. As plans for my BLOG was alredy dead anyway, I thought why keep it there? So here I'm,
with no names & places ever spoken through out, and completely based on forced crossdressing scenario in school era, (which is the only thing i like) each of you think of the protagonist as
yourselves. I wrote this story with uttermost care for GRAMMER, but mistakes may be there, afterall we are all humans. For me this is a complete story in all aspects, including any missing portions.
Please read it through the punctuations & comment me. Who knows, someday I may comeback with another one.
#392
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:03)
The Competition
By, Anjali
Mom where is it? I told you to wash it yesterday itself. While opening my closet I shouted. Oh god! Why are you shouting? She responded from the kitchen. Where is it mom? I asked her again. I was in
my towel, right after from my bath. Couldn't find it anywhere mom. What? While walking towards me She asked. My shorts. I replied. Oh that’s so silly, if you can't find anything why don't you try
that? Her finger was pointing to the farthest corner of my closet. Hanging there, moving with the wind, there was it, a skirt. Yes, you heard me, a knee length, pleated RED skirt. Oh mom, I’m not a
girl. I moaned. Who else is going wear it? It's yours. She spoke with a naughty smile. Mom I’m not going to wear it again, where is it? it’s getting late, I took my stand. Your shorts, it's in the
pile, I forgot to put it back. She said while walking towards kitchen.
I was at the table having my breakfast, then she started again, you could always wear it, inside the house, if you want? Mom not again, I startled. Without eating much, I hurried towards my
buddies.
Mom was right. You heard her clearly. That skirt was; no is mine. Not only that, but also I’m the proud owner of another two knee length flowery pleated skirts, two long skirts, four tops to mix
& match with them, a white fitted shirt, three lehengas, five salwars & of course a saree with necessary accessories & undergarments for all. It all started with a quote, on a Saturday,
from my teacher. "it's not right". Yes, something is missing, mom added, who was sitting right beside her. I was happened to be one and only one boy in my school who can sing properly. And there was
me, singing alongside my ten classmates who are only girls, for Monday’s competition. They can sing well, but it doesn't look good. Teacher Said. Yeah that's right, it doesn't look like a mixed
group. Mom added. Are you sure no other boy can sing, mom asked. No teacher sighed. Then leave him; mom laid out the options. The teacher loved me, not only that, but also my voice synched with them
very well. Most of our moms were there. Or you can make him dress like them, said one of my friend’s mom. Mom's eyes got sparkled, so does teacher's. They looked into each other. And planned
something.
#393
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:09)
The Competition Part II
The planned dress code was school uniform, but that was before. As now it’s become an all-girls group, they wanted something more. Mom told teacher that a lehenga would be nice. All of them accepted
and, planned shopping in the Sunday. Mom, teacher & some other girl’s moms went for shopping & bought us eleven same looking lehengas, reshaped them for our sizes. I was in no position to
argue, but still asked mom & teacher weather this is necessary, they said it's a must, a dress won't bite me, & I kept mum. Girls promised me that, it will be our secret. As the venue was
just 10km drive, & our competition starts at morning, we planned to get ready in school itself. One of my friend's mom is a beautician. So she took care of all our accessories and makeup. She did
my makeup, nails painted, plucked one or two stray from brows & combed my hair in a feminine way. Mom told me to remove my shirt, and clasped a stuffed bra around me. Then she handed me a panty
& petticoat, and told to change into them. As I was option less, changed into them in no time. Mom inspected the knot and retied to a much tighter way. Then came the lehenga, she told me to step
into it, I could feel it, it was heavy & helped me to wore the choli. Next she put my legs into some nice two inch heeled lady’s sandals & readjusted lehenga’s hem length. We all draped the
dupatta in the same way. Then came the jewelleries, all of us made to wear same designer payals, bangles & necklaces. Then came the real problem. Mom forgot to buy the clip-on earring that was
supposed to adorn my unpierced ears. The only one available was the one came with my necklace set. Without much time left, they planned to pierce my ears, I fought with mom & covered my ears. So
mom & teacher hold me to the chair while beautician aunt marked & pierced both of my earlobes with a pin. Mom promised me to remove them when we get home back. Aunt told me not to cry because
I will ruin my makeup. Now we all spot the same danglers.
And we did sing well. When we came back to our moms & teacher, they already planned a trip for the rest of the day. Girls changed into their normal dresses, for me with a female face, that was
not an option, so I stayed in them. Girls tried to cheer me up but it was hell of a day. My ears were sore & the danglers made it worse. More to that I was always forced by the lehenga to lift it
up. My dupatta was flying away. Mom noticed it. During the lunch time she took me to a nearby dress store & bought me a salwar & camisole, reshaped for me there itself. I looked at her. Just
for today; it will make you feel better, she said. I wore them but refused to wear the dupatta. mom scolded me, and put it on my shoulder. Without the lehenga your hands are free, so take care of it.
She said. When we came back for lunch girls complemented on my look. It was almost evening when we reached home & I was reluctant to get out this costume, my ears were paining a lot. I told mom
to remove them. No, not until the bedtime, it need to remove carefully she demanded. I threw away my dupatta into the couch, sighed and sat on it. Mom came towards me, told me to stand, took the
dupatta & put it over my shoulder, not until bedtime she repeated & walked towards kitchen. Like a girl, I placed the rest of hanging dupatta in my lap & waited silently for mom to remove
the danglers. I almost cried when she took them out. She wasn't happy. They will close; can I put a stud back in? she asked. No way I replied her & handed over my dupatta. You can sleep in your
salwar, if you want she said. No & it's not mine I said in a tired tone. Of course it's yours, I bought it for you, she said as walked away. I cleaned my nails & slept.
#394
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:11)
The Competition Part III
Girls kept their promise, in school no one doesn't know. I was happy. During the break they inspected my lobes. When I came back mom already washed, folded my lehenga & salwar along with all
accessories & placed them in my closet. A week flew by, my ears restored its former glory. Then the news came. We won. Yes, we won & selected for the finals. The moment I heard that, I know,
I was in trouble. They will make me wear it again. Anyway this time I will ask mom to buy me a clip-on I thought. When I reached home, teacher already informed her. I’m happy, it’s time to use your
lehenga again, she said. No mom, I don't want that old dress, I won't wear it. I rushed to my room. We'll see to that, she replied. Next day there was a meeting with us singers, moms & teacher.
He doesn’t want to wear it, mom said. What his old lehenga? One of the mom asked. Yes, mom replied. Oh that's okay, we can buy a new one, another mom said. I don't want a new one mom, I moaned. Oh
will you please shut up? she gave me a look. You don't want your old one, so here it is, I will buy you a new one. From there itself they went for shopping. After school when I reached home, she was
there waiting for me. She told me to sit on the couch. And pulled out large shopping bags, there was it, a lehenga, of course it was beautiful, for a girl I think. Do you want to try it? If you want
you can, any way its already fitted, she said. Then she came up with the jewelleries bangles, payals, and a necklace set with a dangling earring. Mom you promised me a clip-on I moaned. Yes, I was,
and I’ll, I couldn't find the same design anywhere, I ordered them to make a new one, so unless anything happens, you don’t have to worry, and there is a surprise for you; go, have a bath & come
back; she replied with a smile.
I was happy, at least they won’t pierce them again I thought as I stepped out of the bathroom in my towel. There was it, on my bed, the surprise. A long full length skirt along with its top. Do you
like it? mom asked. Mom what are you doing, why are you buying these for me? Because you need it, remember how you walked in your lehenga? Without some practise it'll be another hell of a day, Mom
replied. She took the skirt & top and put it over her shoulder, handed me a bra & panty, told me to change into them. I know it was brand new, the old ones were still in my closet. You can
change into them or stay in your towel, unless I wish; your closet is closed for sure, she said. The only thing remaining was to change into them. When I done with the panties, mom helped me with the
stuffed bra. Then she handed me a full slip I stepped into it & removed my towel. Unlike the lehenga petticoat this was smooth. Now with a camisole on, she put the long skirt over my head, then
came the top, last she handed me a two inch heeled sandal, pulled down the skirt a bit. When I walked; skirt rustled, on the stairs, I had to pick it up. I looked like a freak mom, I said. No you
don’t, and keep your voice down, unless you want to let the others know. I had a little trouble in selecting the length mom said, got my eyes on a knee length skirt first, so I bought both of them.
She hanged it alongside the salwar & lehenga in my closet. I want you wear it tomorrow when you come home along with its top and this, as said mom hanged a half slip to the closet. No mom no way
I shouted. Oh yes you will she said, otherwise the clip-on will get cancelled. She does know that for a clip-on I will do anything. The sleep was the worst, bra itched me. but I slept anyway.
#395
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:13)
The Competition Part IV
At school one of the singers came to me, how's practise going? she asked. Do you like it? What? Your skirts? My mom said they are beautiful, another said. Yes, they know, my whole team knows moms
planned it together. So when I came back to the home without the help of mom I changed into my knee length skirt, I made sure to put on the half-slip. Mom was surprised to see me like that. She told
me to sat beside her, when I was done, she asked me to stand up, and gave some feminine advices, like, while sitting always sweep under your skirt, keep your knees together, and she made me practise
it for some time. The main problem with knee length skirt was, it's always riding up to my thighs, so I have to pull them down. each time I did that, mom laughed at me. Even in my sleep as I
remembered, pulled it down. Next day girls wanted to see in my skirts, they didn't stop buzzing until I promised them. When I came back, mom told me to change into my long skirt. This became my
routine. Whenever I came back from my school, I changed into my skirts alternately.
Another week flew by, on the Saturday, two days before competition, after singing practise; girls came with me. Mom was happy, and I modelled in my skirts for them. Today was Sunday, the singing
practise was complete. As there is only one day to go for competition, they gave us this day for rest. I woke up in my knee length skirt and hurried to bathroom, came back in my towel. While
searching for some shorts, I heard mom say, to change into my salwar. I didn't say anything. While changed into salwar I thought, only one more day to go. I left the dupatta there itself & went
towards kitchen. Mom looked at me, am I missing something she asked. Do I mom? Yes, you're, where is your dupatta? she was literally in fire. Mom I thought, in home, do it really necessary? I
mumbled. Yes, it is, otherwise you can kiss your clip-on goodbye. I know where it was going, so I hurried back to my room put it over my shoulder & came back. There she is, my good girl, mom
patted me.
Mom packed my lehenga & accessories along with my salwar. And handed me my long skirt. Mom no, everyone in school will see me, I moaned. No they're not, that’s why we are not going to school. We
planned a pre-makeup section for you, mom said. I don't want the long one mom, it's not easy to carry. Fine, she switched it with short one. Both of us got into car & mom drove it to the
beautician aunt's home. To my surprise all of them were there. It's a nice skirt, moms complemented. As the venue was a long drive away we have to makeup & change at the venue itself. The
pre-makeup session was only for me to look convincing as a girl before the driver. As I was transferred into the chair & aunt began quick works on me. My hair styled, brows plucked a bit, a
little makeup done, then manicured & painted my nails. During the time of pedicure, because of the knee length skirt she noticed my hairy legs & pointed same to mom. She simply told her to
wax them. While aunt was waxing my legs, mom came towards me. If you wore the long skirt, she wouldn't have noticed it, don't blame me, it was your decision. Some of the moms came into the room &
hold me, I was screamed, and literally in tears. When waxing was done, mom put danglers on the table, the same one came with my necklace set. Where is my clip-on mom? I asked her with my paining
eyes. Oh the clip-on? They couldn't complete it in time she said. I know that was a lie, her face was lying, in fact all faces around me wore a lie, even the girls may know; I thought. Aunt once
again marked & pierced me. I felt them, the pain, the danglers, in my ears. Do you want more? two or three sets would be nice, aunt asked. I don't want to look nice, I replied. Then maybe another
time, mom replied for aunt. With the aunt’s work, driver thought I was girl. We departed to the venue.
#396
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:17)
The Competition Part V
Mom helped me to get into my lehenga, aunt did my makeup again to look more convincing. This time I did carry my lehenga as a pro. Why did you pierce it? Girls asked. Don't you know? I said. No, we
thought you're having a clip-on, they replied. Mom made me do it, I looked down. Don't be sad, it suits you, and you can always remove it if you don't want. They tried to cheered me up. We sang well
as we could & came back to the green room. mom handed me my salwar, without much talking I changed into it. When I looked at the dupatta, mom came over & took it for me, then placed it on my
left shoulder. As planned before, we went for a trip in the nearby places. While having lunch with them, mom announced that she brought a gift for me, a set of diamond stud earrings. Mom & aunt
put them into my sored ears. Girls became jealous of my gift. While washing my hands dupatta felled of my shoulder mom scolded for me & told me to take care of it. I looked at other girls,
whenever they feel a slight alignment in their dupatta that always pulled it back, not only that but also fiddled with in time to time. So did I, I took one end and began to start fiddle with my both
hands. Mom noticed it, you were learning quick, I love you, mom said. While we were in beach aunt told me to cover my ears, as the piercing is new, too much dust & sunlight may cause problems.
I'm not planning to keep it aunt, I replied. Oh that's okay, but for now, let me help you, she took the dupatta out of my shoulder & placed it over my head. Mom liked it very much, while coming
back from there I pulled it from my head, put on my shoulder and started fiddling with it. When reached home, I waited until mom got some time. I was still in my salwar with dupatta when she came to
me. Why are you still awake she asked me? You didn't remove my earrings? I replied. Why do you want to that? What will happen if you selected for another competition? If you removed it, we need to
re-pierce it. No I won't remove it, after all it's a gift, who'll reject such a nice gift? You can remove it if you want. But I won't help you. She cleaned my nails & quickly walked away.
Even though all my tries in the night lost in vain; still I literally spend hours trying to remove it. I was afraid that my friends will know. But lucky me, there was a rain in the morning, so I put
on my overcoat & walk fast towards the school. While passing through the school gate, I found one of the singer friend, and asked her to remove it, whenever she touched my ears; I cried a lot,
all of my tries made it worse, but still she removed it and handed over to me. I was happy. When I came back mom spotted my empty lobes. Unlike me, she wasn't happy. Did you lose it? its costly she
said. No it's with me. I walked into my room. Some another week passed by, near the two month holidays, the news spread again. We won the finals & invited to perform in a cultural event. Teacher
called a meeting. All the moms were happy. They want to thanks us for our winning. So they planned an all-girls trip to the several nearby places during the vacation. The cultural event was in the
midst of second month. As it's a big event we need to go there in our school uniform only. Not only that, they will check our identity cards, so I will be in trouble, moms & teacher discussed
something about it. Then came the dress code for performance. It's a cultural event, so a saree would be better, teacher claimed. That's the best. What about the jewelleries? asked another mom. Well
a jhumka will look good, another mom said, all accepted that. There will be practice in the holidays teacher said. While walking towards home, mom scolded me; I told you several times, not to remove
it, do you see what happened now, we need to re-pierce it. I kept mum.
The vacation started. When my friends came to play with me, mom informed them that I have practice, so I won’t be able to go with them for some time. They left without me, and told me to call them
when I’m free. One-day mom came back from shopping. I brought something for you. She said. There was another knee length skirt & a long skirt, two tops to go with them, & some innerwear. From
today onwards you will wear your four skirts only; she demanded. I changed into the long one with all the necessary inners.
#397
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:20)
The Competition Part VI
When morning came mom woke me up & marched me towards the bathroom. When I changed into towel she handed me her hair removal cream. I looked at her with pleading eyes. Do you want to wax again?
all over your body? she asked. I remembered about the pain, cream would be better, I thought. When I stepped out of the bathroom I was hairless. She handed me the new knee length skirt & sandal,
and told me to bring down the diamond studs. When I was ready in them with my inners, we went to beautician aunt's home. Do I really need to pierce my ears mom? why don't we go for clip-on? I asked
her. You pierced first, then you pierced again, does it really matters? Mom shut my mouth. When we reached there Some of the moms and all the girls were there planning on the trip. Are you here to
pierce? aunt asked. Yes, mom replied. And handed over my studs. Suddenly aunt's daughter showed us her new earrings. While looking at her earrings, mom noticed her multiple piercings. She has two in
each. Mom touched them, but didn't spoke a word. She examined other girls. Except two of them all has double pierced ears. Mom told me to sit there & went home, when mom came back we were
chatting. She went directly inside, talked something with aunt. After aunt came out and asked me if I’m ready, I went with her, girls followed me.
I was sitting in the chair while aunt marked my ears. Then her daughter asked, "why are you doubl..." before completing, with one single look of her mother, she shut her mouth. The moms hold me
tightly. Then aunt spoke, when did you got the idea? Right after I spot two in your daughter’s ears, mom replied. I smelled something wrong. Stud will go to the top, for bottom I bought something
else, while speaking she took a box from her purse, I was keeping it to use after its healed, but more is good. Aunt bought a big needle and heated, it will make the healing faster, she spoke to me.
Oh that’s okay, this time I will make sure that the hole exits, mom replied for me. When it touched my ear I did felt the heat, as the needle passed through the first mark, pain flowed towards my
ears. But I felt something wrong. Aunt is it little higher? no it's right where it wants to be she replied. Next the stud went in, she did the same for the other side also & tighten the screw
firmly. When I tried to get up, aunt told me to stay there, it's not over. Then came the box, inside there was two-inch gold simple hoops. Now I know, they are going to double pierce my ears. Mom
please don't do this, I cried. She scolded me very well, you have to wear the jhumka don't you, without the lobe pierced how are you going to do that? If you don't want a second set you should have
told earlier, before it's done. Now shut up. I was in tears while aunt heated & pierced my lobes. The hoops went in I could feel them moving to & fro. Aunt showed me a mirror. Looking at me
the two unpierced girl’s mom also want their daughter’s ears double pierced. Within seconds their ears also done with gunshots. Now we all eleven "girls" ears become double pierced. They planned on
the trip for some time more.
#398
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:22)
The Competition Part VII
From there itself, mom went for shopping with aunt again. I stayed there. When she came back she brought me another beautiful salwar, with something else, which she kept as secret. Girls liked them
very much. When we reached home. I went straight to my room. My ears were paining a lot. Mom planned everything very well, I thought. This time she pierced my ears a month before the event, without
any help I won't be able to remove it myself, and because of vacation I will be under her supervision, so healing won't be a problem. And with double piercing, she got a bonus. A week passed, I was
always in my skirts with proper undergarments, every day mom cleaned the lobes, slowly earrings became part of me. Next morning mom woke me up, ordered me to have a body hair removal session. When I
came out, my new salwar was placed in my bed. So I changed into them. As I never wore salwar past few weeks, it felt weird, mom never scolded me in these days, so I left my dupatta in the bed itself
& came down towards mom. I was wrong, she was literally in fire again. Where is it? she shouted. Then dragged me towards my room while holding in one of my ear. She took the dupatta in her hand,
& asked me. What is this? A dupatta, I replied. Whose dupatta is this? Mine, I moaned. She put it on my shoulder & said firmly, if I ever see you in a salwar without dupatta, I will pierce
your nose, is that cleared? Yes, I mumbled.
After breakfast we drove towards aunt's house. I was due for a haircut by couple of months. Mom told her to give me a pretty feminine short haircut. After that for the first time, I went under a
through makeup. My lips were painted; brows were thinned & arched. Manicured & pedicured, nails attached & painted. Then came the secret from earlier shopping. payals, a necklace &
two bangles all in gold along with a lady’s wrist watch & a purse to go with it. I looked into mirror, there was me, sorry the girl version of me. mom took me to the nearby studio to have my
photo taken. Then only I came to know about it, all these preparations were done for just a photo, to put it in my id card. When we reached home, she told me not to remove anything, everything except
the watch in your body will go to bed with you, from today onwards you will wear salwar only, for sleeping you can use your skirts, unless I say so. Don't worry I will buy you some more salwar, she
said. I transferred myself into a long skirt, with all the jewelleries adorning my body, I went to bed. In the morning I changed into my old salwar, while I was watching TV in the couch, dupatta
felled out of my shoulder, I was still at TV, mom noticed it & came towards me, sat beside me, she took it and placed back on my shoulder. She came closer, be careful what you wish for, while
touching my nose she said. This will be your last warning. She went for shopping & kept her promise, she brought me three more salwar. Next day we went for the trip planned, I was of course in
one of my new salwar, always clinging to my dupatta. I know mom was waiting for an opportunity. So I did take extra care.
#399
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:26)
The Competition Part VIII
More than a week before the event we all joined in the beautician aunt's house. I was in one of my salwar. When we were there, moms went for shopping & brought us the saree & its accessories.
The jhumka was heavy. As instructed earlier, tailor came there, & took my measurements to stich my girl uniform along with saree blouses. Moms talked about our makeup & all, meanwhile they
came up with nose ring, which will give us a contemporary look. But none of us has a pierced nose, so they asked the girls, but luck was still with me. None of them really wanted to do that, some of
the moms don't appreciate it. So the final vote came for a clip-on. I felt relaxed. The next day itself, while we were practicing in aunt's house, mom called me down, my uniform & saree blouses
were arrived. A red knee length pleated skirt & a fitted shirt/blouse. I modelled in them for inspection. It fitted me well. We will try saree at home mom said & asked me to change back, I
did and hurried to practice. I don't know how much time we practised, may be ten minutes after my uniform session, I could hear mom calling my name louder. I know something was wrong, so I ran. The
moment I saw her, my body began shivering, there was it, in her hand, my dupatta. I forget to put it back after my uniform session. I searched for someone help. But none of them were, all the moms
except mine were gone. She came towards me put it over my left shoulder and said, you will remember this day, forever. mom told aunt to keep an eye on me and left. I was still standing there,
fiddling with the end of my dupatta, I know where she went. Girls found out something wrong. I told everything. They felt pity for me. When mom came, I pleaded her. Mom I don't want it, don't do this
to me, my friends will know. Mom pointed her finger to the chair. I didn't move. She came forward & pulled me to the chair. I gave your last warning, still you made me humiliated in front of
them, now no more chances, mom's face became red. Even the girls don't have it mom, I moaned. You are not a girl, by dropping dupatta you proved it, this will make you more differ from them, don't
plan to run, your buddies are a call away, she said. Crying, feeling lost, I sat on the chair. Aunt was heating the needle. Mom took it from her purse, a beautiful diamond stud, then marked my left
side. You can see your unpierced nose for one last time mom showed me a mirror. Moments after the needle pierced my nose, the stud went in. In the mirror, it was glittering.
While driving back home, she spoke, I’m really glad that you lost it. What mom? I asked. Your dupatta, she replied, that's the only reason why; you are wearing it, she touched my nose. Why did you do
this to me mom? You don't have it, even your ears are single pierced, I asked her again. Because it suits you & I love it, she replied. When reached home I throw my dupatta to the couch. Mom
looked at me. What? Should I care now? I was angry. Oh you need to, because your right nose is still empty, or we can go for some more in the ear, she replied. Now I know that she will do anything,
so by myself I put it back on my shoulder. Mom smiled, she was happy, & handed me my saree petticoat. When I changed into it, she herself put the blouse on me. Next came the saree, she draped on
me, one day you'll learn to drape it yourself, she smiled, then payals, necklace, bangles came. Now it was the time for jhumka, for the first time from my third time lobe piercing, hoops were
removed, as jhumka added; my lobes pulled down. You look pretty, she said. After everything removed, my hoops went back. I changed into a short skirt.
#400
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:28)
The Competition Part IX
In the morning when I woke up, my nose was paining, I hoped it was a dream, but it wasn't. I looked in the mirror, tried to remove it, but again not only I was helpless, but also increased my pain so
I never tried to again. Mom inspected it every day. After two three painful days when my nose looked normal. Mom took me to aunt's home I was in my same salwar which gifted me the nose ring. There I
had the same makeover done which made for the studio session. Mom took me again to the studio. I looked at her. Oh its ok, I want to change the old photo, now with a nose ring you are more beautiful,
mom said. At last the day came, after a proper hair removing bath, I wore my new school uniform, we joined in aunt's house the morning itself. All the moms were surprised to see my nose, they touched
it, some of them even looked inside to make it sure that it's pierced or not. I felt embarrassed. With a little makeover, we travelled to the venue. Teacher gave my new id card, to my surprise the
name was changed, it did rhymes with my male name add to that my nose & ears were glittering with diamonds, the two inch hoops were looking at me. I put the new id card to my purse. When we
reached there, they checked us, after a brief other programmes, cultural event started. In the green room after a long makeup session we changed into saree which we did in the normal style, pined to
the left shoulder, mom helped me to do it. All the jewelleries were added to us. All the girls brought new diamond studs to match with mine which adorned in their second piercings. After jhumka
added, girls got a clip-on nose ring, for me mom brought an exact replica for pierced nose. Aunt removed stud from my still healing nose, there was it pain again, it lasted for some more time even
after the ring went in.
The event got completed, we changed back to uniform. There were almost two weeks before the school reopen. So moms planned for a photo session to keep the memories for future, in our session we will
pose in all three costumes. Next day in one of the girl’s house which has a beautiful gallery, our photo was taken. A complete makeover was done. I was still in my nose ring, so saree costume with
jhumka, its own necklace, bangle, payals went first, after my ring changed to stud, next came the two lehenga session with its own danglers, necklaces bangles & payals, in each time mom took my
single photo. Mom gave me all my golden jewelleries, when I put my payals, necklace & bangles, she helped me to change into golden hoops. After that all the girls went to shopping. For me session
wasn't over, mom bought all my dresses, so I did pose in all my five salwars, four tops & skirts, and last in my uniform also. As instructed by mom, in every single picture, my nose was
glittering. When girls came back the gifted me something & told me to change into it, they went to change themselves. Mom opened the gift for me, it was another lehenga but this time there were
double dupatta, with all the jewelleries. After everything striped down, mom changed me into my new lehenga, then I took both dupattas & looked into it, mom noticed it & came towards me. She
helped me to draped in the matched dupatta. I was still confused, why there is two? I asked myself. Then aunt came, after doing my hair slight differently, with some more makeup. The jewelleries went
after, for the first time I wore a maang-tika, then she removed my nose stud. My still healing nose felt pain. Then I noticed the new ring, which laid in front of me, the ring was thicker, with a
chain. When aunt pushed it through my pierced hole, mom held my hands. This time pain was huge. The ring touched my painted red lips, aunt connected chain to my hair. Then I found out, the use of
second dupatta it went for my head. I walked towards the gallery to get photographed, all the girls were there, changed into their new dress, but by the look I was the only boy. Yes, that's right all
of them wore jeans & tops. I felt betrayed. With me in the middle photos were taken, the I posed for single shot.
#401
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:31)
The Competition Part X
When we drove back home, I was in salwar fiddling dupatta in one hand with my golden bangles, payals & necklace, nose owned diamond stud back, lobes got its hoop, my second stud was somewhat
fixed for me, it never removed. When I got back, changed into one of my long skirt. When morning came, after bath, I know that the event was over, but to the fear of mom's wrath, I wore a salwar. Mom
was in the kitchen; I went to her with my fiddling dupatta. You are early she said. Alter having breakfast, she asked me nicely, do you want to remove it? What? Your earring, mom replied. I know the
holes are permanent mom, it's been two months, does it really matters? I asked. No, at this point no. She replied. But I like to remove my nose stud mom, I really want to remove it, my friends will
see my hole, please mom please, I began to cry. Oh I will, but not today, let it heal, I want the hole to be permanent, what if another event occurs? do you want to go through all those pain again,
the stud in your nose have the smallest gauge available, so the hole will be almost invisible, she explained. Is nose stud really necessary for another event mom? I asked. Yes, because you already
have it, anyway you can have your boy clothes when school reopen, until I say so, please be like this, mom replied. While she was talking, my dupatta slipped, I quickly rearranged it back. Mom felt
delighted, she told me that, I learned a lot & touched my ear, actually I planned three, one more in the top, exactly here in the cartilage, too bad I didn't go for it, maybe next time. She stood
up, and touched my right nose, my warning still exists, she said. I picked the left over dupatta & placed in my lap as normal girls do. Mom smiled and walked away. On the remaining days at day I
wore my salwars & during sleep changed into my skirts. Two days before school reopening, all of us planned another trip to the beach. I was in one of my salwar, and I carried my dupatta well. Mom
was proud of me, so she promised to remove my nose stud on tomorrow itself.
On the night before the new school day, I was in one of my long skirt. Mom came to my room. She told me to remove my jewelleries, I took out my payals, necklace, & bangles. Then she herself
removed my hoop earrings. Next the second set of studs came out for the first time, she inspected the holes & found perfect. Nose stud came out last. It's still healing, so I’ll put it back when
you come home, otherwise I won't remove it, she made her stand. I nodded. And I also wanted you to be in whatever I like when you came back, mom spoke again. I nodded for that too. Mom handed me a
mirror. The lobes piercings were visible, but the piercings for second set & nose were not much. Now a day’s boys have pierced ears too, don’t worry, mom tried to cheer me. Mom was still looking
at my nose; she was afraid of closing it. She quickly went down & came back with a retainer. It's in your body colour, I brought it yesterday, please try to look away from your friends, you will
be fine, while putting it into my nose she said. Moms face turned bright. She was happy now. I thought about my coming days at school, and tried to get on to bed. Hold on there, mom stopped me. Why
do we take chances, when we have lots of retainers, let me put into your ears, mom was thrilled, I wasn’t? She slides four of them into my piercings. We will do something about your hair in the
morning she said. I was surprised of the results, the holes become much less visible. I become happy for the first time. Thanks mom, I said. I love you & I’m proud of you, while walking towards
the door mom replied. Because of my long skirt, I get into bed in a girly way. School was all over my head, but this time sleep came early.
The End.
Please post comments ........
#402
Anjali(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:51)
Forgot to thank all the readers & the authors for keeping this site alive. And thanks RAJI for keeping this site up, as always ...
#403
Maddy(Tuesday, 15 November 2016 06:17)
Anjali great story keep it up and pls post more stories will be waiting for your stories from now on!
Amazing story Anjali i cant stop myself from reading your stories. One of my favorite stories. Please post more stories. Loved this one. And thanks for sharing such amazing story.
#406
Nandan(Wednesday, 16 November 2016 04:38)
Wheel of Life
This is story from a village in Mysuru, Karnataka. Janardhan Gowda was one of the Richest man in the village.He owned acres of Land and was also owner of a Huge manshion in the centre of the village,
all the area around the mansion was also owned by Gowda , he had built small houses for the numerous of his workers who worked in his house and his farm. He was married to Narmada Devi, it was a love
marriage and Narmada was from a relatively poor background. During her college days Narmada was friends with Neelaveni , both were so close that they were though of as sisters. Neelaveni who was from
Janardhan Gowda's relation was from upper middle class and used to help Narmada financially whenever needed. Janadhan Gowda married Narmada and made her the queen of his mansion
2 years later Narmada gave birth to a son named Nandan. Gowda went on a spree and gave all of the village a huge feast on birth of his successor. During the feast a familiar face had returned to
Narmada's life i.e Neelaveni. She was married 6 months ago to a relative, her husband who was an avid gambler had spent all his and Neelaveni's family fortune in gambling. Her husband also left the
city 2 months ago, Neelaveni was then thrown out of thier house by bank officials and she was on road to fend for herself, add to that she was also pregnant. That is when she remembered her friend
Narmada who was the only one left who could help her. Neela fell on Narmada's feet and begged for her help. But what she did not know is that Narmada was no the same person she thought her friend
was, she was now a cocky owner of a huge fortune, her response was not excatly what Neela expected. But Janardhan Gowda was a man with a large heart, he consoled Neela and told her to have food at
the feast, and they will discuss about her future after the feast. Neela was relatively relieved and agreed to Gowda and went and sat at the food table to have food.
Narmada then pulled Gowda to the side and told him I want to discuss about Neela. She said " how are we going to afford Neela and her baby's expences , i dont see her husband coming back again, that
means there could be a chance that we should look after her for life,What i say is give her some money and tell her to leave". Janardhan was totally surprised by her view, Narmada had told so many
stories about how Neela was there when she needed help both financily and mentaly, she also told him a story about how Neela had saved Narmada from drowning in river Kaveri when she slipped while
bathing in the river. Janardhan roasted her for being so insensitive towards he friend when she needed her the most, he was admanent on helping Neela as he was gratefull to her for saving his wife’s
life. Narmada was little digrunteled but later agreed of Janardhan helping Neela, but she had one condition, “Neela had to work as a Maid in the house until her husband comes and takes her, and she
would also not get to stay in the mansion, she will have to stay in the slum that you call the worker quarters “, She was admant to this condtion and told Janardhan that this conditions has to be
met, while they were conversing they were unaware that Neela was standing right behind them, she came back because she wanted to have food along with her friend and not alone, she had heard all their
conversation. Suddenly both realized her presence and turned back Narmada gave a wicked smile, Neela told Narmda that she was happy to work as maid in her friend’s house and she also agreed to stay
at the workers quarters. Narmada was very happy inside and said “OK, Go and have your food Neelaveni”. That evening she was ordered to shit into the workers quarters and told to join to work next
moring
Next day Neela joined to work next day, Narmada just gave a slight smile and said “ Maids come to work here at 7 am, Please come early from tomorrow as I cant change the rule only for you hope you
can understand Neelaveni” . To which Neela replied “Oh Sorry Narmada, I didn’t knew exactly what time I had to come and was also little tired after yestrdays journey, Don’t worry Narmada I will come
at sharp 7 am from tommoro”. Narmada was little disturbed by Neela calling her out by her name in public. She pulled her to a corner and said “Neelaveni, No one here knows that you are my friend,
everyone except my husband calls me Memsahib, It is sake of my honour, how can a maid call me by my name , Please refer to me as Memsahib in public”. Neela was shocked to here those words, she was
taken aback by the changes under gone to Narmada due to her sudden change in social status, She could only Muster as Sorry and an Okay.
#407
Nandan(Wednesday, 16 November 2016 04:39)
Wheel of life- Cont..
Days went past Neela continued to work as maid in the Gowda mansion and Narmada totally made Neela forget that she was a friend of anything. As months passed Neela was 7 months pregnant and she was
given leave from her maid duties and was secluded to her workers quarters alone to fend for herselves, her only help were her fellow maids who brought in food and took care when needed. Narmada never
visited her even once , In her 9th month of pregnancy she gave birth to a Girl child, She Named her Karthika as she was born in Karhika Maasa. After Two months of her delivery she joined back to her
Duty, Narmada didn’t even ask her how she or the baby was, she just noded to Neela as a Owner to her maid. Even after so many months her husband had not returned and Neela thought to herself that she
was destined to her Maid life and her only aim to live was her little daughter.
To Be continued
#408
Sumathi(Wednesday, 16 November 2016 08:04)
Fantasy:1
Hi I am surabh from a wealthy family, don't have to work for next few generations, owned by mom and dad, everything has come to stepmother after my mom dad passed away when I was 13, my schooling
changed to homeschooling, I am the only man of this house, we have few maid's inside and outside of our house working, and they have a maid's quarter. At the age of 17, one sleepless night I was
roaming in my house, and I came to maid's quarter and I found their sarees in clothesline for drying, their smell was still found in the saree, and that cotton material gave me an erotic sensation,
the first time I felt to try those dress, my heart was beating, I was looking here and there and found to be dead dark, I know how to wear a skirt blouse and bra but how will I wear these saree, I
controlled myself, walked to my room, I hugged my pillow and start dreaming about how will I look on this saree. And how to wear these, I took my phone and started Google, how to wear a saree, yes i
found, I looked inside my room nothing, just by boxers t-shirts tracks, how will I try , how will I learn, I took my bedsheets tried like a half saree first, then tried the pleats and tried
everything, I somehow identified and felt so natural saree wearer, I believed I could wear saree. So I waited for next night, for the first time again i felt that erotic moment heart beating, an
adrenaline rush....
I went to that place, found many sarees, all are cotton, every saree I touch it hugs my body and I felt the ultra feminity to wear, the urge made me to dress, I quickly took the saree and blouse
skirt and bra panties from same clothes line and ran into my room and locked the door.
My heart beating was high, a fear of getting caught and a feeling that I'm going to be a girl for some time.
I quickly wore all the inners and wore the saree for the first time, the cotton sarees just hugged e around and exposed my structure more feminine, I thoroughly enjoyed the feeling and I sat on bad
like a girl and tried sleeping for an hour and before the sun rises I removed everything and kept back from where I took. This happened several times. I've been doing this for months and it became a
secret hobby for me. I stopped cutting my hair. My step mom commented me to cut my hair several times, she always praise me I look like my mom, so why shouldn't I try look like her I thought in my
mind.
One day when I was having my breakfast with my stepmother, one of a maid was serving breakfast asked permission to spoke, stepmother said yes,
Mam, one of our maid left job today.
Any problem ?
Yes mam, while she left she said someone is trying on her dress and she needs privacy to her belongings, which is not here so she left .
Hearing this I started shivering, oh my god I was trying on one of a maid dress an now she left. Now I need to search for someone else dress, I mean that bra and blouse and skirt.
That maid looked at me and told my stepmother
Mam only we are in this house, how she says someone will use her belongings, I was shocked by hearing this.
My stepmother looked at me and said,
See surabh someone is trying on her belongings how rude isn't?
Yes mom that's too bad we have to find that theif and give right punishment, I added.
My stepmother smiled and told that maid, meanwhile you search for someone who can fit that role.
She said ok mam and left.
I looked horrified after that meet I went to my room and thought what to do.
Hereafter whose blouse and bra wil I can try.
The night came. I went to maid's quarter, I couldn't control myself all night since I'm used to wearing saree and sleep for a while has become a habit for me. I couldn't control myself I wanted to
wear saree that night, i searched same clothes line and found same saree and blouse everything, without thinking while me on that erotic mood I took that saree and went to my room as usual I wore
that saree and I was feeling the feminity, as I always do this at n8, nobody will be there so I never had a habit of locking my door, now that created a problem, i was rolling in my bed feeling the
smell and enjoying myself as a women, I saw a girl standing at the door wearing a similar saree like me, shocked I suddenly woke up and tried to hide myself, then the voice came, calm down surabh,
I'm your maid, and my name is reni,
Shocked and feeling cold I couldn't able to speak, I hung my head in shame and stood there like a statue.
#409
Sumathi(Wednesday, 16 November 2016 08:25)
Fantasy:2
Maid spoke, what happened? Any problem in your tongue? U r such a fool, in front of u only I said one maid left, u found her saree in same place don't u able to realise it's a trap? Wat am I supposed
to do with u? U look yes like a girl, a teenager, I have a plan for u. Meet me early at 7 in the kitchen bye.
She left, I stood there speechless, feeling nervous and shaking I quickly removed my saree and went to maid's quarter and kept clothes in clothesline just the way it was, as usual, I came back and
slept.
Next day morning I was sleeping and someone was caressing me from behind and cuddling me, it was so seductive I slowly turned around and to find my maid, in that erotic mood I lost myself she made me
cum. After few minutes she woke me up, I recalled what happened and hung my head in shame and asked her
Please don't say anything about last night and what happened now please.
Yes surabi, I know what to do. If u don't want anyone to know about this, u have to check your wardrobe now.
I quickly went and opened it to find a five sets of cotton sarees with blouse and bra and skirt with cotton panties. I felt ao happy and thanked her.
Not so fast, u have to wear now and come with me.
No mam please if my stepmother see me she will throw me out of this house.
Surabi, don't get panic ur stepmother never been to maid's quarter or to kitchen, she will only call, I'll manage. If u want me to go to your mom and sat everything then stay here.
Ok ok don't say I'll do Anything, pls wait, i quickly dressed in their cotton sarees and followed her.
She took me to kitchen.
You've been very bad, because of ur filthy behaviour we lost one maid, one slap hard on my face, I cried almost
Shut up u r here as a maid and remember your position, now as a punishment clean everything here, fast in Next one hour, she left.
I started to clean everything one by one, with a feeling, what if anyone see me, I made my work fast and quickly completed by 8 am. I heard my mom calling the maid reni. My heart was beating hard and
started sweating, standing there speechless.
Suddenly I saw reni running fast to my mom, she quickly came and asked me to make a tea. I said I don't know how to make.
She taught me once and asked me to remember, and she won't teach m every time. I noted how she done that.
She came back again and started preparing breakfast regular chapathi with Chenna masala, she taught me and said next morning I should prepare something like this. I said I need your help, she said u
do alone I will correct it. I said ok. After breakfast preparation she asked me to go my room and quickly change and come for breakfast as surabh. I asked her what f my stepmother is in hall.
Reni said, she Is in bath,go quickly before she come or else u will end up like me here.
I ran fast to my room and got ready as surabh and came for breakfast.
Me and my mom was having breakfast when reni spoke, mam I selected one maid she is in training period now, will very soon I'll show her to you, you'll be surprised with her work.
Mom said, hmmm I would be happy to have such pretty maids, train well.
I looked horrified and looked reni and in action I asked are u referring me?
She showed in action wearing a saree, are u interested?
I said no in action.
She smiled and In action said no not u.
With a relief I started having my breakfast.
#410
Srs(Wednesday, 16 November 2016 21:47)
Anjali is nice that u also became a reader to writer, keep going on.
#411
satya(Thursday, 17 November 2016 00:28)
nice story sumathi continue
#412
satya(Thursday, 17 November 2016 00:37)
brother in law to wife
hi i am satya age 33 every day i woke up at early morning 5.30 and take the bath and cook food for lunch and maid will come at 6 and assigning the work to maid means cleaning the house washing cloths
etc later after cooking i wake up my daughter and my husband and i will ready my daughter and send her to school later i will be ready me and my husband will go to office . this is my daily routine
in every morning
actuallu i am not female from birth and i dont have any crossdressing habit but at my age of 27 one incident changed my life turn up to the age of 27 i am an software employ earning 50000 per month
but now i am a wife and having one daughter every day i am wearing saree and night time having sex with husband. how i turned like this i will explain you.
#413
satya(Thursday, 17 November 2016 00:51)
brother in law to wife 2
i am only son to my parents in home only me and my mom will live my father left us at early stage
and at the age of 22 i am studying btech final year i am having an girl friend name sindhu she will lives near to my house only my hobbies are playing cricket i am the highend batsmen inthe colony
and while playing the cricket i have so many friends on that varun is my best friend . but i am very fair in color so many girls are follow me.
one day varun came to me and ask me help that he is loves a girl name sandhya please give some suggestons he said. . she is also loving him but tyhey are not expressing.one day they both expressed
and married each other .now they are living fine after the i year they are having a daughter also.i also completed my btech and placed in it company my girlfriend also placed and we two also love
each other but we did not tell to our parents she said i am also having the one brother and mother she said come and talk to my parents. first i asked help to my friend varun he said i will come ok i
said then i and varun went to sindhu house varun get shocked.
#414
satya(Thursday, 17 November 2016 01:02)
brother in law to wife 3
he said it is my house and she is my sister.i also get shock because i dont no she is her sister i went to delhi when varun marrage was held they are having two houses in same colony where sindhu and
her moher lives another one is vorun and sandhya lives. sindhu get shocked i am with her brother.later all discussions their family and my family was accepted for marrage and we are also happy i and
sindhu roamed each and every place in city in bike while riding a bike i put sudden brakes his breast will toches me she said what u r doing i ride slowly i am uncomfortable.i asked why if u were a
girl then u will come to know she said.our marrage was also completed i give party to my collegues and one of my collegue satish invited to his house one day.one fine day we went to his house he and
his wife welcomed me i and satish was talking in hall sindhu and her wife wwent to kitcen and talking each other and time is up toleave my wife is not coming i commented her what u r doing their she
is seeing her saries and jeweleries of her and talking about that i commented girls are intrested in sarees and jeweleries and that is important than her husband later we take food and went to home.
#415
satya(Thursday, 17 November 2016 03:32)
brother in law to wife 4
life was going peacefull after marrying sindhu vikriam was giving utmost respect to me. sindhu cousin name uma she was 22 years old and she was living with sindghu mother. one day i sindhu sandhya
was going on a car from back one lorry came and hit us what was happend i dont know when i opened my eyes i was in hospital one nurse came i asked whta happened to me she said u are in hospital from
four months u r in a comma stage.now only u recoverd after 1 hour my mother came me to see me that i was fine later vikram also came to me to see all are coming what about sindhu i think i
remembererd i we met with an accident and i asked to my mom about the sindhu she is crying she said sindhu and sandhya are no more for us she said. ididnt understand later they said they are expired.
iget shocked what about the daughter of vikram she said she is fine and she is living in sindhus home.i was recoverd in 1month and i was discharged. while i was discharging what about my health they
enquired to doctor everything is fine but he is not fit for marrrage or sex his penis testiciles were damaged in accident and it is used for urine purpose only not for sexual purpose every one get
shocked and everyone showing the sympathy on me.after 1 month i am going to office everyone showing sympathy on me. idid not like that after the theree months some changes were going in my body that
my hair was growing fast and
#416
ishu(Thursday, 17 November 2016 03:55)
satya great going
#417
satya(Thursday, 17 November 2016 05:50)
brother in law to wife 5
i am becoming slim and my chest was growing and my penis size as been shrinked and after going to office every one touches me it makes me the uncomfortable. iam no t getting sleep in night
times
so i think i need to consult a doctor so i said to my mom she consulted the doctor doctor checked me and test reports are pending so we came home my mother said that not go to office tomorrom .so i
am free in home now so my mother only went to the doctor to collect reports so the doctor replied about my problem he said im accident his male genitials were damaged so he cant be father or not done
sex so female harmones are producing fastly in his body so thats why theese changes are coming.so my mother asked what is the solution for this he said if he live like that bresat will come hair will
grow but penis will belike that so society will see him like a bitch so my suggestion is that to becoming a female by doing the srs operation is the best solution such that his mindset will change he
can live remaining life without any problem but if he changed into female he can do sex and any one of u given their ovaries he will get periods but he cant deliver a child now he is 27 still so much
life is there to live.think once and we willproceed but it must be go in a slow and study dont tell him directly after 1 or two months he will bw getting more changes then u can say him hemust think
he himself a girl then only we can do operation otherwise it will effect later.now i will give somw tablets please follow this procedure.it will take 8 to 10 months to became female doctor finally
said name is no problem to your son satya name is to be set for both male and female. ok doctor i will go now
#418
Nandan(Thursday, 17 November 2016 08:37)
Wheel of life- Part 2. Contiued from #407
We now take a 10 year Leap from the events of #407.
Janardhan Gowda and Narmada 's son Nandan was growing up , both were happy and enjoying seeing him grow up, Meanwhile Neelaveni had given up hopes oof her husband's return, she continued to strive as
a maid in her former friend's home, her only source of joy was her little daughter Karthika who was also of same age as Narmada's son Nandan. Nandan went to a premier Private school of the village
and Karthika went to a govt school as her mother couldnot afford it. Since both were of same age Nandan and Karthika used to like playing togather, but Narmada was strictly against Nandan mingling
along to maid's daughter. So she debbared Nandan from meeting Karthika , she told Nandan that he should not mingle from people of the worker's colony as they were dirty people.
It was Nandan's birthday that day and Gowda family were travelling to Tirupati as they vowed to go pilgrimage few years ago. They finished their trip and were returing home when tragedy struck. Their
Car met with an accident. Both Janardhan Gowda and Narmada were critcally injured. They were shifted to Hospital were they battled for their lives. Narmada's wounds proved fatal and she died two days
later, Janardhan Gowda had lost his legs and was now bound to a wheel chair. Nandan was devastated by the death of his mother. He went into depression , He even skipped school for a whole year as he
refused to leave home and was always in thoughts of his mother.
Janardhan was advised that Nandan be sent to a diffrent place as him being in his house may keep him in constant reminder of his mother. So Nandan was shifted to Delhi , were he was enrolled in a top
Residential School. Janardhan now paralzyed had to depend on others for all his works, the only one he could trust in his house was Neelaveni who was not only his long serving maid but also his
distant relative. Neelaveni was promoted to the post of head maid and was entrusted to look after the mansion. She was even granted a room in the Mansion and she and Karthika shifted into it.
Neelaveni took great care in looking after the day today affairs of the house, she even installed CCTV cameras inplace to avoid misplace or robbery of items from the house.
Years passed and Nandan continued his study in Delhi, he who once was a bright student due to the skipping of one year was now a very dull student, his friends in delhi with whom he hanged out spoilt
him even and converted him into a total low life . He hardly passed his 12th exam with passing marks, even though he was enrolled into a preimeir engineering institute by his father via management
seat. Meanwhile Karhtika was a very bright student was topper, she aced her 12th but was still able to join BCA course due to her mother’s financial condition.
#419
Nandan(Thursday, 17 November 2016 08:38)
Nandan had returned home for his 20th birthday to celebrate in his village along with 5 of his friends, Nandan knew that Janradhan will be angry seeing his son partying in his house so he made sure
that the party was kept when Janardhan was not in the village.
The day of the party came, Nandan along with his friends had arrived in the house, Neelaveni was surprised to see Nandan, as he had not informed about his arrival. Nandan instructed her that he was
going to have a party that night and will be needing her to arrange for the food. But Neelaveni said that she had sent all the maids for a weeks holiday as Janardhan was not in town and it will be
though to arrange a feast in such short time. Nandan in a raged voice instructed her to not forget her status as a maid and quietly follow the orders of her Master. Neelaveni then put her head down
and agreed to arrange for the feast alone, she though she and her daughter could somehow manage to cook.
Karthika then returned from her college and entered the house, Nandan and his friends were all in awe of her beaugty and were totally dumbstruck. Neelaveni then instructed her to go and freshen up as
she wanted her help in some arrangement. Both Karhtika and Neelaveni left the hall and went into their room.One of Nandan’s friend pulled him towards a corner and said “Dude Nandan , what a sexy Maal
you have in your house, dude the party will be more fun if she could do a strip dance for us tonight” and laughed. Another friend joined him and told “Come on Nandan, please I am too excited after
seeing her, I totally want to see her Naked tonight”. Nandan thought for sometime and told “Lets see what can be done” and gave a wicked smile.
Neelaveni and Karthika worked hard and made all the arrangements for the night, during doing some work Neela slipped and had an Leg injury , the injury though not serious ,but still neela could not
stand for a while. She told Karthika to take care of the Serving of food and retired to her chamber. The boys then were prepared to have food , Nandan called out Neelaveni to which Karthika came out
and informed him about her injuty and told him that she would take care of the serving part. Nandan was ok with that and told her that they were ready to have food. Karthika then arranged the table ,
the boys sat around it and Karthika started serving the food.
#420
Nandan(Thursday, 17 November 2016 08:39)
All was going well, Karthika was doing her duty without knowing that Nandan meanwhile was scheming to trap her into something. As the Meal was coming to an end Karthika went back to get the desserts,
that is when Nandan got into action he Kept his costly Laptop at the edge of the table, Karthika unknowing of the fact went ahead to serve the dessert when disaster struck , the Laptop fell down as
soon as she kept the utensil on the table. The force was enough for the laptop’s screen to break into pieces. Nandan stood up and hit a Hard slap on the face of Karthika, she was totally in horror
and started crying and begging for forgiveness, Nandan shouted on her “ You filthy Bitch, do you even know how much that Laptop costs, its work 1Lakh 80 thousands, you have totally Brocken it apart”.
Karhtika again begged his forgiveness and told that she didn’t dod it on purpose to which Nandan replied “What if you didn’t do it on purpose, who the fuck will pay for it? I am gonna fucking throw
you and your mother into that streets and then lodge a police complaint and put your mother into Jail”. Karhtikas eyes were now full of terror of what she just heard , she started weeping even more
all she could say now is “Please Master Nandan, My mother has worked for so long in you house, pls spare us, I am ready to do anything in return”. That is where Nandan wanted to trap her, he asked
“What do you mean by anything?” she replied “Any punishment that you put me through I am ready, but please don’t harm my mother”. Nandan and finally achieved his Goal
“Okay Karhtika first things first, don’t worry we will not rape you, but if you don’t agree to me from now then we may even do that, agree?” Karhtika was relived to here those words,she thought
Nandan would give some little punishment and let her off , she said “Okay ,Master” .”Then lets start now, we are going to have some drinks now, I want you to stay here and be our Bar girl and serve
us drinks too” . Karhtika though taken aback by the term Bar Girl she was okay with it as it involved only serving drinks she said “Okay”.
Nandan instructed her to bring the bag that carried the drinks to the dinning table and start serving, she brought the bag and removed the Bottles, arranged for some glasses and started removing the
Lid of the Alcohol bottle. That is when Nandan stopped her, “Hey Karthika, don’t start serving yet, you are not yet in the attire of a Bar Girl” . Karthika was stunned and became a statue of a second
and looked at Nandan. Nandan then said “ What Happen Karthika, why are you stunned, Oh I think you don’t know the attire of a Bar Girl let me show you” . He then googled a Bar Girl in a Two Piece
costume and showed it to her, Karthika fell on her knees at the sight of the photo she never imagined that Nandan would put this as a condition , “Oh please don’t start crying now, you agreed to do
anything I say, Now this is what I Order, See this picture I want you in a similar attire, since we don’t have anything similar I would like you to strip to your Underwear instead ,and be quick come
on” . Karhtika was now in a total shock , but she had no choice she had to undergo this trial otherwise her mother could endup in Jail and she on footpath. She stood up ,The boys then strated
screeming “Strip Strip Strip “ .She Removed Her top first to the reaction of “Oooooo” from the boys . She then in Embarsment momentarily stopped and covered her breasts with her Hands, to which then
Boys again started their chant “strip strip strip” . With tears in their eyes she then proceeded to remove her Pant to expose her Panty, she was wearing a matching black bra and panty that night. “Oh
stop crying, let me cut you some slack , I will allow you to wear your Dupatta if you want HAHAHAHAH”. To which Karthika didn’t reply and put her head down , Nandan then shouted ”How dare you not
accept my linecny, now I order you to remove your Bra and Put duppata Instead and that would be your attire a Duppata and a Panty, now hurry Up. Karhtika knew that she had no choice and proceeded to
do that She was now in just Duppata and Panty. Nandan instructed her to start Serving the Drinks .Karthika with all the shame in the world started to serve the drinks . Nandan and his friends were
enjoying embarsing her more and more, they started to pull her duppata from side to side, Karthika had no choice but to be their play tool. All she could do was to adjust the duppata each time and
continue serving.
#421
Nandan(Thursday, 17 November 2016 08:40)
“Stop Nandan!!!” Janardhan Gowda had returned from his trip which was cutshort due to a car failure. “What are you doing son, why are you hitting Neelaveni, Don’t you have respect towards elders you
Idiot” He was really angry on seeing his son’s actions. Neela quickly got on to her feet and ran towards Janardhan, she fell on his feet and begged for justice “What justice?what just happen?”
Janardhan was confused to which Neela told him about all that had conspired in his Absence. Janardhan was schocked, he never could have Imagined that his only son could have done this heinous crime,
He shouted on Nandan “Do you agree to all these accusations?” To which Nandan replied “Yes I did that, but It was a punishment for Her crime, and these people are faking their crying, they want us to
settle some amount so they are emotionaly blackmailing us, don’t fall for it Dad”. “Shut Up you stupid, How dare you spoil the heritage of my family, you are a black mark in my family’s history” . He
then consoled and asked for forgivenss to Neela, He told her not to book a police complaint and told her that he would sort things for good tomorrow morning and asked her to return to her chamber.
Neela stopped weeping and noded and returned to her room. Janardhan then went to his room, he could not get sleep for the whole night and thought about the situation that his son has created now and
how he could set things right.
Next Morning 8 Am, Janardhan Insrtucted All three Nandan, Neelaveni and Karthika to be present in his room as he would announce his decision. All three arrived Karthika could not raise her head and
see anyone eye to eye. Janardhan started speaking “First of all I would want to beg for forgiveness to KArhtika, child my cruel son as put you through eternal pain please don’t curse him and my
family , I beg you to forgive him” He bent towards her Leg, “No Sahib, you are like god to us, please don’t do this”Karhtika said . Nandan was shocked to see this “No Dad what are you doing “he said.
Janardhan slapped him and Said “You don’t have a say here, shut up and listen”,He continued “To set things right, I have decided that Nandan will Marry Karthika, and she will be the future owner of
this house, that will stope her from cursing our Family, My decision is final and my son has no say in it” .Nandan was engraged of the decision he told he was not willing to marry a girl who her
friends have seen Naked and started leaving the room . Janardhan then caught his hand and told him he will not leave until he agrees to his decision otherwise he will be discarded from is will.
Hereing this Nandan was in fit of Anger, He Kicked his Fathers Wheel Chair so hard that it went outside the room , Janardhan’s room was opposite to the 100 floor steps, the wheelchair which was in
motion along with Janardhan now flew down the steps, Each Thud of the steps hitting Janardhan’s body was heard throught the house. As he reached the bottom he was no more alive.
ALL THIS WAS CAPTURED IN THE CCTV CAMERA
To Be continued
#422
Nandan(Thursday, 17 November 2016 10:05)
Sorry Readers there is a continuity problem from #420 to #421
I had typed like 3 pages and posting accordingly..
At end of #420 Karthika was serving drinks and then Neelaveni's charachter enters...but that part was not missed...and i unfortunately deleted that part to............Now i will post important points
of that part
# Karthika Serves to the boys in Duppata and Panty
#Buys embarass her more by asking her to do snake dance and then ask her to go to room and wear Saree and come..and then ask her to do Striptease
#At the end of the striptease Neelaveni enters and slaps Nandan and threatens police action....then Friends of nandan leave at hereing her threaten of Police
#Nandan asks Neelaveni the price of Karthika's and tells she is nothing but slut....and hits Neelaveni....then Janardhan Gowda enters at #421...and the story continues...
Sorry Readers for the inconvinence...Please reply if you are confused or anything and what me to stop
#423
Sumathi(Thursday, 17 November 2016 12:32)
Fantasy:3
After breakfast I was in hall watching TV. And my stepmother joined with me, I used to watch TV see with her. While me and my stepmother watching TV that maid reni crossed our place and she was
standing in a corner and was watching me. Realising someone is watching me I slowly turned my face and saw reni, she gave me a kiss and in action she asked me to wear saree and come, my heart beat
raised again, I told stepmother that I'm going to sleep and walked to my room, reni maid was standing there
and said now wear the saree and meet me in kitchen.
I replied mom s der if she saw me then we both will be in trouble
She replied if u want me to expose u wearing saree to ur mom then stay here I'll come with your mom in ten minutes, two choices, come to kitchen or wait for us.
I angrily went to my room And wore the saree and slowly walked down to kitchen, reni was waiting for me.
U talked too much today. I have a punishment for u.
I thought she will ask me to wash the vessels and cook. But she had other ideas.
Go to our maid quatres and ask anyone to tie your hair in high bun like we all do.
Mam I'm wearing saree, please they will know me.
I know, they won't open their mouth, if they ask tell them u r just having fun with reni.
I said ok, and stood there looking at reni, eyes filled with tears,
She said, Don't waste my time and pushed me outside kitchen and locked the door.
I panicked and quickly ran inside maid quatres and at entrance I found one maid she looked at me and asked why are u wearing a saree?
I smiled weakly and said just feeling what it's to be a maid for a day.
She said, wonderful, what kind of maid work u r trying?
I'm the kitchen maid, can u tie my hair like yours.
Oh sure, u will look good, here it is,
She took a black scrunchie and pulled my hair from behind and tied it in a high bun tightly.
I thanked her and quickly reached kitchen.
Reni was just simply waiting for me.
She made me wash all vessels. She prepares the lunch and she was teaching me how to work elegantly like a girl.
In some interest I was also interestingly learning that.
Now u go to your room our lunch preparation is complete. Go to your room change your dress and remove the hair scrunchie and go sit for lunch. While in lunch u have to ask me to teach u how to serve
ok?
I said ok and changed myself and sat with my mom for lunch.
Reni came with the lunch and she started serving, I took a deep breath and looked at reni, she looked at me to ask, I nodded
Mom can I serve today for a change?
Oh sure son, ok go ahead, reni move Today he will be serving me.
Reni, can you teach me how to serve?
She said sure mam, sorry sure Sir with a giggle she taught me serving the table.
And she commented to my mom I will make a pretty maid if trained properly.
Mom smiled oh yea he is. He is good sh appreciated.
I thanked both and finished my lunch.
#424
poojaa(Thursday, 17 November 2016 12:53)
Sumathi nice storiesss........plz post more stories
Can u plzz include dupatta bondage(blindfold, gagg, tiedup)as a punishment of maid.
#425
satya(Friday, 18 November 2016 06:19)
brother in law to wife 6
my mother came home and i asked what was the results of reports she did not say full mater. she said only it is due to harmonal balance doctor given tablets and to use regularly and advised to take
rest in house for two to three months. i aksked why she said k if u r felling fine u can go by next week.i said ok. days were going fine my facial hair was no getting befor i am having stylish beard
after accident i am not getting hair on my faceand my chest wasincreasing.
#426
Sumathi(Friday, 18 November 2016 13:48)
Fantasy:4
After lunch I went to my room and looked at the saree I wore with my sweat it looked more wet, so I locked my room turned on the fan and tried to make it dry. When I suddenly shocked hearing my door
knocked, I quickly hid my saree and opened the door only to find reni, I smiled at her, she smiled back,
What are u trying?
Nothing!
I know u r trying to dry the wet saree.
Yes, it's wet because I sweat high
We all sweat while work dear, it's natural, that's why we wash every set of our dress during night.
Oh ok now I understood, I smiled.
She said, now who is going to work in the kitchen,. She looked at me smiling.
I weakly smiled, it's me isn't it?
Yes u are surabhi, wear your saree, same wet saree, and meet me in kitchen fast.
I said ok and quickly dressed and slowly walked to the kitchen.
Reni smiled at me, u think u r so bold? U dare to walk around the house wearing saree?
With fear I replied I thought mom is sleeping? She is right?
Yes, she is sleeping, what if she see you?
Please don't remind me such situation I'll die, I replied sadly.
Why u die? U look so sexy like a girl, and wen I asked you to wear saree and come u just did, so u r not a man either. Why u should worry anyway?
I hung my head in shame, I replied I'm a man only.
She smiled and replied, u r a man? Look what u r wearing, skirt, panty, blouse, bra and a saree, and WAITING to work in kitchen like a girlllll......
I hung my head in shame, I had tears in my eyes, and replied, it's because of u only.
She didn't said anything, she asked me to go and wash all the plates and cups we used at lunch and asked me to prepare tea and meet her outside in garden.
I said ok and started working, I looked my shadow frequently to admire how shape I am and touched myself several times to feel myself wearing a saree.
After I made tea. I slowly opened the door and found reni was standing near a tree watering, other maid's were busy doing other works, I covered my head with Pallu walked towards her, she turned back
and found its me , she spoke,.
Why are u covering your head surabhi, come on, she pulled the Pallu from my head to expose myself and tied the Pallu to my hip as normally girls do, she then hold my hands and walked towards kitchen,
I hung my head and walked fast.
She Tasted my tea and said, wow it's very nice. I must appreciate your first tea. Yes it's tasty, so what you do is go change yourself and sit watch TV, I'll serve the tea, I happily turned and
started walking to my room, reni called me,
Surabi u were talking, i didn't like it, now after u change, u stick this bindi in your forehead and sit watch TV.
Please don't let me do this, my mom will think I'm a eunuch, please I beg u please.
No u must learn the hard way to obey whatever i say.
I'll do whatever u say but please no , not this.
She warned me, to do as she say, or she will tell mom about set of sarees in my wardrobe.
I went to my room changed my dress, and looking in the mirror, I kept the bindi, a bright red colour, traditional bindi. I almost cried in mirror, and took a long time to come out, I decided to cover
with my hair in the front which is as long it covers my front face. So I covered and sat in front of TV.
Reni came and gave me tea, she noted that I hid the bindi with my hair and went and gave tea to my mom, they both came and mom sat beside me and reading newspaper,
Suddenly reni came next to me, and hold my hair and called mam look at him, he is wearing a bindi like you.
With anger mom looked at me and asked what is this stupidity? And she gave a hard slap, and asked reni to give me a proper hairstyle,so that I can't hide my face doing stupid things, quickly she took
a scrunchie and tied my hair a bun style like all maid's do.
My mom looked at me angrily, look yourself in the mirror, I can only see your mom, not a man I expect, she blasted get out of my sight and left.
Reni smiled at me and said u look cute, I cried and went inside my room.
brother in law to wife 7
i asked my mother my chest was increasing she said u r not growing to gym thats why it is becoming like this next day onwards i started to go to gym for 1 week later also ithere is no any difference
and my hair was grown up to m neckmy shirt size was became less but it is tighten towards chest area and my hip size was growing one day i am going out in a city some one seeing me differently and if
any one man touches me i am getting some feeling while i am walking or running i am getting iritation if mychest nipple touches my shirt and it is swagging next day i explained tomy mom she said i
will give you an idea she gave me one panty and one camisole but i dont know it is panty she said it is new underware to you and it is new fashionok i wera panty and next she given camisole i know
this is camisole i asid why i need to wear this she said it is soft to your skin and it will be tight such that ou cant get any problem so i wear it later i wear one loose t shirt and one track and i
went for jogging i feel some what better days were growing on and my face became pure smooth and no hair on my face and chest area also increased and i am feeling some weight on my chest and it
became an girls breast again i and my mother went to dctor. doctor saw me and said i will give this case one specilized lady doctor and consult her so we went to that lady doctor doctor saw my
reports and checked my total body she said to me wait outside. she told to my mother he is becoming lady day by day tell him to wear the bra it will supportes his breast doctor how can i say to wera
bra to my son how can i say that u r not a male u r female she said dont worry first you tell him to wear bra now his hair also growing let him aloow to go outside his skin also become hairless his
mindset also changes day by day you tell him to wera girls dresses but not force him what is his age 27 started allow him to wear first jeans later try salwar saree his harmones are fastly producing
with in two months he will become physicall and mentally a female after that we will make surgery be careful theese two months i came out and we went home next day after taking bath my mother came to
me and given bra i asked whu u given tome i am not girls she said it will helps your chest not to grow and swagiing i said no my mother shout me to wear i said i dont know she said first ou have to
hook at front turn towrds back keep your hand in this trips and lift it to your chest and adjust it the two cups must be filled with them my mother siad to try again i unhooked the bra difficltly
later after 10 to 20 tries i sucessfull in wearing bra later i wera tshirt it is dark color such that bra will not visible but after wearing bra my chest has to pointed out later my mothergive me new
denim i wore it it a girls denim later i come to knoow freely i kept my hair and went for out. bra gives me a nice support but everyone is starring at meseeing my chest later i saw one girls is also
wearing same tshirt what i am wearing i can come to know that my and her chest sime is same i confir that my chest is growing like breast i am getting some uncomfortable while every one seeing on me
later i went to one mall while entering there will be checking the security didnt check me and said madam go thier for ladies checking i get schoked he tell me a madam with in aminute i went home and
checked in mirror my face hair and chest and hips dress it was looking like an young girls of 25 and no one will say me iam aboy and my mother went for function for 3 days and i am only in home i
removed all the dresses and wear night tshirt and shot went down of my apprtment and my tshirt is transperent so toatal brast can be view outside everyone is seeing my thighs which is smooth looking
sexyly two them and seeing my top portion and one lady came to me and said why u r coming like this you have cover your breast lby chunni or dhuppata your mother doest not taught youso i covered my
breast with my hand and went to my room and removed all dresses and checked my self in amirror again and i didnt go out for two days still my mother came.
#430
Sumathi(Saturday, 19 November 2016 14:21)
Fantasy 5:
After that humiliation I felt too sad and I was crying in my room, by 7pm reni came behind and hugged me, I replied, I thought u were helping for my hobby, now u made me caught.
She replied it was a punishment that u spoke too much surabi, now be my darling, after dinner finish all the works in kitchen and wash your sarees and dresses, I'll collect your dresses in morning
and keep in your room, ok?
I replied ok and waited for dinner. Stepmother came and said sorry, and she said i always wanted u to be the man of house, but u always looked and in everyway like ur mom, so I thought u will become
one, sorry, I hugged her and didn't said anything.
She replied I will be going out for few days, so behave and be a gud boy, ok? and I'll bring u a surprise if u be a gud lad..
I felt happy that she won't be there for next few days, so that I can enjoy my beginning of feminine feel. I did what reni told and kept my panties Bra blouse and saree for drying in clothesline and
came back to room.
I couldn't sleep, I looked at my wardrobe and I thought why not wear the other sarees and enjoy the night, so I quickly transformed into surabi and practising my feminine walks and then suddenly the
door opened, it's reni,
Hi, sorry I'm shocked.
Surabi, you got to wake up early, so stop playing and sleep well, tomorrow morning same schedule as today.
I nodded, she left, I locked the door and shoved myself in bed and had the best night sleep.
Next morning I woke up became reni and finished tea making and breakfast and quickly changed back to myself.
As a regular morning me and mom had breakfast and reni served it, I was expecting my mom to praise my first cooking, but as for her it's maid cooked it.
She tasted the tea and breakfast and didn't said anything. While leaving the house she informed reni that the breakfast is delicious and keep the gud work.
I jumped inside my heart, it's my first cooking and I nailed it, I appreciated myself.
After mom left, reni came and smiled so u r ready for the play. I said yes, I transformed myself into surabi and worked with reni, for next two days I spent my entire time in kitchen in saree and I
somehow liked it very much. Third day morning as usual I dressed and made breakfast tea and everything for myself and reni, we spoke a lot and I found my mom was also a great worker like me,i
resemble her in every inch, I blushed at her comment, by 11 am she called me to go out for a small surprise, but I never been outside in saree, so i hesitated, but reni forced me to come with her, on
every walk I faced the world hiding my face with my hand, reni smiled looking at my predicament.
We finally reached a parlour, a cheap parlour, I tried to run out but reni and the beautician pulled me inside and gave me a simple piercing in both ear with a big ball stone stud, I seen this all
maid's wearing similar stud, my other side was enjoying this transformation but the other side was giving a fear what will mom say.
#431
Sumathi(Saturday, 19 November 2016 14:53)
Fantasy Final
I felt happy with the stud, but the fear was increasing every day and I adapted this new alter ego and I didn't want to become surabh again.
After we reached home, I thanked reni.
She asked why? It's just a play, be ready to change, your mom will come by next week.
I took a deep breath and asked reni, I want to be this.
What? As Surabi? Don't want to be you?
Yes reni, u encouraged me, u said I'm not a man, I had a male ego, now it's gone. I don't feel man anymore.
Surabi, I know u always wanted to be one of us, that's why you didn't say anything when I kept all old maid's sarees and set of everything in your room.
Yes reni, now it's time, I wanted to become one of us.
Reni hugged me and said, so it's time to introduce our new maid isn't it?
I smiled with tears yes.
She took me to maid's quarters and introduced me to other maid's, everyone looked at me strangely, but we didn't react, we reached kitchen and started our work.
Next day morning I woke up and made myself as surabi again and looked at my wardrobe, I took a garbage bag and disposed all my male clothes in it and walked outside my house, the garbage van reached
I gave it to them and found my handshaking , my alter male ego is trying to stop, but I won't let that happen, I went back to house, completed morning work, while at breakfast I explained what
happened at morning.
Reni smiled and appreciated my boldness.
I thanked her and continued my work.
By 11 am a knock at the door only to find some lawyer at my doorstep, reni welcomed him, I quickly hid myself in kitchen, after a few minutes reni took me to him, he asked me, surabi with your true
knowledge u like to be surabi the maid of this house under the contract of this house owner? I nodded yes. He took me a picture in his mobile and asked me to sign some papers and left. I asked reni
What is this all about?
She said, u want to be like us, don't u need an identity, he is my friend a criminal in making fake profiles and proof and documents, with help of him u can stay with us as surabi the maid for the
rest of your life. I happily hugged reni and thanked her for everything she did to me.
We both went on to do our work.
Next day mom came, as usual I finished my morning routine and was having my breakfast at kitchen, reni asked me to go and serve, I asked no not now what will mom say, on my 18th birthday I Don't want
to give her this shock pls. She forced me to go, with shaking hands I finally reached dining room to find my mom waiting. I slowly started serving, she started clapping when reni appeared, mom gave
her a bag and thanked her. She gave me a small document to find my signature, I asked what is this?
Mom spoke, thank you surabi , on your 18th birthday u have all the rights to sell or give this property business and everything to anyone, and you gave to me.
And not only that u transformed into your mom.
Mom, u did all this?
Yes surabi,i am, u look more your mom, I know you will never make a man, and what u will do with all these properties?
But mom, I like this and I will stay like this.
Surabi, u got nothing left, u must stay this way, legally u r a maid, and legally u r surabi. Once again thank you my sweet, she left to her room.
Reni asked me to discard the breakfast arranged and continue my work.
Without any guilty feel, I started my work.
My alter ego was saying she cheated, I said so what? Now I am surabi.
Thanks for reading & your comments!!
#432
SRS(Sunday, 20 November 2016 12:05)
"fashion part 11'' # 375
Next day i woke up an get started to ready for my office with my aunt. I went to bathroom an saw my self my hair looks like girls hair an my toung is still paining, i saw it in mirror it was a small
shiny stud an i rely hate that, i tried to remove but i failed, after i brush my teeth an took bath after i came out an started to get dress. each an every time its difficult to get dress with this
fake boobs, an i still used to sit an pee. i looked my silky hair which is shiny an i was shocked for my tattoo which is at the back of my lower hip, so i tuck in my shirt so that no 1 can notice an
when i came out i was surprised on seeing my aunt she also looks similar to me by wearing the same jeans an shirt with the same hairstyle. We did breakfast an my aunt came to me an told that she will
restyle my hair, an i dint accept this an i told i dint want anything i will simply go like this on hearing this she got anger an told when u did french braid hairstyle on that time u allowed some
stranger to do it but iam ur aunt who took care everything about u an here u not allowing me to do ur hairstyle, i kept silent an told ok aunty do what u want to do. After that she made me sit in
chair an started to do my hair she combed my hair an she started to braid my hair from middle of my fore head to above my ear an she told it was finished, after she went inside an did the same
hairstyle for her an i was shocked y she is doing like that. we get start an i came to my car at that time she told that from now on u need not want to drive this car cause ur company told that its
belong to me cause iam ur superior after i gave her my car key an i sat in front she drove at that time i used to put my hair back side but it was not going 1 side of my hair comes in front an
another side is completely braid on seeing that my aunt laugh an told it will not go back of ur neck cause its a style do u see shampoo add 1 side of the hair flow in front like that, on hearing that
i felt irate. after she stopped the car in front of temple an told this the first time am going for a nice job so let v go an pray god after v go office, but i dint want to come cause of this
hairstyle but my aunt forced cause she believe a lot about god. when v entered everybody looks me strange but i dint care about that v straight went an prayed she told me to close my eyes while am
closing my eye some thing touched my hair an pined it when i opened i saw she is been fixed jasmine flower in her an mine hair too, i started to take off that but she dint allowed. i told that i dint
need this please but she told that u r ember that u have put an rose flower b4 then y not now an of course its a god prices u should were it, i said OK then i will were cap on it an she told tats ur
wish u were what ever u want. after the argument v started to move to the car an while i going to put the cap she stopped me an took selfie an showed to me see its really nice to see both of us. we
reached to our office an we went straight to meet our boss an our boss announced to everyone that this our new GM here after she will work with us an she is shyam aunt. everybody welcomed her i too a
bit happy. My boss called to her cabin an asked r u happy for ur aunt, i said thanks for that an she told u no need to say thanks to me just return my money who u gave to ur client otherwise ur next
punishment will arrive soon.
#433
SRS(Sunday, 20 November 2016 12:07)
fashion part 12
i kept silent an she told y ur wearing a cap inside the office please take it of, i asked y some of them r wearing whats wrong with it an she told ya but from now on there is a rule that no one
should not were the sun glass,cap, swet were, gloves etc, an this rule is made by our new GM tats ur aunt, u dint saw the notice board, i was shocked on hearing that,after my aunt came inside an told
to the boss that tomorrow v have to conduct 1 meeting for all the employees an while telling my boss notice my aunt hairstyle an prised about that my aunt told thanks an asked y ur shouting an she
told that u made a rules but see he is not following it, i told to take off his cap but he is not obeying it tats y, my aunt told that i have warned him b4 entering office to not were the cap but he
dint lesson actually he is lill bit shy about his hairstyle tats y,on hearing this boss told what hairstyle an she told the 1 u prisess me just now an took of the cap from my head an my hair flow out
1 side of my front, on seeing this boss get surprised ohhhmg u look dam pretty look at u have worn jasmine flower also good to be see u 2 look same, its shame that u have born as male at that time my
aunt told there is no problem if u give permission then v will take him to hospital an made 1 operation then there will be no difference between him an me an they started to lol, i felt humiliating
in front of them an my aunt told v r just joking dint take it serious. after i came out silently with shame an everybody saw me an started to laugh, i dint know what to do my aunt was standing with
me at the time my coworker who's name is preethy came near to me an told sir this not fair , on that day my daughter accidentally did french braid for that u scold me hardly an i felt really bad for
that but now look at u have braided 1 side in most feminine way an that too u have were jasmine flower an get tense on hearing that an shout to her shut the fucking mouth an get lost, on hearing her
eyes tears r came outside an my aunt shout at me this not the way to talking towards the woman, u have to respect it an for that u will need punishment from her, told aunty this not fair an she told
no more aunty here only mam an iam GM of this company if u dint obey her than she will rise a complaint to sexual harassment. i was shocked y she was giving idea to her like this, i went off from
there an my boss called me i went inside she enquirer about her company dis it get pass r not i told mam they told that there is a problem going on between currency tats y it will took time mam, an
she smiled evilly.
#434
SRS(Sunday, 20 November 2016 12:08)
fashion part 13
at that time my aunt came with preethy an explained what i did after my aunt showed the memo it says for insulting an spokes bad words against preethy under harassment for that preethy will give
small punishment for tomorrow what ever its u must accept it other wise it will took sever action an boss sinned the memo an my aunt smiled after boss told now were do u take him to go an preethy
told he make fuss about his hair for that i need to do something to his hair so v r going to saloon an my boss also gave some thing to her an say that this from my side an v lived from there. after v
3 took a car an stopped at the same saloon were i have been met b4. v 3 entered into the salon an the lady welcome us, preethy told something to her i thought that she is going to chop my hair, after
she told to sit in the chair an started to work, they combed my hair an took the middle of the hair an combed in front of my face, i told that i cant able to see an they told wait for a minute they
will clearer it, after they took the scissor an started to snip my hair above the eyebrow carefully, i saw some sort of hair fell in my lap after they finished i can feel the hair above my forehead,
i tried to pull it back but nothing happen an is short, preethy came near to me an told that this are bangs so u can try another hairstyle but this bangs will lay in ur forehead an laugh an after the
staff of the salon started to do my foot nails an my hand nails, they cleaned an brushed it, they put some sort of paste an its looks like a plastic nails, iam getting nervous about that what they r
doing, after the work is been finished when i saw i was shocked that my toe nails an hands nails r half an inch long which been painted in a metallic black nail polish, i tried to remove it but it
looks like iam pulling my own nail an i have failed, they told that it was acrylic nail which some sort of plastic glue it get melted to my own nails after that they used to shape in different way,
it will not come off an break it easily. i was shocked on hearing this, i dont know how to hide this an when i was thinking another hand grab me an that to having the same nail polish, when i saw it
was my aunt, on seeing me she started to act ohh my i cant believe this ur going on copying me se first i cut my hairstyle as bangs n u did the same after i did my nail u did it same y ur copying me
constantly an they both started to laugh, i told y aunty u doing like this for that she came near to me an kissed in my forehead an took me to the car. v 3 off them get into the car an stopped in the
hotel there the barer called us ladies, come here mam , i dont know they have thing that iam a woman an preethy is constantly giggling. My aunt order the food an i was lill irate about the nails, i
cant able to took menu card its self its getting slip for the big nails, on seeing that preethy told do u know y woman have always grow big nails cause they dint need to do work everything will take
care by boyfriend r husband only thing v need to do is make a nice blowjob, on hearing this i felt really angrier an start to shout an while shouting she told do u need another punishment an on
hearing this i felt silently an took the food silently. when v finished v leve from the hotel n my aunt drop preethy to her home an v came to our home, i went straight to our bedroom n locked the
door i sleep of , i dint know what is going to happen next day, how i will hide this nails an hair in my office omg please help me from this.
#435
Srs(Monday, 21 November 2016 01:12)
Nandan please continue ur story
#436
Nandan(Monday, 21 November 2016 05:26)
That is what i wanted, thought no one was reading :D
#437
Ashwini(Monday, 21 November 2016 12:28)
Nandan please continue with forced crossdressing
#438
Saima(Monday, 21 November 2016 13:32)
Nandan awesome story plz continue. Ashwini my love sis plz continue story.. Ex q zit my darling plz write new story . SRS keep on going. Love u sis
#439
Nandan(Monday, 21 November 2016 20:45)
Wheel of Life - Part 3
Continued from #421
Janardhan Gowda was declared dead before he reached the hospital. It was a tragedy that sent shock waves throughout the village, the most richest man in the village had died under confusing
circumstances. Rumours about his death were circulating like wildfire, some said it was a mishap and some said it was a suicide in memory of his wife, some said his son who suddenly returned to the
village may have commited the murder for his father’s wealth.
Outside the hospital morgue , Nandan signaled Neelaveni that he wanted to have a talk. Neelaveni responded with a terrifying look, she signaled “not now” she wanted to talk after they return to home.
Nandan’s tension was raised by seeing his maid react in a commanding way, he knew it would be difficult to passify her now. There were just three eye witnesses for this case, and Nandan was a #1
enemy of both of the remaining witnesses.
The police inspector informed that the after body undergoing postmortem, Nandan was free to take it for final rituals he also informed him that he would come in the next day to record the statements
of the witnesses. Nandan was relived for a moment that he had time to convince Neelaveni against giving statement against him.
The body was then taken to conduct final rituals which was done by Nandan himself and then in the evening he decided to have a meeting with Neelaveni to convince her not tell police that he pushing
Janardhan led to him falling down the stairway. Nandan went to the hall and signaled Neela to come upstairs, instead of answering to his call she countered him to rather come to the maid room to have
the discussion. Nandan had no option, he followed her to her room.
She sat on her bed and as he stood before her, she started to speak “Look Nandan, I am totally willing to send you to jail, but the thing is if you go to jail , what is there in it for me? You will
go to jail and I & my daughter will come into road , that is why I propose that I will let you off this crime if you agree to my condtion that you have to marry my daughter”. Nandan was shocked ,
“You dirty little Maid, look att our status difference, how dare you take my and your daughter’s name together? , however you don’t have any proof against me to prove your statement, its Just going
to be My statement vs Yours Statement”. Neela had a smile “Oh my little Nandan, Its not going to be only My statement vs yours” she opened a video in her Daughter’s Mobile phone. It was the CCTV
footage of Nandan pushing Janardhan’s wheelchair and the video was so that only Nandan and his father were visible. Nandan fell on his knees ,he put his head down, he knew his life was wrecked
.
Neela then exclaimed “ Nandan, now you understand how much control I have on the situation right now? What did you say? Filthy Maid? Now I am changing my offer, You will not only Marry my Daughter,
you will have to undergo a punishment , this punishment will be for an indefinite time, and only then you will survive from going to jail” . Nandan was in tears now “Neela don’t do it to me , My
father helped you when you needed it the most” to which she replied “Your father was a great man, and that is why I am offering this to you otherwise you would be in jail for what you have done to my
daughter”. Nandan now he knew he had no other option rather than accepting her terms but before accepting he asked “what is the punishment?”. Neelas replied “You will know only after the marriage”.
Nandan had no other option than to accept the terms.
#440
Nandan(Monday, 21 November 2016 20:47)
The police arrived the next day and as expected Neela and Karthika both gave statements that they were not present at the scene. Police then registered the case as an accident and the case was
temporarily closed. Neela went to Nandan and said “ Nandan, beware this case can be reopen any time when the video is produced, and also me and Karthika will not be accused of giving false statements
as we are not visible in the video, so you should better keep your ends of the bargain. Nandan just noded.
After two week, Nandan and Karthika’s register marriage happen, the only witnesses were Neelaveni and few village heads. Then the couple and Neelaveni returned to the mansion. As the entered , Neela
announced “Now that the marriage is over, Karthika is owner of this house and to make it official I want Nandan to sign this document which gives her the whole property”. Nandan was shocked to hear
that, he wanted to refuse but seeing the terrorful eyes of Neela he was forced to agree to it, also he thaught Karthika is now however his wife so it would not make much difference, therefore he went
ahead and signed. Neela was happy “ Thank you Daamadji, I would also what to say that now that I am your mother in law, I will no longer be the Maid of the house, now I am head of the house and will
shift to your parents room, and all of your mother’s wadrobe will now belong to me” Nandan was afraid to say anthing he was sensing her taking full control of the house, but he could only reply with
a nod. Neela continued her speech “And atlast now the newly wed can go to their chamber, don’t be confused by the bed being split, because I don’t want daamadji to have sex with my daughter before he
undergoes his punishment starting from tomorrow. Nandan was now petrified after hearing the word punishment, he was not expecting her to still be hell bent on punishing him , he thaught after him
becoming her son in law she would not let go the punishment and not insisit on it , but now it seemed it was not that way. “Now no need for discussion, go to your chambers, we will meet her exactly
at 8 am tomorrow”. All Nandan could do now was nod, he and Karthika then went into their chambers, He asked Karthika “Do you have any clue about your mom’s punishment?” to which Karthika replied “I
not only have clue , but planned your punishment my dear hubby,You always talk about your money and status right,all I can only say is that your status is going to change, now sleep hubby, you have a
long day ahead tomorrow, Good night ”. Nandan was confused he didn’t understand what karthika just said , how is his status going to change he wondered.
#441
Srs(Monday, 21 November 2016 23:27)
Nandan don't make the story by keeping surprised, please continue ur story pleaseeee
#442
Aishu(Tuesday, 22 November 2016 01:00)
Gr8 story Nandan. Not able to wait for the next update. Kindly post the next posts soon. Srs ur fashion story also too good. Kindly update the next parts soon.
#443
priya(Tuesday, 22 November 2016 08:27)
Nandan and Srs please continue your stories I am not able to wait.....both the stories are goingver very super.....
#444
Nandan(Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:06)
Wheel of life - Part 3
Continued from #440 ( typing from mobile so please adjust)
Nandan couldn't get proper sleep all night, he was wondering about his fate tomorrow, what could possibly be Neelavenis punishment. It was 7.30 am next morning , he felt a splash of water on his
face, he woke up to see it was Karthika his wife who put water on his face. He was angry on her and he abused her. Karthika " Beware of your actions my Hubby will have to face consequences , Its 7.30
am dont your remember your mother in law ordering you to be present in the hall at 8 am ,now get up and wash your face and come down, i will be waiting there". Nandan was suddenly reminded of his
judgment day today, he picked up and slowly dragged himself into the bathroom and proceeded to wash his face , he wore his shirt and went towards the hall to face his predicament at the hands of his
former maid turned Mother in law
It was 8.am, Nandan and Karthika were both present at the hall , Neelavenis footsteps began to hear as she came out of the master bed room, she had Janardhan's old walking stick in her hand. Nandan
heartbeat began to rise, he had his head bent down as he couldn't see his mother in law eye to eye . Neelveni came down the staircase and had a seat on the sofa in the hall. "Karthika why are you
standing, you are the owner of this house please have a seat my child " Neelveni said. Karthika sat besides her mother. Neela then turning to Nandan " Good morning damadji" , to which Nandan replied
with " Good Morning Atthe(MIL)". Then she proceeded towards the important announcement.
Neela exclaimed " Damadji, 1st things 1st , this is the last time i will call you damadji till your punishment period finishes" , Nandan knew that this was the start of his debacle, he just noded,
Neela then continued " This punishment is because your family on one hand has given me shelter and food but on other hand has given me even more embarssement, I was ur mothers best friend and also
saved her from dieing once, but in return she humiliated me by making me her Maid , i was supposed to be guest of this house , but was turned into a servant and treated like a servant. For 20 years i
became servant of this house and served it loyally, and after all this what did you give me? More humiliation, making my little girl naked and asking her to entertain you aand serve you..how dare you
do this to my family , now is the time for payback, hear carefully , from now on till foreseeable future , you will know what is to be a servant of the house , you will be mine and by my daughter's
Domesticaed servant , did you hear that you little bitch ". Nandan was almost in fainting mode , he didn't even dream of being put through this, he wa to be the servant of the house , he begged
Neelaveni to not do this , he reminded her that he is her SIL , how can he became servant of the house to, Neelaveni replied to him " I remember you are the person who humiliated my daughter , now
you have no right to argue, just tell me if you agree to the condition or not, if you don't agree to the condition i will have to send the video tape to police station and you may spend rest of ur
life in Jail, what do you want to do? Do you want permanent Jail or Idefinate time Punishment" she asked. Nandan was in tears as soon as he heard words police and video togather, he fell on her knees
and asked her " please dont give me to the Police , if you promise me that this punishment will not be for long time then i agree to become your servant, please atthe promise me that" Neela smiled
and told him " Your period of servitude will depend on amount of willingness and submission you provide" Nandan quickly replied " I will do whatever ever you want Athe I promise".
#445
Nandan(Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:07)
. Neela then exclaimed "Ok then Nandan , your servitude starts from now , you are my and my daughter's servant from this moment on, and my first command to you is to strip completely Naked" Nandan
was stunned at her request "But atthe" he said, Neelavani quickly cut him short by shouting " You are my servent know , please remember your position, you will address me as Malkin from now on and
Karthika as ChotiMalkin, is it understood?". Nandan had no option but to submit " Yes Malkin" he put his head down. " This is the last time i am warning you , dont argue just submit, if i ask to
strip, you will strip, is it understood" ,Nandan knew he had been completely trapped now , he removed his Pant and Shirt and Neelavani ordered him to remove his underwear too. He was standing there
with his hand covering his genitals. Neela ordered hin to lift his hand as she wanted to have a full view of her servant.. She then said " You made my daughter stand in her innerwear, now how is it
to stand h naked infront of us in such a helpless state, Nandan just put his head down, Neelaveni then turned to karthika and saud " Karthika I suggest you to not refer him as husband anymore and
treat him as a servant only" to which Karthika with a smile noded. Neela then continued " Loom at his pubic hair , Look at his hair around his chest and legs, I want my servant to be clean, Karthika
can you please take him and make sure that he has no hair left on his body and sufficiently bathed? We will meat at the maid room in 1 hour". Karthika agreed , " Come follow me slave" ordered ,
Nandan followed her to the bathroom, She then proceeded to wax him and then forced him to shave his pubic hairs, she then ordered him to have a bath after whicg she took him still naked to the maid's
room, were Neela was waiting for them
#446
Nandan(Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:12)
Neela then started saying "You know servant Nandan, that thus great house has never had a Male domestic servant, And i am in no mood to cahnge it, so I will now inform you that your punishment has
gone to a whole new level, you will not only be a servant of this house you will be a MAID servant of this house" Nandan was shocked this was not the thing he agreed to he complained " This is
unfair, how can i became a women, i don't agree to this". Neela in an angry to exclaimed " Look you lowlife , don't talk about what's unfair, you have to submit to this or else you will go to jail,
this is the last time you will ever argue with me, you dont have right to think about anything just submit to my orders or face jail". Nandan was again in tears , he felk on his knees he knew there
was no going back from here, he accepted his future " Yes Malkin , as you say i will do , i will not argue again, I promise". ." Ok then it is settled then you will be our maid, and fron now on you
will be referred by your feminine version of yourname Nandini, So now NandiniBai, let me introduce you to you maid uniform." She said pointing towards the clothes on the bed, It was a Cotton saree of
Neelaveni herself which she used when she worked as a Maid, there was also her blouse which was laid out ob the bed, along witb a pair of her used Bra and panties. Nandan was terrified by those
clothes, few days ago he was the owner of this house, but now he was here being forced into clothes of his former maid by his former maid. " Nandinibai , now i am sure you have opened lots of bra and
panties in your time in delhi, now i order you to step into those same Innerwear, and do it quickly as we dont have much time, we have to dress you in that saree too before you start your work.
Nandan knew he had no right to argue now , he submitted to her order without thinking moved towards the bed and picked up the panty, and wore it between his legs and pulled it up and then proceeded
to wear the bra , he strung it between his shoulders and was struggling to clasp it , karthika then helped him from behind in clasping it. Neelaveni then inserted kirchief inside the bra to give a
breast like feeling, Neela then asked Nandan to wear her blouse and. Petticoat Nandan took the blouse and tried to wear it but it wa not fitting him right and so was the petticoat, it was not his
fit. " Oh No , what have i done , i thought my size would fit you, looks like it doesn't, neither Karthikas will fit you as she is slim, I think we have to stich new blouses and petticoats for you
NandiniBai, " Nandan was relieved for a moment he asked" Malkin does that mean i ge to wear my Male clothes?" To which Neela replied " sad part is I have thrown away all your male clothes thinkibg
you will wear my old clothes , that leaves you with nothing to wear until the stiched clothes cones which will take a week". Nandan was stunned he was now left with nothing to wear for a week except
a pair of Bra and Panty. Karthika then strung unto action she went back to the room and brought back something it was a " DUPPATA". Karthika then with a cheeky smile " Remember this duppata
Nandinibai, it was then same one with which i was humiliated and now this is what you will wear for a week,a Duppata,A Bra and A panty this will be your uniform, what say mother?" Neela " Karma bited
Nandinibai, i didn't wanted this to happen, i wanted you to wear a Maids saree and go to work, but Karma has it that you pay for your cruel humiliation that you subjected my daughter to, this will be
your uniform untill your new clothes arrive understand," Nandan was forced to just nd to his new owner, he was then handed over the Duppata which he pht around his shoulder. "OK ,this just for
temporary , you will be subjected to more feminism later when the right clothes arrive, but for now we are set, follow me to the kitchen ,Now your Maid training begins" Neela ordered. Nandan followed
his new owner into the kitchen to start his duty as a Maid of the house he owned few hours ago.
#447
Nandan(Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:16)
Sorry for the delay, had no time, hurried up my last posr due to people demanding that they cant wait for next post :D
#448
Nandan(Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:17)
Missed to be continued in #446
#449
Srs(Tuesday, 22 November 2016 23:43)
Nandan ur great, u took so hard to write for us. Thanks a lot.
#450
Maddy(Wednesday, 23 November 2016 04:00)
Nandan great plot include more humiliation nice story keep it up!
#451
Aishu(Wednesday, 23 November 2016 08:28)
Wow gr8 post Nandan. Waiting for next parts with more humiliations.
Hi everyone. I just saw this sight and found it adorable. I want to share my life story with you all. Just remember that mine are actual incidents while most of the stories that I have seen here are
work of fiction and my stories may not be so interesting for you.
If you give your comments, I shall share further parts of my life stories. These stories already are a part of my blog.
“Let’s see what the fate has in store for me. Things are so bad that they cannot go worse” Thought I when my stepmother was on phone with my future wife. She was responding to an ad given by G in
newspaper for a househusband. “Yes yes, he is expert in all household work” she said. Listening to the response from the other side, she smiled and said “ok. We shall wait for you on coming
Sunday”.
My step mother had always trained me to be a househusband. She had refused to get me admission in a college after my 10+2 and I was doing all household work while my half brother and sister went to
the college. Her logic was that when I leave this household, my right on the property of my father shall stand extinguished.
G and her father came to meet me on Sunday. My mother had forbidden me to speak unless a direct question is asked and even then I was supposed to speak slowly and keep my head bowed and my eyes on
the floor. First her father spoke about what he expected from his future son in law. “Mrs. Gupta, To cut the long story short, I want a virtual housewife for my daughter. Do you and your son agree to
it?” he said in the end. When my mother replied in the affirmative, G asked to talk to me alone. In compliance to her request, everyone left the room leaving me and G alone.
G lit a cigarette and asked me” Mr. Kuldeep, Do you understand the meaning of being a househusband” I only nodded and kept looking at the floor. “Do you understand that if we are married, I shall be
the dominant partner? You shall leave this household and come to live with me in my flat. You will not be doing anything without my permission and you shall be required to show proper respect to
myself and my family members. I don’t want any nodding and I want a direct answer this time. Househusband does not mean doing domestic work. You shall be virtually loosing your identity and take my
surname.”
Now I had no alternative. I spoke with my head bowed “I understand and I shall not give you a chance to complain”. G smiled for the first time and said again “I would like my husband to remain in
women’s clothing to remind him his place in household at all times. Do you agree? “
It came as a shock. I had worn a saree only a few times on the insistence of my step mother for dance practice and usually wore my sister’s worn-out dresses as my step mother was always short of cash
when my turn for buying a new dress came. My half brother was shorter than me but my half sister was tall and stout and her size was a perfect fit. I had enjoyed wearing my sister’s dresses sometimes
but it was a different matter altogether to remain in woman’s clothing 24x7. I decided that I had nothing to loose. In fact nothing could be worse than listening to my family cursing me all the time.
“ Your wish is like a divine command for me madam” I said again with my head bowed. G laughed loudly and said “Don’t call me madam. My name is G……. but you shall call me G as in goddess. Your name
Kuldeep is also too long. I shall name you Moni”. G went to the door. I thought that she had gone to call our relatives but she locked it from inside and kissed me on my lips. I struggled to free
myself from her embrace and realized for the first time that she was more powerful than me. “My dear husband needs breasts. I don’t want you to take hormones for that. They have side effects. I shall
get you silicon implants.”
“The wedding shall be in 3 months from now.” Declared G’s father as everyone was congratulating me for my good fortune. “As it happens sir, I am a little short of cash right now and it shall be
difficult to arrange at such short notice” said my step mother as she had been short of cash since eternity whenever any money was required to be spent for me. “You don’t need to spend a single penny
Mrs. Gupta. It shall be a court marriage and all expenses for his clothes and ornaments shall be borne by us” said G’s father. “As requested by you, my son in law shall also sign an affidavit on the
day of wedding renouncing all his rights in your property and wealth.”
I raised my eyes for the first time. Neither G nor her father had discussed this matter with me. I was now beginning to understand what my future status was going to be in the household of my wife.
All decisions shall be taken by her and I shall be a mute spectator.
Please give you comments if you like my story. I shall post further, only if you people are interested.
#453
Banno(Thursday, 24 November 2016 15:09)
Monu nice story pls continue and go in details of clothes and intimate moments
#454
Ananya(Thursday, 24 November 2016 19:31)
Good start Monu. Please continue. Give regular updates
Thanks Banno. As I said earlier, this is a true story. I shall definitely give details of clothes and intimate moments, real problems faced and high/lows of our lives. I repeat that this is not
fiction.
Thanks Ananya. Regular updates are not a problem since these are copy-pastes from my digital diary. The story starts in 2009 and there are many entries. Updates shall reduce once we enter the present
times. Please keep in touch. Because of our peculiar lifestyle, I get lonely and really need good friends.
“What is this? What are you wearing” G was asking angrily. I was sweeping the floor of the verandah of my ancestral home wearing a torn and faded Salwar suit of my half sister when G had arrived,
unannounced. We were engaged only yesterday. She was probably free because it was a public holiday and just wanted to surprise me by visiting without prior information. “I am sorry. I didn’t know
that you were coming” I stammered.
G had a thoughtful expression on her face. She asked me to go and change in to a shirt and trouser and took a chair in the verandah itself. She refused my step mother’s request to come inside. We
came out of the house and she motioned me to sit behind her on her Honda bike. “I have to take the permission of my mother to go out” I told her and ran inside to ask her. I came out 5 minutes later
after her dire warning that she shall not open the door if I was late and sat behind G who was waiting with the bike already started. I didn’t know that I shall not be seeing that house for a long
long time.
Within 15 minutes, we were sitting in a quite restaurant. G had lit a cigarette and asked me to share my life story with her. I told her about my mother’s death and my step mother’s cruelties. G was
in turn sympathetic and outraged. She also told me about her mother’s death and her father’s decision not to marry again and raise her like a son. I had never felt so close to anyone. It was hard to
believe that I knew this girl only since last evening.
“You are not going back to that hell again” she declared suddenly. “Come with me to my place. You have to come ultimately so there is no point in going back to your mother’s place.” I was taken
aback. “Your father shall never approve. India is not yet ready for livein relationships.”I objected.
G lit a new cigarette and started thinking.” I had come to buy a wedding saree for you. Let’s go shopping and I shall think a way out”. With that, she called the waiter for the bill.
As I selected a gorgeous pink colored saree for myself, complete with blouse and petticoat, G was busy making phone calls, only nodding her approval. As I asked the salesman to pack the saree, G came
to me smiling “make some more purchases. You need to have some more sarees and innerwears. As I had said, you are not going back. I have already spoken to my father and all arrangements have been
made. We are getting married in the temple today as all courts are closed due to Republic day. Legal formalities shall be completed later”. With that she took my hand and we went to the lingerie
section.
G had already informed me yesterday evening that after the silicon implant, my size shall be 36c and I made all purchases for that size only hence no one took note of a boy asking for blouses, bra
and panty. As I was selecting a beautiful nightgown, G took me aside. “Don’t waste money on night wears. I am not going to allow you to wear anything at night”. My mouth gaped open and I could see
that her eyes were twinkling.
We were married the same afternoon, on 26th January, 2009.
My Suhaag Raat was celebrated in G’s flat
.
G had not worn any traditional dress on our wedding and was dressed in simple T shirt and jeans as we exchanged woes and took 7 rounds of fire in presence of her father and a priest. My step mother
had refused to attend the wedding and had told me that the doors of her house were closed to me forever. I was dressed in the bridal pink saree and wore all ornaments of G’s late mother. The priest
was initially hesitant to marry us in view of a girl marrying a girl (He took me for a girl as I had worn saree and had done the makeup of a bride) but g’s father had showed a wad of notes to him and
everything went smoothly after that.
While returning from the temple, G’s father asked her to drop him at the railway station as his train time was close. G asked him to stay but he had some urgent work to attend at his native place. I
touched his feet as he was alighting from the car. He gave me a thick wad of notes “This is for you to buy some gift of your choice. Keep my daughter happy.” He said.
We reached home at around 8 PM. Both of us were not hungry as during the ceremony, we were given many ‘Laddoos’ to eat. G took my hand and we entered the bedroom. G went to freshen up and I went to
the kitchen to get a glass of milk for her.
G was standing in the bedroom as I returned. I gave her milk and touched her feet as I had seen brides doing that in hindi movies. G took the glass and returned it to me half finished.”Finish it.
It’s your duty to finish all my leftovers as a mark of your love and respect for me” she said.
As soon as the glass was finished, G started pulling my saree. All my protests were useless and I was standing before her only in a blouse and petticoat. “Take them off Monu darling. What are you
trying to hide from me. Your body is now my property and I have a right to inspect it on my will” said she. I continued looking at the floor. G finally came near me and started undoing the hooks of
my blouse and undid the knot of my petticoat. That left only a bra and panty over me. “Don’t get ashamed darling. We are married.” G said as she took off my bra. She undid the hooks of her jeans and
made me lie on the bed. As she pulled my panty down, she squealed at the size of my member.”From your submissive nature, I was afraid that the size may be small but you have made my day” she said
giggling.
“Every husband is required to give a gift to his wife on Bridal night. In our case I am the wife and I have nothing but my virginity to give you my love” I said as she took my member inside her and
started riding me. Within 5 minutes, I cummed inside her.
“Don’t be sorry sweetheart. I had expected it as you are not experienced.” She said as I apologized. “What are you doing G” I asked as she took out a strange thing from her drawer and started tying
it around her waist. “This is known as a strap on and I am going to put it inside you.” Saying this, she asked me to get on all 4s and slowly entered my ass. “It is going to hurt in the beginning but
you will enjoy it later on” she said as I almost cried in pain.
It has now been almost 8 years since then and the ‘later on’ has not yet happened. G knows that I don’t like the strap on and uses it only if I cum premature. On my part, I try my best to climax at
the same time with her which is not so difficult as she makes love to me almost daily.
Thanks Rashmi. As long as you people are interested and giving comments, I shall continue.
#460
Nandan(Thursday, 24 November 2016 22:33)
Wheel of Life – Part 4
The Wheel of life had taken a drastic turn in Neelaveni’s life , Just days before she was a working maid of her best friend’s Mansion, where she had toiled all her life for 20years , But Now, Now she
was the Owner of the House , She was owner of Her friend’s wadrobe, her friend’s jewelery and also the Owner of her friend’s Son.
Neela the strode towards the Kitchen , all Nandan could do is meekly follow her, he was feeling totally embarrassed of himself in walking around the house clad only in women innerwear, As they were
walking Neela started talking “Nandini , I am telling this for your good only, obey me without arguing or hesitating and your punishment will be less severe if you obey me correctly” she continued
“And one more thing , sumbit to me correctly you bitch , Keep your head down, how dare you look eye to eye to your owner?” Nandan quickly put his head down and said “I am sorry Malkin , I will obey
all your commands Malkin” Nandan knew that only way this could end quickly is by pleasing Neelaveni and getting into her good books.
Then the next half hour was spent on teaching Nandini how to make coffee , how to make chapattis and how to cut vegetables etc , then Neela instructed Nandini to clean dirty utensils from previous
night, Nandini was struggling to maintain his duppata while cleaning, Neela then jokingly said “Beware Nandini, you should always make sure that your duppata cover your breats” Nandan then
embarrassingly adjusted his duppata, which amused Neelaveni . Neelaveni then started to make curry and instructed Nandini to closely watch how she makes it “Nandini , I want you to learn cooking all
types of food by end of the week, or else I will not give even the Maid saree as you will not be fit to be the maid, and you will stay in Bra and panty for a longer while, understand” she said,
Nandan just noded in approval. Neela tge continued " " Fron Tommorow you get up at 5am, go to the kitchen wash utensils of the previous night, then go to have bath, wear new set of bra and panty, by
6 am make bed coffee and offer me, then you go to kitchen make all arrangements for chapatis, cut vegetables and by 7 am you make ved coffee for Karthika, then i will come and help you make curry,
after breakfast I will be there to instruct you. understand?" " Yes Malkin" Nandan said with a meek voice.After the curry was prepared Neela instructed “Go and call Karthika, tell her food is ready".
Nandan Nodded and went to her room. " Kar...I mean Chotimalkin Breakfast is ready , Malkin is calling you" Nandan said with his head boweddown." Karthika said "Ok , Lets go Nandini". As Nandini
turned Karthika pinched his ass,"Oh I so want to fuck your pantied ass Nandini". Nandini grimniced in pain. But still kept his head down and moved to kitchen.
#461
Nandan(Thursday, 24 November 2016 22:34)
As he entered kitchen Neela said " Bring the food and plates to the dining table and serve" Nandini was quick in action, went ahead and took the food and kept it in the table,he then proceeded to
bring the plates , but he was little negligent in holding the plates and one of the plate fell down and broke. Neela heard the breaking sound and hurried into the kitchen. She didn't ask Nandini for
any explanation and just started to beat her with her walking stick." How dare you bitch, how dare you break the plate, dont you have any sense" she said while beating, Nandan was feeling the pain of
the beating and started begging her to stop hitting " Sorry Malkin, it will not happen again, please i am very sorry" he begged. " You are not serious about your Maid job you bitch, now until you
become serious and become better in your Maid job, you will not be the Maid. You will be the bitch of this house , do you hear that? You will act as a dog all the time unless you are doing a chore,
you will not talk but Bark, you will walk on all four while going from one place to another unless you are told otherwise.understand bitch" " Please Malkin , dont do this to me . I dont want to be a
dog , i will be more serious i promise" he was horrified at the feeling of being a dog to which Neela replied by hitting him him more with the stick " Bark bitch , how dare you talk" she said " But
Malkin" Nandan started to speak, Neela theb started hitting more rigorously , Nandan was in excruciating pain now he had succmbed, "Bark Bitch" she said again "Woof Woof" Nandan now became tge dog of
the house. " On you fours, Nandan went on his fours. "Follow Me bitch, serve us food , be fast". Nandan followed her on his four to the dining hall. " Get up and serve us".she said . Nandan started
serving the food. While Karthika jokingly asked " Nandini , how are you doing" , Nandan was confuse what to say, he say terror in Neela's eyes, he knew what he was supposed to do " Woof Woof" he
barked.That made Both Karthika and Neela to breakout in Laughter " Good Bitch, you are improving" Neela said.
As their break fast was going on, Neela put a chapati on the floor near her foot and little curry over over it, Get down bitch hace your food from the floor, be fast eat it only using you mouth".
Nandan was sickened by feeling of eating from the floor like a dog, but seeing Neela's stick being raised a little he quickly fell down on his knees and started eating the chapati like dog, few hours
ago he was eating his dinner from the golden plate which Neela was eating, now he is eating fron the floor like a dog, Wheel of life had turned for him too. " How is the food bitch" Neela inquired ,
Nandan knew what he had to say " Woof Woof."
To be continued
#462
Srs(Friday, 25 November 2016 00:00)
Nandan please make Him feminisation by pricing his nose, ear, naval,don't make him dog its not interesting seems funNy
#463
vasantha(Friday, 25 November 2016 07:53)
nandana super story make feminisation by his wife & srs pls continue story i am your big fan pls continue pa nandan continue pa
I am a Househusband since last 7 years. I loved to crossdress in my childhood and was supported by my step mother. The day she came to know about my interest in crossdressing, her attitude suddenly
changed towards me and she started supporting me instead of my half brother and sister. Without informing my father, she taught me all household works and the art of dressing in sarees and even
dancing in female attire. I realized quite late that actually it was her ploy to devoid me of my parental property and wealth. My father was a very wealthy businessman who had very little time for
me. Soon after he died, My step mother gave my hand in marriage to my wife who was a Tomboy, 3 years elder to me and also 2 inches taller.
My wife had already informed me when she came to see me that she was a very highly paid computer professional and she wanted only a househusband to take care of her daily needs and do all household
work. I was supposed to live as a housewife, perform all duties like sweeping floor, washing clothes, preparing food, pressing her feet at night and entertaining my wife when she so desire. I was
also to wear women clothing 24x7. I had agreed to all these points willingly as nothing could be worse than living with my step mother and I just wanted to be out of her house.
My mother in law had died when my wife was very young. My father in law is a very strict person and raised my wife like a son. Even though, we live in a flat in city due to the workplace of my wife,
about 100 KM away from his house, he is always keeping a strict control over me, by asking about my daily routine on phone and instructing me daily about how to keep my home in good order. I keep all
the fasts and celebrate all festivals like a housewife.
My wife had a very bad habit of smoking. She used to say that it releived her of tensions related to work. I tried several times to persuade her to quit smoking but i had a success only
recently.
Hindu ladies keep fast on Karwachauth day for the long life of their husbands. As my wife is the sole earning member of our household, I observed the fast for her. As per custom, I wore my wedding
saree and ornaments and did not take even a single drop of water for whole day. As advised by my Father in law, I spent the whole day performing puja and preparing delicious food for my wife. When
the moon was out, it was time to break my fast and I touched my wife's feet to take her blessings. She gave me a glass of water. I took a sip from her hands as per ritual. Then I asked her to take
dinner. She gave me a gift of beautiful diamond earrings.
After finishing her dinner, my wife asked me to finish my dinner and her leftovers as usual but I refused to take my meal saying that my fast was not yet over. It was very clear that she was sexually
aroused as I was looking very attractive in my wedding saree and being on fast since morning, my face was also radiant. I had also done a very decent makeup of her liking.
Normally, my wife can make love to me as per her wish and I have no right to say a NO but that day she had been asked by her father very strictly not to break my fast under any circumstances. Also
being a very kind hearted person, she was also concerned that i had not eaten any thing since morning other than a sip of water from her hands only.
I told her that i had asked a mannat from God that she should quit smoking and my fast shall be over only after she promises to God that she has quit smoking for ever. She smiled, knowing that she
was trapped and promised likewise.
Her lovemaking that day was historical. In fact, at one time when she was smothering me, she suddenly pinched on my buttocks and i cried out so loudly that our neighbour thought that some thing was
wrong and knocked on our door and i had to assure them that i had cried in dream. However, it was worth it as since that day, she has quit smoking.
Dear reader
My ongoing series a Crossdress's Diary about a male being forced to replace his sister is available in the below given link. Kindly leave your comments if the blog is worth my time to continue.
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/
thank you in advance
#470
Sia(Thursday, 01 December 2016 05:22)
Satya pls continue ur story. It looks so good
#471
satya(Thursday, 01 December 2016 11:26)
brother in law to wife 8
next day morning my mother came to home i said each and everything happened to me and i asked to my mom what was happen to me and what was doctor said to you. my mother get cried and i got tension
what happened she sad everything t me what happened to me why these changes were coming.i got shocked and fell down on floor after i opened my eyes was on bed
and i am thinking what was my future what i have to do now. i dont live this life my mother was not in my room so i decided to suicide so i drink poison but mother saw me and she stopped it and slap
on my face throw that poison out but i cried and said i dont want to live then she said if you die what have to do now and ur father leave me at ur n small age if u want to scuide then first i will
drink poison later u drink said no then she kept me a promise that i will not suicide next time i said. but i dont want to live this life she said what if u were a girl or lady what was difference i
am a lady up to now u live life like a male now onwards u live life like a female and enjoy life like a lady and being a lady i said stop what ur saying how can i be like a girl leave me alone now
she said ok i will be leave u now but tomorrow onwards live like female and start ur feelings inside like a girl . did not say anythng to her from next day on wards my transformation was started
#472
satya(Thursday, 01 December 2016 12:42)
brother in law to wife 9
next days are going on my mother did not say anything to me to do like this to be like this and one month has completed my chest almost become breast and i am wearing bra regulary only bra panty and
camisole are the girls costumes i am wearing till now and did not cut my hair such that is became more and long my age is 27 but i am looking like a 21 year girls due to breast and my face is become
smoth with no hair and my total body became hairless and i am not going outside from that day i am in home only wearing tshirt and night pant only and i am getting irritating due to hair said to mom
she keep my hair with bun and make pony tail and while i am sleepingshe tied like a bun kept on my head and my old clothes are became very tight and comfortable to wear i dont have money asked mom to
give money i will go and buy clothes said she said which type of clothes u will buy and why do u buy u r not going anywhere why u need she said. dont have any answer for that ikept silent.whether u
will buy girls dresses or boys fromnow onwards u have to live like female better to buy those like salwar saree halfsaree nighties.stop mom nonsense i dont want to wear like that i will take shirts
jeans which suitable to me.oki also come to showroom be ready with in hour fastly wear bra tshirt and one jeans by breast are very tight to that tshirt and become loose to my tshirt lower side and
mom also ready we two went for mall i came outside after amonth. and i observe that all the boys are starrng towards me due to bresat is some what visible and i feel uncomfort i did not tell to mom i
observe that all ladies are coverng their breast with chunni and girls wearing tshirt also those tshirts are loose so noproblem whoose are tight they cover with scarf or duppatta once i remembered
that when i was a guy how i wll see a girl.now i come to know how they will feel for boys who are seeing me i am eye feastng to them. so atlast we reached mall before starting from house mom said i
will buy jeans and shirts what i will like ok i said we went directly to ladies section first time i went i was shocked to see the dfferent types of sections we directly went to western section where
we will get tops and bottoms one girl came to me what u want mam got shocked she called me mam mymother said she want shits and tops my voice is between male and female so i didnt talkshe selected
shrts and tshirts and came to bottoms section here tried differen types of jeans and my mom selected some 3 leggnings also i asked why it is aslo like pant and we went to innerware secton here i can
find the different types of bra and sales girls ask whether u want bras mom first check her size she is wearing not good fitting bra go to change room and check she take me to trailroom and asked me
to remove top i removed it and removed bra also she said u have a nice pair and bigger than me ur hubby wll be happy when u r having sex and she checked it was 34b andu r wearing wrong bra mam dont
wear it will cause cancer wear right one after she checked sze wore new bra and tshirt and t was good fitting to me and came outside she packed 5and 5 panties and mother asked to pack the 3 ngjties
alsoand we came out of mall.
Hi friends how r u all i am writing this stories after so many days hope u all enjoy it
Hi guys my naveena a software professional by work and a reticent by nature. my daily stuff includes lots of tasks which were putted over me by my director and in the evening regular lectures from my
mom about my marriage. I got bored i achieved a level in my carrier even i want get settle down so i agreed for marriage my mom made her lines alert to search nice groom for me. But i have a little
time to enjoy myself so my first desire i never expressed to anyone so i want to fulfill know this is the right time even from my financial side also. But issue is i don't have a good friends circle
to help me out so i was trying figure out how to fulfill my desire.
It's almost a month i am thinking but i din't get any way to go so i was little depressed. I was cursing myself having this kind of a desire at that one day i got a call from my friend rajitha that
her cousin is coming to Bangalore so she told me take care about him i said fuck what is this he is coming on Saturday. i reached railway station i pick him and we reached my apartment for me its is
very hectic to drive in traffic he din't spoke single word. We entered to our apartment i shown his room and i went to sleep. i slept for 3 hours i got fresh up and i went to the hall he is still in
the room i thought i made tea for us and i visited his room i offered tea he said he will only have milk i had my tea and asked his name he told shravan.
Both alike people we are not talkative i stayed for a moment and i had my tea going to he said what is your name time god at last he spoken i said naveena. i asked him for dinner what he like to have
but to my surprise he asked me permission to cook dinner. i shocked and agreed he made a beautiful dinner he came here to do masters in home science.What is happening a young guy thinking of masters
in home science i am saying it to myself and he said he will take care of all the house works still he was there at my apartment.
I said know you are my guest no need do all this you can stay how many days you want he face became red i don't know what he is interesting in after seeing his face expression i told him to cook us
every day seems to be little cool down and i just ran from there to my bed room and next day my office started in a busy life i din't spoken with him a week paused one day i came from office which
was my total surprise day. i reached hall i trying to remove my shoe i heard sound of anklets i was shocked did he brought any girl. i got angry i straight away went to his i was correct he brought a
girl i moved towards her and i said hey bitch who are you and what are you doing here, where is that stupid fellow i am not giving chance him to speak yeah actually it happens when a person gets
angry i took her hair into my hand tried to throw out but i pulled strongly wig came out i saw it was shravan.
I shocked and i left from there went to my room i am jumping with a joy because this is my desire i want to be husband and get all the respects and also who can take care about me i think i got a
right person. i came out silently i acted like normal without seeing any difference he kept his wig and brought coffee i observed i din't took off my socks i said why are doing all this.
He: i want to live normal house wife life and i saw a husband image in you and thinking you as my husband i am doing all this even on first day
In his Shoes
Listening this i said suddenly said stop because since i was enjoying this conversation i want to listen in partly like episodes. I said you have given me enough surprise to me today so please
postpone this continuation for tomorrow and please arrange for dinner. he happily stood up i took my tea cup i said hey sharvan if you don't mind can you remove socks please hey saw with anger but
just know he admitted the truth he want do all this what i don't understood so i said shravani please to my surprise he suddenly removed it without any hesitation oho know it awesome i felt he was
standing their and waiting for my empty cup i handed my cup. i went my bedroom i removed clothes i had a hot water bath today i am feeling so light may be because of shravan sorry shravani. after
completing my bath i cleaned myself with a towel i tied towel till my breast but after it i changed till my navel because i am feeling like a man. so i wore my track and t-shirt went to kitchen he is
preparing lunch and he kept his sari pallu in his navel i felt oho know porr baby he adjusted himself like a typical Indian house wife and i just made a small uhhhh like a Lot of Indian men do he
immediately adjusted his sari not to expose his body good i liked it.
I sat on the kitchen floor i said hey shravan or shravani which one you prefer i said. he said shravani ok then from know i will call you shravani. He said thank you i want test his male ego i said
if you want to dress up full time like a woman i don't have problem he said i want talk about it but fortunately you said thank you. Then i asked is it okay with you if wear pant and shirts like a
man i love this i have only this dresses even thought i have female dresses i don't want share this information with him. he said no problem i already told you that i seen a manly image in me and
this makes more feminine i feel like more female if you were this dresses. I said whatever prepare the food fast i am waiting for you at hall i am hungry i started moving from there with a sweet and
lovely he said naveen that made my inner very happy that i cant express i turned and said what. he with a low voice said naveen i hugged him this is my dream. i left her after a moment and left to
hall in sat on the sofa i was thinking to open up.
So without any secondary thought i want to play a game and he came near to invite for a dinner i said will you listen to me for a moment. he said for sure i told him till know i don't know what
happened in my life is very normal but today you have treated me separately and i don't know when i started loving it know i want this treatment for minimum some days so i request to be me my wife
for some days.he kept his head down app order kijiye ji (you order me) i got acceptance for him from know i will play with him. So feed the dinner to your husband i said he brought the dinner for me
and started feeding me this happen to me after 20 years in the middle i am biting his fingers mistakenly and wanted he like a house wife taking the pain. i don't want lot of mischievous to him i will
do the things from which we both have to enjoy.
after my dinner she had a dinner and cleared utensils came to me with a lungi not so many people wear this in delhi but in south so man will wear this i changed into T-shirt and lungi i am looking
like tamil movie hero. Next i ordered to press my legs.
Please post your comments
#475
satya(Friday, 02 December 2016 11:46)
brother in law to wife 10
after comning out of mall i am gettng urine i want to go to bathroom whether i want to go to ladies or gents side i think
if i go to gents side they will see me differently and by look i am a girl if i go to ladies side i want t sit and pee
even now i am havng penis of small size so i am in a confusing mind i didnt say anything to mom if she is behind me darely
i hold for an hour until reached home,my mom said after 2 hourswe have to cnsult doctor be ready later we went to hosptal
and consult doctor and lady doctor saw me andsaid sirprised that changes are growing fastly and i wear ladiesshrt and pant
and doctor checked me and asked to strip total dress refused she said we two are same no need to be shy i removed
everything including bra and he pressed breast and nipple and i am getting some sense and he kept hands on my hipand
checked everythng and said to mom next week we will do operation i said no what will happen not do means lke this only u
haveto live like a enuch kojja.u have to be in hospital for 10days in thees every procedure we will completeincluding
vagina andbuttock size facialchanges after operation u can live like a normal girl u can participate in sex and u cant
concieve a child u dont get periods after u will look like a 23year girl and u can start to wear girlsdresses like salwar
and saree i will give some medicinesuse regularly till operation after we went to home it was late night my mother give me
nighty to wear i refused it and slept in my shoes and after 1 week time came for operton i went to hospital i siad to mom
last i dont want this she blackmailme that she wll die for that i acceptedi came to hospital room and they gave me a
hospital gown first time i wear it and sleep in bedoperaton was started after 7 days i opend my eyes i saw my mom and
doctor came to me and said tomorrow we will remove bandages and we will discharge they remove it and i am feelng that i am
missing some thng between my legsand i supposed to see down but breast are there i cant seedown clearly later i wake up
they kept me mirror to see my total body that i shocked to see that i am really looking lke sexy girls body stucture with
smooth skin hairless body but now my feelng are like a male only inside and went to washroom and mom said thatu have to
sit and pee i am getting very pain for first time andsaid that after peeing uhave towipe with water otherwse u will get
infection i listend silently and after coming washroom i tied twel down onlymy mother said totie up t breast i sad no one
is there na she said if anyone isthere are not uhave to tie and she gave me bra and panty wore it later i wear shrt and
pant and get started to go home we reached ne place and whent to one flat and said it is our new house i have taken we
changed it to and she said to start a new life and she said it is your room and opened it and i opened one almara to find
night pant and i shocked to see different types os bras panties salwasrs nighties sareesand ladies cosmetics i stunned
#476
Jay(Friday, 02 December 2016 19:11)
Sneha Ur story is awesome pl continue...
#477
shemalesana(Friday, 02 December 2016 20:16)
First time crossdressing
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/
I became my sister
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/11/my-became-my-sister.html
My forced nose piercing story
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/11/my-nose-piercing-mooku-kuthu.html
My aunt repierced my nose
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/11/aunt.html
I became daughter to my uncle
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/12/i-became-daughter-to-my-neighbor-uncle.html
My sister force nose piercing on both sides
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/12/my-sisters-forced-nose-piercing.html
#478
suraj(Saturday, 03 December 2016 03:13)
hi everyone if anyone intrested to become my shemale sissy mistress...jo mujhe humilatate kare...then plz tell me..i will give mh whatsapp number then
In his Shoes
He is handling my legs very carefully and pressing them and i twisted my foot seeing it he started rubbing my foot and pulled my leg fingers carefully then later he came up and started massaging my
shoulders and back first i thought he is taking advantage but later i understood that he is not intentional doing this for me he want me to comfortable. later i switched on the Television he sat
beside me i don't know i became more i fell on his lap he pressed my cheeks and said my sweetu general this word while be used my wife to appraise their loved ones. i want to kept leave for tomorrow
i want to enjoy with shravani since it is starting of our relationship to keep my hold on relationship i have to act like Stubborn so after an hour i became drowsy and i want to sleep so i was going
to my room i asked shravani where are u sleeping. he said my room i said it is not safe women to sleep single come to my room listening this he kept his head down i don't know what he is thinking
even know he is over reacting like a girl.In a small voice he said i will join you i want to change my dress. i said come sleep this you look great in sari he started blush i left the moment for
him.
I slept on the right side he came and slept on my left i acted like already slept i was admiring his beauty being woman i feel to eat him slowly i am scanning his figure first i saw his navel it is
well shaped and he waxed his whole body then i moved his breast they are looking shimla apples and his lips are so juicy i want sip it totally in a one kiss. I am unable to control my feelings and he
is beside me but i can do something slowly i kept my legs and hands on him. he i woke up i acted that i kept sleep he is seeing me like a little slowly he rubbing my hair generally lot of women do
this when their loved ones sleeping but i don't how he is treating me so i moved my hands to his breasts he slowly removed my hands and adjusted himself and slept.
I woke up at 7.30 Am my house is filled with fog in that i saw a beautiful lady tied his hair to towel and carrying a cup of tea with a huge smile handed me tea cup i had it and got my bath went to
dinning table for breakfast he made pasta nice i liked it i appreciated for that later on he tied my tie and put socks and shoes after all this i felt to do something i stood and he stood i caught
his navel and pulled near to me kissed on his cheeks a smile on his lips said everything how he is feeling know.
In the office i started my work positively then before and coincidentally i promoted as a project manager since i spoke very less in the office so nobody asked me party. i don't want share this with
my family i want say this first to my angel. So i took one wine bottle and jasmine flowers for him. went to my apartment with a joy i lifted him and rolled i shared the news to him and he felt very
happy. I said shravani is my luck from know if you want change to shravan i don't accept he said if you want me as a shravani treat me like a wife or else i will became shravan with this words
suddenly i remembered that i brought a jasmine flowers for him i kept in the car and i brought back from mt car.
I took jasmine flowers in my hand from know you are my property and my wife come and he showed his hair i kept flowers in it and he touched my legs i don't why he did but it boosted my energy.
Please post your comments
#480
satya(Saturday, 03 December 2016 12:34)
brother in law to wife 11
at night i am uncomfortable to sleep in the tshirt and jeans so removed it and opened the cupboard to check the nght suit but didnot find my trackpant or short cheked thoroughly i find the pants of 3
different color so i wear it and it was so much tight then coming to know that it was legging and i sleep then also i am uncomfortable then go to my mom and ask where r my tracks and shrots she said
from now onwards u must not wear those u have to wear the nighty it is very comfortable to sleep and for when going to washroom also so i already kept on top of dressing table the petticoat and
nighty wear those it will be fine and i kept the earring on table choose one and keep.i get shocked when my ears are pearcd she said when after operation was done when u r in recovery i pierced it i
saw n mirror it was shocked and she said that the dresses and sarees salwars are of your wifes i bought it for u because u and her having the same height and same body structure and the bra size also
so i bought all the jeweleries and inners of her and once try thier blouses and cholis such that if there was any correction i can give to tailor for fitting i said stop mom.she said why u want to
buy the new ones means i dont have any money i said for thatnot i dont want to wear theese worst costumes and i am getting the iritation when i heard the names and i asked her what happened to me
that vikram amd my mother n law know that she said ur mother n law knows that but vikram dont no that he went to germany he will come tomorrow are after 1 weekshe said and why u dont wear theese
dresses tellme u r a girl u have to wear theese only and u r wearing the bra ladies jeans and shiths what happen to theese if u want to sleep comfortable wear petticoat and night u wear a hosptal
gown it is also smlar to that only nothing difference inthat and u have to cover ur breast that boys will see u thereonly there is no other opton tome she give me the petticoat i said i dont want i
take the nighty and mom said to remove bra before sleeping such that u will feel some freenes so i removed bra and takenighty and wear it from top and it came to my foot and the two hooks were there
at top it was open she sad tokeep hooks and t was free and comfort also i go and see n mirror that it was my wifes nighty only and i go for sleep next day i wake up and did my brush and came out my
mom was not thereand she went out i thought and am watching tea and one calling bell was ring and opened the door there was a milk boy he said mam milk and went to bring bowl and i bent down to keep
he pour it and he is sawing my breast and my nighty was transperent my total body was visble so cover my breast wth hand and went inside and days were going and i am n home felling bored and i want
to go to job how now i am agirl and my certificates were onmale so i refused to not to think and after one day mom came after bath and she removed towel infront f me i asked why r u doing in front of
me she said whats the differnce u and me r same and i saw total bdy its like me only and one day i came from bath open towel and i am nude in my room and rom was opened suddenly i was scared i kept
my hands and hide breast and later i take towel and cover it and he came from germany to my home he didnt know what was happen to me man door was open and he came insde my mom went now only and keep
door open i scared and wear the pant and tshirt went outside he is in the confuse manner thnking who is she and what she is doning n satas house she is thinkng i came out cover my facewith shwal and
came he saw me and said sorry i dont know ur there it was my frend satya house only same address given and thought satya was in room and opened to surprise and asked where is satya and his mother i
think he did not recognise me said i am cousin of satya he and his mother went out they will come evening i said he went out and again say sorry tome and when he went out i locked the door and feels
relaxed and after 1 hour mother came and i am going everyday walking for outside with top and legging covering my face with scarf n my apartment every one saw me in western outfit.
#481
satya(Saturday, 03 December 2016 12:37)
brother in law to wife 12
one day i was in home some other flat aunty with two ladies came to us and nvited to night to come for halfsaree function of my daughter and she kept red kumkum on my mother head and my mother callme
to out and they kept to me also i feel shyand asked my name momsaid satya age 21 she said ur also in marrage stage and u have to come compolsory she said and asked me to come in halfsaree every time
i saw u in jeans only mom said we two will attend the functon evening .i asked mom how can i come she said u have to come this is my order and igo tomy roomand crying momneglect me and tells me to
take bath and i came out and she give me bra and panty iwore it then she gave me petticoat dont no how to wear she said to take it and keepfrom top and it came to my waist leveland she said to tie
knot and i did and later the blouse means choli but it havng back hooks and she sad to keepy mu hands in and my mom kept the hooks at back and it was too tight and designer lehenga came i take it and
keep from bottom and tied to my waist that petticoat not visible and finally the half saree and she taught me to keep one sde f that tuck in my lehenga and keep t around and came to front and pinned
to my left sholder of choliand taught me how to adjust with it and after operation first time i am wearing the ladies outfit but my breasts are totally projectng outside n choli due to tightness next
my mom said to me to sit infront of dressng table.
#482
sudharani(Saturday, 03 December 2016 21:42)
is any one have the old 2011, 2012, 2013, stories saved, i cant find them anywhare, ihany has them re post please, email is also ok.
cd-stories.blogspot.in/2016/12/here-is-some-of-images-i-love.html?m=1
Some girly photos hope everyone like them
Even i love old rajibalan pages of 2011,2012,2013 they have some amazing sotries if anyone have it please share.
#484
Srs(Monday, 05 December 2016 00:16)
satya please don't stop continue
#485
Priya(Monday, 05 December 2016 00:53)
Srs please continue your stories...
#486
Teju(Monday, 05 December 2016 05:06)
Satya
Please continue...
#487
anu(Tuesday, 06 December 2016 02:28)
Pls write
#488
Riya(Tuesday, 06 December 2016 04:43)
Hi Anjali.. Your story is nice. Please keep on writing more stories. Raghav, SRS, please complete your stories.
#489
SRS(Tuesday, 06 December 2016 11:11)
"fashion part 14 # 434
Next day morning i woke up i thought about the day how am going to face it, i went to bathroom to brush an i saw my face except my brows every thing looks like a girl an this bangs r disturbing me in
my fore head after i got ready an came out for the brake fast an my aunt came an kiss me in my chicks is strange again she started to did my hair an i dint tell anything about that cause there is
nothing use of it she combed my hair well an grabbed my hair in top of my head an put rubber band an after she insert 2 hair clips on the both side to make it grip. an i saw that she did the same
hair style an now my hair dint tingle in my backside but in front is very difficult. after my aunt told that is been finished an she told that this called high ponytail with bangs an v left for
office. we came near to the office an parked the car an started to get into the office while walking i can feel that my hips r swinging an my ponytail is dancing its shame, i hide my hand into the
pocket for nails an went inside the office an i saw there was a huge crowd in front of notice board, when i came near to it i was shocked on seeing that i have been D promote from my post an in that
preethy was there an i will work as her assistant. it was total shame an humiliating, i dint know what to do an i slowly entering into my cabin an saw that she was sitting in my chair on seeing me
she welcomed with a huge smile an saw her daughter was standing there an she saw me an told hi aunty an i got angry an told am not aunty am a man on saying that she told but ur not seems like man ur
wearing high ponytail an pretty long nails , what seems like a man an i cant able to answer, after the argument prethee told ok come get back to work an after i called her by her name an she got
tense an asked me how dare u call my name call me as mam an i said ok mam an started to work an while working in system i cant able to type fastly due to the long nails on seeing that she started to
lol an told to do fast otherwise u will again D promote, i was afraid on hearing that cause if i D promote than this time my place will be out side of the cabin an everyone can tease, so i
concentrate in my work at that time her daughter came to me an again started to play with my hair, she un did my hair an i was relive cause of the tightness an she started to comb my hair again an i
told mam that she was disturbing an she told that it was ur problem i dont know an her daughter started doing my hair she parted my hair in the center part an separate it in the both side an she
pulled it in the back top of the hair in 1 side an put the band an the same did in the other side an put the hair clip an told finished. I felt that 1st there is tightness in center top of my hair an
now i can feel it in the both side of my hair an i have no time to see what she done to me, after i finished my job there called that meting is been started come fast so i dint see an went for
meeting. there everyone are sitting an i used to stand cause of my D promotion its felt shame. i notice everyone is smiling an giggling on seeing me but i dont know y an there comes my aunt an lady
boss they also smiled an my aunt started to speak that ladies & gentle man ohh there is no man here opps sorry i dint she u an everyone lol, after she told that in every company there will be a
dress code an uniform but here its not so u girls have to decide the dress code an they all started to discuss, after few minutes they told that it was an fashion company an causal to were western
type dress but v should not forget about our traditional dress so v thought wearing a saree is the best uniform, on hearing this i was shocked an i shout that what about me an my boss told y u also
were saree an i told that is impossible how can i were saree am a man an she told y being a woman ur aunt can were pant , shirt than y not u do u agree that men r weaker than woman u gys cant able to
were our dress but v do.
#490
SRS(Tuesday, 06 December 2016 11:11)
fashion part 15
I kept silent n after she told k girls v have to thing about him also so let v go for pant an shirt an on saying that no one agree an the stated to shout an 1 girl tell let it be unisex it would be
like a pant shirt but also girls will were an after long they discus that the best thing for the uniform is sleeves less CROP TOPS with LEGGINGS an on hearing i again talk but but its a an my boss
stopped me an told no more but if u make a but than v will put u that an pointed the finger towards the saree an i get scared an went silent. after i came out an preethy gave me notes out side the
cabin an called miss-ter it was strange by calling me like this an i turned an told what mam an she told that u look like HARLEY QUINN will joker will come an pick u for a date on saying that
everyone started to lol, at that time her daughter came by shouting aunty aunty did u like ur new hairstyle an showed me the mirror, i took the mirror an shocked on seeing that an i get real tense an
her daughter ask aunty u like ur hairstyle an i shout to her that how many times i tell u am not aunty am a man an my name is sham an she told no ur shamala aunty an i felt anger an pushed her, she
fell an brooked her teeth an started to bleeding on seeing that preethy got angry an screem to me how dare u pushed my daughter, she is lil girl u have to excuse her but u pushed her an she grabbed
my hair an pulled towards my aunt cabin an she explained everything an my aunt too was shocked an she slapped me an told to my boss an she told to punish me all went fast i dont know what to do an
after finished my duty v came again to the same parlor an that lady started to lol on seeing me an told nice hairstyle an preethy told something to her after she made me to sit in the chair an
started to do her work i got afraid for what she was doing she cleaned my face an took one small machine which it looks like tweezers an she did by brows its was paining an i can feel some sort of
small hairs are removing an after she wax it she took the laser machine an covered my eyes an started to do in my eyebrow an i can smell the burning of my eyebrow hair its extreme pain after see put
some gell an finished it, next she came an told to close my eyes an she started to do something to my eyelash i felt relax an while i relaxing i felt sudden prick in my both upper an lower lip i saw
that it was an injection with some sort of liquid putting. An ling time they told its finished an they dint allow me to see, my lip is num like some thing is bite into my lip. after she took me to
the dentist i dont know y i came here an she talked to the lady doctor an they took me inside an they inject me after i felt dizzy an slept, they took me to operation room an did my teeth, after few
hours they left me to my home an iam still in sleeping position i dint know what happened they lie down to my bed an left it.
#491
satya(Tuesday, 06 December 2016 12:48)
brother in law to wife 13
i was sitting infront of dressing table and i saw me infront of mirror the dress was good and its perfectlt suit me but not at breast part and i ask my mother about it she said i measured when u r in
hospital then two daysback i went to alteration to tailor with your wife choli and lehanga i am thinking how to try with u but today by god grace this function came and see which ear rings u want i
am silent and my mom selected and keep it but it was pain and she keep facepoder and eye lash and nailpolsh and tied my hair into single plait and she kept sindhoor on my head and keep bangles on two
hands and said to get up get up but the dress was very heavy to carry and i am slowly walking because lehanga up to floor and it inconvience and she gave me highheels to wear i wear it and ifelt on
sofanear it is difficult to walk and after 10 mins mom came with wearing saree and we went to functionit is on terrace wewent i shock no male was there its ladies function all ladies was there aunty
invited us and saw me in halfsaree and said ur lookng good when ur marryng she asked kept silent my mother went near to stage i am sitting alone in chair and my mom call me and aunty keep sindoor on
my head and gave me blouse piece and one fruit and she said t keep turmeric paste on my daughter face i dont no how to do by seeng all ladies how they did i follow and mom order me to sit on one
chair there so many girls arethere who not married and talkng about girls stuff about dresses boys one girl said only salwasr was free than wearing saree and halfsaree i am lstening simply andthen i
thought when i was boy i wear drawer shirt and pant now bra panty petticoat hol lehanga halfsaree and cosmetics jewelery all theese thats why i thought girls will take so much time to come and it was
completed my mom and me came to home and i removed my all the jewelery and i remove halfsaree and i ask mom to remove hooks of blouse she removed it and i remove lehanga and i wasn petticoat thought
petticoat was very free towear when went to washroom wearng jeans i have to remove it to down and i sit to pee and wear it agan but with petticoat was free to wear and removed bra then i feel very
free like my breasts are comng out from jail and then ask momi wont wear bra while i am sleeping she said ok later wear nighty only without panty and my mom ordered me to wear peeticoat inside if u
wear it ur back was not visble t others and then feel every day to wear petticoat and skirts are also smilar to thatmom said i dont want and i went to sleep next day wake up and went to hall i am n
nighty and ishocked to see there my mother n law
#492
Srs(Tuesday, 06 December 2016 23:39)
Satya nice story pleaseeee Continue
#493
vasantha(Wednesday, 07 December 2016 10:24)
Srs & Sathya your very nice continue your story i am wait for your story pls pls pls continue
#494
satya(Wednesday, 07 December 2016 11:07)
brother in law to wife 14
i was go and sit infront of her and i saw she bought a big suitcase with her and i was silent and she asked me how r u and
and she said i lost my daughter and daughter in law i love to have girls in house but now not there and i am feelng alone
and vikram went to usa again and his daughter is in his mil house today my dil brthday and next week my daughter birthday
i dont have both of them so i bought all the dresses of my vikrams wife to here so can see the my daughter and daughter
in law in you because u r only girl in both families what was there for them was totally belong to you and i bought the
saree to my dil last year to gift to her birthday but now she is not there so please were this and we will g temple and
later evenng we will go for shopping for buy birthday dress 2 you means your wife birthday in next month i will buy now
and please were and come i can understand ur a boy once now u became like girl and once think what u will do now ur not
going anywhere ur in home and ur not working and u cant sit in home through out your life please think it and change your
mind and wear it ur lucky everry girl wants gold nice dresses sarees ur having two girls items with u wear and enjoy like
a girl and turn into woman live lfe happly and ofcourse u can marry also but u cant concieve child if u dont mind marry
vikram and be mother to his daughter i am not forcing u once think it he will come after two months till there ur havng
tme think and vikram dont no about ur issue and please were it come i listned her silently and my momalso beside me and i
went to my room and cried and mom came and consolme and said once think how she will cry when she lost her d and dil and i
convnced today and i went to take bath and came out i wear towel tied up to breast level and came out and mom and milwas
there mom give me bra i remved toveland wear it later pettioat i wear it from top she give me blouse and said ucan wear
try its front hooks only and i take with hand and wear it like shirt and hooks came at front i keep first hook and keep
second one while keepng it is becomng tight and keepall and last hook two threads are there my mom said to keep to second
one so it was fit and breasts are pointng towards blouse i wear blouse and petticoat came mom give me saree dont no how
to wear and mom ties one round and take the pallu frommy rght shoulder and keep at left later he take pleats and tuck into
my petticoat and adjust the saree towards the breast area and pnned to my blouse of left shoulder and it takes 5 mns to
finish saree later mom said to keep your hair loose only and wear chan and necklace bangels now i am ready got irrtaton
wearing saree due to my mil only today willwear i said to my mom . and we will go to temple now and first time i am going
to out in girls attire before iwear halfsaree and went to terrace for function now i am going out to face worldas a girl
#495
satya(Wednesday, 07 December 2016 11:16)
brother in law to wife 15
i went down then i saw my wifes scooty here my mil said it is for u and ur bike has sold by ur mom and iam unable to walk
in saree it was heavy and cant walk fast and mil book cab we get into it we driver was seeng me differently and i saw in
mirror that bra staple was visible and so i covered with blouse blouse was fit but some looseness n sholder part that
blouse belongs t vikrams wife thats why we reached temple i get out and went inside before iwill go to temple to see girls
because they look good in tradtional wear now i am wearng saree and went inside we stepped to ladies line and one side of
of blouse awhere saree was not covered was visible guy are seeing me mom said to cover your saree properly and we went
near to god and priest blessed me long live lke a wife and havng good husband get shock listening like that and momkeep
kumkum on my forhead and given some flowers she kept it to her only because mne looase harir and mil came and hugged me
and said god by grace give me an daughter like u and we sat in one side of temple and eating prasad then i thought hw
girls will feel wearng a saree and with so many nsiade and live full day got iritation and think when u will go home and
change into normal clothesthen me momand mil went to home changed into nighty and ate food later in evenng shopping for
me we are ready i am n jeans and tshrt my mil saw me and get some angry she didnt show that to me because according to mil
girls must wear saree salwar ghagra chol etc but not jeans she say slwly satya go and change into salwar and come because
ts not good all gents will see u it wll be not good to u she said my momcall me and said to remove i removed and i amn
pantybra and camsole and she give me salwar top i am wearing first time she taught me how to wear after t was good and
free later pant wear it and dont have jip and button like petticaot it has thred whe have tot te it and it was free and
again mom gave me duppata to wear and mom show me how towear and adjust it and i came out and milsaid ur looking nice
salwar is nice but handling the chunni was difficult beacuse it was fallng every time we went ladies mall and we went to
sarees section theys show me so many ml asked what u like am silent and packed 3 and went to salwasr sectonand selected
few and went again to innersecton and they choose padedbras and for mathing petticoat they ask size to me dont no my
momsaid sndhu size and taken matching petticoat to my sarees and directly went to tailor shop for gving blouse sttches and
tailor is male and mom asked to take blouse measurements and he came and taking first ask me whch type front or back said
front and show me some designs and select one said mom ur wish and he checked my hand lenght then came to me said hands
upamd measure breast wth tape up to npple and while he touching my parts some sensaton has passed n me later the breasr
low part totallength he measured all sad wll give with in four days thank god today its completed today and mil went to
herhome me and mom went to our home i dont no what was hapening to me day by day my behavour was changing can notice in
some maters like costumes and cryng for simple reaons and when i am seeing handsome boy some feelngs comning and my
behaviour as a girls hiding parts and seeing my mom nude while changng dress iswa her breast some what big and one time i
think when i will get that bigger size lke her like theese changes can notice by me and reaching hme changed into nighty
and petticoat went for sleep and watching laptop while browsng internet i swa some bluefilms whlile seeing those i am
getting mood means my breast getfell hard and my nipples are erecting when i was boy i will rub my penis with hand but
dont have now what i hae to do what girls will do when they get mood i thought in my mind rub my breast in hand and went
The two stories which I wrote is successful for the time being. It has reached around 7k+ visitors in the last two weeks. I thank the readers for their support and would request them to continue the
same and take part in polls to encourage me in writing a better story.
A Crossdresser's Diary
It is a story about a teenage boy being forced to crossdress as he tries to help his sister. A series of circumstance one lead to the another and teen finds himself in feminine lifestyle. Soon he
starts to love his life as a women and ends up being a mother of two.
Witness Protection Program
A teenage boy is forced to crossdress as a part of witness protection program when he becomes and eye witness to a murder. Further he is made infiltrate in the organization as a women were his
feminization is continued beyond recovery.
They are found in the link
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/p/blog-page.html
#499
Srs(Thursday, 08 December 2016 00:04)
Sathya please continue
#500
anu(Thursday, 08 December 2016 07:51)
Pls continue story srs
#501
priya(Thursday, 08 December 2016 08:15)
Srs please continue your story
#502
Srs(Thursday, 08 December 2016 10:20)
I will please wait, sathya story is well going on please continue satya
#503
satya(Friday, 09 December 2016 12:41)
brother in law to wife 15
next day morning i wake up and take bath and i came out and sat n bed wearing nighty and thinking that day bay day my thoughts are changing while any girl having big breasts i thought why i am not
having like that and i also started doing some household works and i am seeing the boys having nice physic i am getting some feelings and i went out to take breakfast moom served me and said be ready
nwe r going to hospital for checkup went toroom and wear jeans and tshirt and went out mom said to wear salwar and come it will be free to u so i go back and take one salwar wear top and pant and
front it was vshape and curve ts looking like a girls exposing from salwar like looking so take the chunni and keep like v shape and mom came to me and pinned the chunni to sholder such that it will
not fall and we went down amd mom gave me a scoty key and said me to drive take it and mom sat on back and went to hspital and doctor asked me how r u and she give some tests to perform on me to
nurse and nurse ask me to come i followed nurse and went to room and she take some blood and checked and asked me to strip all clothes and to lie on bed and i got shy she saw that dont worry i am
also a girl a i removed and lie on bed and she came with one thing and inserted into vagina she is moiving that two and fro into my vagina i am getting pain and moaning like a girl while she was
fuckng by some one like i am moaning and she came to top and pressed my breasts and i am getting some feeling she noticed it and said wear alldress and went to doctor room and i went there and doctor
said u r completly physically mentally u r a girl now u can give sexual pleasure to ur husband and u cant concieve a child and u r certificates are ready with name satya and gender as female u can
collect it from recepton u can go for job or study or marrage what ever u can decide be a girl and enjoy life like a girl and me and mom went to house and i got a letter from office that u have to
come and join in office with in two months otherwise u will lost job said to mom and she said two months is there no problem later u can think and went to my room.
#504
satya(Friday, 09 December 2016 13:08)
brother in law to wife 16
days are going and i am in home not going any where the blouses and petticoats from tailor came to home mom orderd me to try those and show me and i wear pettcoat the size is k and later i take the
blouseand i keepall hooks and show to mom and shecheked every thing and ask me any correction u want i didnt say anythng and went to see me n mirror wearng blouse and petticoat and i am looking like
a girl exposing there body without wearing saree and mom said that tommorow the ladies festival u have to wake up early and take headbath and wear saree and u have to do puja and she said tomorrow
onwards u have to wear saree halfsaree and nighty salwar and leggings with tops and tops must be upto the leg knee length and tomorrom from now u must not wear jeans and tshirts and i throw them all
out and i fill all your cupboard with bras panties different types of sarees for diffrent occassions and salwars and jeweleries and u have to cover your breast means top with chunni and learn how
girls will behave and momsaid to wear saree and learn how wear i willshow u then mom draped me saree and show me how to make pleats and how to adjust at breast side and and after 20 tries i came to
learn how to wear a saree and i ask moom saree is too heavy cant wear every time thats why i bought to u tops and leggings tops are like ur tshirt but up to knee length and legging is like a pant
only but suits to your body so i removed saree and wear it ts looking good and feeling free and mom went out and i am thinking how to manage from tomorrow and went for sleep next day mornng i wake
take bath and wear saree and go to mom she saw me keep kiss on my forehead and after completng pooja and mom said today we r going to hotel to out and booked table alsoand now i am going out for some
work and i will come t hotel and u come directly and table no is 21 and come in saree only i said ok evening came and i wear another saree and take my bike and going and while wearng saree i was
driving and reached hotel and sat on table and waiting for mom and after some time vikram came there and sat infront of me and i got shocked
#505
Srs(Friday, 09 December 2016 23:40)
Nice satya please go ahead, nandan where ru please continue ur story pleaseeee
Hi guys i have posted my new story comments no 473.474.479 kindly provide your comments to update it
#507
akshay(Saturday, 10 December 2016 10:44)
Sneha vetu good story...plz add some humilataion..!
#508
anu Radha(Saturday, 10 December 2016 11:10)
hi sneha akka i am big fan of your stories ,i like role revesal stories
update the story fast and if possible send u r FB or MAIL ID PLZ
#509
kausalyas7(Sunday, 11 December 2016 12:46)
hi friends, here many beautiful authors are here writing stories. write your whole stories here and give the mail id for ur comments, so that we communicate and shared ideas and so on... these blog
have very little space so we share our comments but we cant read ur stories fully aftermath. plz i suggesting u write fully and u have our comments
can u read the stories in http://www.fictionmania.tv/
there also having many authors like us. but they doing it right way, like that we follow this blog also.
i finally found the web link like to share. http://kayathrirani.blogspot.in/
#510
@kausalyas7(Monday, 12 December 2016 07:15)
Fictionmania is the best in the business right now along with bigclostre happy to find a person who reads at fictionmania
#511
Manish(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 00:22)
Part -1 of being Manish to Manisha.
Hi every one my name is Manish.
I'm from Hyderabad , I started to crossdress when I was 10. I was a complete closet crossdresser and use to wear my mother clothes whenever I use to get a chance to wear them. I was always excited
looking at different colors and shades of feminine clothes and feminine ornaments. I started to crossdress with bra and panties.
One day, in the afternoon around 2pm when I was 16 and there was nobody at home and I had decided to crossdress and wear my mothers clothes.i had pick up a white bra and a cotton maroon panties with
a light green churidhar & kameez and a pearl necklace with matching ear rings. These ear rings were stick on ear rings. Due to excitement and in hurry i forgot to lock my house door. I went to my
room with all the clothes and started to undress my self. First i wore the maroon panty, it was so soft, then I wore the bra and filled it with thermocol balls, but the fitting was too tight and was
giving me a feeling of actual breast. Then I wore the green kameez, it was a bit heavy as it had multi-coloured stones and jewels on it and the feel was so feminine for me. After wearing the kameez
and adjusting it properly, I picked up the churidaar and wore it. Ohh the feeling was just too amazing, I just cant tell you how i felt after wearing it. The tightness and the firmness around the
thigh and the entire leg, it was too good, then I grabbed the dupatta. After I wore everything and having a look at my legs I was getting a bit annoyed and was wanting to wear payals. Then I wore the
earings and necklace. It was so beautiful when I looked at my self in the mirror. The light green kameez & churidhar was simply suiting my skin tone. I felt something missing on my face, so I ran
towards my mothers room and opened her dressing and removed a big and round red coloured bindi and stick it to my head and when I looked into the mirror, I was feeling complete woman. I was posing in
front of the mirror and enjoying myself being a woman. All of a sudden, the door bell rang and I started panicking, I thought it was my mother and she could enter using a key and i realized that I
didn't lock the house door . I quickly undressed my self and got back to my men's attire kept back all the clothes and jewelry. I immediately ran to open the door, when I opened the door , it was our
servant babu, he is of 18 years of age, dark and tall with a slim body. Babu was looking at me with his eyes wide open, he was silent and entered our house. I was not able to understand his reaction,
I went to my room and when I passed the mirror I was shocked to see the big round red colored bindi on my head. I felt so embarrassed and frustrated that I couldn't control my emotions and just
banged my bedroom door and Locked it. I sat on the bed with my head down and thinking about babu and what he must be thinking about me. Just after a couple of minutes, I heard a knock on the door and
I knew it was babu, I was getting the worst feeling of facing him. I immediately removed the bindi and threw it and went towards the door to open it.
End of part- 1
Pls comment
#512
ash(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 04:32)
can you suggest some stories to read on fictionmania
https://www.fictionmania.tv/stories/readtextstory.html?storyID=1475437312343276205
Serendipity: the life of Riya
it is amazing story and has indian theme. you will love it
#514
AAAAA(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 15:16)
The Actor
AJAY was a 26yr old struggling actor who was searching for work.
Its been 4 years since he got a role in any movie. He was frustrated
One day he got a call from RANI a film director.
She offered him a 2 film contract . He was so happy with the offer that
he accepted the offer and signed the contract immediately without even reading a single word
#515
AAAAA(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 15:33)
Later the movie preparation and casting started
Director RANI introduced everyone
AJAY was HERO
GEETA was 1st HEROINE. She was around 27yrs but hot 34-24-38
IN MOVIE She was AJAY`S widowed bhabhi
PRIYA was 2nd HEROINE. She was young 22yrs , sexy hot 32-24-36
IN MOVIE She was maid servant working
AJAY was believing that film revolves around him
HE was also happy to have 2 heroines
Later Director RANI was explaining everyone concept.
After listening to the story the girls burst into laughter while AJAY was shocked when he came to know that there were many crossdressing scenes of him.
She told him that it was written in the contract.
He requested that he could not do that but she told him that the entire movie concept revolved on his crossdressing and if he refuse to do this film then action could be taken on him.
AJAY had no other option left. So he agreed
#516
AAAAA(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 16:55)
After few days the shooting started.
In the movie RAJU {Ajay} was living along with his widowed bhabhi in a big house.
His brother and parents died recently in accident.
His bhabhi was working in a nearby shopping mall as a MANAGER
RAJU was arrogant and stubborn in nature and never did any work.
He used to simply stay in house.
He always used to shout for smallest work in house on maid servant {PRIYA}
His bhabhi {GEETA} had told him several times to be courteous but he does`nt care.
Eventhough he was arrogant and proud he had a secret fetish for his bhabhi`s sarees.
He used to dress in those sarees secretly usually in the evening time after the maid left.
Daily he would dress for 2 to 3 hrs as his bhabhi usually returned by 8 o clock.
One day he dressed in his favorite pink saree when he heard the door bell.
The maid servant {PRIYA} had returned because she forgot something in the house.
RAJU had to change back into his pant shirt. After changing he went and opened the door and started shouting on maid that she had disturbed him.
The maid servant {PRIYA} asked casually what was he busy in.
For that question RAJU became angry and slapped her very hard
By the time bhabhi had returned and she saw RAJU slapping the maid servant {PRIYA}
Bhabhi tried to intervene. She told RAJU that he should not have slapped the maid servant.
RAJU shouted even on his bhabhi and left. She had to console the poor maid girl who was crying
Then one week later RAJU had dressed as usual in his favorite pink saree in the evening when no one was around but he had forgotten to bolt the main door.
On that day his bhabhi came to home early in the evening to get house ready for the next week festival. She had requested the maid servant also to come in the evening.
They entered the house as it was not bolted. On going to his room both his bhabhi and maid servant were shocked on seeing RAJU as he was dressed in pink saree.
They both slapped him very hard saying that this was the reason he always bolted the house and stayed at home.
They both slapped him till he started crying.
Then they removed his saree took him to the bathroom
They applyed hair removing cream all over RAJU`s body.
Then they wore him a pink half saree. They also did his make up.
They applied lipstick, kajal, nail polish, dangling ear-rings, big nose ring and a waist band also.
Half a dozen bangles were put on his each hand. Finally a wig was put on his head.
Now he was looking exactly like a girl.
They were laughing at him. He was feeling very embarrassed.
This was the end of first schedule of the shoot
Raju {AJAY} was feeling very awkward while doing these scenes while the 2 heroines were enjoying each and every moment of his feminisation
The film director Rani then gave 1 month break time before next shoot and she told hero Ajay to spend his total time in female dress and make up and learn to wear different female dresses like
sarees, half sarees, ghagra cholis, middis, skirts as the entire next sequence of the film he had to be crossdressed and he would never be wearing pant not even a salwar kammez which is pant like
again for the entire movie.
The film director Rani also gave him a summary of the second part of shoot in which AJAY would be turned into a obedient housewife{maid}. Sometimes he would also be doing tasks set up by his bhabhi
and housemaid in sexy outfits like short skirts, french maid costume.
Along with that there would be 4 songs in which he has to dress sexily and expose his midriff navel and to add for sex appeal she told AJAY to get a navel ring inserted to his belly
The film director Rani told both the heroines GEETA and PRIYA to rehearse themselves for humilating and teasing AJAY
TO BE CONTINUED
#517
AAAAA(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 18:17)
THE NEXT PART
After 15 days break Director RANI called the Hero AJAY along with both the heroines GEETA and PRIYA to shoot location. She told Hero AJAY to come getting up dressed in half saree with full makeup.
This was mainly to inspect whether AJAY had learned Female mannerisms.
He came dressed in a blue blouse and pink lehenga with matching pink voni.
The voni was totally covering his midriff without exposing navel.
He had put up light makeup normal ear rings and a wig without any bangles or anklets.
The Director RANI told him that his makeup could have been better .
The Director RANI instructed the makeup women in the shoot to redo the makeup and place dangling ear rings, add half a dozen bangles on each hand add anklets to his feet and also put jasmine flowers
on his wig.
She also told the makeup women to readjust voni of his half saree in a way to expose his midrift navel
AJAY was terrified on listening to director RANI`s words but he had to comply.
AJAY was taken to makeup room where the makeup woman redid the makeup, replaced his simple earrings with dangling ear rings that come to his shoulder. She also added half a dozen bangles on each hand
add anklets to his feet and also put jasmine flowers on his wig. Now even slightest movement of AJAY made sound.
The makeup women readjusted voni of his half saree and pinned it in a way that his midrift navel was clearly exposed.
Now on seeing AJAY both the heroines GEETA and PRIYA were giggling while The Director RANI was pleased with his look.
THEN The Director RANI announced a cricket match for that day.
AJAY was happy that now he could remove his female avatar but to his shock the director told that the match would be played with guys in female dress {saree} and girls in boys dress
The girls team would be lead by HEROINE GEETA which included the film crew girls present
The guys team would be lead by HERO AJAY which included the film crew guys present .
The Director RANI would act as an umpire.
The Girls team got ready in matching YELLOW T shirt and Track Pant while the
Guys team had to wear matching Violet Sarees with makeup and high heels.
As it was a cricket match several other by passers also came to see match
The guys thought that they would easily win the match.
The toss was won by Girls Team Captain GEETA and she elected to BAT first.
The 1st over would be bowled by HERO AJAY while batting would be by both the heroines
GEETA and PRIYA got ready at the crease with GEETA taking the strike.
Before taking the strike both heroines GEETA and PRIYA teased AJAY by pinching his navel which was partly exposed in the saree and told him to be careful with the pallu of his saree.
AJAY started to bowl but he slipped several times due to high heels. He also faced difficulty in adjusting pallu of his Saree. The pallu of his saree was slipping and he had difficulty in adjusting
it while bowling. Eachtime the pallu of his saree falls his midriff navel would be exposed which resulted in the crowd to hoot and whistle.
Due to this he could not bowl with intensity and all his balls were hit for 4 and 6 by Geeta.
The next over was bowled by other film crew guy, but he to faced same trouble of slipping in high heels and in adjusting pallu of his Saree and hence even all his balls were hit for 4 and 6 by
PRIYA.
BY the end of 10 overs the girls team scored 120/4.
It was breaktime.
The girls team were cheering.
The guys team thought that the total was big but could be chaseable.
THE Guys Team batting started.
The 1st over would be bowled by HEROINE PRIYA.
HERO AJAY came to batting. He was adjusting the pallu of his violet saree before taking strike
TO BE CONTINUED
#518
Srs(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 18:56)
AAAAA WOW ur awesome please continue
#519
AAAAA(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 19:36)
This is my 1st story. I want reviews and also suggestions from best writers like srs, sharmila devi, ex q zit, priya, kajal, sneha and all the rest who are following this blog
#520
Manish(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 20:32)
Part -2 of being Manish to Manisha.
The moment I opened the door, I saw babu anxiously waiting to see me after I open the door. I was so disinterested an was avoiding an eye contact with him. He told me that he needed to clean my room.
I replied ok and went to take my phone and was leaving my room. Babu was adjusting my bed sheet and he picked that red bindi that I threw on the floor. Looking at that again my eyes were wide open
and embarrassed. He picked it and threw it in the bin and didnt utter a word. I left the room immediately. There was no conversation that was taking place between us. After he finished the work, I
decided to change my clothes and leave for gym. I was already in shorts and just need to change my t-shirt. While changing babu entered my room and was constantly look at my upper body. When I got to
this notice and saw myself in the mirror, I was stunned to see the impression of the bra on my chest area. I was speechless and my throat was dry, I couldn't spk a word nor I could react as babu was
still in the room. Looking at my state babu told me bhaiya, you were looking very funny in the red bindi but when I saw the impression on your upper body, a sudden current passed through my body and
I imagined you in female clothes with you wearing ornaments and bindi. I was getting nervous and started to sweat. He told me bhaiya i know you wear women's clothes, can you please wear them once in
front of me. Listening to this I was so happy and excited but didnt express it to him. All of a sudden he held my palm and was trying to seduce me by touching my skin smoothly and softly so that I
get convinced to wear the clothes. I was enjoying this and I nodded and said a yes. Listening to this he hugged me and what an amazing feeling I was getting a feeling as if a man has held me in his
arms and its a dream for every women to be in his man's arms. It was the first time I was in any man's arms. 2 mins passed and he slightly kissed me on my neck and then winked at me saying you apply
women's talc na bhaiya, I was amazed at his observation as I actually use female talc cause if its essence. I nodded a yes and was shy.i told him that I'll let you know when I can plan to dress up
for him, he was very excited and told me that he is waiting.
End of part-2
#521
Manish(Wednesday, 14 December 2016 20:34)
Part-3 of being Manish to Manisha.
After about 4 to 5 day's, my mother informed me that she is going out of town day after for office picnic and she will be staying there for 2 days and I was super excited but made sure to control my
emotions. I purposely asked her how will I stay alone as dad is in the navy. She said don't worry I will inform babu tomm to stay with you . When I heard this I was on cloud nine. I was eagerly
waiting for day after. The next day when babu came to work my mother informed him that he had to stay at our place for 2 days till she returns and thn she left for office. He respectfully accepted to
what my mother said and agreed. I was so excited that I wanted to dress up immediately, but to my luck the maid had come late and was still working. The next day, my mother was suppose to leave at 7
in the morning , I came till the veranda to leave my mom till the cab arrived. I went inside and I was all alone. I shaved and took a bath and was ready by 11 after completing my college assignment.
I knew that babu would come around 3. So after my maid left completing her work, I decided to get ready. I went to my mothers room and opened her wardrobe. Removed a nice dark blue coloured anarkali
with matching churidhar . The anarkali had golden work on it and also on the sleeves. I also took my mothers mustard yellow floral panty with a nice brown coloured laced bra. I changed to my inners
and used thermocol balls, I then decided that I'll do the make up first. As to be comfortable to apply makeup, I grabbed one of my mom's nighty. I sat down at the dressers and started applying make
up . I also applied eye makeup of a shade between mint blue or turquoise blue.
I applied a bright pink lipstick as I wanted it to be attractive and seductive. I then removed my nighty and wore the anarkali and churidar. The golden work on it was so blingy and shiny, as my mom
made this for a relatives wedding and hardly used it. After completely dressed with make up, I went to my mothers dresser and wore a nice crystal necklace with matching long ear rings. My mother
wears clip on's, so for me it's awesome, to wear them.
I also applied my moms perfume and it smelled very sweet and fruity. And was loving it . I found a long blue coloured zig zag bindi and applied it on my head. I also applied an artificial tattoo
sticker on my palm and it was pink in colour and blingy. I wore my moms artificial gold bangles, 4 in each hand and was enjoying the sound. I was watching tv with bollywood songs and admiring the
women dancing in it.
I was all ready and was awaiting for babu.
End of part-3.
#522
ash(Thursday, 15 December 2016 04:47)
thank sanjana it was nice story
loved reading it
any other suggestions to read story from anyone
#523
amit(Thursday, 15 December 2016 04:56)
plz cotinue AAAAA
its a great story
#524
AAA(Thursday, 15 December 2016 05:46)
Pls continue your story!
#525
AAAAA(Thursday, 15 December 2016 13:13)
THE NEXT PART {CONTINUED FROM #517} {EARLIER PARTS #514,515,516,517}
HERO AJAY was preparing to bat while HEROINE PRIYA was getting ready to bowl.
When HERO AJAY was about to take strike he was teased and his navel was pinched by PRIYA.
HERO AJAY was taken by surprise and he jumped when his navel was pinched. This resulted in everyone present there to laugh.
This incensed AJAY and he started arguing with Priya.
This resulted in PRIYA to challenge AJAY to first win the match before arguing.
AJAY was taken aback and his male ego was hurt.
He challenged her that if he won the match then he would pinch her navel and also spin a top on her navel.
PRIYA said she was ready for the challenge and to increase the stakes she added that if she lost, not only AJAY his entire team could pinch her navel and spin a top on her navel, but if he lost HE
would have to undergo same punishment in the hands of GIRLS team.
HE accepted and the match resumed.
HERO AJAY started batting confidently. But he was not getting necessary support from his other batsmen.
After finishing 5 overs {half of the 10 match game}, the BOYS team score was 70/8.
HERO AJAY alone scored 60 and was still batting while almost the entire team could only score only 10 runs.
In the next over bowled by GEETA both the remaining batsmen were out
HERO AJAY despite of his best effort could not prevent loosing.
As soon as the last wicket fell the GIRLS started celebrating and both the HEROINES GEETA AND PRIYA ran towards HERO AJAY.
HEROINES PRIYA started pulling the PALLU of his VIOLET SAREE. He was trying to resist her pull.
But as all the girls team came surrounding him he was unable to resist her pull and the VIOLET SAREE he was wearing was pulled out.
Now he tried to cover his VIOLET COLOURED HALF SLEEVED JACKET with his hands and was feeling embarassed as all the girls were pressing and pinching his BELLY, WAIST, NAVEL.
Then they made him lie down on seat of a bike which was parked there.
He was feeling embarrassed as he was lying with a half sleeve violet blouse and matching violet lehenga, and exposing his midriff {navel}
All girls were surrounding him and teasing him. They held both his hands and legs tightly.
HEROINE PRIYA came with a top smiling.
She spinned the top on the centre of HERO AJAY`s navel.
HERO AJAY started feeling tingling sensation due to the top spinning and wanted to move but he could not move as his hands and legs were held tightly by the GIRLS.
All the girls took turns in spinning top on navel of AJAY while a few Girls were taking pics and video of top spinning on AJAY`s navel.
HERO AJAY was embarassed but he could not say anything.
When all the girls finished spinning top on AJAY`s navel he was allowed to getup from bike.
HEROINE PRIYA returned his VIOLET SAREE and told him to never argue with a girl and that too just because a girl pinched his navel.
HERO AJAY was embarassed and he could not even look into any girl present there.
He just wore his VIOLET SAREE and went to his home.
#526
AAAAA(Thursday, 15 December 2016 16:14)
THE ACTOR
THE NEXT PART
Later it was time for next part of movie. Director RANI began the shoot.
The earlier part ended with the BOY RAJU {HERO AJAY} being dressed in a pink half saree by his BHABHI {HEROINE GEETA} and his Maid {HEROINE PRIYA}.
Now the boy RAJU was told by his Bhabhi {GEETA} that he would always have to dress in girls clothes. never even dream of wearing a Pant or Slack or even Salwar Kameez as it was pant like.
First he would be a maid servant who would have to dress in FROCKS and SKIRTS till his FRENCH MAID UNIFORM arrived. Later he would not be allowed any other dress other than his FRENCH MAID
UNIFORM
He had to learn to do all house hold chores from his MAID SERVANT {HEROINE PRIYA} and also he had to always speak to her courteously and address her as Madam.
The next morning he was woken up early at 6 o Clock by PRIYA. He was given a Yellow colour FROCK to wear.
The FROCK had many flowers designed on it.
THE BOY RAJU wore that FROCK and it was very tight and its lower part came till his KNEES . He was feeling uncomfortable and told PRIYA that it should have been a bigger size.
PRIYA told him that it was his size and he should learn to adjust in that.
Then PRIYA applied makeup on him. She applied KAJAL, LIPSTICK, BINDI.
Even a wig was placed on his head and he was told to wear a wig till his hair grows fully like a girl
Then the BOY RAJU was taken to kitchen and PRIYA taught him cooking.
Then at 9oclock PRIYA told RAJU to wake his bhabhi and serve her tea.
RAJU woke up his bhabhi and served her tea. His BHABHI got up saw Raju in YELLOW FROCK and was happy with his transformation.
His BHABHI then went to PRIYA and told her to make him learn each and every household duty and also to keep her authority on him by giving him punishments.
RAJU started learning to do household chores. He had to wash clothes, iron them, cook for his bhabhi and maid, serve his bhabhi tea in the morning and also evening when she returns from office.
Whenever RAJU did not do any chore properly, PRIYA used to punish him by making him murga or kneeling down for an hour. RAJU`S BHABHI {GEETA} was more severe in punishments and he would get hard
spanking on his bare back.
Initially for the 1st WEEK he had to dress in different colors of frocks and skirts like pink, violet, yellow.
After the 1st week his BHABHI {GEETA} brought RED FRENCH MAID COSTUME. He had to wear that.
Initially he had to wear RED BRA AND PANTIES, then the FRENCH MAID COSTUME
which consisted of a RED top and a short, short RED skirt with white ruffles that came down to his thighs. The top clung, but the costume was made in such a way as to hide the fact that he had no
feminine waist, and the padded bra made RAJU look as if he actually had tits.
He was feeling shy and awkward. But his BHABHI told him he had to dress only in this dress and never touch any other dress and if he wore any other dress he would be punished severely.
RAJU was terrified but he had no choice.
From then on , He started to do all house hold chores in his FRENCH MAID COSTUME under guidance of PRIYA.
Eventhough PRIYA was initially dominant on RAJU she started loving RAJU. So 1 day PRIYA proposed him.
RAJU though did not love PRIYA but he thought that if he pretended to be in love with PRIYA he could escape from this thight FRENCH MAID dress. So he accepted her proposal.
Then one day PRIYA told his BHABHI {GEETA} about their love. His BHABHI accepted and told PRIYA that she was like her sister and she would never say no.
His BHABHI {GEETA} then called both RAJU AND PRIYA to her side and she told RAJU she accepted for his marriage with PRIYA & She liked the way RAJU transformed from being arrogant GUY to A sweet
maid girl.
RAJU requested his Bhabhi that after marriage he be permitted to wear Pant and Shirt.
His BHABHI {GEETA} refused and told RAJU that even after his marriage he would have to stay like a maid.
RAJU pleaded with GEETA. Seeing him plead like that PRIYA requested GEETA.
GEETA agreed on condition that after marriage he would become an obedient wife to his husband PRIYA
He can wear PANT and SHIRT only once a week on SUNDAY and that too with the permission of his husband PRIYA
and The remaining days he had to dress in girls clothes and instead of wearing maid dress he can dress himself beautifully in Sarees, Half Sarees, Salwar Kameez like a perfect and obedient BRIDE to
please his HUSBAND PRIYA
RAJU accepted and thought that once he wears a male dress PANT AND SHIRT he could run away from this place and start living life of a man.
#527
AAAAA(Thursday, 15 December 2016 16:15)
The marriage arrangements of RAJU and PRIYA took place in the same house
A beautician women was called to ready RAJU
It took almost half an hour for beautician women to complete RAJU`S facial make up. The effect was astounding.
RAJU just could not believe his eyes shaped and lined with an eyeliner. The Pink lipstick looked wonderful. After the facial make up the beautician started working on his nails. She painted his nails
with PINK NAIL POLISH. After the makeup RAJU had to wear the sari. The bra and panty came first followed by a tight small pink blouse and petticoat. The beautician fastened the hooks of the bra. The
straps of the bra digging into his shoulder and the weight filled in those cups gave RAJU a feeling that He was having tits.
The pink blouse which was a low cut blouse and it revealed RAJU`S cleavage gave it more lovelier look.
At last it was the sari. It was also a Pink Floral Saree with the flowers in white and blue.
THE BEAUTICIAN then helped RAJU in wearing long hanging ear-rings, a nose ring, bangles and anklets
PRIYA got dressed in PLAIN WHITE PANT AND SHIRT that a man wears for marriage
At the Muhurat time PRIYA tied MANGALSUTRA TO RAJU.
He took her blessing and vowed to obey her for the rest of his life.
Then both RAJU AND PRIYA took the blessing of their BHABHI GEETA.
Then it was time for SUHAGRAAT.
RAJU entered the bedroom with a glass of milk in the same wedding pink saree in which PRIYA was waiting.
PRIYA drank half of the milk and she offerd RAJU the rest
RAJU refused saying he was not yet fully ready for suhagraat and needed sometime
PRIYA accepted as she was madly in love with RAJU.
The next week their BHABHI GEETA had planned a honey moon trip for RAJU and GEETA in GOA.
They left happily.
With this DIRECTOR RANI ended the second part of the film shoot.
SHE told that next part of film would be shot in GOA.
HERO AJAY told DIRECTOR RANI that he was uncomfortable dressed in skimpy frocks, french maid costume. But both HEROINES GEETA AND PRIYA told him he looked great and where teasing him.
DIRECTOR RANI assured him that in the next part he would have to dress only in revealing sarees
and except for few duets in goa he need not wear any tight skirts. HERO AJAY felt a bit relieved but both HEROINES GEETA AND PRIYA were constantly giggling and making fun of him.
#528
AAAAA(Thursday, 15 December 2016 17:39)
THE THIRD PART OF FILM SHOOT IN GOA:-
In Kullu Manalli RAJU {HERO AJAY} told PRIYA that he would get dressed in PANT and SHIRT DURING THE HONEYMOON .
PRIYA refused saying that all the reservations done by his BHABHI GEETA in GOA have been done in name of him being a girl RAJI and herself as guy PRIYAN.
RAJU was upset.
1st DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
On the 1st day morning they had a trip to BEACH. RAJU refused but on PRIYA`S persistence he accepted to come.
PRIYA was dressed in BLUE T SHIRT, BLACK JEANS. She wore a sports CAP & GOGGLES.
RAJU wore a VIOLET sari with RED stripes. In the beach PRIYA pulled RAJU into the water.
RAJU though reluctant at first he started enjoying in the beach.
After playing for sometime in beach RAJU went to the shore where he was trying to dry his wet saree
PRIYA told him that he should have brought with him an extra saree to wear.
Then they left early to their hotel room.
On reaching the hotel room RAJU changed into green nighty while PRIYA wore a casual t shirt and shorts
They ate LUNCH in their room and were extremely tired
They relaxed till evening. In the evening they had a candle light dinner
PRIYA told RAJU to get dressed beautifully in marriage saree. RAJU though unhappy agreed
PRIYA wore BLACK FERRARI T SHIRT WITH BLACK JEANS while
RAJU dressed in PINK blouse which was a low cut blouse and it was revealing RAJU`S cleavage. he was unhappy but had no other choice
Then he wore his marriage saree which was Pink Floral Saree with the flowers in white and blue. After applying makeup he was very beautiful.
They had a memorable dinner and then they returned to hotel.
On coming to hotel PRIYA sat on a chair while RAJU was sitting on bed and relaxing.
PRIYA saw RAJU`s partly exposed navel through the PINK FLORAL saree and RAJU`S cleavage through the low cut blouse PRIYA got tempted and she tried pulling RAJU towards her. He refused her pull and
told her he was still not ready.
PRIYA was loving RAJU so much that she left him.
2ND DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
The next day THEY went to a nearby famous FORT on HILLTOP
RAJU was dressed in dark GREEN sari with golden border while PRIYA wore BLUE T SHIRT WITH BLACK JEANS
At the hilltop they were waiting for bus.
Due to high wind RAJU was having difficulty in adjusting PALLU of his SAREE as everytime wind blows the pallu of his saree moves away exposing his navel. PRIYA saw this and was constantly trying to
see his navel and always waiting for wind to blow.
After adjusting his pallu for 4 times RAJU told PRIYA not to stare at his navel.
PRIYA initially downplayed saying she was staring at some other thing.
But after RAJU`S constant prodding she told him that she saw his navel and it was nothing wrong to see his beautiful navel as they both were married.
RAJU just gave a serious glare to PRIYA. She felt awkward but felt ok
3RD DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
The next day THEY HAD RESERVATION FOR A MOVIE
RAJU got dressed in dark MAROON sari with white border PRIYA wore RED T SHIRT WITH BLACK JEANS
In the movie theatre RAJU refuses all the advances of PRIYA.
She became angry but had controlled herself
#529
AAAAA(Thursday, 15 December 2016 17:39)
4th DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
They were free and had no reservations for that day.
PRIYA told They would casually roam along Goa and do some shopping.
RAJU got dressed in BLACK SAREE with white designer border PRIYA wore BLACK T SHIRT WITH BLUE JEANS
They had come across a famous tattoo centre in GOA.
They went inside. PRIYA immediately told the tattoo guy to draw a tattoo of RAJU ON HER HAND
The tattoo guy drew a picture mimicking RAJU in Saree on her hand
Then PRIYA told the tattoo guy to draw her picture on RAJU`S hand. RAJU REFUSED and went outside.
PRIYA became so angry on him that she came out and slapped him very hard. that he started crying.
She told him that he had exceeded the limit of her patience.
She could have easily ordered him and even force him to tattoo on any part of his body and even turn him back into maid.
RAJU felt afraid that if he did not listen he would be turned back into maid. So he agreed to get tattoo done.
PRIYA was still angry that he refused and told him that initially she thought only hand but now he had to get 3 tattoo`s done. 1 on his belly {navel} and 2 on the back. 1 above the blouse and the
other on the back in the waist region between his blouse and lehenga
RAJU had to agree. He felt pain while tattooing but he remained silent and was tensed as if PRIYA wanted he could be turned back into maid wearing skimpy outfits and restricted to home . Much worse
than now. So he thought to ask her apology and also to please PRIYA a little
Even after getting 3 tattoos done PRIYA was still very angry.
They went straight to HOTEL.
In the hotel RAJU fell on PRIYA`S feet and begged her to forgive him. He told that he just needed some time to adjust into sarees and he would definitely BECOME an obedient wife.
Believing him and the love PRIYA had on RAJU she forgave him.
5th DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
On the 5th DAY RAJU & PRIYA again went to beach
PRIYA wore RED t shirt and normal beach pant
This time to please PRIYA, RAJU wore a SEE through RED colored SAREE. His BRA was clearly visible beneath the BLOUSE . He looked sexy in the SAREE. He also did extensive makeup.
Seeing him PRIYA felt very happy.
They went to the beach. PRIYA pulled RAJU inside the water and they both enjoyed for sometime.
After sometime they both went to shore and lied down on the shore
Seeing RAJU wet in see through saree PRIYA was getting more tempted.
She started pouring sand on RAJU`S navel and started playing with it.
Even though RAJU did not like it he was just smiling.
After some time they went behind the rocks in the beach where no one were present.
PRIYA took a small fish and put it inside the blouse of RAJU
RAJU was shocked and he tried to remove the fish but he could not since it was moving.
He was feeling intense tingling sensation & struggling to remove the fish. PRIYA was laughing and enjoying every moment.
He was forced to remove his blouse. Then only he was able to remove the fish.
Now he was standing only in his bra in front of PRIYA.
PRIYA now unable to control herself she kissed him on his lips.
Initially RAJU was struggling to relieve but later he too started enjoying the kiss
After the kiss PRIYA was very happy.
THE NEXT 2 DAYS OF HONEYMOON
TO BE CONTINUED
#530
AAAAA(Thursday, 15 December 2016 17:46)
I THANK SRS, EX Q ZIT, AMIT FOR THEIR REVIEWS ON MY EARLIER PART.
I WANT TO THANK EX Q ZIT ESPECIALLY FOR GIVING ME IDEA ON KHUSHI MOVIE SCENE WHICH I COULD WRITE SOMEWHAT IN MY STORY ON 2ND DAY OF HONEYMOON.
PLEASE CONTINUE YOUR SUGGESTIONS AND REVIEWS
#531
Srs(Thursday, 15 December 2016 18:45)
Mind blowing stories AAAA PLEASE continue
#532
AAAAA(Thursday, 15 December 2016 19:01)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED {FROM 530}
6th DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
PRIYA decided to enjoy this day only in the hotel room
Since RAJU told he was not ready for suhagraat she would not force him but she had other ideas
PRIYA brought a body painting set. RAJU was wearing a VIOLET SAREE with white border
She told RAJU to lie on his back.
SHE pushed aside the pallu of his saree. Now his navel was exposed. She started drawing different pictures on his navel
She used to practice one picture with temporary pen on his NAVEL and then erase it
Finally when she was satisfied with a picture she used a permanent pen.
She drew a butterfly with different colours on his navel
Then she told him to turn back and she drew similar pictures on his back in the waist area between blouse and lehenga
After this PRIYA told RAJU to dance for her in a exotic style{HERE a song would be added}
7th DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
ON the last day RAJU & PRIYA went for shopping.
Priya brought several new designer sarees for RAJU.
Then they went to night dress section where priya brought several baby doll nighties for RAJU
PRIYA also brought several high heeled shoes and makeupkits for RAJU
Finalli in the evening they started their return to home
The director RANI told that the entire shooting in goa completed except for 3 duet songs.
THE 1st duet would be placed on 5th day of honeymoon when PRIYA Kissed RAJU
THE 2nd duet would be an exotic dance done by RAJU which would be placed ON 6th day of honeymoon
THE 3rd duet would be a rain song which would be placed earlier
RAJU {HERO AJAY} was terrified on listening about the exotic SONG and the rain song and was constantly teased by PRIYA about it
The next morning the shooting for the duets began.
1ST SONG:- DUET The duet song had to begun after a lip lock with PRIYA
RAJU {HERO AJAY} would be Dressed IN 4 dresses i.e :- pink blouse knee length skirt, yellow frock, green middi, black short skirt with white blouse
PRIYA would be dressed in BLACK JEANS AND BLUE T SHIRT
RAJU {HERO AJAY} felt awkward in dancing in skirts and frocks. He was feeling shy especially when PRIYA was touching his waist , chest intimately & when PRIYA was kissing his RED PAINTED
LIPS
2nd song:- EROTIC DANCE SONG
RAJU {HERO AJAY} would be Dressed IN 3 dresses i.e :- blue blouse and blue lehenga, pink blouse and lehenga, colourful dotted blouse and red bottom. IN all 3 dresses his midriff {navel} was
exposed.
Even his cleavage was exposed as all were low cut blouses
In this song when he was wearing blue blouse and blue lehenga His navel had to be hit romantically with apple and grapes by PRIYA
RAJU {HERO AJAY} felt awkward as the scene of hitting his navel was shot many times as director RANI felt his expressions were not upto mark
After each take PRIYA had to suppress her laughter.
Finally when shot was done PRIYA broke into laughter
3rd song:- RAIN SONG
RAJU {HERO AJAY} would be Dressed IN 3 sarees i.e :- blue, yellow and red.
The red saree would be a see through transparent saree in which his bra was clearly visible.
In this song RAJU {HERO AJAY} had to show several expressions and also expose his navel
DIRECTOR RANI made him redo song many times as she was not satisfied with his expressions.
After many takes finally the song was completed
DIRECTOR RANI TOLD NOW TOTAL SHOOT IN GOA IS COMPLETED
HERO AJAY was feeling relieved
While HEROINE PRIYA was constantly giggling and told him that his expressions were better than a girl
TO BE CONTINUED
#533
Maddy(Friday, 16 December 2016 07:50)
AAAA just keep writing too awesome
#534
Kumaari(Friday, 16 December 2016 10:31)
Wowwwww wat a story AAAA simply awesome... Keep rocking.... We are waiting...
#535
satya(Friday, 16 December 2016 12:49)
brother in law to wife 17
vikram came and sit infront of me and i got shocked and stand up for going back and vikram stopped me and said hi and i am vikram whats ur name he asked i got shock she did not recognise me completly
and he said i saw u in satyas house that time he sad u forget i said remembered and he said my mom is coming and satya and satya mom are also coming here and i dont no that ur also comng there he
said and ur face is same to same as satya only by the by whats ur name he asked i got tension that what to say i said my name is also satya only i said i will go to washrom and i will come in 5mins
he said ok i go to washroomand i call to mom and she said she is not coming and she dropped the phone and i thought it was the preplaned by mom and mil and i want to escape from here and him slowly i
went to table and he asked what about u and what ru doing now and i said simply living in home and he is seeing my body every where and his eyes are towards my breast and he give the compliment about
the saree and said thank you and i said they mom is not coming she had some work i am also having i want to leave now and he said ok i will drop u in house and i sad i am coming by my scootyand can
go i said bye and going home by scoty and he fllowed me and being a girl one boy was following me i got embaresed but inside i am happpy i reached home and go to roomremoved saree he said i am
looking good in saree i see my self n mirror i am not intrested to remove saree when he said like that but for freeness i removed and wear the nghty i am wearng the salwar kamee of plain type not
fashoinable there are different types of salwars are there like patiyala anarkali krapetops like so many i dont no whle i am seeing the adds in telivision i got those names and think i want to try
those but i dont no how to buy and select later againg i wear the normal salwar and singly went for shoppng without any one and directly ask the sales girl about those and she checked my size showed
them and went to trail and wear those are loking very good and some are very lightweight and heavy weight and stonework and packed the 10 pair and came from mall with bags and waiting for auto vikram
was coming with his bike he saw me and stopped and he offered lift i said no but later forcable i sat on bike but not on two sides only sat n single side first time i sat like a lady on one side but
it was uncomfortable iwe reached home i get down from bike and go to home mom was seeing me fromthe window and she asked me where u went i said for shopping loose dresses and ask how u came i said by
vikram bike
#536
satya(Friday, 16 December 2016 13:40)
brother in law to wife 18
mom said me to me go and change the dress and i want to talk to you i said k went to room and changed to nighty and came to halland sit nfront of mom she asked me how i am feeling now i said ok and
she asked me how vikram will be i said ok nice guy and she asked me u have to marry vikram next month i got shocked and said no mom asked why i am friend of vikram and we know each other from
childhood and bestfriend i am aboy i cant marry him she said ur not boy ur mentally and physically a girl now today u urself only went to mall and buy the girls dresses and came leave it now what r
ur future plans tell me what ur going todo simply sitting in home through out ur life see u r girl u cant live singly u must have one partner so marryone men why i am askeing vikram tomarry means
because ur mil know about u and u cant conceve child vikram daughter is thereu u can be mom to his daughter and wife and he is ur frend ffrom chldhood he can understand about u and ur problems think
one next month vikram daughter is coming to home before her mother must be she is thnking her mom is alive and she dont know how she will be because she is 18months old and so be her mom before
coming and vikram dont know about u and we will explain him and he will accept so please u r son n law to ur mother n law and now become daughter in law to her this is the best solution t ur life
otherwse lve ur life dont ask me anythng u r seeng outside wthout life partner how girlslife will be and she said think again and to night and say by tomorrow morning and if u agree wear yellow saree
and come otherwise ur wish and i went to my room and thinking sleep and i think to enjoy live happy and vikram also good guy only so i decide to marry and went t sleep and wake wear yellow saree and
came out mom was so happy and talk to my mil and mil explaned each and evrerythng to vikram what was happened to me and he get schocked and accepted for marrage before that want to talk to satya he
said k tomorrow u can go t her home and talk and satya only will be her mom went for out of staton and i dont know that vikram is comng tomy home know only he accepy for marrage i dont know about his
coming am wearing halfsaree in home and watching tv door bell rang i opened the door and vikram was there i schocked and lowered my head and he lifted upand take me to hall and didnt speak any thing
to shy and he said how r u satya and ur feeling comfortable dont be shy i amur friend and i acept marrege for my daughtrer she need mom and i came toknow about ur problem and please talkto me dont be
silent before u talk to me in hotelas a girl now why ur not speaking please be move freely and said nothing and i dont know how to speek but smiled and k now ur feeling some shy k later i will talk
and marrege ritualsand proceedng are gong on they kept the marrage in a small temple and we buy dfferent sarees and wear saree wth all jeweleries and went for mandapam and sat only 10 t0 15 members
are thier for marrage and vkram wear the suit and she tied the mangalsuthra on my neck and kept bindi on my forhead and he kept toe ringd tomy foot and altalst the all marrage rituals completed and i
got tired but night another thng is there that first night mom and two more girls are busy in readyng me for first night and girls are sayng u have to give ur coperation to ur husband u have to loose
ur virginity to night and wear wight saree and flowers and mom gave me milk glass tome and sent into room and door was locked i am his friend from childhood and cricket players and husband to his
sisternow i am his wife standing infront of him with glass of milk waering saree flowers and ready for first night.
#537
AAAAA(Friday, 16 December 2016 16:05)
THE ACTOR {CONTINUED FROM 532}
FINAL SHOOT OF THE MOVIE:- The final part of the movie was shot in RAJU`s home which was a duplex building.
THIS PART would be more of a betrayal and love story rather than teasing compared to earlier parts of the story.
DIRECTOR RANI started the movie with a clap.
PRIYA and RAJU returned from their honeymoon.
Their BHABHI GEETA welcomed them and asked them about their honeymoon.
PRIYA told her that they enjoyed each and every moment of their honeymoon period and RAJU followed her like an obedient wife.
Their BHABHI GEETA was happy. She was also happy because RAJU transformed himself from an arrogant boy to a beautiful and obedient housewife.
The following weekend on SUNDAY RAJU requested his BHABHI GEETA that he wanted to wear PANT and SHIRT
Their BHABHI GEETA thinking him to be a changed obedient person agreed and told him he could wear PANT and SHIRT only on SUNDAY, but told him to first get permission of his wife PRIYA & also told
him that even if he wears PANT and SHIRT he should not go out of the house alone.
He must always be accompanied by PRIYA or GEETA.
RAJU AGREED
He went and asked PRIYA for permission to wear PANT and SHIRT.
As she was madly in love with RAJU She immediately consented.
RAJU was very happy. He wore PANT and SHIRT for the first time since many days
He started now planning of his escape from this house.
For the following few days he acted as an obedient wife to PRIYA in front of his BHABHI GEETA and on SUNDAYS he used to dress in PANT and SHIRT but was not permitted to leave the house alone.
Finally on 1 day thinking he has adjusted fully to his new role his BHABHI GEETA & PRIYA both allowed him to go alone on SUNDAYS in PANT and SHIRT to meet his old friends
Taking this opportunity he met several of his old friends and was finding ways of his escape.
Finally 1 day he met a friend who told him that he could go abroad by applying for passport and visa.
He liked the idea and immediately applied for PASSPORT & VISA.
He gave his friends address as reference so that his BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA will not get suspicion.
In the following few days his WIFE PRIYA got a good manager job and he pretended to be very happy in front of her and promised her that he would support her as an obedient wife throughout her
career.
He thought that since both his BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA go to job he can now freely roam in morning hours in PANT & SHIRT and can apply for a job abroad and also get passport and visa
easily.
So now as per his plan he used to pretend as an obedient wife by waking up in morning 6oClock do all the house work and cooking in nighties. Then at 8o Clock he used to wear beautiful sarees and wear
lovely makeup and serve tea to his BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA after waking them up.
#538
AAAAA(Friday, 16 December 2016 16:07)
THE ACTOR
He also used to cook lunch in the morning & gave them lunchboxes so that they would not return in the afternoon.
As soon as they left he used to change into PANT & SHIRT and go out to find out about his passport and visa.
He also used to apply for jobs abroad.
By evening he used to return and change back into his SAREE & MAKEUP before 7o Clock The usual time of return of his BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA.
When they returned he used to welcome them with tea. When they sit down for having tea he used to remove their OFFICE SLIPPERS and rub their legs with shyness of an obedient wife.
His BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA seeing him never got a suspicion about his activities of applying for passport and visa. They were happy that he is an obedient HOUSEWIFE.
Initially he applied for high profile jobs but as he had no good educational qualification they rejected.
Finally he got to know about the job of a sweeper and floor mopping in abroad.
He thought that something is better than his present position. So he immediately applied for that job
After a few days he got passport and visa. But to buy plane ticket he needed money. He came up with a plan
He requested his WIFE PRIYA to buy him a beautiful and costly necklace.
Thinking that it was his first request after her marriage she immediately bought a rare costly necklace with all her salary.
Seeing the necklace his BHABHI GEETA told PRIYA that she should not have wasted all her salary for that 1 necklace.
But PRIYA replied that nothing is more than RAJU`S happiness.
PRIYA wore RAJU the necklace. After wearing for sometime he told that he will keep the necklace inside the almirah as it was costly and will only wear it only for important occasions.
Later He sold that necklace in a nearby gold shop and booked the plane ticket which was after 1 week on SUNDAY.
In that 1 week he started secretly packing things. He assumed that as on SUNDAY he would be allowed to wear PANT & SHIRT for the full day & in the name of meeting his friends he could go
abroad and settle.
But on SATURDAY 1 day before his journey trip his BHABHI GEETA while eating lunch in a nearby hotel saw the necklace in display outside the gold shop. She got suspicious and on enquiry she found out
that it was sold by RAJU.
She immediately met his friend who told her about RAJU`S job abroad and his planned journey the next day.
His BHABHI GEETA became so angry. She immediately went home. As It was afternoon time RAJU was not expecting that his BHABHI GEETA would return. So he was dressed in PANT & SHIRT and packing
things.
His BHABHI GEETA entered the house with a spare key she had. The spare key would open the door even if it is locked from inside. She went straight upstairs into RAJU`S room.
RAJU was shocked on seeing his BHABHI GEETA and was even more tensed as she had seen him in PANT & SHIRT and was angry.
He tried to tell her that he wore PANT SHIRT only TODAY other than his usual SUNDAYS.
His BHABHI GEETA immediately asked him for his necklace which PRIYA brought him.
He pretended to search in almirah and tried telling her that it was lost.
She immediately showed him that necklace and also told him that she met his friend and knew of his entire plan and then slapped him very hard.
RAJU fell to the ground and was very frightened. He fell on the feet of his BHABHI GEETA and asked her for forgiveness.
His BHABHI GEETA was seething in anger and refused,
She told him that he had played with the emotions of her and also his WIFE PRIYA who was madly in love with him.
She told him that he betrayed his WIFE PRIYA`S love and was all the time playing with her emotions.
His BHABHI GEETA then hit him severely with her belt.
His BHABHI GEETA angrily told him that he is undeserving of the lenience he was provided and told him to change back into his skimpy FRENCH MAID DRESS and come to the hall. She left to the
hall.
RAJU was very afraid. He took the skimpy RED FRENCH MAID DRESS which was in the almirah and was very dusty as it was not worn for many days.
He removed his PANT & SHIRT and wore the skimpy RED FRENCH MAID DRESS.
He was frightened to see his BHABHI GEETA.
But she called him and told him to come fast into the hall
#539
AAAAA(Friday, 16 December 2016 16:10)
THE ACTOR
RAJU slowly and hesitantly came into the hall in RED FRENCH MAID DRESS . His BHABHI GEETA was still seething with anger
After giving him few more slaps, His BHABHI GEETA ordered him to “Turn into a cock and stand in front of the mirror”.
RAJU obeyed and to add to his humiliation, he saw his image in the mirror- a red coloured french maid dressed man forced to stay as a cock.
Then RAJU was frozen with fear when he saw a cane in His BHABHI GEETA`s hand.
Then she again ordered, ” Raise your hip and dont move a bit when I strike you.”
Needless to say, RAJU quickly raised his hip as high as he could have.
On raising his hip the skimpy skirt of FRENCH MAID UNIFORM went up and his back was exposed.
As even the red panties which he wore inside wear only designed to cover half of his back he was feeling almost like he was exposing the total bare back.
Then came the first stroke. RAJU jumped and screamed with pain. His BHABHI GEETA gave five more strokes for that and said, “If you move one more time, I will complete the rest of your punishment in
the street.”
After that RAJU endured twenty more strokes on my buttocks and back of thighs without moving an inch! But this was not the end.
His BHABHI GEETA again told him to turn into a cock and stand in front of the mirror.
She kept him like this for two hours. When RAJU was about to fall due to tiredness, His BHABHI GEETA ordered him to stand and do ups and downs holding his ears. When he was tired of that, he was made
to kneel down. This continued for another two hours.
Then the time was 7 o clock and RAJU`S wife PRIYA came home. She was unaware of all these things.
PRIYA as she entered the hall she saw RAJU kneeling down in RED FRENCH MAID DRESS.
His BHABHI GEETA was sitting in a sofa in the HALL and was seething with anger.
PRIYA asked His BHABHI GEETA what had happened
His BHABHI GEETA told PRIYA that RAJU never became an obedient wife and was fit only to be a maid.
His BHABHI GEETA told PRIYA about the whole thing that RAJU never loved PRIYA. He only pretended and played with her feelings in order to escape from this house.
His BHABHI GEETA also showed PRIYA his passport, visa, plane ticket for the next day which was bought with PRIYA`S gift necklace which she bought with all her hard earned salary.
After listening this PRIYA started crying
On seeing PRIYA cry His BHABHI GEETA`s anger even more increased. She took the cane and once again started hitting RAJU.
PRIYA could not see RAJU being hit as she loved him intensely.
So PRIYA fell on His BHABHI GEETA`s feet and asked her to spare him.
His BHABHI GEETA was moved by PRIYA and she left RAJU and went inside her room.
PRIYA took RAJU into their room and started telling that she had sincerely loved him and the only reason she had dressed him in sarees as being an obedient wife he would never go away from her.
PRIYA also told him that she had spent all her salary just for 1 necklace RAJU had asked for his happiness & when his BHABHI GEETA refused him to allow PANT & SHIRT she had requested her to
allow him to wear PANT & SHIRT for atleast 1 day.
PRIYA also told RAJU that his BHABHI GEETA had secretly warned her that once he starts wearing PANT & SHIRT he would definitely revolt and go away from her but as PRIYA lover RAJU intensely and
she wanted only his happiness she did not listen to her warnings.
PRIYA told him that all if he wanted was wearing PANT & SHIRT he can always wear them and even if RAJU wanted she would resign her job and be an obedient wife to RAJU.
If still RAJU wanted She would serve RAJU all his life like a servant maid she was. She even took a BLACK FRENCH MAID DRESS which was present in the cupboard which was worn once by RAJU and she wore
it to please RAJU.
PRIYA told RAJU that she would stay her whole life in FRENCH MAID DRESS or any other skimpy dress RAJU wanted and do whatever work RAJU told but he should not leave her
RAJU was moved as well as little afraid and hesitant but he told PRIYA that he wanted to go abroad.
Even after intense PRIYA`S pleading RAJU was adamant to go
Finally PRIYA told him that he was free to go and no one would stop him. PRIYA also gave RAJU all the money which she had saved and had.
Saying this PRIYA left the room saying she would sleep in the HALL. Actually she was silently crying in the hall, but she did not want anyone to know.
RAJU became very happy thinking that he would leave tomorrow and be free. He planned to buy many shirts and pants in the foreign with the money which PRIYA gave.
He immediately removed the RED FRENCH MAID DRESS he was wearing and dressed in pant and shirt and was sleeping happily in the bedroom while PRIYA was crying in the hall.
#540
AAAAA(Friday, 16 December 2016 16:10)
THE ACTOR
In the morning RAJU woke up got dressed in new pant and shirt and was happily about to leave.
Before leaving he thought to meet his BHABHI and PRIYA once and went to them. But both of them refused to speak to him.
RAJU was a bit SAD but thinking of life ahead he happily left the house and reached the airport.
RAJU was waiting for his flight when he saw an old friend who was coming after deboarding a flight
RAJU went to meet him. His friend was a bit dejected and told him that he went abroad 5 yrs ago for the job of a sweeper and floor mopping. Abroad he was made to work worse than a servant and he was
forced to do several menial tasks like cleaning bathrooms etc..He was also made to clean drainage.
Worst part about the job was he had to sexually please his LADY boss as well. She made him dance naked in front of her female guests. She also used to lend his services for her female friends who had
wild fantasies and literally used to sexually abuse him.
Since 5 years he was pleasing his lady boss and pleasuring all her sexual fantasies but recently a new person had applied for the job so she fired him instantly.
He had no money as the lady boss refused to give him even his salary saying she was not satisfied with his work. So now he came back home but was frightened whether he will find any job here either.
Before leaving RAJU`S friend mentioned the name of the lady boss he was working under and on listening the name RAJU got tensed as it was the same name of his boss he was going now to work
under.
RAJU sat in the chair in the airport and was worried. He thought that his life abroad would be better but after listening to his friend he was upset as it would be worse than a maid and he was more
worried about the sexual fantasies of his lady boss.
RAJU thought that he had betrayed the love of his life PRIYA who loved him with all her heart and he played with her emotions.
PRIYA always gave RAJU true love and just to wear PANT & SHIRT he betrayed her.
After sitting and thinking for 3 hrs it was time for his flight.
But thinking about PRIYA , RAJU decided to go back to his house and win the trust and love of PRIYA at all cost.
RAJU went back home. His BHABHI GEETA opened the door but refused to speak to him thinking he might have planned something.
RAJU went to PRIYA who was inside in the bedroom. Her face was paled out as she was crying continuously and was inconsolable.
RAJU felt very bad and tried to speak with her but she refused. He tore his PASSPORT & VISA in front of her but still she was not ready to accept.
He went and pleaded with his BHABHI GEETA. She too refused.
RAJU decided that he will win TRUST of both HIS BHABHI GEETA & LOVE PRIYA at any cost and do whatever is necessary.
RAJU went to his cupboard and happily put on the RED FRENCH MAID DRESS and pleaded with PRIYA that he would rather stay a maid to her and serve his life. He told her that he would do whatever PRIYA
wanted. But she still refused.
RAJU went to his BHABHI GEETA kneeled before her and said that he would never break her trust anymore.
RAJU told his BHABHI GEETA that he would forever remain a maid and always dress in FRENCH MAID DRESS and all he wanted was that both HIS BHABHI GEETA & PRIYA speak to him. He even burned all his
PANT & SHIRT saying that he does`nt want to wear them anymore and vowed to never even touch a PANT SHIRT.
Seeing this BHABHI GEETA forgave him and told him that He should ask for PRIYA`s forgiveness and if she is unable then try to win her love back.
#541
AAAAA(Friday, 16 December 2016 16:12)
THE ACTOR
RAJU went to PRIYA and begged for her forgiveness but still she was unable to forgive.
So RAJU decided to win her love back
He went to HIS BHABHI GEETA and asked her how he could win back his LOVE PRIYA.
HIS BHABHI GEETA told RAJU that she knew that even-though they went for 1 WEEK honeymoon they didnot celebrate their SUHAGRAAT.
So the best thing for RAJU to do would be to SEDUCE PRIYA by dancing for her in a dress which she likes the most and end it with SUHAGRAAT.
RAJU accepted. He got dressed in a maroon saree applied makeup and went for shopping first.
RAJU knew that PRIYA liked his clevage, back waist, thighs and the most is NAVEL. So he decided to buy dresses which would expose all these parts.
RAJU went to a mall and bought designer bra panty set, then he bought 2 sports bras which would be like normal blouse.
Then he went to skirts section and selected 4 miniskirts red, pink, blue, black.
Then he went to blouse section and bought matching blouses which were low cut exposing his cleavage and also will be showing his full navel when worn with a skirt
He bought all these things with the money PRIYA had given him before with which he wanted to buy shirts and pants.
But as destiny is he was buying skirts and blouses with that.
Then he went to makeup parlor and got his makeup done as suiting with the short skirts which he would be wearing.
Then he went to the house and told BHABHI GEETA that he would sing and dance in those short skirts and seduce PRIYA and try to win back her love.
His BHABHI GEETA accepted and she left as she did`nt want to disturb them.
Raju dressed in those miniskirts and danced for her to his full capacity by fully exposing {A SONG WOULD COME HERE DESCRIBED LATER} and which finally ended with PRIYA kissing RAJU`S navel and the
beginning of their suhagraat
Next day morning RAJU`S BHABHI GEETA came and she saw both RAJU & PRIYA still in bed.
She felt happy and she did`nt want to disturb them.
The film ended on a happy note with RAJU fully becoming an obedient wife in SAREES to PRIYA & would always serve her and his BHABHI GEETA .
RAJU as promised earlier never again touched PANT & SHIRT. But sometimes he would dress skimpily IN SHORT SKIRTS just to seduce and tease PRIYA.
With this DIRECTOR RANI announced an end to the movie except 1 seducing song.
HERO AJAY {RAJU} was partly happy as movie shoot had been completed but he was still afraid about the seducing song.
#542
AAAAA(Friday, 16 December 2016 16:13)
THE ACTOR
4th song:- EROTIC DANCE SONG
RAJU {HERO AJAY} would be Dressed IN 4 dresses i.e :- red, pink, blue, black skirts and matching blouses. for last black miniskirt dress he had to wear only sports bra and not even blouse as it would
be the climax of seduction
IN all 4 dresses his midriff {navel} was exposed.
Even his cleavage was exposed as all were low cut blouses.
The song shoot began with PRIYA coming from first floor to ground floor on steps who would be followed by RAJU {HERO AJAY} dressed in red mini skirt and red blouse.
He would be dancing on the steps while coming down behind PRIYA
RAJU {HERO AJAY} felt difficulty as he had to shake both his chest as to show his cleavage and also shake his waist showing navel. This has to be with seductive facial expressions.
Director RANI made him do the shot many times till a perfect shot.
PRIYA had to act sad initially but seeing RAJU {HERO AJAY} seduction she was trying to control her laughter
After each shot PRIYA used to burst into laughter.
The next sequence in the song was when PRIYA after coming down sits in hall.
RAJU {HERO AJAY} now dressed in pink mini skirt and pink blouse had to climb on a bed in the hall and dance seductively. He had to move his hands seductively and also show seducing face
expressions.
Then in the next sequence of the song RAJU {HERO AJAY} dressed in blue mini skirt with matching blouse would follow PRIYA as goes near fridge and starts drinking water
RAJU {HERO AJAY} asks her for some water. PRIYA pours the water in his mouth. BUT he had to open his mouth only half such that the remaining water tickles down his neck then blouse then the navel and
finally go into his blue miniskirt tickling down along his thighs.
Then in the climax sequence of the song RAJU {HERO AJAY} dressed only in black sports BRA and ultra short black skirt seduces PRIYA as she sits on SOFA by going near her and shaking his waist and
chest and romantically falling on her.
Now the song ends with PRIYA licking the navel of RAJU and finally kissing it.
With this DIRECTOR RANI announced the end of total film
RAJU {HERO AJAY} was relieved while HEROINE PRIYA & GEETA both teased AJAY that he acted better than a real girl and would definitely get an award for it
DIRECTOR RANI told RAJU {HERO AJAY} that he could go home and take rest but he had to come to the promotions of movie dressed in SAREE as whole story of the movie is based on that concept.
HERO AJAY requested DIRECTOR RANI that as he had a 2 movie contract with her atleast in the next movie he be projected as a HERO IN PANTS and not crossdressed.
DIRECTOR RANI replied that it was too early for discussion of the 2nd film and his role would be as per the theme and the story they choose which depends on the result of their 1st movie.
HERO AJAY accepted thinking that atleast in the next movie he would be a hero in pants.
But would he......?
TO BE CONTINUED
#543
Kumaari(Friday, 16 December 2016 18:54)
@ AAAA wow Nice story gr8 plot and good story telling... Waiting for 2nd part... @satya ur story also too good to read...
#544
Srs(Friday, 16 December 2016 21:46)
AAAAA nice keep going
#545
ash(Saturday, 17 December 2016 04:42)
plz continue AAAAA
#546
satya(Saturday, 17 December 2016 05:17)
wife to brother in law 19
i entered into room with milk and vikram was waiting there and i g there and sat on bed and gave the milk glass to him and keep my head down he take the glass and kept aside and lift my face up and
ask talk now to me u r my wife r atleast think u r my friend in that way due to shyness i ddnt speak anything he asked how ru feeling in the girls attire and body i said ok and he said i want to see
u fully once stand i didnt see u carefully when u became female.i stand nfront of him he see me carefully the structure and ask me to remove saree i want tosee u nude he said i shocked and said no
why ur my wife he said ,then ithink i am his wife he can have a total access to my body i think he will have sex now and said i am tried now later we will do not now i said he said what ru saying i
want to see ur body how ur female body is there i refused and he came towards me and i am going back atlast the wall is there he came near to me and i tightly breath mt air and he remove the saree
pallu on top and removed the pleats and remved totally and kepp aside and slowly cooperated to him and i am in the blouse and petticoat and he saw my bresat and removed the thread of the peeticoat
and i am in blouse bra and panty he ask to remove and said no and keep my hands on breast to cover he saw me and laugh and said u totally became female and he came near and take me to bed i said no
and he removing the hooks of blouse while he removing the hooks one byone i am getiting sexualpleasure was increasing and i coperated him and he removed the bra also and my upper part was free and he
saw my breast and pressing my breast and i am moaning and later he came to my navel and came to panty and he removed it also and he is keeping the hand near the vagina and askme tostand upi did he
said ur perfectly nice figure and sexy ur looking no one will know ur transformation and ask me to sleep in bed and later he remved his all dress and hs cock was bg and long and becme hard by seeing
me then i thnk his wfe s dead he didnt have sex after wife dead today he is having so he is happy i can see his happiness in his face he want to fuck me and enjoy the sex he came near to me and he
started to insert his cock in my vagina and started fucking me and strokes was ncresing and i am getting pain i remember my wife also said i didint listen if i say also he wont listen so i bear the
pain and moanng with sounds aaa aaa aaa aaa like that later after he released the sperms nmy vagina after some time my pain was reduced and i think girlswill have more sexualfeeling than boys like
our night went we two sleep after some time nudely and go for sleep
#547
alexvyaz(Saturday, 17 December 2016 19:56)
I like the story "THE ACTOR". It's always thrilling to read about gender role reversal family. I hope to see next part. ;)
#548
Srs(Sunday, 18 December 2016 03:52)
Satya nice please don't stop continue ur story pleaseeee
#549
bgs(Sunday, 18 December 2016 11:19)
Satya,please don't stop the story
#550
SRS(Sunday, 18 December 2016 13:06)
"fashion part 16 # 490"
Next day when i woke up i dint know what happened to me, my jaws r paining i dint know what happen to me. I slowly looked up an i fell that my body is shivering due to cold. When i look up i was
shocked that i was completely nude an my fake breast an vagina is clearly viable. I was scared an confused that who did that an when, while i was thinking my aunt was standing behind me an i get
shocked an she seems to be angry, she came near to me an asked what the hell is this can u just explain about this, i dint know what to say n i started to say ia a aa am an on hearing this she shout
what ur mermeing tell me y u have been doing like this please explain, she pulled my hand an steeped in front of full size mirror an told to look , i was shocked that i look like complete girl even
though i was in fake vagina an breast. i look closely an saw that my eye brows r gone it was ultra thin arch eyebrow an my eyelash has been extend some how which looks like woman, an another think
that make me shook completely is my jaws an teeth it looks completely different my teeth r in straight an white which looks like woman teeth an my lip is plum an pouty which looks like anushka sharma
who did plastic surgery in lip i dont know but it looks like her. My aunt came neer to me an ask to explain about this i dint know what to say an i started to think if i told the truth to my aunt
then my boss will throw 2 of them from the office an she will took all our property an me an my aunt come to the road so i cant able to tell her an told lie to her that i lost a bet to my boss thats
y she made like this an my aunt dint believe an told ohh thats y u made a permanent tattoo in ur back lower hip an u priced ur navel an ur bum also looks big, an the breast an vagina doe sent seems
like its fake iam doubt that u make an SRS surgery anyway i dint believe this made up story if its then ur boss had told me before , but i argue an told that it is true after she comes to conculation
that if it is true than i also will make 1 bet to u that i will give an hour u have to remove this all bloody stuff otherwise u have to listen me what i will tell to do an then she left after i dint
know what to do. i tryed my best but i failed to do after lot of struggle i cant take of the fake things an i started to cry. my aunt came after an hour an i still cant able to remove this stuff she
got tense an say k ur wish but now u want to do what i tell an she throw some item in bed sn i was shocked on seeing that, she said that if ur not ready to remove this kind of stuff than u should
were this thing an i started to beg an tryed to explain that this is been glued an cant able to remove but she dint try here what am trying to tell after she forced me to were the dress which she
gave me an i saw that it was a bra,panties,petticoat,sleeveless less an backless blouse an saree. after seeing that i beg my aunt but she told that if u wore office dress code than it will short tops
so that everybody can see ur naval priced an the tattoo at the back an i think for that an told to were it , i slowly started to were it first i wore bra an panties, after took the petticoat an
blouse, the blouse looks strange when i wore it, it sleeveless an in back there is only 3 r 4 notch thread in the back an my aunt put the threads into it after she put the black saree to me an pined
it. it felt like i dint were anything after she make me sit in the dressing table an started to do my hair she combed my hair 3 to 4 times an put the bangs in front of my fore head an did braiding
from the mill of the hair an i can feel that it getting tight while each an every braid after when she complete an she took the hair jewelry an its look like tiny gold balls an she put it were the
each braid is been crossed from my mill head to bottom, after she took jasmine flower an put 1 side of my hair an lift my jada an did in other side its looks like u type an she put the rose flower in
the back center of my head. when she was complete i was in shame an seeing in mirror an i put my shoe, when she saw me she started to shout that due have any sens wearing a saree an ur putting shoes
an i was horror on hearing that now what she is going to do, she came near to me an give black high satilo heels which i was shock an she forced me to put it after lot of struggle i wore it but its
real tough to walk.
#551
SRS(Sunday, 18 December 2016 13:07)
fashion part 17
she hold my hands for walk each an every step slowly i sat in car an v reached to our office. i beg my aunt that i will not come like this better i will take leave but my aunt dint lisson to it an
she pulled out from car an v slowly walked into the lobby everybody was busy in work so nobody notice an there again huge crowd an v slowly entered to my boss cabin an on seeing me my boss lol she
cant control her laughter this make me very humiliate an she came near to me an touch me an told ur wearing heels too good yesterday u argued to not were saree but today u wore it how, i dint reply
an my aunt asked what i have told to her that its true that u make him bet an told to wore fake breast an vagina an asking she started to act an came near to me an told omg ur wearing breast an
vagina an its fake were u get that i dint notice u , can u please show me an she pressed my boob, i was completely shock on her acting i dint know y she is doing like this. my aunt came near to me an
told look dear until u dint tell the truth ur position will become worst that this, i tried again but she is not ready to here that, after my boss given memo for the yesterday matter telling that i
was again DE promoter no am a office girl an ur out of cabin for work like supplying the documents for all etc,etc. i cant believe what is happening to me an y an i went out everybody is laughing at
me an making fun an preethy came with her daughter an she told aunty u look beautiful, after my whole day went out like an laughing stock i just dint want to live an when my work to be complete i
went to my boss cabin an told about this an my aunt too was there an after the think an told for that there is 1 solution so that u need not want to work here u can work in another place through this
company. on hearing i relive an get relax, i thought at least i can escape from this all. she told that 1st time there is an add agency who needs our model which is pure south indian base, its an
wedding jewelry add based so nothing like u have to were lots of jeweler an simply pose. b4 i say anything my aunt agreed she dint even consul to me.
#552
SRS(Sunday, 18 December 2016 13:08)
fashion part 18
after when the work was complete she took me to the same parlor with preethy an her daughter. i dint know y they used to come with us for that she told that her daughter is comping for priced her
ear. when v entered the parlor the resption welcome an told me that day by day iam become more beautiful i keep down my head an make me sit in the beauty chair after preethy daughter came an sat
beside my chair an they priced her ear in both the side, i was watching her on that time i felt a sudden pain in my right ear when i look on right what happened again i felt the pain in left ear,
they have priced my ear too. i started to shout on them for that preethy daughter told that iam a small girl i priced without any screem an ur such a big aunty y ur making screem, on saying that i
became angry an slapped her. her mother an my aunt get angry an they discussed some thing after that they came near to me an hold my hair tightly an that lady priced 3 times above the 1st hole in
both side of my ear. i was screaming for the pain opening my mouth an preethy told jokingly that close ur mouth other wise men r eager to put there cock in such a wonder cock sucking lips an make u
blowjob an every body started to lol at that time my aunt came near to me an told well well what is here i can see that u have priced ur toung also. i closed my mouth an dont know what to say an she
told i will have to do something about this an suddenly my two hands grabbed back side of my chair an they bring the pricing gun an priced my left an right side of my nose an put 1 small stud an they
also priced my septum an put 1 hanging ring . i was crying an screening cause of pain, after when they have finished an v reached to our home an i went to my room an closed down an went to bed. i
dont know about tomorrow what is going to happen to me an how they tease about the priced please help me i dont know how to escape from this all.
#553
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:05)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED {FROM#542}
THE ACTOR CONTINUED:-
The 1st movie of HERO AJAY, HEROINE GEETA & RANI was released and it was a sensational hit.
HERO AJAY became more famous with his girl name RAJI. He was also known as AJAYA.
He got calls from several producers and directors but he told them to wait as he had signed a two movie contract with DIRECTOR RANI.
He also got offers for endorsements of several cell phone companies and also home appliances but they all had a condition that he shoot for their add in SAREE. So he refused shooting for these
adds.
During movie promotions also he felt awkward as DIRECTOR RANI always insisted in come for promotions in SAREE with LOW CUT BLOUSES to show his clevage. He was also supposed to flaunt his navel and
look sexy during the promotions.
#554
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:07)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED:-
Then DIRECTOR RANI announced her next film would be a periodic film & would be of huge budget as their 1st film was massive hit.
She also told that the hit pair of HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA would be retained for the next film.
HERO AJAY felt very happy when DIRECTOR RANI announced a periodic film thinking he would get become very popular.
DIRECTOR RANI told she would ready the script in 1 month time and she told HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA to get ready by then and in the mean time they had to get ready in sword fighting.
DIRECTOR RANI also told HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA to sign a nudity clause.
HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA were initially a bit hesitant but when DIRECTOR RANI insisted that in periodic fims it is common to have sexual scenes they consented and signed.
While going DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY & HEROINE PRIYA to come after 1month suitably dressed,
HERO AJAY should dress like a KNIGHT with shining armor and sword and HEROINE PRIYA to dress only in BLOUSE and LEHENGA and she must wear chains on her belly and many bangles in her hands while
showing her belly,waist and back completely as would be a normal attire of women in periodic films.
HERO AJAY became very happy thinking that in this movie he would be a real hero and never crossdress.
HERO AJAY also teased HEROINE PRIYA that during 1st movie she teased him a lot and now it is time for his chance for revenge and he would not spare her.
HEROINE PRIYA felt a bit tensed but she did not say anything.
After 1 month HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA went and met DIRECTOR RANI.
HERO AJAY was dress like a KNIGHT with shining armor and sword and HEROINE PRIYA was dressed only in BLUE BLOUSE and LEHENGA and she wore chains on her belly that came from blouse while showing her
clevage, belly,waist and back completely.She was amazing hot and was trying to cover her clevage and navel with a dupatta.
DIRECTOR RANI told them to sit in the waiting room as she was a bit busy and would later tell them the story.
In the waiting room HEROINE PRIYA sat on a chair was trying to cover her clevage and navel with a dupatta.
But as she was wearing a low cut blue blouse and only lehenga she had difficulty.
WHILE HERO AJAY was constantly looking at her and smiling.
HERO AJAY then said to her that he remembered all teasing she had done to him when he had dressed in SAREE during the 1st movie and he would suitably take revenge on her.
Listening this HEROINE PRIYA tried to say something but an arrogant HERO AJAY pulled out her dupatta.
She was covering her cleavage showing blouse with both hands crossed and pleading with HERO AJAY to give her dupatta back.
HERO AJAY told her to remember of the scene when he lost in the cricket match she pulled out the pallu of his VIOLET SAREE & then how the entire female team INCLUDING PRIYA pinched his navel and
they made him to lie on a bike and SPUN A TOP on his NAVEL.
HERO AJAY told that he would give her dupatta back on the condition that HEROINE PRIYA allowed him to pinch her navel and also allow a top to be SPUN ON HER NAVEL.
As PRIYA had no option she consented.
HERO AJAY told her to lie on a table present there and he spun a top on her navel. HEROINE PRIYA felt tickling sensation.
HERO AJAY then pinched her navel very hard that she screamed.
HERO AJAY then gave her dupatta back. HERO AJAY also gifted her an ice pack and told her to keep the ice pack on his navel saying it would decrease the PAIN due to his pinching and HERO AJAY was
constantly laughing and teasing.
HEROINE PRIYA took the ICE PACK and placed it on her navel where HERO AJAY had pinched her.
Seeing water tickle from the ice pack on her navel HERO AJAY teased her saying he was getting aroused and went out to have a tea.
HEROINE PRIYA was feeling embarrassed and her anger knew no limits. She was planning for an eventual revenge that HERO AJAY would remember for his entire life. She took the ICE PACK and kept it
inside nearby fridge thinking that after revenge she would give back the ICE PACK to HERO AJAY.
#555
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:07)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
THEN DIRECTOR RANI came and she called both HERO AJAY & HEROINE PRIYA to her room.
DIRECTOR RANI then started telling the script for their 2nd movie.
This movie name was titled as RISE OF AMAZON KINGDOM.
Hearing the title HERO AJAY became tensed thinking it is a woman oriented film and he might have to crossdress again.
His fears became real when DIRECTOR RANI announced he had to crossdress and HEROINE PRIYA was smiling.
HERO AJAY requested the DIRECTOR RANI that he had felt lot humiliated for the 1st movie when he crossdressed.
He told DIRECTOR RANI that all are calling him with a girl name RAJI / AJAYA. He was also getting endorsements and adds only if he dresses in saree.
Hearing this DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that before the 1st film he was an unknown name for this world and today he was popular only because of his female avatar.
DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that GENDER ROLE REVERSAL films are the order of day and many films are coming with similar concept of their 1st movie
DIRECTOR RANI also told HERO AJAY that he would be shown as a ruthless prince and brilliant fighter in the 1st half and he need to crossdress only for the second half of the movie.
DIRECTOR RANI also gave him the option of selecting other boys who would also have to crossdress for the film along with him.
HERO AJAY had no other option so he consented.
He was more afraid that he had teased PRIYA and now he was again going to be humilated by her.
HEROINE PRIYA was just smiling and was planning for her revenge.
#556
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:09)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
Then DIRECTOR RANI announced that cast would be auditioned and selected the next week.
DIRECTOR RANI announced that all the guys who wanted to apply must follow these rules and regulation.
They were :-
1.The participant boy must be 20 to 25 yrs & send five photos
2.The participant must only wear traditional women clothes of 17th century in 4 photos. 5th photo need not be traditional
3.The participant must wear BLOUSE & Lehenga without dupatta in any 2 photos, Saree in 1 and half saree in 1 photo.
The 5th photo dress would be his optional{middi or mini skirt or knee skirt but not longer}
4.The participant must be flaunting his navel in atleast 2 and cleavage in 1 and show his back in remaining1.
The 5th photo flaunting is optional {thighs, or legs or back of his waist} and has to be unique
5.The participant must wear bangle in any two photos, necklace in any two photos and mangtika in any two photos.
6.The participant must wear half sleeved blouse, sleeveless blouse in above photos and it should be revealing his clevage
7.The participant Guy must be ready to model and wear any dress in the film as per requirement.
8.The participant Guy should be ready to flaunt and expose any part of his body in the movie. Not restricted to just navel, clevage and thighs
9. The participant guy must also sign a nudity clause ready for any sexual scene in the movie.
DIRECTOR RANI then announced for the required girl cast that all the girls who wanted to apply must follow these rules and regulation.
They were :-
1.The participant GIRL must be 20 to 25 yrs & send five photos
2.The participant must only wear traditional women clothes of 17th century in 2 photos. In the rest 3 photos she had to dress as a knight in shining armour with sword and give fearless
expression.
3.The participant Girl must be ready to model and wear any dress in the film as per requirement.
4. The participant Girl must be ready to being teased by a boy as well as to tease a boy
5.The participant Girl should be ready to flaunt and expose any part of his body in the movie. Not restricted to just navel,
clevage and thighs
6. The participant GIRL must also sign a nudity clause ready for any sexual scene in the movie.
After this announcement several guys and girls applied for the film as the 1st film of DIRECTOR RANI was a superhit.
Eventhough the 1st movie was crossdressing seeing the fame its actors got no one had any restrictions.
AS this next movie was a periodic film with high budget, The Applicants were ready for any crossdressing and sexual scenes as well.
Seeing so many applications DIRECTOR RANI announced for auditions of the film.
In the auditions GUYS have to dress sexily wear women's clothes lehenga and choli with matching jewellary and makeup
exposing and flaunting their navel and clevage
In the auditions GIRLS have to dress as a knight in shining armor with sword and walk with self esteem.
The auditions began in presence of DIRECTOR RANI, HERO AJAY & HEROINE PRIYA.
HERO AJAY was feeling awkward to see so many guys dressed in different bright coloured lehenga cholis and exposing their waist and flaunting their cleavage.
HEROINE PRIYA was constantly giggling.
Finally they zeroed on 50 guys and 50 girls but they required only 30 guys and 30 girls.
So DIRECTOR RANI announced an extra competition of dance
#557
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:09)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
DIRECTOR RANI said that she will give them a song and they have to prepare a dance on that song and perform on that song in front of her. But to make it a bit difficult she gave girls a boy's song
and boys a girl's song.
DIRECTOR RANI told them boys have to dance on girl's song wearing girl's costume and exactly like girls.
And girl's have to dance on boy's song wearing boy's costume and exactly like boys.
It was easy for girls to dance on male song in jeans and t shirt.
But it was very difficult and embarassing for the boys to dance on girl's song. But they have to do it.
They started the preparations.
They first prepared the dance.
Then they removed their ghagra choli.
Then they wore their costume. It was a belly dancer costume consisting of a bra and belly dancer skirt. The costume was showing a lot of their skin. Their belly and legs were exposed.
Then they redid their makeup. and added eye liner, lipstick and kajal
When they came on the stage all the girls started laughing at them.
They were commenting and whistling on them.
The boys were feeling very shy.
Then they danced on the song.
It was very humiliating moment for them.
Finally the entire cast was selected and the preparations for the next movie began.
#558
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:13)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
START OF THE 2nd MOVIE:- THE RISE OF AMAZONS kingdom:- FIRST PART OF MOVIE:-
The movie begins with a great and wealthy kingdom ruled by KING RAJESH {HERO AJAY`S FATHER}
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} was the eldest son and general and also prince, heir apparent to kingdom.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} was a terrific warrior and sword fighter. He was a ruthless general
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY}used to always be the first to go to battles and he would bring back the crown of his opponents to his father KING RAJESH{HERO AJAY`S FATHER}
KING RAJESH{HERO AJAY`S FATHER} was so happy about his son victories that he forgot the misdeeds of his son AJAY.
PRINCE RAJU {Hero AJAY} had weakness toward girls and he used to rape any girl he liked in his kingdom.
He also used to rape the beautiful girls in the enemy kingdom.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} had a younger BROTHER
One day PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} BROTHER went for a swim in a nearby lake. There he along with his friends saw few village girls bathing in river. The girls had placed eir removed dresses on banks of
river.
In order to tease them they silently went and stole their clothes and went and sat on top of a nearby tree.
When the girls came to know that their clothes were stolen & they were dressed only in bra and panties they were bathing they pleaded with the smiling boys who were lead by PRINCE RAJU`s
BROTHER.
Despite their pleas PRINCE RAJU`s BROTHER insisted on them coming out dressed like that to outside and kiss each of the boy present there.
Only then they would get back their clothes or else they have to go to their home dressed only in the bra and panty they were wearing.
Fearing that, the girls came out of the lake 1 by one only in BRA & PANTIES and had to kiss each and every boy present there.
The girls felt humiliated but had no other option other than to kiss the boys dressed only in BRA & PANTIES.
When they asked PRINE RAJU`S BROTHER FOR THEIR DRESS he told them that just a kiss is not sufficent and they would have to strip completely and perform a naked dance for them.
The girls refused.
PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER then told them that it is a royal order and if they did not comply they would also be raped.
Fearing this the girls totally stripped and danced nudely.
Then they took their dresses from PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER and ran home crying.
They feared that even if they told anyone of the above incident only they would be punished as PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER belonged to royal family and no one would dare to punish him.
But one of the village girl thinking of the humiliation reported about this incident to a nearby secretive AMAZON WOMEN KINGDOM.
This secretive AMAZON WOMEN KINGDOM was all women kingdom ruled by QUEEN PRIYA {HEROINE PRIYA}
In this kingdom only girls were allowed to rule. Men were held as just slaves and had no rights
The kingdom was kept secretive as it did not have enough support and wealth.
Any women can come to this kingdom and report of any incident.
The guys who harmed the women would be captured, punished, crossdressed and turned as slave of that woman.
On hearing about the way the girls were stripped & made to dance QUEEN PRIYA became angry. She wanted to teach all the guys a lesson.
But her commanders told her that if they went to war with RAJU`S KINGDOM they would be outnumbered & die
SO QUEEN PRIYA made a plan to destroy them one by one.
1st on the list is PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER
2nd on the list is PRINCE RAJU
3rd is KING RAJESH.
First they laid a trap for PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER who was in a nearby FORT relaxing which was quite far from his capital.
First QUEEN PRIYA sent a beautiful girl. The girl LURES PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER out of the fort into jungles.
All the amazon warriors then surround and fall on the unsuspecting PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER.The village girls who were stripped by PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER were also present.
They make him strip down his knight`s armor and they tease him nakedly. Then he was given a PINK Blouse and LEHENGA to wear.
Then they applied makeup to him and turned him almost like a full girl. Then he was made to dance in front of all of them in girls dress.
Then the AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA asked him to come forward. He shyly went as he was wearing only PINK BLOUSE & LEHENGA.
AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA STRUCK HIS NAVEL WITH THE FLAT OF HER SWORD which was a meaning that he was now their slave
#559
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:14)
Then the AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA thought of capturing the fort in which RAJU was there as it would serve them a purpose for waging war and building a new kingdom.
They redressed PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER in his KNIGHT DRESS and took him to his fort keeping a hidden knife behind him.
The unsuspecting guards of fort thought that PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER bought few damsels for his display and unsuspectingly opened the fort.
Once inside the fort QUEEN PRIYA killed all the guards and opened the doors for all her warriors.
Within minutes the entire fort was conquered by QUEEN PRIYA.
But QUEEN PRIYA did not want KING RAJESH PRINCE RAJU to know of these events so she made PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER write letter to his father for a secluded and disturbed life for few days.
In those days QUEEN PRIYA enlisted all the women in fort to join them and were dressed as knights and started learning sword fighting.
The men in the fort were made to dress only in BLOUSE & LEHENGA and were mere slaves to everyone there.
The men including PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER was dressed in BLOUSE & LEHENGA and had to dance as well as please the girls present there.
AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA then even declared that their kingdom would now include the fort and jungle surrounding.
She declared herself a sovereign ruler and dared the surrounding forts knights for a 1 on 1 sword fight.
If she lost she would the fort which she had would be given to the captor and she would be turned into a slave and serve her captor for her whole life.
If she won the knight whom she defeated had to give her his fort, then dress like a woman and serve her for entire life.
Many KNIGHTS laughed at this proposal of a girl challenging them and many came forward.
QUEEN PRIYA defeated them easily. Some by force while some by guile.
For all those knights whom by force or guile she subdues QUEEN PRIYA treats them shamefully.
First QUEEN PRIYA despoils them of their armor, and clothes them in women's garments BLOUSE & LEHENGA.
Then with threats she compels them to work to earn their food--to spin, to card, to sew, to wash, to wring.
QUEEN PRIYA gives them nothing to eat but bread and water, or some such feeble food, to disable them from attempting revenge.
They even had to dance and please her sexually.
But if with manly disdain any of them withstand her insolent commands, QUEEN PRIYA causes them to be immediately hanged.
QUEEN PRIYA conquered many surrounding forts and gave the women inside the fort power while men in the fort were feminised and become slaves to their women.
One day this news reached KING RAJESH.
He sent his SON PRINCE RAJU{hero AJAY} with a huge force to attack and conquer all the forts in hands of AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} came with a huge force but was tricked by the jungle.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} lost so many men as he did not knew properly about the jungle while QUEEN PRIYA knew each and every part of jungle and has placed her warriors accordingly.
Fearing he loose more men he sent an emissary to QUEEN PRIYA requesting a 1 on 1 fight.
QUEEN PRIYA accepted and put her condition that if PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} LOST he would have to become a slave and serve her all his life only wearing BLOUSE and LEHENGA.
If she lost she would be his slave and serve him for rest of his life
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} accepted and both were begging for the battle the next day
WITH THIS DIRECTOR RANI SOUNDED CLAP AND ENDED THE FIRST PART OF FILM SHOOT
#560
Alexvyaz(Sunday, 18 December 2016 19:15)
It's nice to read about the Change of the kingdom to the gender role reversal QUEENDOM. ;)
I like your parallel histories in the film and reality.
#561
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:30)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
HERO AJAY {PRINCE RAJU} was happy that till now he had not crossdressed and did a commanding role
HEROINE PRIYA too was happy as she had an equally commanding role but was waiting for the revenge on HERO AJAY as he had teased her by spinning top on her navel and pinching her navel and later
giving an icepack to her on the day before the begining of the film shoot.
HEROINE PRIYA had placed that icepack in a near by fridge and was planning for a revenge that HERO AJAY would never forget in his entire life. She also had planned to give him that same ice pack
after teasing him
SECOND PART OF THE FILM:-
DIRECTOR RANI began the second part of film shoot with the 1 on 1 war sequence between PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} & QUEEN PRIYA {HEROINE PRIYA}
As soon as day of their fight dawned, the warriors, PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} & AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA {HEROINE PRIYA} mindful of the fight before them, duly prepared themselves,
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} DRESSED as beseemed a knight, and
AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA {HEROINE PRIYA} in the way she liked best to dress in a KNIGHT`S SHINING ARMOR
Over that she wore for defence a small coat of mail. Oil her legs were painted buskins, laced with bands of gold; her scimitar was lashed at her thigh in an embroidered belt; and on her shoulder hung
her shield, decked with glittering stones, so that it shone like the full moon.
Thus she came forth, stately and magnificent, from her fort, guarded with many other female warriors who waited
on her to defend her
Then forth from his tent came PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} ,armed from head to foot, and first entered the lists.
The trumpets sounded, and the fight began
#562
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:31)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
The Amazon QUEEN PRIYA flew at PRINCE RAJU frantic with fury, but the more she raged the more resolute he stood. She hewed, she thrust, she lashed, she laid on every side.
At first the PRINCE RAJU bore her blows, and forbore to return them; but presently in his turn he began to attack, and so mightily did his strokes fall on her steel armour, that flakes of flame were
seen flashing all round her as if she had been on fire.
But QUEEN PRIYA with her shield so well warded off the danger of his keen weapon that she safely guarded her life, until at last, with one stroke of his blade, PRINCE RAJU cut away half her shield
and teased her to get ready to become his slave whore.
This so enraged QUEEN PRIYA that she flew at PRINCE RAJU with her sharp scimitar, like a bear on her prey, and wounded him badly in the thigh that he sank and his sword fell from his hand.
As soon as QUEEN PRIYA saw that PRINCE RAJU was standing there beside her with no weapon in his empty hands, she flew at him with fresh cruelty, and though he kept retiring she laid on him huge
redoubled strokes.
The more he meekly entreated her to stay her hand, the more she increased her merciless attack.
PRINCE RAJU could do nothing but shun her angry onslaught, and ward off with his shield alone, as well as he could, the fierceness of her rage.
Finally PRINCE RAJU begged QUEEN PRIYA to stop her strokes, and said that he would yield himself; yet she would not hearken, nor give him time to breathe, till he had delivered to her his shield, and
submitted himself to her mercy in the open field.
Then QUEEN PRIYA struck him with the flat of her sword, in token of true subjection to her power.
Seeing their mighty warrior PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} falling His entire army which was watching their 1 on 1 battle lost hope and started to run.
But QUEEN PRIYA had locked the exit door of fort.
Having no other option they to surrendered.
They were then led to thraldom.
QUEEN PRIYA ordered them to be disarmed of all the knightly ornaments.
In place of these she had them shamefully dressed in woman's clothes
First they wear shaved from top to bottom and then applied a special cream which wouldnot allow hair to grow on any part of the body other than their head hair.
Then each of them were given a bra & panty to wear.
This was followed by PINK BLOUSE & LEHENGA. PRINCE AJAY was given special RED BLOUSE & LEHENGA
The Blouse was lowcut designed to show their clevages. Then their eyes were reshaped as girls, apllied kajal, lipstick applied dangling earrings to all of them and also a wig.
All of them were made wear chains on their belly and many bangles in their hands.
All of them were showing their belly,waist and back completely.
#563
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:33)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
Thus dressed, she brought them from the battlefield into a long, large chamber, decked with memorials of the ruin of many knights whom she had subdued
Entering, they saw around them many brave knights whose names they knew well, who were there bound to obey the Amazon's arrogant law, all spinning and carding in an orderly row.
The captive knights were forced through hunger and want of food to do the work appointed them, for nothing was given them to eat or drink, but what their hands could earn by twisting linen twine,
cooking, sweeping.
Each 1 was given a designated task. thus hard is it to be the slave of a woman! BUT ALL obeyed her without murmuring
QUEEN PRIYA and gave a distaff to FEW OF THEM and told them that they should spin thereon flax and tow.
QUEEN PRIYA appointed few as sweepers, few as cleaners few as dancers.
But QUEEN PRIYA told PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} that she had a special treat for him and she took him to her personal chambers which was a large bedroom which had a huge bed.
Beautiful flowers were tied to the bed as though it was a firstnight bed.
Few of her personal maid were present there.
QUEEN PRIYA then sat on bed & pulled PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} on bed.
Due to sudden pull he lie on the bed on his back.
As he was dressed only in RED BLOUSE & PINK LEHENGA his clevage & navel were in full front view of the QUEEN PRIYA & all her personal maiden who were present in that room.
Felling shy PRINCE closed his eyes AND TRIED TO COVER HIS MAKEP FACE.
First queen PRIYA kissed his pink coated lips
Then QUEEN PRIYA tore out the blouse and lehenga he was wearing. Now he was only in RED COLOURED BRA & PANTY.
Then even his panty was torn.
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was feeling a bit shy as now he was only dressed in red bra in front of QUEEN PRIYA and also her personal maiden
But PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was happy thinking he would be having sex with PRIYA.
But to his surprise he was turned to his back abruptly and he started feeling something on his back. He later felt a sudden JERK on his ASS & to his horror he felt something which was pushed
inside his asshole.
He started sceaming and crying was terrified and tried to move away.
But PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was held firmly by PRIYA that he could not move even an inch.
PRIYA started pushing the object even deeper in PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} ASS eventhough he was screaming and begging PRIYA to leave him.
PRIYA was laughing so were the other women present in that room.
After continuously inserting for 1 hour PRIYA removed the object from PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} ass.
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was crying with pain and he was unable to move. He was still screaming to stop & crying unconsolably.
Then DIRECTOR RANI clapped & announced that their second part of film shoot was complete.
#564
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:34)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
HERO AJAY with great difficulty got up from the bed. He was dressed only his red bra as all others were torn by PRIYA
HERO AJAY was still feeling pain & crying. He even didnot remove his hands from his ass.
He was catching his ass and crying he came to DIRECTOR RANI & shouted on her that he was not informed of this scene. But she replied that HERO AJAY consented to all sexual acts before the start
of the film.
DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that she didnot tell the actual content of the scene to him as if he knew priorly, he would not have given those expressions.
DIRECTOR RANI told him that the scene required of a rape scene and it was difficult to get proper expressions if he knew its content earlier.
DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that the way he screamed and cried was necessary for the film scene.
DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that she had discussed the scene earlier with PRIYA and was happy with the way scene came.
HERO AJAY was still feeling pain and was still holding his ass.
SEEING THIS HEROINE PRIYA was giggling while DIRECTOR RANI told him that he can take rest for 1 week before the beginning of final portion of filmshoot.
HEROINE PRIYA came toward HERO AJAY laughing and gave him the ice pack which he gave her earlier saying that he require it more than her.
HEROINE PRIYA teased him saying that by keeping ice on his ass his pain would decrease and she left smiling thinking her revenge was complete.
HERO AJAY took the ice pack and left.
#565
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:37)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED:-
After 1 week the third part of film shoot started.
When HERO AJAY came to sets he was teased by HEROINE PRIYA about how his pain in ass was to which HERO AJAY felt ashamed and could not even see into her eyes.
DIRECTOR RANI began the final part of film shoot :-
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} after being fucked was by QUEEN PRIYA was made to dress in PINK BLOUSE & PINK LEHENGA. His makeup was redone to being a perfect girl.
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} dejected was then appointed by QUEEN PRIYA as her comfort and he needed to daily please her sexually.
That night he was dressed in RED DESIGNER SUHAGRAAT SAREE.
PRINCE RAJU was fearing he might be fucked by QUEEN PRIYA again.
But he felt happy when he knew that another comfort would also accompany him.
When he went to see other comfort who was also dressed in suhagraat designer saree he went near her.
To his horror he found that it was none other than his brother.
He was looking like his sister and was similarly dressed as him except tat he was wearing a midsleeved blouse and a black saree. Other than that they were looking similar.
Both were shocked on seeing 1 another.
But didnot have the time to explain as they were called by QUEEN PRIYA.
They entered her room with a milk glass each.
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was dressed in red saree while his brother was dressed in black saree.
They both offered milk to QUEEN PRIYA.
QUEEN PRIYA drank the milk and told both the brothers to lie down.
She removed pallu of their saree.
She played with both their navel for sometime.
Then were told to lie on back. She played with their back waist region between blouse and lehenga for sometime.
She them pulled down their LEHENGAA and PANTIES.
Now both were only in their blouses.
She told them to bend at edge of bed and lift ass up.
Both were afraid thinking they would be fucked again but did not dare to say any word.
As usual QUEEN PRIYA TOOK A BIG DILDO AND FIRST APPLIED LUBE TO RAJU`S BROTHER ASS & FUCKED RAJU`S BROTHER.
After fucking RAJU`S BROTHER in different positions for 1 hour she finally left his brother and went near PRINCE RAJU.
#566
AAAAA(Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:43)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
QUEEN PRIYA told RAJU that she had used up all her lube on RAJU`S BROTHER and now he had to suck her dildo or else he would feel even more pain.
PRINCE RAJU tried but he could not as he had never done before.
QUEEN PRIYA told him it was his fault and he would now feel more pain and she started fucking him.
She then immediately lifted PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} up and took to the wall and now HE was standing in front of a wall hugged her tightly still .
She then lift one leg up of me and placed strap-on on his ass.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} begged her to do it soft but she slapped him & inserted it tightly at first only tip went and after some forceful insertions complete 8 inch weapon tore his ass & he
was crying like a girl who lost her virginity to a mass man. PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} was still begging her, but she started stroking where in no time she lifted his second leg also he was on air with
strap-on in his ass and she lifted him and fucking him in the air itself.
Then after some hot fucking she placed on the ground and forcibly take PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} to the bed and made him doggy style and started fucking.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} screamed in pain but was fucked ruthlessly in different positions by PRIYA for 1 hour.
For 1 hour PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} WAS SCREAMING and shouting in pain while all others in the room including heroine PRIYA WERE laughing and enjoying each and every scene.
Finally DIRECTOR RANI ANNOUNCED the shot was complete.
HERO AJAY wearing only his red blouse and catching his ass went and told DIRECTOR RANI of the difficulty in that scene.
DIRECTOR RANI told him that pain would be common and he would get adjusted to it after few days.
He was told to relax in his room for sometime before next shot .
He was to tired to wear anything.
He was already in blouse and just wore a towel and went to his room.
to be continued
#567
Neelima(Sunday, 18 December 2016 22:24)
Hi
#568
Srs(Sunday, 18 December 2016 23:31)
Satya please continue ur story pleaseeee
#569
Meri(Monday, 19 December 2016 00:51)
AAAAA
Please do add some discription about queen priya wear.
#570
Kumaari(Monday, 19 December 2016 01:13)
AAAA simply superb... Keep tat coming... Satya continue ur story too...
#571
satya(Monday, 19 December 2016 10:04)
brother in law to wife 20
we went for sleep vikram slept but i am not getting sleep now i am getting sex mood more and i rub my breast with hands and kept sleep on vikram hugging tightly and we both are nude and sleep and
next day morning i wake up and i gathered all the dresses and kept at one side and te towel and take saree blouse petticoat and inners and kept on bed went for bath and removed towel and mangalsutra
was hanging on myneck and take out and kept on shelf and took bath and tie towel up to breast and came out vikram was wake up he is waiting to me and he took the saree in hand and said take dress and
wear infront of me i want to see my friend satya sorry my sexy wife how she will wear and behave i got shy ididnt get any word from mouth and he said ur my wife yesterday i saw u nude no problem wear
he said i removed the towel and whle taking petticoat my breasts are bouncing i kept one hand to cover breast and take petticoat and wear from top and bra take it to front and hook it and turn the
bra towards back and adjusted the breasts in bra cup later came blouse keep all hooks and saree came last i wear it and he got stunnedme wearing the saree perfectly and tie my pleats below my navel
and my cleavlage was visible and loking sexy to him and later i removed the hair toweland keepthe hair loose he came and ask me r u comfortable with saree he said i said i am okbut not evrytime t is
heavy he said u can change to normaldress said mil said to wear sarree and come and take bath and come i said and went out of room to kitchen due to the sex at night i am not able to walk properly
and mom was there and she saw me and ask wear is mangalsutra i said in desk she scolded me and said u have to wear it every tme u must not remove and went to deskand take and kept n my neck and it is
hangng out od saree mom said mangalsutr must be inside saree it must not be out side and u must not remove toe rings whle u r walkng it will tells u that ur married and having famly and must
keepbindi bangles and earrings coplesory and give coffe to me and said i will go and give to vikram and callng vikram mil came and said u must not call vikram by his name he is ur husband u have to
gve respect to himand vkram went to office and came at evening and aganin night came wear the nighty and go toroom this tme he himself removed his and my dress and hestand and said me to sit and said
to take hs cock and shake it and keep in moutn and swallow sperms he saidi shocked because lke ths did too my wfe also now i have to obey his order and i am doing and my breasts are bouncing and i
taste it and he ask me how it is and went for sleep next day got letter from ffice said to join by next week and i got the marrage certificate and i ask about the office mater to mom and vikram and
they accept it
#572
Alexvyaz(Monday, 19 December 2016 13:53)
I would like to see the scene similar to the beginning of the film about the Amazons kingdom, only with female knights teasing boys in bras and panties. ;)
#573
shila(Monday, 19 December 2016 22:34)
AAAAA niice story
#574
Srs(Monday, 19 December 2016 23:45)
Satya nice keep going
#575
shila(Tuesday, 20 December 2016 00:21)
AAAAA. Please make a third film with hero ajay and heroine priya
Here suggation for you
1) heroine priya father was a don and under world king of india. He wished his legecy another level by his son and his son became the world king and don. A baby girl born by his wife, who is priya .
after priya birth his wife died. First priya father unhappy with baby girl. Later he acept his girl as son.
2) later all aceapt priya as a boy. After 25 years underworld singal handly rule by priya.
3) police want arrest heroine priya but no avidance against her. Polic want a undercover mission lead by ajay, who is a cbi officer.
4)in this mission , first hero ajay propose priya. He said he deeply love with her, and want to marry her. Priya reject it, and said 25 years of her life she live like a men. She did not want to some
body wife.
5) after 1st mission failed. Police convice ajay to go another mission. Where he cross dress and propose priya and want to her wife. After priya convice his father and marry ajay, where priya is
groom and ajay is bride.
6)after marriage ajay live in priyas house as priya wife. He secreatly search proof of priya crime.
7) after 3 month ajay collect manny proof of priya crime and her illegle buissness. But he did not send proof to polile. Becaise he is fall in love with her.
8) priya gang know that ajay a cbi officer . when priya know that , priya want to kill ajay. But she relise she is love with him. And forgive him.
9) ajay told priya that he is no a cbi officer anymore. Now he is wife and queen of priya. Priya said under world know me as king. Verry soon underworld know you as queen. We rule underworld.
10) AAAAA please write it. Here describe priya has handsome hunk wear shirt , trouser, jeans , tuxedo , lathers pant, jacket. Boot, shoe etc. Ajay as sexy item wear stylish saree, mini skrit, gown,
short dress
. also wear high heel, sandal , bangle , payel, bindi, sindoor , mangal sutra, toe ring , shoulder gloves, wedding ring etc.
#576
ash(Tuesday, 20 December 2016 05:19)
great story AAAAA . waiting for next part
i would love to see boys getting their ear pierced ,
and take them to salon , get them waxed and make them get eyebrows done too
#577
satya(Tuesday, 20 December 2016 11:58)
brother in law to wife 21
next day my mom and mil left home they went t thier home from now me and vikram only there and next month vikram daughter wll come and from tomorrow onwards i have to go to office i am thinking how
to go to office and how to face my friends and collegues they dont no about my surgery and my marrage and i am going after the long back and today evening vikram came to home and i said to him and i
said my problems to him vikram i cant wear sarees every time in home ur mom and my mom said to me wear everyday i dont like this its heavy and please allow me to wear jeans and shirts and salwars in
home as well as outside and he said ok satya i can understand and wear what u want but when mom and mil came u have to wear but wear the good lookng dresses not like esposing and tightfits if any one
saw it must be look good and behave like girl hiding breast with dppata or go out by tieing scarf on face u know how we will comment girls while dressning and behaviour keep in the mind u r a girl
now what about ur office u have to go tommorow what u will wear i said will go in saree and tellmy situation to manager and i dont have any office costumes and jeans we will go and buy i said he said
ok ready in 10 mins and i went to my room and remove saree and select salwar and wear and keep bndi and came out it take me 30 mins for ready he said why girls will take so much time to ready u got
answer satya he said because it was late and we came out and he start bike today i wear salwar so i asked will sit on bothsides he said ok after lng time i sit on bothsaides and he is driving and one
time he kept break mybreast has touches his back i shout and drve slowly he said u only say tome to do for my wife so i did now he said i got schock and now i am fellng now i come to know how girls
will feel and we buy some jeans and tops andvikram select one long frock to me and said me to try and it need some one to fix at back s ask salesgirl to come and we went for changng room and i remove
my top and bttom i am in bra and panty and she saw my structure and said ur havng nice structure and ur hubby is happy withu i think and i got shy and wear it and she tighten at back and came out and
i am lookng like a heroin wearing it vkram ask to pack it and we came back to home nextday mrning i wake up and wear saree and ready for going to office and take scooty and went to officemy manager
is lady i took appointment and meet her by name satya no one recognsed me and i get nto her cabin and sad good mornng mam i amsatya and show my srs and marrge certfcate she got schock and ask what
happen and i said to her she sttunned to listen and sak me stand up and she saw me totally she thnk one was a nce guy now a wfe to one person wearing mangalsutra toerings sareeblouse lke traditonal
housewfe and she said want to change all your documents ids and she said i will send to another team wear most ladies will be and u will be comfortable to work i said thanku mam and she said u came
come to office in slwar or pnjabi or western no need to wear saree i sad thank u mam and went for seat to work and by evenng all know about me and came to me and askng and sad we wll go out for
dinner i said no my husband s thier and i am wife i want to go i said they shocked the dramatic changes on me and one frend name sunil me and he was every timecomment on girls abut ther dressing and
seeng breast through one side ofsaree and sayng breast was saggng means she completed sex wth her husband last night and walking styles like that sunil came to me i shocked to see him because we
coment on girls now i am a grrsl he cane see my brestfrm blouse which one side sareecan visible andbras and sexy structure how wll coment me now i am a girls he said how r u now and i said ok andhe
lift later last i went to home and remove saree blouse and bra and nudely i am n bed i am feeling free wthout dress and vkremcame suddenly by opening door of duplcate lock and closed came to bedroom
and see me nude cover my breast with he laugh and he got mod and he fucked me i am enjoyng next day i take bath and come he kept saree on bed said happy birthdya and said to wear saree and wearbre
panty pettcoat and blouse i dnt because of back hook and i take and i ask vikram to keep hooks he kept it and wear saree and we went for temple and after ne month daughter came and she call me mom
and i got happy she is callng mom and i cant be mom or dad realtime and living life happily with vikram and my lovely daughter this is my story
the end
#578
Srs(Tuesday, 20 December 2016 23:42)
Satya please continue another story soon
#579
Ajit(Tuesday, 20 December 2016 23:55)
Satya plz continue brother in law to wife more
#580
satya(Wednesday, 21 December 2016 11:12)
thank u for ur supporting above story is pure imaginaton not a true story. the main part of story was taken from one story plot and according to that i narrated above from my writings
if u want more stories please suggests some taglines according to that i will write
thank u
#581
Priya(Wednesday, 21 December 2016 19:47)
Satya ur storie very super n wonderful. Please like write girl friend make his boyfriend change to her girl friend
#582
ex-q-zit(Thursday, 22 December 2016 15:42)
Hi All,
You can find my latest story 'THE PERFECT FUTURE' on amazon at https://www.amazon.com/dp/B01MY0WKAF
Alternatively you can access it at the amazon site of your country of residence by typing EX-Q-ZIT and in my list of books you can access the above story.
For all those who couldn't afford/access my previous story 'YOU ARE THE WIFE, I AM THE HUSBAND' I shall post it in my blog tomorrow for a few days so that you can read it.
I am currently writing a new story called 'THE ULTIMATE SACRIFICE' where a circumstances make a guy become the wife of his mother-in-law. Shall let you know once its done.
#583
ishu(Friday, 23 December 2016 00:49)
Ex Q zit can't wait pls post ur story
#584
Priya(Friday, 23 December 2016 02:00)
Ex q zit thanks for privilege please post stories soon we are exited...
#585
Jay(Friday, 23 December 2016 03:34)
Ex q zit pl post story
#586
Divya(Friday, 23 December 2016 06:15)
Ex q zit thank u for ur Christmas gift pls posted the story soon..
#587
ash(Friday, 23 December 2016 07:40)
ex-q-zit waiting for story
and really appreciate what you are doing
#588
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 08:46)
This is not my stories but i like this type of stories enjoy.....
There is an all women family in our village. The widow mother &
her three daughters. Labanya is the eldest. She is 26 years old.
Though she is beautiful & has a good figure of 34-26-34, 56 kg
weight & 5’7” height, no one in the village likes her for her
tomboy type nature. Her family is poor & her mother worked as
domestic cook in some of the rich families in our village.
My father expired 3 years ago. He was the librarian in the village
school. After her accidental death my mother got a clerical job in
the same school. I completed my graduation from the nearest town
college & after examination I came to village for 2 months &
waited for the result out. Since I was good in study, I was sure
about good result in graduation & prepared myself for higher
study. I also have a sister who is studying plus two in our
village school. She is 3 years younger to me & 18 years old.
Since my mother & sister have to go school early in the morning,
she does not get time to cook in the morning. So, she hired the
widow for cooking @Rs.1200/- per month. Since the widow is a good
cook we do not have any problem.
Every morning within 9 A.M. my mother & sister goes for school. I
stay in the home & study. One day the widow did not come to cook.
The next day again she was absent. Before leaving for school my
mother asked me to go her house & know the matter.
Her house was in another side of the village. This is the poorest
locality of the village. I went her home. Labanya, the eldest
daughter comes out from the room. She does not recognize me. I
give her my name. Then she recognizes & requests me to come
inside. I go & discover that the widow is ill. She promised me
that if she is unable to go tomorrow then Labanya will go & cook
instead.
#589
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 08:48)
Next day Labanya comes to cook. She is not so good cook & also she
is very slow. So, my mother & sister were compelled to go the
school without eating. Labanya told them that, after completing
cooking she will take the food in Tiffin career & will go to
school before the launch hour.
That happens for the next 6 days. Every day she completed her
cooking after one hour my mother & sister went to school. Then she
packs the food in the big tiffin career & goes to school. On the
7th day after cooking she comes to my room. I was alone in my
home. She begins to start talking. She told me about her
childhood, how her father died without getting good medical
treatment, how she stopped to study after getting good marks in
plus two exams. She got very emotional. I felt pity about her &
wanted to give her a lump some money. That makes her angry. “I do
not need your money. I do not need your pity. After seeing you I
liked you. That leads to love. Like love at first sight. I want to
marry you. I want to be the bahu of this family. Will you marry me
Mridul? I will be a good wife to you.”
I am in a fix. I don’t like her. I never felt like that. Besides,
there is a huge difference in our status. We belong to higher cast
& they belong to lower cast. Also they are no match with us in
money. I have plan for my forthcoming life. I have to complete my
post graduation, then I will do my MBA & then I have to get a good
job in a good MNC.
So, I definitely reject her rudely & advice her not to keep those
things in her mind. That makes her very angry & she said,”you have
done a big mistake by rejecting me. I will make rest of your life
very painful.”I laughed.
#590
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 08:49)
Next day she came to cook wearing a transparent white sari.
Immediately after my mother & sister gone to school she comes to
my room & suddenly hugged me tightly. Then she begins to start
kissing all over my face. Then suddenly she tears her sari &
blouse & bra & makes herself half nude. I also become very excited
with a sudden physical movement by Labanya. Soon she made me nude
& takes my erect penis into her pussy.
Keeping me very tightly in her arms & taking my erect penis in her
pussy she begins to shout for help. I sensed her plan & wanted to
free myself but I did not succeed. She has huge power in her arms.
Immediately after her shouting for help, some people come inside
my room & take her away from me. They begin to bit me. I cried.
But they don’t stop. Then some elders of the village came. They
rescued me. But they order them to tie my hands & legs with rope
tightly.
After half an hour the sarpanch comes. The elders tell them what
happened. He orders to arrange salishi sabha at 4p.m. in the
village community hall. Till then, I will be tied with ropes &
some villagers will guard me.
15 minutes later my mother & sister come. After hearing everything
from the villagers my mother comes to me & slaps. I wanted to tell
her everything but she did not listen.
At 3-45p.m. the villagers took me to the community hall. All the
villagers are present there. Sarpanch takes his seat. Then he asks
my family to sit right side of the front & asks Labnya’s family to
sit left side of the front. Though Labanya’s mother is ill, she is
present here. Labanya is also present. Her full body is cover with
a blanket. She did not comb her long hair, what acting!
First Sarpanch asks Labanya to tell what happened. She told them
that at the first day I offered her money in exchange of physical
intimacy with her. When she refused, every day I irritated her &
finally I raped her today. I Shout & tell the sarpanch that every
bit of her words is damn lie. He does not believe. She had also
some fake witness. They supported her story.My mother & sister are crying. The sarpanch asked them whether
they will accept his decision or he will advice Labanya to go to
police. My mother says that she will accept his decision.
Then sarpanch says, since Mridul raped her, he has to marry her.
“Will you agree to marry her Mridul?”I have no other way. I
accepted. Then he asks Labanya. Labanya says,”ok. I will marry
him. But, I have a condition. The sarpanch surprises.”I don’t
understand your word.”the sarpanch says. ”Sarpanchji, He took my
virginity in a brutal way & if I accept to marry him, he will rape
me rest of my life. That is not punishment. That is a reward to
him. That is what he wanted. So, I want humiliation. I will marry
him as groom & he will be bride & rest of the life he has to spend
as my wife & I will be his husband for the rest of my life. If it
is accepted by his family & him, only then I will be agreeing.
Otherwise I will go to the police.”
I shouted. But none listen to me. The sarpanch discusses the
matter with the elders & after ten minutes he says,” Ok. The
proposal is accepted. There is an auspicious marriage date after 1
month. Till then Mridul’s mother & sister will prepare him for his
marriage. And, in the mean time, if Mridul escapes, the entire
responsibility goes to them. They will be punished for that. The
meeting is over for now.”
#591
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 08:54)
Nxt day...At exactly 9pm the sarpanch takes his seat. He then says,” you
know what type of punishment we gave to Mridul for his behavior
upon Labanya & his family also agreed upon the punishment. But,
what I now come to know that they did not obey my order & tried to
bribe Labanya’s family.”
My mother tries to interrupt, “No, this is not true…”The villagers
shout at her.
Then again the sarpanch says, “This is a bigger crime & so, all of
the family members deserve punishment. After discussing the matter
with the other members of the committee, we have decided that the
fixed marriage between Labanya & Mridul will be held on tomorrow
instead of one month later. There will be two more marriage
tomorrow. Mridul’s mother & sister will be married with the
brothers of Labanya. Labanya’s elder brother Lalan will marry
mridul’s sister & Labanya’s younger brother will marry mridul’s
widow mother. I am asking the village girls to prepare them for
tomorrow’s marriage. The meeting is over for now.”
Hearing the ordeal of the sarpanch my mother fainted. My sister
started crying.I silently think how our fate is going to change.
The village girls took us with them to our home.
In the night we never talked with each other. We only changed our
dress & went to bed.
Next day, in the morning, some of the village girls & married
women came to our home to prepare us for the marriage. Among them,
there were some, who worked as beauticians in a beauty parlor of
nearby town & used to prepare the would-be brides to their marriage.
First they talked with us. My mother and sister were crying. I was
nervous. Mother asked them to request the sarpanch to withdraw the
ordeal. They knew that is not possible. So, they advised my mother
to stay calm. My family was very much known to them & they had
regards for our family & so, they understood somewhere there were
some sorts of conspiracy. But, they were like doll to the
sarpanch. So, they had no courage to talk against the sarpanch’s
ordeal.
We understood, we had no other option but to ready ourselves for
the upcoming marriages in evening. One of the elderly lady told my
mother, “ Sumita ( My mother’s name), you both go from here. We
will prepare both of you after noon. We do not need more than 2
hours to prepare you. But, you know, to prepare Mridul as bride,
we need much more time. So, we should better start with him now.”
#592
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 08:56)
They took me to the other bed room where there were attached bed
room available. Since this is the bed room for my mother & sister,
so, there were a man-size mirror, a dressing table & make up &
dressing kits & other things any lady needs to keep in her bedroom.
First they ask me to strip. I reluctantly striped. Then they
shaved my whole body & messaged my whole body with hair remover
cream & then ask me to take bath. After bath they again message my
whole body with another cream to smoothen my skin. Then another
lady cuts my short hair in feminine style. Then she did some
electrolysis in the upper portion of the upper lip( in the
mustache area). Then she plucked my brew in feminine style. One
lady then handed me the panty & bra to wear. One lady brings an
artificial breast & puts it in my breast with glue.
Then they took me in front of the mirror & dressing table & asked
me to sit in a stool. There were my mother & sister seated also
wearing only bra & panty like me. Seeing me they blushed & I felt
shy. However the ladies begin to dress us in bridal wear. One lady
pierce my left nostril & both the ear lobes. Then they put ear
rings in my ear & put a nose ring with chain in my nose. The other
end of the chain she attaches in the left earring. Then they put
all the other jewelries in my body. Then then give us to wore
other underwear & silk sari.
At last, at 4pm all three of us are prepared in our bridal dress &
ready for marriage.
The marriage is arranged in the community hall of the village. All
the villagers are invited. So when we three reached, there was a
big crowd. The sarpanch himself is in charge of everything & he
also bears the cost of the marriage. Labanya & her two brothers
are already reached there. Her brothers as well as she are ready
in male bridal dress. The purohit asked us to sit beside grooms
respectively. I sat beside Labanya, my sister sat beside her
brother Lalan, my mother sat beside her younger brother Lakhan.
Purohit begins chanting.
After completion of the puja & other duties performed by the
purohit Labanya & her brothers put vermilion on our forehead &
mangalsutra on our neck respectively. We touch our head to their
feet to take their blessings as tradition.
Then the sarpanch orders us to stand in a queue. After we stand
that way, the sarpanch asks the widow cook Sudha to come in front.
When she comes in front, he asks her to sat beside him. The he
says, “Look Sudha, from today this is your full family.You are now
a happy mother of three married sons. Yes, from today the
villagers will consider Labanya a man too. She should deserve the
status of any man gets & should be referred as ‘He’ as she has
married as a groom. Labanya is a male name also. So, she should
not need to change her name. And, from today, Mridul will be named
as ‘Mridula’ & he will get the status of ‘She”.
“Shudha, from today, you need not continue your profession as
cook. You are old, now all of your sons are married, they will
look after your happiness. Besides, your younger two sons are
already working. I will arrange a job for your elder son Labanya.
Your younger daughter-in-law Malati is a clerk in our village high
school, she may continue her job. Your 2nd daughter-in-law
Madhumita is studying in the same school. She also may continue
her schooling.
“You need not worry about your household work. Mridula will be
able to do all your household duties. She only needs your
training. I think, you will be able to train her perfectly. If she
does not obey, I am permitting you to punish her.
“Ohh, another thing to tell you. It is tradition to give dowry to
the groom’s family by the bride’s family. On behalf of bride’s
family, I wish to give their house to you as dowry.
“Now, Malati, come here & sign in this legal paper. Here, it is
written that, from today all your wealth & house will be
transferred in the name of Sudharani Devi. “
My mother silently goes & signs in the paper & comes back.
“ Now, Sudharani Devi, the proud mother of three wonderful sons &
the mother-in-law of three beautiful daughter-in-law, is the owner
of the house of the brides also.
“Okay. The last part of the rituals. The new wives should take
blessings from the elders. We can start from the elder wife.
Mridula, come here; take blessings from me, your mother-in-law &
others.”
#593
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 08:59)
He orders a woman to arrange my veil perfectly. I came in front of
them, bend myself, touch their feet & came back. I know, it is
pure humiliation. I never know the other way out.
“Now, Madhumita, come & do the same thing & you also take blessing
from your Jethani Mridula.”
Madhumita did as order. She touched my feet also. Now it is the
turn of my mother. She is now my youngest sister-in-law. She is
also the younger sister-in-law to Madhumita. So, she takes
blessings from me & also from Madhumita after bending herself &
touching our feet.
“I have also some advices for the new wives.” the sanpanch says.
“ Since,Mridula is the eldest, she will be called as ‘Bhabi’ by
other two daughter-in-laws Malati & Madhumita & two brothers Lalan
& Lakhan. Malati & Lakhan will refer Madhumita as “Bhabi”. Mridula
& Madhumita will call Malati as ‘Bahin’ also.
“Now it is time for celebration. All of you enjoy your dinner. “
After dinner we return to our own home with our respective grooms.
Legally this is not our home now.This home is now belongs to our
mother-in-law & our husbands.
This house is already decorated lightings & there is a big crowd
to welcome us, the new wives. We have three separate bedrooms in
our home and those are decorated for our first nights.
Our mother-in-law handed each of us silk night gowns. We went to
the fourth bedroom & closed the door from inside. Then I start
stripping. My mother & sister hesitated to strip in front of me. I
feel irritation. Everything has been happened already. Our faith
has been sealed. We cannot change anything now. So, why is a lot
of shame, memory of the past & other pride and prejudice?
So, I decide to act as an elder sister-in-law both of them. After
all, I am the eldest in new relation and should behave like that.
I say, “Ohh Malati & Madhu! Why are you feeling same in front of
your elder sister? Now we are only three sisters married to three
brothers of a family. So, just do & act accordingly.”
Malati says, “But is ridiculous you know. I am an elderly lady, a
widow & your mother. How can I spend my rest of the life as
younger sister of both of you & youngest wife of the family?”
Madhu says, “ Mridula Didi is correct Malati. You are now wife of
the youngest brother of our husband, not a widow or our brother.
So, do not feel shame & strip before us. Besides, our humiliation
is not nothing comparing to Mridula didi’s humiliation. At least
we are being female married to male …and she is being a male
married to a female as her wife. So, do not hesitate & strip. In
the near future, we should play our role perfectly so that we can
take revenge in proper time.”
We then stripped & were the pink night gown. I never wore night
gown. Why should I? But when looked into the mirror, I see a
beautiful young woman. Only her makeup has been damaged. The night
gown also perfectly fit me. The gown is sleeveless & backless….and
now I feel the charm of silk in my smooth body; you know they
compelled me to shave completely my body hair. And the feeling of
the artificial Brest! Now I notice they are huge.. At least 36’ no
it 38’’…. the night gown gives a nice cleavage ! ohh no ! “ Madhu,
what is the size of my breast? Have you any idea ? ” “Yes didi. I
think it will be 38’…and look also at your hip…after adding pad on
your hip….it is giving you a nice shape….almost 40”…your husband
will definitely like the figure & adore you tonight…but didi, your
make up is in mess…may I fix” “yes Madhu,” I say.
“Then just go to the attach bath & clean the face with face wash &
come back”
I went to the bath…and before washing my face again I look at the
mirror..yes, definitely it is in mess….eyeliner has been damaged,
the lipstick is not In proper shape & the vermilion is in
everywhere in my forehead…I cleaned my face.
#594
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 09:02)
Twenty minutes later I reappeared, my artificial hair wrapped in a
towel 'turban style' and a large white towel wrapped modestly
around my chest and over my thighs. My skin glowed a little from
using the body gel and I smelled divine from a lovely lavender
scented shower gel. Madhumita had used the time to fetch her night
gown for herself whom she had laid out on the spare bed. Girlie
time involved being as feminine as possible so this meant lovely
panty, bra and night gowns or dresses.
"There, you look better for that" she stated matter of fact as I
entered the bedroom. "So let's have a look at you then."
I giggled girlishly as I pulled open the large towel to reveal my
naked body still glistening from the hot shower.
"Wow Didi!" she said, "you are really making progress. God! Just
look at those tits. They are almost as big as mine," she teased.
"Yes, they are and you know it. But, you know, I am not accustomed
with those. In fact they are getting quite hard to handle at the
time of household work."
"I bet they are!" she laughed.
I covered myself up again and watched as Milati began taking off
her clothes stripping down to her bra and panties, showing
absolutely no embarrassment. I assume, in her eyes, we are now
just three wives together and that is how she is preparing herself.
"What do you want to do first?" Madhumita asked as she discarded
her clothes.
"Make up. I always feel much better when I have my war paint on!"
"Make up it is. Why not go for a sultry night look, you know just
a little more dramatic."
"Night it is! Our first night indeed!" I agreed as I fished out my
make up case and sat in front of a large vanity mirror. Madhumita
came and sat next to me on a separate stool and as she began with
my foundation, Malati started on her own make over too. Malati
watched me though, as Madhumita began to smooth on the light
foundation she had chosen for me.
"Not too much my sweet sister Malati. You have lovely skin and you
don't want to look as if someone has recently plastered you."
Madhumita warns Milati.
"I know, I know" Milati replied as she smoothed out the foundation
with a damp cosmetic sponge.
It took us twenty minutes or so to finish our makeup. Madhumita
chose lovely shades of gold and brown for my eye color and
accentuated this with lashings of black eye liner and mascara. She
used blues for herself and purples to draw even more attention to
her astonishing black eyes. Milati preferred the same color &
shade of Madhumita used as both of them are almost same in look.
Then, just as Madhumita had taught me to do, I outlined my lips
with a dark red lip pencil before applying a couple of coats of
lipstick. Finally, I used blusher and bronzers to shape and
contour my features, ultimately banishing any trace of masculinity
left in my face. Madhumita just beamed at me when she looked at
the finished result.
#595
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 09:04)
"You, my dear didi, are getting really good with makeup." she said
complimenting me once again.
"Thanks, Madhu, but it is only because you have taught me so well.
However I never look as good as you do know." I said as I admired
my sister who looked utterly gorgeous.
"Yes you will" she replied somewhat mysteriously "just you wait
and see.”
Then Milati said to Madhumati “Now would you Madhu like me to do
your hair for you?"
She watched as Milati’s eyes lit up with pleasure. But she showed
her false anger to Milati. “Milati, you are now my sister. Please
call me didi and respect me accordingly.” Milati looked at her
obediently & soon corrected herself, “Yes didi. I forgot. May I
prepare your hair?”
“Yes my little sister.”
Really I enjoyed the situation. How we are trying to transition
ourselves with the demand of the situation! I know the whole thing
is humiliating. But, we must enjoy ourselves as the prisoners of
guilty verdicts enjoyed the last night before their death.
The changes, the new relations among us, my cross dressing
marriage & my mother’s marriage with the youngest brother….and
above all we penniless….I know, each of us is burning within
ourselves…we want revenge…..but, do not know, how & when.
Seeing myself in the mirror…..I am again feeling humiliation..I
wish to weep….no, I should not weep, it will damage my make
up……seeing my mother in that night gown, I again feel
humiliation…ohh, what will I do !
Only Madhu is the exception, She is in the right dress….I wanted
to see her married someday, I wanted to see her someday with a
gorgeous night gown…now, and she is !....but, why am I not happy
today ?
Madhu came to me with a small nose ring.” You have forgotten to
put it in your nose’
“Ohh, yes.” I removed the marriage nose ring attached with chain
but did not put a new one.
I know, for the first few months I will forget many things…..and
for that I will be punished from my husband Labanya & my
mother-in-law…will they bit me ?
#596
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 09:07)
And someone knocked the door from outside….this must be our
mother-in-law.
“ Bahurania ! What are you doing inside for a long time ? Have not
you completed your makeup? It is already quarter past twelve ,
when will you go to sleep ? Your husbands are already angry. Come
on. Open the door quickly. Or, you will be punished.
I opened the door. Our mother-in-law is waiting for us. She says,”
why are you so late to complete your make up? We were anxious.
However take those glasses full of milk & go to your respective
rooms. Your grooms are waiting for you inside the room.”
I silently took a glass & went to my room. Labanya is waiting.
Seeing me she comes towards the door & receives me.”Ohh Mridula!
You look gorgeous!” I blushed in shame. I look at her. She also
looks very handsome. There is no sign of femnity in her body &
dress. She wore Kurta & Pajama, the groom generally wear in the
night of wedding. Her long hair was cut in short & in masculine shape.
She hugged me tightly. Then she kissed me. Then she begins to
start kissing all over my face. Then she unbuttoned my night gown.
It falls in the floor. I am now in my panty & bra. I also become
very excited with a sudden physical movement by Labanya. My penis
becomes erect. She noticed that. “Why those bulge in your
clitoris? You should understand that the clitoris of any wife
should not be erected by the hugging of her husband. Strip now.” I
denied. She slaps me. I cried in pain. She does not stop &
continue slapping until I stripped & become completely nude. She
noticed my erect pennies & suddenly slaps on it. I cried loudly in
pain. She smiles. “You know Mridul, when you rejected me to marry,
that day I took oath that someday I will marry you by hook &
crook. And see, today I am successful to keep my word. And not
only that, I married to you as husband…I compelled your mother to
marry my youngest brother & your sister to marry my other brother.
You the rich people! All of the members of the family always
showed us pity….always hated us….treated us like beggars…I wanted
to take revenge….I wanted all of you submit to us…and I did it in
reality.”
I silently listen to her words...maybe she is partly right. May be
she is right. We always treated them as the subordinate class. And
she is taking the revenge. Now I am nude before her. My penis
again becomes limp. She strips herself. What is that in her lower
abdomen? I noticed it is a dildo strapped on her waist. And it is
huge. She orders me to kneel down. “Now Mridula, my sweet wife,
please worship your God obediently. I know what I have to do.
There is no way to escape. I kneeled myself down. I take the dildo
in my both hand, kiss it & then begins to suck. After 10 minutes
she becomes satisfied. Then she orders me to pose in dog style. I
did. She comes behind me, takes the pennies in her hand &
forcefully enters it into my virgin ass hole.
I cried in pain. She does not listen. She again pushed it. The
dildo completely enters into my ass hole. As if someone has
entered a knife in my ass. I become senseless.
*
#597
Rashmi Patel(Friday, 23 December 2016 09:09)
Next day when I wake up, it is already dawn. Labanya is in deep
sleep. She went to sleep keeping her naked body on top of me. I
somehow managed to keep her aside. And me, completely devastated &
tired by her physical & mental torture, begin to cry. I read
somewhere, a man never cries. I really never cried after my
childhood. But, now I am crying. Now I am crying thinking of my
future. I wanted to pursue MBA.I wanted to be a manager in a big
company & then look after my mother…..and what happened suddenly!
I do not know when I stopped crying & went to sleep again. I wake
up hearing the sound of the door bell. I look at the wall clock.
It is already 6-30 AM. The morning sunlight has entered into the
room through the east side window. I observe the room. The room is
very much dirty. Our cloths spread away all over the room here and
there. And both of we are naked. Labanya is still sleeping.
I first gather all the cloths & keep them in a chair. Then I go to
the attached bath. I feel fresh after bathing in cold water. Then
I open the Almirah. There was a new pink colored salwar camiz set.
I choose it to wear. And I choose a set of white colored underwear.
After covering me in salwar camiz I stand in front of the mirror.
There is no sign of manliness. And fact is that I am really
looking a newlywed bride who has lost her virginity last night. I
first comb my short hair. Then put vermilion on the partition of
my front hair. My right hand automatically touched my mangalsutra.
It is okay in my neck. I put shakha & pala (bangles) in my both
hands, toe rings in my both legs & a diamond nose stud in my nose.
Then I wear dupatta over the camiz & place it on my head as veil.
Now I am really looking a new house wife.
I open the door & went to the kitchen. My mother-in-law was there.
She was preparing tea. She looks at me angrily. “What have you
wore Mridula? Did not you know that the elder wife of the family
never wear anything other than sari with complete jeweler? Now go
to your room & change yourself in sari & do not forget to wear
every jewelry from toe to head & learn to cover your head with
veil always. And do it in hurry. You have lot of household things
to do. From today you will do every household work.
I again went to my room. Change myself in sari. Cover my head with
the part of the sari. Then I wear toe rings, payels & other jewelries.
Then again I went to the kithen. My mother-in-law looks at me
again. “You looks better. Now, sweep the floor first, then do
rangoli & then do puja. After completion of those you will prepare
tea & breakfast for all of us.
When I completed all the tasks, all of the other member of the
family have already gathered in the dining room. I served each of
them tea & breakfast. My mother-in-law taste the tea & says ‘the
taste is ok. But, but you have to learn more.” Then she looks
Madhumita. She sat besides her husband. She was in her sari. “Look
Madhu. You are the 2nd wife of this family. You should not wear
Sari within the house. Besides, you are still studying. So, you
should always wear salwar camiz. So, go to your room & change
yourself in salwar camiz.” Madhu obediently went to her room to
change her cloth.”Now, look Malati. You are the youngest wife of
the family. You also should not wear sari. You will look older
than your husband in your sari. So, you should wear modern dresses
like mini skirt, midi or Bermuda….go to Madu’s room, ask her a
mini skirt & sleeveless tight shirt, she does not need them at
all, you and she are same build, so, those will perfectly fit you.”
When they come back wearing the new dress, I completely taken
aback….even I first did not recognize Malati…she really looks
fabulous in mini skirt & a tight sleeveless shirt….I also noticed
the spark in the eyes of her husband. He will surely fuck her
again in his first chance.
What
#598
mansi(Friday, 23 December 2016 11:15)
Pls ex-q-zit post ur story
Pls pls
#599
ex-q-zit(Friday, 23 December 2016 16:10)
Hi all,
sorry for not posting the story today. had to takey wifey to dinner. Shall post it tomorrow.
Regards
ex-q-zit
#600
Jay(Saturday, 24 December 2016 00:20)
Ex q zit still waiting forur story pl post.....
#601
Srs(Saturday, 24 December 2016 00:31)
Rashmi Patel I have read already this story but anyways u have edited lil bit, I wish those fake hair, breast and vagina are real
#602
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:09)
Story: Sisters
#1
Part 1: Beginning
Sisters
Bachpan se hi main ladkion ke beech main raha or bada hua. Ours was a modern but joint family. My dad and his brother were business partners and were staying together with their families. Me along
with my 2 real and 2 cousin sisters were living together in one big room ( rather a hall) with two full size beds and a single bed on the first floor. I was the only guy in that room until I turned
16. The room was just too girly, right from the colours on the wall, bedsheets, rugs, and dressing table with lots makeup items. Girly things were all around in the room. They had beautiful bangles,
ear rings, jewellery and so many accessories. There clothes were cute and pretty. There make up boxes and perfumes were intoxicating. There bras, panties and cute lacy night dresses were the things I
always dreamt of wearing. I do not remember when I started dreaming about wearing there panties with sanitary pads. This world of girls was wonderful. My sisters used to talk a lot about girly things
like fashion, make up and boys. Whenever I got chance I touched and felt their clothes. And it was not long I realised, I wanted to be girl. But after a few more years I realised, I was a girl. To be
a girl I did not need the boobs, vagina and long hairs but the feeling of being a girl which I already had.
I was slim and fair, my way of talking was girly. The way I walked was very feminine, thanks to My sisters I grew up with. I remember the first time I tried a bra and panty, it felt so good that I
knew would be wearing it for the rest of my life.
By the time I reached 12th, one of my sisters got married, and a few months later we moved out to new bigger house. Now My sister and I had a separate room. I was 17 then, and knew I was a girl from
deep within. Now we were only 4 of us in the house, I go more chances to put on my sisters clothes and undergarments. I loved my small, dress up sessions which hardly lasted 30 mins. Till now I did
not get a chance to do make and go all the way. But I was waiting for the opportunity, and started preparing for it. I ordered a wig which I did not have, rest pretty much everything I used was my
sisters. My sister is 2 years older than me and almost same built as of me. Now to prepare for, all the way dress up as a girl, I wanted to learn to apply makeup. I started you tube videos I learnt
easily as I had seen my sister doing it many times. I even started practicing with one thing at a time. Slowly I was even becoming expert in applying makeup.
#603
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:12)
Part 1: Beginning
Sisters
#2
I got my chance which when our parents told me that they will be travelling to other town for three days to attend a marriage function. This means Me and my sister were alone in the house for next
three days from Thursday to Sunday. Sat day was a holiday as it was a 2nd sat day. My only chance was Thursday, if I could somehow skip school and enjoy the day alone dressing up. I planned to
pretend sick and skip the school. Wed day evening our parents left and my sister prepared dinner early and we were free by 8pm. I was excited and planning for tomorrow, with many things running
through my mind. My mind was continuously making mix match of the clothes I will wear tomorrow right from lingerie to make up.
I just could not wait for tomorrow, then I saw my sister going to terrace with her phone. I knew she talks to her BF for long time in her room, but parents were not there so she went to terrace.
Today she had freedom to do things. I thought why not to take something from her dirty clothes and spend night in it. Tonight I had no fear of my mom coming to my room and she will be going to her
college tomorrow morning she will not be checking her dirty clothes until tomorrow evening. So I was convinced and went to her room. Right outside her bathroom there was laundry basket filled with
her dirty clothes; I put my hands and started looking for something. I was shivering with fear of getting caught, and then this purple net and lace bra came into my hands. I took it out and as I was
about to turn to move out of her room, I saw and took her regular cotton white panty with light pink flowers on it. It had some fresh stains on it, and I got to know that my sister was on periods.
This thought of my sister being on periods made me to find a pad for myself too. I went and opened her wardrobe, and on the lowest shelf I saw an open pack of Stayfree. I carefully took one pad and
kept it in my pocket. I stuffed everything in my pocket and ran into my room. I was so sacred and my heart was pounding. But was happy with what I had done. I kept things in my bag and turned off the
light of my room and started waiting for my sister to come down and sleep.
#604
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:16)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#3
. After 25 mins my sister came down and went to her room. And 10 mins after that she called my name.
Aneesha: Anshul
I thought, she found out about missing bra and panty. I skipped a heartbeat and was scared to death . I was thinking what to say if she asks. I thought I should apologize and beg to her for , not to
tell mom and dad. I knew simply denying about it was not possible. Because she removed the panty took bath and then went to talk on phone and there is no way her bra and panty can go missing.
Aneesha: Anshul...Kahaan hai.
Myself: yes di.
Aneesha: Can you check if the gate has been locked, I am going to sleep.
I took a deep breath and said "ok". My sister went to her room and I went and locked the gate and came to hall and said loudly
Myself: Its locked and also only one light is "on"
Aneesha: ok good night.
I was happy and went to my room, locked it from inside and spread the curtains. I removed my clothes. I have no body hairs and very little shave. I shaved in the evening so this was not an issue. I
turend off the lights and turned on my blue night lamp. I Inserted pad in the panty and wore it. And then hooked the bra behind and adjusted my bra straps like girls. I was so excited that my hard-on
was pressing against my Stayfree pad. I came to my bed and lied on the bed. I took my pillow and hugged it like girls and closed my eyes. The soft feeling of pad in between my legs was making me mad.
The bra straps and bra cups holding my small boobs were making my hard-on stretch my panty. My girly feelings were at its peak, I was dreaming like a girl for my tomorrow’s dresses and accessories. I
was in heaven but still wanted more. I thought of walking like a girl into our hall till the kitchen to have a glass of water. I got off my bed and slipped into my t-shirt and shorts and started
walking towards the kitchen. While walking I kept my legs closed and kept one foot ahead of other and stretched my arms outwards like girls. I was about to open the fridge when I heard my sisters
room unlock. OMG I thought, what is going to happen if she notices the small bulge of bra cups in front of my t-shirt. There was no way to move out of kitchen without facing her so I decided to stay
there and behave normally. I took the bottle and moved towards kitchen shelf. I was trying to hide my hard-on as well. My sister walked till kitchen and stood behind me.
Aneesha: Anshul ek glass mujhe bhi dena. Mujhe neend nahi aa rahi.
Myself: Haan mujhe bhi.
I poured the water in the glass and gave it to my sister without turning.
Aneesha: Achha kal shaam bhahar khaane chalenge, mom nahi hai lets party.
Myself: Haan sure, bahut din hum logon ne masti nahi ki.
I was so afraid that my fingers were shaking. I started opening random shelfs of kitchen I was hoping that she will go back to her room.
Aneesha: Tujhe bhookh lagi hai kya ? Maggi khaani hai?
Myself: Haan Maggi banane ki soch raha hun. (I said this to have some more time in the kitchen)
Aneesha: I know maggi kahan padi hai, hath main nikalti hun.
And she kept her hand on my shoulder and gave a gentle push to move me.
I froze with fear that she might feel the bra straps, but moved and gave her way, she opened the other shelf and took out the maggi and gave me.
Myself: Thanks di...
I was still hoping she would move back to her room. I heard her walking and felt relived. I took the lighter to turn the gas to cook Maggi but because I was still breathing heavily and shaking with
fear, it slipped out of my hand, out of my nervousness I turned around and bent to pick it up. She was barely 5 steps out of kitchen and hearing the sound turned back. I and my sister were face to
face while I was bent picking up the lighter. I stood up and quickly turned towards the shelf and started to light the gas (I was pleading god, please save me).
I heard my sister moving towards me. She grabbed my hands and pulled me to face her, I saw her tensed face while shivering with fear.
#605
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:23)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#4
Aneesha: Anshul kya pahna hai tune ?
Myself: kuch bhi nahi.
She held my t-shirts shoulder and pulled it further, revealing my bra strap.
Aneesha: To ye kya hai ?
I didn’t say anything in fact I had nothing to say.
Now Aneesha had hint of smile on her face.
Aneesha: bol na , kuch to bol ?
Myself: Please mom dad ko mat bolna (And started crying)
My girly feelings and getting caught by my sister was making me cry.
Aneesha: Achha nahi bolungi ye bata, kyun pahni hai ?Accha chal mere room main wahan baith ke baat karte hain.
She held my hand and pushed me towards her room. After going to her room, she sat on one side of bed and I sat on other side.
Aneesha: Ab bata kyun pahni hai ?
Myself: Mujhe accha lagta hai.
Aneesha: Accha kahan se khareedi?
Myself: Aapki hai.
Annesha: OMG tune meri bra pahni hai ? kon si waali (she pulled my t-shirt up ). Ohh ye to maine aaj hi pahni the, tune kab li mere room se ? Ye meri fav bra hai pagal.
Myself: Jab aap phone karne chath pe gaye the.
Aneesha: Accha kyun phani hai ?theek se bata ..
Myself: Mujhe bra pahanna accha lagta hai.
Aneeshs: hmmmm or kya kya pahana accha lagta hai?
Myself: Sab kuch
Aneeshs: Sab kuch ? matlab!!!
Myself: Ladkion ka sabkuch ?
Aneeshs: OMG tu theek to hai na ?
I started crying aging and said,” didi mujhe ladkion jaisa banne ka man karta hai.”
Aneesha:Oh accha ro mat...
Myself:Mujhe ladki banana hai.
Aneesha: Achha ro mat (she came near me)and hugged me. Koi baat nahi main tujhe ladki banaungi.
I stopped crying.
Aneesha: Rona band kar or ja muh dho ke aa.
I went to her bath room and washed my face and was getting normal.
Myself: Di please kisi ko mat bolna
Aneesha: Nahi bolungi na. Achha or kya kya pahnaaccha lagta hai? Pahle bhi pahna hai ?
Myself:haan kaafi bar. Salwar kameez and wo pahle waale ghar main badi didi ke kuch kapde.
Aneesha: Ohh sirf bra or panty bhi pahni hai ?
Myself: Panty bhi pahni hai.
Aneesha: (She had big smile) OMG .... tu to bahut aage nikla gya .Kab pahni thee ?
Myself: Abhi bhi pahni hai.
Aneesha: Kya!!!! Seriously, show me ..dikha… She pulled me out of bed and said " remove your t-shirt and shorts.
I removed my t-shirt and shorts and was standing there in Bra and panty.
Aneesha: Ohh cheeeee, ohh ye to maine aaj panhi thee. Main periods pe hun pagal.Or ye kya!!! Tune pad bhi pahna hai, Anshul tu to pakki ladki ban gai hai.
Myself: Hearing it my hard-on gave a push to my panty.
Aneesha notiched it and smiled and said.
Aneesha: Ohh so ye sun ke tujhe maza bhi aata hai ? Ab samjhi tujhe ye wala maza aata hai!
Myself: Nahi aisa kuch nahi hai.
#606
Sey Girl(Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:25)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#5
Aneesha: Accha jooth mat bol, i can see. I was trying hard to control my hardon.
Myself: Nahi sach main.
Aneesha: Accha to " Anshu ", tere bhi periods chal rahe hain? kon sa din hai.
Hearing this my hard on took 2 big jumps.
Aneesha:See (Big smile and clapped her hand) so u really enjoy it.
I didn’t say thing , she had seen it and proved.
Aneesha: Accha ab kya Karen.
Myself: Didi mujhe pura tayar karo na.
Aneesha: Saree pahane gi meri onion pink ? with macthing churiyan, Accha bata na anshu churiyan pahenegi na.
Myself: Haan didi mujhe churiya pahanani hain, mujhe churiya pahnao na.
I was enjoying it so much that I started dripping cum in my panties. And Aneesha was enjoying the tease.
Aneesha: Ohh tujhe churiya pahane ka itna shauk hai?
Myself: Haan
Aneesha: Acch main churiyan pahnaugi tujhe. Or kal teri pasand ki chowk waali Dukan se khareed ke , wahin pe dukan waale bhaiiya se pahanwaaungi.. Kush ..?
main sharma ke laal ho gya(gai),ye soch ke ek aadmi mere hathon main chudiyan pahnayega ....
Aneesha: Ohh Anshu to sharma gai.
Aneesha seemed to enjoy it.
Aneesha: Accha ear rings kaise pasand hai tujhe ?
Myself: loops and danglers for western dress and Jumkhas with sarees.
Aneesha: Pakki expert hai tu.Phir to Kal tere kaan bhi chidwayenge.
Aneesha: Accha kal mainecure and pedicure bhi karaenge sath main. Achha ab tere liye alag se saman lana padega, mera use nahi kargi tu ok?
Myself: ok
Aneesha: Ab to kal tere liye shopping karni hi padegi. Chalegi na ?
Myself: Theek hai didi and tried to control my smile to hide my happiness
Aneesha: Accha chal aaj raat ko or kya man hai tera pahanane ka ?
Myself: Mom ki new maroon satin nighty
Aneesha: Wow !!! choice to achhi hai teri mujhe bhi bahut pasand hai ruk main leke aati hun.
She went and brought it from mom’s room. She gave it to me, and I put it on. I was looking into her big dressing table Mirror. She smiled and said " ruk ek do kami hain.". She went to her wardrobe
and brought her silicon bra insert. She inserted 2 inserts in each cup of the bra and adjusted it. This gave me a real jiggling B cup breasts.
Aneesha: bahut sexy lag rahi hai tu.
I smiled again and my face turned red further.
Aneesha: Ab baal bade kar le.
Myself: Mere paas wig hai.
Aneesha: To leke aa na jaldi, and ye bata or kya kya khareeds hai tune ?
Myself: Bas wig hai, baaki to sab aapke paas hai hi na.
Aneesha: Baaki kya ?
Myself: Make up and accessories.
Aneesha: Badtmeez mera make up bhi use kiya tune ?
Myself: Nahi pichle ghar main neha (cousin) ka use kiya tha. Wo lakem use karti the na, mujhe bhi lakme hi pasand hai.
#607
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:26)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#6
Aneesha: oooooh brand consious. Anshu to sach main puri ladki hai.
I just smiled.
Aneesha: Jaa wig leke aa.
Myself: Di aapki heels pahan ke jaaun.
Aneesha: Haan ab kya kasar hain pahan lo. Badi didi ke shaadi se pahle unse roz ladaai hoti thee cheezen share karne ko leke, now I miss her too much. Ab bhagwan ne mujhe choti bahan de di. to share
my things
Myself: Haan main bhi badi didi ko miss karti hun.
Aneesha:"karti hun" ... sahi hai anshu ab tu form main aa rahi hai. Unka kya kya try kiya tune jo mis kar raha hai ?
I smiled and said
Myself: her handbag and jeans top.
She giggled, I took her heels and put them on and went to my room. I took out my wig and put it on,it was straight black wig. After setting and clipping it on to my head, I started walking back to my
room. I was enjoying my walk in nighty. The bouncing boobs and my hairs rubbing my back and my shoulders were making me go crazy. I slowly entered her room.
Aneesha: Wow anhsul tu bilkul bhi pahchana nahi jaa rha. And bahut practice ki hai tune heels main.
Myself: Haan,i smiled and said.
I saw my reflection in the mirror, she was right. Even I could not say that the girl in the mirror was not a girl.
Aneesha: Tu too badi didi se bhi sexy lag rahi hai, abhi tak she was the most sexy of us all. I will tell her.
Myself: Nahi didi ,please kisi ko mat bolna please . Wo gussa hongi and mummy ko bol diya to.
Aneesha: Arre nahi bolungi. Accha haan tujhe chudiya pahanne ka shauk hai na. Aaa tujhe churiya pahnaun.
She took some Maroon designer bangels. or mujhe 9-9 churiyan dono hathon main
Pahna di.
Aneesha: make up bhi karna hoga ?
I did not say anything and just smiled
Aneesha: haan haan jayda sharma mat.
She took one lip gloss, eye liner and macarra and applied on me. Then she applied some compact
Myself: Didi mascarra ka ek or coat lagao na.
Aneesha:Ohh to Anshu make up main bhi expert hai(She said while applying another coat).
Myself: Haan did purane gahr main ek hi room main the na sab, wahi dekh dekh ke.
Aneesha: Wahin dekh dehk ke tu bhi ladki ban gya. Accha kahre ho na and turn around.
I stood up from make-up table, and I saw myself. There was this sexy girl with straight hairs, long black eye lashes and glossy lips were making me look like a sexy girl.
My juicy glossed lips, lingerie, the perfect purple baby doll nighty (Loose fit as it was my mom’s), designer bangles and killer high heels had sent me to a state of trance. Aneesha took out her
phone and clicked my pics.
#608
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:27)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#7
Aneesha: I can’t tell u, how sexy u look. Accha tu itni sexy ban ke kya karigi ?
Myself: Kuch nahi
Aneesha: BF hai tera ?
I did not expect this question and got embarrassed.
And did not say anything.
Aneesha: Arre ladkiya BF ke liye hi to sajti sawarti hain. And mere Jay ko tu Jaanti hi hai.
Myself: Nahi didi kabhi socha nahi.
Aneesha: Jayada shreef banne ki zarurat nahi hai bata. Bata na.
Aneesha: Accha bata apni colony main kon tujhe kon hot lagta hai?
Myself: RickyHot hai.
Aneesha: oooo to ye ha tera pyar.
Mani sharam se main laal hui jaa rahi thee.
Myself: Nahi did aisa kuch nahi hai
Aneesha: Main set karun tujhe ? Ye jawaani BF ke bina nahi sambhalegi.
Myself: Pata nahi didi, jaise app bolo.
Aneesha: Means ur ready , chal main set karti hun tujhe.
Then aneesha's phone started ringing, it was her BF.
Annesha: Tu jaa ab so ja kal baat karenge.
Myslef: Ok didi bye.
I came to my room, but i was so horny. Also Aneesha's question about BF was make me go restless. I have never thought about BF but now my mind was only thinking about my BF holding me tight in his
arms kissing me and caressing my breasts. I was so horny that I wanted him to rub my panty. I was not able to control my urges. I was feeling so girly that I did not want to think about my small cock
and jerkoff. S o just imagined that I have a vagina under my panty covered by Stayfree. I was dripping pre cum in my pad. Unable to control my urges, I went back to my sisters room and knocked it. I
heard Aneesha say "5 min main call karna, anshul aaya hai". She came till door and asked "kya hua".I told her did kuch ho rha hai. Jab aapko hota hai to kya karti ho? Mujhe bhi wo sab ladikion ki
tarah karna hai
Aneesh: Main to BF se baat karti hun.
Myself: But mera to nahi hai , accha jab apala BF nahi tha tab kya karti thee ?
Aneesha: Pagal main teri bahan hun!!!!
Myself: Haan ab to hum sisters hain na, aap mujhe bata sakti ho.
Aneesha: okay aaja, and she took me inside the room.
She went and braught one skin coloured dildo.
Aneesha: (Smiling) ye le and now we share a secret. Go to your room, slowly think of your BF and rub your crotch and suck on it or take it as per your choice.
She was smiling to tease me. I took it from her; it felt so life like and came to my room. I lied on my bed and started rubbing my crotch from over nighty. Slowly I pulled my nighty up and started
rubbing it over panty. Then I took the dildo and sucked on it, I got so much pleasure out of it that I started moaning. My saliva was all over the dildo and I kept on sucking it, at the same time I
was rubbing my crotch from above my panty. After some time I came in my panties, my cumm was absorbed by my pad. I slept in the wet cum filled panties.
To be continue
Part 2: Day 1 (Next Day)
Plot: Full dress up in saree while sister is away at the college
Part 3: Day 1 (Next Day Evening)
Plot: Sisters invites her BF over, he flirts with me all day
Part 4: Day 2 ( Sister plans a loyalty test on her BF using me)
#609
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:29)
@ Raghav: Awesome story, waiting for your next story.
#610
reinderr(Saturday, 24 December 2016 06:56)
Tulasi waiting for your story
#611
vasantha(Saturday, 24 December 2016 08:14)
sexy girl pls dont write hindi language tanslate to english language i am request you pls in write pure english language pls pls
#612
ex-q-zit(Saturday, 24 December 2016 08:15)
I have now posted it on my blog. It will be there only got a week. Please read it while is there. I will not be reposting it after that.
I might write a sequel n the future making Sathwika Salman's second wife. Till then hope you guys like this.
Please leave your comments in my blog.
#613
mansicd(Saturday, 24 December 2016)
Thank u ex-q-zit for posting ur story on ur blog
I really love ur stories
#614
shila(Saturday, 24 December 2016 20:03)
Amazing story ex q zit
We want it sequal
#615
Poornima(Sunday, 25 December 2016 01:07)
@sexy girl : Beautiful story but please don't involve any other boys in the story. Let it be just between sisters and bring incest into story between sister and brother but not sister's bf please
Poornima are u the admin and writer for girlycrossdressing story blog...
#618
Srs(Sunday, 25 December 2016 21:38)
Please write forced crossdressing stories
#619
Poornima(Monday, 26 December 2016 15:32)
@priya: no
#620
priya(Tuesday, 27 December 2016 09:37)
Srs please continue your story..
I am eagerly waiting for your next part...
#621
GRAMMAR(Thursday, 29 December 2016 15:58)
srs please write your story
#622
rani(Friday, 30 December 2016 06:22)
Sexygirl..wow zabarst story maza agya plz plz cont ur story
#623
Sexy Girl(Friday, 30 December 2016 10:29)
Thank you Rani.
#624
rani(Friday, 30 December 2016 11:50)
Jaldi likho na agay bohat amazing start hai
#625
rani(Friday, 30 December 2016 11:52)
Sexygirl..jaldi likho sis mujh se wait nai ho rha ....
#626
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 31 December 2016 01:15)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#8
Next day, I skipped college and my sister went to college. Before leaving she warned me to stay away from her makeup items and party wear clothing. I said, did please at least let me use lipstick and
eye makeup and she agreed. By the time she left for college it was 9.30 A.M and I was still in bed wearing the satin nighty, bra and panty with pad in it. Finally I decided to get out of my bed; I
went to bathroom and peed like girls sitting down. The entire feel, my walk and behavior was so girly, that I again got hard-on.
I wanted to dress up in saree, but without full make-up and jewelry it won’t be fun so I gave it a skip and instead decided to spend the day like my sister in her casual clothes. I took bath and
changed in my sisters black shorts and Red lycra top on same bra and panty. I walked around in the house in sexy heels. I was living a dream of being a girl and loved it. I remained in the same
clothes and did some cleaning of the house and prepared the lunch.
At 2:30 PM my sister came from college. She saw me and complemented me that I was looking cute in top and shorts. I told her that I did some cleaning and prepared lunch.
Aneesha: Mujhe pata hota tujhe Anshu bana ke bahut fayda hai.
Aneesha was wearing deep neck top, Jeans and flip flops.
Aneesha: Achha sun mujhe kuch batana hai tujhe.
Anshu: Kya didi.
Aneesha: Aaj college main jay ne mere phone pe teri pic dekh li. Main use bola ke tu meri cousin hai Anshu and weekend ke liye aai hai. Tujhe kal raat dekh ke koi bol hi nahi sakta ke tu ladki nahi
hai.
I just smiled and was also worried what it Jay comes to know and this secret spreads.
Aneesha: Sun jis tarh se Jay tere pic dekh raha tha, mujhe ek idea aaya, Main usepe loyalti test karna chahati hun, tujhe use kar ke.
She had this smile on her face.
Anshu: Nahi didi , please use maalum chal jaayega . Sab ko bata diya usne to Didi please aap jo bologe main karungi , lekin ye nahi.
Aneesha: Main hun na kuch nahi hoga. Main use aaj shaam ko bulaya hai and tujhe use seduce karna hai.
Seduce karne ke naam se mujhe kuch hone laga, and felt so weak in my knees. i just nodded to what my sister said.
Aneesha: Use seduce karne ke liye tujhe bahut sexy banana padega. Kya phanaun tujhe ..hmmmm
Anshu: Aapki wo skyblue silk saree ya fir heavy wala fishnet lahaga
Aneesha: hey hey hey ,tere shaadi nahi karani!!! Use seduce karna hai. Tujhe kuch sluty look dena padega, like mere college ki bitch natasha.
#627
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 31 December 2016 01:16)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#9
Natasha was a sexy girl of our colony and fuck fantasy of all the guys. Her dressing style screams fuck me. Thought of dressing up like her was a distant dream to me.
Anshu: Didi wo kaise hoga.
Aneesha: Wo mujh pe chor de.Waxing aati hai ?
Anshu: Apko karte dekha hai,kabhi try nahi ki.
Aneesha: Waxing kar full body. Tab tak fresh hoke lunch kar leti hun. Kuch problem hui to mujhe bata dena.
After one hour I was done with full body waxing and then took hot water bath and shaved my face.My body had become smooth and soft. Aneesha had kept padded underwired bra and her lace panty in my
room. Wow it was so sexy to put on that sexy panty and bra.I put on that and wrapped towel around my self and went to her room.
Aneesha: Chal baith yahan. And she took out our nail polish and applied on my feet and hands.
I was so happy to be able to do what she was doing to me after all these years watch them do.
Anshu: Sis ye padded bra kyun, wo panty se matching lace waali bra do na.
Aneesha: Nahi lace nahi, Padeed will give you some size and also , Jay ka galti se hath lag gya to usko pata nahi chalna chaiye. Or sabse jaroori silicon inserts bhi apni jagah pe rahe chahiye.
Anshu: Didi leking silicon to real feel type hi hota hai na.
Aneesha: Haan but size bhi hona chaiye na.
Using padded bra and silicon inserts gave me good B cup size.
Ansheea: Wow now u look sexy.
Then what i saw was unimaginable, She took out her sexy very short skirt and black top.
Top was a club wear type, and it had written on it "Sexy Babe"
Aneesha: Put them on
I put them on and adjusted my wig. She told me to sit, to do makeup on me. Aneesha started her work with moisturizer, and then applied foundation and finished with matte compact. She applied think
red colored lipstick and then brown lip liner. She used her liner, kajal and two coats of mascara. She used glittered light purple eye shadow. Then she applied a hint of blush.
Anshu: Did can I see myself ?
She said yes and gave me a clip on hoops. I waked to the mirror and could not believe myself, there was no way the reflection was a boy !!!! DIdi it just awesome and sexy.
Aneesha: while smiling said, yes you just look fucking sexy.
Then she gave me handbag and gave me compact and tissues to keep in it in case I need
to refresh it. I asked her to allow me to keep Lipstick and lip gloss and she allowed. After putting on high heels I was looking like a highway slut with so bold make up and sexy legs. My skirt was
too short and would reveal my panties, if I bent even a little. Then me and my sister chatted about guys make up and fashion. She said how much she likes to tease guys in school buy touching them and
holding there hands and behaving as if it’s naturally. Also how she seduced Jay by bending and her giving him a look of her cleavage and in sexy lace bra every time she got an opportunity. I was
happy that my sister was sharing things with me and treating me as her sister.
my blog http://forcedfemine.blogspot.in/
friends share your ideas and stories to (r401238@gmail.com)
#630
Chndni(Sunday, 01 January 2017 01:27)
Can anyone suggest Good chatroom?
#631
sissy(Sunday, 01 January 2017 04:15)
Sexygirl superb story
#632
SRS(Sunday, 01 January 2017 23:04)
Please write new stories
#633
raji(Monday, 02 January 2017)
Sexygirl
I love ur story cont plz
#634
mansi(Monday, 02 January 2017 04:49)
Hi all i wrote my first story on rajibalan hindi comment 2016-17
Title
How i become wife/ wife
#635
Radha(Monday, 02 January 2017 11:49)
Hey Mansi, can you translate it into English?
#636
preethi(Monday, 02 January 2017 12:02)
plz callme my number 7472001297 my name preethi
#637
mansi(Monday, 02 January 2017 22:44)
@radha
Sorry i m weak in english so i write in hindi
Will try someday and post here
#638
Priya(Tuesday, 03 January 2017 01:52)
Sissy father and Sissy son
"Dad, come on., You've got to do this right", Rajesh whispered to his dad. He was standing in the bathtub facing away from his father. He bent slightly at his waist and spread his ass cheeks widely.
Shailesh swallowed hard and kneeled behind his son. He took the razor in his hands and started to shave his son's bottom. He was aware and was careful not to cut while shaving the part in the center.
Rajesh cringed as he looked at his reflection in the mirror inside the bathroom. He could see his dad kneeling behind his back and shaving his back. He felt so embarrassed and pathetic given that he
did the same act just few minutes back.
"All done son", your cute tushy is as smooth and soft as a baby", Shailesh spoke cheerfully and turned his son to face him.
"Get out of the shower both of you", they heard a sharp voice from outside just as they finished their daily shave. Suddenly the curtain in the
bathroom was drawn and two stern looking women were staring at the father and the son duo.
"I knew you enjoyed your sissy time but you have got to get it done fast", the younger woman, Sneha and Rajesh's wife said frowning. Her mother-in-law Rashmi, Rajesh's mom stood with her hands on her
hips. "Ok, wash up now and you don't have to be modest before us. We have heard you in the speakers downstairs. We want to see how how two sissies take bath together", Rashmi said pointing at the mic
fixed in the bathroom ceiling.
Rajesh and his father knew that they had no choice but to demean themselves before their respective spouses. "Oh Chameli, I love your smooth body. Its so girly", Shailesh said while rubbing soap all
over his son's body. Rajesh was very uncomfortable by the touch of another sissified man, even more as the sissified man was his own father. He shivered but held his dad closely, "Oh Sheila, your
touch feels so good on my skin"
"Thats hilarious. So you two picked out Sheila and Chameli as your names. I always knew you were little sissy girl inside" Rashmi said. The two emasculated men were not sissies from the beginning.
They were forced, brainwashed and beaten to being pathetic sissies. Their wives had external help too. Rohit Verma, Sneha's lover and his father Karan Verma had helped the women change their husband
into submissive sissies. The company under Shailesh's name was written in Rashmi's name and the Rajesh's stakes were moved to his wife's name.
The two naked men stepped out of the shower and stood with their heads lowered. The room was a small storeroom with a single bed in the middle. It had two full length mirrors side by side with a big
vanity filled with girly cosmetics. The in-built wardrobe was open and it had a plethora of sarees, chaniya cholis, and salwars. The room was painted in pink everywhere and resembled nothing like a
room for two grown men.
Shailesh and Rajesh dried their bodies with a single fluffy pink towel. "Ok sissies, You have exactly one hour to get ready and come down for the party. Its your coming out party so you don't want to
be late unless you want a good spanking", Sneha said smiling at her husband and father-in-law. "Don't forget to be vocal while getting ready sweetie. Remember the mic and the video camera", Rashmi
reminded the sissies and both the ladies giggled as they left the naked men on their own.
#639
Priya(Tuesday, 03 January 2017 01:52)
Part 2:
"Son, .,, I mean Chameli, lets start getting ready. I don't want to get spanked by your wife again. She is a very tough lady. I am so glad you are under protection", so saying Shailesh held his son's
hand and made him sit before the mirror.
"Sheila, what do you think we should get ready as? If we aren't girly enough, then mistress warned us that they would not release us this month"
"I have an idea. Lets dress up as prostitute. We will dress up in pink saree and low cut blouse and stick lots and lots of makeup on them like our names. That should impress our mistresses, don't you
think"
"Oh yes... it is going to be soooo girly and cuteee", Rajesh clapped his hands like a little girl and blew a kiss to his dad. "Mistress, Thank you for helping us become the best sissies ever", he
said making a curtsy gesture while looking at the video camera fixed at one of the corners of the ceiling.
"Ooooh..lets sit on the bed and apply nail polish", Shailesh smiled at the video camera too. He knew the rules. Whoever acts less girly will get spanked and should sleep on the floor.
The men were still naked. They got in a 69 position such that the other's feet is accessible. They chose bright pink and applied glittery nail polish. They painted each others hand nails following
that.
Shailesh made his son sit before the mirror and started applying makeup to him. He applied heavy coats of eyeliner, lipstick and mascara, put sindoor and big nosering, Shailesh also put big dangling
earrings and bindi. There was glitter allover the eyes. Rajesh returned the favour to his dad. They both then wore bangles, and anklets.
Shailesh then held his son's face in his hands, "You look so beautuful Chameli. We failed as men but we will definitely win as sissies". They both pouted their lips like they were about to kiss and
made fake kisses on each others cheeks without touching. Their hands stiff with their palms facing down. They popped out their butts slightly while doing that most girly act. They knew that they were
demeaning themselves beyond return but the rules are rules and they needed release desperately.
Shailesh then pulled a pink skimpy thong up his son's silky legs and adjusted the front so that it snugly cupped his son's tiny pink
chastity. Rajesh pulled up a similar pink thong up his dad's legs too. Both their asses were completely on display. They wore a similar thin and skimpy
blouse. He tapped the glitter filled hands on his son's trapped clittie which made Rajesh let out a sudden moan. He knew his dad got a brownie point for touching his penis so he thought for a while
giggled like an excited girl," Ooooh Sheila., that felt tingly", He waved his limp wrist and giggled like a total fag. Soon both of them were standing in pink glittery thong andblouse. They were
sparkling with all the shining material.
Then came the hair. "Chameli, lets tie our hair in a pony tail with a pink ribbon."
"No dad.. err. sorry Sheila, lets tie the hair into two flowing pigtails with two pink ribbons.
The father and the son, both had hair till their shoulder so they knew that tying either a ponytail or pigtails will make them look ridiculous
anyway. They flipped and decided to tie their hair in two pigtails. Their hair was long enough to get a pigtail and the flowing pink
ribbon below their ears.
The two men opened the drawer and wore their mangalsutra. "Isn't is good that our mistresses still allow us to be their spouse. They are so considerate", Shailesh said holding his son's hand.
Rajesh suddenly clicked his finger as if he got an idea. "Why dont we dress up as bar dancers. Here let me fetch something"
He came back carrying two transperent cholis. They wore the cholis. They were long till their ankles and flew when they moved.
Shailesh They took a deep breath. It was almost one hour. They opened the door of their small room and came out seductively. The living room was empty and nobody was seen anywhere.
They looked at each other puzzled and saw a note on the sofa table. It read " SORRY SISSIES BUT WE ARE OUT ON A DATE WITH OUR LOVERS. YOUR OFFICIAL PARTY HAS BEEN POSTPONED TO NEXT WEEKEND. FINISH
THE LEFTOVER DINNER AND COZY UP AND SLEEP. DON'T WAIT UP"
Story from petticoated.com
I was brought up by my mother following very strict rules at home and my hair dressing rules which is chiseled in stone and has not changed a bit even after my marriage.
My married life has been even stricter, considering that now I have 3 elderly females, who supervise every aspect of my life, now that I very well understand my place in this household and well
trained to behave like a maid and follow the command instinctively to the word, my wife has started humiliating me in public, she likes to show off who is in charge, when we go out I have to carry a
shopping bag and walk 3 steps behind her, I should never cross her if she stops I should stop.
Once when we were on our usual shopping trip I was not concentrating on her and started looking at some other things around, so when my wife stopped to see some articles in one shop I just kept
walking and crossed her and went forward, I returned immediately as I knew about it but the mistake was already done and she doesn't believe in leniency, she slapped my face hard leaving her finger
impression on my cheek, and she made me to stand there in public, holding my pigtail braids pulled tightly upwards for 30 minutes, it was so humiliating because few passerbys also asked me why I am
standing here pulling my braids, I had to tell them it is a punishment for not following my wife's orders perfectly.
At home sometimes my wife uses my long thick braid as a leash to guide me around the house as required, I am responsible for keeping our house spotless and my performance is inspected randomly.
During inspection she holds my pigtail as a leash and pulls me across to each and every room and checks that all the work be completed according to her specified standards else I am in for a severe
spanking, I dread these inspection times. If any inefficiency is found I am ordered to prepare myself for the punishment i.e., I have to remove my clothes completely except my shoes and socks and
stand at the center of our living room and wait for my wife to arrive. This doesn't change even if any visitors are present I have to stand at attention position displaying my private parts for
everybody to see.
I have to stand at attention position during lengthy interrogation, where every now and then she hits my private part with a cane, finally she announces my punishment and immediately I should bend
over a wooden chair and receive my caning. The number of strokes depend upon my mistakes though usually it would be between 15 to 20.
My mother also stays nearby on the same road hardly 150 meters from my wife's house, I should also attend and obey her, but now a days I am called only for some special duties or to receive
punishment, because she has two maids who would attend her and my sister hand and foot, they are my Father and my sister's husband. I am fortunate that I have been trained on domestic duties since a
young age, because I can see that my sister's husband is not used to doing house work prior to their marriage and now he endures sever punishments for not doing his chores properly, both my sister
and my mother punish him for any misdeeds.
That's all for now I am getting late to go home, if you are interested in my story I will write again telling you other incidences of my strict and disciplined lifestyle.
Regards
Gunddukogile
#641
ARUN(Tuesday, 03 January 2017 21:23)
@ex q zit
HI, Just read "the perfect future" on kindle and enjoyed it and now eagarly waiting for your next story. plz post it soon.
#642
Priya(Wednesday, 04 January 2017 00:07)
A day in the life of chastity maid:
My day begins early in the morning, long before my Mistress wakes up. I start off my daily routine with shaving, showering and applying full make-up with sindoor, mangalsutra and bangles.
I then put on a bra, panties and nylons under saree. My uniform is completed with 4 inch patent leather pumps.
It’s now time for me to wake my Mistress up without any touching. As a sissy maid, I’ve learned my place.
I proceed to serve her coffee and fruit for breakfast and then scurry off to run her shower. While Mistress is in the bathroom getting ready for work,
I lay out her clothes for the day, as per instructions from the night before.
I now run off to my bathroom, as fast as my high heels will allow me, so I can get ready to go to work. Yes, I’m still legally married to Mistress and although I’m no longer needed to play the part
of her husband, I’m still required to pay it.
The income from my job serves to keep my Mistress’s dresser drawer full of fine lingerie and her shoe closet packed with expensive high heels.
Then there are the costs associated with her hairdresser, manicurist, health club membership, massage therapist and tennis lessons to take care of.
I am also required to put away a good portion of my pay check in a vacation fund…..for Mistress and her boyfriend. Once, every so often, they take me along to serve
as their personal maid, dressed as such. I’m not quite passable, so it’s an overall humiliating experience for me.
Once my make-up is off, I jump into the shower and attempt to clean around and under my CB-6000. It hasn’t been removed for three straight months now as Mistress’s new boyfriend isn’t yet completely
sold on my role as a chastity maid and feels a bit insecure with another ‘man’ living under the same roof as his girlfriend.
As a good chastity sissy maid should, I always wear a pair of panties, a garter belt and nylon stockings and mangalsutra under my ‘male’ work clothes.
Once I get to work, I can expect a daily text from my Mistress telling me to run an errand or two during my lunch hour. I usually forgo eating any lunch as I’m expected to keep my girlish figure in
tip-top shape.
I rush home after work to re-apply my make-up, get dressed, don a saree and began preparing dinner. Mistress’s boyfriend is coming over for the evening and everything must be perfect. If it isn’t,
she has a penchant for the riding crop and has proven that she’s not shy about using it on me when necessary.
My Mistress arrives home and I must greet her at the door, kneel down and kiss the tips of the toes of her high heels. I then take her coat and purse and brings
her water and tea before continuing with dinner preparations.
When her boyfriend arrives a bit later, I must greet him at the door, kneel and kiss his shoes. I absolutely HATE doing this this but Mistress claims that
this submissive behavior of her chastity maid produces a warm glow inside of her pussy.
Her boyfriend and her sip wine and make-out on the couch while I work on dinner. After eating, she calls me in to inform me that while she’s feeling exhausted and not up to any lovemaking for the
evening, her lover is quite horny and will require some ‘feminine attention’.
I am instructed to clear the table, clean up the kitchen and then head upstairs to get all dolled up. I am told to freshen my make-up, apply extra long false eyelashes,extra jewellery then put on my
sexiest lingerie and highest heels with chaniya choli. I am admonished not to keep them waiting long.
My Mistress always like to have her boyfriends set the proper tone early on in their relationship in order to show her chastity maid who the real man of the house is. Tonight is that night.
She has me swallow a muscle relaxant, gives her boyfriend a Viagra, sits back with a glass of wine, and watches the mayhem begin. It’s quite an erotic and
enjoyable show for her as I’m forced to show off my improving dancing skills with 2 hours of mujra and then eventually I get the shit thoroughly fucked out of me.
Her and her lover then head off to the bedroom while her chastity maid is left to clean up the mess.
The following morning I lightly knock on her bedroom door, fully dressed and made-up of course, to take their breakfast-in-bed order. The delicious eggs
and tea meal that I serve has rendered my Mistress quite horny and her boyfriend also seems aroused.
I am instructed to bring in a pad and pen so I can write down my chores for the day. As I prepare to receive my orders, she sits up and straddles her lover, guiding his now raging hard-on into her
wet pussy.
#643
Priya(Wednesday, 04 January 2017 00:08)
Part 2:
She then erotically gives me my instructions; vacuum the entire house, hand-wash her bras and panties, detail the car as they will be going out tonight, press her boyfriend’s shirt and shine his
shoes.
Mistress begins to softly moan as she is telling me to wake them both at noon after making love followed by a short nap. She can now no longer talk so just snaps her fingers as a signal for me to
leave so I can begin my work…. while she plays.
I wake them up on cue and my mistress is horny again. Her boyfriend doesn’t seem to be responding in like fashion so her chastity maid (me) is instructed to ‘fluff’
him up to size. I’m am then forced to stand there and watch them make love as a painful reminder of my inability to please a woman with my shrunken and caged-up dick.
The sight of her chastised, feminized and frustrated maid standing there, sexually denied, while she is free to make love with abandon is just too much for
her. It soon sends her tumbling over the edge, screaming in delight. Her lover follows suit shortly.
I used to be required to clean my Mistress’s my pussy after intercourse but I’ve since been cut off from all sexual intimacy and contact. I am made to perform ‘clean-up duty’ on her boyfriend
however. I have learned to do this without flinching as the memory of one of her brutal ‘cock caning’ sessions is forever entrenched in my mind.
After showering, she has her boyfriend go out and inspect the car to make sure it is detailed to her satisfaction. When he returns, she calls her chastity maid in
as she has a little surprise for me.
It seems that her lover is having concerns over the security of my chastity. She has assured him that it is very secure and I’m rarely let out except for quarterly supervised orgasms of the most
humiliating variety.
Never-the-less, he has insisted that I get a male chastity piercing for my dick as added security. She wholeheartedly agrees and instructs me to make an appointment that afternoon to get a PA
piercing for the end of my dick. I’m told to request a young female technician to perform the piercing. She and her boyfriend
plan to accompany me and watch the entire procedure.
She then informs me that, from this point forward, her lover will be taking sole possession of the key to my chastity cage. I immediately turn pale and begin to visibly shake but I eventually calm
down enough to re-assess my predicament.
I will now be performing sissy maid duties for two. I am instructed to go fetch my lipstick. When I return I am told to fall to my knees, crawl over to where her boyfriend is sitting and re-do my
lips.
She then removes the key to my chastity cage from around her neck, hands it to
her lover and orders me to unzip his pants and gently pull his growing dick out. “He now has the key to your cage”,
she says to me. “If you want to cum again anytime soon, kiss it softly and sweetly, as if it’s the most important thing in the world to you.”
And I do.
I’m a perfect example that a sissy maid can only be at her best when her dick is kept locked up. Being kept in a constant state of arousal helps me to focus my attention where it should be, on my
chores.
#644
SRS(Wednesday, 04 January 2017 00:54)
Priya continue
#645
Priya(Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:51)
Two Weeks with Mother-in-Law
It was 6:00 in the morning as Rama put my suitcase in the trunk, along with hers and Tushar's. I was ordered to sit in the back seat for the long ride to her mother's house in Bangaluru.
My travelling outfit was a red embroidered saree with heavy blouse and petticoat, lots of make-up including bright red lips, blue eye shadow, black eyeliner and long false lashes, sindoor,
mangalsutra, big rend bindi, 24 bangles in hand, nosering, long dangling earrings, with 5-inch heels completed my sissy outfit. My hair had been freshly permed and colored the night before. Now it
was a bright copper-red, short and tightly curled in a style reminiscent of the 1950s.
I sat nervously in the plush leather back seat of Tushar's Mercedes as my wife and her big, muscular black lover got in and we drove away.
Rama and Tushar were going on a two-week Caribbean cruise, while I was to stay with my mother-in-law and be her live-in sissy-maid. Rama had me locked in my chastity device for the past four months,
and her mother Priya planned on seeing to it that I would remain in my state of total sexual frustration until they got back.
I thought I would die when we drove through the toll booths. Tushar made sure to give the toll collector a large bill to change, giving the woman plenty of time to see me sitting in the back seat in
my humiliating outfit.
As we drove along in the frosty darkness of this mid-winter morning, Rama and Tushar discussed the several tropical islands they would visit. Rama snuggled up close to him, giggling and reminding him
how romantic their two weeks together would be.
All the while I thought of what was in store for me: two long weeks at the mercy of my bitchy, castrating mother-in-law, who never liked me to begin with, and who had been waiting a long, long time
to get me in just such a situation.
I was sure every driver that passed alongside us was took a double-take at the fluffy, ultra-feminine "girl" in the back seat of our car. Rama reminded me to sit up straight and not pay any mind to
the other cars. My face was hot and flushed the entire ride.
After what seemed an eternity, we pulled up to Priya's spacious suburban home. As if by magic, the door opened for us, and we pulled inside.
"Okay, Sissy!" Rama announced. "Out you go!"
She got out and took my big pink suitcase out of the trunk, as I nervously got out of the car. Tushar just looked at me and laughed. I could see my breath in the chilly garage as Rama brought my
suitcase inside, instructing me to wait until she returned.
"You know what, little sissy white boy?" Tushar smirked. "I am going to fuck the shit out of your wife the whole time we're gone. She wants me to give her a baby sooo bad .. the baby you never would,
or could, give her with that soft little sissy-dick of yours."
I could only stand there and take it. I felt completely worthless as a man standing there in my ridiculous outfit, as this stud laughed out loud at me.
"Just think, sissy-boy. While you're here being bossed around by your ugly bitch mother-in-law, I'm gonna be pumping my hot load in your wife's pussy .. over and over and over. Two solid weeks of
fucking and impregnating YOUR wife! Shit man, I am gonna have a GOOD time!"
Just then Rama returned and stood in front of me. Looking me straight in the eye, she gave her final instructions before departing.
"Remember everything I told you, Sissy. You are to obey mother as you obey me. Do everything she tells you, and don't give her a hard time or you know what will happen. I expect to get a good report
from her when I return."
"Yes Mistress," I blinked.
She gave me one last look up and down, and could barely keep from bursting out in laughter and the sight of her pathetic sissy husband. Then she got back in the car with Tushar. As they backed out of
the garage, Tushar looked at me and mouthed the words, "I'm gonna FUCK your WIFE." I could see Rama give him a big wet kiss just before they sped off to the airport.
I pressed the button to close the door, and nervously entered my mother-in-law's house - feeling every bit like the little sissy I knew I was. I closed the door behind me, and stood alone in the
mirrored foyer, awaiting the woman who be my cruel, stern Mistress for the next two weeks: my mother-in-law!
"Well! What have we here?"
I spun around on my heel to see my mother-in-law enter the room. I felt myself swell pathetically in my super-tight gaff.
#646
Priya(Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:52)
Part 2:
Priya was 60 years old, but had a body any woman that age would die for. She stood almost six feet tall in heels, and had a voluptuous figure that still turned men's heads. Certainly not a pretty
woman, she more than made up for it with her beautiful body, lots of impeccably applied makeup, and her classic and well-practiced femininity.
I couldn't believe what she was wearing.
She wore a tight white athletic top, which made her large breasts look super-soft and lovely. A bright red pleated tennis skirt barely covered whatever she wore underneath, and her white
kidskin-leather over-the-knee boots had "sensible" 4-inch heels.
Her full head of long platinum-white hair was fluffed and teased into a huge halo around her head. Priya had the most beautiful skin I have ever seen on a 60-year-old woman. Firm and darkly tanned,
she looked magnificent -- and frighteningly sexy.
"Stand at attention!" she barked.
I obeyed instantly, feeling completely embarrassed dressed the way I was in her presence. She approached me, her high-heels clicking on the marble floor. Slowly she circled me, closely examining me
from head to foot. I trembled, my face hot from blushing profusely.
"Come with me, Sissy!" she ordered.
I nervously followed her into the living room, my heart pounding. I briefly took a glimpse of Priya's sexy hips wiggling sensuously in her red-hot tennis skirt.
"Stand at attention in the middle of the room, Sissy!"
"Yes, Ma'am," I answered timidly.
"It's MOTHER, stupid!! You are to refer to me at all times as Mother! Do you understand??" she shrieked.
"Yes, Mother."
As I once again stood at attention in the center of Priya's beautifully appointed living room, she sat in a large green velvet chair and crossed her gorgeous legs. For a few moments there was
silence. I was actually sweating.
"Turn for me, Sissy. Model your little sissy saree for me. And don't stop until you're told."
"Yes, Mother."
Slowly I rotated, like the models on TV that Rama had me closely study and emulate. Priya laughed out loud.
"What a SISSY!" she declared in a loud voice. "Look at yourself! Don't you feel just a little FOOLISH dressed like that here with your mother-in-law?"
I did feel completely foolish, and told her so. But that only made her laugh harder as she re-crossed her legs.
"I knew from Day One that you were no man. Certainly not man enough for MY daughter! I really am very happy she found Tushar. Now THERE's a REAL MAN!"
I never felt so humiliated in my life. To think that I would be spending the next two weeks with this witch was unbearable.
"Walk, Sissy. Walk back and forth for me. I want to see how you manage in those high heels!"
Priya settled back with a cigarette as I obeyed. Mincing daintily in my heels, I clicked loudly on the hardwood floor.
"Eyes straight ahead!" I was commanded. "Hands on hips! Do NOT stop until I tell you to!"
I felt like a complete sissy marching back and forth for her in high-heels, my face flushed bright red. Priya laughed long and loud.
"Alright, little sissy-boy. Let's get a few things straight. For the next two weeks, I will not require you to wear your little cage thing. But you will remain as you are now .. tightly tucked away.
I assure you ... there will be no erect penises and CERTAINLY no disgusting male orgasms in MY house! Do you understand?"
"Yes Mother," I meekly replied as I continued my deportment.
"At night, you will be bound so those roving hands of yours can't get into any mischief! Also, we will also be utilizing a little demerit system. You will do whatever I tell you to do .. instantly
and cheerfully. Any hesitancy in obeying will result in one demerit. If you get five demerits over the next two weeks, I will inform Rama, and she will keep you locked in chastity for a three-month
extension. Each demerit over five will add another month. Do you understand?"
"Yes, Mother... "
"In addition, every day you will be given one full dosage of Viagra-Plus. I'm very interested to see what kind of effect that will have on your behavior!"
"Yes, Mother! Thank you Mother!"
Again Priya laughed hysterically, fully enjoying the total power and control she now had over her emasculated son-in-law. I wondered what humiliating orders I would be given during my stay with
her.
"Stop walking, Sissy!" I was commanded. "Now come with me. Time to put you to work!"
#647
Priya(Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:53)
Priya led the way up the stairs. As I followed behind, I looked up and got a glimpse of my mother-in-law's firm, sexy bottom, encased in shiny white satin tennis panties.
"You better not be looking up my skirt, Sissy!"
I quickly averted my eyes. "No, Mother, I'm not."
She led me into her amazing bedroom .. richly appointed and totally feminine. I stood there as she opened a dresser drawer and dumped an enormous pile of her panties onto the bed.
"Bring my panties into the bathroom, Sissy!"
"Yes, Mother."
I scooped up the enormous pile of luscious, obviously very expensive undergarments and followed her into her bathroom. There I saw a huge pile of clip-on hangers on the table. I dropped the mountain
of panties next to the sink as instructed.
"There is the sink. There is the Woolite. You are to hand wash every single pair of panties and hang them on the hangers over the tub. You will not stop until every last panty is thoroughly washed
and hung up to dry. Do I make myself clear?"
"Yes, Mother!" I answered instantly.
"SMILE WHEN YOU ANSWER ME SISSY!!" she screamed. "That will be ONE .. DEMERIT!"
I grinned like a humiliated child. "Yes, Mother! Thank you, Mother!"
Priya reached into the medicine cabinet and brought out a vial of big blue pills. She took one out and ordered me to take it. I swallowed the giant Viagra-Plus pill and washed it gown with a glass if
water.
"Good. Now get to work .. SISSY!"
I started to fill the sink with warm water, and added a capful of Woolite. As the bubbles grew, I took the first pair of panties and immersed them in the sudsy water.
"You scrub each and every pair of panties good! I want them as clean as the day I bought them! Do each one separately. Rinse them in cool water and hang them neatly and carefully. I want you to show
my panties the respect they deserve from a sissy like you!"
"Yes, Mother! Thank you Mother!" I cheerfully responded.
"Also change into a babydoll nighty before the chores, I don't want you to ruin this expensive saree" She said.
"Yes Mother, doing it now mother", I responded with forced smile.
I knew babydoll nighty will show my chastity clearly to her, as I was not allowed to wear panties. I changed into pink babydoll, but kept all the makeup and jewelry on.
Priya gave me a look of absolute disdain as she turned and left me to my sissy task. I felt completely defeated.
I don't know where she bought her panties, but they were of exquisite quality. Even better than Victoria's Secret lingerie. I'll bet that each pair cost at least INR. 200, and there were dozens and
dozens of them, one prettier and sexier than the last.
Satin briefs, silk bikinis, and a huge assortment of beautiful control briefs and ruffly tennis panties awaited my attention. I paid close attention to each pair, scrubbing the crotches with a little
brush. For each pair I would empty the sink, refill it with cool clear water, and rinse them thoroughly. Then, I hung each one on its own individual hanger and let them drip into the tub.
#648
Priya(Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:53)
Part 4:
After about a half-hour, I wasn't even a quarter-way through the pile. It was then that Priya returned and sat in her makeup chair behind me. I could see her reflection in the mirror, as she looked
me up and down.
"Well, pretty soon your wife and her lover will be settling into their cabin on the cruise ship. I'll bet the first thing they'll do is make passionate love. How does that make you feel,
Sissy?"
I knew I had to give the correct answer or risk another demerit. "I'm so happy Rama is having a good time, Mother," was my pathetic answer.
Priya burst into laughter.
"How could any woman not have a good time in that situation, you moron? On a two-week cruise with a handsome stud who wants nothing but to FUCK her day in and day out! When was the last time YOU
fucked my daughter, Sissy?"
"It's been over two years, Mother."
"You are nothing but a pathetic excuse for a man. No. You're not even CLOSE to being a man. Look at yourself! Dressed in a sissy-fag babydoll nightie and knee-socks like a little GIRL, hand washing
your mother-in-law's panties while your wife is busy getting impregnated by a muscular, dominating black man! You .. are .. PATHETIC! AREN'T YOU?? ANSWER ME!!!!"
"Yes, Mother.." I said, my lip quivering. "I am pathetic."
As Priya marched out of the bathroom, I suddenly realized how horny I was. It had been four months since I was last permitted to cum, and I had at least another two weeks of total chastity staring me
in the face. And I had a funny feeling Priya would certainly find ample reason to give me at least the five demerits necessary to keep me frustrated for an addition 3 months.
I wanted desperately to rip off the gaff and masturbate furiously .. to shoot my enormous, pent-up load of semen all over the pile of pretty panties that lay before me. But I knew if Priya found me
in any way untucked or touching myself, she would see to it that I would never cum again.
Hot, powerful waves of intense sexual frustration coursed through my sissified body as I washed Priya's panties, until all I could think of was how much I wished I could cum -- though I knew that was
completely impossible. I also knew that Tushar would have limitless opportunities to pump hot torrents of his potent, black African seed deep into my wife's fertile womb over the next two weeks,
while I endured endless denial and frustration at the hands of my castrating mother-in-law.
I had no choice but to give up and give in to Priya's iron-clad control over me. I felt my mind breaking, and my entire purpose in life was to please and obey her, no matter how embarrassed or
humiliated I was, just with the hope that I might feel the delicious release of cumming one more time before the next lengthy period of total enforced chastity.
#649
Priya(Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:57)
My sexy wife is always working on ways to challenged me to work harder to earn the privilege of orgasm. Since I am now wearing a chastity belt, 24/7, and have been for 3 months, I’m "game" for
anything. This time, she has me "puzzled." You see, she has found an interesting website that has a great variety of puzzles, both in terms of number of pieces, shapes, and levels of difficulty. The
site has each puzzle timed.
After cleaning the entire house spotless, she has me sit down at the computer (I can only get on the computer when she allows me to do so). She chains me to the chair, leaving one hand unchained to
manipulate the mouse. She will then select a puzzle. Depending on the level of difficulty she selects, she will give me a certain time limit. If I successfully work a puzzle on time, she will take
the remaining seconds and apply them to the next puzzle. If I don’t work the puzzle in time, she will deduct those seconds off the next, more difficult puzzle’s time. I must attempt to solve 10
increasing difficult puzzles. If I miss the time on three puzzles, then no orgasm. Losing on 4 or more puzzles takes represents an additional month of chastity for each puzzle for which I don’t make
the time.
One additional variable: She dresses in very sexy attire and does her best to distract my concentration. Anything goes. She makes all of the rules. It’s difficult to concentrate on solving a puzzle
when she is giving me a blowjob, but what is more difficult is having to give her lover a blowjob for every puzzle I lose above 3 puzzles; that is, for every puzzle I lose after 3 loses, I have an
added month of chastity and must give her lover or anyone she chooses a blowjob.
This last round of games, I didn’t get an orgasm, and I ended up having to give 4 blowjobs. These games are very difficult, even with full concentration. The web is full of challenging games that she
is exploring, and I must always cheerfully play whatever games she chooses. Damn this internet.
A shorty:
I hate giving blowjobs. I am strictly heterosexual. When I have to give them, I am made to dress like a sexy bar dancer, in complete attire, including 5 inch locking pumps. After I finish, I have to
go clean the lover’s apartment or house. How humiliating. To stay slim and sexy, I am required to follow a female diet and maintain a weight of 125 lbs. I’m six foot tall.
Chastity has changed my life forever. My wife has me just where she wants me. It
#650
SRS(Thursday, 05 January 2017 23:38)
Nandana please continue ur story where are you
#651
poonam(Friday, 06 January 2017 05:01)
Sexy girl where r u? Plzz complete sisters story
#652
goppi(Friday, 06 January 2017 06:20)
Anybody know any good crossdressing story blogs same like this blog.
Plese post blogs names.....
#653
crossdressers hangout(Sunday, 08 January 2017 01:35)
Checkout the page - https://mbasic.facebook.com/Crossdressers-hangout-210560955989187/?_e_pi_=7%2CPAGE_ID10%2C4443280752
#654
dolly(Monday, 09 January 2017 13:27)
Hii, I am ankit. My height is 5.4 fair skin very hairless body slim size 21 by age. I am very shy kind of boy so I have no very few friends in my college. After completion of my college I became
alone. We n my parents lived in city apartment . I worked on software design in home for earnings. Sach I way spend my boring life. After few days my parents forced me to attend of wedding of their
close friend in delhi. But due to shy nature I refuse to go with them so they send me to my aunty’s home who lived 20km away from my home. My parents dropped me to my aunts home and they went to
attend the marriage for 1 month. Aunt husband is no more, she have a big home 2 female servants for care and aunt have 1 doughter kavita she is 5 years older and taller than me she is tuition
teacher. My aunt is social worker she always busy in her schedule. kavita is very frank by nature she try to be friendly with me and she come to know my shy naturevery soon. One day kavita says lets
go for shopping in evening. She is asking about my girl friend and friends. I said I have very few friends we often meet once. On her scooty we go to the big mall for purchasing some dresses. In the
mall she asking me to buy a shirt for me. I don’t know which kind of shirt suits me so for her happiness I selected one floral shirt. Kavita smiles and says stupid really do you like it? Yes kavita I
said. Okkkk then its yours and you have to purchase one pant to suit it. I said I don’t know which pant will suits it I never purchase dresses for me mom always shopping for me. Kavita says okk then
I wil help you. She selected one pant for me and I said okk. Kavita purchase some tops jeans skirts chudidar leggings for her. Then We come to home. Kavita taken me to the dressing room and says try
the dresses and she tries her own. When I remove my tshirt she observes my hairless body and said u have girly body there is no hairs. I keep quite by shyness. Ok ankit wear your shirt now. When I
wear it I feel confortable it is of my size and I wear my pant which is red in colour selected by kavita.
#655
dolly(Monday, 09 January 2017 13:28)
When I wear it I feel it is very tight from my theighs and hip region but I said it is also confortable. Kavita smiles loudly. Ohhh do you really like it. I said yes it is very soft. Means you like
these kind of dresses good choice ankit. Ok then remove it now u have no fashion sence now I wil select dresses for you. I said ok. She throws my dresses in cup board which I bring from my home and
locked them. She gaves me one yelow colored slacks to wear and one white top for night. Top has no collers and no sleeves. It dont have pockets also but it perfectly fits my body very tightly. Kavita
said u looks cute in these dress I smiles. When aunt comes she smiles to me and ask why you wears these dresses. I said kavita gave me these dress. She smiles and go in her room. In the dineer table
two fe,female servants also smiles to me I don’t know why. Aunt says ankit you looking very good in these dress and both kavita and aunt smiles. I have to spend 1 month with them so I never
complained for anything to them. Next day in morning kavita and aunt gone for work and I bath but I don’t have any innerwear as my all dresses were locked in cupboard by kavita. so I ask for servants
malti and sona for keys but they donyt have keys. So I search for some innewears in dressing room. There I found one black color panty which is very soft by touch. I wear it and wears yesterdays top
and slacks because I have no choice. In evening when kavitacomes she is searching for her innerwears so she asked malti and sona for her dresses. They also not found her inerwears so she wears
another. I was watching tv she come to me. I ask her about cup board keys and said I have no innerwears so I wear one black innerwear in morning. She shocks and said means you weras that black
innerwear? I said yes she smiles loudly and ask me how you feel after wearing it. I said I feel confortable it is very soft by touch and I have no choice. Ankit u r really very simple guy. Do u relly
don’t know about dresses? I said I wear whatever mom brings for me. Oh she said means you like wearing soft dresses? Then she bring one blue color shorts and one white top for me to change the dress.
I wear that blue short on that black panty. it is bit tight and it is 5 to 6 inch in size and very tight in my penis area.
#656
dolly(Monday, 09 January 2017 13:28)
I remove old top and my hairless fair body visible to kavita. Ankit u have slim body before wearing these white top you have to wear matching bra it will suits you. Then she bring blue color bra. I
wear it and kavita tie hook from backside. She says we have to added some cottons in bra it wil give you perfect shape. I said it looks like girl dress. She said girls and boys have common dresses
now a days. Then I said okk. Then I wear white top which is sleeveless and my stomach area is open it is very short. I said kavita di I think i look like a girl in that blue short and white top. She
said yes but these style suits you. U look sexy in these attire I like you very much in these dress. With some make up u will look again sexy. I shy and said how?? Then she told me sit before
dressing table cross legged. I do as she says. She set my hairs in girly style from middle. she applys some creams on my face set my eye brows girly style added some black kajal, set small bindi on
my fore head and apply red lipstick on my lips. She set small zumkas on my ears and one necklace in my neck. Finally 2 2 bangles in each hand and give hill sandle to wear. She makes me stand up. She
observes me from top to bottom in blue short open legs and white sexy top. Hey ankit you look like modern girl in these attire !!!! when I see in the mirror I cant identify me I relly looks like
modern girl. She really enjoys my company so I also behave as she said to me. U r not ankit u r now my close friend ankita okk??
#657
dolly(Monday, 09 January 2017 13:29)
Sach a way she becomes my close friend as well my di also. I mentally thinks dat she is very careful about me and I enjoys her company. I enjoys the dresses which she brings for me. Those dresses are
very soft by touch. I always work on my computer and apply for many companies for job. I am totally unaware about external world. Next day I wake up early in the morning and orderd malti and sona for
tea. Aunty is always busy in her social work. Malti and sona brings tea for me and I ordered for bath hot water to them. I removed yesterdays clothes and entered in the bathroom and ordered malti for
some dresses. As my dresses are locked in the cupboard malti says nobody is wake up till now why don’t you wear these Punjabi style salwar because I don’t have any dresses and I think u like these
dresses. I said yes malti these dresses are very soft but I think I am wearing girls clothes yesterday don’t u think this short is girls shorts??? Yes ankit baby its girls short you was wearing
yesterday she said. but you was looking really sexy in that dress it was very fun to see you in that girly attire. I also enjoys your all”s company malti but I feel shy unknowingly I like these
dresses. Then malti says, don’t hesitate now then wear these chudidar welike to see you in girly attire and you hav no choice also. Okk malti but what about innewears. Don’t worry ankit wear these
pink panty hanging inside bathroom and white colour slip. Okk I said and went inside the bathroom. I removed all my yesterdays make up. As I say I have no hairs on my body I admiring my nude body
with blue shorts inside the mirror of bathroom. Unknowingly my passion about wearing girly dresses is increasing now. So I removed all dresses and bath. Now I wear the pink color panty inside the
bathroom and white color slip. Ohh what a soft touch!!! I like the touch of silk on my body.
#658
dolly(Monday, 09 January 2017 13:29)
After wearing these dresses I come outside the bathroom. On the bed there was a blue chudidar its touch also amazing. Iwear that chudidar its touch also very soft. I tied the knot of chudidar and I
drying my hairs with towel. When kavita saw me she says wow ankit you looking typical modest in slip and chudidar. I think you like girly dresses. Yes na!! no di I have no option so I am wearing
these dresss. Okk I m late for school but I want to see you in sari in the evening okkk. I just smile and go to my room. In my room I am thinking about how wil I look in the sari and eagerly waiting
for kavita di. In the evening when kavita di arrives I feel very happy from inside. I am eagerly watching kavita di what will she do now. I just sat watching tv. After some time kavita di comes to me
for chit chat. She was telling about her day life and says come with me in dressing room. I just walk with fear with her inside the dressing room. Ankit you like the touch of girls dresses na!! and
you are for only few days in my home so I want take your photoshoot in sari for remember your company with me. I just smile and says but I am not a girl di. Don’t worry nobody is watching you here
its just for fun I want to transform you. I said ok and I feel very glad inside as I never wear sari and I thinking about my transformation by kavita di. For help kavita di ask for malti and sona to
come inside the dressing room. She ordered malti and sona we all have to play dress up game with ankit so we have to make him as beautiful as that he also enjoys the dress and his girly attire okk?
They both laugh to me and said okk mam. Malti knows that I like the touch the girly dress so she said finally ankit youwill now become complete girl and u will love to be that. I will decorate you as
bridebe ready. I also blush and shows my shyness to them. First they gave me hair removal kit and send me to bathroom. The I come out wrapping towel on my hairless body. sona and malti shows me
different color sari’s which will perfectly suits on me. Kavita choose pink colour sari which is very heavy and have designer silver work on it. She asks malti and sona don’t you think ankit will
looking very sexy in it? They both knobbed their head and here I feel very shy I put my both hands on my face. Sona says I think ankit like the sari see the shyness of happy. They all laugh loudly.
Now kavita gave me pink bra and pink silk panty to wear. I again went inside the bathroom. Ohhh what a soft touch of panty. I wear that panty it was bit tight only covers my penis area and only
string like from my ass part. Now I wear bra from my own and hooked from back and by covering my body with hands come out of bathroom.
#659
dolly(Monday, 09 January 2017 13:30)
All girls looking with devil smile toward me. Don’t shy ankit we all girls here now be confortable, sona says to me. But I feel trapped in girls so I surrender myself to them. Kavita di fills bra
with cotton balls and and brings one pink coloured blouse for me. She puts blouse on me and malti and sona tie the strings from backside. It was deep backless and sleeveless blouse and perfect fits
to me. kavita then puts pink petticoat over me and tie the knot. They all checked the fittings of dress and all working for draping sari on me. They made pleats and puts in my waist. She adjust the
sari small below for clear visible of my belly. Now she adjust the pallu on my left shoulder and pinned the pallu in left shoulder with pin. Now I am looking like typical Indian girl. They all now
sat me on dressing table and working on my face. They wash my face with creams and applus foundation set my eyebrows with kajal. Applys pink lipstick with heavy coat. Sona is working on my nails for
nailpolish and malti puts fake ear rings and nose ring. Kavita works on my girly hairstyle and puts pink hairbelt on my head. Silver bindi is set on my forehead. They choose silver color necklace and
1 dozon of pink bangles and puts on my both hands. When I saw on mirror my expression was speechless. I just say ohh my god is that really me? Unknowingly I just kept hand on my chin like girls and
behave like girls by seeing my attire. They all watching and laughs loudly. Sona says ankit now you are completely being ankita enjoy and u are behaving like girl unknowingly. Yes sona I cant imagine
myself that I will look so beautiful, great work!! Now I come to realize why girls are so good by nature. By seeing my girly attire I love to be girl. Kavita ekta sona all are enjoying my behavior. I
asked them with curiosity why girls are doing sach a heavy make up? Then kavita told me, girls are careful and these all perform just to impress their bf or hubby. But kavita I don’t have any hubby
or bf and I love to be impress him if I have somebody. And we all laugh loudly. Amongs them sona said don’t worry ankita you will be get your hubby soon jokingly. Kavita by serious said hey hey hey
we have solution for it, We can arrange hubby for ankita just for today, and I have a plan. I by nervously looking at kavita, “ what kind of plan kavita has In her mind!!!!” kavita said one of us can
be hubby for our dear ankita today. I just aww and listening carefully, what she is talking about. Look kavita said, amongst us sona is well build and ankita dear is very lean in front of her, she is
heighted than ankita, means sona is perfect hubby for our ankita, don’t u think girls?. Sona saw towards me showing her eyebrows up n down for my permission. I just kept my hands on my face. All
asking about me, is me like sona or change the hubby. I said, I feel shy I cant take decision, actually I like her but… but… what plan u peoples are cooking?? Kavita said, no plan dear just enjoy the
company of sona for photoshoot, I just want to capture all moments of you and sona as gf bf.
#660
dolly(Monday, 09 January 2017 13:31)
I just stunned by listening this. Okk I said to them just for photoshoot. Sona came by wearing black jeans and white tshirt on which she wears black blazer. She kept one cap to hide her small hairs.
Her get up looks like a boy and she will going to be my hubby for photoshoot. Kavita and malti take out their mobiles and said me to stand besides sona. With shyness I adjust my sari and pallu and
stand besides sona. Sona is heighted so kavita gave me sandles to wear and they take photographs. Malti shows me different pose how to stand as girl and I also enjoys the pose as sona my hubby. I one
pose I have to keep my head and hands on shoullderof sona and In another sona held me from behind to my waist and kept her chin on my shoulder. Best pose is sona kissing my cheeks from behind and I
have to smile. Sach a way different poses I have to gave for photoshoot. I observes that intentionally sona touches my boobs or hips during photosession when nobody is watching, but I just enjoys the
situation. Then kavita said, ok girls more fun for today lets eat dinner now. We all ate dinner now kavita said to change the sari. I don’t want to change the sari but I have no choice because its
kavitas sari. kavita then gave me yellow nighty to wear for night. Nighty was satin short frilly and up to my knee only and somehow transperant showing my pink bra and pink panty easily. I just
remain on my girly make up with all accessories. My bangles continuously shouting I feel like bride innighty like first night of any bride. Now me and kavita vandering on terrace and we discussing
more girly things. Sona still does not changing the jeans and tshirt. Whenever I look towards her I just imagine the moments of photoshoot with her. Sona also looking quite disturb and continuously
watching towards me. I come to know what sona wants she wants to spend more time with me than kavita. When I was sitting alone sona said to come with her in backside room of bunglow. I said for
what?? She said I want to kiss you plz ankita just one kiss. Okk baba wait. She saidokkk I m waiting in backside room come alone I am waiting there.I also wish to kiss her so just rush from terrace
without knowing kavita. when I entered the room sona just push me inside the room and locked the door. My heart beats faster as I never kissed any girl before. I just stood stunned there. She comes
more close to me , I closed my eyes with shyness when she come forward. She first kissed on my cheeks I also response her like girl. She then remove my nightys shoulder strap by side and kissed
passionately on my neck and shoulder. I kept my hands on her back and response her like girl. She then kiss on my lips very hard i also gave her permission to use me. She kept her hand on my hip size
and make my nighty upside and pressing my hips. I completely behave like girls and response her like girls. She throws me on bed and then she removed her tshirt she doesn’t wear bra her boobs clearly
visible to me. She then lean on me and trying to remove my nighty. She succeeded to do so as I responsing to her. She is kissing my hairless theighs and all over the body. Now I am just on my bra
panty. She then removes her jeans, I can see one dildo is hanging in her pussy area. I afraid as I never sex with any girl with dildo. She says calm down ankita dear I will not hurt you but you will
enjoys it promis. She removes my pink panty to my knee and from backside she inserted the dildo with very hard. I just shout she kept her hand on my mouth and she fucks me like first wedding night.
After some time I also enjoys the dildo she fucks me for 15mn. Now I just layed down on her body we both were nude. Suddenly door knoks I know kavita must be outside. Kavita from outside says, hey
sona don’t make ankita pregnant today only, she is very soft girl don’t use her so much, and she is smiling from outside. I just stood from sona and wears my nighty and adjusting my hairs and dress
with shy open the door and trying to rush from there. Kavita holds my hand and asking did sona hurt you dear or I disturbing you. I come to know that it is the plan of sona and kavita. sona again
come to push me towards her in front of ankita I am also trying to rush out from there but sona was so strong and kavita also supporting her. I feel very embrassed in front of kavita and said, plz
let me go sona I feel awkward here…!!! Some how I succedded to rush out from there and entered in my room with closing the doors.
#661
Kanmani(Tuesday, 10 January 2017 12:51)
I'm a married secret crossdresser, and here I was in saree with matching petticoat bra and panties and blouse, I was enjoying the absence of my wife, and suddenly the door bell rang, I was enjoying
my feminity in hall an people whoever stands near door can actually sense it's a guy or girl with the blunt image through the Matt finish glass window. I quickly ran back into my room removed
everything including the little makeup and dumped everything in my bed and changed myself to my male self, I opened the door and found my MIL standing in the door, she said hi, I replied yea aunty,
she called for her daughter, I said she is not here aunty she is @ office, I am using my leave balance and will be
On leave for a week, aunty replied but I just saw my daughter image through that glass, call her know don't play, I was shocked she saw me and how could I explain that's me. She told me you are alone
and she asked me to help you, but it looks like you are busy with someone? She walked into my room to only find the saree in bed and she checked my bathroom and kitchen and nowhere she found she
looked at me, where is she?
Aunty just calm a moment, she is not here and it is not she you think. That is me.
Mil shocked, aunty please let me explain and promise me you never tell this to your daughter pls.
What are u saying? Is that u?
Yes aunty I stammered.
My daughter always complained about sex now I know why you can't satisfy her. You are not even a man.
Aunty no I'm just a crossdresser, I love to dress up and that's it.
Oh let me see What you got first, turn yourself into a woman and comeback.
I'll do aunty but not now anyone may come now.
If u don't do what I say, you'll be in trouble, my last warning.
I shook In fear and thought aunty might be interested in my other half so I quickly went back to room, wore my saree adjusted my wig and a little makeup on my clean shaved face, I t transformed into
a girl. I called aunty to come in the room. She came and she asked me turn around.
Oh what a shape you got, u must've born in wrong body, no where I could find a trace of a guy, how do you call yourself a man?
Aunty please this is just my hobby!
What is your name?
Kunal
No your name as what u r?
Kanmani
Kanmani my dear kanmani lovely name, lovely saree, I'll give u a choice, I'll give a two more set of sarees just run away from this home.
Aunty please I'll do anything you say, please don't let me go out please..
While I was begging she took me out of my room and took some photos, I tried to hide but she warned me and I couldn't help myself, suddenly the doorbell rang.
Aunty locked my bedroom and stood there.
Aunty let me go inside let me change someone is coming.
Who will that be?
My maid!
So ! Go open the door for your maid.
Aunty! What are you saying?
Go! Or get out of this house, I'll spare you some money and sarees.
Without choice I opened the door.
My maid looked at me and shocked laughing she locked the door. Wat is this?
Aunty intervened she is kanmani u can take her for any help in kitchen.
She laughed and said ok madam and called me with her.
Aunty was watching TV.
Me and maid was working together while she asked why am I behaving like this I explained her the whole situation, she said she will help me after lunch my aunty ate alone. She me to sit with Maid and
have my lunch. With tears I looked at my maid she is signalled she will help me after lunch the maid spoke to aunty she is willing to continue as maid Since she deserves this. Hearing this I asked
aunty I don't want to continue like this my wife will come tonight let me change I will do anything you say.
What will you do Kanmani?
I will do anything.
When you are not a man, why should I need you in this house? I don't want a sissy to my Wife.
Aunty please don't do this to me I got nowhere to go.
You can stay here as you are.
But please aunty Let live as a man.
As I told you you may continue as a maid.
I ran back into kitchen and started crying like a girl.
My maid came from behind and said Kanmani I will help you to live your life as a girl.
But why i don't need to be a girl..
But your wife hates you!
So?
So? I'll give u a choice live you're dream.
I thought for an hour and decided whatever happens I'm gonna stay as i am.
I spoke to aunty I'll stay as what i am.
She looked at me sarcastically replied whatever!.goaway!
Night Came, my wife at the door, i went and opened the door to wife, she realized that was me and slapped me hard, she pushed me out of the house and locked the door. I started crying, after few mins
aunt came u shall continue as housekeeper or u can start walking, go anywhere!
I replied I'll live as housemaid...
End...
#662
Amutha Valli(Tuesday, 10 January 2017 17:41)
Kanmani don't stop continue your story please
#663
sarita(Wednesday, 11 January 2017 01:33)
Sexygirl
Where r u plz complt ur story yar
#664
READER(Wednesday, 11 January 2017 03:25)
kanmani please dont stop write more loved your story please continue
It was a normal weekend i was on my way to office, i am a cd, i love to dress up, i live with my aunt, uncle is abroad and he hardly visits her. So I'm the only support for her, I'll help and do all
works in Home she always praise me i suppose to born a girl, i like that comment, every night i dress up in my own room, ny using aunts old dresses. I never got caught, and this day i reached office,
during weekends I'll be the only employee to work in peace. I enjoy weekends hours at office, i was walking inside office and reached parking to Polish my shoes, and then i noticed a set of house
keeping uniforms, my eyes was locked on to that, and since no one use to come office on weekends how this things are there? I thought for a moment and decided to try this dress in outer restroom and
keep it back where it were. I quickly took it went inside box toilet and wore the uniforms over my pant shirt and i felt its too tight i removed my shirt and pants and found a camisole inside the
parcel so i wore that, and pattiala bottom with U cut chudi tops i neatly pinned the shawl with clips i found in that cover. I also found a cap to cover my head. I tried that too and wanted to take a
picture from my mobile. As the box toilet doesn't have much of a light i decided to come out and take a picture. Even though it was a brave act my heart pounded heavily, also had a fear if anyone
comes ill be a dead meat.
I slowly opened the door didn't noticed who were standing behind box toilet i camr out and took selfie, when suddenly one lady came and took my phone, we asked all to assemble here for today's work
and what are you doing here?
She grabbed me and made me join with other maids in the team. I went last and tried to cover myself and prayed gos no one should find its me. Thank God i had the most feminine face and no facial
hairs much and luckily i shaved too.
All maids listen here!
Each of you should go to their respective mentioned place and finish the activity i said before 1pm and report me.
Devi! she called one maid standing besideme. There is a new joiner i kept new uniforms for her who is she? Other maids turned and looked at me. I smiled, tried to smile, the fat lady called me you
have to go all restrooms and clean the mirrors, take your things from here and start your work fast, i nodded ok mam, and walked to box toilet to get my dress, but when i went there i found my
security took the dresses in a paper folded and threw in garbage bin.
Oh God! What i did? Why everything happening to me?
Why is my security threw out my dress in Garbage?
I slowly tried to talk feminine to that fat lady.
Excuse me.
What? You have not started your work yet?
Mam our security took away my old dress and threw in garbage bin. Shall i go and take it.
Ok ok! Go fast and finish your work.
I ran in my barefoot near garbage bin only to find my dresses were spoiled in shit, i don't have a choice to even touch it, suddenly realized my cards were there in pockets.
Hey u! Called the lady. I ran to her,
Go! Don't waste my time.
One minute mam my money to return home on my dress, I'll take and go.
She immediately took one fifty rupees note and kept in my pocket and screamed go!!!
I took the bucket and spray and sponge tissues and ran to the office.
I was working hard in each restroom till, 1pm my hands were painful and couldn't even able to lift the bucket i reached parking and sat in corner thinking how i will go home, everyone gathered and
each of us got lunch in a parcel, i ate alone and waited patiently fat lady came and asked everyone to leave, but I waited there behind a car when suddenly someone removed my cap i shocked to see its
the fat lady
She stood in shock!
U r a guy?
Yes mam! Please please don't shout, help me.
What? Help? U disguised as a maid? U did a good job, but you deserve this uniform. I thought of appreciating your works in all girls restroom but u r a guy!
Why should i help you?
Go away or I'll call my security.
Pls mam i don't even have my dress it is in that garbage bin.
That was cleared by corporations in morning itself she said
I started crying mam i lost my dress and my cards i have to travel 30kms from here please help.
She replied you have my fifty rupees go!
She started walking to office i quickly arranged my cap and slowly walked behind her to her office.
She saw me and inside office she screamed what u want from me?
Pls mam help i work in this company i have to continue my work i need spare dress pls help me to change my male self.
She smiled for a moment and took a blank paper and asked me to sign.
I asked why?
U asked me help and I'll help you with that no further questions.
#667
Kanmani(Friday, 13 January 2017 13:41)
I paused for a second and signed quickly.
She took the paper and asked me to wait outside.
I waited outside for an hour and got tensed when i saw my boss car i hung my head down and covered my face. He went inside mam room. She called me inside completely shaking i walked inside she asked
is this guy working in this office, he looked at me from top to bottom. He replied to her he was... Not anymore.. With that he stood up mam stopped him but he replied it's my final answer, get lost
he said to me and left. I started to cry again badly. Mam came ans said
I just wanted to check u r really saying truth but your boss is so rude.
I was crying again she asked me to calm down and she completed some paperwork and shown me a job contract that I signed with a photo i took selfie this morning. I asked why she did that.
She replied your boss blackmarked your profile you'll not get job anywhere, so i helped u. I asked how will i go home? Like u r! Go home! She said and she also left.
I walked to bus stop took tickets and reached home people treated me as a lowly maid in that uniform and nobody really cared about my gender.
When i reaches home my aunt opened the door to see me in the dress of a maid she slapped me hard and asked what is this? I explained everything... She convinced me to go and take bath, i removed the
maid dress and took a fresh bath and came out to see aunt standing with old cotton saree and with petticoat and blouse. Aunt u too? I cried!
See u r not a guy! Not man enough to get married with your feminine feature and u lost a job and downgraded yourself and signed a contract as maid for a year. Everything in a single day and this is
the gift, wear the saree and come start your regular work.. Nothing changes except the dress. I always praise you for mistakenly born as boy, now... Get ready and start your work...
End....
#668
Poornima(Friday, 13 January 2017 14:19)
You should have made him clean a ladies toilets and all ladies spitting on him
Ut quaerat doloribus magnam dolores quam officiis sed veniam, odio at ut et atque non.
#670
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 14 January 2017 09:50)
Story Name: Pink and purple lace bra
Part #1
Note: I will complete my story Sisters soon, till then enjoy this one.
I was feeling restless, weak and lusty. I was trying to sleep with semi hardness in my pants but I could not sleep. The image of Pink and purple lacy bra I saw, was making it difficult for me to
sleep. It was perfect color blend of pink and light purple and hints of blacks and red. The red bow in the center was so cute and sexy. The net lace made it the delicate and desirable thing. The
silky fabric, the shine of it and satin feel of the bra was too much to handle. I just wanted to hold it, feel it, and inhale the scent of Riya bosoms in it. She is a goddess and her choice of
perfume is so tempting that that I would want to get lost in that.
Riya is my sister’s best friend and she came today afternoon to spend the weekend with my sister. Today evening they went to club, that was when I thought of going to my sisters room and check out
Riya’s stuffs. I guess you all know why do we check girl’s bags, to check there clothes, makeup and lingerie. I was lost in the dream of wearing all the things I saw while going through the bag full
of clothes, makeup and accessories. Then I went to the bath room, to check what Riya left there. That is when I found this lovely pink 36c Bra hanging in her bathroom emitting intoxicating fragrance.
As soon as I saw it, I knew I won’t be able to resist not wearing it. I wanted to wear it so badly that I started shivering out of fear and excitement. My heart was beating so fast and loud that I
thought it would burst. My legs were shaking.
With my shaky hands I took it from the bathroom hook. The touch and feel of lace and silk along with Riya’s perfume had made the most desirable thing in my life. I lifted it and dig my nose into it
and inhaled the scent for several seconds. The mix of Riya’s sweat and her perfume had made it smell so good, that I almost came in my shorts. I removed my t shirt and slowly slid strap on my
shoulders and hooked it in the back. I saw myself in the mirror, with no body hair, long hair and clean shave (I hardly have any shave) I saw a sexy teenage girl in the sexiest Bra. I knew this image
will be itched in my brain forever, and will never let me believe that I am boy externally. Other than the penis in between my legs, I am women complete women. My slim and soft body, walk, thoughts
are so girly that you would not believe me if I have told you this while wearing my sisters dress. I put on my t shirt over the bra and went back to check her bag. Her bag had more bra and panties, a
sleeping gown and 2 pretty dresses. I did not want to spoil the setting of the bag to avoid suspicion of bag being checked, so I did not touch the dress to see, what kind of dresses they were. There
was a small pouch, filled with lots of makeup. Mostly Mac and Lakme brands shimmers, mascara, eye liner, eye shadow, lipsticks, lip liner, lip gloss. I was losing my remaining manliness and was
getting into feminine world.
#671
Sexy Girl(Saturday, 14 January 2017 09:51)
Story Name: Pink and purple lace bra
Part #2
I wanted to be the Riya, sexy and slutty. I wanted to own all her stuff. I wanted to dress up like her, like a sexy women with sexy lingerie and make up, put on those sexy high heels and hand bag and
walk in into some club. I wanted to be so desirable and sexy that guys will have an instant hard on by just looking at me. I wanted to be so sexy that as soon as a guy holds me with one hand on my
ass and other on my breast and puts his face in my hair and inhales the Victoria secret perfume, he comes in his pants.
With the fear of getting caught I removed my bra and kept everything in place and came back to my room and lied on the bed. I tried to sleep, but the pink lacy bra did not let me. I was feeling weak
and vulnerable. I was feeling like a women in need, a women who badly wanted to be held, cuddled and kissed and then taken roughly. I wanted to be women, who want to be dressed as slutty as possible
and go out and make guys drip cum by just looking at her. All these feelings made ma drip some pre cum in my shorts. I had this un easiness I was turning and tossing on the bed but could not find
relief. Then my small and semi hardness dripped some more cum, and I realized that my periods have just begun.
I got off the bed and went to my cupboard and removed the big box. After unlocking it I took out my secret bag, which no one knows about. I took my lacy panty and Stayfree pads. I glued the pad in my
panties and wore them and returned to my bed. I seemed to calm down. The wet and soft pad gave me much needed warmth to my crotch. But still my lust could not be controlled. Unable to control my
urges I went back to my sister’s room. I removed my t-shirt and took Riya's Bra and wrapped it around my chest and hooked it in back. I adjusted the shoulder straps. The feeling was so intense that I
was lost in the moment and forgot where and whom I was. It was a perfect fit all round and perfectly wrapped my boobs in it. The feeling of being a woman was at the peak, I wanted to dress up all the
way and visit a club like my Riya and my sister did.
Caught chatting and forced feminization
Hi, Reader. This is my imaginary story of how I want my life to be. I am Viki aged 24 college student. I like with my family. Both my parents are working and we rarely meet. So most of the time I
used to be alone in our house. I stayed in the first floor and my parents stayed in ground floor. We had a maid who used to clean our home and cook for us. Her name was mangai and she was older than
me. She used to wear Saree, big earrings and lots of bangles. Her parents were looking for a alliance for her to get her married. One day while returning from college I got surrounded by a group of
transgenders. They scared me and demanded money. In the group was a young pretty boy who has just started transition. He was wearing a half saree. He had flowers in his shoulder length hair. I
started to blush looking at him. I felt the place as soon as I recovered. But I couldn’t stop thinking about the boy. So I started googling about boy dressing and acting like girls. To my wonder were
numerous results and I got attracted to it. Then I ended up in a chat room. I was looking for options to chat with someone. I asked me for a membership. Fortunately the membership was free for one
month so I chose the username shemalesana and was completing my profile. I chose some random details not to reveal my true identity. As soon as I finished creating my profile I started checking other
profiles. There were two categories – crossdresser and shemale (transgenders). I chose the join the category shemale. Then I browsed under this topic. There was a profile by the name shemale goddess
priya. She had five star rating and the comments on her wall indicated that she was popular. I tried contacting her but she wasn’t online at the moment.
The next day I left the college at the same time and took the same route to meet the transgender group but I couldn’t find them. This continued for 7 days in a row. I saw them again the next Monday.
I gave them Rs.100 even before they asked. Instead of scaring me, they all blessed me. Again I searched for the new boy he was there, this time a little more feminine. As they left me I too started
home. I started to chat in the website regularly. Soon I too started to gather followers. I started to discover my feminine side. I waited for the next Monday. This time I was prepared. On the same
time I met them and gave them the money. As I passed them I found the boy and gave him a paper.
#673
Sexy Girl(Sunday, 15 January 2017 08:47)
@Raghav: Waiting for your next story.
#674
neeta(Sunday, 15 January 2017 11:48)
Sexygirl:
Complete ur first story
#675
poonam(Sunday, 15 January 2017 20:47)
Sexy girl ur both stories are amazing. U should complete it fast
Our identity
My name is dinesh and my wife name is disha she works as a software engineer and i will do digital marketing work from home. One evening i was doing my regular work in my laptop my came and sat on
the sofa made ughhhhh sound seeing her frustration i asked her the reason she said she has to go Australia for On-Board Project. With a dull expression for how many days you have to go their she said
may be for 3 years i said 3 years loudly.She said baby it is for future please let me go i said i don't know any about your job if this trip makes you happy then go a head she happily hugged me and
kissed on my cheeks we had a good night in sex from the next day she started packing the bags 3rd day after discussion she had a flight. while she is leaving i hugged her desperately unwillingly she
left me and she had tears in her eyes.While we are going to airport my MIL came to our house.
While we are leaving to airport i asked disha about her Mother stay she said she will stay with me and cook food in her absence and she is feeling in the village after her father's death. I left
disha at airport and came back to home my MIL was watching TV i went straight to my bed room and had a quick shower and took my wig and make up kit and started my preparation first i arranged my hair
wig and applied nail polish to my fingers and toes and then i dressed in sari and went outside after seeing my MIL said hey dear i am waiting for you please prepare food i am hungry yeah she know
about me and treats me like daughter.
I went to kitchen started preparing food and she came inside and asked me turn round and said wow you are carrying yourself very good you are covering your body parts very nice and you are keeping
expressions very natural and feminine now shown me your walking style i shown it to her and she surprised and kissed me on my forehead till know nobody listened me like this just with my messages you
have made yourself so feminine and know i want you to submissive i have a plan for you i said thanks mommy. I completed my cooking we ate it and i cleaned utensils and i started working with my
laptop while pressing keys on key board my bangles are making sweet sound which are making feel so feminine and nice. Suddenly i heard door bell sound i stood and going to open the door and while
going my anklets making sound listening it my MIL said wow what a sweet sound. I opened door it is my maid she came inside and asked did mam left sir i said know i am the mam she is sir. Okie mam
sorry she said and my MIL seeing her with naughty looks she called us both.
She told my maid Sarla to sit on the sofa and told me to bring tea for them i did it for them and served it to them. After serving i am going to sit My MIL told me to stay stand My MIL asked sarla is
it ok for you stay here full day with us her and how many days you can afford to stay her. Sarla asked my MIL why mam why are you asking this question to me.My MIL asked please say i will tell you
later. She said i can manage for 3 days my MIL ok nice But Sarla asked mam why are you asking me all. My MIL answered shocked my MIL said sarla please stay with me hear as my son in law for three and
dinesha will be your wife for 3 days. Sarla said noway. My MIL said no you are lying sarla why should i lie to you My MIL said i saw you so many staring at men's clothes that's why i have given this
offer after listening this sarla became dumb and said mom just wait a minute i will changing my clothes nobody caring about my decision and sarla given me evil look after that look i took my pallu
and kept it over my head and took blessings of Sarla.
She told me follow her she went to bedroom and thrown clothes on me and told me to iron it and she went inside the bathroom and had a shower and wore my vest and brief tied towel to her navel and i
was stood in front of her with clothes in my hand and she said so sweet pinching my cheeks that action made me blush i don't know why i reacted like that she dressed in front me in my clothes and
then kept her hand on my shoulders and taken me too my MIL she asked my MIL mom how is our pair. My MIL said super .
Please post your comments
Hi akka.... U are back with a bang.... Continue.... We are waiting
#679
Maddy(Tuesday, 17 January 2017 04:29)
Sneha write more pls!
#680
SRS(Wednesday, 18 January 2017 00:05)
There is no forced feminisation story, it's getting bored
#681
priya(Wednesday, 18 January 2017 07:56)
Hai Srs please continue your story we are eagerly waiting for your next part
Pls pls.....
#682
Kanmani(Thursday, 19 January 2017 12:57)
I'm a secret selfish crossdresser I'm kanna, my parents are wealthy enough i can live my entire life without working, i hate maids i never gave respect to maids working at my house, after parents
died I've asked all my maids to leave, but one maid selvi was working, i didn't like her grandma runs a shop, but still she works at my house, as i don't like it anyway, one day i gave her 500 rupees
to buy groceries and told her to keep the change same day i said she stole the money and humiliated her in front of all neighbors, she left the job. Now being myself in my house, i moved all feminine
garments and dresses left by maids to my room. Next day after i take bath i wore the used bra and panties found in maids quarters, the fragrance waa still there made me very erotic, quickly wore
petticoat and used blouse to feel the scent of the maids and wore saree, used several pins to finish my saree looks more professional and finished my makeup. Finally i wore the wig and looked in
mirror, god i can't believe its me, i looked so sexy and the whole house is mine so i enjoyed each and every moment on that day, looking myself at every mirror i crossed, and finally i relaxed myself
in sofa watching some serials. This continued for a week, as usual i was in saree and watching TV suddenly i heard selvi voice behind, in shock i quickly stood and exposed myself in a saree.
She looked myself calm and didn't bat an eye. I hung my head down and told selvi please don't tell anyone.
She replied, why? I saw a boy wearing saree, why should I not share with my neighbors?
Pls selvi I'll do anything but please don't tell anyone about it. She looked at me for a while and she went and sat on sofa and asked me to go get changed and come, i quickly did and came to
selvi.
She replied from today I'm working here, you'll pay me, but you'll work for me. I looked at her angrily.
Selvi said, kanna don't try anything it will not take seconds to call everyone and prove what u did to me and what you did now.
I stood silent and replied ok selvi I'll do that. She silently went. The whole day i couldn't sleep what if she tell them to neighbors, next day she came as usual,
She called me kanna, i got angry, she looked at me are u getting angry, sorry to call you by that name, I'll call you kanmani ok?
I got more angry she looked the eyebrows and said hey wait she took her bright Red bindi and sticked it to my forehead and said now can control your anger, girls like you should not get angry. I was
silent.
Gud u r silent, if u dare raise your voice u will end up trouble i warn u.. She asked me to go near by shop and buy two earrings for myself with red bindi, i said people and neighbors will notice
please don't do this, I'll do anything inside the house i said, she slapped me and replied final warning. She pushed me out of house and walked behind me. I almost cried people everyone noticed my
bindi and started calling me by many names, i reached a fancy store found old aunty looked at me smiled asked what u want, i said earrings, she gave screw type earrings and asked ok? I silently paid
for her and came out. Selvi was waiting for me, she saw my earrings said I've gud taste. She grabbed my hand and took to nearest pawn shop i asked her what are you doing please let me go, she shouted
kanmani come with me people around everyone looked at me, not ready to get more humiliation i went with her, she said i want to be a girl and needs a piercing in ears now he recommended for nose also
but Selvi looked at me my eyes already filled with tears, she said not now and got my both ears pierced....
read my new story in hindi comments revange by gf i hope u all r injoy it nd comment m please
nd srs plese compleat ur story
#686
lavanya(Saturday, 21 January 2017 10:35)
Mohit when u post next parts.
#687
Deepthi(Monday, 23 January 2017 11:29)
Hi to all writers
We are egarly waiting for your stories
#688
sirisha(Thursday, 26 January 2017 02:08)
We're are the posts guys
#689
Ishu(Saturday, 28 January 2017 01:09)
Mohit pls continue ur story���
#690
mohit(Saturday, 28 January 2017 05:36)
revange by gf
I walked in sand started talking the whole time watching her as she did her face.
She smiled at me doesn’t the makeup make my face look beautiful she asked? I said yes. She smiled again don’t you love the way it looks? Yes I said again. She smiled and it feels so nice, would you
like to see how it feels sweaty? And without thinking I said yes. She smiled and gave me a wink. Okay dear but just a little. I stood there as she gently took her brush and put a powder in it. She
tapped it off and then started to brush it all over my face. After a few moments she smiled what a wonderful glow you have. I looked in the mirror and my face did have a glow about it but you really
couldn’t tell I was wearing any make up. Next she had me shut my eyes and she put the lightest of eye shadow on my lids, this is peach dear it will brighten your eyes. Again I looked in the mirror
and my eyes did look better but you still couldn’t tell I was wearing eye shadow. Then she took out a lipstick and put some on. It was a very neutral color that just gave my lips and even color but
you couldn’t tell. There we are sweaty a beautiful natural look. We don’t want to overdo it. I looked in the mirror and Rohini said you like it right. I nodded and said yes. She smiled and gave me
the makeup powder, eye shadow and lipstick. You can have this that way you can wear it every day you want to wear it right. Again I don’t know why but I said yes and took the makeup. Rohini finished
getting dressed and we went out for dinner and a move.
The rest of the week I would get up and talk to my mom as she did her makeup, I loved watching her. Then I would put on my make up very lightly so as nobody could see it but I felt batter knowing I
had it on. On Friday night I went over to Rita’s house. Her parents were gone so we went up to her bedroom.
She smiled and gave me a kiss, how has my little girl been this week she asked? I smiled and said good. She took off her clothes down to her panties and bra and I did the same. We started to kiss and
she was touching me all over and again I could not get hard. She smiled at me; I know what’s wrong I promised you that you could try a tampon again. That’s what you want isn’t it. Again I don’t know
why but I said yes. She told me to pull down my panties and bed over which I did. She touched my butt and I felt her push something into my but that was cold then she inserted the tampon and pushed
it in all the way. There we are my sweat; she kissed me on the lips and told me what a cute butt I had. I thanked her and this time I couldn’t feel the tampon. We kissed for a little while and then
Rita and I went out for dinner.
#691
mohit(Saturday, 28 January 2017 05:38)
revange by gf
Saturday morning I got up and again I was feeling sick to my stomach. I got up and went and had my morning talk with my mom as she did her makeup. We talked about spring break which was only one week
away. Mom and Julli were going to the beach for the week and she wanted to know if I wanted to go. I looked at her and said no I would stay home. She smiled have you told the girls the truth yet? I
smiled no I can’t. She just shook her head; when they find out they will be so mad. Do you have any idea what they will do, you will be lucky if they will even talk to you. In the mean time you are
wearing panties and a bra to keep this little secret. I smiled I know mom but it’s not that bad I really don’t mind. She gave me a strange look, are we getting attached to your bra she asked? I
suddenly felt stupid and just looked down. Mom touched my hand, I like my bra too sweaty but you better be careful who you tell.
Wednesday I could barely get my pants over my butt and my breast were starting to really show. I was a little worried about someone noticing them but for some reason I wasn’t worried about the
breasts themselves. I put on a large bulky sweat shirt and went to school. After school I went over to Rohini’s house as her parents were gone again. Rohini took me up to her bedroom. We got out of
our clothes and soon we were just wearing panties and bra. Rohini looked at me and smiled. Wow sweaty you are looking beautiful today. I looked at her and said I know I just can’t stop gaining
weight. She gave me another one of her pills and told me these will fix you. I got the dizzy feeling again and lay down on the bed. When I woke up Rohini was standing there looking at me. Sweaty
would you like me to make love to you she asked? I smiled and said yes. She strapped her thing on and then smiled. Turn around and be a good little girl. I did as she said and she pulled my panties
down, put some cream on my butt and then slid it in and this time it didn’t hurt. So she was pushing in and out and I was moaning with each stroke. Rohini made love to me for over thirty minutes till
I collapsed on the bed. Rohini and I talked for hours and she told me that she was going to be out of town for spring break but she would see me when she got back.
Thursday morning I got up and looked in the mirror. My breasts were huge now and filled out my bra. Instead of being worried about them I just wondered what mom would say and how I could hide them
again put on a big sweatshirt and then when I tried to put my pants on they would not fit. I started to panic. What could I do? I saw Julli’s black sweat pants on the door and put them on. I pulled
the sweatshirt down to hide Julli’s sweats and it looked okay. I went to school. At lunch I saw Rita and we talked. Her parents were going away for the week two so we planned on spending it together.
She told me to come over as soon as my mom and sister left. Friday morning again I looked at my breasts and they were big and beautiful so I put on another big sweatshirt and the same pair of sweat
pants and went to school. When I got home Mom and Julli loaded up the car. Julli said goodbye and got in the car. Mom gave me a hug and for a moment I thought she had felt my breasts under the
sweatshirt. She kissed me goodbye and told me to be good. I went right over to Rita’s house and her parents had already left. She took me upstairs to her room. We stripped down to our panty and bra
and Rita looked at me. Wow sweaty what a great body you have you should show it off more. I smiled and looked down and said thank you Rita. She gave me a hug I have a great idea for what we can do
tonight. I asked what? Rita gave me a kiss, I will tell you but first I think my little girl needs her tampon for the night. I didn’t say anything I just turned around and pulled my panties down. She
put her hands on my butt and said, wow sweaty I think you are ready for the super size. I felt her push something into my butt and then another and yet a third and then she inserted the tampon and
pushed it in. I got such a sensation from it.
#692
mohit(Saturday, 28 January 2017 05:39)
revange by gf
Rita took my hand, you look so cute and you have such a great body I want to see what you would look like in one of my dresses. We went over to her closet and started to hold up dresses to me. She
finally decided on a low cut short black dress. Sweaty this will look great on you and show off your breasts. She put the dress over my head and as it slid down my body I got such an incredible
feeling. Rita looked at me and gave me a kiss on the cheek. What a cute girl you make let’s find you some shoes. She took a pair of 4″inch heels and put them on my feet, Sweaty you love the way they
feel don’t you. I said yes and smiled. She helped me stand and showed me how to walk. We went down stairs and had dinner and watched TV. Rita just kept telling me how cute and beautiful I looked.
When it was time for bed we went upstairs. Rita gave a short pink night gown to wear and helped me get ready for bed. The feeling was so intense. We got into bed and she kissed me on the cheek and
said, sweat dreams my little girl.
In the morning we got up and Rita smiled at me, how did my little sister sleep in her new nightgown she asked? I smiled and said terrific. We got up and Rita picked out a black skirt and pink top,
would my sister like to borrow some of my clothes? They were beautiful and I blushed and said, can I? Rita kissed me on my cheek, yes sweaty I think you would look great but you have to wear it the
proper way. She helped me get dressed and then gave me the same heels from last night. I looked in the mirror and I was beautiful. Rita smiled we are not finished, and she sat me down and started to
put curlers in my hair. Then she smiled I think you are ready for some makeup. She started off putting foundation on my face. The feeling was so nice. Next she put some eye liner on and some eye
shadow and then some mascara, the whole time explaining to me what they were for and how to apply them. She finished off with a deep red lipstick. I looked into the mirror and I was even more
beautiful. Rita smiled; I think you like the way you look shall I do your nails. I just smiled and nodded yes. When she finished she had me stand in front of the mirror. I had never thought I could
look so beautiful. Rita went and put on a skirt and top and her heels. She stood next to me; we look like sisters don’t we she asked? I said yes. She gave me a light kiss on the cheek as not to mess
our makeup. How about we spend the day as sisters and go shopping. I looked at her with a scared look on my face. Go out in public like this. She smiled, you are a beautiful young lady nobody will
know so you want to go shopping don’t you. I smiled and said yes. We spent the day at the mall and tried on all kinds of clothes and shoes. We even got my ears pierced. I had so much fun. When we got
home it was late so Rita showed me how to take my makeup off and we got ready for bed. I put my pink night gown on and climbed into bed with Rita. I thanked her for an incredible day and gave her a
goodnight kiss on the cheek. She smiled; sweat dreams and I have a big surprise for you tomorrow
#693
mohit(Saturday, 28 January 2017 05:40)
revange by gf
Sunday Morning we got up and Rita helped me get dressed in a white skirt with a green top and again gave me her 4″inch heels to wear. She put on a little makeup and then she got dressed in a skirt
and top and heels and again we looked like sisters. We grabbed our purses and we left. I asked where we were going but she just smiled. Relax you will love it. We pulled into a parking lot and
parked. I looked out and there was a beauty salon. Rita and I walked in and the lady greeted Rita with a hug, so this is your Cousin she is lovely. I looked at Rita and didn’t know what to say. Rita
just smiled and said Mohini, say hi to Linda. I looked at Rita and then Linda and said hi. As we walked in Rita smiled; just relax dear you are fine just remember to answer to Mohini. I asked why she
called me Mohini. Rita smiled, sweaty looking like you do you can’t go by Mohit, and she thinks you are a girl so I gave you a female name. You do like it don’t you dear? Linda sat me down and
started to wash my long brown hair which was now down to my shoulders. After she washed it she put a cream in my hair. Then she smiled, let’s start on your face dear. She put a cream on my face and
then started to work on my eyebrows. She used a little wand that admitted a light and some heat. It felt strange and tingled as she went over them.
She washed the cream out of my hair and then started to wrap it in curlers. Soon my head was a mass of curlers and it felt like my hair was being pulled out of my head. I still had the cream on my
face which was now drying and getting hard. She took me over to a seat and I put my feet into a little tub. It was so relaxing. Linda then took my feet out and massaged them. It was so incredible I
have never felt anything so wonderful. Rita was in the seat next to me and noticed the smile. Are you enjoying your day of beauty sweaty? I knew I shouldn’t but I was so I said yes. When Linda
finished my massaging my feet she dried them off and then she applied a deep red nail polish.
#694
Jau(Saturday, 28 January 2017 23:33)
Nice story Mohit plz. Continue... Eagerly waiting...
#695
Julee(Sunday, 29 January 2017 03:44)
Wife to my brother
Hi all of u i m from mumbai this story is between me and my brother
how i expressed him that i m a crossdresser and how i become his wife
my name is amit and my brothers name is suraj.
He is an mechanical engineer this story happened 2 years back when i
was in my 12 and he was in his final year of engineering my parents
were at bangalore and me and my husband (i.e. brother) are alone at
our house. I used to crossdress whenever i m left alone at home and i
used to do all the household chores like a women by wearing saree and
all other stuff which i had purchased. Everyday i used to sleep
seperately bcoz of my crossdressing habbit i used to wear nity and
sleep at nighyt but one saturday he came and knocked at my door and i
asked what happen he replied that he wants me to sleep with him i also
accepted that and i slept with him this goes on CONTINUING on every
saturday. But on one saturday night we both were not able to sleep we
were discussing about sex and in meanwhile he started telling me his
fantasy over our mom i stopped him and told him that what are you
telling she is our mom he told so what and compromissed me but i
should say that i would also started liking incest one fine day my
husband(i.e my brother) came home at 1 in the night i asked him where
did you go he told me that he had gone to attend his friends wedding
celebration so i told him to have dinner and i gone to bed after
sometimes he came to my bedroom. My goodness on that night i was not
wearing nity. I asked him what happened y did u come to my room and he
doesn't said anything and came beside me and slept and i also slept.
But after sometimes i was feeling some erection on my cock i slightly
opened my eyed and sw that my husband is rubbing my cock i was not
understanding wat to do i was also really enjoying that so i donot
said anything to him and left him. This was the day of climax it was
saturday and my hubby told me to come to his room i told him that you
sleep i will come after sometimes on meanwhile i shaved all the hair
in my body and made my body like a women body smooth. After sometimes
entered his room i can see him that he his sleeping but i was knowing
that he was acting like he was sleeping so i removed my shirt and i
was only in my short and go slept beside him after sometime i can feel
his hand over my cock so in rply i also put my hand over is penis he
paniced for a second and saw me i was seeing into his and he was also
seeing into my eyes on a sudden he came close to me hugged me tightly
and started kissing me over my lips we both smooched for 5 mins i
really enjoyed that he told me too suck his cock i sucked it for 10
mins it was really tasty and he told me that ok darling its enough for
today and in rply i also said ok and kissed in his lips and we both
slept. On sunday i decided to tell him about my crossdressing fantasy.
So on night when he came to bed and slept beside me i told him that
honey wait for a scond i will be back he told me that go take u r time
darling i kissed on his forehead and went to the kitchen where in the
shelf i used to hide my saree, bra, peticoat and all other stuff. I
decided to wear a pink colour chiffon saree i removed all the matching
stuff related to the saree like pink peticoat, pink panty and i
started wearing them and APPLIED make up in the face and kept a wig on
my head and in no time i became a beautiful women who is ready for is
first night with his hot husband. I slowly opened the door and i saw
that my husband is sleeping naked and i closed the main door and room
door and all other WINDOWS of the house. I go close to him and told
that honey wake up u r darling is ready to sleep with u. He opened his
eyes and saw me seeing me he was really paniced and asked me that
where is my brother and i told him that i m u r brother my hero and
told him that from now onwards whenevere we are at home i m u r wife
and u r my husband he was not able to say a single word so i slept
beside him and started kissing him passionately he really enjoyed that
he told me that show me u r ass i will fuck u. I was showing my sexy
ass he pinched my ass and said what a ass u lovely and he started
inserting his 8" cock into my ass i was deeply immersed in the pain
but i really loved that pain he started fucking me hardly and fastly i
satarted to moan like slut
#696
Julee(Sunday, 29 January 2017 03:47)
like aaaaaaaahhhhhhhhhhh
hhhhhhhhhmmm ooooohhhhhhhhhh he said to suck his cock i was sucking
his cock while sucking his cock i can feel the smell of ass in his
cock and after sometime he mastrubated in my mouth and he asked me
what is u r name sexy i not replied bcoz i had not kept any name for
me when i m crossdressed. I tiold him that i had not kept any name
when i m crossdressed so he told me that from now onwards u r name
will be pavithra i paniced for and told him that it's our mom's name
he told it's her name and he told me that whenever he want
#697
vasantha(Sunday, 29 January 2017 08:48)
mohit continued your story very nice
#698
SRS(Tuesday, 31 January 2017 00:01)
Mohit please continue ur story
#699
satya(Tuesday, 31 January 2017 12:39)
tomorrow i will start new story
ACCIDENT CHANGED DESTINY
#700
satya(Tuesday, 31 January 2017 12:50)
ACCIDENT CHANGED DESTINY 1
early morning 5,30 alarm ringng i woke up and stopped it and stand i was in nighty and i went to bathroom and fresh up and take bath and came out and open the almirah today friday so take one yellow
saree and wear petticoat bra blouse and saree and go to puja room and did puja and prayed about my husband and chldren and make tea and went tomy mil room and wake up her and wake up my husband and
children one son and daughter both are 8 years old and make tiiffin t them amd cook food for lunch and i sended them to school and i send my husband to office and evening 5 children willcome and do
thier work and sleep and at 8 husband will come and we ate foood and clean all utensils and went foe bedroom and he will enjoy me and sleep this is my daily rutine and frget to say my name is satya
and my age is 29 now , this is my famly
but i am not female by birth i am male one accident changed my destiny up to my age 22 i am male studyng btech but now wife and mother of two children how it will happen let us see now
#701
Ishu(Wednesday, 01 February 2017 02:43)
Everyone knows the story your story satya please write some new stories don't waste our blog
Stress buster
My name Nisha a 22 year old engineer and Female to male cross dresser i stay alone at my apartment to fulfill my fetish but i am so thin and short i can't make good man only macho thing i have is
height that i like it very much. i always dress like a guy but it not satisfied me i want something more and different one day while surfing in the internet i watched video where a young girl dress
herself like a old man for frank. By seeing that girl i got excited i dressed myself like old man i felt happy and i saw myself in the mirror find satisfied watching myself i can easily pass away
like a old man no body can suspect on me. So i took hand stick and started walking slowly with shivering like a old man Like that i visited temple and some places all are calling me grand pa i don't
know why but whenever someone is calling grand pa it makes me so happy.
I had a dinner in the hotel i came out for taxi somebody pushed me from the back i turned i saw a lady she is looking like in 30's but she dressed like a young girl she wore mini up to her thighs and
top her breasts is clearly visible from her top. She said sorry grand pa i am very sorry and given her hand she lifted me. I said ok beta you young people will always in a hurry by listening her face
glowed like a bulb and she said grand pa i will drop you i said no beta i will find auto or taxi i don't want to trouble you. No issue please treat me like a grand daughter i said ok beta but i will
find my taxi she took my hand and taken me to her car and opened the door and i sat inside and she kept my seat belt and took driving seat. I said beta why are you taking so much risk dear i will go.
She said grand pa i thought you are like my own grand pa but you are its ok. I said i don't wanna hurt you my intention is you must reach home early because it is not safe girls to roam late nights.
Oho poor grand pa we are new generation girls don't worry i will take care of myself.
I guided her to my home she said do you stay here i said yes i thought did she knew me but i din't seen her early we went inside i kept my hand on her shoulder and she taken me inside and she sat on
sofa heavily after coming inside after she sat i stuck with a shock by seeing she said want happen and stood then she understood her wig fallen aside and immediately she fell on my legs please grand
pa don't say this thing to any one i quickly regained my conscious i saw her in the weeping and i closed the door. i signed her to bring the water she brought it and i drank i sat on the sofa she sat
on the floor and pressing my legs and started conversation said grand pa i am project manager in BIG MNC and my wife bullies me for my mental peace i will do this you are the first person to know
about this i am not any sex pervert i will do this for my mental peace only. Immediately i stood and me too and removed my wig and he shocked. he is double of my age and his became red with anger and
i was shivering.
He said you know what is your punishment for this you will become my permanent grand pa i got relieved and said come beta hugged her.
Please post your comments
#703
Preethi(Wednesday, 01 February 2017 13:29)
Prologue....
Bhummida puttina prathi prani yokka thalaratha mundu gane nirnayinchabadutundhi....Ela ravalo, ela undalo, ela povalo antha aa layakaarudi kanusanallo jarugutundhi....Manishi ane vadu nimmittha
matrudu matrame ....prema, kopam, jali, daya, paga, karuna, anadham, badha, vyamoham .... ityadhi bhavalu anni kevalam aa devudu – manishi chutti srustinchina Maya valayam.... ee manava manassu tho
ivi mudivesukuni kalaniki anugunanga thama thama kartyamnni nirvartistuntayi... ee valayanni chedichukunnavadu Gnani avuthadu.....ee valayam lo chikkukunna varu kalam ade natakam lo kilu bommalu ga
mari alamatistuntaru......
Kalam tho pate prayanichamtam anedhi manishi nerchukovalasina modathi sutram....alantappude bhummida manugada sadyam avthundhi....Vidhata rasina vidiratha ku ettivarina sirassu vanchalsindhe kadani
kalam ki eduregi vellina endoro vyakthula jeevitha saramu mana puranallo enno udaharanaa lu chusam...atti vati nundhi manam telusukovalasinadhi jagarthaga undali ani...Enni tharalu, enni yugalu ,
entha gnanam sampadinchina manishi cheyyalendhi srusti ki prathi srusti cheyyadam.........Kadani kalam ki eduregi ratha rasina vadi yokka vidhi ni githa lla marchi srusti ki prathi srusti
cheylanukunna neti yugam lo kondari vyakthula jeevana gamaname ....... Naa ee story.....
Part - 1
2014 , Banglore, night – 11: 45 Pm ...Dr. Rajkumar road lo ni Pvr cinemas lo second show complete avvagane janam bayataki raasagaru....vallallo oka yuva ganta ...bahusa athaniki 21 years undochu,
ameku 19 years.....Iddaru white color T shirt and blue color jeans vesukoni okari chetilo marokaru cheyyi vesukoni kaburulu cheppukuntu navvuthu , tulluthu bayataki vachi main road mida naduchukuntu
veltunnaru....
Road lo janam hadavidi taggindhi...ammai matladuthu.... Hey Raj...Ippudu time entha ani adigithe...Tanu watch chusi 11:50 annadu...Hmm sare anindhi..iddaru silent ga nadustunnaru...mari kontha duram
poyaka malli time entha ani adigindhi...Oy ipuude kada cheppanu ani 11:55 annadu... Antha kopam deniki ani atani bhujam mida gillindhi...Inkasta duram poyaka tanu matladuthu ....asalu eroju date
gurtundha ani adigindhi...enduku gurtu ledu...9th and inko two minutes agithe ...10th vastundhi indulo emundhi annadu.....Sare pada ani visuruga munduku kalidindhi ammai manasulo 10th na birthday ne
marchipoyadu idiot vedi pani cheppali anukundhi.....Elopu 12 aipoindhi...Iddaru alane mellaga naduchukuntu veltunnaru...
Mari koncham duram poyaka ......Sudden ga Raj aa ammai cheyyi pattukoni lakkuni main road lo nunchi pakkane unna iruku chikati sanduloki tisukuvelladu...hatattuga raj ala tanani sandu loki lagesariki
em artham kaledu aa ammai ki...Tanani oka goda ki anichi tana ki baga daggaraga nilabaddadu...Okari uchavasa nisvasalu marokariki vinapadentha daggaraga nilabaddaru...Ammai tadabaduthu Ey Raj entidhi
kottaga ani adigindhi...haa niku teliyada enti pinky ani annadu....pinky gunde kottukune vegam perigipotundhi...siggutho tala dinchukundhi....Raja tana muni vellatho pinky face pi unna tana kurulanu
sutaramga chevi venakki vestu...pinky nuditi mida vachina chiru chemata ni tudichi....Tana nudithi mida Kiss Chesi ...Wish you a very Happy birthday ani cheppagane...pinky tana chetultho raj chest
mida koduthu poh...intha sepu nannu aata pattinchakuvu kadu ..you...ani mellaga chest pina kodutundhi......
#704
preethi(Wednesday, 01 February 2017 13:33)
part 2
Raj pinky chetulani pattukoni tana cheti vella madylo pinky cheti vellu ponichi godaki adimi petti pinky pi valadu....Raj entidhi ani tana tala etti raj kalla llo kallu petti chustundhi pinky....Raja
koddiga kindaku tana tala ni vanchadu.....vari iruvuri peduvulu anti antanattu baga daggaraki vachesai....Okari kallatho marokaru oosulu cheppukuntunnaru.....ematram alasyam cheyyakunda Raj ventane
pinky adaralanu andipuchukunnadu.....sutharamga modalina chumbanam gatu ga maripoindhi.....Kalam kuda stambinchipoindhi vari pranayaniki....pinky tana chetulani vidipinchukoni muddu pedutune Raj ni
tamakamtho penavesukupoindhi...Raj premaga tana chetultho pinky buggalu pattukoni muddu ni istune unnadu....Gali kuda vari madyna naligipoyi tanake oopiriki adaka ibbandi padutundhemo annathaga
aliganam chesukoni unnaru....pinky udrekam tho tana rendu kallani Raj nadumu mida vesi tana chetulanu Raj juttuloki ponichi tana vellatho atu itu adisthu raj ki mattekkistundhi.....Raj tana chetulu
pinky nadumu midaku vesi tana pedavulu vadili koddiga kindaku vachi tana gaddem mida muddu pettukuntu...Nadumu midanunchi tana chetulani pinky back side tshirt loki ponistu..face ni inkasta kindaku
dinchi tana neck mida muddu petti....mari kasta digi tana notitho pinky t shirt ni pattukoni laguthunnadu yeda bagam kanipinchela........tarvatha em jarigiddo artham ayyi pinky ventane terukoni tana
kalla pi nilabadi ......Haa Raj ika chalu....antha road mide chestava enti ani kannu kottindhi.....Raj navvukoni tana jebulo cheyyi petti heart shape lo unna locket okati tisi pinky medalo
vesadu....
pinky Raj vesina locket ni pattukoni prema ga chustundhi...Raj matladuthu idhi kevalam locket matrame kadu pinky ...Idhi mana kalaikaku punadhi....Asalu manam kalvataniki oka karanam ...annintiki
minchi idhi na manassu....Badram ani annadu....pinky tana arachetto pattukoni Idhi na pranam ani cheppi tanani gattiga hattukundhi santhosham tho....Ala vatesukoni oka 5 nimishalu gadichina alane
unnaru....Raj matladuthu pinky ika veldamaaa antey....Uhu ani naku ilane undipovali anipistundhi ani Raj ni vadalledhu....Inkasepu unte chali ki iddaram gaddakattukoni ilage undhipotham eppatiki
..pada veldam ani kougili vidistunte pinky api enta tondara ..modduabbai ki channallaki mood vachi modati sari ila chestunnav..inthalo veldamante ela ...anindhi...Hmm ikapi ala jaragadule ammai
..niku nachinattu untaga ga ani annadu...Inthalo pinky ki Raj morning tanatho edo important matter matladali annattu gurtuku vachi ...Avunu natho edo important vishyam matladali annav kada ani
adigindhi........
Haa baga gurtu chesav.... ani edo vishayam cheppabotunte inthalo valla mida bike focus light padindhi...Chikatlo okkasariga light valla mida padesariki kallu bairlu kammai ...em jarugutundho ani
terukunelopu bike valla midaku dusukuravatam gamaninchi Raj pinky ni main road mida ku nettesadu .aa visuruki tana talaku debba tagilindhi..Bike vachi raj ni dikondhi...Tanu vachi main road mida
paddadu...Raj terukoni lechelopu eduraga oka car ravatam tanaki dash ivvatam....Kshnallo tanu gallo levatam...melli melli ga tanu chupu boodara boodara ga maratam chaka chaka jarigipoyay....Baram ga
swasa tisukuntu pinky ne chestu sruha kolpoyadu
#705
Bebo(Wednesday, 01 February 2017 17:15)
Mohit pls continue one of the best story.... the way ria is treating him like sister similarly my gf also treats me like sister..
#706
SRS(Thursday, 02 February 2017 00:02)
Mohit please continue
#707
mohit(Friday, 03 February 2017 06:55)
REVANGE BY GF
She led me over to a little table and then started to work on my nails; again Rita was at the table next to me. We had been there for over two hours now. Linda filed my nails and then glued nail tips
onto them. She cut them so they were about ½ inch longer and then she started to apply a paste on top of them. I was amazed at how quickly and perfectly she applied it to my nails. I looked at Rita
and she smiled, just enjoy your day. Linda filed the nails again and then applied the nail polish. First a clear coat then two coats of the same deep red and then a top coat. I was took over to a
seat and told to put my hands under a light to dry the nail polish. Rita sat next to me; beautiful aren’t they. Don’t you just love the way they look. They were beautiful and I know I should have
hated it but I didn’t. I loved them.
When they had dried Linda took me back over to the where I started and took the curlers out of my hair and started to brush out my hair. She played with it for almost twenty minutes and then smiled.
You are lovely dear. She then washed the dried cream off my face and started to put on my makeup. It didn’t take long to apply my makeup and I sat there and kept looking at Rita as the lady working
on her did her makeup. She looked so beautiful just like a model and I wondered what I was going to look like. When we were all done Linda took me over to a full length mirror and I got the first
look at myself. I was beautiful. My eyebrows had been shaped into a high thin feminine arch and my brown hair was now blonde, it was very wavy and very full. It looked like I had twice as much hair.
My makeup was flawless and I looked completely like a young lady. Rita stood next to me; Mohini you are gorgeous and she gave me a hug. Did you like my little surprise dear? I said yes I loved it, I
never stopped to even think how I could hide this or what my mom would say or how I could go to school. I never thought about anything except how I looked right now. Rita said we should go now. I
thanked Linda and we left. In the car I couldn’t take my eyes off of my nails.
When we got back to Rita’s house she smiled. Mohini my dear I have one more surprise for you and gave me a hug again. I asked what and she said just wait. We walked into her house and there was
Rohini sitting on the couch, Rohini looked at me and smiled. Wow Mohini you look beautiful and she came over and gave me a hug. I thanked her and shyly looked down. Rohini walked around me, I can’t
believe how great you look nobody would ever know you were once a boy. We had talked for over fifteen minutes before I realized something was wrong, why was Rohini here in Rita’s house. I got a
really scared look on my face and then I heard Rita; well I think you finally figured it out now sit down. I don’t know why but I sat down and just looked at them. I finally asked how they found out.
Rita smiled did you like getting your nails done and the way we talked she asked? I said yes. She smiled again, that’s what girls do when they get their nails done. They chat with the nail tech and
with the girls around them. Imagine my surprise when I was talking to Rohini and she was telling me all about her new boyfriend who by the way had the same name as my boyfriend.
#708
mohit(Friday, 03 February 2017 06:57)
revange by gf
Rohini started to yell, how dare you lie to us and cheat on us. I thought you and I had something special. I said we did but she told me to shut up. When we realized you were dating us both I was so
mad but Rita wanted to treat you a lesson. She came up with this idea and I thought it was a good idea. I looked at her, so you dressed me up as a girl to teach me a lesson I asked? She smiled you
still don’t get it do you. We didn’t just dress you up, look at your breasts your hips and waist. I started to get really scared. Rita came over and looked at me. Sweaty did you like your tampons she
said? I just looked at her with a horrified look. Well before I inserted it I put in several capsules of powerful female hormones and a male testosterone blocker. You are now more female then most
women are. She reached out and cupped my breast in her hand and I looked down at them. What have you done to me I said softly. Rohini came over to me. You know how you have been worried about your
weight because your pants didn’t fit anymore. It was the hormones that were making your hips grow. She put a scale down in front of me and told me to stand on it. I did as I was told and Rohini
smiled perfect dear, you weigh 115 pounds. I looked at her with shock. It was imposable, I had lost 15 pounds and my pants didn’t fit. Rita took a tape measure and measured my waist and haps and
bust. She looked at Rohini, you are right she is perfect 34-24-34 and at least a C-cup. You make a beautiful woman Rohini said and by the way those weren’t weight loss pills I gave you. They were a
hypnotic drug that would allow us to get you to do what we wanted. I was really scared now; these two girls were trying to turn me into a woman. I looked at them and said in my most defiant voice, I
will not let you do this to me. I will stop you somehow I will tell people what you have done to me. Rohini laughed; sweaty it is too late for that dear. We have already turned you into a female just
look at yourself and remember we have control over you. I looked at them and said no you don’t and got up to leave. Rita smiled at me, where are you going sweaty she asked? I told her I was leaving.
Rita smiled that’s fine dear but I think you better put your tampon in first honey so turn around and bend over. I don’t know why but I stopped and pulled down my panty and I felt Rita push several
things into my butt and then she inserted the tampon. There you are my sweaty that is the last of the hormones and will finish the job. You will not remove the tampon till tonight. I looked at her
and said yes and then realized what had just happened. I wanted to remove it but I couldn’t. They saw the terror on my face when I realized I would do what they said. Rohini smiled I see you now
understand the hold we have on you now sit down. I sat down and Rohini smiled, for the rest of the week you will do what we say and you will enjoy every minute of it dear or we may make you do some
things you won’t like. You will think of us as your big sisters and you will only answer to the name Mohini, do you understand Mohini? I just looked at them and said yes. The rest of the week went
quickly and even though I knew what they had done I couldn’t stop going along with it.
On Sunday morning we got up and got dressed, I did my own makeup and had no problem with it. We drove over to my house and I asked why. Rohini smiled, your mom and sister will be home today and it
would be nice if you were there to greet them. I begged them to stop and change me back. Rita gave me a little hug, sweaty even if we wanted to we can’t now. You are to female now. When we got there
they gave me the same pink bikini I had worn before and told me to put it on. I did as I was told and looked at myself. The top barely held my now huge breasts in them, I looked totally female. I
joined Rita and Rohini at the pool. I asked how they were going to explain this to my mom and sister. Rohini smiled you will dear. When your mom asked what you are doing you will tell her this was
your idea. You came to Rita and told her you wanted to wear her bra and panties and begged her to help her. Rita smiled you liked it so much you then asked Rohini to help dress you up. We didn’t want
to but you were are friend and after you kept begging we agreed. You then went on line and bought some female hormones and started taking them and didn’t tell us. When we found out we tried to stop
you and tried to get you to talk to your mom but you told us not to say anything. You cried telling us how you longed to be a woman and that was the only way you would be happy. We finally agreed to
help you. I can’t possible tell her that but before I finished Rohini smiled, sweaty you will tell her that
#709
mohit(Friday, 03 February 2017 06:58)
revange by gf
About an hour later I heard the door to the house open and out walked Mom and Julli. I was as scared as they walked over to us. Mom looked at me, my god what are you doing she yelled. I looked at her
and said, mom it’s not Rita or Rohini’s fault. I begged them to help me. I want to be a woman I have to be a woman. I couldn’t believe what I was saying. I told my mom exactly what Rohini had told me
to say. Mom just stared at me and Julli was laughing. Mom finally looked at me and saw my breasts and I told her about the female hormones I had bought. I thought she was going to yell more or even
hit me but she gave me a hug. I guess I have no choice but I wish you had come to me first, and then she told Julli to stop laughing. She looked at Rita and Rohini, you two should have also told me
but I can see you are good friends to help her and not judge her. Mom then said well Mohit I guess I have a new daughter. I looked at her and wanted to scream but all I could say was, Mom I don’t
like that name please call me Mohini. She just nodded and gave me another hug. Rita and Rohini stayed for dinner and after we ate we went back out to the pool.
Rohini smiled, how have you liked your day dear? I just said I can’t believe what you made me tell my mom. Rohini smiled again, it was so much fun but I think we are done. She looked me in the eyes,
Mohini listen to what I tell you. Tonight when you go to sleep you will remember today. What you told your mom will become the truth. You will believe with all your heart what you told her. You came
to us. When you wake up tomorrow you will be totally happy as a girl and know that it is what you have always wanted. You will forget about how you were once a boy. You will start to think about boys
and how you want a boyfriend. I got scared again as she kept going on. You will not be attracted to girls. You will be attracted to boys. But you will only date boys who are 6′ tall as you will
always want to wear heels that are at least 4’inches high and you will almost always wear dresses or skirts with very revealing tops. You will want to show off how female you are. Do you understand
she asked? I said yes as the horror of what she just said went through my mind. Rita came over and gave me a hug. One last thing dear we are the best of friends now and we tell each other everything.
You will not hid anything from us do you understand? I said yes and felt a little better that they would be my friends. They both gave me a hug again and then Rohini smiled oh by the way from here on
out the drug will not have any effect on you and nobody can tell you what to do or control you anymore do you understand? I said yes.
We sat there and I could not stop thinking about tomorrow and how after tonight I would be a girl and happy about it and I would be attracted to boys. I looked at Rohini and Rita, I have learned my
lesson please stop this before I go all the way. I looked so scared and Rita looked at Rohini, maybe we are going too far. I felt hope and maybe this would stop. Rohini smiled you may be right but we
can’t stop it now. I looked at her just tell me not to like boys and that I don’t want to be a girl. Rohini smiled I can’t the last command I gave you was to deactivate the drug. What I said. Rohini
smiled I thought we might feel guilty and change our minds so I made it so we can’t. Rohini then looked at me, Mohini I want you to go tell your mom your mom you changed your mind and you want your
name to be Mohit. I looked at her I hate that name Mohini is much better. What did I just say; I refused to do what she said. Rohini smiled you see we can’t undo what we have told you now there is
nothing any of us can do but tomorrow you will feel better and we will all be the best of friends. I went to bed that night and new tomorrow my life would change and the only comfort I had was I
would be totally happy and I fell asleep.
I hate that name Mohini is much better. What did I just say; I refused to do what she said. Rohini smiled you see we can’t undo what we have told you now there is nothing any of us can do but
tomorrow you will feel better and we will all be the best of friends. I went to bed that night and new tomorrow my life would change and the only comfort I had was I would be totally happy and I fell
asleep
Our Identity
Continuation of 676
We took blessings of MIL and my MIL told my told sarla from know on-wards your name in this house will be srikanth and you are my son in law. Srikanth with a wicked smile shown her acceptance. she
settled on the sofa and relax and i went to kitchen and cleaned utensils and kitchen floor and cooked food started cleaning the floor tied my sari tightly to cover my breasts properly sarla alias
srikanth starring at my body while cleaning. i felt ashamed but i did it then i started cooking while cooking sarla alias srikanth came to kitchen and asked for water i said ji and served water to
her in the glass she took a sip of water and spanked my buttocks and said you have to shape it properly if not i will take a charge. i said ok ji she kept her hand on my shoulder and said i am
enjoying to satisfy my ego please kiss my feet i said ok ji and kissed her feet. i completed cooking and served to both and after completion of their lunch i started cleaning my clothes after that i
had lunch. Than sarla changed into short and told to press her legs i said ok ji and started pressing her legs if was not doing my job properly she is kicking me on my head.
I heard door bell sound and i saw sarla alias srikanth is in a deep sleep so i closed bedroom door and opened the main door i saw elderly in her early sixties and she said oho disha you are looking
very beautiful my dear i was dumb listening this i simply said how r u aunty and given her water. i went to my MIL room and informed her about the visitor and she saw from the bedroom and said she is
her old friend name malathi. I said malathi aunty thinking that i am disha then MIL said it is ok don't think to much my MIL and malathi discussed for some time and malathi aunty said she came her to
invite for her daughter's baby shower and malathi aunty told me to stay with her for 3 days because she don't have any one to help i can't deny in that situation but i was thinking my MIL said ok to
malathi aunty.
Malathi aunty left and i asked my MIL how can i manage 3 days like a woman My MIL said you can easily manage and if you find any problem call me i will guide you. Sarla came out and dressed in her
sari and said she is leaving for the day. I was totally nervous from tomorrow i have to go to malathi aunty's house to help her. for the Whole day i was in sari and i slept in nightie in night and
next morning i woke up and cooked break fast and dressed in sari and prepared lunch for MIL and kept in the HOT box. I took my car and visited aunty's house and aunty introduced her daughter her name
is rani. Rani and disha are not meet before so i was happy if she known about disha she also knows about her habits so she can easily find me. I told rani and aunty to relax i took charge of the
works i order cook to prepare sweets and hots for tomorrow and i prepared list of all items required for function and for guidance i called my MIL and i prepared garlands for rani beautiful and i
supervised decoration of house and stage later i became tired and sat beside rani. Rani said thank you darling for help i said MY MIL will be alone so i will make a move malathi given food carriage
for both us i took it and left to my home. My MIL opened the door and asked me how is ur day i said today i was reborn as a woman.
Please post your comments
Our Identity
Next day i woke up early and i told my MIL to get ready early and we got ready i wore my wife jewelry and silk sari i was looking like a angel and i went to the hall my MIL waiting for me their and
she surprised seeing me like that. We hurried to malathi aunty home i took my MIL to rani's room and introduced rani to her and she blessed rani and malathi aunty came in and she is looking nervously
my MIL asked her what happen all the women are waiting their i am waiting for maid to apply turmeric paste to women's legs and to start the event. Rani said don't worry mom call her she will be their
malathi aunty said i called her but she said her son is sick and she will come after visiting the doctor. My MIL said don't worry where is turmeric paste malathi aunty shown it my MIL and my MIL told
me to apply it to all ladies.
Oho what a day for me know i am touching more than hundreds of women legs i think all my sins will go away so i want to each and every women and applied turmeric paste and wow after that i helped
rani in dressing actually i forgot i was man i am doing all the women's work. One aunty kept flowers in my hair and other aunty applied turmeric paste to my legs and malathi aunty given me sari and
told me to change i wore it and came to stage i saw rani is sitting in the chair and she called me their and told me to sit on the chair beside her i sat she told me keep my sari pallu on my thighs
so that all the women will give their offerings i asked her why are telling me this to do. she said it is ritual they will make women who is newly married or who wants to have baby they will make sit
beside the baby shower lady and all women will given their blessings to both so that pregnant women will get beautiful baby and other woman will get pregnant soon.
After listening this my eyes filled with water i can't explain i din't received this much attention or love as a man. Oho god why you have given male birth i cursed myself meanwhile i heard something
from photographer and turned to him and asked excuse me what you said he told me to smile. We both sat all the women came one by one and started rituals they have given aarthi and every women kept
thikka on our fore head and giving fruits as a offerings somebody given me money also and all women kissing us. i saw my MIL her eyes also filled with tears and later we had a bangles function in the
night i got a one typical task.That i should dress two women as a men and for night party i said no aunty both the aunties came took my hand started begging me i said ok if wont say yes they will
kill me.
Then we had lunch after lunch all the woman started gossips and jokes over their husband i was shocked and enjoyed later rani sat on the chair i prepared gift packets for everyone and i was giving it
to rani and rani passing this to all women at four clock all the rituals completed all are awaiting for night and both the women said they will come by seven clock. I told rani i want to sleep i
changed in to nightie and slept thinking of night disaster.
Please post your comments
Stress buster-2
There in no romance between me and rajesh my manager more than romance now we connected relational to each other. I asked him will you stay for today he said he want to leave for the night and every
day after office hours he will come to my house to be my grand daughter i agreed and permitted him to leave.I am feeling proud know i don't why while eating also i am thinking about something and i
don't slept well in the night. Next day as usual i went to office and i saw rajesh is still not in his cabin i am worried about him i don't why i am worried for him he can take care of him. he came a
hour late and visited his cabin and he stood after seeing me and wished me good morning grand pa. I sat on the chair he said grand pa i was not slept properly whole night i was thinking about our
weird meeting. I slapped him and said this is office don't i am not your grand pa nor you are my grand daughter. He said ok and i asked him reason for his late coming. he said he slept around 4 A.M
in the morning and he woke up at late. i told him to do sit up's for breaking the reasons after that i visited my table.
I was busy whole day with my work and i left a hour late from office and i saw my house was opened i thought rajesh would have come and i went inside the house and sat on the sofa i shouted bring the
water and closed my eyes. I felt that someone was removing my shoes i opened my eyes one women with a white hair removing my shoes i said excuse she lifted her head her faces seems to be familiar and
her skin glowing like very young lady but her hair is white rajesh came out and said good evening grand pa and kissed me on my cheeks. I asked angel who is she and both are seeing me i am asking you
rajesh you are my little angel i am your grand pa naa. she laughed and said grand ma I said i under stood that and who is he in really she said i am vaibhav i was shocked vaibhav is vice president in
very young dynamic leader and handsome a heart throb of total our office now he removed my shoes. Rajesh said vaibhav watched what all happened in my cabin and he called me and asked about it i was
afraid about my job so i explained him every thing so he got excited and he want to join so i brought him here. I said oho ok i will come in a moment i got freshed and dressed like a old man and came
out. i saw rajesh leaving from their i said are your leaving he said he got a call for home and he has to leave i said love u beta see you tomorrow.
Vaibhav watching Tv i sat beside him and said hey vaibhavi he saw me in shock i said this is my house you must follow my rules he said yeah please.First tell me truth i said he said about what i said
about this why you want join with that. He said after listening to rajesh i felt excited and this is exactly right because after visiting home everyday after work i will sleep or i will watch
television today in the evening i cooked food and waited for you this is some thing different i have done and this gives me energy for next day to perform well. I said ok you can do all this as a men
why you want to do this as a woman and why you are submissive to me you even removed my shoes. he was dumb he din't spoken a word i said you are excited come with me i taken him to my bed room and
removed that old women hair wig and fixed young women hair wig and given him a beautiful designer sari told him to dress in that he said me to leave i laughed and left from there after 10 minutes
vaibhav came their dressed in that sari. he is looking like women i just went near to him and just adjusted her sari to kept low and sided her pallu so that her navel will be visible oho know he
don't have body hair and he is looking like perfect princess. i hugged him and kissed on the lips oho know he is soft like a young girl both physical and mental he said lets marry i want this for my
whole life.
I was in cloud nine after listening this he served dinner for us while having he said he got raised like a girl from childhood he is not active in sports only studies even he said he don't like to do
job he want to be house wife and he want to show me to his mom because she always wants him to get husband like me. Husband after hearing it i felt like earth stopped for a moment i was his perfect
match. we had a dinner removed my plate and cleaned plates and table he said he want to leave and i said i food was great he blushed with my compliment and said thanks. He want to go sari to home but
i stopped him and told him to change because he is such beautiful princess somebody will rape her if somebody saw her like that.
Please post your comments
Hi sisters write stories on
Boys are forced to grow hair and forcefully getting braided and boys are slowly addicted to and wearing females dress by his sister in law (anni)
#721
SRS(Saturday, 11 February 2017 13:07)
fashion part 19 # 552
Next day I woke a saw that my hands and legs all filled with meheindi which I hate. It’s up to forearm, after I slowly wake up an get fresh, when I came to hall I was shocked to see the parlor woman
is standing along with pretty an my aunt told that they r came for u to prepare for the shoot, and I was ill scared about that, they took me to the room an started to prepare me, first they give me
petticoat an bra and they have seen this fake thing an started to lol , after they drape the saree which is rose with backless an sleeveless blouse, and they did my makeup and they braided my long
hair an put jasmine. now they started with the jewelry , they put payals in my legs which is making extreme sound and dozens of bangles in my both hands and necklace , after they came to ear they put
long jumkas in both ear an diamond studs in balance 3 holes, and they put a long nose ring in left side in my nose an 7 stone diamond stud in right side and a small hanging in the mill of my nostril,
they even put a long navel ring, after lot of struggle we came out side an my aunt was surprised on seeing me, my aunt came near to me and told to me hope if u wear a real woman than v look for a
nice groom, I get angry on hearing that, after they took me to the studio an there lots of pose is been taken that become more humiliating an after finishing the shoot I got a call from that 3 woman
who I gave the money through my company, they r the only responsible for a which happen to me, I dint think anything after the call, I dint care what I wore I simply went there cause they have
promised me to return my money which I have took from our company , when I reach there they all got shock on seeing this new avatar, an I started to shout on them cause for this all they r the
responsible , they told that because of cheating 3 of them so they dint give that money other than that they dint do anything , after hearing this all I asked about the money but they told that still
want to take a last revenge an told after that only they will give my money , I thought for a movement after everything is been done an now what left to do an I accepted, they bring an paper in that
its written something an told to tell in front of them, I was shocked on reading that.
#722
SRS(Saturday, 11 February 2017 13:08)
fashion part 20 ( the end )
it says that from childhood u used to be a girl and I always played with the dolls instead of toys , I secretly cross-dress, am in the wrong body, an am a transgender, I like to be woman and that
nobody knows an am afraid of telling that so please help me. After reading that notes I throw that a started to scream what the hell is that for, and they told that it’s for fun and there is nobody
except v 3 of us, if u don’t than v will not pay the amount after that ur wish. After I think a lot an accept it and I say it louder an when I was finished they started to lol, after they given the
amount an smiled evil that I don’t know y, I took the amount an came to my office an handover to my boss .I was happy at last that I was success, I wrote my resignation letter here after I will not
work for this company an left , I went to my cabin an removed the dress and jewelry but still the permanent makeup and some pricing r left, I thought that I will do something about that afterwards, I
cut all my long hair an came to my home an saw that my aunt welcome with pleasure, but she was surprised of my hair an she is behaving strange, I have explained everything to my aunt either she
believed r not an she told to forgot about the past an tomorrow is ur birthday so I will give u surprise gift that u will never forget. after I took some snack n juice which she make an it was nice ,
I was in my old self with jeans and t-shirt an my aunt took me with her an telling that she had an small work after that she will give my surprise gift, we came nearby big hospital an she told that
she want to meet her friend , I told that I will wait in car but she told that it will took some time some if u come inside so that u can sit in the A/c an relaxed while I will complete my work,
after we went inside an she meet with 1 lady doc an she was most beautiful, I was keep on seeing her breast an body an she noticed me , after my aunt introduce me with her , we took a seat an she
showed some video to doc after when I saw that video I was shocked on seeing that, it was me in the video telling that I was a transgender an I want to be woman, I don’t know how they make this
video, after seeing this video I felt dizziness I don’t know y an my aunt told don’t worry baby we will full fill ur dreams , and I started to explain what had happened there but I dint cause my
mouth is blabbering an I could not able to talk, my aunt told that she has drugged me which I took in snack on this for surprise an told take rest baby from tomorrow u will become my daughter on ur
birthday and I slept. when I wake up I don’t know how many days is been passed, I saw everybody was surrounded me and my boss an aunt all smiling, I slowly tried to getup but I can’t an 1 nurse came
an hold me an make it sit after I suddenly realized that I felt a weight in my chest , I look down an saw two large mount its looks like a breast an in my down there I can’t feel anything, after this
I felt shock an scream but that too was shock on hearing my own voice its became woman voice , an my aunt told happy birthday dear who was my present an my life ends with complete girl.
#723
vasantha(Sunday, 12 February 2017 08:55)
srs very very nice story pls pls pls continue with new story i am early wait for i am your fan for stories pls continue new storie pa
#724
SRS(Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:15)
Thanks a lot vasantha , am real happy that ur my fan, i will fulfill ur wish
#725
SRS(Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:22)
hai this my another story, i hope u like my story
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 1
The story happened on year 2020 where the male to female gender ratio is low as 70:30 and the government passed a new bill for young males in colleges for to fill the gender gap.
Hi my name is Shamala age 25 years old female.
Let me start my story when my age was 18 years old .My birth name is Sham born as a boy. Sham Krishna used to stay with my uncle and aunt in a very rich family where my uncle is industrialist and my
aunt is housewife. My parents have been died when I was small age, and because of my parents my uncle have become so rich a some of the properties are mine. My aunt have two sisters sherya aged 20
and pranitha aged 16 .My uncle is well dominated man in our family and everyone has to obey his orders without any contest. My uncle always thinks and teaches me that women should not raise a word
against man and they are only capable of household work and taking care of children. Because of my uncle impact on me I too started treating women in a different way by not giving any proper respect
to my sisters and aunt. I always used to tease my sisters by pulling their hair bands and bra straps. They usually gave a complaint to my aunt regarding my behavior. What can my aunt do to me hahaha
I always have a full support from my uncle , even though his own daughter he dint care an he always support me.I joined in one of the top engineering college in Chennai. My class strength is of 50
students where 35 are male and 15 are female. I am very good in sports and very poor in studies. Lot of girls try to hang with me because of my money and six pack body but I always treat girls as
candies and try to use them and leave them as dustbins. I am the captain to my class cricket team and volley ball team. I have few enemies in my class one of them is Prakesh and he is a very big
competitor to me in every aspect. He is the vice captain to the cricket team and he is from political background family where his father is Member of Parliament. He tries to dominate me and very
often we are going to fight in the college.Two years gone successfully in the college and on one fine day I have seen a very beautiful girl named Kavita who joined as a fresher to my college.I tried
to talk with Kavita and date with her. But she always smoothly rejects my offers as she is a very reserved and traditional girl. After some days I got frustrated because of her continuous rejections
in my love and I started ragging (teasing) her in college. One day she gave a complaint to her brother as I am continuously teasing and what's the biggest shock I came to know was she is the sister
of Prakesh my rival in the class. He warned me and asked me stay away from his sister. As usual small fight happens between us and this makes Kavita and me apart. She too starts hating me like his
brother Prakesh. Life seems very bore to me and I didn't guess my life is going to completely change very soon. India is one of the top countries which are more advanced in space research and medical
fields. It was year 2025 where the our prime minister Ramiya Krishnan who is the youngest female PM aged 35 years old held a top secret meeting in new Delhi. Top scientists and medical research girls
in the country participated in the meeting and came to conclusion that they have start a revolutionary medical operation in the country by 2025.The operation is named as sakthi. The main goal of this
operation sakthi is to neutralize the gender ratio as 50:50 by turning the access males to females very soon. As of now males are outnumbered as 70:30 due to there is a huge shortage of girls in the
society .Marriage for boys is going to be very difficult and the rape cases on women is going high day by day. The main target of operation sakthi is twenty year old boys in the country. Every twenty
year old boy has to attend a gender test on women's day march 8th every year. If someone misses the test then he is going to pay the price.Test results are declared by depending upon several
analysis. Total marks for this test is 100.Blueprint for this test as follows.10 percentage for sports test,40 percentage for analytical test and 50 percentage of marks is for male hormonal count.The
government of India announced operation sakthi and moved the bill to the parliament. What's interesting is none of the MP's in the parliament opposed because everyone knows the drastic things are
going to happen if they are not going to pass the bill for future generations. So many teenage boys below 21 years old are protested against the bill. The government has taken necessary steps for
these agitations and finally passed the bill in the parliament. The synopsis of this bill is once the guy fails in the gender test they are going to give a drug called sakti which will change the
gender in three months of time.
#726
SRS(Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:24)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 2
Once the news is telecast-ed my uncle and I were shocked because at that time I am 20 years of age and I have to go through the test. My aunt and sisters felt very happy inside even though they
didn't express any enjoyment feelings outside as because my uncle is seriously watching the news. My uncle told me everything is going to be fine and be positive. On that night my sisters came to my
bedroom and told me for sure, I am going to fail the exam because they are some analytical questions in the test which will almost worth of 40 percentage of the result. They waved their hands happily
told me good night sister and soon you are going to join in our bedroom in between two of us. At that time my fear starts inside me what if I am going to fail in the test and what about my future and
how the class boys treats me once I changed to female and what about Prakesh. How can I show my face to Prakesh and his sister Kavita. How my uncle treat me after the change and how my aunt and
sisters take revenge on me. I didn't have proper sleep that night.On the next day every one is the class have a discussion regarding this issue. My college principal Priyanka Sharma conducted a
assembly meeting to all the guys in the college and instructed everyone in the third year engineering guys to prepare well for the exam. She told us mostly last 15 guys in the class out of 50 were
going to fail in the exam and after the result the class is going to maintain 50:50 gender ratio. Those who are going to fail in the test are going to follow special circular throughout the year.
Everyone dispersed from the meeting with at most fears in their heart.On that day my uncle told me he appointed one of the top tutors in the city so that it will be easy to pass in the gender test.
For 2 months I studied hard and prepared for the exam in mean time my sisters are teasing and disturbing me. I am just concentrating for the exam once I got passed then I will show hell to my sisters
by abusing physically and verbally.Day by day I am gaining the confidence and tried to be very good in sports as well. One of my friends told me Prakesh had an accident last night and for him it is
very difficult even to write the exam. Then sudden dreams came to my mind if Prakesh is not going to clear the exam then I will rape both Prakesh and Kavita. on that night I slept very happily by
dreaming Prakesh will fail the exam and am going to harass both Prakesh and Kavita daily in the college.Then it comes to most awaiting day of the year March 8th gender test day. I attended the test
in my college and what surprised me is my enemy Prakesh too attended the test with swollen face. In the evening we had to attend sports test and finally doctor takes our sperm and blood samples. On
April 1st results are going to be displayed on the internet. After completing the test my uncle asked me how I have written the exam. I told him that I am very sure I cracked the exam very well and
we are going to celebrate a big party on our home on April 1st. Because of over confidence in the exam I again started teasing my sisters and Kavita. Kavita is waiting patience for April 1st results.
I asked Kavita about her brother result she told me he will pass the exam with the top in the class. I had a very good laugh for 30min as I know that he will fail in the exam because he didn't do
well in the sports exam. On that day I finally dared to touch kavita breasts and ass because she looks too hot in the saree. she cried and went to her home.It seems I am very lucky she didn't inform
to anyone about this harassment.
#727
SRS(Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:29)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 3
Big Day: April 1st
I woke up in the morning by my sisters and aunt. It seems they went to temple in the early morning for to pray god that I should fail in the exam. My uncle called me and gave Benz car as a gift. I
told him that we will go for a ride after 10am because they will declare results by 9am in the morning.I opened the website gendertest.com and entered my unique id in the screen. Result shows that
Sham Krishna fails the exam. My heart explodes and i am unable to breathe properly. I am hearing very good enjoyment laughs by my sisters in their bedroom. It seems they already gone through my
result. I got a phone call from unknown number says HI BABY..HOW ARE YOU SEXY DOLL..it's me Prakesh …in the background voice someone is saying brother I will take to her..Please I am eagerly waiting
for this undaunted then I came to know she is none other than my lover kavita. She says HI SISTER-IN-LAW I am waiting for you in the college please try to touch me again you will see what is going to
happen next..Then I switched off my mobile phone immediately.My uncle is shouting angrily from the hall and all the servants in my house came to know that I have failed in the exam and I am going to
change into female in next 3 months of time .My aunt came to my room and told me bear your uncle words for today and never say a word against him. I slowly reached to the hall and uncle told me I
have a lot of expectations in you but you have failed to reach my expectations. I always try to give the best and never asked you how much you are going to spend .But today I have lost my only one
son Sham and gained a third daughter Shamala. please return your credit card and Benz car keys. Now onward your aunt will take care about you. I always plan to handover our company when you reach 25
years of age. But now it is out of question and I will try to get best husbands for my 3 daughters. The word husband once reaches to my mind my body starts shivering. Instead of going to office daily
just take care of your husband once you got married then there will not be any problem to you as there is no more analytical test and sports test. Do you know how many marks you got just 79 out of
100.cutoff marks in your class is 81 marks. You have lost the race in 2 marks. Your sister pranitha showed me your marks sheet which is available in your college site. Just move from here and cry
like a girl in your room. I went to my room and closed the door and just thinking how cruel my uncle is. From today onward I should not ask anything from him and just started crying like a girl what
my uncle just said.On April 1st no one tried to console me because they know my condition and I am too much humiliated by my uncle words. On that night my aunt came to my room and told me that
nothing is going to change in a big way so that I can resume my normal happy life from tomorrow. I returned the credit cards and car keys to my aunt and she asked me to sleep early as I have to
attend the college tomorrow morning.The next morning I woke up early completed the bath and started dressing as usual in my jeans pant and body fit tight t-shirt .on seeing the mirror a very handsome
guy resembles and I am too much worried about my body in the next 3 months of time. I tried to get my car keys as usual then I realized i didn't have car now. I complained to my aunt that how can I
go to college without vehicle? In the meantime both my sisters sherya and pranitha joined the conversation and asked me to come with them in their scooty pep (why do boys have all the fun) bike. I
told to them that I never sit in a girl's bike and both my sisters started laughing .They told me that soon I have to travel by only ladies bike to the college or I have an option to travel in a
public bus where so many boys try to touch your new boobies and rounded ass. My aunt interrupted my sister's words and ordered me to go with sherya bike so that she can drop me in the college. I
calmly listened my aunt words and started the journey in my sister's bike. sherya told me to sit properly and during the ride so many boys try to check my sister. I informed to her but she told me
that we should feel happy when someone is watching you and you too will adopt all these things in the very near future. Then I didn't a say a word to her in the journey and finally she dropped me in
my college and shouted "good luck sis" for your first day in the college.
#728
SRS(Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:30)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 4
Then I slowly started walking to my class room and everyone in classroom is watching me as an alien and everyone is whispering with each other and then I saw group of boys are sitting very calm in
the last bench. I occupied a place in the last bench and one girl shouted in the group that " sham please sit with us as we reserved a place for you" then everyone in the class started laughing .Then
I realized she should be prakesh's best friend named tamanna and may be prakesh would have informed her to tease me. Apart from me and the other 14 boys who failed in the exam are sitting very lonely
and they didn't have a life in their face. In the meantime prakesh accompanied with his sister kavitha entered the classroom with a bunch of roses and started walking towards me. My heart beat is up
and he came to me and placed bunch of roses on my desk then everyone is looking to my face and they are very curious that how I am going to react. Then my masculine pride bounces back and started
insulting both kavitha and prakesh but kavitha just slapped me on my face as everyone are watching and she told me this slap is because of what I have done in the past. Then I tried to slap kavitha
but prakesh stopped me and as usual small words exchange between us. Then kavitha left from our class with pride that she slapped me in front of everyone in the classroom. Our principal Priyanka
Sharma called everyone to attend an open auditorium meeting. Everyone just left the class to attend the meeting.Principal addressed the meeting and she gave a speech regarding operation sakti project
and how our college successfully completed the mission. I am not able to concentrate on the meeting because of recent kavitha slap "How dare to touch me in front of everyone " and my mind is
wandering for revenge on both kavitha and prakesh. Then my mind again came back to the principal's speech that we are going to follow new time table for boys who failed in the exam and she starts
reading the names and everyone has to occupy the stage. Now on the stage everyone in the college came to know that I am going to be a girl. She informed to everyone as these boys are going to help
our society we should treat them with at most respect as same as girls. From today we are going to call this group of boys as sakti girls. As the meeting comes to end everyone again went to their
classrooms.One very beautiful middle aged woman named sneha entered to my classroom and every boy in the class have a lust and desire in their eyes including me and she introduced to the class that
she is new teacher specially appointed for to address sakti girls group and mental orientation to all class students.She started announcing new time table for sakti girls group and I am frightened
with the schedule what she has read.
#729
SRS(Sunday, 12 February 2017 12:03)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 5
New Time table:
9AM - 10AM Yoga class
10AM -11AM Home economics class
11AM-12.30 PM Technical class combined with boys
2PM - 3PM cooking class
3PM - 4PM Singing and classical dance class
4PM - 5PM Beauty and Hair care class
5PM - 6PM Exercise and swimming class
Sakti girls today please go to the medical examination room so that all of you get your new medicines and injections for three months so that your bodies are going to blossom as sexy and all of you
can gain curves in right places. Prakesh just saw my face reaction when my teacher sneha is saying all these things and I am very much embarrassed how the things are going to happen in future. Sneha
told that for clothes and other accessories government is going to bare all the expenses so that no need to buy any extra clothes including swim suit for college. And coming to the hair department we
are going to follow a very strict rule that every girl in the college should have a waist length hair and from today onward sakti girls should not cut their hair and they too have a target of below
waist length hair. Then my body is in complete shock and just thinking me from backside that how I am going to resemble to boys?And coming to beauty department every girl including sakti girls should
wear makeup and high heels for the college. Two days in a week has to wear a traditional Indian dress like half saree and the next two days is reserved for to wear a skirt and appropriate tops
(tight). Only one day in a week is for jeans and t-shirt. As it will take time for transition, slowly sakti girls has to adopt all those things and we will give strict instructions to the parents
regarding all these things so that it will help all the sakti girls to promote their feminine nature.As the time passes teacher sneha left from the class and in the evening we sakti girls went to the
medical exam room for to collect medicines. Nurse took all the measurements from every boy and we injected with some pink color liquid in our hips. She told us we need to come to doctor's office for
every 15 days. As curious I just asked the nurse what they have injected by seeing nurse beautiful breasts. She replied that they have injected with estrogen which will block our male puberty and you
too will soon grow a beautiful pair like me. Then I am bit embarrassed by the nurse words and just changed the direction from her breasts to her adorable face. I called to my sister sherya in the
evening as she told me she is going to pick me up in my college.My sister reached to my college and we started to our home. Once reaching to my home my aunt informed me about the new time table and
instructions to the parents list as the college already send a mail to my aunt . In the mean time my other sister pranitha reached home and aunt instructed everyone to have a bath and should gather
everyone in the praying room.I have completed my bath and went to the praying room where my aunt and sisters are waiting for me. She informed me that from today your new life is going to start and
your name is going to change as shamala Krishna.
#730
Shreya(Sunday, 12 February 2017 15:07)
SRS very nice start! Please keep posting regularly.
I am waiting for your updates
plz continue.... if possible pls write a maid owner role reversal long stories.
with love
#734
Jay(Monday, 13 February 2017 20:03)
SRS nice story keep updating.i m Ur big fan.keep it up
#735
vasantha(Tuesday, 14 February 2017 10:42)
srs your very very nice story pls pls continue pa i am ur big fan pls pls continue pa
#736
SRS(Tuesday, 14 February 2017 23:45)
Girls now ur turn, please someone write story like this then I too enjoy.
#737
shruti(Wednesday, 15 February 2017 02:40)
SRS please give update soon
#738
sirisha(Wednesday, 15 February 2017 13:06)
SRS continue your interesting story
#739
shruthi(Thursday, 16 February 2017 11:42)
SRS where are you it's been 4day's since you've updated.pls come fast we are waiting
#740
SRS(Thursday, 16 February 2017 13:04)
please wait, its impossible to continue story immediately . i know ur feeling cause am feeling the same excitement when i read other stories.
#741
Grammar(Saturday, 18 February 2017 11:43)
??????
#742
Sirisha(Saturday, 18 February 2017 14:05)
Grammar why can't you post a story instead of question marks
#743
Aishwarya(Sunday, 19 February 2017 18:58)
Continue stories
#744
Unknown(Sunday, 19 February 2017 21:19)
I don't know what the grammar busted is doing here, spoiling the entire blog.
#745
SRS(Monday, 20 February 2017 07:50)
Ohh no, not again. I'm tired of you. What's your problem grammar
#746
SRS(Monday, 20 February 2017 23:55)
Sisters, last comments is not by me...
#747
shruthi(Tuesday, 21 February 2017 00:18)
SRS please give update soon eagerly waiting for your updates
#748
Susila(Tuesday, 21 February 2017 11:57)
Hi kajal
Please add me to your blog.
Susillshinde@gmail.com
#749
AAAAA(Tuesday, 21 February 2017 15:10)
AJAY AND PRIYA WERE CLASSMATES SINCE CHILDHOOD AND LOVERS.
THEY WERE JUST ABOUT TO JOIN COLLEGE WHEN BOTH THEIR FAMILIES DIED IN AN ACCIDENT.
AJAY AND PRIYA NOW MOVED IN A SMALL HOUSE AND STARTED LIVING IN A LIVE IN RELATION.
PRIYA JOINED A GOVERNMENT COLLEGE AS SHE HAD HIGHER MARKS WHILE
AJAY WAS UNABLE TO GET GOVERNMENT SEAT AND COULD NOT JOIN A PRIVATE COLLEGE TO CONTINUE STUDIES. SO AJAY JOINED A SMALL JOB.
EVENTHOUGH AJAY WAS WORKING HIS SALARY WAS VERY LESS AND EVEN PRIYAS SCHOLARSHIP WAS INSUFFICIENT FOR THEIR NEEDS. ONE DAY AJAY WAS REMOVED FROM JOB.
SEEING THIS PRIYA THOUGHT EVEN IF SHE JOINED A JOB THAT WOULD NOT BE SUFFICIENT FOR THEM. AJAY AND PRIYA THEY STARTED TO FIND FOR ALTERNATE SOURCE OF INCOME AS THEY STRUGGLED TO MEET THEIR EXPENSES.
#750
AAAAA(Tuesday, 21 February 2017 15:23)
AJAY FINALLY THOUGHT OF PROSTITUTION. HE WAS AFRAID TO ASK PRIYA DIRECTLY, SO HE ONCE BROUGHT A MAN TO THEIR HOME AND THE MAN TRIED TO DISROBE PRIYA. BUT PRIYA WAS STRONG AND SHE PUSHED THAT MAN OUT.
LATER WHEN SHE CONFRONTED AJAY ABOUT THIS HE TOLD ABOUT THEIR DIRE CONSEQUENSES AND TOLD PRIYA TO ACCEPT THIS AS EACH DAY SHE WOULD EARN IN THOUSANDS. PRIYA SLAPPED AJAY AND BECAME SO ANGRY. SHE THEN
STARTED SEARCHING INTERNET FOR SOURCE OF INCOME AND FOUND MALE PROSTITUTES REQUIRES FOR GIRLS SITE. PRIYA DECIDED TO ENROL AJAY IN THAT.
PRIYA TOLD AJAY THIS PROPOSOL AND TOLD HIM TO ACCEPT IT OR LEAVE HER HOUSE.
AJAY WAS INITIALLY HESITANT BUT LATER HE ACCEPTED AS HE HAD NO CHOICE.
THE NEXT DAY A GIRL SONAM MESSAGED IN THAT WEBSITE REQUESTING FOR AJAY IN A HOTEL ROOM .
PRIYA ASKED THE GIRL SONAM FOR 10000. SONAM ACCEPTED BUT SHE KEPT A CONDITION THAT AJAY WOULD COME TO HER IN A GIRL DRESS AS SHE LIKES MAN WHO ARE CROSSDRESSED.
#751
AAAAA(Tuesday, 21 February 2017 15:42)
PRIYA LATER TOLD AJAY ABOUT THE CONDITION. AJAY REFUSED. PRIYA TOLD AJAY THAT THEY HAD NO OTHER WAY OF EARNING MONEY AND HE HAS TO COMPLY.
AJAY SAID NO AND STARTED ARGUING AND EVEN PUSHED PRIYA. PRIYA GOT ANGRY AND SHE SLAPPED AJAY . The impact was so severe that AJAY had to grasp the door to prevent himself from falling down. AJAY was
so horrified by this unexpected assault that HE became speechless. She said in a loud voice "It is time for punishment and that will be in such a manner that you will think a hundred times before
disobeying me.”
Suddenly, Ajay felt there was some unusual feeling in the inside of his undergarment. Actually, he had ………. urinated due to fear. Both were trembling. She with anger and AJAY with fear.
PRIYA stripped AJAY`S clothes and made him Turn into a cock and stand in front of the mirror”.
AJAY saw his image in the mirror- a completely naked man forced to stay as a cock.
PRIYA kept AJAY naked for an hour. Then she ordered him to stand and do ups and downs holding his ears. Then he was again made cock. This continued for two hours.
After that AJAY was allowed to dress. But not in pant and shirt. She said in a commanding voice, “You need to dress only as a girl. Go and wear that pink nighty kept in the wardrobe.”
Wearing that nighty was no better than being naked. It was a transparent thing that easily revealed AJAY`S private parts. For the whole night, she kept AJAY standing in a corner holding his both ears
with his both hands, dressed in a pink transparent nighty.
#752
AAAAA(Tuesday, 21 February 2017 15:59)
Next day,PRIYA made AJAY apply a hair remover cream during bath. After bath AJAY lost all his hair and even his skin was smooth due to cream applied by priya.
Priya then made AJAY wear a petticoat which he put on with trembling hands. Then came a white bra which he struggled putting on. PRIYA then gave AJAY a red salwar suit.
PRIYA then fixed a centre partition wig on Ajay’s head. She made him wear bangles, long dangling earrings, necklace and anklets. His face was neatly made and a quick threading done to make his bows
more feminine. PRIYA told AJAY to be ready by evening after she returns from college
PRIYA then In the evening brought AJAY a new dress to wear.
It was a maroon top, a black skirt which hardly covered his knees and a pair of transparent stockings and of course the bra with implants. She did a proper make up for him.
When AJAY looked at the mirror, he was looking like a pretty girl.
#753
AAAAA(Tuesday, 21 February 2017 17:46)
Then PRIYA gave AJAY a pair of black women slippers. Then PRIYA spoke with the girl SONAM and confirmed the appointment at the hotel. AJAY was embarassed to step out of the house dressed in that
avatar maroon top and black skirt with matching accessories. He was afraid of the thought that what would happen to him now????
#754
abcd(Tuesday, 21 February 2017 20:52)
aaaaa please continue
#755
Vani(Wednesday, 22 February 2017 15:17)
Very nice concept Aaaaa. Please continue
#756
cdmeera(Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:00)
The Bride - Part 1
My back was facing the mirror so I was not able to see what Jahnvi was doing with my face.
“I want to see whole the process.” – I asked her
“No, you can’t.” – She was firm about that.
“But, why not?” – I pleaded
“There’s no point in arguing Meera. Now sit back silently and let me do my work.” – She commanded
She started applying moisturiser all over my face and neck and gave a good massage. After that she applied foundation all over my face and neck and level it with a soft brush. Now my skin tone was
even.
She started working on my eyes first.
She first applied primer all over my eyelids and up to the brow bones. After that she applied the gold shadow all over eyelid with brush. She then took the olive green eye shadow and applied it on
outer V of upper eyelid. She then applied the same green shadow on the lower lash line too, applied it on full lower lash line except the inner V corner. With a fluffy brush, she applied the
highlighter pink shadow on my brow bone area. Then with a pointed brush she applied gold shadow on the inner corner of the eyes.
Using liquid black eye liner she lined my upper lash line. She made a wing to make eyes look longer and suits with such colourful eyes. Then she got the kohl and lined my waterline and highlighted my
eyes.
I was not sure how my eyes looked like but sure it was a good job done.
At last she attached false eyelashes and I could felt little weight put on my eyes. I never did anything like this to my eyes so it was a little uncomfortable for me.
She then curled the false eyelashes with a curler and applied a lot of mascara on upper and lower lases. She finally defined and filled my eyebrows using a black pencil. I have a thin eyebrows and
Jahnvi did not feel like trimming them.
She then stopped and looked for a while. “Now just close your eyes and let me see.” – Jahnvi instructed me.
I did as she asked.
Finally she was satisfied with her work. “It looks good, our bride has lovely eyes.” – She smiled at me.
“Can I see my face now? “ – I pleaded.
“No Meera, just be patient. I am not done yet. It will take some time.”
She then started applying pink blusher to my cheekbones to highlight them. She defined my cheekbones with pink blusher having some red shade too.
She then started working on my lips. First she outlined my lips with red pencil. Then she started filling my lips with brush. She then applied bright red lipstick. She was taking extra caution to
pout the lips.
She had chosen brightest red shade and she pouted my lips twice with cherry red lipstick and I knew they were too red by now. She then applied the gloss twice too. I don’t know what she was thinking
of doing with my lips but I was sure that my lips by the time were too red and glossy that they were visible from far away.
Finally she was satisfied with the work and stopped applying anything more to the lips.
“You know Meera, you have very lovely lips. Any man would love to suck them.” – Jahnvi teased me and I blush a little.
#757
cdmeera(Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:01)
The Bride - Part 2
“Now it’s time to apply bindis on the bride.”
She took a long bindi with golden base which had red and green small fake jewels. In direct light those jewels glow. She put it on my forehead in the centre. She then took the small matching bindis
and started applying them on my forehead over eyebrows and applied towards my outer cheekbones. These bindis were the small jewels like they had in long bindi. She used alternate colours for them and
she used red and green.
She then got a wig with long black hair. It was a perfect fit. She combed the wig properly and made a beautiful bun. She let 2 curls slid out from the bun at my both temples. Bun was a little high on
my head. With bun I was clearly a couple of inches taller now. She decorated bun with some gold pins and chains to keep it in place and to decorate it. I was already feeling heavy above my
head.
“Now stand up. We need to change the clothes. “– Jahnvi handed me a nice red panty. “Go to the bathroom and change it. You know what you have to do.”
“Ok”. – I took the panty and moved to the bathroom. Jahnvi had already covered the mirror so that I could not see my makeup.
I was still in my male clothes and thankfully Jahnvi was not able to see my erection, I was erect for a while. This whole process, makeup thing was getting on my nerves. I closed the door and removed
my clothes. I was totally necked now.
Though I could not see myself but I could imagine it. I could imagine beautiful bride with a beautiful face was standing in the middle of the bathroom but below her neck was a horny male with erected
penis.
I was the bride tonight so I was not supposed to have any erection. Brides don’t have a penis. I started stroking it and it did not take much time to ejaculate. I again started working on it so that
there is no possibility of turn on tonight. In 15 minutes, I had 3 ejaculations and it was so empty that it was not going to wake up for next 2 days.
I then tucked my penis and did some tape job. Nobody could tell now that I had a dick. I came into the room now.
Jahnvi examined me thoroughly. “I must say, I am impressed.” – She said smiling.
“Now we should do something with your chest.” She got pair of silicon breasts from somewhere. I think she bought them. Surprisingly it was matching with my skin colour.
Jahnvi was putting a lot of efforts for this and I was feeling grateful.
#758
cdmeera(Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:04)
The Bride - Part 3
“Ok, let see how it goes bought this for you Meera. They said that this will feel like real and they have very good glue with will keep them in place for a long time even if you play harsh with them.
I hope they are telling truth. “– Jahnvi explained to me.
She applied glue all over the base of breast and waited for few seconds to get it a little dry and then she carefully placed it on my chest. It was placed nicely. Though we were able to see joints
otherwise it was like real breast.
She did same to the other breast. Now I had breast which were passable as real breasts. She asked me to hold them in my hand to get some support unless glue is properly fixed.
After like 1-2 minutes she asked me release them. “Now walk a little and move them. See if they are fine.”
I did the same. While walking, I was feeling like some weight was attached to my chest and nipples but overall they felt nice. I even shacked them in sideways direction ad upward directions. Glue was
really impressive. I did not feel like they were leaving their places for some time.
“Let me do something for those lines also.”
She found a rubber skin which had some glue at one side of it. It came with the breasts as she informed me. She applied it in round around the breast. It did hide all the joint lines but it was loose
at many points and wasn’t looking that good. Then she started starching it on both directions, towards breasts and opposite direction. Now it was evenly placed there and it became so thin after
starching that it was like the part of actual skin. Now no joint line was visible and it was like I had real breasts.
“Wow that’s cool” – I was amused by the product also by the efforts Jahnvi made.
Jahnvi smiled. “I hope you liked it.”
“I like it very much. Thank you.” – It was a genuine reply.
“Anything for Meera and Jai. “ – She said genuinely.
“I don’t think that you need a bra tonight. Your blouse is backless so bra will not go with it. I did not want to go for very big boobs for you because I did not want them to look unreal but I found
that with your build 36” will be a perfect size though I know 36” is a little heavier for you.” – Jahnvi informed me.
“Yes, it is good. They are heavy but I think I like the feel of having some weight there. Is that how you girl feel all the time?”
“No, we are used to it.” – Jahnvi smiled. “Now let’s finish the clothing of bride.”
She put on a ghagra of red colour. It has very nice embroidery with green and gold work on it. It was a heavy lehnga but went nicely. Length was a little short, so Jahnvi tied it a little lower to
make it proper. It was now a low west lehnga for me, well below my navel. If my pubic hair were not shaven then some of them would be visible at this length. But I think it was better that way. I had
almost flat belly and I was smooth so it was looking quite good and it was giving a sexy look also.
Then she helped me with choli. It was a backless choli with straps to tie. It had very short sleeves or we could say almost no sleeves.
It was also a perfect fit, a little tight but felt really nice. It was also red with green and golden work on it. It was a low cut blouse so a lot of my breasts and cleavage was visible from it. It
was also a padded blouse so it supported the breast which was a nice thing; otherwise I was afraid all the time that any of the breasts can come off. While it gave a nice support to the breasts it
also pushed them further up and now they were even looking bigger.
“I think it worked very nice. But let me make some nice cleavage for our bride. I want your husband to jump all over you when he sees you tonight.” – She winked.
#759
cdmeera(Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:05)
The Bride - Part 4
She first applied some bronzer down the middle of my chest in between my breasts. She then created a V-shape along the natural curve of the breast while blending the colour upward and outward. She
then brushed light eye shadow on the top half of my breasts. She accentuated my cleavage with some makeup with a brush. She now blended the area where the 2 colours meet with a makeup sponge. Now my
cleavage was looking deeper and nice. Jahnvi certainly knew how to make a girl more feminine and sexy.
“Mmmm, you look very beautiful Meera as a bride.”
“Really?” -I was blushing a little.
“Believe me.”
“Thank you.”
“Now let me do your nails. Sit on the chair please.”
I sat where I sat before and Jahnvi applied false nails which were a little bigger but not too much. He painted them red and after that she applied gloss also.
So now I had red glowing nails. She did the same thing to my foot nails also.
She then got the fake henna and applied it on my hands with stencils. She applied it all over my hands just above to the elbows.
Then she did same with my feet and did a little high above the ankles. Design was quite nice.
“Now it’s time to finish the work. It’s time for some jewellery. You can move now and see in mirror.”
My heart was beating a little faster now. I moved and I was almost shocked of what I saw there.
There was no trace of Sameer. I saw a beautiful bride, almost ready for her wedding was looking at me from the mirror.
“Did you like what you see, Meera?”
“Yes.” My voice was shaking. “Very much.” I was feeling hard to get over the emotions.
“I hoped.” – Jahnvi was smiling.
I saw again in mirror from top to bottom.
I had very nice black hair which was styled in a bun and it was also decorated with gold pins and chains. My eyes were done with golden, red and green colour which was looking incredible.
My forehead was covered with small bindis which were coming just above to the cheekbones.
My cheeks had the red and golden shade and my cheekbones were accentuated and they were looking very high and my face was looking thin and curvy.
Most highlighted part of my face was my lips. I knew it even before looking into the mirror. My lips were too red and glossy like I had just applied a lot of moisturiser all over them. They were
looking like inviting everyone around to be sucked. In short, I had fuller gleaming red lips.
Below was a beautiful woman with a curvy body. I had very nice boobs and a very deep and nice cleavage.
I tried hard to find any trace of Sameer but I failed. I could only see a beautiful bride who was almost ready for the big day. I could only see Meera. Overall, Jahnvi did a fantastic job. I was
overwhelmed by the sight.
I turned towards the Jahnvi and I hugged her tight. My voice was trembling with emotions. I just managed – “Thank you.” I could feel my eyes were getting moist.
She hugged me tightly also and patted on my bare back. “It’s ok Meera, I did nothing. You are already beautiful.” – She said in a loving voice.
#760
cdmeera(Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:06)
The Bride - Part 5
“Ok now it’s time for some jewellery.” She grabbed a box from the drawer.
First she got a golden Mangalteeka and put on my head. It had a nice round hope at the one end which was coming to the just above my forehead and a chain was attached to it which covered my mang.
While made my hair Jahnvi made sure that I had a mang. Jahnvi attached it to my head. It had red and green stones which were matching with my dress.
She then put beautiful round shaped earrings on my ears. These were a little big and heavy than usual but I could understand as all the jewellery for a bride is heavier. They were also nice golden
earrings with matching red and green stones.
“Thank God that you have now pierced ears from the dare. Ear rings are looking good.” –She winked at me.
Earrings were good. After that she got matching set bangles which was matched with jewellery and dress and started putting on each hand. There will be at least 2 dozen bangles in each hand. My hands
were full of bangles now and I could hear the chuckle of glass whenever I move my hands.
“You will need to be very careful with those bangles Meera. Those are glass bangles and if you put any force or weight during night they can be broken and cut your hands.”
I just nodded. I was going to take care of that.
She then tied a beautiful matching golden necklace with red and green stones around my neck which was quite heavy but went beautifully with dress and makeup.
Then she put few rings in fingers of each hand. Then she put a beautiful hand panja on both of my hands. She also put bajubands on both my arms.
She put beautiful pajeb on my feet as well and 2 bichuas on my each foot.
“You know Meera, only married woman are allowed to wear bichuas. I put them on because you are going to be married.” – Jahnvi informed me.
She also put a beautiful change around my west. This all felt so feminine.
“We are almost done.” – Jahnvi sighed. “Now tell me, how did you find it?”
“I have no words. – It was an overwhelming feeling for me. I was out of words. I was feeling every bit of a woman now and a wannabe bride.
“Don’t you like it?” – Jahnvi teased. “Then we can undo what we have done. I don’t mind going back.”
“No, I like every bit of it. Even though I never thought that I would ever like it. You have given me something for which I will always be grateful to you, Jahnvi. You have gifted me Meera and you
are gifting me Jai. I cannot repay you what have you done for us. Thank you.” – It was almost feminine voice. I was feeling very lucky to have Jahnvi so understanding.
“You know Meera, I also never thought of it until that day. I never imagined that I will found Meera any day in my life. I don’t know but it happened like it had to be happened and I am too happy
that it happened. I now have 2 more friends forever, Meera and Jai and I wish you both all the happiness of the world.” – Jahnvi was very sincere.
“Thank you Jahnvi for all the things you have done for us.” – I hugged her.
“And thank you both to let me do it for you.” – Jahnvi hugged me tightly.
“Ok, enough serious talk, girl. Jai should be waiting for you eagerly. Let’s finish here.”
She found something from box. “This is the final item which we need for our bride.”
This was a nath, enough big to cover my whole lips. She put nath on my nose and attached the string in the hair above my ear.
“I think you should pierce your nose also Meera. Married women mostly pierce their nose.” – She teased me.
“No Thanks. I know Jai will like me without pierced nose as well.” – I also replied in a naughty mood.
“You know Meera, why nath is too important for a bride?”
“Why?”
“Don’t you know about nath utrai? “ – She asked me playfully.
Now I got what she meant. I blushed badly.
“Don’t be shy Meera. Every bride has nath utrai. Today Jai will do your nath utrai and you will be a complete woman after that.”
I was beet red by now.
“Ha ha ha, don’t be embarrassed. It’s your right today.” – She winked at me.
“Stop Jahnvi, please.” – I was blushing hard.
#761
cdmeera(Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:07)
The Bride - Part 6
“Ok, we should move now but before that some final things.” – She handed me over a beautiful pair of golden colour sandals. Sandals were also matched with my dress and makeup.
It was 4 inch high heel sandals. I just imagined how I will look into those with Jai. With 4 inches heels I was now 6’2” also I had a bun which add extra couple of inches” into my height so I was
almost 6’4” and Jai was only 5’4”. It was almost 1 feet difference.
It must be a pretty good sight to see a wife too long than her husband. A sudden smile appeared on my face.
“What’s that? Is there anything interesting?” – Jahnvi read that smile.
I told about what I was thinking and she also laughed at that. We both laughed together.
“That must be an unusual couple but it is an unusual marriage. Is it not?” – Jahnvi said.
“Yes. “
“But this is special because it is unusual. Just enjoy it.” – Jahnvi said lovingly.
“Yes you are right.”
“Ok, let’s go now. Let’s get ready for marriage, you should be also very excited to see your Groom” - Jahnvi teased me.
“But before that let me do something. “- She got a chunri and put it on my head. She covered my face so that I have a veil now. All of my face above lips was covered now. Only my chin, my red lips
and half of my nath were visible to other people. I think she purposefully left open my lips so that Jai can get a guess of what he is going to get tonight. Jahnvi sprayed some ladies perfume all
over. It smelt good. She was extracting every male aspect of my personally at every step.
I could only guess of the sight of a bride in veil showing her lovely red glowing lips like she was inviting her groom to take her in his possession and extract every bit of her love juice from her
mouth.
I could not see anything properly except the floor down. I could see the objects but not very clear. I was not expecting this but it also made me excited.
“Every bride should have ghoonghat. Let’s move now.” – Jahnvi said to me and the she held my hand and started walking towards the door where Jai was waiting for us outside.
My heart was beating faster but I was excited to meet my Groom and about the whole wedding. After all, girls are too excited about their marriage. Don’t they?
#762
heena(Thursday, 23 February 2017 02:20)
meera pls continue
#763
Sharmila Devi(Saturday, 25 February 2017 06:11)
Hi alll writers after long time i could read stories and enjoy them .Good work keep going
#764
anonymous(Saturday, 25 February 2017 10:05)
can anyone tell the name of tamil movie in which hero wears high heels and teased by girls
#765
Rashmi(Saturday, 25 February 2017 20:45)
SRS pls update
#766
Charu(Sunday, 26 February 2017 22:13)
SRS waiting for your awesome story... Thanks for writing such wonderful stories...
#767
SRS(Monday, 27 February 2017 00:24)
Nice go on
#768
NKSMB(Monday, 27 February 2017 07:09)
Became Her for Her- Pt 1
Naveen started a startup based in Bengaluru few months ago, it was an e-commerce startup which became an instant hit within few time of its arrival. Naveen who was a CS Engineer looked after the
startup alone, but as the business grew he bought an office and also started hiring other people. He first hired Radha , another CSE Graduate who shared his burden of looking after the startup. As
time when the startup grew even more and more people were required to share the burden. Naveen was out on 3 month business trip at that time so Radha was also entrusted upon hiring other people based
on her contacts. She brought in two of her friends Kiran and Varsha from her college. As the office grew there was also need of maintenance of the office therefore a Maid cum clerk Amina was hired to
look after the cleaning of the office.
Naveen returned from his trip few days later. He was sitting in his office when Radha knocked the door “May I come in Sir”. “Yes come in Radha” said Naveen. Radha then went inside along with Kiran
and Varsha Radha then introduced them to Naveen , “This is Kiran and Varsha both are my classmates from college, both were toppers that’s why there were the preferred ones for me” . “Hello Kiran and
Varsha , welcome to my company , hope you will help us take it to next level” Naveen welcomed both of them. Both thanked Naveen and all of them left for their work. Meanwhile Naveen was awestruck
with Varsha’s beauty , she was the most beautiful girl he had ever seen. He could not stop gazing her from his office. He had lost himself and thought that if he would ever marry , it would be
her.
Weeks passed , the startup continued to succeed under Radha and co. , Naveen became distracted by his love and tried different ways of expressing it to Varsha. "Varsha," he said, pressing the
intercom switch on his desk, "could you bring in those documents for signature now? I'd like to get them out of the way before that client gets here. Oh, and could you make me a cup of coffee while
you're at it? Thanks." When she entered his office a few minutes later, a sheat of documents in one hand and a coffee in the other, Varsha looked annoyed. "Is there a problem?" asked Naveen. "With
all the work we have to do," she said, putting everything down on his desk, "I shouldn't be wasting time making coffee." "But workers have always made coffee for their boss," said Naveen,
non-plussed, "it's part of the job." "Yes, well it's time that changed. It would be a lot more efficient for you to have a coffee-maker in your office." “You can be even more efficient in my bed
Varsha dear” said Naveen. Shocked at hearing this “You cant be serious boss, that disgraceful way to talk to your female employer” exclaimed Varsha. “Varsha darling I am sorry for my tone, but the
fact is that I am deeply in Love with you, I have been expressing my love indirectly all this time but you have ignored it, now I will ask you straigtly , will you marry me Varsha?” said Naveen.
Varsha stunned at her boss’s proposal said “ Sorry Boss, I have never seen you in that way, you are almost 10 years older than me, you have given me my first Job, have seen you as a Father figure
till now, Please sir I cant accept this and nor can I Quit the Job, I come from a poor family , my mother is Old and ill, My sister is still studying, Please don’t fire me”. Naveen though
disappointed by hearing this ensured her that this would not affect her Job, She left the cabin sobbing, She went straight into the toilet so that no one would notice her. After a while Varsha went
back to her job at the desk. Naveen kept his promise, even though his love for Varsha never became less , he still didn’t bring up the topic with her neither did he fire her. Varsha was also relived
of the fact that her boss let go of the issue without embarrassing her again. The Under the Trio of Girls startup flourished even more.
#769
NKSMB(Monday, 27 February 2017 07:10)
Continued from ^
Few days later, As she was working on a file Varsha recived a call, she had a friend named Raji , who had called Varsha telling her that her marriage had been fixed,and that the wedding card was
posted on Raji’s FB timeline so she asked Varsha to check it out and to attend the fuction. Varsha opened her browser and instead of searching in facebook she absent mindedly searched Raji in google,
up came the result Rajibalan Jimbo Page. She understood her mistake and opened another tab and searched her in facebook got the card and marked the date in the calender,after closing the tab, the old
tab with Rajibalan site caught her eyes. She clicked on it and read few lines. After few minutes of reading she was totally engrossed in the Idea of Men being feminized, she went on reading for
another hour before lunch, when Radha came to call her. She hastidly closed the tab and deleted the history. Over the next few weeks she was totally into reading TV fiction on Rajibalan and Various
other sites, she found it exiting and Kinky and even imagined her as ruling as a Misstress over a TV. It took over her head so much as that she would imagine every Boy passing by her on the streets
on Saree or Skirt or just a Bra & Panty. She almost was thinking about it 24X7 even in the office. Radha and Kiran were also wondering sometimes on seeing Varsha laughing while viewing the
Desktop and also taking frequent loo breaks.
It was 13th Februaury , Radha and Kiran were wondering how to ask Naveen to give holiday the next day as they had promised their respective BFs to be with them the whole day as it was V-Day. They
discussed with Varsha and three of them decided to go and ask it to Naveen collectively. The entered Naveen’s cabin and Radha told about the request. Naveen was okay with the request as it was
offseason and also he knew the feeling of being in love(his one sided) “Everything is fair in Love, go ahead even If I don’t give Holiday I am sure you would risk you Job and bunk tomorrow, A person
in Love will do anything and go to any stretch for his loved one “ He said, with the last line being said while smirking to Varsha. Varsha started blushing she knew he was refereing to her. All three
thanked him and left the cabin. As Varsha sat on her chair and went back to reading, she was struck with an Idea, in many TV stories the same line of “Doing anything for you my love” said by
submissive men, she thought if this could be even done, she could make Naveen her dream pet. She taught for all of the session after lunch. It was 5.30 everyone had left except Naveen and Varsha.
Varsha went inside Naveen cabin , he was wondering why she had come “Whats the matter Varsha. Any problem?” he asked. “No, No problem boss, I was here to tell you that I had no plans tomorrow and I
had come to ask holiday only to support Radha and Kiran, If you don’t mind I will come to office tomorrow” said Varsha . To which Naveen replied “Oh , good to see your dedication Varsha, but I have
already told announced an holiday tomorrow ,even Amina(Clerk) was told not to come tomorrow” .”That will not be a problem. I will call Amina and inform about the holiday being canceled, I have some
pending work to be completed tomorrow , that is why I Insist on working tomorrow also.” Varsha said.
“Okay then , I will see you at the office tomorrow, nice to see you dedicated to your work Varsha” Naveen agreed. To which Varsha noded and left his cabin.Both left her house for respective houses.
Varsha was beeming with a big smile while entering her apartment, she knew there was a chance for her make her dream come true here, She knew that Naveen was mad in love with her and may even go any
distance for her. She then started devising an emotional blackmailing plan to setup her prey, she made a list of items to be bought and then spent rest of evening in shopping for the items. Naveen in
his on the other hand was sad that he had to spend another Valentine’s Day alone , he was desperate for love , he was frustrated that even him being so successful girls like Varsha still reject him ,
He drank to bed regretting his loneliness.
Things would change the next day, he would no longer be lonely, but he would he be him?
review please , if it is good start I will continue tommorow
#770
Deepthi(Monday, 27 February 2017 12:50)
Good one NKSMB. Kindly Continue.
#771
Radha(Monday, 27 February 2017 23:54)
We r waiting for u nksmb
#772
SRS(Tuesday, 28 February 2017 00:07)
Nksbm nice
#773
NKSMB(Tuesday, 28 February 2017 02:18)
Becoming Her for Her - Pt 2 - from #769
The next valentine's day morning when Varsha was getting dressed she put on a seductive pair of red Lingerie and then proceeded to put on a bright Red chiffon saree along with a sleeveless sluttry
blouse and high heels which she had bought yesterday. She was dressed to kill, all set to trap her Boss. She was the first one to get into the office and sat on her desk trying to act as if working
on some file. Naveen entered the office to find it deserted except for Varsha at her table , Amina would always be the first one at office , he noticed that she was not informed by Varsha about the
cancellation of holiday. He went and enquired about it to Varsha, “Sorry Sir, the phone in Amina’s house may been not working, so couldn’t reach her” Said Varsha . “Oh, is it. Then we have to manage
without a clerk today “He said jokingly and went back towards his cabin. While he was walking he was in sort of trance after seeing Varsha in that seductive saree, he then proceeded towards the
toilet and masturbated imagining her. Varsha all this while was observing him, she guessed why he went to the toilet and thought she was successful in her first step of seducing him.
Naveen could not stop thinking of her, he was looking at her every other minute and couple of his gazes were caught by her. Varsha then thought this was the time to proceed to next step. She stormed
into his cabin and asked “Whats the matter boss, why are you continuously staring at me?”. “No Varsha , that was just by mistake , sorry if you are offended “ Said Naveen. Varsha replied “I am a girl
, I know automatically when someone is staring at me , we girls have this sixth sense, please tell me whats the matter is so that we can talk about it “. Naveen knew he had no option but to confess “
Varsha , you already Know I am in love with you , I did stop proposing it to you after your rejection, but I still have mad feelings for you , After seeing you today in this Gorgeous Saree , I
totally couldn’t stop myself , Please forgive me if you can but I want to again propose to you , I want you Varsha , I will do anything to get you , you can take my company and house , I just Need
you” saying this Naveen knelt on his knees.
Varsha acted as if she was dumbstruck , inside she was in joy she had caught her prey , now she just had to see if he can be pushed to the limits she wanted him to. She said “Naveen , I really
appreciate your feelings, But there is one thing that stops me from accepting your love, I am Lesbian” . Naveen shocked at hearing this fell on the floor, “Oh , what , you are so beautiful , how can
you be a Lesbian Varsha” He asked. “Yes Naveen, I am Lesbian , I like to make love to girls , though my lover died few months ago in car Accident and I am single now, I wore this Saree in her
remembrance as she had gifted it to me last V-Day” She said ,now she was acting as if she was crying. Naveen knew now he had no other option he consoled her ”Oh sorry Varsha ,I didn’t know, you will
get someone else don’t worry “ and then she left to her desk. As soon as he closed Naveen’s cabin door , she sported a cunning smirk on her face, she had completely cooked a story of her being
Lesbian and her friend dying.
She had one final throw of a dice left now , After an Hour of thinking , she Knocked Naveen’s Cabin Door, “May I come in Boss” She asked. Naveen asked her to come in “Yes Varsha, What is the Matter”
he asked. “Naveen, Since you are so madly in love with me , I think I have an Idea to make things work, to make our Love work” Varsha announced. Naveen was surprised at this “Oh Varsha, I would do
anything to make this work , tell me” He said.
#774
NKSMB(Tuesday, 28 February 2017 02:22)
“The thing is that I like to make love to my lover in a dress, and you like me. I think there is a way that this could work , that needs you to do everything I say , Think of this as just you proving
me your love and we can make this thing work” Varsha exclaimed. Naveen was curious of what she was talking “As I said will do anything to get you Varsha, I will prove my love” He said. “Hear me
carefully , This thing will be only between us , I promise , I just want you to Dress in Female Dresses whenever we are togather alone , you have to dress totally as my female lover down to your
underwear, If you promise me this I will agree to be your love”.
Naveen was taken aback for a moment “How can I dress in Women’s clothes Varsha I am a Man Damit”. Varsha showing slight frustration said “ How can I Date a man?, I am Lesbian Damit, Naveen dear you
will just be wearing dresses , you will still be a man inside, and whats your problem in dressing in private for your loved one? , cant you do such simple sacrifice, I am doing much greater sacrifice
of my sexuality by dating a man even after being lesbian”.
Naveen had succumbed now , his love towards Varsha had pushed him over the cliff, He thinked for a moment , he thought that if he sacrificed this little ego of his he would finally be able to get
Varsha. He stood up and announced his submission to her “ Ok Varsha , I agree to all your wishes , I just need you that’s all I know, will do anything to get you”. Varsha was overjoyed, She jumped in
air and hugged Naveen and proceeded to give him a long kiss on his lips, Naveen was in heaven , he was finaly kissing a girl in his life.
“Ok Naveen Darling, from now on you will be my female lover, whenever you are in female dresses you will be my lover , and when you will be back to male ego , you would just be my Boss” she continued
“ Do you know what Yesterday night I was remembering my old girlfriend, She came in my dreams and Said tomorrow She will meet me and to wear the dress she gave last V-Day ,I thought there was no
chance of that happening, so for her remembrance I brought her dress with me , to keep it close with me, now I realize its purpose, please Naveen will you be my valentine” she knelt on the floor and
gave him the bag which contained to clothes. Naveen hesitated for a moment and took the bag from her hands and said “ Yes Varsha, What ever you say”. She stood up and kissed him again
“ I will help you with your new clothes Dear, Don’t worry” she continued “ To start with just strip down now, Please don’t shy now I am your lover, I have every right to see all of your body”. Naveen
was little shy he was stripping infront of a girl for the first time ,he proceeded to strip till his underwear and was hesitant to remove it, Varsha then took the Initiative and pulled down his
underwear to reveal his erect member. Naveen was now standing naked in his cabin in front of his employee
“Nice one you got there Naveen dear, now head to wards the toilet we have a little cleaning to do” she ordered. Naveen in his naked form obeyed her command and rushed to the toilet, initialy he went
to the gent’s toilet but Varsha pulled him by his year towards ladies toilet “What are you doing there silly , your place is hear now” . She then applied veet hair remover to all over his body and
removed every strain of hair from his body below his neck.She then proceeded to rub his dry with a towel and tied it in ladies style, she gave a pat on his bum “ Off you go Doll, lets get you
dressed”. In the cabin she ordered him to remove the towel and stand straight with his hands lifted above, she removed a pink bra from the bag and inserted it between his arms and clasped it behind
his back , she stuffed few napkins inside each cup to get feeling a false breasts. She then proceeded to insert a matching pair of pink panty, Naveen though was embarrassed was succumbing to the
feeling of satin , he was getting turned on and was in sort of trance state so he didn’t offer any resistance, add to that Varsha was giving a Kiss on his lips after inserting each clothing. She then
proceeded to put the petticoat and a sleeveless blouse similar to hers, and then finally draped a pink chiffon saree on him. She then did a slight make up on him with the limited make items in her
purse along with some pink lipstick and a shining bhindi to go with his saree. Every item selected to put on him was purposely selected as pink, “There you go baby, you now look presentable, but this
is just the beginning , if I get to work with my beauty kit at home, I will make you more beautiful than myself, look at yourself” She said giving him a small mirror from her purse. He was shocked at
his face , his bright pink lipstick made look like a slut , he still acknowledged her work and said “Nice work Varsha, Thanks”.
#775
NKSMB(Tuesday, 28 February 2017 02:33)
Varsha was dieing with laughter within Naveen was more submissive than what she had thought , she knew that now she had him firmly in his grasp. “Ok one final thing, I feel awkward in calling you
Naveen , especially when you are in this cute little pink saree , I think you like the color don’t you Pinky ,Oh wow That’s what your name will be , Pinky, understood?” she said holding his cheeks,
“Ok, as you wish Varsha” Said Naveen. “Tell me whats your name doll” She started to tease him “My name is Pinky” he said in a low voice with his head bent down in shame, “Louder I cant hear you dear”
she said .
“My Name is Pinky” he replied in higher voice, “Look into my eyes and say your name, confess me your love , and beg for my love for you”she exclaimed. “My Name is Pinky , and I love you Varsha ...”he
started to talk ,when she stopped him and said “How dare you call me by my name , you are no longer my boss, you are just my female lover you are inferior to me now , when I was your inferior I
didn’t call you by your name, now I would like you to call me by Madam or Ma’am”. Naveen was startled by her dominating attitude, but he had succumbed to her to such extent that there was no coming
back he submitted to her domination by saying “My name is Pinky and Madam I love you , I will do anything for you to love me back , from now on your are my world, please accept me as your lover
Madam” he fell on her feet. She lifted him to his feet and gave a kiss on his forhead, said “ I accept you Pinky , but I need to prove your love to me, I want to know to what extent you can go for
me, you only have to do what I say without hesitation and I will keep you happy” as both of them hugged each other.
#776
NKSMB(Tuesday, 28 February 2017 02:34)
“Ok Pinky poo, I have ordered for lunch , it may arrive after an hour, we will have it and leave for your house for some more fun , how about it?” She asked him. “That’s ok with me madam” he
said.
“But before that, Look at the office, Amina forgot to close the main window yesterday , and all the office is covered with dust, if it is not cleaned then we will not be able to work here, I think we
could do with some cleaning, don’t you think Pinky?” She asked. He looked around and agreed “Yes Madam, but Amina is not here today , what can we do? .
“What do you mean by what can we do Pinky?, don’t you have hands and legs that are working? .. You sure can clean it for the day, I would love to help you , but I am really busy with the work which I
told you about yesterday, the broom and the mop is in the toilet if you don’t know” She pointed . Naveen put his head down, she knew Varsha was just doing this to dominate him, he went inside the
toilet and brought the broom , mop and bucket full of water and started sweeping the floor.
Varsha went back to her desk and was having fun at watching her new Pet struggling to sweep while working in the saree, she shouted from her desk “Oh Look at your Poor thing, Struggling to control
your pallu , do one thing Pinky , tuk your pallu near you waistline inside your petticoat, that would help”. He embarrassingly obliged to it. He took almost 20 minutes of struggle to complete
sweeping the office and then proceeded to mop the floor using the stick attached to the Mop. Varsha observing this shouted “ No No Pinky, when you mop along with the stick is not that affective,
detach the Mop, Bend down and Mop in traditional way how Indian Housewife do in their Houses, be quick we have 10 mins before lunch”. Pinky could just blurt out “Sure Madam, Anything you say”. He
bent down and started to mop the floor and Varsha was enjoying seeing him mop and twirling his hips in the process. As soon he finished , Hotel Delivery guy knocked the office door , Varsha ordered
Pinky to get them money from his wallet he did it and gave it to her, she took it from him and Inserted inside his blouse “Go , Pay him and get the Parcel Pinky , he is just random Delivery guy , No
harm in going infront of him , Put Pallu over your head, that will help you cover your identity , Now go” she said covering his head by the pallu. He went and slowly opened the door . “Hello Ma’am ,
I am here to deliver the parcel you ordered” saying he handed over the parcel to him/her . Pinky didn’t dared to speak and motioned with hands to ask how much , he said “Rs1400 Ma’am”. She
embarrassingly removed the money from her blouse and gave him the money and closed the door. Varsha then asked Pinky to serve the food and both of them had a great lunch. Then Pinky asked “ Can I
change to my old clothes till we get home Madam ”. “Do one thing Pinks, you remove your saree until we get home, but keep the underthings, I want you to wear Lingerie all the time from now on so that
you remember your submission to me , you can wear your office things in the day , but when you go back to home you will wear something girly for which we will shop tomorrow , understood pinky poo?”
she said. Pinky nodded “Ok Madam, as you wish” . He got back to his old clothes and proceeded to fold the saree and keep it inside the bag, he opened the bag to find there were many more items inside
the bag, He wondered that it may not be coincidence that she had brought the saree and may be Varsha had planned all this and trapped him. Before he could speak Varsha shouted at him “What are you
waiting Pinky, lets get going girl”. He left the thought for the moment and followed her to the car parking and both left for their respective houses with Varsha promising him that she will be coming
at 8PM sharp to his home to have some more “FUN”
Would love to hear the reviews, next part spoiler is Pinky finds out that Varsha trapped her , and tries to fire her, but he didnt knew she had Trapped him for Good.
#777
ishu(Tuesday, 28 February 2017 03:16)
great going NKSMB
#778
Radha(Tuesday, 28 February 2017 04:42)
Nksmb good story humiliate pinky in front of other girls. Write fast don't break
Interesting topic for a blog. I have been searching the Internet for fun and came upon your website. Fabulous post. Thanks a ton for sharing your knowledge! It is great to see that some people still
put in an effort into managing their websites. I'll be sure to check back again real soon.
#781
Komali(Wednesday, 01 March 2017 19:53)
Hi NKSMB!!
Great going. I have never seen such an exciting story recently. Please please continue the story. Eagerly waiting for next part
hi friends please complete story @ Kanmani pls continue story
jrs pls write new story with more humilate
@mohit & NKSMB super story make him forced bisexual as well rocking story
pls write like this Boys are forced to grow hair and forcefully getting braided by maid and boys are slowly addicted to and wearing females dress by his sister in law bhabhi (anni) or maid
friends its my fb link rk8997588@gmail.com serch with is id especially vasantha and hari shemalesana give friend request
pls write like this Boys are forced to grow hair and forcefully getting braided by maid and boys are slowly addicted to and wearing females dress by his sister in law bhabhi (anni) or maid
#784
Maddy(Wednesday, 01 March 2017)
Guys write more stories
#785
NKSMB(Thursday, 02 March 2017 00:37)
I posted this story on fictionmania and one of the reviewer told that it was boring , so please tell me if its really worth to continue.
-NKSMB
#786
sanjeev(Thursday, 02 March 2017 05:26)
you8 can see many storyes in this blog related to nose piercing and would love you to share your story toohttps://traditionsinlittleindia.blogspot.in/2017/02/nosering-in-india.html
#787
Poornima(Thursday, 02 March 2017 05:42)
Its very nice nksmb. But please dont make it gay and add more humiliation and variety of girlie indian dresses and public humiliation in front of girls
NKSMB Your story is too good and your narration too please continue
#789
NKSMB(Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:36)
Becoming Her for Her - Pt 3 from #776
Naveen reached his apartment building, parked his car in basement and headed towards his flat. The embarrassment of wearing women’s underwear made him aware of the surrounding and was in fear of
someone noticing his bra through his shirt. As soon as he reached his flat he was relived, he went to his room picked a towel and headed to the shower. While he removed his clothes , he noticed that
all the embarrassment of the morning has caused him to wet his panty, he knew Varsha would be angry when she knows that this happen, since he had 3 hours left , he decided that he would wash the
panty and hope it will dry within her arrival, He removed it and put it inside the washing machine and proceeded to have bath. After the shower, he wore his bra back and a Tshirt over it , then since
the panty was put to dry he wore his boxers for the time being. He came and sat on the couch watch News on the TV , all the while he was thinking how quickly things have changed for him and how he
ended up in this situation, continuing this strange relationship would mean he would have to continue being humiliated, he thought of ending this by talking to Varsha when she arrives, but then
thought about what she said while leaving “Having FUN”. She could mean having Sex, He thought if he could get to make out with her tonight and impress her with in the bed, he could get her to love
him as Naveen not Naveen in Drag called Pinky, so he decided to play along till they get to bed. Every 20mins he checked of the panty whether it dried or not. Since it was evening time it took Long
time to dry. It was 7.15 when he checked again, after touching it he thought another half hour and it could be wearable.
Just as he got back to his couch, he heard the bell ring. He was in shock, had she arrived 45mins early? He taught as the bell rang again. He went near the door and asked “ Who is this” to which a
reply came which made his feet tremble “ Its me Pinky Poooooo” it was Varsha. He was in two minds whether to open the door straight away or to run back and wear his half dry panty and then open the
door but then Varsha shouted “ Whats taking you so long Pinks, why are you keeping your Madam Waiting”. He knew now he will be caught , he made his mind up to beg her to forgive him and opened the
door.
“Welcome Madam , Please come inside and have a seat” He said. Varsha was smiling as the door opened but when she saw him wearing boxers, her expressing changed to a dissatisfying grin, she was
wearing red long maxi dress with long slit . She handed few bags she had brought for him and proceeded to sit on the couch, her 4 inch heels made click clock sound as she was walking. She was visibly
angry, Naveen knew It , she started scolding him “Pinky what the fuck did I tell you in the morning , you are not to wear any kind of male underwear, how dare you not follow my orders?” to which
Pinky put her head down “Madam , I am really sorry , It will not happen in future I promise”. “Sorry will not do Bitch , you will have to be punished first to make sure this does not happen again”
She continued “ Remember one thing Bitch , whenever you are in Office , you can wear whatever you want , but when you are with me or Alone you have to be Pinky, Naveen dies that moment, did you
understand bitch ? “ . “ Yes Madam , I Understand” said Pinky
#790
NKSMB(Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:37)
“So if you understand , why the hell are you still wearing the Tshirt and boxers , Strip Bitch” , Pinky in an Instant removed her T Shirt to reveal her Bra and then pulled down her boxers with her
member raised ,He stood covering his crotch with his hands just wearing a Bra. Varsha was surprised “ Now when you wore the Bra , why the fuck did you not put on your pretty panties Pinky?” Pinky now
knew she was caught, without answering she put her head down in shame. “When I am asking you a Question you answer Pinky , Why are you not wearing your pretty Pink Panties?” Varsha got up and caught
his ear.Pinky twirling in pain “Madam , I washed it and put it to dry , its almost dried up, I can wear it now if you want” “ What , why did you wash it pinky , did you fucking soiled it ?" Varsha
asked Pinky could just afford a little nod. “Why cant you speak , tell me what you did?” giving a slap on his buts. “I soiled my Panties Madam, Please for give me” winced Pinky.
“Hahahaha My Little Pinky Pet, how cute of you to soil your panty , I find it funny and it also tells me that you like wearing Panties , it turns your little member on doesn’t it” she said playing
with Pinkys’s member, she continued “ Not that doesn’t mean that you will be punished Pinky , if you didn’t have a panty , better stay naked, why did you have to wear a boxer when no one is around ?
Now for the punishment , come hear and lean over my Lap” saying that she sat on the couch , Pinky knew what was coming , she had seen this in many Porn and BDSM movies. She went and leaned over
Varsha’s Lap. Varsha looked around for something to Hit with she found a TV Remote on the couch and proceeded to spank Pinky’s bare bottom. “This will Hurt Pinky , But this the only way people will
learn” Saying that she smacked her bum with a lound WHACK sound “Ahhhh” said Pinky . Varsha “Ask sorry to your madam” as she whacked again , Pinky wincing in pain “Ahhh, Sorry Madam , I will not do
it again” another whack “What will you not do again bitch tell me” “I will not soil my Panty again Madam , I promise” “ And??” asked Varsha giving another heavy smack “ Aaaaaaaah” screamed Pinky as
she said “ I will not wear Boxers again ever” “ Good girl, now tell me why you wet your panties” WHACK “I get turned on by wearing panties” said Pinky knowing what answer Varsha excpected. “ Oh my
Poor Pinky , why do you get turned on while wearing pretty little panties” giving another smack “ I... I Like wearing them madam”... “ You like wearing what” giving another “I like Wearing
Panties”... “I cant hear you girl louder” smack “ I like Wearing Panties” she shouted , “That’s a good girl Pinky , I will never let my Pet run around naked without wearing beautiful underwear, I
went shopping this evening ,Along with other things I have bought you many pairs of pretty panties and matching bra sets. No Get up and get me that those Bags” she said.
#791
NKSMB(Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:40)
Pinky got on her feet and went near the bags , bent over and picked up the bags. Varsha seeing his butts now pink in colour from all the whacking and smacking “ Oh Pinky poo, your bum bum has become
pink too now, hahaha , please be carefull fom next time”. As Pinky then Handed over the bags to Varsha she removed each item and explaining each things detail to Pinky .”Come here knell besides me as
I show you what I have brought for youLove” she called him “ These are different sets of matching Lingerie” There were 5 pairs with Red, Black, Light Brown, Dark Pink and White colours , “Arent these
beautiful” “Yes Madam , They are beautiful” Pinky noded in approval Varsha removed another item “ These are called stockings , I want my girl’s legs to look flawless, understand” Pinky noded. “This
is called a Garter Belt, which is worn round the waist , used to tuk the stocking from falling down”. “I want to you to wear these four items all the time except to bed or when you are wearing a
Saree understand Pinky” “But Madam...In Office there will be Radha , Kiran and Amina, what if they notice.” “All the time means even to the office , none of them will be visible below your clothes,
wear light coloured ones like white , pink and Brown to office under Dark couloured shirts , no one will notice I assure you”. “ No more questions for tonight remove that pink one and wear these Red
ones, it valentine’s day night remember”. Handing him his new underwear.
Pinky stood up and pulled the panty between her legs till her crotch and Adjusted her member inside it. She then removed her bra to put on the new ones."Oh again for today we have to adjust with
Napkins for your boobies babes, I have ordered online for fake boobs may arrive tommorow" she said inserting napkins inside his bra. Varsha then adjusted the gartle belt around her waist “Good, now
step into your stockings” she said as she held one stocking for Pinky to insert her leg, Varsha rolled them up till her knee and then gave a kiss on Pinky’s pantied hip “now for the other one”
holding out the other stocking and rolling it up Pinky’s other leg. She adjusted and tucked the stocking to the garter belt. “You look sexy my dear , You are turning me on, that’s your main objective
of life from now on , Wear Sexy clothes for my Pleasure” Varsha said. “Even with your sexy lingerie there is something missing, Its your hair , its too short for my liking, I want you to grow your
hair till your shoulder atleast, so no appointment with the Barber for you understand” “But ..”said Pinky. “No,Pinky I already said no questions for tonight, your only job is to do as I say you”
Varsha retorted “And for the time being ,I want you to wear this”
She said holding out a brown colored wig with shoulder height curly hair “Don’t want my Girl to look like some boy in drag, get on your knees pet, I will adjust it over your head” pointing towards
the floor. Pinky got down on her knees as Varsha adjusted it on her head. “Oh wow It looks awesome on you Pinks, the curly hair suits your hair very much” she complimented her look. And the proceeded
to Kiss his entire body, from his hips to his head and finaly to his lips. Juices where flowing all around her body, She smiled as Varsha kissed her body and was stimulated by the kisses in regular
intervals, she was in such a trance that she automatically did what Varsha had to said without being conscious of it.
#792
NKSMB(Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:42)
“Your dress and make up will come later, for now I just want to have a complete look at your body”. “Stand Up and walk for me so that I have a look at your beauty Poo”. Pinky didn’t fully understood
what she mean by Walk , she got up on her feet turned around and then walked a few distance and then again turned back to return near the couch. “Oh Pinky, By Walking, I didn’t meant that you take a
random stroll you stupid girl, I want you to model your sexy lingerie for me, Haven’t you watch Fashion TV show, I want you to walk like a super model” She said “ Now wait, I want you to wear another
thing” searching inside the bag she brought out a 2.5 Inch Red Heels . Pinky stood there staring at those Varsha was taking this to new level “Aren’t they beautiful baby, now be a sport wear them, I
cant wait to see you wiggle your pantied ass in heels” Varsha ordered. Pinky obliged . At first she tottered like she was about to fall , then after few minutes of walking she understood that it was
better to take small steps while walking on heels. “You are learning quickly babes, now if you would give that as a little more twirl that would be even more sexy” She complimented “Don’t for get to
pose with your hands on your Hips when you come near the couch as a model does at the end of the ramp”. Pinky started to wiggle her ass as much as she can trying her best to satisfy Varsha’s demands,
as she came near the couch she sulking olny the humiliation gave a pose with her hands on her hips. “Nice baby, very good. I Love the way you are keeping your promise Pinky, I will give you a treat
tonight don’t worry” Pinky gave her a smile “Anything for you Madam, Hopefully I have proved my love for you”. “You are going good so far Pink that’s all I can say” said Varsha.
“Before we head to your dress , my head is aching a little , could you please go and make a cup of tea for me Pinky” “But I am in not wearing anything Madam” retorted Pinky. “Not wearing anything?
Then what are these?Buy the way why do you need clothes to make a cup of tea? Go now as you are” Pinky shocked at her response she is now purposely degrading him, cursing her within She started to
take small steps towards the kitchen “And Babe Be Quick ” Varsha exclaimed “Sure Madam” Pinky replied meekly. After few minutes tea was ready She poured it in a Tea Mug and he was to the hall when
Varsha shouted “Would like some biscuits too Pinks”. Annoyingly she turned back to the kitchen, brought Biscuits and Tea on a tray and served it to Varsha. Varsha too the Mug ,but since there was no
table near the couch, She ordered him “Oh , there is no table here to keept the tray , do one thing for me naa , Hold the tray for me Pinky till have the tea” pointing to the floor ask him to kneel
before her Holding the tray. Pinky obeyed her, She was holding the tray with her head down in Shame, Varsha was treating her more like a slave than Lover he thought. Varsha had some biscuits and tea,
she noticed Pinky’s expression “Why are you so worried Pinky, Tell me naa,any problem my love?”She asked ,Pinky rerplied “Madam , I am realy worried that you are treating me more and more like a
slave than lover degrading me at everyturn , I don’t know how much more I can take it, I want to go back to being Naveen”. “Ohh Sweety,”She started playing with is nipples “That’s not like that , I
told you naa this is a series of tests ,You have to prove yourself”. Pinky was getting turned on with all the nipple play “Actualy My former lover was 10 years older than me, she also made me undergo
similar tests to prove my devotion to her” . “Okay lets make a deal , for one month prove me your devotion and when I am sure of your love for me I will play as your slave for the next month, hows
the deal?” “I...I agree to it I guess madam” replied Pinky, “So Who are you now?” She asked “I..I am Pinky Madam ” “and what are you?”to which he replied “I am Pinky , your lover.” “My Lover in
?”Pinky was puzzeled after a thought she blurted out in hesitatingly “You Lover in Panties??”. “Yes that’s right baby,you are my lover in Panties” she continued “Now this is full and final, no more
discussion on it, One question raised and I will walk straight out of this room” to which Pinky nodded. Varsha finished the tea and ordered Pinky the get ready to get dressed. She went and kept the
tray in the Kitchen ,came back to the hall.
#793
NKSMB(Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:44)
Varsha held out a long Red transparent sleeveless Shear Dress for Pinky, “How is it Babes?” she asked “Very Nice” replied Pinky. She ordered him to insert his hands inside the dress and then she tied
its string in the back. The dress was so transpresnt that everything inside was visible , it also had along slit in the middle till his stomach with her panties almost on display. “Oh My God, this is
looking better than I thought, My lovely Girl” Varsha pulling Pinky’s cheecks. “Now before we head for make up , lets order some food for tonight’s candle light dinner, Pick up the phone and order”.
Pinky nodded picked his mobile and called a local restaurant and started ordering “Hello this is Naveen” ,Varsha grabbed the mobile and cut the call. “what the hell are you doing”She said “You are
Pinky remember, Talk to him in a girly voice ,introduce to him as Pinky”. Pinky dumstruck for a second but was forced to call , in a girly tone he said “Hello this is Pinky speaking” and then
proceeded to place the order.
“Good Girl, Now for your final touch up, I have brought my make up kit with me ,come here kneel before me”. He complied, First she worked the base coat of foundation into his skin. She plucked a few
stray hairs from his eyebrows as well, causing a few yelps of pain. She then proceded to put mascara, eye shadow, blush and lipstick on his face. In fifteen minutes, he was transformed. Looking into
the mirror, he could not believe that he was seeing his own face. “Look at you ,you Look Like Priyanka chopra in that Desi girl song from Dostana” she said chuckling . Pinky just gave a slight fake
smile. “I complimented you babes, you shud thank me, that would what a women with manners will do” she said teasingly “Well thanks a lot Madam”. “What about thanking me for making you look this
gorgeous?” “Thanks a lot Madam “ he said again “Thanks for what?” She asked “Well thanks for making me look gorgeous” “Gorgeous what?”she asked again ,Pinky again sulking her pride “Thanks for making
me look like a gorgeous lady”. “Oh no need to thank me Poooo, I would always want my lover to look sexy” replied Varsha teasingly playing with Pinky’s nose.
PS : Pinky's Dress , but Colour = Red https://img.looksgud.com/blog/wp-content/uploads/2016/01/underwear-with-blue-sheer-dress.jpg
#794
NKSMB(Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:53)
The Hotel was near to the apartment and delivery came within 15 minutes as the guy rang the bell. “Oh the delivery is here, Here take this purse and give him the money” said Varsha “But I am in this
dress” retorted Pinky . “So what do as your told , Go” replied Varsha “Please Madam, I don’t want to go out like this” begged Pinky. “ What did I tell you just now, If you don’t obey me I will leave
right now, He is just another random delivery guy, Go and open the door ” she shouted as Pinky dragged herself to the door “Don’t forget to talk in your girly tone” Varsha Laughed. Pinky opened the
door “Good evening Ma’am” said the Delivery guy who was taken aback at seeing a lady wearing a transparent dress, he could even get a glimpse of her panty. “I am here to deliver the parcel”. Pinky
noded and with great courage and girly voice “How much” she asked. The guy was surprised by the tone and after seeing carefully he noticed something is wrong “Rs 3500 Ma’am” he said. Pinky removed
the money from the purse and handed it over to him “Thank you sir...I mean Ma’am” replied the guy he left. Pinky’s eyes widened, she was in horror , the boy had found out that she was a man in drag,
he cursed himself for getting into this mess sulked his pride and closed the door.
“Could you please set the table quickly babe I am really hungry.” Pinky noded “Sure Madam” proceded to set the dining table . Varsha went and sat on one end of the table and Pinky opened the parcel
and started to serve . “Keep a plate for yourself too, it valentine’s day, We both lovers will have a good meal”. Pinky was happy hearing that For the first time Varsha had called him lover and
treated him as Equal. She sat with Varsha to have the dinner, throught the meal Varsha went on telling fake stories of her and her imaginary girlfriend, and how after her demise She was lucky to find
someone so loving and devoted to her as Pinky. After finishing the dinner , Varsha went on switched on the Music player and played the song from titanic, “Pinky ,My dear valentine, will you dance
with me” she asked knelling in front of her , Pinky willingly nodded and accepted as both started dancing , Pinky was finding it difficult dancing in the heels, Varsha noticed it and said “Oh Babes ,
Dance like a girl, follow the lead from me by taking small steps, I will dance you just follow me”. As they danced till the music ended and finaly Varsha took Pinky in her arms and gave her a long
kiss, Pinky totally enjoyed the kiss especially how Varsha played with her lips.
“Pinky Darling I cant wait to make out with you” Varsha exclaimed. Pinky’s eyes lit up , this what she was waiting for a chance to make out and prove his manliness to Varsha “But first I want you to
wear something appropriate for the night” she said pulling something out from he shopping bag, It as a short red transparent Negligee. Even though Pinky didn’t liked the humiliating night gown he
forgot his pride for one last time. Varsha removed the straps of Pinky’s dress as she pulled the dress from her body. She then unstrapped the panty girdle too . Pinky then ordered slid the Negligee
over her body. That is when when She lifted Pinky and proceeded towards the bedroom , Pinky was totally embarrassed by Varsha lifting him he offered no resistance though. As the entered the bedroom
Varsha threw Pinky on the bed. Varsha then told him to close his eyes for surprise. As he closed his eyes , he heared a click sound , his hands were now both handcuffed to the bed, and was now lying
helpless on the bed. Then Varsha her self started to strip , She was down to her innerwears . “Oh my sexy bitch , How is it feeling to be my plaything”She asked “Madam Please Open My cuffs” She
replied. “No no no ,Enough of you speaking tonight” she proceeded to remove her Panty and insterted inside Pinky’s mouth, Helpless Pinky was now feeling disgusted with the panty in her mouth. Varsha
then Pulled the negligee till her neck, and Started Licking her body, “Oh My Pinky, My strawberry flavoured Ice cream” This was turning Pinky on. Pinky didn’t visualize that Sex with Varsha would end
up with him being helpless Ice Cream bar. She was so dominant and decisive about the whole thing. Pinky never imagined that Varsha would be so selfish , it was just her pleasure and his pain .
Through out he was lying on the bed with her panty in his mouth and she sat over him, grinding herself on his cock, totally using it as a tool for her pleasure, not caring at all about Pinky’s pain,
as though she wanted to tear it off. It was more than discomfort, it actually hurt, but after some time pinky started loving it and also she was happing seeing the pleasure written all over Varsha’s
face. Atlast Pinky came strongly .
Thanks for all the support ,
@Poornima Never Intended to make it Gay , I myself skip gay stories.
Hoping for Reviews of Pt 3
#795
Rashmi(Thursday, 02 March 2017 20:13)
Great going NKSMB......
@SRS pls continue your story....
#796
Poornima(Friday, 03 March 2017 03:24)
Great story nksmb but just a suggestion. Story would be awesome with desi girlie dresses than girdle and stockings. Enough of western wear. Would like to see the dressing in saree, salwar, ghagra,
half saree and long skirts.
#797
NKSMB(Friday, 03 March 2017 04:47)
@Poornima ,
Right now Pinky is a owner of a multi million startup , So she is wearing what High class woman will wear. But with change of Class will come Change of Attire.
#798
lover of feminity(Friday, 03 March 2017 05:22)
hello NKSMB first ever m writting any comment srs you and NKSMB like your story very much even i can't explain and please this my humble request use western clothes sexy clothes m unable to do all
things in real but i can imagine all these things on me and become happy atleast i can do all these things in my imagination thanks for posting such a lovely stories and make me happy
#799
Kumaari(Sunday, 05 March 2017 08:48)
@NKSMB great going.... Eagerly waiting for next parts....
#800
sirisha(Sunday, 05 March 2017 11:57)
SRS plzz update the remaining parts
#801
SRS(Sunday, 05 March 2017 12:44)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 6 # 729
when they have told that my name will be shamala form now on wards I was totally embarrassed an felt shy, after that my sis told that tomorrow is Saturday so u have 2 days time to get transformation
an my aunt told that I have to change all my indent in my driving licence, voter id etc. This an all making me total shock I don’t know what comes next, we took dinner an my uncle is watching news ,
in that many sakti girls who are boys now attempt for suside an many of them dead , some of them became murderess while forcing them into famine and they to escape from house. I was thinking what to
do whether I escape from this houses a go somewhere else, at that time my uncle told what ur looking for, if u want to go out from this house then ur welcome we will not stop u because I dint like
you to stay as sissy boy. I was totally shocked on hearing that. There come small tears from my eye while my uncle told it. after we took dinner and I went to sleep in my room at that time my aunt
told were ur going go to ur sis room an she took me to her room an told to remove all of my dress an were nighty on saying this my sis started to lol, I felt very humility an throw the cloth while
doing this my sis grab me but I too pushed her and she felt down , my aunt was shocked on seeing my strength after that she took her phone an talked to someone an I too left from there I went to my
room but unexpectedly there my uncle was standing there and he was really angry about what I did to his daughter , he told u have not allowed to sleep in individual room , either u go to ur sis room
r there is lil place outside the house were our dog use to sleep, I felt sad while my uncle speak like this to me, b4 he loves me an respect me but everything turns upside down. I slowly went to sis
room an my sis saw me in anger face for pushing her down an I dint were any of her cloth I lie down. in other side my aunt was talking to her close friend shoba she is an top most surgeon in India ,
but she hate me a lot cause my uncle showed interest a lot for me instead of his own daughter an my aunt complained to her an cried a lot about this, I too not give her respect an one day there is
small fight going on between me an shoba telling that I dint respect woman not only I dint respect aunt an daughter an always took advantage with my uncle and I told men no need to give respect to
woman cause they are slaves of men , they always want to serve men can do their needs, better u don’t interfere in this are else u too become my slave. on saying this she became anger an slapped me
after I to slapped her too , the main thing is she is equal to my aunt age at least I have to respect to her age, I complained to my uncle and he came an told to get out from this house an never dare
to come again. on hearing this she felt insult an told to me that ur not respecting woman cause u have those balls , make sure 1 day I will cut those balls of yours an hang it in both sides of ur ear
as earring so that u can able to know how woman’s feels when they hurt, I told get lost bitch an she went off, after that several years she dint come to our hose nor talk, This are all happened in
past now the thing is different cause everybody know that I get power before for only of my uncle support which I will not get anymore. Now my aunt request her to come our house , my uncle dint care
about this convention cause he totally felt upset about me an he don’t care now. It was late night when shoba came to our house I was sleeping with my two sis, my aunt took here to another room.
Shoba asked what’s the matter y u have called me urgently, is there any problem by that bloody sham, an my aunt started to explain everything to her after hearing all the thing she felt really happy
an told look even god also support us an that’s he deserves this kind of punishment, an my aunt told not only god total government with us unexpectedly they make un rule an that’s turns our favor, an
shoba asked ok now what kind of help u need ?, an she told that I have given first shot of Harmon an they told the dress code in school an activity but he is not accepting it an if then he is more
stronger so v cant able to control it in fact today I told him to were nighty but he pushed my daughter an went off , I can’t understand how its possible while he is getting the female hormone!.
#802
SRS(Sunday, 05 March 2017 12:45)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 7
Shoba told that it’s because of his male Harmon is more powerful so that it will take more time to change even though v put heavy does, my aunt told is there is any solution cause he is not listening
anything , an shoba told that male hormones’ produce from testicle from where the balls locate due to high produce of sperm which he get that’s y it took long time to change, an my aunt ask that is
there any solution for that an she told that did u remember that what I have told last time when I saw sham that I will cut those balls of yours an hang it in both sides of ur ear as earring so that
u can able to know how woman’s feels when they hurt, an my aunt was shocked and ask if any problem will happen then we will go to jail ? an shoba told u have forget that he is suppose to turn as
woman an if we do like this then government will encourage us cause we are doing this for our government also. My aunt ask them how will we operate to him and she told u bring him to my clinic
tomorrow then v will see. An after long conversation she left an my aunt too went to sleep, here I was sleeping with my two sis sherya an pranitha , this is the first time am sleeping with woman an
its loll uncomfortable in early morning when I was I deep sleep v three are in the same bed, I was dreaming about kavitha that we make a love an had a wonderful sex at that time suddenly sherya woke
up and saw what am doing my penis get hard erect at that time my aunt came for woke us an she too saw that an told to here this is the last time my dear I promise next time it will not happen. An she
left, after few minutes I wake up an my aunt told to get ready cause v have lot of work to do, I take a quick bath an wore my old dress and ate the breakfast an v four of them went an my aunt told
that she want to meet her friend after that we will started our work an v stop in one clinic I told that I will wait in car but she told that it will took some time so better come inside an wait. we
went inside in a cabin an there I saw shoba mam an she started to smile at me it was strange to me I thought that something is going to happen to me an suddenly I thought that what she told last time
and I felt scared and I started to run from there an shoba order there nurse to catch me , I was running like hell at 1 point I saw police jeep is standing there I went for help there 1 lady
inspector was standing an I came to her an told that they are trying to kill me an beg for help, she took me by jeep an went to that clinic an went near to shoba an started to enquirer I was now
relaxed an thought that if the police woman arrest her an after long conversation an my aunt showed some proof an after that lady inspector came near me an told don’t worry my boy Indian will me so
proud of u all an suddenly she grabbed me so tight an pushed me in the corner of the wall and that sister bring the injection an inject me in the left side of my arm after few seconds I felt into
deep sleep.
Proposal
Due to Saturday Nick has gone for lunch to near by restaurant and when he reached his house he saw a packet in front of his house on the packet written as for you nick. packet is in rectangular shape
it won't be much weight it hardly weighs half a kg he slowly went inside the house and opened the box. A sari is their in side the packet nick was mesmerized with the color of sari and he slowly kept
that sari near his cheeks and enjoying the texture and slowly he went inside his room and want to try this sari when he opened the sari a letter was fallen from that sari. letter kept inside the sari
he took out and read dear nikkie he immediately shocked till know he felt that no one knew about his secret know he got a stalker for him. Later on after a few minutes he took some courage and taken
that letter once again.
Dear Nikkie,
First i want to confess some thing about you. I like your innocence and your stupidity and i love your non-stop chatter box your are the best cook that i met after my mom. You have a great taste of
selection of clothes the way carry your self is awesome.
I don't know when i fell for you idiot i want you to propose me but you are in love with yourself that you can't see so i want to show you the world with my love. later i under stood that i won't get
pretty girl like you in my life once again so with out any hesitation i decide to protect this beauty for whole life.
Still i fell embarrass when i think about it how my favorite idiot become my angel. hey baby get ready in that sari i will wait for you at our regular point. I explained about us to our
families
Your Love Stefan
nick felt shocked after reading stefan real name is stephanie and they both are childhood friends he slapped himself strongly that he never found his love their near by him and some body opened the
he saw his mom came inside and handovered dangling ear rings and designer golden bangles set. she said get ready dear he will wait for you nick shock listening that and says sorry mom. she says this
is not time for this go head he immediately dress in the sari and his mom wears ear rings and bangles to he looks very natural no one differentiate him with women.
He came out his dad gives him sandals to wear and he was totally in front of his dad and he came out at gate he saw his sister waiting for him she is wearing jeans shirt and sat on his bike and told
him come sis i will drop you he sat one sided like his sister regularly do but today she became brother she dropped him and said all the best he kissed her on cheek she left from their. stefan came
their in a car and taken nikkie to near by beach and their he booked a total ship. they are childhood friends but they are not speaking from when they met at last stefan stood and kissed nikkie to
break the silence nikkie slapped suddenly reaction happened both are shocked and laughed had some wine and stefan stood on the knees proposed nikkie. he took his hand and lifted her and gently gone
nearer to her and they both came near very close and nikkie kissed stefan as a acceptance.
The end
#805
Sushie(Thursday, 09 March 2017 20:36)
Please continue srs
#806
Dream girl(Friday, 10 March 2017 20:50)
do all REAL MEN who have fit body, physique like a hunk or beast... looks dashing, handsome and bodybuilder.
https://m.facebook.com/profile.php?ref=bookmarks&soft=bookmarks
#807
Dream girl(Friday, 10 March 2017 20:53)
to all REAL MEN who have fit body, physique like a hunk or beast... looks dashing, handsome and bodybuilder.
https://m.facebook.com/profile.php?ref=bookmarks&soft=bookmarks
send me frn rqst
Hi friends.
My name is Monu Chaudhary.
Prior to my marriage, my name was Kuldeep Gupta but my wife changed my name and ofcourse, after the marriage, I had to take her sirname.
I am a crossdressing househusband. My fb profile is Monu Chaudhary, Fb page- I am a househusband and my blog nameis cdhousehusband.
I had earlier written twice on this page but the stories were not very well received as they were my actual life experiences and didn’t have actual MASALA for the readers here.
Recently, a few of my fb friends wanted me to write some fantasies and I thought that I might as well paste them here too. Please give comments if you like it.
My fantasy story is set in future in the year 2184.
After the World war III in 2036 and subsequent nuclear holocaust, in which almost half of the world population was wiped out, it was felt that all this could have been avoided had the decision making
power been with the female gender. It was unanimously decided that to prevent such catastrophes, all major decisions shall be taken by females.
This led to females being promoted to all the highest positions while their male counterparts were relegated to lower posts and salaries. As the next generation arrived, females were more assertive,
strong headed and demanding. Slowly, the changes appeared in social life also. Males started being submissive. There were very few job openings for males and majority of them started opting for lower
jobs like office maids and secretaries. Even these jobs were not enough and since domestic helps were very costly, many of the couples decided that the males shall stay at home as househusbands and
let the females earn the daily bread and butter.
The biological supremacy of the females of producing a new life was to remain with them but the job of taking care of the newborn was naturally shifted to the husbands. They started taking medicines
to grow their breasts so that they may nurse the newborns. Initially, it was only for the househusbands but very soon, this trend grew like anything and the male breasts became a sexual attraction
for the more aggressive females. Females did not need breasts anymore and took medicines to remain flat chested.
Male fashions changed and instead of shirts and pants, they started preferring the more beautiful dresses and sarees. Breasts had to be supported by bras and this led to virtual revolution in male
fashion. Males wanted to look sexually attractive to their wives least they should start having affairs with their office staff or secretaries. Even the unmarried boys started growing breasts to
attract their future wives. The marriage proposals were more for the girls who earned more and for boys who were more beautiful. The norms of the society had reversed.
Within a span of 100 years from World War III, The norms of male female relationship had turned upside down and my patents, who were born in 2140 belonged to the generation for whom female supremacy
was not an exception but a norm.
Now the story:
I am the third sibling of my parents. My mother wanted a daughter but after 4 sons, she decided that it was the wish of the Goddess and refused to marry another man for the sake of producing a
daughter. My mother is a farmer and owns a lot of agricultural land. She wanted her sons to be good househusbands to their wives and all of us passed 12th class and did a diploma in home
science.
My 2 elder brothers have been married and living with their wives in their respective homes. My parents have been looking for a suitable girl for me. I have no say in this matter. They have selected
a girl for me. She is a doctor and has a good income. She is coming to see me today.
Last night, I overheard my father talking to my mother. My mother had taken her dinner and as usual, father was sitting on the floor besides her. He was wearing a saree and had sindoor in his maang.
He had a mangalsootra around his neck and glass bangles on his wrists. He was pressing the legs of my mom and talking to her in a very low voice, “ Don’t you think that her complexion is dark, Our
son is very fair”. Mother, in her stern voice, immediately rebuked him ”Don’t be silly. A girl needs to have a good income to support a family. Complexion is for boys. Consider yourself to be very
lucky if she likes our son. These days, a doctor girl, who is not asking for a dowry is very hard to find”. “we shall be giving a dowry to our son. Won’t we?” said my father in a low voice keeping
his eyes towards the floor . Mother laughed “As they say, males have no wisdom. You idiot, this is a multi-millionaire family. If they want dowry according to their status, we stand no chance.
However, they want a boy who should always obey and serve his wife and inlaws. Our two sons are keeping their wives happy and this marriage proposal has come only because of this fact”.
As my prospective wife and her parents entered our home, I could hear my heart pounding. I was wearing a green saree, specially bought for this occasion. My elder brother, whose wife was a cousin
sister of this girl, had come last night and had informed that her favourite colour was green. I had a matching blouse and my hair were in a bun. I had been thoroughly instructed by him for the
occasion.” No matter what, keep your eyes towards the floor. Keep your head covered in presence of your inlaws but you must drop your palloo on some pretex when you are alone with her so that she may
have a fair idea of the assets which she is going to own” she had giggled and I had thrown a pillow at her.
As I served tea to the guests, I managed a hidden glance towards her. She was staring at me and smiled. My cheeks got red with shame. Bhaiya took me inside so that elders may talk. Shortly, my father
came inside with the good news. I had been approved but they wanted an early marriage as my future wife had a new job at a big hospital at Delhi and my father in law wanted someone to look after his
daughter in a new city where she shall be living away from her parents.
I was married to Dr. Garima Chaudhary within 15days.
My suhaag raat was celebrated at the ancestral home of my wife. Her brothers did my makeup and made me sit on the bed with a ghoonghat on my face. As she entered the room, my heart started pounding
so loudly that I was afraid that she may hear my heartbeats. As she raised my ghoonghat, I got pink with shame. She remarked,” you are wearing a pink saree darling. If you blush like this, how would
I know that I have disrobed you when the color of your skin and saree shall match like this” I blushed even more fiercely.
There was a knock on the door and as she opened the door, someone passed a glass of milk to her. I remembered bhaiya’s instructions and gotup from the bed. As she turned towards me, I sat on the
floor and put my forehead on her shoes. She asked me to getup and gave me the glass of milk and went to the bathroom to change.
She was wearing a Kurta and lunge as she returned. I gave her milk but she refused. “Tonight, I have to drink from the original source” she pointed towards my breasts. I blushed again. “Please drink
half of it for me. Its bad omen if you don’t take this milk tonight”, I said keeping my voice low and my eyes on the floor. She obliged and I took the rest of the milk from the same glass.
She pulled me towards her and slowly started removing my jewelry. She was constantly talking to me to relieve my tension. “ So, what are the instructions of your brothers for suhaag raat” she asked
as she was removing my saree. I was dying of shame so I said “nothing”. I yelped with pain as she pinched me on my buttocks. She had already placed a hand on my mouth so my shriek didn’t come out.”
Next one shall be on your cheek if you are not honest and then you shall have a hard time explaining to everyone as to what happened’ she said firmly. “ comeon. Tell me the instructions”. She started
fumbling with the button of my blouse.
“They only asked me to place my head on your feet and take your blessings” I lied. My blouse had already been unbuttoned and I was trying unsuccessfully to cover my breasts with my arms. “lier again”
she pulled the cord of my petticoat. “No pleeeeeese” I cried. “I am telling the truth”. “Didn’t they tell you to clinch your teeth when she pinches on your breasts like this” she asked again,
pinching my nipples as she unclasped my bra. I knew that there was no escape so I told the truth. “yes, They did” “Good. What else” she asked. “They asked me to climax with your permission only” I
moaned as she pulled down my petticoat and panties.
She had not removed a single stich of cloth from her own body as I was lying on her bed, stark naked, dying of shame. My penis was rockstrong as she mounted me without removing her clothes. She was
not wearing anything beneth the lungee and she slid my member inside her body with a low moan.
“Have you ever gone through this before” she suddenly asked.
“NO. Never. I am a virgin. I have kept this body sacred for you my Goddess” I whispered. She smiled” You must have seen someone doing like this” she remarked. By now, I knew that somehow, she could
know if I was telling the truth. So I truthfully admitted” Once I saw Bhabhi doing a similar act with bhaiya”.
Actually After my Diploma in homescience was complete, bhaiya had asked our parents to send me to his place so that I may learn to manage the household. There I had seen that bhabhi was always
scolding bhaiya and used to even slap him on little mistakes. I had asked that how he could tolerate all this and yet started doing makeup when she returns from office to look attractive for her. He
had told me that when a wife makes love to you at night, you get so much pleasure that you become a slave to her. I had peeped in to their bedroom at night and a similar sean was being played on
myself tonight. Next morning, I had confessed to Bhaiya that I had peeped into his room and there also, I had found that bhaiya was pleading with bhabhi to not to pinch him and give further pain but
bhabhi was not listening. Bhaiya had just smiled and said that once your wife makes love to you, you shall know.
As My Wife started riding me with my member inside her, I remembered something and smiled. She immediately stopped and asked” What are you thinking”. I knew that there was no point in hiding
something. Being a doctor, She could read my mind perhaps. “ Why all females are alike? When I saw bhaiya and bhabhi making love, there also, Bhabhi was wearing all the clothes and bhaiya was naked
and here too, you have kept me in a similar position”. She smiled and said’ Its because we want to remind you that who is the owner and who is slave”. “But that’s not fair. I left my home and came
here to serve your every need. Your word shall be my command. I shall cook for you, wash your clothes, eat in your used plate, wash utensils and press your legs at night. You have the power to
takeoff all my clothes at your wish. That is only because I consider myself to be your slave. Why do you want to prove it now” As I said that, I bit my tongue, feeling afraid that I might have
offended her but she was smiling, “ alright darling, I think that you are right” she said as she started taking off her kurta from her muscular but flat chest. “but remember, don’t expect any mercy
from me while making love. I like it when a boy cries of pain when I push him to the limit”. As she increased her speed, my body was filled with pleasure that I had never experienced before. I was on
the sky and she was with me and that was all that mattered now. We both climaxed at the same time.
Please give your comments. I shall continue only if you like my story.
#815
rita(Monday, 13 March 2017 12:25)
amaizing story monu
please continue
#816
Alexvyaz(Monday, 13 March 2017 15:45)
Monu, I like your story and want to see next parts.
Gender role reversal future is my favorite fantasy. ;)
#817
shila(Monday, 13 March 2017 21:48)
monu great story......
we want next part of your stories
friends i am boy but want to be girl secretly any one make me as girl mentally i need forced feminization treat me as a girl like order me as mistress i will do it for u i no need anything from u ur
photos identification or money just need from u oly friendship may be u think im fake but my inner feelings is true she killing me everyday to let her out but i cant bec if i let her out i lost
everything my family friends everything i hold now so i cant let her out in society did any one here to help me secretly i just need ur help..thanks its my fb id rk8997588@gmail.com any one willing
oly give request friends...
Thanks Rita, Alexvyaz and Shila.
Its nice to know that you liked my story. As I have already told you that Iam a househusband and I have so much load of household work and 24x7 job of serving my wife that I dont get time to write
stories. My wife is a software professional and whenever she is out of Delhi due to her job, I get time to write.
She is going to US in last week of march and I shall certainly post some stories for you at that time.
luv.
Monu
#820
alpana(Tuesday, 14 March 2017 02:01)
monu great story and nice plot.
here three suggestions for you.
1) including both husband and wife clothing details
2) including bike riding
3) including strapon sox
overall nice plot and amazing story monu
please continue it
Thanks Alpaana.
Will try to take care in my next part.
luv.
Monu
#822
SRS(Wednesday, 15 March 2017 01:06)
Nice monu
#823
SHRUTHI(Wednesday, 15 March 2017 02:01)
SRS COME BACK SOON WITH MORE UPDATES
#824
Sushie(Wednesday, 15 March 2017 09:10)
SRS, Please continue
#825
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:18)
mohit to mohini
Rita and Mohit were making love. He was on top and doing as goods he ever did. In their five years of marriage they made love at least one or two times a week. When they finished their lovemaking,
Mohit felt great.
They laid next to each other and Mohit told Rita that he loved her. His euphoria ended when Rita said, "Mohit, I don't want to hurt your feelings but you have never been big enough to satisfy me. It
is like you aren't hitting the spot. Your tool isn't long enough to reach it. I love you but it has come time for me to tell you. You may be satisfied but I am not. I'm sorry I have to tell you
this."
He was thunderstruck. He had never imagined she wasn't being satisfied. He knew his tool was small but he thought it did the job. This was crushing to him. He felt terrible.
Rita turned his head toward her and kissed him and said, "Don't worry. I still love you and I have no intention of getting rid of you. You have many other qualities that I value. You are soft and
loving and take good care of all the other things I want in a husband."
He felt a bit better after she told him that but still he felt like he was letting her down. He didn't feel any better when she jokingly added, "I love you. You are my moooohita."
The next morning they were on their way to work. They owned their own company, providing home medical supplies, the only ones in that business for forty-five miles around. They were successful, even
getting customers from sixty miles away because their small town overhead allowed them to charge lower prices. Rita was nominal president and Mohit was chief financial officer.
#826
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:19)
mohit to mohini
They treated their employees so well that everyone wanted to work for them. They had eighteen full-time employees, all women except for Mohit. The employees were like family to each other. Mohit was
well liked as a boss and a person.
They were in a staff meeting and Rita asked for suggestions for where to hold the employee family picnic. Mohit said, "Why not go back to Veteran's Park? It was fun there last year."
Rita said, "Moooohita, we are having a record year. We should make this picnic special, like driving the forty miles to Anderson's Amusement Park. They have rides and a zoo there. I know the kids
will love it. Who wants to help me set something up?"
Preety, Shalni and Vandna all volunteered. Mohit was going to volunteer but was miffed that Rita had called him moooohita in front of the girls. He went to his office and got to work. He was lost in
work when Julie and Saroj knocked on his door and came in. They invited him to join them for lunch. He accepted and saved his work and left with them.
At lunch the girls asked him what the moooohita was all about. He told them it was a pet name Rita had for him. They enjoyed each others company and soon it was time to return to the office. Mohit
sat down in his office and thought about Julie and Saroj. He thought they were the two nicest people in the office.
What he didn't know is what had transpired with Rita, Preety, Shalni and Vandna following the staff meeting. They had decided on the amusement park for the picnic. After it was all taken care of
Preety had asked Rita what the 'moooohita' was all about, and Rita told them that Mohit wasn't overly endowed down below. They all giggled, and Preety said she had a boyfriend once who was that way.
She said she put him in panties and a dress for two days and then sent him home in the dress. The four women all agreed that if a man can't satisfy a woman then he should be put in a dress. When the
meeting was over, Rita asked Preety to stay for a minute.
The other girls left and Rita asked, "Did you really put your boyfriend in a dress?"
Preety told her, "Yes and he was really down at first but I think by the second day he enjoyed it. I had to use force to get him in the dress the first time but I got him there and made him keep it
on."
Rita asked, "Do you think you could get Mohit in a dress?"
Preety said, "There isn't a man out there I couldn't do with as I want. I am stronger than most men and for those I am not I have other means."
Rita asked, "If I asked you, would you try to get Mohit in a dress?"
#827
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:20)
mohit to mohini
Preety said, "Sure, I don't think he would pose a great problem."
Rita told her, "I'll think about it and let you know."
In a small group like that gossip like that spreads like wildfire. By the time Mohit, Saroj and Julie got back from lunch everyone but them knew what had transpired between Rita and Preety. And Mohit
wasn't in his office ten minutes before Saroj and Julie knew.
Mohit called Preety into his office. She was his assistant. He asked her about the quarterly figures. They had had the same financial program on their computers but three months ago Preety asked if
she could try another financial program.
Preety said, "I will have the figures done before I go home. That new program makes it child's' play to run the quarterly figures. It imports the last quarterly figures and all I have to do is enter
this quarters figures. Then I can have it project next quarter's figures, once we have a year's statistics available."
Mohit said, "I might switch to that program instead of this one, where I have to enter each figure manually. How hard is it to learn?"
Preety said, "It isn't bad at all. It took some doing to enter the category headers and item names but once that's in place it's a snap. I can probably teach you in two days and then you'll be all
set to use it."
Mohit said, "It will take me until Friday to do it with this program so why don't we use next Monday and Tuesday to install and set it up on my computer."
Preety said, "It sounds good to me, Mohita."
He immediately asked, "What did you call me?"
Preety said, "Mohita. If your wife calls you that why shouldn't we? We are all like family here, so we should all share nicknames."
He didn't answer. Preety got up and left. When he went out to the coffee machine three girls said 'hello, Mohita' to him. He was upset at being called Mohita but didn't say anything to the girls. He
went back to entering figures for the quarter. He was only half way through last quarter's figures and he wanted to get it done. He was busy with the figures when his E-mail notifier flashed. He
checked it, and saw it was Rita asking him to come to her office.
He saved his work and went to his wife's office. She told him she had some papers that he had to sign. She handed them to him and showed him where to sign. He signed them and saw she was smiling at
him. He thought, she is in a good mood, so now is the time to talk to her.
He said, "I am hurt that you called me moooohita this morning. Now all the girls are calling me Mohita. We have to put a stop to it before it gets carried away. I don't like being called
Mohita."
#828
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:22)
mohit to mohini
Rita asked, "What do you like being called? Perhaps God or something."
He said, "Anything but Mohita!"
Rita stood up and when he stood up she directed him to the door. They stepped out and Rita said in a loud voice, "Please stop calling Mohit Mohita. Call him anything but Mohita."
One of the girls asked, "If we can't call him Mohita can we call him Mohini? It is as close to Mohita as I can think of. "
Mohit went into shock when Rita said, "Mohini's fine. You can call him Mohini then."
Mohit said to Rita in a low voice, "You can't be serious. Mohini is a woman name. Why did you say that to the girls?"
Rita said, "Because didn't you say they could call you anything but Mohita? Now, Mohini, get back to work!" She looked at him with contempt written all over her face.
The tone of her voice told him it was useless to argue. He went back to his office to bury himself in his work. He couldn't get into it because he was upset. He went to get a cup of coffee.
As he passed Preety's desk she said, "You're drinking more coffee, Mohini. Coffee will make you hyper."
He didn't bother to answer her. Every other girl he passed or met said hello to Mohini. He was upset but didn't argue with any of them.
He would have been more upset if he'd been in Rita's office at that time. Saroj and Julie were talking to Rita. Saroj took the lead and said, "There is gossip going around the office that you asked
Preety if she would get Mohini in a dress. Preety can be very mean when she wants to be. I have seen her three times out with a man and she had all three of them crying. Both of us really like your
husband and don't want to see him hurt like that."
Rita asked, "What are you proposing?"
Julie answered, "Saroj and I have talked it over. We would rather not see you put him in a dress but if you are intent on the idea and are not going to do it yourself then we would like to try. We
will be gentler with him than Preety, that's for sure. What do you have in mind?"
#829
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:24)
mohit to mohini
Rita said, "I love my husband but he is not much of a man in a manly way. All I want is to see if he wakes up to being more of a man. I just want to see him stand up for himself, just once."
The two girls said they understood. Rita said she had to get some clothes for him. They decided that Julie's apartment would be the best place for the transformation. Rita told Julie to meet her in
an hour and a half at her apartment.
An hour and a half later the two women met and Julie carefully hung a beautiful dress in her spare bedroom closet. Julie told Rita how they intended to get him into the dress. Rita was glad that they
intended on being gentle with him.
The two women went back to the office without Mohit even knowing that they had been gone. Rita told Julie she would let her know when and if they were to do something. Julie thought Rita went to a
lot of fuss and bother to not know if she was going to do something or not.
On the way home Mohit told Rita about the program on Preety's computer and that they were going to install it on his for the next quarterly report.
Rita asked, "Do you mean that Preety is used to doing the reports?"
Mohit answered, "Yes, for the last two quarters she has done them with the new program and I used the one we have been using. She has been done two days before I am done. The new program will save us
a lot of time."
Rita said, "That's good. It answers a big question for me."
Mohit asked, "What big question?"
Rita replied, "Oh, it was nothing much. What you are saying is Preety can do all of what you do and she is doing it faster?"
He told her that was about it. He didn't know why she was smiling so broadly. That night in bed she advanced on him and after they were done making love Rita got a pair of lacy panties out of her
dresser drawer and handed them to Mohit. He asked what he was supposed to do with them.
Rita said, "Put them on. Your little tool belongs in panties not boxers. Now, do as you are told and put them on or I'll see how you look in a nightgown."
The ice in her voice was enough to make him put them on. He got into bed feeling foolish but noticed that they felt sensual to him. The next morning he was going to take them off and Rita told him to
keep them on. He asked why and she said if he didn't she would give him another pair with a matching bra and make sure he wore them. He didn't argue with her.
Rita laid there thinking about how easy she got him to put the panties on. She wondered if he would ever stand up like a man and take control. She thought about how she never saw him get angry or
really stand up to anyone when he was being challenged. She thought maybe a dress would wake him up. She decided to challenge him to the max and see if she could get him to act like a man.
All the way to work he felt the softness of the panties. It was disconcerting to him. It riled up his feelings knowing he had woman's panties on. He didn't know what to do about it. When they got to
work he headed straight for his office. He felt as if every one of the girls were staring right through his pants at his panties
#830
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:28)
mohit to mohini
Rita said, "I love my husband but he is not much of a man in a manly way. All I want is to see if he wakes up to being more of a man. I just want to see him stand up for himself, just once."
The two girls said they understood. Rita said she had to get some clothes for him. They decided that Julie's apartment would be the best place for the transformation. Rita told Julie to meet her in
an hour and a half at her apartment.
An hour and a half later the two women met and Julie carefully hung a beautiful dress in her spare bedroom closet. Julie told Rita how they intended to get him into the dress. Rita was glad that they
intended on being gentle with him.
The two women went back to the office without Mohit even knowing that they had been gone. Rita told Julie she would let her know when and if they were to do something. Julie thought Rita went to a
lot of fuss and bother to not know if she was going to do something or not.
On the way home Mohit told Rita about the program on Preety's computer and that they were going to install it on his for the next quarterly report.
Rita asked, "Do you mean that Preety is used to doing the reports?"
Mohit answered, "Yes, for the last two quarters she has done them with the new program and I used the one we have been using. She has been done two days before I am done. The new program will save us
a lot of time."
Rita said, "That's good. It answers a big question for me."
Mohit asked, "What big question?"
Rita replied, "Oh, it was nothing much. What you are saying is Preety can do all of what you do and she is doing it faster?"
He told her that was about it. He didn't know why she was smiling so broadly. That night in bed she advanced on him and after they were done making love Rita got a pair of lacy panties out of her
dresser drawer and handed them to Mohit. He asked what he was supposed to do with them.
Rita said, "Put them on. Your little tool belongs in panties not boxers. Now, do as you are told and put them on or I'll see how you look in a nightgown."
The ice in her voice was enough to make him put them on. He got into bed feeling foolish but noticed that they felt sensual to him. The next morning he was going to take them off and Rita told him to
keep them on. He asked why and she said if he didn't she would give him another pair with a matching bra and make sure he wore them. He didn't argue with her.
Rita laid there thinking about how easy she got him to put the panties on. She wondered if he would ever stand up like a man and take control. She thought about how she never saw him get angry or
really stand up to anyone when he was being challenged. She thought maybe a dress would wake him up. She decided to challenge him to the max and see if she could get him to act like a man.
All the way to work he felt the softness of the panties. It was disconcerting to him. It riled up his feelings knowing he had woman's panties on. He didn't know what to do about it. When they got to
work he headed straight for his office. He felt as if every one of the girls were staring right through his pants at his panties
#831
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:35)
mohit to mohini
At the staff meeting Rita shocked the entire staff when she announced that there were going to be some changes in the company. She said she was shifting some people around.
Rita said, "I have decided to make an office manager. Shalni you are now office manager and Vandna you are assistant office manager. Vandna you take over when Shalni is gone. Also, effective
immediately Preety you are chief financial officer."
Mohit immediately asked, "What about me. That's my job!"
Rita said, "Mohini, don't raise your voice. You will be a general assistant to all of the girls. You will help them get their jobs done and aid in any way to make us more efficient."
Mohit said, "That sounds like an office girl to me."
Rita said, "You're right. Effective immediately you are the office girl. Now, I would like a cup of coffee, Mohini, go get me one."
Mohini rose and got her a cup of coffee. He was bringing it in when the girls were leaving the office. Rita told him to sit down for a minute. He sat down.
Rita said, "You are now the office girl. Didn't you tell me last night that Preety had the quarterly figures done two days before you did? Didn't you say she could do everything you do and
faster?"
He replied, "Yes, but I explained that we were going to change over to the new program also. You wouldn't want us to try a program when we don't know how it works until we've tested it. Why did you
say I was going to be the office girl?"
Rita said, "Because that is what you are going to be!"
He said, "I am half owner of this business and I say I am not."
Rita handed him some papers. He looked at them. The top paper was a dissolving of the partnership and named Rita as sole owner of the business. The second one changed their joint bank accounts to
being just in Ritas name. Another changed their home and cars to Rita's name. The final one gave Rita power of attorney over him. He saw all of them had his signature on them.
Rita said, "Now, you see you have nothing left. Everything is in my name. You have no money, nothing but what I see fit to give you. Do you understand that?"
He said he did. She said, "So now are you going to be the best office girl you can be or do I throw you out on your ear?"
He quietly said he would be the best office girl possible. She was all smiles. Then she said, "Julie needs some assistance at her apartment. I told her you would be glad to help. Go and tell her and
Saroj that you are ready. They know what to do."
He got up and went to Julie and said, "Rita said I am supposed to help you at your apartment. I am ready."
He left with Julie and Saroj. He was in shock at what had happened to him. He was disoriented by the fact he had nothing left. He wondered why his wife had done this to him. The girls chatted and
said things to him but he didn't respond. They thought it was because of his being reduced to being an office girl.
They got to Julie's apartment and Julie had him sit on the couch. Very gently Julie said, "Mohini, we are going to make you fit the image of a Mohini. Now, you can co-operate and work with us or we
can use other methods. I would hope you would trust us to change how you look."
#832
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:36)
mohit to mohini
He only half understood what they were saying and he didn't like it. He said he didn't want to change. They asked him if he wouldn't like a new dress and he said no.
Then Julie decided to try another tact. She brought him a glass of lemonade. He drank it and thanked her for it. Then he fell asleep. When he awoke he was groggy for a couple of minutes and then
noticed he was near naked.
"What happened? Where are my clothes? What is going on?" He plaintively asked.
Saroj said, "Mohini, honey we are going to help you all we can. We are your friends and don't want to see you hurt any more than is necessary. Now are you going to work with us or do we have to put
you back to sleep to finish the job? Your old clothes are there on the floor."
He looked at the pile on the floor. They had used scissors to get his old clothes off. There was a pile of strips of cloth lying there. He knew he would be naked or wearing new clothes when he left
the apartment.
Mohini said, "Just tell me what is going on, then maybe I'll work with you. Rita said that Julie needed a hand and that I should help her. I don't understand what is happening."
Saroj said, "We are going to make you look more like a Mohini. We have a nice new dress for you and some other clothes and things to support the image of you as a Mohini. Now, are you going to work
with us or do we have to put you back to sleep?"
Resignedly he said, "I'll work with you."
Julie got a pair of thigh high nylons and showed him how to put them on. They were black with a floral pattern woven in them. The she slid a black long line bra up his arms. When it was hooked he
asked about the false breasts he had glued to his chest.
Julie said, "You were under endowed as a man but as a woman you are going to be well-endowed. Those are DD's. I didn't even know they made them that large. You will attract lots of attention with
those."
Then she helped him put on a padded girdle, telling him it gave him a more womanly figure. Then came the black silk lacy slip. Saroj said the slip cost more than all the clothes she had on. Then came
the wispy yellow dress with blue flowers. The scalloped hem falling enticingly around his legs. Then Julie produced a jet-black wig that was a mass of curls and placed it on his head. She arranged it
so it looked presentable then wove a yellow ribbon in it. He was starting to look more and more feminine every minute.
Then Julie took him into her bedroom and sat him at her vanity. She applied make-up that she took out of a shopping bag. She applied it telling him what they wanted to achieve then wiped it off and
had him apply it. She was amazed at how fast he could do a passable job. She teased him that he must have been practicing. As she put the make-up on him, Saroj was dong his nails. When he looked at
them he saw a feminine hand with long thin fingers sporting long fingernails painted a bright metallic red. He thought he was ready and this was over.
Julie took a cosmetic case out of the bag and put all of he cosmetics in it and handed it to Mohini, He asked what was that and she explained it was his new best friend. Laughing, she said he always
had to look his best and this was all the help he would need. He took it with two fingers like it was a cup of tea.
Then Julie brought a shoebox and said. "She must have been mad at you when she bought these. I don't have a single pair of heels this high. They must be five inches high!"
She took out the heels and placed them on his feet. They had him stand and get the feel of them. Then Julie guided him as he took his first steps. He did wobble at first but in a few minutes was
taking short steps without mishap. Saroj told him to place one foot in front of the other to walk. He noticed that that helped him move. The girls noticed that that made his rear sway like he was in
heat.
Julie noticed it was past lunchtime and offered to make them some sandwiches and milk. They both agreed and Saroj and Mohini went and sat down by the table. Julie brought the sandwiches and they sat
and talked.
#833
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:37)
mohit to mohini
Saroj said, "I noticed you were already wearing panties. They are very sexy and pretty. Where did you get them?"
He told them Rita had given them to him. He said he never saw her wear any like that. They said they understood.
Then Julie asked, "I know it isn't any of my business but how do you and Rita really get along? Sometimes you two seem to be of the same mind and other times you both are at opposite sides of each
other."
He said, "I always thought we were a great couple. I loved her unconditionally. We had our differences and a lot of the time I gave in. The times I was proven right I never lorded it over her or
anything. Just lately she has told me she was dissatisfied with me in the lovemaking department. That seems to have set her off. She was never underhanded to me until now. I don't know what made her
do what she did to me."
Julie said, "It won't be so bad. You look great in a dress. No one is going to think of you as anything but a complete woman."
He said, "It isn't that. That's minor compared to what else she's done."
Julie said, "I thought feminizing you was all she was doing to you. Other than making you office girl what did she do?"
He told them about how she had slipped the papers for him to sign and how she now controlled everything they had worked for to get. He told how she had power of attorney over him. The two were
stunned. Neither of the two girls knew what to say.
Saroj got up and came by him and kissed him on the cheek, saying, "I didn't know. I am sorry for you. If you need anything, anything at all, just ask. Julie and I only did this to you because we like
you. Rita was going to have Preety do it but we know Preety can be mean. We didn't want you hurt any more than was necessary."
He said, "Thank you. Both of you are very sweet. I could never hate either one of you. You two are probably the only two real friends I have and I appreciate it."
He had tears in his eyes and Julie handed him a tissaroj. They both told him they would be there for him. Having eaten, they asked him if he was ready to go back to the office. He said yes.
On the way back Saroj asked him how good an actor he could be. He said he didn't know. Saroj asked him if he thought he could play a woman who knew she was good looking and thought the hell with the
rest of the world. He said he probably could.
Saroj said, "Then go back to work with that in mind. Don't let anyone know you hate it. Make them think it is the best thing that ever happened to you."
He laughed and said that was exactly what he would do. The two girls felt better hearing him laugh. When they got out of the car at work Julie said 'go get them, Mohini'.
They breezed into work. Shalni met them and asked, "Julie and Saroj, where were you. If you are going to take a half day off I should know about it."
Julie said, "We were doing a special job for Rita. She knew we would be gone for quite a while. We were only doing what she requested of us
#834
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:39)
mohit to mohini
Shalni said, "Oh, I didn't know. I guess that's all right then. Has anyone seen Mohini? I haven't seen her since this morning. She is supposed to be helping around here."
Mohini piped up, "Oh, goody. I am only an office girl but I am missed when I am not here."
Shalni's jaw dropped. She then recognized Mohini. She said, "I want to see you in my office. Follow me."
Julie and Saroj knocked on Rita's door and then entered when they heard Rita say come in. Julie said, "Well, it's done. It didn't go bad at all. He is in a dress."
Rita said, "Good work! You will find an extra check in your pay envelope next week. It's my way of saying thank you."
Saroj said, "There is one thing I must say but I don't know how you will take it."
Rita said, "Spit it out. I can take anything."
Saroj said, "Mohini told us about everything. We thought she was quiet because of the demotion but she told us all about how you took control of everything he had. We don't think that is fair. What
you and your husband do is your business but it was wrong. We like him. He is kind and considerate. He wouldn't hurt anyone. Now he knows it doesn't pay to be a nice guy. We feel sorry for
him."
Rita said, "I have given him chances and he backed off. You are right, what we do as husband and wife is our business. I thank you for being so honest with me. Your remarks won't change anything
though."
The two girls left Rita's office. Meanwhile in Shalni's office Shalni was saying to Mohini, "I know being demoted hurts, but I want you to do the best job you can. Try to roll with the
punches."
Mohini said, "You won't have any trouble from me. I intend on doing my job as good as possible. It's the only way I know. I'll try to be as cheerful and helpful as I can."
Shalni said, "Good! That answers any concerns I may have. If you have any problems with anyone let me know. I believe in standing up for and behind my people."
He thanked her and went out into the office area. Everyone was a bit shy about asking him for anything. A couple of girls asked him to get them coffee, which he did with a smile. His exuberance was
contagious and the staff was amazed at how he conducted himself.
At quitting time Rita came out of her office and was surprised to see Mohini being very animated and talking to Beverly. She thought he was taking things very well. She told him it was time to go
home.
They were in the car, and she asked him how things went that day. He didn't answer. He didn't say a word all the way home. At home she called him for supper, and during the meal she asked him several
questions, but he didn't say a word. All evening whenever she said something he didn't acknowledge her. When they went to bed she said good night but he didn't answer her or say good night
back.
The next morning he got up and when he looked in his closet he saw three new dresses hanging there. He thought, she didn't waste any time. He picked a blue one that had white lace trim. He went for
breakfast.
Rita said, "Good morning Mohini. Do you want me to get you a cup of coffee?"
He didn't answer, but got a cup and poured himself a cup of coffee. Then he put two pieces of bread in he toaster. As that was toasting he poured a large glass of orange juice. The toast popped and
he spread jelly on it. Then he took everything and sat at the table.
Rita said, "I went over the quarterly figures I got from Preety. We had a very good quarter last quarter. Do you think it will continue or do you think the economy will hit us like it has other
businesses?"
He didn't answer. They left for work and on the way Rita asked him two questions but he didn't say a word. They arrived at work and he went about his business as if it were the most natural thing to
do. He joked with a couple of the girls and they were soon all laughing. Shalni noticed how he picked up the girls who seemed to be preoccupied by something. He had a talent for getting people to
smile. She had never noticed how much at ease he was with all the staff.
#835
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:43)
mohit to mohini
At the staff meeting he didn't say anything. Rita asked for input on what would be good entertainment for the company picnic. She knew Mohit always had great ideas in that area. When he didn't say
anything she addressed him directly. He didn't answer. He didn't move or show that he had heard a word she had said. Rita told everyone to think about it and let her know if they came up with
something. The meeting adjourned and everyone went back to work.
Shalni asked Mohini to step into her office. When Mohini was seated Shalni told her that she was very disrespectful and rude to the president of their company when she did not answer a direct
question.
Mohini said, "The president of this company does not need any advice from an office girl. Office girls are at the bottom of the ladder and don't know anything of importance. I am doing the job I am
supposed to as well as I can. If you have a problem with that then further action will have to be taken. As far as answering the president of this company there is no law anywhere that says I have to
answer anything. If that is grounds for firing then fire me. I do not threaten anyone but if you do this town will be buzzing about this company and I assure you it will not have the same reputation
it had before. Now, if you are done with me it is lunch time."
He left her office and went with Saroj and Julie for a sandwich. He was glad he had money in his wallet before all of this started. At lunch he told the girls about his meeting with Shalni. They both
told him bravo, he was doing right. The two girls said everyone was talking about him and how surprised they were at how he was taking it.
He said, "I am not taking it well. I am reacting to the situation as only I see it. I have not said a word to Rita since this happened. I do not plan on saying anything to her until she changes back
to the loving wife I married. If she doesn't change back I don't know what will happen."
Julie laughed and said, "Spoken like a true woman. You sound more like a woman now than a lot of women do. You just hang in there and you will come out on top."
He laughed and said, "On top of what, the stove on one of the burners."
They all laughed and Saroj told him as long as he kept his sense of humor he would do all right. She also told him she saw a change in him that she didn't think possible that he now exuded a
confidence that the old Mohit didn't have but that Mohini now had.
He thanked them for their support and for being his friends. They could tell he meant it and that he meant it to be special. It gave both of them a warm feeling. They both gave a kiss of reassurance
on his cheek.
The afternoon went fast, as some of the girls now asked him if he would help them with some filing and other such office duties. He happily helped them.
At quitting time he got into the car with Rita but didn't say a word. He sat quiet all the way home and at home didn't as much as utter a peep. Rita was disturbed by his not talking to her but
thought he would get over it. He knew she was bothered by his silence but was determined to continue the path he had chosen.
The next morning at work he was surprised when the paychecks were distributed. Shalni handed him one. He opened it and was surprised that he was being paid in the top end of the pay scale for office
help in the area.
Five minutes later he was in the staff meeting with the rest of the staff. Rita started it by asking if anyone had any ideas for entertainment for the upcoming company picnic. One woman said
something about getting a DJ to play music. Three other women shot it down saying it was too hard to dance on the grass. Rita knew that in every previous year Mohit had come up with prize-winning
ideas.
Rita asked, "Mohini, every year you have come up with a great idea for a theme and entertainment for the company picnic. Share your thoughts with us. What do you say?"
He sat there with a blank look on his face. It was as if he hadn't heard a word that was said. Rita overlooked the silence and asked if anyone else had any ideas. She said if they were afraid to say
them openly they could drop them in the suggestion box outside her office. She continued the meeting, covering small matters. It was winding down when she got an inspiration.
Rita asked, "Mohini, inasmuch as you can't seem to talk at these meetings would you like to be excused from attending them?"
He just stared blankly at her. She repeated the question. He didn't budge a muscle. She was getting angry and he saw it. She asked a third time in a very icy tone. He didn't answer.
She said, "Answer me or you are fired!"
He stared at her as if she didn't exist. She excused everyone but Shalni and Mohini
#836
mohit(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:44)
MOHIT TO MOHINI
She asked Shalni what else could be done with him. Shalni recounted her conversation with him yesterday. Rita said that was a threat he had made. He was fired. Not only fired but also without a home.
He sat and stared.
She told them to leave. Outside Rita's door Shalni asked him if he was happy. He told her it didn't make any difference. She told him he had to leave immediately. He said he would leave after he got
his final check. Shalni went back in to Rita's office. While she was in there Julie came up to him and told him to meet them for lunch. He was given his last check and he left with a smile on his
face.
At lunch the two girls told him how sorry they were that he got fired. He assured them that he would do all right. He didn't know where he would go or what he would do but he wasn't worried. He said
things have a way of working out.
Julie offered to let him sleep on her couch if he needed a place to stay. He thanked her and told her he might have to take her up on it if Rohan didn't come up with something. After a pleasant lunch
both girls kissed him on the cheek and told him they were going to miss him at work. He headed to see Rohan.
He told Rohan the whole story as he saw it from when Rita had said he didn't satisfy her in bed to his getting fired. Rohan said he wanted to talk to Rita. Mohit sat there as Rohan asked Rita to come
over and told her to bring the papers that Mohit had signed.
Ten minutes later Rita came in Rohan's office. She handed him the copies of the papers Mohit had signed. He quickly glanced at them then asked Mohit to wait outside while he talked to Rita.
Rohan said, "Rita, the story Mohit told me is very disturbing. I have heard his side now I want to hear your side. What happened for it to get this far?"
Rita said, "He was slipping in his job so as president I demoted him. He hasn't been much of a man so I figured he could maybe function better as a woman. But he was insubordinate to me and I had to
fire him. That's the whole story in a nutshell."
Rohan asked, "Then this didn't start when you told him he didn't satisfy you in bed in he lovemaking department?"
Rita said, "Maybe that was the starting point. He has never been able to satisfy me in bed and I told him so. I guess I started things rolling by making him wear a pair of panties because his little
member didn't belong in men's boxers."
Rohan then asked, "You didn't buy the first dress and have a couple of your employees get him dressed and done up, did you?"
Rita said, "Yes, I bought everything and had two friends of his help get him in the dress and make-up. It was only to see if he would act like a man should or not."
Rohan asked, "What happened then?"
Rita said, "I saw him being a pal and talking with the workers but when I said anything to him I got nothing. He hasn't said a single word to me. I have asked him many questions but I get nothing,
not an answer or shrug or any indication that he has even heard me. That not responding is what led to him being fired."
Rohan called Mohit back in. He sat quiet for almost five minutes. Then he said, "Communication is the most necessary tool in any relationship. You must talk to one another otherwise the relationship
dies from neglect. Now. Mohit. Rita tells me you haven't said a word to her since this all started. Is that correct?"
Mohit nodded and Rita sat smiling. This was going better than she expected.
Rohan asked, "Why did you stop talking to her? You must have had a reason."
Mohit replied, "Yes, I did. She had a paper that said she had power of attorney for me. In other words she could speak for me in legal matters. So, I figured if she was going to speak for me then she
could speak for me all the time. I found out she was just jealous of me."
Rohan asked, "How so? Why is she jealous of you?"
"Because she found out I am more woman than she is and more man than she can handle. That's what her problem is."
Rita got a look of pure shock at that. She never thought she was jealous of him. Rohan looked at her and said, "I don't like to have to say this but everything you did is wrong. You are supposed to
work as a team, as husband and wife. It appears you have broken that bond that makes a husband and wife one person."
Rita was getting flustered. She didn't expect this to go this way. When she wanted him to stand up for himself she never thought he would be like this. Then she calmed down a bit as Rohan continued.
"In any situation or conflict there is no one all wrong or all right side. Both sides have to share the blame. It looks like it is up to me to try to get you two back together on the same
track."
#837
MOHIT(Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:46)
MOHIT TO MOHINI
Rita said, "Rohan I know what you are saying but I am not going to take him back as an employee. It would ruin the morale of all the rest of the employees of my company. If he won't talk to me at all
I can't see our marriage continuing. If it is to continue all I ask is that he talk to me."
Rohan looked at Mohit and asked. "Is it too much for her to expect to have you talk to her?"
Mohit said he guessed it wasn't too much but reminded him that she had power of attorney so she shouldn't expect very much. Rohan looked at the papers Rita had brought. He asked her these were copies
of all the originals and she said they were. He excused himself as he made a phone call. They both heard his side of the call.
"Herman, Rohan here. I am looking at a power of attorney here. It has the signatures of the two people involved.... No, no other signatures. What about dissolving a partnership?.... What about
removing one person from a joint bank account?.... What about removing a person from a deed or auto title? That's what I thought '... Really?.... In fifteen years as a minister you are the first
person to tell me one of my sermons was stimulating. Thank you."
He hung up the phone, then sat looking at nothing in particular. Finally he said, "I afraid to tell you these papers are worthless. In this state you need two witnesses for everything except the
transfer of title—then you need one person to witness the signing."
Mohit said, "So I still own 52 per cent of the company? And I still have my name on the deed to our house and I still own my car?"
Rohan said, "Yes to everything."
Rita said, "I had forgot that we set it up with you having the fifty-two and I the balance. I suppose you want to fire me, as you have controlling interest."
Mohit said, "No, keep your job. I'll let you know where to send the profit check. But I am afraid you are going to have to move. I am going to sell my half of the house. You can stay until it sells
though."
Rita asked, "Does this mean we are through as husband and wife?"
Mohit said, "You divorced me this morning when you threw me out. Did you forget you said I didn't have a home? That is what I came to see Rohan for, to see if he knew of a place I could stay. I never
thought it would end up like this."
Rita asked, "Can't we give it another try. I'll change, you'll see."
Mohit said, "No, I saw a side of you that I never knew existed. It is a side that I could never live with. You have shown me that no one stands a chance when you get an idea in your head. I'm sorry
but you are not the woman I loved and married. I am going to file for a divorce."
Rita started crying and left. Rohan said he wished Mohit could forget what she did and forgive her. He said he forgave her but she wasn't the person that God wanted him to spend the rest of his life
with. He said he thought he knew who that was and her name was Julie.
Rohan said he was sorry things had to turn out that way, but he understood. Mohit said he almost forgot something and took a checkbook out of his purse and wrote a check to Rohan for one thousand
dollars to be used at the homeless shelter that Rohan was championing.
Mohit called Julie at work and asked her to meet him for supper. She agreed. At supper Mohit told her what had happened with Rohan and Rita. Then he told her he was going to stay at theHOTEL for
about a week until he found a house to move to.
Then he shocked her saying, "I hope you will help me find a house that is worth buying. I have an idea and it is that you should like it also because I intend that you will be living there with me as
my wife."
Julie got tears in her eyes and said, "That sounds wonderful to me. I never thought you and I would ever have a chance to be together. I have always thought you were special and I knew you have a lot
of love and caring. You were always my ideal as man."
He said, "You all ready know I am not overly endowed."
She said, "With those breasts, no one is more endowed."
Post-Script: Six months later his and Ritas divorce was declared by the county judge. He sold his share of the company at a good price and bought the top dress shop in town. That way he could get his
dresses at cost
#838
Alexvyaz(Thursday, 16 March 2017 13:35)
Mohit, I like your story. It's always nice to see a happy end. ;)
#839
lalita(Friday, 17 March 2017 03:02)
this is a amazing story u will love it
for more fun i am starting from middel
I awoke. Strange bodily sensations commanded my attention. An
uncomfortable weight on my chest -- sticking bandages on my face
and cheeks -- an indescribable numbness between my legs. And the
feeling that someone was holding my hand. I looked over to see
neha my wife ,
"Yes my love, my husband has had some remarkable changes but
together we will put our lives back together and continue on."
She comforted. ”The doctors expect that you will need about 6
days of recovery, then we will be home and begin
I'll be back tomorrow and we will begin to plan our future."
Neha rose and left the room, leaving me to contemplate my
horrifying situation. Struggling to right myself, I began
to take inventory. Chest protruding and heavily bandaged, legs
splayed apart with a tangle of tubing exiting a bandaged crotch.
My wildest imagination could not adequately form a mental picture
of me with a vagina and breasts. The very successful MD of a
famous private concern now struggling in a hospital bed with an
artificial vigina & breast. Sleep came fitfully, nightmares
of monumental proportions wreaked havoc on my psyche. I dreamed
of myself as a housewife, preparing dinner for my husband, even
pregnant!
The following days were filled with the standard prodding,
poking, and examining so dear to the medical community in the
early morning and my afternoons were filled with a torture known
as electrolysis. Each day at precisely 1:00 P.M a sour faced
matron armed with a vicious device terminating in a needle would
subject my sparse beard and chest hair to a 6 hour series of hair
removal. Her comments were short, excepting when she
complimented herself on how rapidly the treatment was progressing
and that I would be smooth as a baby's bottom by the end of the
week.
Day four proved to be the most humiliating and frightening day of
my stay. The morning started with the announcement that the
bandages covering my new (or perhaps lack of) equipment would be
removed. Following removal of the science fiction collection of
tubes, catheters and bandages, it was announced that I was to be
dilated. The chief physician produced what could only be
described as a long dildo, liberally coated it with K-Y jelly and
proceeded to insert it into my formerly virgin orifice. The pain
was unbelievable. My newly high-pitched voice screamed as in
pain, I felt as if I were being split in half. I squirmed and
cried and begged them to stop this torture.
The date is 10 February, 2184.
My name is Monu Chaudhary H/O Dr. Garima Chaudhary.
I have been married for 15 days and last fortnight has been a mixture of torture, pleasure and bliss for me.
The biggest torture has been to get up at 5.00 AM, take your bath, wear a Saree and assist my father in law in his daily morning ritual of Goddess worship. However, yesterday, I have shifted to my
wife’s flat in Delhi, where she has joined a big hospital.
The biggest pleasure is when my wife undresses me at night and rides me like there is no tomorrow. I could never imagine before my marriage that a pinch on my buttocks or a bite on my breasts can
send such a pleasure wave to my spine. Last night, she has done it with an extra zeal since it was the first night when we were alone in our home and there was no fear of someone listening to my
cries of pain and pleasure.
Even today, I got up at 7 AM and prepared bedtea for her. As I went to wake her with the tray of tea, her alarm had already sounded. I was wearing a see through nighty with only a black bra
underneath. I placed the tray on the sidestool and touch her feet to ask for her blessings. She simply pulled me over and started takingoff my nighty. I pleaded with her that the tea will get cold
but she was adamant on making me nude and virtually raped me. It was a quick climax for her and as I was still trying to recover my breathing, she unmounted me and went to the bathroom, leaving me
naked on the bed. I made a mental note that tomorrow onwards, I shall bring her the bedtea in a saree only.
As she was taking bath, I quickly wore a saree, placed her shirt and jeans on the bed, polished her shoes and prepared breakfast for her. I also packed her lunch in the tiffin box and as she was
leaving, I sat on the floor and placed my forehead on her feet to ask for her blessings. She smiled, helped me to getup from the floor, kissed me and was off to the hospital.
I still had a lot of pending work like dusting, sweeping the floor and wash the clothes and utensils but first, I made myself a cup of tea and sat lost in thoughts about my parents, brothers and
useful lessons from my father on my first visit to my parents home after my marriage.
To be continued----
As per the tradition, my wife was supposed to take me to my parents place next day of our marriage. However, she didn’t want to extend any more leave as she was taking me on a honeymoon after a week
and all her leave was already finished. Hence, she decided to drop me to my parents place in the morning and promised me that she’ll pick me in the evening.
As I wore a new Saree with matching blouse and accessories, She had already got in to the car and was blowing the horn. I hurriedly took blessings from my inlaws and got into the passenger seat as
she put the car into gear and drove ahead.
As soon as the car was on the highway, she was back to her naughty self. She caught me by the hair and pulled my face towards her lap. I understood and opened the fly of her pants. She drove at a
very high speed and I tried to match the speed of my tongue for her pleasure. She soon shuddered to a climax and let me remove my face from her pussy. I wanted to wash my face as it was wet from her
juice but she said that it will get dry by the time we reach our destination and continued driving.
As her car entered the drive way of my parent’s house, my father was standing at the door with a plate full of lighted lamps {Aarti ka thal} for her aarti but she didn’t get down the car. She said
that she was already late for her work and these traditions can wait till evening. She quickly reversed the car and sped away.
I could sense that my father was unhappy with me but I was in a hurry to wash my face. I excused myself and ran to my room to freshen up. I quickly got out of the saree and removed all my jwellary
including Mangalsootra and bichuas ( A silver ring, worn on the toes by married males). I pulled over an old Kameez with salwar and came out of my room.
“You bloody fool”, my father roared at the top of his voice, “You have no manners. How did you dare to takeoff your Mangalsootra and bichuas.”. I meekly replied that I was not used to wearing
jewelry. “You idiot, These are not jewelries. These are the symbols of your married status and to take them off is a very bad omen. Also you should wear a Saree all the time like all married males.”
He roared again. I tried to stop my tears as I went back to my room to change in a saree.
When I came out in a saree, my mother was scolding my father for speaking so loudly. My father’s eyes were directed to the floor and he was asking for forgiveness. My mother came to me and placed her
hand affectionately over my head. She was also getting late for her work. My father touched her feet and placed his forehead on her feet, for blessings. She curtly blessed him and left
hurriedly.
Now, my father asked me to sit besides him and asked, “Why didn’t you touch the feet of your wife when she was leaving today morning”. I now understood as to why he was unhappy with me. I told him
that I had taken the blessings from her in the morning but my father was not buying this argument. “Whenever, your wife is getting away from you, its your duty to touch her feet, place your forehead
on her feet and say a silent prayer for her long life. Its an honour for a male to keep his forehead at the feet of his wife, Just remember that you got such a high status family only because your
elder brothers were always respectful to their respective wives and if you don’t show proper manners, your younger brother may not be so lucky.”
“Ok father. I shall be careful in future” I said. “But she wants me to wear modern dresses and says that saree is for special occasions only”. My father smiled and said “My child, always remember,
She is not only your wife but your owner too. Even if she wants you to remain only in your bra and panty or even if she wants you to remain nude, you have to obey. But that is only inside your house.
In presence of the society, you have to maintain certain norms of a married male. Always wear a saree in presence of your in laws or guests.” I nodded in agreement as my younger brother entered the
room.
“Hi bro” he shrieked. “ Looking very tired. Didn’t get much sleep last night? Hiding the naval too.” The last sentence was aimed at my saree being tied above the naval. I blushed and got irritated at
the same time. “Look dad. He is making fun of me again.” Father immediately rebuked Nimesh. “Don’t be a fool Nemo. He is married now and wear his clothes as per the wishes of his wife. Go to the
kitchen and start preparing for tonight’s dinner. If your bhabhi likes the food made by you, she may suggest some good girl for you too.” Now it was the time for Nemo to blush as he ran to the
kitchen.
I took a sigh of relief. Actually, My wife ( I shall call her G now) had given me a lovebite on my naval last night and the mark was still fresh. That’s why, I had tied my Saree above the
naval.
G returned from her hospital in the evening. Both my parents, Nemo and family friends had gathered at our house to welcome her. She was dressed in a Three piece suit and a tie and was looking very
smart and handsom. Father did her aarti with lighted lamps and I ( as instructed by my father very strictly in the morning) touched her feet and placed my forehead at her feet in full view of
everyone. I was very very embarrassed. I was wearing a pink saree with a matching blouse and I was afraid that my new saree might get dirty but could not risk my father’s wrath. G smilingly asked me
to getup and blessed me. Mother took her hand and guided her to our Drawing room. My father and myself served tea to her and all the guests. Slowly, the guests departed and G and my mother were alone
in the drawing room.
G called me and asked me to give her another cup of tea. Mother excused herself that she had had enough and went to the bathroom. As I came with the tea, G asked me to sit beside her. I remembered
father’s instructions and sat on the floor at her feet “This is my place” I told her. G had a naughty smile at her face as her hand slipped inside my blouse. “Leave me please” I begged her “Someone
might come. Nemo is bringing snacks.” G was not in a mood to let it go and pinched on my nipple. “Pleeeease. Do as you wish in the bedroom. I am not going to run away.” I again begged her. This time
she relented and removed her hand. It was very timely as Nemo entered the room with a plate of snacks, giggling at my status. “Bhabhi must be tired bro. Why are you not pressing her legs” he said.
“Monu is waiting for you. He says that Nemo presses the legs better than him. Wont you prove it” smiled G. “Law allows me many husbands Nemo. Who knows, if you press my legs that well, I may get
tempted.” Nemo’s face got red with embarrassment as he put the plate on the table and ran away, G’s laughter following him closely.
Mother returned from the bathroom and G said that it was getting late. She had to reach the hospital early tomorrow and asked to leave. However, both my parents pleaded with her to stay for dinner
and go tomorrow morning. She relented after Nemo requested her to at least taste the “Gulabjamuns” that he was preparing.
Dinner, as expected, was fabulous. G and Mother ate first with myself and father sitting on the floor besides our respective wives, pressing their legs and Nemo, preparing hot chapaties for both of
them. After they had finished, myself and father sat at their places and ate in the plates of our wives and finished the leftovers.
It was time to retire to the bedroom. Nemo was giggling all the time as I washed my face. Applied some powder, applied lipstick and prepared hot milk for G. I scolded him when he pinched my bottom
but he said “just keep your anger reserved for bhabhi when she does the same”. I tried to hit him but he ran away.
As I entered the bedroom with a glass of milk, G had already changed into a T shirt and shorts for night. I locked the door from inside and gave the milk to G. As she was drinking it, I sat on the
floor and started a gentle massage of her feet. She caught me by my hair and brought my face towards her crouch. I understood as to what she wanted. I removed her shorts and placed my lips at her
pussy. It was very warm and moist, a clear indication that she was already excited by my complete submission today. I went to work on thr lips of her pussy, teasing her with increasing and decreasing
the speed of my licking. G was moaning with pleasure. She was pressing my face on her pussy with such power that it was difficult for me to breathe but I kept on licking and she ultimately came with
a force, making my face fully covered with her juice.
I went to the bathroom and quickly washed my face and gargled with mouthwash. As soon as I came out, G started pulling my saree. All my efforts ( formality only) were in vain as she disrobed me. I
was wearing a backless blouse with only two strings holding it to the proper place. G pulled the strings and removed it. Next to go was my petticoat and I was standing before her just in a bra and
panty. G pulled me towards her and made me sit on her lap. She started kissing me and caught hold of the strap of my bra. She pulled it strongly and suddenly let it go. The elastic strap hit my back
with such force that I would have shrieked had the fear of Nemo making fun of me tomorrow morning not loomed large.
Being a doctor, G was probably well aware of all the points of a male body which can make a male mad with pleasure. She was virtually playing a musical instrument with the precision of a master,
alternatively pinching, biting and kissing the various parts of my body. My dick was so hard that it was ready to burst out of my panties when G obliged it by removing my panties. I was completely
nude now with G still wearing her T shirt. She placed me on the bed, took my dick inside her well moist pussy and started riding me, slowly increasing her speed. My excitement reached a crescendo as
both of us climaxed at the same time.
To be continued next week-----
#851
SRS(Wednesday, 29 March 2017 06:43)
Lalita please continue.
#852
pooja(Sunday, 02 April 2017 09:11)
Anybody can write" saas bahu "stories
#853
lakshmi(Sunday, 02 April 2017 14:38)
Shall I post one beautiful story here.
Anybody can write second part of that story?
Please give me replay....
#854
Sneha(Sunday, 02 April 2017 16:12)
Yed pls
#855
Chitu(Monday, 03 April 2017 14:07)
Lovely Story Monu....Keep going. Let us know the rest of your lovely life with G
#856
lakshmi(Tuesday, 04 April 2017 09:29)
Shall i post one beautiful story here.
Anybody can write second part of that story?
Please give me replay....
More than 3 months had passed since my marriage and it still seems like yesterday.
My parents were celebrating their 25th wedding anniversary and had requested the wives of all 3 of their married sons to come to their village to be a part of celebration. It was the first time since
my marriage that I was meeting my brothers and I was very excited about it.
As usual, G was late in returning from the hospital and it was quite late night when we reached my parents’ home. As our car entered our drive way, my father came out with a large plate full of
lighted lamps. He did aarti of G and we entered our home. Both my Bhabhis having already retired to their bedrooms. I sat on the floor beside G, pressing her legs while Nemo served the dinner. I,
Nemo and father ate later with myself eating in the plate of G, finishing her leftovers as well.
G was so tired that she had already slept when I entered the bedroom. I changed in to my nightwear ( A front open gown with only a string keeping both the ends in place so that she may have full
access of my body if she happens to awake at night) and slipped alongside her silently.
My sleep was broken when G’s hand crept inside my gown at 4’o’clock in morning. She wanted to make love. I didn’t like being woken up so early but I knew that she is my owner and I don’t have the
right to say a “no”. As she removed my gown, my dick sprung to attention. She threw away her T shirt and shorts and started riding me in frenzy. I kept my moans to be minimum since everyone else
appeared to be sleeping and soon, G had her climax, myself following immediately afterwards. G rolled over and almost immediately went back to sleep.
I awoke the next morning when Nemo banged on the door. I had again got in to my gown after sex last night but G was sleeping naked, I tried to wake up G but she didn’t want to rise from bed. I picked
up her T shirt and shorts from the floor and gave them to the half-awake G to wear. As I opened the door, Nemo entered with a tray containing tea. I took the tray from her hand and virtually pushed
him out as he was giggling constantly.
G picked up a cup of tea from the tray as her left hand again crept up in to my gown. I tried to avoid it but G was adamant. Both my breasts got squeezed and pinched in succession while she finished
her tea.
G and both the Bhabhis had planned to visit the fields belonging to my mother and all of them left for the fields shortly thereafter. I wore a saree after taking bath and came to the backyard where
both my elder brothers, Yashdeep and Vikas were sitting with father and Nemo. All of us were in saree while Nemo was wearing a Salwar kameez.
I have always had an inferiority complex in presence of my brothers. They are more fair, beautiful and smart than me and I am not very talkative too. Yash bhaia was telling mother about the latest
developments in his sasural when the discussion turned towards who among all the three married brothers is more lucky. Father also wanted to be a part of the discussion but he had a lot of chores to
do like preparing the lunch and washing clothes. Bhaia gave an idea that all of us shall bring the clothes of ourselves and our wives and simultaneously wash the clothes and have discussion too.
Father also liked the idea and all of us went to our rooms to get the clothes. Yash and Vikas bhaia also brought the clothes of their infant daughters.
Yash bhaia said that he was the most lucky since he had been married for more than 5 years and Bhabhi had never beaten him. “I was very afraid since Mom used to beat Dad daily but luckily she loves
me a lot and even when I do some mistake, it’s only a slap or two” Said Yash bhaia.
“Your Mom also loves me a lot” said father, immediately coming to the defense of Mom. “But he had to create an example in front of all of you so that you boys may learn to respect your wives when you
get married”.
Vikas bhaia said that he is the luckiest one. “We are a joint family. Whenever she returned from office and I used to bring tea for her, my father in law insisted that I should sit on the floor at
her feet and press her legs. It was very humiliating for me to press her legs in presence of the whole family so she started taking the evening tea in our bed room. I still press her legs but the
humiliation is not there. She really loves me a lot”.
“As I was telling Monu last time” father said almost angrily, “It’s an honor for a man to press the legs of his wife and you should never feel humiliated by this. I shall see to it that during
today’s lunch, you shall press her legs and do it in presence of your Bhabhi and Garima ji”. Nemo started giggling again and Vikas bhaia threw a towel at him.
“Why are you silent Monu?” Yash bhaia asked. “You also tell us something about your luck”. I was washing G’s T shirt and didn’t even look up. “Must be tired bhaia” teased Vikas bhaia. “He was busy
even at 4 AM. His bangles were making a lot of noise early morning”. My face turned red with shame. Father was examining my heap of clothes and suddenly he started rebuking me, “You boys never listen
to me. I had told you that you should always wash the night wear of your wife daily even if it is not dirty. Where is her Kurta and Lungi?” “She does not wear Kurta and Lungi Dad. She wears T shirt
and shorts at night and I wash them daily” I replied.
Suddenly there was an awkward silence. Father broke it by asking Nemo to go and bring tea for all of us. It was clear that he didn’t want to discuss something in presence of his unmarried son. As
Nemo departed, Vikas bhaia asked “How can she make love to you if she is wearing shorts. My wife wears a lungi so that she may take me inside her anytime”. “She takes it off” Said I, my face crimson
red with shame. “But a wife always remains fully clothed while making love to her husband, who is fully nude. This is the universal custom. How else is she going to remind her husband that she is his
owner and he is a slave to her.” Said Yash bhaia this time. “I have no illusions bhaia”, said I. “I know that my place is at her feet and she is my owner but never during the last three months, she
has ever reminded me that. She treats me like a husband, not a slave.”
There was a few minutes of uncomfortable silence after which Dad stood up, kissed my forehead and declared, “He is the luckiest one”.
Suddenly doorbell rang. G and Bhabhis had returned. The luckiest one and the not so lucky ones, all ran to place their foreheads at the feet of their respective wives.
#859
My Love Story(Wednesday, 05 April 2017 13:02)
हल्के गुलाबी रंग की शिफॉन की साड़ी में श्रेया बेहद ही खूबसूरत लग रही थी. उसने साड़ी के बॉर्डर के रंग से मैच करता हुआ गोल्डन रंग का बड़े गले का ब्लाउज पहन रखा था. ब्लाउज एक तरह से बैकलेस ही था, बस पीठ पर
कंधे से नीचे एक पतली सी डोरी थी और एक डेढ़ इंच का स्ट्रैप ब्लाउज के नीचे की तरफ था ,जिसमें हुक थे. केवल इनके सहारे उस खूबसूरत ब्लाउज ने श्रेया के 34 इंच के भरे हुए वक्षों (ब्रेस्ट) की खूबसूरती छिपा
रखी थी. लेकिन श्रेया की खुली हुई दूध सी गोरी और मखमली पीठ उस ब्लाउज में से साफ झांक रही थी, जिसे पार्टी में मौजूद लगभग हर शख्स चोरी-छिपे देखने से खुद को रोक नहीं पा रहा था. श्रेया की साड़ी भी
ट्रांसपेरेंट थी, जिसमें से उसकी 27 इंच की पतली कमर, जब वह चलती थी तो लचकती हुई साफ देखी जा सकती थी. ब्लाउज की आस्तीनें भी कंधे से बस जरा सा ही नीचे उतरी हुई थीं, इसलिए ट्रांसपेरेंट साड़ी में से श्रेया
की पतली पर भरी हुई बांहें भी साफ देखी जा सकती थीं. तो गोल्डन ब्लाउज जिसमें चमकीला वर्क था, उसकी चमक साड़ी का वह ट्रांसपेरेंट कपड़ा रोक नहीं पा रहा था. श्रेया के काले घने लंबे बाल, जो कमर तक आ रहे थे और
जिनके निचले सिरे पर लटें बन रही थीं, उसकी खूवसूरती में चार चांद लगा रहे थे. श्रेया ने अपने बाल बाएं कंधे पर आगे की तरफ खुले छोड़ रखे थे. जिससे उसकी खुली हुई पीठ को ढकने का एकमात्र सहारा भी छिन गया
था.
श्रेया को पहली नजर में ही देखकर पता लग रहा था कि वह नये जमाने की एक ऐसी लड़की है जिसे पहनावे की बहुत अच्छी समझ है.
उसने जहां अपनी बायीं कलाई पर रागा की गोल्डन वॉच पहन रखी थी, वहीं दायीं कलाई में सोने के दो कंगनों के बीच 36 चूड़ियां, जो कि साड़ी और ब्लाउज के रंग से मेल खाती हुई हल्के गुलाबी और गोल्डन कलर की थीं.
साड़ी का पल्लू उसने अपने बाएं कंधे पर खुला छोड़ रखा था, जिसे वह अपने बाएं हाथ से थामे हुई थी. साथ ही बाएं हाथ में एक गोल्डन कलर का क्लच पकड़ रखा था. जब वह बात करती तो अपना दायां हाथ हिलाती और बार - बार
थोड़ी-थोड़ी देर में दायां हाथ अपने सिर के ऊपर से बालों पर फेरते हुए कमर पर लटक रही जुल्फों के कोने तक लाती और अपने बाल संभालती. जब वह ऐसा करती तो उसकी चूड़ियों की खनक पार्टी में उसके आसपास खड़े हर
व्यक्ति को अपनी ओर देखने पर मजबूर कर देती थी. श्रेया का कद 5'6 इंच था, ऊपर से उसने दो इंच की हील पहन रखी थीं, 51 किलो की श्रेया का पूरा जिस्म मानो सांचे में तराशा हुआ था. माथे पर गोल लाल बिंदिया,
काजल से भरी हुई आंखें, गुलाबी गाल, लिपस्टिक से सजे लाल सुर्ख होंठ, गले को छूते लंबे गोल्डन झुमके और सुराहीदार गर्दन में लटका उसका पेंडेंट जिसमें लाल हीरा जड़ा था. बिंदी, पेंडेंटऔर लिपस्टिक से मेल खाते
लाल रंग की नेल पॉलिश से सजे उसके हाथ-पैरों के लंबे नाखून. पैरों में उसने गोल्डन पतली पायल पहन रखी थी. इसलिए जब वो जरा सा भी साड़ी ऊपर उठाती तो गोल्डन हील पहने और लाल नेल पॉलिश से सजे गोल्डन पायल में
उसके पैरों की खूबसूरती से निगाह नहीं हटती थी.
आगे से तो वह थी ही बेहद खूबसूरत. भरे हुए जिस्म, गोर चेहरे और गुलाबी रंगत वाली. जिसकी बड़ी-बड़ी काली आंखें थीं.लेकिन उस दिन वह पीछे से भी उतनी ही अधिक खूबसूरत दिख रही थी. खुली पीठ, बलखाती पतली कमर, हर
कदम के साथ दाएं-बाएं थिरकते उसके गोल नितंब और मदहोश करने वाली चाल.
यह सब श्रेया को किसी स्वर्ग से उतरी अप्सरा साबित करने के लिए काफी था. श्रेया वैसे तो 25 साल की थी, पर उस दिन 20-21 साल की कोई सुपर मॉडल दिख रही थी.
~ यह एक सच्ची कहानी है.. शायद मेरी या मेरे किसी दोस्त की... या फिर ... खैर...
श्रेया कौन है? उस पार्टी में वह क्या कर रही है? यह अगले हिस्से में...
#860
Payal(Wednesday, 05 April 2017 13:17)
The Pornstar:
Hi my name is Piyush. This story is how I became a Female and a Pornstar. The story starts when I was a 23 yrs slim guy with fair looks and average height. I had no family was a orphan. For my
graduation I got scholarship to study in US and there after worked in a good company. After 7 months of work the company started firing employee one by one and one day it was my chance. I had a small
amount of saving so I thought I will be easy to survive till I get a new Job. But market was very bad there were no jobs. My saving was about to finish. One day saw a advertisement of a job. I went
there were lot of persons for interview. The interviewer ask me some questions and and told that I passed and called me for second round. I was happy. Next day I went and the interviewer told me that
the job was for a Pornstar and the company was porn movie production company. They offered me a very good pay way better than my previous job. I thought were running in my mind about how wouldi I
survive if I refuse this job. At last I told yes and the asked me to sign a contract of 5 yrs with a signing big amount . I happily without reading signed the agreement.
#861
Payal(Wednesday, 05 April 2017 13:34)
The Pornstar 2:
Next day was my first day. They called in a studio. I went. They gave a script to read. It was a porn movie I had to fuck another lady porn star. I was nervous at first but after seeing the porn
actress I got confident and my dick was up. I did well fucked her so hard that the director praised me a lot. There after for next six month I did many movies and all were hit.
I was invited in many porn parties. Ladies were crazy to take my dick. All my movies were hit by hit. But after six months the demand for porn actors was falling shot. And the movies were going
flop.
My carrier was now at danger. The production company was at huge loss. The company was about to close. At that time shemale porns were in big demand. So the company decided to make a shemale porn
movie. They were trying to find a good shemale but all shemale Pornstar were hired by other companies.
#862
Priya(Thursday, 06 April 2017 01:17)
srs please continue ur story monu choudare ur story is awesome please continue
#863
SRS(Thursday, 06 April 2017 12:33)
Payal please continue
#864
Meena(Thursday, 06 April 2017 13:04)
Srs please continue your story
#865
swapna(Friday, 07 April 2017 11:36)
friend's wt hapeen to the site
dress2kill.jimdo.com
why it's not open
#866
Ghost(Friday, 07 April 2017 17:35)
Same question here. Please resolve the issue asap.
श्रेया जिस पार्टी में मौजूद थी, वो श्रुति और वीर की शादी थी. श्रुति और वीर दोनों स्टेज पर हाथों में हाथ डाले खड़े थे और सभी की शुभकामनाएं और गिफ्ट स्वीकार कर रहे थे. श्रुति लाल कलर के दुल्हन के जोड़े
में बेहद ही आकर्षक और खूबसूरत लग रही थी लेकिन श्रेया से ज्यादा नहीं, ये बात श्रुति बहुत पहले से जानती थी कि श्रेया उससे अधिक खूबसूरत दिखती है. वीर ने क्रीम कलर की शेरवानी पहन रखी थी. श्रेया स्टेज की
ओर बढ़ी. उसकी नजरें झुकी हुईं थीं. वह पार्टी में सबसे सुंदर दिख रही थी, फिर भी न जाने क्यों उसका चेहरा उदासी से भरा हुआ था. श्रेया, श्रुति और वीर की ओर बढ़ चली. उसे देखते ही श्रुति कुछ पल के लिए चौंक
सी गई. वह जिस तरह खिलखिलाकर सभी से शुभकामनाएं ले रही थी, अचानक श्रेया को देखकर उसकी वह खिलखिलाहट गुम हो गई. लेकिन दूसरी ही पल उसके चेहरे पर मुस्कुराहट आ गई. पर वीर के माथे से न जाने क्यों पसीने छूट
रहे थे. वह घबराया सा श्रेया को देखकर नजरें चुरा रहा था. लेकिन श्रेया को दोनों के ही रिएक्शन से कुछ लेना-देना नहीं था मानो. वह एक अजीब सी खामोशी से श्रुति के करीब पहुंची. स्टेज की सीढ़ियां चढ़ते वक्त एक
हाथ से वह अपनी साड़ी की प्लेट्स संभाल रही थी तो दूसरे हाथ से अपने चेहरे पर आती बालों की लटों को चेहरे से हटा रही थी. वह श्रुति के पास पहुंची. झुकी हुई नजरों से ही उसने श्रुति की आंखों से आंखें
मिलाईं.श्रुति उसे देखकर होंठ को दबाकर मुस्कुरा रही थी. श्रुति उसे देखकर खुश थी, पता चल रहा था. श्रुति ने श्रेया को गले लगाया और दोनों गालों से डाल टच कर खुशी में किस की आवाज निकाली , "मुआआआ".
श्रेया ने दबी हुई आवाज में उसे congrats बोला. और श्रुति ने श्रेया को गले लगाते वक्त उसके कान में कहा, "you are looking so beautiful as usual."
श्रुति के इन शब्दों पर श्रेया ने कोई प्रतिक्रिया नहीं दी. बस एक हल्की सी स्माइल कर दी.
#871
Chandini(Sunday, 09 April 2017 20:12)
Hello friends
I tried to fix the website dress2kill, however there seems to be problem with jimdo itself and have written to them to help fix it asap. Will keep you posted
Chandini
#872
vasantha(Monday, 10 April 2017 02:50)
pls write in English
#873
Ghost(Monday, 10 April 2017 13:23)
Dress2kill.jimdo page started working. Start reading.
XxxSweetPussy: Get 100,000 sweet pussy fucking videos. Check out the best Barely legal Porn Videos site in modern world for you VISIT NOW!
#878
Ray(Friday, 14 April 2017 16:21)
Superstar to SuperSlut
Bollywood had found its latest Angry young Man ,Aryan Khan . He debuted in SOTY 5 which proved to be a commercial success, but he gave another 4 consecutive hits within his first 2 years . But his
most acclaimed role came in a somewhat controversial Erotic thriller named “Bondage” it was like an Indian version of The Fifty Shades of Grey. Here Aryan played a Psychotic lover who kidnaps his
unwilling crush and subjects her to various bondages and sexumiliation which was his version of Harsh Love, In the end it was shown that he was successful in brainwashing her and she would willingly
submitting to him. The film was banned in many states throughout India due to protests by Feminists against the portrayal of a woman in the film. But the film banner was a big one and had contacts in
Media and the Government , the film was still released on Valentine’s Day. It had got quite a publicity due to the controversy and hence became a huge blockbuster hit throughout the country.
There was a press meet held to celebrate the entry of the film into the 100 Crore club , the film crew along with Aryan were attending it . After a few basic questions one of the guy asked “Aryan,
What about the portrayal of woman as slave in the film, don’t you think its disgraceful?”
“What? To do what the Husband orders is it disgracefull? To oblige to Husband in the bed is it disgracefull? Woman are trained from their mothers how to keep the Husband Happy , its not like slave ,
its more like Boss- Employee or something like that , Someone has to take command right” Aryan bluttered out , everyone was in shock , they knew they had their headline for the day. Everyone got up
for a group photo and that concluded the event .Aryan’s comments made the headlines, debates were made on National Television about “What was Woman’s status in the society”. He was condemmed by most
of his colleagues from the Industry. Feminists around the country were enraged . One of those feminists was the Indian Ambassador to Maldieves , Akansha Sinha.
Akansha was 35 year old single widower, her husband who was a soldier had died in a gunbattle in Kashmir only 5 months after her marriage. She was sitting in her house reading an article about his
statements , She had seen the film and was already enraged about him , but by this statement he had really crossed the line , in fit of rage she threw and broke the coffee cup beside her “How dare
He, Son of a B*” she said to herself . Earlier that morning she had received a visa request from the very same Aryan Khan and his girlfriend arriving next week . Aryan was advised to run away from
media for a while till the dust settles in from the controversy, he had chosen Maldives to be his escape holiday. Akansha had already accepted his request, She knew he was heading towards Maldives.
She thought she would take him on and give him a piece of her mind about the issue when she meets him ,but then after seeing his careless comments she knew how arrogant and ignorant he can be , so
her words would mean nothing. She thought for the whole night about the issue , it made her sleepless about how helpless she was in the case. For the next few days she had the same point lingering in
her head ,She wanted to do something to make him pay. That afternoon while she was having her lunch in the embassy canteen, she could hear two people conversing with eachother about their Manager ,
one of the person uttered the line “Give him his own medicine, Tell him to do what he expects from others”.
That line stuck in her head , she thought and laughed for herself imagining Aryan Khan in the position of the woman in the film “Bondage”. In the evening she was back to her home ,the Idea thrilled
her , she knew it was far fetched but still she liked the Idea. She while in her teens was actually an avid reader of femdom materials. She remembered her good old days and went to her PC and
searched for some femdom stories and videos , she was engrossed in it through out the night. She particularly enjoyed some of the new TG content she had discovered. At some point she felt sleepy and
went to bed as she imagining her as dominant and Aryan Khan as he submissive in her dreams.
#879
Ray(Friday, 14 April 2017 16:22)
Few days later , Aryan Khan and his girlfriend Tanasha Kapoor arrived in Maldives , they went to their hotel, rested for a few time and then got ready for going to the Pub in the evening. It was fun
filled evening for them ,they danced to the beats as they enjoyed their vodka shots. As the party went into the late night Aryan had had one drink too many , he was totally dozing off with booze ,
that’s when he saw one person trying to dance with Tanasha, he became angry by seeing this and screamed “How dare you son of a bitch , get off my girl” he threw was glass bottle towards him with all
his might . The bottle hit the person’s head with a large force and he collapsed on the floor , Aryan went to Tanasha , He said “Bitch , you were getting cozy with him right “ and slapped her ,as he
was drunk he had no control over his hand and that slap was ferocious ,it made Tanasha go into concussion as she fell down. The Pub security was then alerted , they caught hold of Aryan and they
procceded to take Tanasha and the guy hit with the bottle to the hospital. Aryan had dozed of by the time completely.
He woke up few hours later , with his hands I cuffs , he suddenly realized his situation and screemed “I am a Star from India , and I demand to contact my EMBASSY”
To be continued .
#880
randeep(Saturday, 15 April 2017 03:42)
my name is rajiv i was working in bpo. leaving away from family because of family pressure and stress.... so i stayed in mumbai had a seperate 1 bhk room and had a good salary.... i felt n love with
a girl named manisha and exchanged numbers and finally she proposed me and i accepted her proposal she use to work with international airlines. and she was from rich family.. she had a good big house
she use to stay with her mother, her mother was divorce... so we had a meeting and finally our marriage got fixed.. we didnt have much family members so we had a court marriage.. her mother made me
her ghar jamai as i didnt have any issues i thought i may save some money...so we were happily married and life was going on... manisha was very beautiful and slimn... so let me tell you about myself
i had long hairs and slim and fair body as i was from north side.. life was going on well when my mil and manisha was not happy with my job of night shifts so she said to me look for day job. so
every day their was a fight between me and manisha about my night shifts...so one day my mil told me to resign from job she will get me a business deal or a showroom of electronics. so manisha forced
me aswell. so i resigned from my job and took a months rest and manisha was in her flights busy in her job routine, i use to wait her daily at home and days passe almost 2 months passed.i was asking
my mil for business deal daily and she use to ignore one or the other way.... so i use to stay at home and wait for my wife daily... one day i thought of searching the job again so i started to give
interviews but things didnt work out because of salary packages or shift timings,i was done with the money which i had in my account... and the other account we had a joint account so i didnt ask
manisha about money...
so one day manisha came from her flight tired and ask a glass of water to drink i went and got the water she gave me smile and ask me what i was doing entire day... i said i was watching tv and
sleeping so i didnt have work to do.. then my mil came and said manisha that she is tired of doing kitchen work and ask manisha for assistance...as manisha was tired she said to me to help her mom. (
as you know that i use to stay alone before marriage i use to cook clean and do all the house hold work )i made face on manisha and she starred at me.. i said manisha why dont we keep a maid..
manisha said they dont believe anyone in todays world.,so i went to help her. mil saw me and gave me a smile and told me to cut some vegetables which i did cleanly and cooked rice and helped mil to
make dal and subzis.. my mil was surprised after seeing my effort.. and manisha also appreciated me....
days passed i started to work in kitchen all the time and my mil appreciated my work and started to watch her fav programmes... manisha use to cme from her work i use to serve her food and clean the
house.. one night manisha was in the room and i did my work and came to the room to sleep as i was tired
#881
randeep(Saturday, 15 April 2017 03:53)
as i was sleeping manisha asked me about my job i said her am still searching as iam not able to find the right package and shifts she gave me a smile and kissed me on forehead...
and she said that for a week she is on off she will spend time with me.. so the next morning i had a bath and served tea to mil and manisha.. i woaked up manisha serve her tea she gave me a smile and
went to take bath.. i prepared her breakfast and served both of them.. and got ready to give an interview in a new company but manisha stopped me and said that no need to give interview as she has
enough income to take care of all our needs but i was not happy about that i shouted on her and got angry her mil heard me and said to do what manisha was saying or else i can leave the house.. so
then i kept quiet and became calm
#882
randeep(Saturday, 15 April 2017 04:10)
i explained manisha about my income everything.... she said to believe her and started to kiss me on my lips... then i surrendered her and we had a good sex that night after marriage first time..
then i asked manisha for some money to cut my hairs as it was little bit long lenght till my shoulders... she said that she will take care of it and took a hair brush and putted a pony using her
rubber band and when i started to open that pony she slapped me and said not to do that and opened her ward drobe and made me wear her mangalsutra... and started to laugh and said you fit to be my
wife and i like you doing house hold work.. never raise your voice again in front of me....she pulled my hairs and warned me stepping out of this house....and i was watching her sudden behaviour and
was little bit afraid of her... then she kept her legs on me told me to massage which i did quietly.. and ask me to make her fav breakfast tommorow morning..
(manisha use to wear western clothes all the time as she was modern and working woman)
at that time she was wearing sating kurta and pajama and i was wearing t-shirt and track pant...
next morning i got up made tea served both of them and made manishas fav breakfast..
manisha saw me and asked me about mangalsutra i had kept on the table last nite i bought the mangalsutra and gave her. she told me to wear i wore the mangalsutra in front of mil and her she smiled
and said good girl
#883
randeep(Saturday, 15 April 2017 04:32)
then my mil started to laugh and said bahu go and clean the house.. i felt ashamed and was cleaning the house my mil removed her bangles and made me wear her bangles and tied a pony tail.....and my
wife said me to prepare lunch no one helped me i prepared the lunch and was serving them both feeling very shy.... . then i took my bath came to my room was wearing t shirt and track pant with
mangalsutra.. my wife saw me and made me to sit and asked me how is your new role rajni.... i said ok ..very good from now on wards you will take care of this house and your mil now you will be
called rajni is it ok i said yes....she asked me to take of my clothes i said why? she said oh rajni you are a girl so you should be beautiful and look good for your husband.... manisha said i work
in airlines i have a job... you sit at home like a woman wearing mangalsutra and bangles with a pony so from now onwards you will be a proper woman my wife rajni ... with proper shringar.... right
rajni she said... my heart beat increased..... she opened her ward drobe she had good collection of salwar suits, nighties., punjabi dresses... when she was in her college days because now she wears
jeans and t-shirts and westerns skirts etc... manisha told me i work in airlines so i dont wear this stuff so its all yours now rajni.....
#884
randeep(Saturday, 15 April 2017 04:50)
so she told me to stripped of my clothes.... as i didnt have much hairs on my body she didnt have to work much on that.. she bleached my face i didnt have beard or moustache, she bought turmeric and
forced me to take turmeric bath.......and cleaned my body completely...
and then she washed my hairs blow them dry and did some threading as she was expert in it..
did my face make up she applied kajal lipstick light make up she gave me a bra as her size was 38b it fitted me properly because i had a tender breast she made me wear her panty....then she saw me i
was feeling shy and i had completely surrendered her.... manisha then went to wardrobe and bought a punjabi dress which was red colour... she made me wear it it was perfect in size as we both had
same personality and height.and then made me wear bangles payal and artificial nosering and earrings (the press one which doesnt require Piercing ) and then lastly mangalsutra and then came the red
nail polish and she tied my hairs with feminine style with red rubber band..and then the heavy red duppata was given on my head..... and she showed the mirror i was feeling shy and concious..... then
she said rajni my wife you are awesome.... she gave me sandals to wear.. which i managed difficultly..the sound of bangles and anklets was making me concious.... i was sacred to face my mil,
manisha called my mil to room she came and saw me and started to laugh saying oh my beta has become bahu...then manisha told mom her name is rajni... she called me rajni mummy ka par chovo... i
touched her feet then manishas feet her mom went and bought sindoor she applied in my hair...
#885
randeep(Saturday, 15 April 2017 05:07)
then the both watched me and started to praise my beauty and work....and my wife took my entire clothes and locked in store room... i was sad because this was the first time iam in womans getup
then i was told to prepare tea and watched tv serials with them my mil thought me womans manners everything iwas feeling as if iam woman or wife of my husband.... at night i called manisha to change
my clothes she slapped me and said her name is manish and she is my husband and iam her wife...she forced me on her bed and we had a good time and she made me wear pink nighty at night....so almost a
month passed i felt like iam woman of the house.....
my mil use to taunt me like her bahu and teach me house work... manisha was on trip all the time i use to wait my hubby serve him dinner and sleep with him...everyday manisha use to drees me in
morning in suits,punjabi dressess and nighties....now i started to wear on my own put make up and became woman my mil was happy with me... it was my birthday as manisha was on trip my mil wished me
and kissed me on my forhead and she made my choti and then she dressed me in her saree this was the first time i wore saree which was in green colou my mil draped the saree made me wear her marriage
jewellery and made me sit on my bed .... then manisha saw me in saree she praised me and we had a good time.... i became rajni bahu i started to like my new role very much.... so now nowbody use to
recognize me as male.. i started to go out with my mil and my hubby manish they use to gift me sarees dresses etc
#886
randeep(Saturday, 15 April 2017 05:20)
now manish my husband is trying for sex change operation... so that i can be completely woman and enjoy my woman hood.... hope you like my story plz do comments thankyou .......
#887
SRS(Saturday, 15 April 2017 07:51)
Ray and randeep please continue ur story
#888
firoja(Sunday, 16 April 2017 01:20)
Please write cd dulhan bahurani stories
#889
bindani(Sunday, 16 April 2017 09:17)
Hai randeep
Please countine stories...include wear ghungat and heavy saree and bridal jewellery like good bahu.please include punishment like tiedup and blindfold with dupatta for his mistake.
Don't stop stories countinue more parts
#890
Ray(Monday, 17 April 2017 04:14)
SuperStar to SuperSlut PART 2
“I am a Star from India , and I demand to contact my EMBASSY”
He kept on shouting the same, the police officers though annoyed by his shouting were still ignoring them but when Aryan started abusing them for not listening it irked one of the officer who had had
enough of the screaming. He dragged Aryan from his chair and put him inside a cell and called his subordinates inside for help. The Police officers then took turns in beating Aryan blue and black ,
he was shouting and cursing the officers in the process “You can’t do that you fools, I am a big star in India ,Stop” he said wincing in pain to no avail . The officers showed him no mercy, all his
arrogance had succumbed to the pain , he went on his knees and started to beg them to not hit him “Please Sir, Don’t hit me my body is hurting , I am sorry for what I did, Please just let me contact
my embassy” he begged them . As he was saying this , “SMASH” since he went down on his knees, an officer’s hit aimed at his back had now hit his head. “Ahhhhhh” He screamed as he fell down on the
ground unconscious.
He woke up few days later, in what seemed to be a Hospital. He saw the calendar besides his bed by which he realized he seemingly was unconscious for 2 days. One of the nurse noticed him waking up,
she went and informed the officials. Few minutes later, A Lady in black suit had come to visit Aryan in his ward. She was none other than Akshana. “Hello Mr Aryan Khan, This is Akansha Sinha, The
Indian Ambassador to the Maldives, you are now in the Embassy Hospital” She introduced herself offering a handshake, Aryan was relived at hearing this he shook her hand “Thank God you are her Madam,
I was not able to contact you, the Police didn’t allow me, they tortured and beat me like an animal that day, Hopefully I am safe now” He said.
“I got to know about your situation through an internal agent, since you are a VIP I myself took to it to look after your safety” She Said. “Thank you Madam, Thanks a Lot for saving my life” Aryan
thanked her.
“But you are not safe yet Mr Khan” Akansha said. Aryan was little terrified by that “What do you mean by that, I am in the embassy right, no police or anyone can enter the embassy right” He asked.
“That’s right , Mr Khan , but there are police right outside the compound, they will nab you right after you exit the embassy, If you want to stay here for rest of your life then its ok , but if you
want to go back to India , there is little problem” Akansha started explaining “ You remember why you were arrested? You hit that guy with a glass bottle? He lost one eye in the process, and that’s
not it, He happens to be the son of the former Prime Minister of Maldives”. Aryan was terrified now “Oh My God, I didn’t knew him, It was an accident , I was drunk , Please save me , I am an Indian,
You have to save me” Aryan pleaded to her holding her hand.
“Do you know what Mr Khan, you have a trial Date tomorrow morning, and they have all the evidence on you, since his father is a resourceful man, you may even get the Maximum punishment too” She
said.
“What? You can’t be serious” Aryan was now almost in tears. “Yes I am serious, but the court ruling is the last thing you should worry about, My Internal Agent this morning gave me an message, It
said his father’s Party workers are planning to Kill you on your way from the embassy to the court, They are planning to Kill you Aryan, they are not happy with just 10 year sentence”. Akansha
informed him.
Aryan was shocked at hearing of the plot , he was now crying “What the hell , I was here to enjoy my vacation , now I am totally screwed here, What have I Done , Oh GOD “ he continued pleading
“Please Madam , you have to do something , I am an Indian , you have to save me”. “That is why I am here , to serve the Indian people, And I have to admit I am an avid fan of you , So I went out of
my way to search for an escape route for you Mr Khan, But it’s a Tad bit expensive” Akansha’s announcement lit up Aryan’s eyes the words escape route made him hopefull . “Whatever the expense I will
fulfill Madam you please tell me what iss the plan, how can I escape” He said.
“There is a group of mercenaries that work in the underground, whom I know through my agents. They have expertise in providing the escape route. They have help many politicians to flee the country
who were on death sentence. But problem is that they charge a lot, A 100 Crore Rupees to be exact” Akansha said . “100 Crore rupees!! Oh my God , Is it negotiable? I have about 75 to 80 Crore in my
bank account, I can wire it right now if you want” He replied . “That will be tough, but I will see if they are ready to negotiate, Let me call my agent” She said. Akansha got on to her phone and
made few calls, after few minutes her phone rang in again,
#891
Ray(Monday, 17 April 2017 04:20)
“Yes , Yes.. Ok Fine tommorow Done” She said on the phone. Aryan was relieved to hear the word done, he asked her what they said. “Fortunately, they didn’t have any assignment for a few time, hence
they were desperate for this one, they have agreed to the amount of 80 Crore rupees, you have to wire it to them within next half an hour and the deal will be booked”
Akansha informed him. Aryan clapped his hand “Yes, Thank God” . Akansha then gave him his phone which was seized by the police, he then proceeded to transfer 80 Crore rupees to the account number she
provided.
“That’s It Aryan, Deal is booked, You will be Kidnapped from the Police vehicle on you way to the embassy by them, then they will take you to their Private jet which will then take you to Sri Lanka
in their Jet, and there a vehicle will be waiting to take you to the Indian Embassy in Sri Lanka, then you are a free bird” Akansha explained the Plan to him . “Thank you for whatever you have done
for me Madam , As soon as I reach India , I will tell the tale of you saving me, will make you famous I promise” Aryan said. “That wont be necessary Mr Khan , This is a covert Operation , no one
including Indian Government officials should know about it, Do you understand” She said in a stern voice. “Sure , Sure. I didn’t realize that , you are going out of you way to save me, No one will
know” He said. Then Akansha shook his hands and was leaving the room when Aryan asked “Madam one more thing , What about Tanasha? Is she Okay , I hit her when I was drunk, Where and how is she ?” ,
Akansha informed him about his girlfriend “Tanasha Kapoor is still recovering in the Hospital , She is safe and will Leave for India soon , Nothing to worry” as she left his ward.
The next morning, Aryan was taken from his ward and dragged inside a police vehicle, it proceeded on its way to the Court . As Planned the day before it was attacked midway, Aryan who was expecting
them was over joyous at their arrival. They were successful in picking up Aryan ,shifted him to theirs and sped away from the scene. “Thank you guys , You guys were great, Every penny spent on you is
worth it” He said patting their backs, He suddenly felt a pain in his neck and turned back. One of the guy had pierced a syringe inside him and had injected something, within seconds he fell
asleep.
Few hours later , the Large sound of the Television woke him up. To his shock he was lying down on the floor of a dark room clad only in his underwear. He was terrified by his situation . He Looked
around the room , it was pitch Dark , there was only one Door and a window in the room , He tried to open it , but it were both locked from the outside, but he could still hear the sound of a
television being played some adjacent room . He started shouting “Hey Who is it that Has locked me here , Please open the Door, I was supposed to be in Sri Lanka by now, I payed full 80 Crore you
know, Open the door” he started banging the door, the Television was switched off but there was no other response from the other side."Hey I know you are there Open the Door Dammit" Aryan shouted .
After few minutes of trying to break the door , he was tired and fell on the floor. As he sat on the floor and his bum touched the floor, he realized that the underwear he was wearing felt different,
as it was pitch dark he couldn’t see what he is wearing , but when he touched it and felt its sliky material and frilly ends, he realized he is not wearing an Underwear , but a Panty. That put him in
shock , he was wondering what was he stuck into , He stared at the Door , helplessly waiting for it to be opened, gradually losing hope and falling asleep.
#892
SRS(Monday, 17 April 2017 05:51)
Ray awesome please go on
#893
Anjali(Tuesday, 18 April 2017 04:55)
Hi Kareena
In regards to your comments #247 & #248, would to make friends with you.
You can email me at anjali28@rediffmail.com and we can continue our friendship.
I am a cd and love to dressup...
Love
Anjali
#894
randeep(Friday, 21 April 2017 07:44)
Hope everybody liked my story...
waiting for your comments
will start a new story soon
thankig all my sisters
can anyone write the revolutionary story about gender change all around the world due to some reasons.and that effect in our state.pick me as a lead character. having gradual changes in
body.admitting the future and ready to take up the girls life and their traditional functions like puberty function, pelli choopulu, pelli, first night,pregnancy,seemantham,conceiving the baby. pls
right this in Telugu version. plsss plss
Suman,
I get time to write stories only when my wife is out of town. She is going to US tomorrow and I shall certainly write at that time.
Thanks for your comment.
#902
DEEPU(Thursday, 27 April 2017 14:24)
SET IN ANCIENT PERIOD THERE WERE 2 KINGS RAJA AND SUHAS WHO WERE SWORN ENEMIES OF EACH OTHER. ONCE RAJA DECIDED TO WAGE A WAR AND DESTROY THE TOTAL SUHAS KINGDOM. HE ASSEMBLED A HUGE ARMY AND MARCHED
INTO SUHAS KINGDOM. INITIALLY HE WAS ABLE TO GO DEEP INTO SUHAS KINGDOM WITHOUT ANY RESISTANCE BUT IT WAS A TRAP LAID BY SUHAS.
ONCE RAJA GOT TRAPPED DEEP INSIDE SUHAS KINGDOM HE WAS SURROUNDED ON ALL SIDES BY SUHAS ARMY.
RAJAS ARMY WAS DESTROYED BUT HE ESCAPED AND HID IN A FOREST NEARBY.
BUT SUHAS KNEW THAT RAJA HAD ESCAPED INTO THE FOREST AND HE SENT A HUGE ARMY TO FIND AND KILL RAJA BEFORE HE CAN REACH HIS KINGDOM.
RAJA WHILE HIDING IN THE FOREST SAW SOLDIERS IN FOREST AND WAS SURE THAT SUHAS HAD SENT IT. HE ESCAPED INTO NEARBY CAVE AND WAS THINKING OF THE WAY TO REACH BACK HIS KINGDOM. IN THE CAVE HE SAW A
LAMP SHINING AND UNINTENTIONALLY HE RUBBED IT AND TO HIS SURPRISE A BEAUTIFUL MAIDEN CAME OUT. SHE WAS EXTREMELY BEAUTIFUL. SHE TOLD HERSELF TO BE A GENIE NAME RANI AND OFFERED RAJA 3 WISHES.
RAJA HAD ASKED FOR HIS ESCAPE TO HIS KINGDOM. THE GENIE RANI TOLD HIM THAT SHE DID NOT HAVE THE POWER TO TELEPORT HIM. BUT SHE HAD THE POWER TO DISGUISE HIM AND WOULD ACCOMPANY HIM TILL HE REACHED
HIS KINGDOM SAFELY.
#903
DEEPU(Thursday, 27 April 2017 14:34)
RAJA ACCEPTED. THE GENIE THEN TRANSFORMED RAJA INTO A BEAUTIFUL LADY AND GAVE HIM A MIRROR TO LOOK. RAJA WAS SURPRISED AS HE WAS NOW WEARING A HALF SLEEVED PINK BLOUSE WITH MATCHING PINK SAREE WITH
WHITE BORDER. HE WAS WEARING BINDI EAR RINGS, NOSE RINGS. RAJA WAS A BIT ANGRY AND ASKED THE GENIE RANI TO CHANGE HIM BACK.
THE GENIE RANI REPLIED THAT IF HE CHANGED BACK THEN HE WOULD BE EASILY IDENTIFIED AND ALSO HE WOULD LOOSE HIS SECOND WISH. RAJA HAD THOUGHT THAT IF HE USED HIS SECOND WISH NOW IT WOULD BE WASTED AS
AFTER REACHING HIS KINGDOM HE ASK THE GENIE RANI FOR A LARGER ARMY TO DEFEAT SUHAS . SO RAJA ACCEPTED HIS GIRLY FORM. THE GENIE RANI THEN CONVERTED AS A MAN SAYING NOW THEY BOTH WOULD POSE LIKE
HUSBAND AND WIFE TILL THEY REACH RAJA`S KINGDOM. SAYING SO THE GENIE NOW TOOK A MANGALSUTRA AND TIED IT TO RAJA SO THAT HE WOULD LOOK AS A MARRIED WOMEN. THUS BOTH RAJA AND RANI STARTED THEIR JOURNEY
AS A COUPLE.
TO BE CONTINUED
#904
DEEPU(Thursday, 27 April 2017 14:36)
PLEASE GIVE REVIEWS AND WHETHER THE STORY WAS INTERESTING OR BORING
#905
shyam(Friday, 28 April 2017 01:59)
nice story deepu pl continue
#906
vasantha(Friday, 28 April 2017 02:50)
DEEPU make more intersing make full woman do this like girl
#907
shruthi(Friday, 28 April 2017 04:48)
good start deepu.pls continue.make him waste his sorry her remaining two wishes and let him to remain as beautiful married women forcefully make her to become pregnant
#908
Suman Ganguly(Friday, 28 April 2017 05:59)
Monu, I know that dear. Please ensure that you write as maximum as possible during that period. Thanks.
Thank you so much for sharing this great blog.Very inspiring and helpful too.Hope you continue to share more of your ideas.I will definitely love to read.
#913
mandakini(Tuesday, 02 May 2017 02:05)
Hi to every one on this site
I want a house husband... iam working woman
iam getting married soon
so here is a video of future husbands...
watch it enjoy
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=U6ecF2kZqhg
#914
soumya(Tuesday, 02 May 2017 02:12)
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=ox7DhzsLnn0
watch this video of juhi and anil
#915
soumya(Tuesday, 02 May 2017 02:14)
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=2jnkbY95Zfo
future of househusbands
#916
jayshree(Tuesday, 02 May 2017 03:19)
plz send husband forced crossdressing stories
#917
Anonymous(Tuesday, 02 May 2017 04:34)
This is a story taken from facebook deepa
its not mine
My name is vasu aged 27. I was recently married to a beautiful young lady. I was a software employee with more salary and besides with heavy tensions.
In my home I used to be more anger aty wife due to the irritation in work. One day the I beat her so harshly and she was hospitalized. I was so sad at my rude behavior. When she was discharged from
the hospital , she didn't used to talk to me and just felt like strangers living in a home. I felt so sad on her. The next day I took leave from the office and thought to keep her happy. I begged her
and she at last convinced and we went out for shopping. There she saw a beautiful blue Saree and brought a sleeveless blouse for that. She wored it and shown to me. I was with excitement. We reached
back to home after having our lunch and I slept. She was somehow happy since our marriage.
When I woke up and went to the bathroom yo wash my face I found by face was empty without hair. My moustache and my beard was shaved clean and I even don't have any hair on my chest and navel.
Suddenly my wife came there and asked me a favour for her. Since the marriage she didn't asked me anything. Do I promised her that anything ll be done for her. She asked me to wear the Saree which
was brought on the morning. I was questioned and asked her the reason. Then she said we ll find a answer for our happy family life. So I agreed to wear. She made me to sit in front of the dressing
table and she did some little makeup and painted my nails and she kept a shoulder length wig on my head. I was feeling like a girl. Then she make me to stand and wore me the bra and panty of her
which suited me perfect and wore that Saree with sleeveless blouse. I was in the feel of feminine. That's really excited me. Then she took me to the kitchen to prepare the dinner. I was stunned to do
so. But looking at her innocent face myself got pleased and helped her. Then hands are sounding tangled with the bangles. My wife is so happy I have ever seen in our marriage life. Then we sat for
eating. She kept food for me in my mouth like my mom. On that day I have seen the love she had on me. For the first time I cried and she took me near to her and consoled me like a kid. Then she said
me as a male you are so harsh. But when u r on female dress u r so sensitive. So from today onwards please dress like this in home and so we can be happy. I was agree with her. From that day onwards
I used to be dressed like her and I even behaved like a women in my house. From that day we never go quarreled and even we used to go long drives as girls in my car.
Now I was having a happy life with full of tension relief at home as a wife.
And my wife used to call me as VASUNDHATA
#918
Priya(Tuesday, 02 May 2017 20:56)
I am ready to be house husband for my wife..
#919
SRS(Wednesday, 03 May 2017 12:06)
Please continue story
#920
Anonymous(Wednesday, 03 May 2017)
@Mandakini i 'm ready to be house husband please can just message or reply to me
I am Thinku. Some of you may know me. Me and some of my friends have a crossdressing videos compilation platfrom in facebook called Thinku's Crossressing gallery. Now we have started a story page
called as Thinku's Crossdressing stories. Please visit, Like and support our initiative.
Posting the first part of our new story as a teaser.
The help
Part One:
Main Characters
Deepak : A macho guy. 27 yrs old. From Kerala. Rich. Software engineer in Bengaluru. 6 feet. 80 kgs. Witty and brave. Takes occasional risks
Deepa : Deepak's younger sis .fun loving young girl.
Sheela :Deepak's Mom. Very orthadox and traditional. Retired school principal.
Sneha :Deepak's ex-girlfriend. Modern girl.
Tarun : Deepak's roommate. 25 yrs old.Works in a part time job. Lives with help of Deepak. Slim,fair. 157cm 58kg with sholder length hair. Has mom and sis only. From poor background.
Anjali :Deepak and Tarun's common friend. Modern girl with traditional values. Tarun has a crush on her and she knows it too. Has a soft corner for Tarun.
Story:
It is 8 pm at night. Tarun returns to home after some shopping. Deepak is at the flat sitting with a gloomy face. He is sipping a beer and seems like is thinking about something. Tv is on but he is
not caring about it..
Tarun: Hey bro..Still in that heart broken Romeo mode?..Its been months now. Why are you still holding on to it. Leave it and move on man.
Deepak: Tarun. U know perfectly well that i am over Sneha. Its true that i loved her and wanted to marry her. I even fought with my family at native and left home to marry her. It is not my fault she
left me. Thats is not the matter..
Tarun : Haha.. i was just kidding bro. I knw u got over it but can't help telling somethng seeing you gloomy again. So what is the matter Romeo.
Deepak: Nothing bro..some issues with family again.
Tarun : That is a gud thing. Your family again contacted you?.after you left home i thought they casted you out. Such was your performance na. 'i love this girl and for her i will leave you all if
needed'. Haha
Deepak : Ya..it was matter of my self esteem. They think me and Sneha is still together. I also made them think like that. Imagine how embarassed would i be if they find out the girl i left them a
girl who has left me..
Tarun: (trying hard to hide his grin). Ya..so what is the problem. Let them believe that.
Deepak: They do believe that and now uncle called me and said they respect my guts and decision and they are ready to accept me and sneha..Also they want me return to native with her and get blessing
from mom.
Tarun: Oh. That is one bad situation..Sneha has already gone from your life.. now there is no alternative bro. Tell ur family what happened.
Deepak: No man. How can i do that. I hurt my family so much and boasted about our love so much. It will be great shame to tell this. I will be a laughing stock for all the family. You know ours is a
joint family na.
Tarun : ya..but what else can we do.
Deepak: that is what i was thinking. It wud be a matter for 2 days..just go there and get blessings and come back. I was thinking if i could go with someone posing as Sneha.
Tarun: That is an idea worth trying out. But will Anjali agree to it?. She is the only close girl friend of us. Have u called her?.
Deepak: Ya i did. U know she is a gud girl and will do anything to help us but the issue is she got to visit her parents in US. You know na this is her vacation time. She is leaving after 2-3
days.
Tarun : Oh..i forgot that.. so we are now back to square one. Can't think of any other girl who will help you.
Deepak: I also couldn't think of any girl but..
Tarun : what bro. Do you hav any other idea in mind?.
Deepak : I have one but i need your help in it.
Tarun: You knw i will do anything for you bro. Just tell me.
Deepak: Ok .This may sound wierd. But there is only one person who can help me. It is you….
Tarun: me?..how bro.
Deepak: I was thinking if you could come with me to my native.
Tarun: Sure. I would come with you. but that won't solve the problem na. They are expecting sneha along with you na.
Deepak : U didn't understand what i told. I was thinking if you could come with me to native..."AS SNEHA"..
To be continued in fb page : facebook.com/thinkucdstories
#923
Rashmi(Sunday, 07 May 2017 20:49)
SRS PLS COMPLITE STORY THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE
#924
shruthi(Monday, 08 May 2017 00:17)
yes reshmi wt you said was r8. SRS
#925
SRS(Monday, 08 May 2017 00:48)
Please wait i will, thinku please continue ur story here
#926
vasantha(Tuesday, 09 May 2017 02:56)
srs pls continue your story I am very very big fsn of you pa
If anyone want house husband or house wife i 'm ready to live those roles & i know house hold works and i know cooking verywell ...if any one have interest please can just message or reply to me
my whats up number 8610707684....
deepu please continue your story. it is excellent.please continue deepu
#931
Samriddhi(Sunday, 14 May 2017 13:56)
Journey to femdom
Hi! This is my first story.
I am a ca working with a reputed firm. I Frequently visit different places for accounting. I have girly feeling and desire to be like them. I spent days in closet dressed but never dared to come n
open. My desire started growing to express my feelings with others and live life as girl. I wanted to feel like one. Most of the time I used to visit othe cities alone. There I used to remain dressed
in hotel room at night and get back to male self during day for work. Frequently I visited Dehradoon in taxi for audit work. The same driver used to drive me almost every month and pick me up from
there after few days when I finished work. By the way I live in Delhi. I am reserved person and did not talk to him during drive except when needed. He would also not bother me . He was very polite,
at least he appeared and caring. He always asked before playing music and showed curtesy. He would carry my luggage to hotel room and bring food and other things when asked. Sunil was his name aged
around 25 and 2 years younger to me. He was married and had a small daughter .these were occasional information which I gathered from hm during those travel. I used to be very happy going to dhradoon
as I had little work and plenty time to dress in my hotel room. The hotel staff would also not bother me when I asked them not to disturb me in my room. My luggage used to be heavy as I carried most
of my dresses and makeup with me. I had plenty time experimenting . Sarees, skirts, tops, leggings, kurtis all I used to wear and admire in front of mirror. I completely enjoyed myself .intentionally
I used to delay work so that I get extra days to dress. After 3 to 4 such trips I got bored and wanted to explore more of my feminity. I needed an admirer or a lover but faithful and obedient who
would act according to me. In Delhi I used to wonder how I will get my dream fulfilled. One day I decided to give the driver a chance. He was poor and gentleman. Although not of my expectation but I
thought
He would be faithful. So I made my mind that on next trip I would try him. To my surprise next day my office asked me to leave for Dehradoon with same driver as it was urgent.i was very very happy
but afraid too. What if he turn down my offer . What if he tell others and ........ Next morning he was to pick me up from my apartment. I had packed my dresses and makeup and all already. I also
shaved my body which was Already clean applied perfumed moisturiser before sleep. I put on pink bra Nd panty and painted toe nail with same colour. My wig was ready and I was very excited. I would
just put Tshirt and jeans before leaving. He came at 5 am and rang bell. He was supposed to carry my bags. As he lifted the he said it is heavy are you going for month sir. I blushed and smiled said
no.
I sat as usual on rear seat just behind him. My heart started racing fast. I was to ask him the favour I always wanted.
#932
Samriddhi(Sunday, 14 May 2017 14:42)
Journey to femdomfemdom 2
I sat like dumb for an hour thinking of way to start conversation.after tea at a dhaba I thought to speak up . I said Sunil.he instantly replied yes sir.
I :how is ur daughter?
He:good.little naughty. She is 4.
I :Does she go to school.
He: yes in mcd.we cannot afford private school.
I : oho. How much u earn. He said I am on salary by taxi firm get 10000 p.m
I said if he need any help he can rely on me. He refused said u will help once or twice that will not be sufficient. He will have to look for other permanent source of income. He said his wife is
idle and wants to work. She can be good maid. He asked me if I had need of maid. I instantly said yea. I was looking for one. He seemed happy. I was more happier thinking things are going in right
direction.i asked him to bring her when I returned.now that I sensed security I opened up. I started admiring him. Said I like ur nature u r good blah blah.he was floored he in turn started
appreciating me. Said u r talented sir I am not etc. He instantly asked how much u earn sir. I smiled said 1.5 lakh p.m.his jaws remained open. I interrupted, said money is noteverything . U also
work hard.in future you will too earn. He said laughingly are u joking sir. I was enjoying his talk but only wished he referred me madam instead of sir.anyway I thought this is right time to strike.
I said I earn good money but am not happy in life but u r happy although u have less money. He asked why. I didn't reply. He seemed worried asked again. I thought to open up straight. I said stop the
car let me come in front seat then I will tell u.he. Pulled down . I got up to front seat. Asked him to drive slow so that he would listen carefully. My face was red. He seemedconcerned. I took some
water and started. I told him I have a secret and I want ur help. By now we reached a dhaba and he stopped the car. We kept sitting in car. I said I have a girl inside me. I want to explore it. Feel
it. I need his help. He was puzzled. I kept my hand on his and asked him to calm down. I sensed his fear.. I said it's not like that. I know u r married and loyal. I just need a companion that's it.
No physical type. He seemed calm now.ased what he will have to do. I said treat me like girl when I say. I said i need aobedient person like u. Above all keep it a secret do not even tell ur
wife.
He sweared .
#933
Samriddhi(Sunday, 14 May 2017 15:14)
Journey to femdomfemdom 3
I was now relaxed and happy.i said u obey me I will help u . He said ok sir. As u wish. I laughed and said not sir now mam.my name is Samriddhi and in private call me mam but never in front of
others.
I will give u amount double ur salary every month to obey me.he said that will be too much. Just help me sometimes when I am in need and give my wife job as maid. I said I will give her job and
decent salary beside u.he said thank you and paused and mam. I smiled patted on his cheek and said good boy. He started driving. He said mam do u wear ladies clothes also. I said yes and that is why
the luggage was heavy.ok he said. I unbuttoned Tshirt and gave him a peek of my bra. He was surprised.
I said don't u like it on me. He said yes yes.i said to night I will be ur girl .would u mind joining me in hotel. He said no no sir I never went to such hotel they will not let me. I said not sir
mam. He apologised. Said mam. I told hm not to worry I will do everything.i asked him now that he will earn extra money what he will do. He said he will save for his daughter. I was indeed impressed.
When we reached I asked him to stop at a mall. He accompanied me . I took him to Levi's showroom. Ordered a pair of jeans and Tshirt for him. We shopped for him. Sandals, belt etc. I took him to
saloon and had his hair cut and shaving done. He was shy to visit unisex saloon. In an hour his appearance changed from driver to a handsome hunk. He was good built and average height little taller
to me. I am fair and slim.at saloon I got massage for myself and got eyebrows done .initially staff was reluctant to file eyebrows as it would look girly but did when I insisted.i bought few girly t
shirts and a perfume. Sandal and hand bag. Driver carried all my baggage and I did window shopping like girls do all evening. We had snacks tougher her and occasional chats. He had put on his new
clothes and got old ones packed. At escalators I held his hand. I was enjoying thoroughly.i had complete girly feeling all along . At hotel I booked room for two. There was no suspicion. I asked them
not to bother us after dinner as we are tired and will sleep whole night.
#934
Samriddhi(Monday, 15 May 2017 05:02)
Journey to femdom 4
I was all excited as we reached hotel room. He dropped luggage and stood near door. I went to the window looked outside with sense of triumph. I was on cloud nine. Then I realised he was waiting for
my permission . I asked him to relax himself on sofa. Hesitatingly he sat in a corner. I asked "how do u Feel here with me". He nodded good. I put my hand on his shoulder and smilingly asked hm to be
normal . "We r friends now" I said. He said yes mam. I sensed he would not be normal so I sat next to hm. I started looking at his face and he became more uncomfortable. I smiled and he smiled back.
I put his hand in mine. By now I had removed my socks and he noticed my painted toe nails. He seemed to like it. I asked him to get fresh and handed him towel.when he went inside I quickly changed my
clothes. I already was in bra panty . I put on floral top and legging. Put on eye liner. I looked girly and was sure he would be surprised. He came out in 10 min. I was facing away from him as I I
did not notice him. I could see from edge of mirror he gazed towards me for long till he again rested himself on sofa. I kept unnoticing him and busy in phone. I saw him looking at my dress. I turned
back and asked how I look. He stammered goo good mam. Now he was looking at my face. I came close to him and asked just good or more. He said "you r very beautiful mam" and started blushing. I came
closer and pulled his face towards me. I said " you r handsome too. I want u to treat me like u treat ur wife but respectfully."he said yes mam. I liked him calling yes mam in every sentence. Earlier
he used yes sir in every sentence. Drivers are like that.isaked him if he can paint my finger nails. He nodded and carefully started painting.he took his time and impressed me. When he finished I
planted a kiss and said thank you. He blushed . I like it. I ordered food and we dined together .i handed him a Tshirt and shorts to change. I noticed hair all over his legs hand and chest.
#935
Samriddhi(Monday, 15 May 2017 06:03)
Journey to femdom 5
I started doing my makeup. He sat quiet on sofa.i put on pink lipstick .i asked him how I looked now. He said very pretty and shyly lowered is face. I went to him again pulled up his face and said u
r the Man U should not be shy .he nodded yes ma'am. I pulled him and asked "kiss me". He was motionless. I said again" kiss me or I will be angry".he pecked on my cheek. I patted him on his
face"good". He is 4-5inches taller. I stretched my arms around his neck and looked up to his face" do u like me "he affirmed again yes ma'am . I said "treat me like ur gf. Hold me like u do to ur
wife, make me feel like her. I will be happy. Be yourself. I won't mind anything . Trust me I will love u . "I was getting emotional.i continued " I am very happy with you. I will care for u . U just
give me happiness." He asked "what I should do." I said " like a boy does to a girl".now he held me tight in his arms. He said " I love you . You are very nice ma'am .
#936
Samriddhi(Monday, 15 May 2017 08:52)
Journey to femdom 6
he lifted me while my hands around his neck. I could feel his power. He squeezed me . I screamed "ouch" . He left his grip. Said " sorry" . I said it's ok I liked it. He was opening up now. I felt
his hand behind me on my hips under panty. Now it was my turn to blush. He pinched and I jumped nstantly.i blushed more. He pulled me again turned me around and held me from back. Firming his grip he
pulled me to sofa and I was there in his lap.He was acting beyond my earlier expectation. He was getting horny too. He said" ma'am your perfume is nice. I am unable to stop myself. " I said " just
perfume and not me". He replied " you are very nice and sexy" I asked " how do u please your wife". He said" she is very shy and submissive. I never care for her. She does not mind.we just do the
act". I said " u should care for her. I will teach you". He said yes ma'am. He planted a kiss on my lips. I was sitting crossed in his lap under his arms. His grip was hurting a bit but I did not
complain.i was completely overpowered.i tried to free myself without requesting him but I couldn't. He kept kissing on face and neck.his small beard was pinching me on face and I felt helpless.i was
getting more than I had asked for.simultaneously I did it want him to realise I was feeling helpless. So I requested I need water. He released me. I regained myself. Stood up and got a glass of
water. I also asked him for water. I did not want to go to his lap at least for sometime . So I sat in front of mirror touching up my makeup. He started flirting " ma'am u look beautiful u do not
need makeup. Just come to me." I smiled but kept on. I had styled my hair in girly look. I was not wearing wig. I applied more eyeliner. Another touch of lipstick.put on bindi and golden bangles in
left hand. He came closer and put his hand on my shoulder and started caressing.i again was blushing. He lifted perfume bottle and sprayed some over my chest.his fondling increased . I asked him to
wait and let me finish. He did it stop. He said" ma'am I gave u somuch time in between , I do not give to my wife". I said" slowly u will learn with me". He said" yes slowly but not to night and he
lifted me". I was up in air in his arms. He was holding me wit ease.fearing I may fall I put my arms around his neck. He was not fair. His muscular body and black skin was contrast against my white
skin.he put me on bed and got over me. I was screaming under his weight. He was in no mood to leave me. I thought to myself , this was the price of happiness which I have to pay now onwards. His
cheeks were rubbing against mine and I was screaming louder. I begged him to leave for a moment. He released. I was relieved. He commented" ma'am u r more delicate than my wife. She doesn't
complaint. " I was looking down .
#937
Samriddhi(Tuesday, 16 May 2017 01:30)
Journey to femdom 7
Now I was a bit puzzled and was bit afraid. Afraid of something wrong. Will he start blackmailing after sometime. My life would be hell then. I am a bit pessimist and always doubtful. This was the
reason why I didn't share my feelings with others for long. But, simultaneously I had a new found happiness and was super excited . For now things were happening as I expected. I quickly overcame my
negative thoughts and said to myself" enjoy the moment Samriddhi, after all you waited for this so long".my thoughts were broken as I felt his hand under my panty. He pinched and I screamed. It was
the second time he did it. I turned back to face him. My face was red. It was still hurting. I said " it hurts". He replied" sorry . You were lost so I thought to wake you up". I asked " do u pinch
ur wife too, doesn't she complain". He laughed " she is used to it. I cannot control myself. Sorry again.you have smooth bottom too" . Let me touch I won't pinch now." I said no. He came to me and
started massaging my shoulders . I liked it. It was very sensuous. It lasted short. He was getting horny. Again started kissing on my neck. I sat quietly just wondering what to do. His mouth smelled
of PAN masala. Although he did not take any in front of me. I asked" when did u take that masala". He said" sorry ma'am but I have this habit. I haven't taken for long. Just now when u were turned
back." I said" I don't like it . Never do again, beside it harms. " he said " maam , no harm, u also take some u will enjoy. It is good. " he quickly offered me . I denied. Sensing me angry he
started apologising me. Said he will leave this habit in sometime but he is now addicted. I thought there was no point arguing. I asked " do u drink" he said no. I said " don't lie, I will verify
from ur wife." He said "occasionally ". He was leaning on his chest while we conversed. His hands over my Brest Area under my top. He said" your sense of dressing is good ma'am. I always wanted
marrying a modern girl.but me being illiterate was married to m wife." I said" why don't u ask her to wear such clothes if u like". He said " it won't suit her and we do not live in good society." I
said" so I fit ur criteria". He nodded. He said" and u r educated too." I said " o I see " my mood was lifted. I started liking his words and continued " so u see me as u r modern wife". He said "
girl friend ma'am". I asked " why gf and not wife". He replied" wives are submissive . Gf are dominating. " he was trying to impress me. I said" so to become wife I will have to obey u." He didn't
reply. I said " ok let me see . Treat me as ur wife tonight but tomorrow morning onwards I will be the boss." He replied " ok ma'am". He said" I don't like calling u ma'am now. I said " but u agreed
earlier". He said" ok will call from morning but not now. I don't like dominating girls". I relented with warning that from morning all will be like before. He agreed.
#938
Samriddhi(Tuesday, 16 May 2017 02:12)
Journey to femdom 8
" thankyou" he replied. I was feeling happy inside as he was accepting me as girl completely. It was like passing with full marks in first attempt.i had little makeup and no wig and dresses still I
was accepted.I was emotional at my triumph and wanted to please him. I said" so what I will have to do to please u". He smiled" let me play with u". I said " ok, but don't hurt me much. " he replied
back" ab to habit daal lo. You r too sexy to be left alone". Before he would finish his words he was over me like a hungry animal. He lay on his back on bed and rolled me to top like a doll. These
things were happening for first time in my life. I was both happy and afraid. I never felt so helpless in my life . My life was changed in a day. I had mixed feeling. Now my face was on his and he
was hiding it tight to kiss me. His acts were crude, he was like wild. Forcing my lips over his beetle filled mouth. I was moaning but unable to open my mouth. Few beetle grains and saliva was on my
lips. I had strong dislike for the smell of these masala all my life. Now I was tasting it. I was hitting with my toes on his legs to free myself but to no avail.i pinched him on his side but he did
not. Now he was vigorously kissing me holding my face tight over his with both hand. He relented after sometime. Asked" did you enjoy. " I kept mum and head down but did not want to realise my
helplessness and dislike. I got up " wait I will be back". Went to bathroom and flushed my mouth. And washed face. Lipstick was all smashed on my face. I cleaned and wiped with towel. Had some water
and was back on bed. I offered him water too . He gulped two glasses along with his beetle saliva which was very annoying to me. He ordered" maam aa Joao . Let's sleep." I was avoiding him keeping
myself busy with phone. I was relaxed with his offer for sleep as I did not want anymore encounter of now.
#939
Samriddhi(Tuesday, 16 May 2017 05:00)
I got onto bed from other side and lay on edge gazing at ceiling . The fast turn of events was now bothering me. I again was wondering of the outcome and possible future danger. I was not able to
judge whether I did right or wrong. It was desire vs dread. Was my life going to be happy or hell. The outcome was certain. I had never took any such step in my life which would put me in awkward
situation. This was first time I was getting carried away. I tried soothing myself " nothing worst will happen. Samriddhi you can manage for sure. Do not spoil your happiness. He is good , he won't
harm you." I closed my eyes and switched of my mind. The joy of dream come true was with me. As I rested motionless I could hear him coming out of bathroom. He filled water in glass and sat on sofa.
I kept my eyes closed and pretended sleeping. Now I sensed him getting on bed. He searched for switches I could guess and switched off lights. I felt relaxed, thought oh god thank he is sleeping. I
wasn't feeling sleepy as thoughts were racing in my mind. I always liked talking to myself before sleep. In dark the room was quiet and we were on the two ends. Me virtually on edge as I feared him
coming close if I went centre. I could hear Betel chewing in his mouth and the odd smell. The chewing was annoying to me but I controlled myself. I liked sleeping in peace. I tried ignoring and
sleep. I was immersed in thoughts suddenly I felt his face near me. He pulled me towards centre thinking I was in sleep. I opened my eyes and he said" maam ji sleep in centre you will fall. " he was
smiling. I nodded but pretended sleepy. I saw h was bare chested and only in his lower vest. In the
Little light coming from window I could see a black demon looking at me. I didn't say anything. He slowly brought his hand near my waist and loosened my salwaar. I kept quiet. He said" you may be
uncomfortable sleeping in them ma'am." I said " no I am fine." By this time he had pulled them to my knees. I had no option other than to remove them gracefully or he would force it out. I relented
and pulled it out. Asked him" now u r happy". Sheepishly he said
#940
Samriddhi(Tuesday, 16 May 2017 07:08)
Journey to femdom 10
He" you will feel relaxed now". u should remove ur top too. I said no, I am comfortable. He said "ok ma'am, I think u r feeling shy. U should not . " it was role reversal. I had those words for him
earlier , in few hours he paid me back. I was looking away amazed at his boldness. I turned my back to him. He came closer put his arm over me. I said" now what." He said "nothing ma'am , I have this
habit .it was annoying for me.i kept quiet thinking he would sleep soon. That was not to happen. He overlapped me under him. His left arm was encircling me and his left leg curled over me. His
partial weight was over me . His bare leg over mine was strange sensation. I had never slept like this. But had never been in this situation earlier either. Sense of helplessness was continuously
growing. Things which I couldn't tolerate a minute were being ignored by me. It was strange , I was out of myself. I had never been so tolerant. His armpit rubbed over my arm and the sweat was all
over. I was like ewe. What's happening with me". Anyhow I controlled my urge to go and wash it. He was unmindful of it. I thought he is miles away from being civil and I will have to tame this bull.
It will be a difficult task. I prayed that he sleep soon. It was already over midnight and I had to attend office next morning. I said" should we sleep now, I have work tomorrow ". He said " maam in
driving job I am used to less sleep. I won't feel sleepy .u sleep". I thought to myself , "with you over me how I will feel sleepy". So I said" no problem I will company for sometime more" he
replied" u r sweet ma'am." I didn't want to hurt him. He said" u r like my wife , she also says so." I said" ok so now I obey u then I am ur wife and when disobey I am gf." He laughs " no ma'am , u r
my sweet ma'am. " I was wondering what he meant. Now I was facing up and his hand still over me. He slowly slid his hand inside my top and reached my bra. He said" it is tight, should I help u". I
knew what I meant. I didn't reply. He pulled my top without my resisting . I was now cuddling and looking at his face. He was smiling. I never thought he would take so much interest in me. He
murmured in my ear" you are too sexy. Should I complete u." I didn't understand. I asked" what." He said" give u pleasure". I said "how". He said " let me do u will know for ur self." I didn't reply.
He took it for my affirmation.
#941
Samriddhi(Tuesday, 16 May 2017 14:07)
Journey to femdom 11
Before I could think he rolled me on top and and to other side of the bed. His face was over mine and he planted deep kiss. My legs were held between his and I was helpless. I was gagged. Tried to
free but couldn't speak. His one hand was under my neck holding my face and other down my waist. His betel smelling mouth over mine. I could scream ummmmmm and he was done with pulling down my
panty.he pulled it further with his foot. He removed his mouth. I took long breath. I said" what u were doing." He said" didn't liked ma'am". I said nothing. I was thinking not to expose my
helplessness to him. I pretended as if I liked it else I could have stopped him. But reality was different. I had no control. To hide it I said " pull off my bra". He rolled me back and unhooked it.
I did the rest. I asked him" now what. Can we sleep." He said " maam I want to please u. Give u pleasure. ". I said but how. He said I will enter ur back. I was shocked. Quickly replied" no no I
don't want. " he said" u r shying ma'am. I will not tell anybody. It is ur first time so u r getting afraid. U will like it very much." I asked" how u know". He replied" I have done it many times to
others. They liked it". Now I was really worried. I never thought of it. The idea of being p net rated was annoying". I tried dodging him" we will try tomorrow. We do not even have condom." He "
please ma'am now don't turn me down. I too have got chance after long. U will like it. I have condom too." He flashed a small sachet smilingly. I tried explaining him that I was straight and was not
gay. He didn't listen. This was first time I thought why illiterates should be avoided." I thought he doesn't know the difference there is no point arguing. I had also not to expose my weakness else
he would force me. I thought it was wise to relent than repent. I just wanted things to close. I was now fearful of the upcoming event. He asked" r u ready ma'am". I said" ok but only little and we
will sleep. Have office tomorrow ." He smiled. Planted a kiss filled with saliva on my cheek. I wiped it off with hand. The first thing I wished to do in morning is wash myself thoroughly. His sweat
his armpit all was recurring to my mind. I was lying flat with back towards him. I could sense him reaching my legs in squatting position. He pulled his underwear. Sound of sachet tearing entered my
ear. And I was anticipating of upcoming danger. I closed my eyes lay motionless. He put a pillow under my belly. I was in awkward position. Still I managed composure and wished this ordeal to end
soon. He patted on my buttocks and something sticky fell on the whole area. It was my moisturiser .i could smell it. The same moisturiser I used last night before sleep. I kept my eyes closed. He
said" ready ma'am". I nodded. As soon his member touched me I was shivering . He soothed" Kutch Mahi hoga. U will like it". My helplessness was exposed.
#942
Samriddhi(Tuesday, 16 May 2017 15:46)
Journey contained.....
Mixed thoughts were racing my head. I wasn't prepared for all these. I wished the ordeal lasted short and we go to sleep. I was over 1 pm . I lay there motionless like hunt waiting for the hunter.
Hours before I was thinking of giving him some lessons . Now he was adamant to give me some lesson. What else I could do other than to accept it. He was off me and filling his mouth with masala. When
he finished he asked something . I couldn't understand but thought he is asking for act. I nodded. He was back to his position. Pulled m buttock towards him. And got started. I closed my fist in
anticipation of the pain. Held my breath. He was getting inside . It started paining. I started moaning. Issss converted to aaaah. He was quick like a professional. Ashe started stroking my moan got
louder and faster became his strokes. I couldn't control my scream. I begged" pease leave me". But was unheard. He abused and was even more larger and deeper. It was uncontrollable pain. Tears
started rolling down. I was sobbing now. It lasted few more minutes and he came out. I was relieved. I lay motionless.
#943
Samriddhi(Wednesday, 17 May 2017 17:43)
Journey ......
I lay motionless.the pain was more mental than physical. Eyes were still wet. Fear of unknown was still there. Thoughts were broken by unusual pain and sensation in bottom.i felt the urge to wipe it
to soothe myself and cleanse the area. I reached for towel , stood on my knees and started rubbing it. It was. Feeling better. I wiped the moisturiser from my thighs too. My metallic bangles were
jingling with every movement .it was the last sign of feminism left on me. With my other hand I checked for my bindi, to my surprise it was in its place.my feminine feeling resumed. I realised my
nakedness and urge to cover my body. He left for washroom soon after the act . I put on my salwaar. Looked for my top. It was under his pillow. Quickly I slid it on me. He was walking towards bed. I
collected my bra and panty and went to bathroom. Hung them there .i looked in mirror , my pride, my bindi was there centre stage. Small happiness ran through me. I removed it and pasted on the mirror
and washed my face. I wiped my arms and thighs. I returned to bed in sometime. He lay flat chewing his betel lost in some thought. Unmindful I got on the bed. He turned towards me from his position.
Our eyes met.I blushed. He was continuously gazing at me. I was getting uncomfortable. Through corner of my eyes I could read the satisfaction on his face. I was ashamed to make eye contact again. He
sensed my situation. Said" these things are normal sir. U r new and a gentleman. Don't worry. I will not betray you. You are safe with me. I am not that type of person. I will love u."he came closer.
I didn't answer but was feeling more ashamed. The roles were reversed. He was dominating and I was submissive now. Like a caring husband he was lecturing me. He took my hand in his " u r very nice .
Beautiful too." He was looking at my painted nails. He " I will keep u happy. U don't worry. " he now put my face in his arms close to his bare chest. I let him. Emotion and shame was running through
me. Dreaming a fairy tale is another thing but living is different. I realised. I wondered how I will face him in daylight. Clueless and ashamed I lay in his arms. Soon we fell asleep.
#944
Samriddhi(Wednesday, 17 May 2017 18:17)
Journey........
I woke up in morning happily unmindful of nights event. I looked at the clock , it was 7 am. Things of last night rushed through my head. I motioned my eyes for him. He was sleeping naked on other
side. Reality struck me and the consequences I was worried. I had to attend office at nine. So I rushed to bathroom leaving worries for future. I took long to bath. Rinsing myself of the sins of past
night. I was feeling relieved. He was still sleeping. Strangely, urge to dress started in me. I controlled but the feminine feeling was still with me. I repeatedly looked at him . The sense of hate
had disappeared. I only wished if I tamed him. He be the same obedient fellow, he was yesterday . Simultaneously a sene of shame was towards him. The act of night kept recurring. How I was going to
face him in real world. It was also true that he had filled the void in my life. Happiness resumed . I wished to forgive him for yesterday night. I felt I started liking him more than before. It was
8 now. I needed to wake him up but was shying. I dressed myself for office and could not delay waking him up further. I said"suniye jag Jaiye." The vocabulary was changed. Respect added. It reminded
me of a newly wed waking his husband. No effect. I had to repeat . I was ashamed of calling. I shook him and repeated "jag Jaiye. Office hai."he opened his eyes gathered his underwear. I turned my
face away. Full gimpse of the black man was captured in my eyes.
#945
Samriddhi(Thursday, 18 May 2017 04:31)
I turned towards him when he put on his shorts. He looked happy. I said" I have to reach office by 9". He said " no problem. I will drop u before that. Tum tayaar ho Joao". I was little shocked. He
had downgraded me from aap to tum. No sir, not ev n ma'am . Anyway I focussed on work. I had to order breakfast. He demanded only tea. I had forgot to remove my nail polish. I rushed to my bag and
started removing it. We set off to office. He was to return to the room after dropping me. We drove silently. After reaching I instructed him to pick me up in afternoon as the work was not much but
important. He replied" bye sweetheart." I looked around no one was close. I blushed . He said" there is no one here. You can even kiss me." I quietly walked away.
I could hardly concentrate on works. The events were racing in my mind. Anyhow I finished the papers and filed them. I was relaxed as well as anxious as I was to return to hotel . He picked me up and
we returned. We had to drive back to Delhi same night. We had plenty of time left to spend. I was sleepy so thought to relax. I changed myself in white top and green pyjama. I had panty inside. I got
over bed beside him. I thought to be bossy to him. I warned him that he don't dare try attempting on me now. He came closer said" no ma'am I won't. " devil smile was on his face. I said" I am sleepy
let me sleep in peace. He said "ok, let's sleep. I won't do anything except this". He put his arm and leg around me . I said" remove it. I can't sleep". He said " without it I can't sleep." I thought
there was no point arguing so I relented smilingly. I was getting accommodative and started liking it.atleast the loneliness was gone, I had someone who knew real me and give company. I was happy. I
never thought we would reach so close in a day.since morning our greetings were changed. He referred me tum and i aap to him. I had accepted this change. With me in his arms he was busy chewing
masala. With my ears so closed It was annoying. I said" why don't u leave it. U smell so odd. Ur teeth get so dirty. " he " I will try". We slept in same position.
#946
Samriddhi(Thursday, 18 May 2017 04:55)
It was time for us to pack . We had snacks together . On sofa I cuddled to him. I was liking his company. I had to change to male dress for drive which I did not want. I asked him" can I disguise as
female in drive". He said" yes , of course darling. I will manage everything. " it was too much . I was now his darling. I was afraid to travel dressed. I again asked his suggestion. He said" if
someone asks I will tell u as my wife and u have to say nothing.i will also enjoy the drive peeping at you.we will dine late night on highway."To travel dressed was my cherished dream. I started
preparation. I wanted to look pretty. I applied foundation. Makeup. I chose my fav coffee coloured dress . So my makeup should match it. I was getting ready as if going for some party. Matching
lipstick, bangles and bindi. I put on clip on earrings.i had sopped them from different places with much effort. Occasion was worth it. After all I was returning from a single day honeymoon.i put on
my wig. Let the hair flow on my shoulders. Organised stuff in my beautiful handbag. Soon we left.
#947
Samriddhi(Thursday, 18 May 2017)
Journey.......
My heart was racing as soon as I stepped out. The first hurdle was checkout at hotel.So I got out first and asked him to do the needful. I stood on roadside waiting for him to bring the car. It was a
busy street and people were unmindful. I felt relaxed . I was passing as a girl here too. I was elegantly dressed. I had put on goggles to avoid eye contact with people. I care fully examined every
face which turned towards me. Most of them focussed their eyes on my dress. Youngsters fixed their eyes on my exposed legs. I had ensured they were extra smooth . My handbag also drew some female
attention. I was constantly adjusting my hair in the mild breeze . Finally he arrived and I got inside the car. I chose the back seat to avoid public attention in city. I promised him to reach in
front once we reached highway.i sat just behind him with my legs crossed . He was quick to adjust his rear mirror towards me. I liked his attention. But I had to get back my old position of mistress
and servant. This was going to be real test for me. So I tried being rude and authorative with him in our conversation. I said" whatever has happened between us has happened. You should not forget my
real position and your position.you had crossed your limit but this was possible because I let u. I don't like disobedience." He was all ears to me and looked worried and apologetic. I felt pity but
I didn't relent.I had worked in senior position and knew the tricks of controlling juniors. I showed him my bossy way. Seeing things working I decided to seal the issue forever. In my female self I
was more ruthless and effective. I warned him " if u displease me in future, I will throw u out of my life and get someone else in u r place. Beside me you will lose the monetary benefit I have
assured u. I can turn ur fortunes if I wish. So just follow my instructions." He said" sorry ma'am, I will do as u say. I was carried away. Forgive me. We are poor people. " I was successful in my
mission. It took me only few minutes. I thought experience always wins. He won last night coz he was experienced. I won now coz I had this experience.
#948
Samriddhi(Thursday, 18 May 2017 14:02)
Thanks Amutha. Will try to live to ur expectations.
#949
Samriddhi(Thursday, 18 May 2017 14:46)
Journey.......
One thing was certain that for sometime I will have to keep distance from him. I wanted to train him the way I want him to be. I had other thoughts for him. It would be win win situation for all of
us (includes his wife and daughter.) it was true that I had started liking him. He was the man in my life . I wished he be my man for whole my life. But society has rules and every relation has
restrictions. If left free he would harm our relationship . I didn't want to lose him. I wanted to control him the way a woman wishes to control her man. I fell asleep with my thoughts. When my eyes
opened we were approaching Delhi. I asked him to stop for tea. He obeyed " yes ma'am". I got down at the tea stall. I was little cold outside. I was rubbing my arms for warmth. Cold air was waving to
my thighs from underneath my dress. Still sense of happiness was there on my face. My poor man seemed eager to please me . He offered a piece of cloth to wrap on my body. I accepted it. Though it was
dirty but I too wanted to please him. After sometime we left. I reached my apartment finally. It was my first entry in my home as girl. I wished it was my saturable. After all I had returned from my
honeymoon. The groom soon arrived with my bags. He said " ok ma'am , I am leaving. " a s usual I opened my bag to give him tip. I handed him a generous amount. I motioned him to close the main door
and soon after gave him a goodbye kiss. He was blushing now. I had left lipstick mark on his cheek which I asked him to get removed before he leave. He was rubbing it with his hand . I reminded him
to send his wife in afternoon. I was on leave from office for the day. Still rubbing his cheeks he departed. I lay on my bed recollecting events . I had mischief in my eyes and future plans. Once
again I was on cloud nine.
#950
samriddhi(Saturday, 20 May 2017 23:04)
ok I give up. write , not to write and I have finally decided to write for sake of love u all have given me. I mean all of you. let me try bringing harmony to this beautiful place before I
leave.
journey .................restarted
my afternoon nap was broken by the sound of door bell. my heart started racing. I was dressed. moreover my nails were poshished. I ran out to peep at the intruder. usually people do not visit me at
home or I should say I don't want them to know about my secret. it was a delivery boy with my online purchases. I was undecided whether to show him as a male or female. I decided to present myself as
girl. I quickly put on my wig and messed the hair to give a sleepy feel.i carried an id of male self so that I don't have to answer him. with my beating heart I opened the door . he confirmed the
address.i nodded and presented the id before he asked. Handing over the parcel he asked me to sign. I took the pen from him and noticed he was looking at my dark polished nails.I was wondering
whether to sign as my male self or the new me. with some hesitation I simply put samriddhi on it. he saw and was satisfied I thought. he left after giving me a good look from top to bottom. I was
relieved that I didn't had to speak. I was eager to open the parcel to cherish my new assets. I had shopped for a ladies watch, a complete makeup kit and a pair of salwaar kameez.i quickly unboxed
the watch first. Admiring it I slid it in my hand and clinched the metallic strap.I was proud now to possess it.i kept flaunting it in mirror for long. It was platinum polished grey with small heart
shaped dial.Now was the turn of makeup kit but my phone rang in between. It was the driver so I quickly picked it up. He said his wife will be at my home in 10 min. They lived in the nearby locatity.
He said "Sir I have a request. Please donot let her know about u and me." I also had a question in return" can I let her know about my secret of dressing." He said" that's up to you as I have not
told her anything about u. I was always sceptic about my wife working out but I can confide in you sir. She is good at cooking and will take good care of your house." I thought It is not wise to
present me like this in first meet. so I started getting back to my male self. after I finished I locked my dressing room and came to the living area . she arrived. I opened the door. I saw a
beautiful lady hesitatingly standing outside. She was draped in saree with hairs elegantly plaited.Thin layer of lipstick and long red vermillion mark in her mid parted forehead. At least dozen Glass
bangles were in both her hands.
#951
samriddhi(Sunday, 21 May 2017 00:46)
journey .................
Red spade shaped bindi between her eyebrows and medium sized rings in her ears. She greeted" Namaste sahib" I too greeted. she confirmed my name and I asked her to get in. I asked her name and she
replied " sunita". I seated myself on a dining chair and asked her to take seat too. she hesitatingly sat in chair on far side of the table. we sat there silent for few seconds. She waited for me to
start the talk. I pointed her towards fridge and asked If she needed water then she can fetch it.she declined. she looked around and said" your house is clean . does some maid work here." I smiled
said" not anymore ,I am taking care of it from past few months." she praised me. I accepted saying" I don't like keeping house untidy". She initiated now about herself and other details which she
supposed I should know about her skills of cooking, cleaning etc. I was all ears with occasional "nice nice". within few minutes I got to know her brief history which I will let u know if need be.
But one thing which made me happy was when she said she was a trained beautician which Her husband did not allow him to carry after marriage.I started dreaming of her helping me with my makeup. After
all a trained beautician at my home was a luxury for me. I appointed her for house keeping and some kitchen help on week days. she would have my keys and she would cook for me on weekends and
holidays when I be at home full time. She appeared very happy . she was full of life and was carrying herself very elegantly. I could notice the neat plaits of her saree affixed by safety pin to her
blouse on her shoulder. She offered me for tea and I nodded. She started moving towards the kitchen and I accompanied her to introduce her . I came back and rested myself on sofa and switched on tv
set but I was in some other thought. I couldn't hide the joy of being helped by her in my dressing and makeup. My imagination was at its peak now. I will have whole day in weekends to enjoy my
feminity with her by my side. 'Sunita' was her name if I forgot to mention and she was 23 and mother of a four year old daughter.She has very pleasing nature .I wished we became friends and share our
feelings. But I was cautious this time to be slow in building relation . I didn't want to lose her and neither wanted to offend my readers with choice of my words. Soon I was interrupted by her
motion. She placed my cup in front of me and started moving away with hers. I offered her to sit on the next sofa which she seemed reluctant. I sensed her hesitance to sit so I made her comfortable
that I wont mind her sitting here. she can feel at home I assured. Most of the days she would be alone here as she would visit my house in afternoon in my absence. I was to handover my spare keys to
her. after having tea she asked for permission to leave and come from next day which was saturday. It was nice that I will be at home to help her on her first day at work.
#952
samriddhi(Sunday, 21 May 2017 01:45)
journey.....
I was eagerly waiting for her to come the next day. I spend whole evening arranging my bedroom. I did not want her to know of my secret until she confides in me. I neatly folded and placed my dresses
in my cupboard. My cupboard was full of my female clothes which I collected over years and was very proud of. though not open to outside world I had spent large time wearing them and admiring myself.
The loneliness of my real self was weighing on me. so I wanted a companion and friends and admirers. I wanted to experience all the feelings a girl would and if possible live my life as one.But being
a realistic person I knew it was very hard for all my dreams to come true. If not physically I was complete girl mentally. I wished to live the various roles a girl live. A girl friend, a wife, a
sister, sister in law etc. To share the happiness and pain a woman goes through.Now there seemed some hope. So I was happy. AFter I finished arranging bedroom I got myself dressed in floral top and
paijama. I headed to cook in kitchen.
Next day sunita arrived before noon. I was waiting for her in my male self. After greeting she started her work. She was looking very tidy and beautiful in her green saree. she had just few bangles
which were matching her saree and blouse. Her trademark vermillion was like yesterdays. A big pendant was hanging from her neck above her saree. As she now had tucked her saree plait . My eyes were
following her. I was examining every minute detail of her appearance. She was acting like a professional house maid but had simplicity in her appearance. With she in command of house work I had no
work so I glued myself to tv. I immersed myself in an old classic female oriented movie. While she dusted she also gazed at tv in between and seemed to like it. In between she would read reactions on
my face while watching movie.I too kept noticing her in between. The movie narrated the fortunes of rich girl married in a poor family after her father's wealth was lost. She was putting a brave face
fighting odds bearing humiliation and trying to adjust to her fate. I was feeling her pain and my facial expressions resonated with the events. Sunita was noticing all this. The movie ended and
sunita was over with cooking too. She served me and asked my permission to leave. I wished to talk to her but restrained not to initiate now. I nodded and she left.
#953
samriddhi(Sunday, 21 May 2017 03:17)
journey...............
It was sunday. I was all planned to reveal myself to her. I was eagerly waiting for her. I wished to spend whole afternoon talking to her. I wanted to make it a super sunday. I did not want to
disappoint myself today. I had an idea. I thought to do the house chores myself in morning and cook for both of us too before she arrived.She would be impressed and it will be easy for me to
initiate. Beside I will have plenty of time confiding her and convincing her of my inner self. I happied go to the work. Cleaning dusting was easy as she had done it the day before. I took to cooking
. I wanted to impress her with my skill. I was in middle of cooking when door bell rang . to my surprise she was an hour ahead of her schedule. To her surprise she found me cooking. she asked "
didn't u like my yesterday cooking." I laughed " Its not that. I was getting bored , had no work so thought to help you. You too will get to taste my food." She seemed very happy and was all in
praise of me. She started helping me and we finished it soon. I went to bath leaving her in sofa before tv. when I returned she was occupied watching repeat telecast of a daily show. now I was on
sofa too. she tried getting up but I asked her to keep seated. She was in sawaar kameez and quickly adjusted her dupatta. Being sundayI guessed she was casually dressed and had little extra makeup.
eyeliner and lipstick. Her earrings were dangling and looked more pretty. I could notice her nails painted fresh and matched her blood red lipstick. My heart was racing as usual before an important
event. I was really a make or break situation. I prayed she doesn't get upset.
I complimented her for looking pretty. She blushed. Iwasnt finding way to start conversation . She initiated" you cook nicely. Where did u learn". I blushed and said" myself. I love cooking and doing
house chores. I don't find much time from office fot it.Now u are there so u will help me learn more". She said "why not". She asked" My husband said u r not married. why don't u marry sir". I got
the start. I said to, myself u have to clinch this opportunity to put ur point to her. Intentionally I ignored with smile and she repeated. I said" Its a long story. I am little different." I knew
she would dig and try to know. She loved gossiping. As expected she enquired" any problem sir". I brought emotion on my face which was natural and now inner me took over. I said" promise me u will
not discuss it with anyone else." She instantly sweared. without further manipulation I came on the subject. I said" I am a female trapped in a male body". Her reaction was of shock. She seemed
sympathetic to me. My emotions were overwhelmed and tears were about to roll down. It was for the first time I was confessing in front of a female . I continued" I am like you. trust me I am not
lying. " My facial expressions were real and she grew more sympethatic she was now sitting close to me. tears started rolling down my face. she started consoling me. Simultaneously she wanted to know
more. I told her the whole story and my feelings. she heard them with attention. I showed her my wardrobe and my other collections. I was still upset. She too was sympathetic and consoling me. I
said" I am leading this lonely life from years. I have none to share my feelings." we were back on sofa. She helped me calm and served water. She too was overwhelmed and took my hand in hers. she
said " I will support u and will not tell anybody."Being a joyful person she tried making light of the situation.She quipped " whats ur name didi". with my head down I said" samriddhi". She said "
nice name didi". I didn't raise my face. She tried diverting attention and served food . we both dined silently. when we were finished she smiled to me. I too responded as my emotions were settled.
she said" you are beautiful and have figure of a young girl". I said " I am still young just 4-5 years older to u ." I was blushing. we had already settled on sofa and the gossip was on right path. I
am slim and look young. Infact she was few kilos heavier than me I guessed and I looked younger to her. she smiled" will u not show ur beauty to me. " I blushed . we were now confiding each other. I
took her permission to go get dressed. I opened the parcel and dressed in the red sawaar kameez.
#954
samriddhi(Sunday, 21 May 2017 23:38)
journey ...........
I was very happy and a bit nervous. I was not used to dressing in others presence. The dress was high neck Chinese collar. I was looking beautiful. kameez had net sleeves. I could see through my thin
arms. I was looking even younger in this dress. With shyness filled face I presented myself to her on sofa. She was smiling and looked impressed. She said" wow didi u r so beautiful."I blushed and
seated myself. She was constantly looking towards me in amaze. I was only in dress. no makeup and accessories. I wished her to do the makeup. She soon got the hint. Said" let me do ur makeup."We went
to the bedroom. I sat in front of dressing table. I presented the new makeup kit to her. She was very happy to see it. Said" I love to do makeup. It is my passion." she started. I thought it would be
few minutes but she was taking longer but her worked seemed very professional. Taking care of minute error and details. Finally I was made up. Thick coat of foundation I could feel on my face but the
mirror reflected a different me. I was beyond recognition. Prominent eyebrows thick eye lashes. Blushing red cheeks and matching lipstick. My lips were pouty and glossy. I was in my hottest avatar
ever. She carefully fixed my wig on me. It was silky straight. she adjusted the hair on both sides of my shoulders parting midway. She doesn't liked it. so she pulled them back and let them hang on
my back. She was bit satisfied now. I was constantly looking at the mirror admiring myself. She painted my nails with same red colour.I handed her metallic studded bracelet which she slid in my hand.
I wore my newly bought watch. It was my first ladies watch. She took a final look at me and was satisfied. I was too happy. I got up and hugged her. I was emotional. I wanted to thank her . we came
in the living room and seated ourselves side by side. She lifted my chin on her palm.
#955
samriddhi(Monday, 22 May 2017 02:05)
journey ................. to womanhood
I was enjoying her compliments.we were gossiping on makeup, dresses and relations. She narrated her detailed story. I was enjoying listening to her. She had a extended family . She was brought up in
a city and how she was married to the driver. She had four sisters and she was eldest. Her father couldn't have arranged for a more suitable boy. She was initially unhappy but now was ok with her
life. She had to adjust for few years in a village with her in laws and she was back to city sometime back. She was happy to arrived back.She felt comfortable in city and enjoyed basic freedom. She
wished to start her beautician profession some day and become self dependent and bring up her daughter in good way. It was now my turn to pay back. I assured her all help from my side. I said " you
have helped me and I am indebted to you. I will ensure that u too get back ur happiness . I will someday help u opening ur own parlour." she looked pleased. She grew emotional too" didi I will always
be there for u. I will work hard and pay back ur investment. I just want to give my daughter a good upbringing." Sensing overdose of emotions she lighted the atmosphere" I will make u more look
beautiful in my parlour and will give u special treatment at ur wedding." she smiled. I blushed. She said" u are already beautiful and lots of boys will seek ur friendship if u want." I didn't reply.
I recalled she was looking special today. So I asked" u too are beautifully dressed today. any resson. " she said " my husband is taking me and my daughter for movie in evening." I wished I too
joined them but I didn't say anything. She asked " will u too join
...." then paused. I understood. I came closer to her. took her hand in mine and said" I want to tell u something. ur husband has seen me in dress. " I narrated the return journey incident and hid
the earlier part from her. I feared she would be angry that none of us told her before. She laughed . I was surprised. SHe said" he had hinted me about u but not in detail and said he saw u dressed
once." SHe said" u are nice person. Now that I know u in detail I wont mind. u can trust me and him. he is good at heart." I was relieved . She said " so will u join us didi , I will manage him u
don't worry." I nodded. We planned to call him and her daughter to my house. She would first councel her husband in my absence and then bring me in front of him to face him. I was overjoyed. Now I
was part of the family. She asked him to reach here. She now smiling towards me said" since I call u didi, so being my sister he will be ur brother - in- law. I smiled back. I was even eager to meet
her daughter. Then she said" Beware of him, U look sexy today. Not only him but other men will too ogle at u. " I was blushing. SHe hid me in bedroom and opened the door when they arrived. I could
hear part conversation between them. Things were as planned. Afterall it had to be . SHe knocked at the door and asked me to come out. I was again nervous although I shouldn't have been for him. BUt
a unknown fear was there inside me. I was all dolled up sexy. He constantly stared at me. I thought he is finding me more beautiful than last time. sunita interrupted" don't look at her like this she
is my sister now." They two laughed and I blushed. She seated me at some distance and herself in between. now I was facing her daughter who was very cute. she was shying away from me. I called her
but she didn't. Her name was Shreya. SHe was beautifully dressed in a new frock. Sunita interrupted " she is your new mausi. say hello to her." to this she responded and greeted. I handed over a big
chocolate to her which I luckily had in my fridge. Driver was contantly gazing at me and watching my activity. She said" u can call him jijaji."we both smiled. Leaving us alone she went to make tea
for us. now I was getting more uncomfortable. we met our eyes and soon drifted away. I felt uncomfortable. I got up pretending to go to kitchen and help her. I offered her to help which she denied.
She knew the reality and started assuring me" girls feel shy in new relation and slowly u too will adjust. " I just kept my head down. She was smiling and tucked away hair strands on my face behind
my ears. I was not having earrings she noticed .
#956
samriddhi(Monday, 22 May 2017 02:37)
Journey ................ womanhood
It was time for us to leave for film. By now her daughter was comfortable with me. I locked the main door and lifted her daughter . I did not want people around to notice me. That was my fear but I
knew nobody would recognise me. We departed safely. we parked at the mall and decided to window shop till show time. I took them to a kids shop as I had decided to shop for Shreya. I shopped for her
and they helped me finalise a beautiful dress for her. sunita was very happy. I also bought her accessories. She too was loving her gifts. At a ladies shop sunita intervened " Didi let me buy
something for u too" . I said no But she went ahead and bought me a salwaar kameez and made her husband pay for that. He was glad to pay to which she quipped" u are happy to pay for my sister but u
don't be so eagar to pay for my bill." she laughed. we blushed.
I could see salesmen and customers ogling at me. I was so seductively dressed and made up that they were turning eyeballs. I was enjoying and feeling shy same time.Shreya was by now used to calling
me mausi. I too was enjoying her company. we spent good time watching movie and returned back.They dropped me home satisfied. This was the best weekend of my life. I was looking forward for next
weekend.
(I have tried my best not to offend anybody but I had to control my natural and realistic style at some places. I think to bring an end to this story gracefully here.)
#957
Siya(Friday, 02 June 2017 13:00)
SIL BECAME MY HUSBAND-1
(Sali sahiba bni mera pati-1)
My name is Vishu and i am an bigMNC's company manager but my life is not so usual as you can think.
Coz i have to wake up @4am. Then take bath than i go to my office. My wife(Vaishali) is too good without any reason only for me she also wake up with me.
Than i go to office and where i have one secret room where i do prepare myself for my husband and you will be amazed to know who is my husband. My husband is my SIL(shreesha) yeah you heard right i
am a wife of my SIL's or you can say i am her personal property.
I go to my secret room where i first get undress myself and see is there any hair is not on my body otherwise my husband will beat me too badly than i use moisturizer and body lotion to entire body
so that mybody became smoother than my husband can bite my body and she will not get hurt to her lips than i wear bra and penty and use tennis balls to give proper shape to my breast so that my
husband can play with it than i will patticoat and matching blauch and than i drap a beautiful saree and than wig and have to adjust it. But yesterday my husband commanded me that i have to grow my
hairs so I have to do that than after dressing saree its time for makeup I paint my nails with matching colour to saree if not i will get slap from my husband than mangal-sutra which i wear always
with myself beanth my men's shirt. Than i wear jhumkas and payal and different types of bangals than i use lipstick which is also in matching colour to saree than i use maskara and some foundation
and last one bindi and one necklace on which has written "SLUT" and last i have to wear high heels. These all the things i have to do for my husband and have to go my husband's flat @sharp 5am if i
will be late 1min 1slap 2min slap. Than went there and i have a duplicate key of the flat so I enter into the flat and go to bedroom where my husband is use to sleep than i keep my head on his legs
and started to press untill my husband get wake up and everyday he kicks me and say good morning i have to reply very politely good morning than i go to kitchen to prepare coffee and have to give my
husband and if he is in mood he will do sex otherwise i have to prepare everything for his bath and ironing the clothes and make breakfast for him than i make him wear shoes and socks with myself and
if i do everything right he will kick me only once but if not right he will kick me many times also with hunters. than my husband go to office i which i work and he is working in my under. I also go
with him and change dress in my secret room.
What the fuck my life has became. From a macho man to a sissy bride.
Yeah if you want to know how I became like this we have to go in past.
Before 1year....
I used to very macho man, dashing body building and very musculine. Every girl used to got easily attracted towards me. than i merry to a beautiful lady named Vaishali we were living very happy
everyday i tremendous for me and my wife. We go for trips. Vaishali's sister's name is shreesha she also became very close to us and life was going very well and than a beautiful girl got job of my
secretary. I was too happy and after seeing me she was also too happy her name was neha a beautiful figure she had and she started flirting with so i also started flirting and soon we started affair
at home there i enjoy my wife in office i was using my secretary.
#Vishi
Thanx so much friends.
If you enjoyed please like it and comment what you want in next parts
Kajal (Tuesday, 16 August 2016 09:28)
Thanks a lot @Rajibalan for providing new story writing Section.... hope you are doing good Enjoy ur life and Thanks for providing such a beautiful Platform
Love Kajal
Kashmiraa (Tuesday, 16 August 2016 22:25)
Hi... Sisters! New page new beginning... . Thanks Raji . Expecting alot of existing stories . Hopefully kajal ma'am will consider writing again. SRS , PRIYASREE, SHARMILA DEVI,SNEHA and all our very own writers, you spend your valuable time for us hopefully we will be fortunate to read from you again. Best of luck.
ex-q-zit (Wednesday, 17 August 2016 09:15)
Hi all,
I am posting my story 'THE EVIL TWIN' tonight on amazon n post the link in blog. You can download it or if you have amazon prime you can read for free.
I shall be posting stories regularly now on amazon.
Regards,
Ex-q-zit
Arun (Wednesday, 17 August 2016 12:17)
@ex q zit
Very very thanks , was waiting eagerly for it.
Priya (Thursday, 18 August 2016 02:10)
"He's here, Sissy- answer the door," she calls confidently from the dining room where I just poured her a cup of tea.
I steel myself for the humiliating ritual that's been perfected through rote repetition- though the number of times it's performed, like every other degradation I suffer through on a daily basis, does little to lessen the sheer gut punch of the act of pure submission.
I open the front door and step back to allow Sir through, my gaze downcast as not to make the punishable offense of eye contact. In my mind, the ridiculousness of this situation is heightened as he's quite a few years younger than me, not particularly well muscled, and not even
as tall as me in flats, let alone the 5" inch stiletto heels constantly required of me.
But while he's wearing a trendy button up shirt and simple slacks, I'm attired in a ridiculous ensemble that's more of a bride than a man. My entire wardrobe now consisted of sarees and
appropriate accessories of an indian bride, most of which were pink.
My naturally straight dark hair was dyed and exhaustively maintained long till my mid back, curled with pink highlights and held with ribbons into the occasional ponytail, or, more likely (like today), a french bun.
Of course I have to maintain full, overdone makeup at all times, with requirements of married indian wife like sindoor and mangalsutra.
Today's outfit was a particularly heavy embroidery saree with puffy organza short
sleeve blouse and two full petticoats, beneath that are the bow tipped stockings that highlight my smooth legs and dainty ankles, my feet encased and contorted in pink patent high
heels laced shut with sheer ribbons. Both my hands are adorned in 24 bangles, 3 rings on fingers and mehandi.
Despite the physical superiority I would have felt over this man in another life, now our roles were universally clear. Unfortunately, it's not just the outrageous clothing I wore, but the enforced behavior that cemented my role.
Priya (Thursday, 18 August 2016 02:10)
Part 2:
I immediately curtseyed deeply, a ridiculously revised one Mistress taught me that consisted of exaggerated movements and a deep bow that showed off my enhanced cleavage. In addition, I grabbed the front portion of my saree and petticoats in each hand, lifting it so my tiny,
inescapable titanium chastity device was on full display to him, it's integrated PA piercing securely compressing my once proud seven inches to a mere inch and a quarter.
Panties for me was forbidden so that my emasculated state could always be shown easily when required, which was often.
When Sir had expressed concern over another "man" living under her roof, Mistress brutally trained me to increase my submission to him, which included this completely degrading Greeting ritual. In addition, the only key to the device, which she had once proudly worn around her neck,
was replaced with a ceremonial, decorative one.
Priya (Thursday, 18 August 2016 02:12)
Part 3:
The real key, a specialized hand forged affair, was given to me for the first time in over three years - so that I may immediately and tearfully present it to Sir on the same platter I delivered wine and condoms to Mistress with.
He had laughingly taken it with the smuggest expression- the same one I sensed he had now as I mentally counted to three as I struggled to maintain my curtsey and expression.
Despite being a scholar and intellectual, Mistress insisted my IQ was 85- as such I must always maintain a vacant, doe eyed stare and a wide, simpering smile.
After three seconds I straightened, just long enough to sink steadily down to my knees. Slowly clasping each elbow behind my back, then crossing my ankles, ("No rushing, Sissy!") I knelt down, to kiss the top of each of his black wingtips - two seconds of contact exactly with my pursed, moist and colored lips on each shoe.
Still staring at his shoes, I slowly straighten up until I'm back upright on my knees before performing the next act of my choreographed sissified submission.
I slowly and deliberately unclasp my arms and bring them up to my sides like I'm nothing more than a mechanical doll, elbows tucked in against my slender waistline, wrists limp at shoulder height, fingers spread outwards to show off my pretty polish. ("Sissy
Presentation Pose", for Two seconds.)
Then my right hand comes to my mouth so I can "hide" a practiced, nervously high pitched giggle into my straightened fingertips as my gaze shyly darts between his shoes and the zipper of his pants. (Three seconds.)
Then both my arms are back into Sissy Presentation (one second) before finally transitioning into "Sissy Princess", where I bend my wrists up, both palms facing outwards, finger tips ever so slightly curled in- a dainty pose familiar to Disney lovers everywhere.
But the Disney comparison ends there as, arms still prissily posed, I bite the corner of my lower lip and hesitatingly lean forward slightly to gently place my nose against the bulge in his slacks, then more firmly as I slowly nuzzle and giggle, while occasionally inhaling his musky scent deeply and sighing with wonton lust. ("Fifteen full seconds
Sissy, and not a moment less!")
He rests his hands confidently on his hips, (Superman style, in strict opposition to my Sissy Submission) as I feel his member stir and then grow under his pants, and while mentally counting I reflect on how much I HATE this and oh my god how did I let this happen and I'm going to punch him in his smug face and...
Priya (Thursday, 18 August 2016 02:13)
Part 4:
...And then, still nuzzling, I direct my gaze up as I plant a kiss on the thin material covering his hardened manhood- the only time I'm allowed to make eye contact is with a penis or semen in the vicinity of my mouth.
And my wide, faux blue eyes maintain his arrogant, sneering gaze, his firm crotch hot against my lips as I lean back a bit and look up to face him, force a smile, and gigglingly dart the tip of my tongue out to playfully touch his bulge for a moment as I make my eyes sparkle
naughtily and wink like this is our little secret...
...I want the Earth to open up and swallow me whole, to put an end to this miserable spectacle of sissy servitude that I had in a way helped create, that I had at one point SOUGHT OUT, a game I nearly had to force my beautiful, formerly sweet and innocent girlfriend to partake in which has spun completely out of control...
But of course, the Earth doesn't open up. Instead, I feel another powerful stirring, this one within my chastity device, and I'm reminded what put me on the path that lead me here. At the moment, I'm wearing this ridiculous outfit, pathetically forcing a pose that took months of
practice, tongue out, smiling prissily on my knees before the man I would be intimately catering to later in the evening to physically prepare him to make rough love to my former girlfriend, to which I was now an unpaid maid and source of endless amusement for.
...The same man I would be allowed to, a few times a year, beg for him to unlock my cage and let me masturbate in some degrading way of their choosing...
...The man who's watched Mistress serve me his spent cum in all manner of humiliating ways- most recently by "allowing" me to pour his used condoms on to my tear streaked but always smiling upturned face, which I then delicately and diligently collected and sucked and kissed off my pinky tips, endlessly moaning and lisping my thanks for the "wonderful gift" as they laughed at my disgusting display...
And I'm brought back to the present again as a gush of sissy juice squirts out of my cage, trailing slowly down my thigh- my forced smile turning into an O as an unrehearsed moan escapes my lips and a tiny full body spasm partially unbalances me for a moment.
My cheeks flush anew as Sir sees my body betray me in the most intimate way, and I know being a pathetic sissy is exactly what I deserve to be.
My training takes over as I know exactly what to do during all too frequent leakages like this, and the consequences if I don't.
"Oopsies!" I lisp loudly in shocked surprise, touching my index finger to my cheekbone, downcasting my eyes again with a giggle. "Pardon me, Sir, but your-" (I almost choke on the words) "-magnificent cock has caused this sluts pathetic dolly to leak it's worthless, naughty fluid
again. Please allow me a moment to freshen up!" One arm still ridiculously posed in the air, the other hand comes down, scooping up the slimy trail on my thigh with a long painted nail before suckling most of it up into my mouth, rolling on my tongue before swallowing loudly. The last bit gets quickly pat on my pursed lips with a smacking kiss. "Ding! Hehehe! There, all gone where it belongs!"
I then fluidly return to my heavily arched feet, all efficiency now as I take his coat. "Sir, Mistress awaits you in the dining room, Sir," I say, lisping excitedly. ("A good sissy is always flamboyantly happy!")
It's then that I finally get to close the front door, stopping dead for a moment when I catch the laughing gaze of the nosy, gossiping woman across the street who is well aware of the pathetic neighborhood sissy, but probably just got to witness this full, pathetic spectacle for the
first time.
supraja rani (Thursday, 18 August 2016 03:50)
Madam Prius please write some interesting stories. Not waste stories
ex-q-zit (Thursday, 18 August 2016 15:13)
Hi all,
My latest story 'THE EVIL TWIN' can be bought (or downloaded for free if you have amazon prime subscription). It can be accessed any of amazon local country website like amazon.com amazon.co.UK etc.
Link for UK site is
https://www.amazon.co.uk/gp/aw/d/B01KMXBF6C/ref=mp_s_a_1_2?ie=UTF8&qid=1471550950&sr=1-2&pi=SY200_QL40&keywords=by+ex-q-zit&dpPl=1&dpID=41VChGtFa4L&ref=plSrch
Please do put in your reviews in amazon as it will be helpful.
Regards,
Ex-q-zit
Nisha (Friday, 19 August 2016 03:01)
Dream comes true:
Hi, this is me Shafana. I was born in an conservative Muslim family in Tamilnadu. Right from my birth, my parents induced being conservative on me. I had an elder brother, his name is Shafiq. I hate the partiality at my home right from my child hood. This makes me feel irritated every single time, that my brother was treated special and i was denied to have very nominal things and small small happiness which i can enjoy.
I was good at studies right from the beginning, on the other hand my brother was an below average student. He was 3 years ahead to me. When i crossed 10th standard, my parents were forced me to wear burqa, I really didn't liked that costume. Especially during summer, it was hard to manage the burqa, in my house, i was not permitted to wear anything beyond traditional. So, i will be wearing a chudidhar or half sari, and over to that, i need to wear burqa. So it created lot of uneasiness for me while going public.
As my father is into business and his business is doing so good, we were enjoying all luxuries. But, entire household works has to be done by mother and as i crossed my 10th standard, i was also forced to take active part in all the works. I really envy my brother, he just do nothing and laze around home or go out for roaming with his friends.
My dad always used to have frequent travels and I, my mom and my brother will be there in the home most of the time. As like my father, my mom also has traditional mindset, so she always ensure that I m under her control and follows all the values and rituals.
In my home, we have individual bedrooms, and I used to sleep or study or do whatever in my room. Eventually 10th board exams came and I wrote it very well. After that nearly there was 2 months holiday. As my father is in abroad and my brother just joined in college first year, we didn’t had chance to go for any trip.
So, I was forced to stay indoors. My mom taught me, how to cook different cuisines and lot of household activities, which I least interested, as I had no other options, I learned it. My mom has the habit of sleeping in noon.
One fine day, in afternoon, my mom was sleeping and there was no power in home. So, I felt very bored and I was taking a stroll in my home, and just like that I went to my brother’s room. I found pile of clothes been washed, ironed, folded and kept on his wardrobe, I thought about me, where I was forced to wash my clothes and wear it.
A spark clicked on my mind. I took a jean and shirt, rushed into my room. As my mom was sleeping, I didn’t have to fear about being caught by her. So I went to my room, locked it and start undressing, I wore his clothes. After my childhood, that was the very first time I was wearing men’s wear and to my astonishment it gave me ultimate pleasure. And the fit was perfect, as we both were lean and almost had same height.
I removed all my inners, jewels, Mac up and accessories. I tied my hair in a bun behind; I looked somewhat close to a male. After two hours, I changed to my clothes and replace his clothes in his room as it was kept.
Then it became my favorite hobby. I steal two pairs of jeans, a shirt, t shirt, and short one pair of his old underwear set. Every night, I used to wear his clothes and sleep peacefully. I never shared this happy secret of mine to anybody else in this world.
I finished my 12th and I secured 1149. My parents were very much happy and my dad gifted me a I phone along with lot of advices like should not misuse it and should never share no with boys and strangers like that.
My family members were started discussing about my higher studies. All preferred to put me in reputed women’s college in the same town I resided. I thought myself, if I didn’t utilize this chance, I will never get another chance to enjoy in my life. So I decided to join in an reputed engineering college in Chennai. So that I will be independent and can able to enjoy my life as I wish.
Nisha (Friday, 19 August 2016 03:28)
I proposed it to my parents and they were deadly against it, after lot of struggles, crying, not eating food, I was able to win it. I was put up in an engineering college in Chennai, 300 kms away from my home. I was made to join in college hostel.
I had two more room mates, they are deepthi and harini, both of them are very sweet, and to my bad luck they are very much introvert in nature. So I felt bored. They used to study, pray, mingle only with girls, being sweet all the time.
As my college is strict, we didn’t have any ragging nuisance. I happened to meet one of my senior girl named Ramya. She was an athlete and always be fit. She used to sport tomboyish look all the time. I had a great respect to her.
As being in metro city, there is no difference or partiality between boys and girls in our college. Only 3 of us hail from small towns, so we use to be very conservative in nature and rest of our friends use to bully us for this purpose. Even though, I love to be modern and stronger, I didn’t tried in public.
One fine day, I went myself and met ramya in gym, she spoke very nice, we met often and I shared my family background and my wishes to her. She assured that, she help me to get transformed. As per her advice, I make a first move, I nominated myself for the class representative post, and I bagged it for my Excellency in academics. My class mates and friends were astonished and at the same time felt happy for me.
I did my duty to the perfection and it gained me more respect from my friends, seniors and staffs. Within first semester end, I was the known personality in my college. My parents used to call me every day and visit me often.
After the first semester holidays, I went to my native and again boring lifestyle. I came back to college after a month of holiday and the very first day, I joined in gym. That was the first time; I wore tracks and t shirt in public for the very first time in gym. As my parents won’t permit this and all, I hided all this from them and I purchased those sportswear from my savings.
Going to gym was my eye opener. I used to spend around 6 hours per day in gym. This gave me lot of courage and helps me to become confident. I used to carry heavy lifts and I practice the same in my room by carrying my roommates.
Eventually second semester flied and I entered into second year. I can see myself, lot of changes in me. I no longer wore chudis to my classes, I always wore shirt and jeans, sporty canvas, and literally no jewels or accessories. My friends and classmates, used to give a shocked reaction first, later they accepted me as I was.
I also induced the same thoughts on deepthi and harini, slowly they to started transforming as like me. In the second year, second semester, our college management, brought karate classes for all students. I took participated on that and I secured black belt.
In the second year end, one of my friend veena was continuously abused my batch mate. He used to threaten her by telling that, he will send all their happy times picture to her parents. He forced her to share bed with him. She was telling this story to me full of melted eyes. I decided to act on this.
I took the help of ramya. Ramya was also hails from an effluent family. She stays in a individual apartment little close to college. So, the spot was fixed, Ramya’s Apartment. We made veena to spoketo him and ask him to come to that apartment. That stupid, didn’t had any doubts and came there. Me and ramya was hiding in another room, he came and started bouncing on her. In no time, he became nude, and started undressing her upper clothes, we jump on him and took hold of his hands and legs.
It was a absolute shocker for him. He didn’t expected this. We tied his hands and legs on the four poles of the bed. He was immovable. Ramya inserted his boxer on his mouth, so that he won’t scream. Veena was shivering to see the things which are happening.
We three moved out, and ramya said to veena, that she is gonna punish him. Veena became nervous. We calmed her and told what are the troubles she faced because of him, after some time, veena became confident.
Initially veena went and took pictures of him at his nudity. He tried his best to remove the bondage, but he couldn’t. So his nude pictures was our trump card, immediately we transferred the photos from mobile to lap and mailed it to harini and deepthi for our safety. As Ramya, lived alone, she had very limited things on her apartment. We were thinking what the ways to punish him.
Nisha (Friday, 19 August 2016 03:47)
We searched in net, we found ball busting. We tried to implement that first. So I went and sat on his legs and we made veena to crush his penis. Veena was scared to do. We coaxed her to do and she accepted as he deserved it. We all three hide our faces with masks. Ramya started recording the entire event in her phone.
After seeing the video on internet, veena got an idea and started crushing his penis. He was shivering and he was literally in pain and crying. She did it for full five minutes and slowly he started fainting. So, we stopped it.
After that, we went and had lunch, and he was lying in the bed and was very tired due to the extreme pain and hunger. So we made our next move, which was spanking. We just re tied on his back facing upwards and body facing bed. As he was deadly tired, he didn’t showed any resistance. This time ramya took the charge and I recorded the video.
She started spanking his bums with stainless steel ruler and Ramya was spanking him really hard, within a minute, there were several cuts and blood started oozing from his bums. We mailed this video to our friends.
We untied him and he was all the time crying and bowed his head down. Ramya being the natural leader showed his phone to him, we took his father’s mobile no in watsapp and attached all his videos and nude pictures, and threatened him, he felt at her leg and cried for mercy. To our shock, veena went forward and started slapping him hard. We both were amazed with her sudden outburst, he felt at the legs of veena and asked for apology.
Veena asked us to throw him on the roads as it is. But we felt, that was not enough for him. Our thought is that, he doesn’t value a woman and mistreated veena and used her friendship. So, we both proposed veena that we should dress him feminine. So he will not forget on his lifetime. But Again veena came with an idea to our surprise, it is that, let him feminine himself, and let him make video of it. We were very much happy.
So, we gave him food to eat, and warned him about the consequences if he failed to obey us. He was not that macho guy, normaly built person with average height and was wheatish in complexion. He had lot of chest hairs. So, we removed the sim card from his cellphone and asked him to take a self video, of his feminization.
We made him to shave his body hairs first and then his facial hairs. We taught him to wear bra and then he wore it himself and panty, then he applied Mac up on his face with eyeliner, foundation, lipstic, finally he wore a nighty and walked feminine. Everything was recorded by himself. Ramya obtained the phone from him and transferred the videos to our phone and mailed to our friends.
We made him to write a letter that, he was torturing veena for having sex and what all the things he did it to her and made him to sign below on the letter. We also made him to write another letter, if anything to happen to three of us, he was responsible for that.
After that, we let him wash his face and gave his sim card and gave his clothes, he was unable to wear his boxer due to pain. Somewhat he managed and wore it. We warned about the consequences and send him out. We three felt very content and happy that we taught a lesson to him.
ex-q-zit (Friday, 19 August 2016)
@Nisha : Ohhhhhhhhhh god its unbelievable. I have started writing a story about a muslim girl too n I have written exactly till she good to IIT chennai to study have very freedom.
I am shocked at how similar out thoughts were. But as my ways I am sure after this point our stories would be different.
My next story title is tentatively 'YOU WILL BE MY WIFE' or 'THE HIJABI WIFE - TABLES TURNED'.
All the best Nisha. Good going
Regards
Ex-q-zit
Nisha (Friday, 19 August 2016 04:24)
Hi ex-q-zit. I m equally excited to read your comment after my story. How similar our thoughts were !!!
Nisha (Friday, 19 August 2016 04:37)
So I often used to hang out with Ramya, we used to share lot of lighter moments together, I moved to third year and Ramya is on her final year, along with me, veena, harini and deepthi also became close with ramya.
So in my 3rd year, I almost started and behaving likes a boy in all aspects. So whenever, I go to home, it was extremely hard for me to dress and behave as traditional girls. During third year holidays, my mom scolded me daily for not doing house hold chores as I forgetted it. So third year second semester opens and ramya came with the good news that she bought a bullet. Within next three weeks, I became master in driving bullet.
Driving bullet became my favorite pass time, at the mean while I was still holding the class representative post right from the first semester till now and I was the topper in my class too. So my parents are happy on that way.
So I started being strong in every aspect, most of my guys in my class are my friends and they feel very comfortable with me and share their boyish things with me. I too felt being in their company. At the same time, I enjoyed having my good time with veena, ramya , deepthi and harini. I never indulged in the activity of smoking or drinking. According to me, whoever does it is wrong for their health.
Meanwhile my brother, passed his graduation with lot of difficulties and started accompanying my dad in his business. I came to fourth year, ramya moved to higher studies for states. We missed her company terribly. I focused on being strong and practicing my gym, karate and as well as studying well. Final semester came and I got selected in one of the reputed IT Firm.
As usual, my parents were against working and this time I am unable to convince them. They were very adamant and they forced me to get married. My mom started blackmailing me emotionally. So, I gave up. I thought of myself, all my good days are gonna end and my dreams going to get shattered.
One of our relative came with the marriage proposal. My parents showed interest on that particular profile. His name is Asif. Asif was working in a reputed software firm in Chennai. He hails from a very poor background. My dad never considers wealth as an important constraint, as he also hails from poor family and earned his own fortune. Asif has no father, as he died at asif’s younger age. His mom was a school teacher, working in the government school. Asif had two elder sisters and one younger sister. All of them are married and now living their life comfortably.
So my mom shared his photo to me. Very first glance, I liked him, reason is that, he looks beautiful, yes you read it correct, he looked beautiful rather than looking handsome. He had no facial hairs, absolutely no hairs except his head, he looked like me with same height and skin tone. I had the confident that, I can make him to dance on my tunes and live like I wish. So I nodded yes, and the marriage was fixed.
As you can imagine, our marriage was a very grand event. And it is time for first night. Even though I wish to by boyish in nature, that girly feel aroused on me during marriage and after it increased to its peak on my first night.
So I was waiting there in my bedroom wearing expensive silk lehenga and lot of jewels. Even though I felt uncomfortable, I felt happy to wear that on that occasion. After waiting for few more minutes, he came to the room. We didn’t spoke a word before marriage or during marriage also there was no conversation between us.
I didn’t have the courage to look at his face. So I remained calm looking at the bed. I am sure that, it has been more than 15 minutes; there was no movement in the room. So I decided to look up, to my surprise, he was still standing near the door and looking the floor.
I was very much happy inside and zolt of electric current passed on my body due to excitement, at the same time girl inside me felt worried. So I decided to call him near me, I just uttered amir, he looked up and he smiled slightly. I can read the blush on his face. Wow. Wat am I seeing on my husband’s face, a blush!!
As we both were in the same age, I decided to take the liberty and called him near, he came and sat on the other corner of bed, exactly opposite to where I was sitting. More than hour passed away, pin drop silence was maintained on the room.
Nisha (Friday, 19 August 2016 04:43)
I take this time to thanks to Raji for creating the new page for 2016 - 2017. So let's friends make this forum as useful one. Let's try our best to avoid arguments/ fights with any of the members in the comments section. It take lot of space on 1000 comments.
Comments are always welcomed either positive or negative. But kindly take into consideration , that we authors take lot of our time and energy in penning down a story. So dear friends, come with new stories. Try to write on your own. Language is not a barrier. If you write in any regional language also, you can easily convert it with google translator.
ex-q-zit (Friday, 19 August 2016 05:06)
Hi Nisha, I have no words as except fit the events in college everything else in my story too is the same. In fact including the name Asif.
Please continue. If it goes as I am thinking then I shall drop my story as it's no user having 2 similar stories
Regards
Ex-q-zit
As (Friday, 19 August 2016 15:27)
Kajal please open ur blog for everyone
rajesh (Saturday, 20 August 2016 10:51)
Dear srs & writers can u finish story but i need it tamil if u can write in tamil font....(Thursday, 07 July 2016 08:06) #735
rajesh (Saturday, 20 August 2016 10:52)
Dear srs & writers can u finish story but i need it tamil if u can write in tamil font....(Thursday, 07 July 2016 08:06) engcom 15-16 #735
Kumkum (Sunday, 21 August 2016 06:47)
Superb writing Nisha, continue plz. I am waiting with a lot of excitement.
vasantha (Sunday, 21 August 2016 08:45)
nisha continue plz I am waiting with a lot of excitement. very super pa
Pooja (Sunday, 21 August 2016 15:22)
Hey ex-q-zit, why isn't your role reversal story not available here in India? The one set in British Raj? I tried looking for it, but it is only available for UK users
Pooja (Sunday, 21 August 2016 15:23)
Hey Raji, trying desperately to look for stories from 2011 and before too, there were some lovely stories from 2010-2013. Can you look to bring the archive back?
ex-q-zit (Sunday, 21 August 2016 16:53)
Hi Pooja
The family secret story is available in amazon.in at the below link
https://www.amazon.in/dp/B01KCXEHLW
Also my latest story of a Muslim girl is shaping very well. Will try to finish it ASAP n post it online.
ex-q-zit
Srs (Monday, 22 August 2016 01:30)
Iam really happy to continue my story here, I thought it's over தண்டனை ur story is awesome but what to do same problem happening in tamil blogs. Hope any one can solve this problem so I can njoy reading Tamil stories.
Pooja (Tuesday, 23 August 2016 01:42)
Hey ex-q-zit
Thanks I have downloaded that link. Thanks a lot. I want you to a lot of gender role reversal/couple crossdressing stories.
What about a story where they change mid-way and the wife's friends become the husband's sahelis and the husband's friends become wife's pals. And both the set of friends comment about how now they fit the genders they are.
Would be good fun, the same scenario where they go out for parties before, and then later, when the roles are reversed. The push for the change has to come from the wife.
ex-q-zit (Tuesday, 23 August 2016 04:29)
Hi pooja,
Your idea seems interesting. I shall work on it. But my next 2 stories are already locked. So may be I shall try this concept after that.
I have never written a story based completely on school life. That will be the one after I complete my current story.
Guys please can you also pay your reviews in amazon.
Regards,
Ex-q-zit
ex-q-zit (Tuesday, 23 August 2016 04:31)
Please can you put in your review agree you read them in s mm amazon
Raju (Tuesday, 23 August 2016 06:18)
Oraye ex q zit mundu nee story finish chaye ra jaffa
ex-q-zit (Tuesday, 23 August 2016 08:41)
Nee lanti vaalla valley evaru rayadaniki Ishta padaru.
Do you know how much of personal time I need to invest to write each story. I need to do this while doing my day job n family life. Also incurring the wrath of my spouse at times for picking the laptop after coming from work or in weekends.
Also a story is a flow of thought. I am not a machine to just type without thinking. Anyways How does that matter to you.
Regards
ex-q-zit
hema (Tuesday, 23 August 2016 22:54)
Am a boy aged 26 working in a software company. Am very lean, smooth body, no hair at all, looks like a girl if I wear girls dress. I don't know it is luck or bad luck to posses the features of a girl.
One day I was supposed to go to my flat where I stay alone. On that night I was totally drunken. So by mistake I entered D-Block instead of B-Block. Because all the flats and blocks are designed similarly. I just went to the flat and tried to opened it. It was opened. No one locked it. As I was drunken I went straight to the bedroom. There I saw a beautiful in her 20's changing her dress. She was so beautiful. I became harden. I want to sex with her. I called her, hey baby looking sexy. She quickly ran to the front door and locked it. She again ran to the dining table and arranged drinks and came to me hugged me. I was so excited. I kept my hand at the place of her vagina and i found a cock there. I was shock. She was only wearing towel. She is having good boobs but don't know why this cock. I slapped her for trying to do such a sex. She said am sorry. Please at least give a company for drink. I said OK. She wore a T-shirt and a denim short. We sat for drink. We started drinking much and much until I fell unconscious. I woke up by 11 AM. I saw her sitting in front of me wearing my clothes. I asked why are you wearing my clothes. She gave a silly answer because you are wearing my clothes.
I just stood up and ran to the mirror. I was wearing a blue coloured silk saree, 3/4 sleeve blouse, and its back open added only two threads. She added some ear rings, she placed a nice wig which make me look girls with the addition of the makeup and all. She placed a watch on my right hand.
I got lots of angry and went to her to beat. Suddenly she took her mobile and shown me some pics of me which I never expect. I was in shock and she started saying what have happen last night.
After heavy drunk she took me to the bathroom and did a nice bath for me by applying turmeric powder and brought me to the bedroom and put in a bra and panty on me and she inserted her cock in my mouth. I don't know I sucked it. She is having those pics and she even fucked me. She is have those too. She at last spouted her sperm on my face and later took a bath again and she dressed me in this saree and left me for sleep.
I begged her to delete those pics. She said some conditions. She said me to go out in this saree and all to buy some vegetables & fruits, and some staff from the supermarket. I was tensed. She gave her scooty keys and pushed me out from the flat with a handbag.
Now am starting for shopping. Actually am feeling very happy to show my inside girl to this outer world. But if I feel happy infront of her she will punish me more. So I just behaved like that.
It's 1PM, lets go out and have some in this city and kill the heart of some guys............
vasantha (Wednesday, 24 August 2016 09:59)
ex-q - exit pls give link pa
Vaishali (Wednesday, 24 August 2016 13:30)
Can i not read ex-q-zit's story for free. See dear author i am not able to pay this much to you and never ever have read your story but i want to read your story can you give free it to me than it will be very very very big favour for me so plzzz give it to me i am very very eagerly want to read it i am dieing to read yr...
vasantha (Thursday, 25 August 2016 09:27)
Can i not read ex-q-zit's story for free. See dear author i am not able to pay this much to you and never ever have read your story but i want to read your story can you give free it to me than it will be very very very big favour for me so plzzz give it to me i am very very eagerly want to read it i am dieing to read yr... pls pls input stories in sites i am request very much
ex-q-zit (Thursday, 25 August 2016 12:56)
here is a short preview of my latest story. I am really excited about this. Its about a muslim girl who becomes the husband and makes her husband the wife.
CHAPTER 5 – SHOCKED TO SUBMISSION
Sathwik came to his senses after an hour and slowly got up from his bed. He didn’t understand what happened. His rear was burning and was wet & sticky. Sathwik touched and found something sticky. He had a closer look at it and his brain went numb after realizing what it was. He didn’t understand what had happened and wondered where Salma was.
Just then he received several messages on his WhatsApp. On opening it he was shocked beyond belief. There were several pictures sent my Salma which had him dressed in a salwar kameez with full make-up wearing a bra. Before he could digest came the final knockout punch. He received the video of him being raped by a man. Sathwik’s hand started to tremble in fear.
Gradually his fear turned to fury and he called Salma on her mobile.
“You bloody bitch………….how……………..how dare you…………you cheat me” Sathwik could hardly speak in anger. Salma laughed at his plight.
“What happened Sathwik? Wasn’t it a memorable occasion as you envisaged?” Salma teased him.
“How dare you? You have made a big mistake. I shall send your pics to your Dad right now and have you killed by him” Sathwik said in anger.
“OK, you can do it by all means. But the whole college will receive the video and pics of your sexual endeavour and cross-dressing. Imagine what will happen to your reputation. The macho Sathwik will be seen as a gay boy. Is that fine with you, honey?” Salma asked him innocently.
Sathwik was taken aback. It would just ruin his life completely. Sathwik immediately begged her not to do so.
“Hmmmm since my sweetie is pleading I cannot dare do it. But from this moment you are going to do as I say. Is that clear?” asked Salma dominatingly. Sathwik agreed.
“I am a person who stands by her word. I shall still go with you to the farewell party but it will be on my terms and conditions. I shall meet you tomorrow morning in your flat, so don’t go anywhere” Salma told Sathwik and disconnected the call.
Sathwik just lay on the bed in a daze still not able to get over the fact that the tables had now turned.
********************************************
The next morning Salma and Bobby went to Sathwik’s house. Sathwik who was ready to pounce on Salma was taken aback on seeing Bobby with her and also felt embarrassed that even she knew what had transpired the previous evening.
The girls gave him exactly 10 mins to get ready and leave with them. He got no answer on asking where they were going.
********************************************
An hour later they entered a upmarket boutique owned by a famous fashion designer. The designer was called Rohit Gupta who was a gay. On learning that it was this group that had booked an appointment he welcomed them inside. Salma and Bobby left Sathwik alone and took Rohit aside.
“What can I do for you darling?” asked Rohit.
“Next week is your college farewell day for which my boyfriend Sathwik and I plan to attend in a saree and tux” informed Salma. Rohit clapped in happiness.
“That’s great what a lovely couple you both make. I have the right sarees and ensemble for you and also a variety of suits for your boyfriend” Rohit said happily.
“No, you don’t understand. Sathwik is the one who will wear a saree while I will be the one in a tux” clarified Salma leaving Rohit bemused for a moment and thought they were playing with him because he was gay.
Salma narrated the history between the two and how it came to this and asked for his expert help in getting them ready for the D-day. All the while Sathwik stood idly I the boutique wondering why he was there in the first place.
Rohit was doubly excited and he clapped twice in happiness and was more than ready to help. He found it a exciting challenge to cross-dress a couple.
The three went to Sathwik. Rohit closely examined in all angles.
“Fair complexion, slim and trim body, good height. Everything is perfect. I think I had loads of clothes that fit you as well as your girlfriend. Why don’t we start off with taking your measurements?” said Rohit.
Sathwik was puzzled as this was the last thing that he was expecting. He didn’t understand what Salma planned to do by buying them designer clothes for the farewell party. But he decided to silently follow suite for the time being.
ex-q-zit (Thursday, 25 August 2016 13:00)
I shall complete the full story by tomorrow or Saturday. Hoping you all will like it.
@Vaishali : i am really very very very sorry as I will be cheating all the others who pay for it. I understand your plight but if I make an exception for u then have to do it for others too.
But i shalld efinitely think of something in futiure
priya (Thursday, 25 August 2016 13:12)
thank u ex q zit u understanding our feelings we are waiting for your story's pls write for us ..
Vaishali (Thursday, 25 August 2016 14:31)
Yeahhhh ex-q-zit try please if it is possible....i will pay you double in future but right now i can't pay...my condition is so poor but as i get job i will pay you i am doing mbbs...i have faught aipmt with good rank but because of my poor condition i can't pay fee my college is going because of only i have taken a education loan
aj (Thursday, 25 August 2016 23:35)
ex-q-zit , i am disappointed that you have gone paid route
but at the same time i understand you reasons for going for paid route
writing story requires lot of time and effort and its only fair that you get some sort of monetory benefit from it
jut a few suggestions
may be once a while you write free story that everyone could read
and if its possible may be few months after you have released story , you can make it free so that everyone can read it
Srs (Friday, 26 August 2016 00:49)
ex-q-zit it's a bad idea for making money by selling ur stories. Please don't do like that it will hurt many fans and all the author will do same.
ex-q-zit (Friday, 26 August 2016 01:12)
Hi all,
I feel bad for Vaishali and others who cannot afford. But for the near future i have no option as I have a few commitments which cannot be avoided. I want to see how it goes as a amatuer writer.
Also do you know I have slept for getting hardly 4-5 hours per day for last one week as I leave at 6 in the morning and come back in the evening. After spending some time with family I sit late night to write.
@aj: thanks for being understanding. At some point I may think about doing a promotion for a day or two where it can be read for free. But that will be at least 6 months after releasing the story.
I am sorry if I appear money-minded but this is all I can do for those who cannot afford it. Please do wait until I make it free for a short period at some point later on.
I shall no longer be posting any comments here as I don't want to hijack this thread. If you have anything to say please say it my blog. I shall be posting my latest story sometime today. Please do visit my blog to check the link m details.
Sorry to my fans who cannot afford to pay but u will have to wait for some time to read.
Regards
Ex-q-zit
Ritu (Friday, 26 August 2016 07:19)
God knows where is NISHA. Plz come back and complete your story. Plz plz plzzzzz
JRS (Friday, 26 August 2016 14:02)
All the readers & writers, just ignore the comments, stop your reply, this place is for story posting, don't request, don't beg, don't show your wealth for stories, an open blog to post story, if u hav time - write, If hav Time - read, I've stopped writing stories, now reading when i have time, as simple as that, don't waste another post by a reply to my comments..
Next thread shud be a story! Hopefully......JRS
radha shaym (Friday, 26 August 2016 14:02)
ex.q.zit i am yours great fan but i am not able to read your story because i download on my mobile but now what to do to read it
Sania (Friday, 26 August 2016 22:02)
Dear ex-q-zit love your story. Early waiting for your next story of a Muslim guy . Please post it asap... <3
As I have read all your stories it awesome.
I thanks all of them..
@ashwini we really miss your stories please come back.
@raji if possible please we need stories of 11-12 & 12-13 pages back or you can update on visitors page
Ajaab peem ki gajaab kahani (Saturday, 27 August 2016 01:42)
Smile rahul, priti says. Rahul gives shy smile. Dam rahul you are soo pretty, if had a cock I would bang you then and there. Rahul knows very well what priti says she mean it. He remembered what priti said in there 1st night when he compelled priti to suck his cock. That day In wet eyes priti said rahul, one day I will make you realise how it feels to suck a cock. What can he do now? Nothing, 3years from their marriage and now priti , not only controls his entire estate but also his personal life. Despite of being a woman , Priti is now even physically stronger than him, she can carry him easily. And shame is that it makes him horny. Though rahul has his dick still but priti calls it a clit . Rahul remember that shameful day in clinic, when priti wanted his doctor Ritu to hav a look which she mentioned as clitty, rahul was soo horrified, he thought they going to remove his dick , he began to cry loudly... Other patients become worried and both priti and Ritu began to laugh, at last they calm him down and said Ritu is just checking . Priti said rahul , don't worry I am not going to remove your dick, I will make you a woman with out removing you dick. Mare a dick can't make you a man, see inspite of having a pussy, I am more man than you . 3 years ago your are millionaire, infact you still are, but you are just a doll of mine now, I have your power of attorney in all matters.
mansi (Sunday, 28 August 2016 14:42)
Ex-q-zit pls write your story in ur blog
So we all read that story for free
Pls understand .
ash (Sunday, 28 August 2016 23:13)
Ex-q-zit , plz make your stories free
Srs (Monday, 29 August 2016 00:49)
Please anyone write new stories
shyam (Monday, 29 August 2016 01:31)
hell friends so many stories and threads are here not finished if anybody likes then they can finish those stories its a suggestion
akshay (Monday, 29 August 2016 13:24)
srs and jrs are absent and not writing stories,sharmiladevi and kajal have stop writing,and worst of all ex q zit will not write any story here so it means..no one will write a story now..?a
Srs (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 00:58)
akshay not like that i will continue my story soon please wait
Ritu (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 04:13)
Raji, ex q zit , kajal were the pillars or our dreams and fantasy. Raji stopped writing a long time ago, kajal even blocked her blog , and ex q zit is now charging for stories.... Jo vi hamari bachi khuchi sanpe the , Jo ki hum stories me aape aapko dhundte the , wo vi sayed tutne wala he... And ek taraf duniya Hume thukrati he... Ham jiye to jiye kese.... Bin aapke.... !!!
shemalesana (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:37)
Mookuthi part 1
Its 6.00 am in the morning I had to get up, had a deadline to meet. The five stone diamond stud mookuthi in my nose reminded me about all my tasks at hand. I had to cook breakfast for my family pack their lunch, get hot water for their bath prepare my elder son to school and pamper my 6 months old baby daughter. I am a born male with masters degree in engineering, worked as an assistant professor in reputed engineering college but now am a house wife mother of two running a beauty parlor for likeminded people.
It all started with a mookuthi, nose stud in tamil. Ours is a small traditional family with my father mother jaya my elder sister varhini and myself viki. My sister is 3 years older to me. It was during my 15th birthday my parents took me to native place to get my and my ears pierced in a traditional manner. My parents wanted to get it done before my board exam so that I could concentrate on my studies. It was on Thursday that we reached our native village and we stayed in our grand-parents home. As per the tradition I was spared from hair cut for a year so my hair was shoulder length. My grand-parents were happy to see us and have already prepared for the ear piercing ceremony in our family temple. Since there was less time we were taken for shopping soon after breakfast. I loved my grandparents more than my parents and I never disobeyed them. Infact I wanted to continue my studies with them but father was against it. During shopping my grandfather brought two sets of pattu pavadai one for me and the other for my sister. But I preferred to be in jeans and shirt but I couldn’t disappoint them. Since I hadn’t hit the puberty I had a unisex face and body. Then we went to a movie and then returned home. Since I was so tired I slept as soon as we reached home.
shemalesana (Wednesday, 31 August 2016)
It was Friday 5.00 am just the time for sunrise I was woken by my grandmother. I was insisted to have an oil bath. Then she took me to her room and dressed me with pattu pavadai. I was already red being shy as it is normally worn by girls and now I was closely resembling my sister. To add to my shyness she make me wear golden bangles, necklace and anklets which was our family jewel as my skin refused to wear them before me. Till now I had accepted it to please my grandmother and she too was happy with me. All the preparation took us until 7.00 am and it was already late for the auspicious time. We hurried to the temple but my mother and sister started to tease me on our way. We reached the temple on time and the aasari and temple priest were ready for us. We were asked to wash our feet and then worship the god. When I lifted my skirt to wash my feet everyone saw the anklet and started to laugh. Then we were made to sit on a kollam at the rear of the temple and a lamp was lighted on both sides. My father made us wear a flower garland. First it was my sister turn. My grandma gave the aasari big hoop umbrella danglers for her to get pierced. But being a modern girl my sister refused to wear. Since they brought only two pair one for me and the other for my sister. Mine was a small stud. As the time was running out my mother requested me if I can wear it. I did not want to disappoint them but I was scared because those were traditional earring passed on by generations and it had a thick stem. So I was to get pierced first. My grandma marked the point to pierce my ears. Then the aasari removed the screw from the stud fixed a pointed needle and started to heat it in the lamps flame. Fearing the pain my eyes already started to water. I was made to sit on my uncles lap and he hugged me preventing any motion. I could move myself. My mother had a banana in her hand. As the needle was about to turn to red the aasari approached near me to pierce my ears and I closed my eyes out of fear then there was a buring smell and a sharp pain. I started to shout only to be muffled by the banana from my mother. The aasari was strong guy he did not let go of my ears and pushed it all the way through. I could feel the earring in my right ear. It was paining and it was heavy. I thought that my ear was going to tear out. After a few seconds he screwed the earring tightly in my ears. I vision was completely blurred due to my tears. Again he started to hold the needle in the lamp flame. I pleaded my parents to stop it as I was really paining. But they just consoled me and repeated the same process. I nearly fainted after my ear piercing. Seeing all this my sister refused to get her ear pierced as she feared pain and started to run. I had no energy to do anything. My grandmother took to pray to god again for well being. I was asked to fell on my grandparents and my parents feet to get their blessing. My grandparents gifted me another set of pattu pavadai and my parents gifted me a golden ring. But I was in no mood to be happy. By this time they had pierced my sisters ears and she was now sporting a small stud which was supposed to be mine. But she was angry for making her feel the pain for piercing.
This is the turning point in my life. I had to wear a female dress and now I sported a dangler which added to feminine feature.
shemalesana (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:38)
Mookuthi -2
After the ceremony in the temple I was so exhausted that I went straight to bed. I was so tired that I never knew they made me wear a nighty for sleep. I let out a yelp which the blouse caught my ears when removing it. My ears were still paining and I was unable to turn my head as I felt a slight pain as the earring swinged. Seeing me my mom felt pity and made me sleep on her laps the entire night. I had removed the bangles and anklet. It was Saturday and it was already 7.00 am but I was still in bed. My grandparents have asked not to disturb me but they made my sister clean the whole house. She had grudge on me since then. When I woke up I was asked to take a bath and wear the dress kept on my bed. I was surprised to see the new pattu pavadai and matching jewels. When in enquired my grandma just convinced me to go with flow and help me to get dressed.
Just then our neighbor pavithra who is the same age as me came to our home to ask me to play with her. When she saw in this dress she couldn’t stop laughing. Normally I should be angry but I felt shy and hid myself behind the window curtain. Then grandma left us alone to talk by ourself. Pavithra started to praise my beauty and said I should have been born as a girl and god had made a mistake. Hearing this we both laughed again. Until now I had loose hair which I used to cover her earring. But when I turned she saw something shiny and insisted to tie my hair to prevent hair loss. Then she saw the earring and had an open mouth. She pulled it to check if it real which resulted in me screaming and in tears. I couldn’t stop me tears as it was really paining. Before I knew she hugged to tight that for a second I forgot about my pain. It was a brief one. She apologized and brought saline water and cotton swab to help me clean the wound on my ears. Then as we were talking she wanted to take me out to the market for which I denied. But I promised to go with her the other day. Since it was our vacation father and mother left us in the village and returned back to Coimbatore the Sunday night. My sister wanted to escape from the chores and joined them in their travel. So I was left alone with my grandparents. Pavithra used to visit me every now and then. She even brought her clothes for me as male dress did not suit my hair and my earring. At Sunday night pavithra wanted to have a sleep over with me. So she brought a suitcase with her.
shemalesana (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:39)
Mookuthi 3
At Sunday night pavithra wanted to have a sleep over with me. So she brought a suitcase with her. Few dress and few other small boxes. We had dinner together with grandparents and then we left for my room. First she wanted me to wear her nighty. Initially I declined her wish but in the end she did convince me. I ended up wearing her nighty. She asked to lie down which I gladly did as long as she did not pull my ears. I heard her plug something to the power socket. Then I could smell wax. I just drifted to deep sleep. Then I felt my legs getting hot. But I was too lazy to wake up which was followed by a sharp pain. Just as I was about to shout I felt her lips on mine warm and tempting. It was a brief one. I started to close eyes without paying attention to the pain. Then she let me go. I still had my eyes closed. She asked if I wanted another. I kept silent. Then she poured hot wax on my other leg and stripped it. I got another kiss for each strip. I laid still. I had few blood spots too. She gave me a towel bath and asked to feel my legs. True to my surprise it felt like a baby skin too soft and flawless. She asked if I wanted more but I denied as it was enough kiss for a day.
She too accepted and we both went to bed and we slept in each others arm. On Monday morning she woke up early and woke me with a kiss. She packed her stuff and left for her home. Today she invited to have a sleep over in her house to which I just smiled. When having bath I noticed my legs. It was smooth and flawless. She left some of her dress for me. I wore a pink tops which had shortest sleeves and a denim blue jean. When I went to have a breakfast my grandma was not pleased with my dress but she was happy to see my wearing the traditional earring as per her wish. I reasoned out that I had only two pattu pavadai and both are still wet after laundry. She just sighted and promised to buy me more but I didn’t care. My entire vacation I spend with my grandparents and pavithra. By now I had my full body waxed. We waxed each other and I was accustomed to wearing nighty and other female dress and my earring. But I wanted to be my male self soon though I enjoyed it. Just the day I left to Coimbatore I asked my grandma to remove my earring as I had no idea. But she refused to do so. Then I asked pavithra to help me. She was sad to get departed but made me lay on her lap and removed it slowly. It was a new experience. As soon as she removed it I felt like missing something. She caught that sigh but said nothing. I checked the mirror but the holes were clearly visible due to the thick stem. It wasn’t ugly but weird.
I was in tears when they sent me off to Coimbatore. But they made a promise if scored good marks in my exam they will make sure to invited me for the next vacation due in 3 months.
shemalesana (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:39)
Mookuthi 4
Two day after reopening of my school I caught up to being a naughty boy but I missed my happy days. Then we received a call from pavithra’s mother saying that she had attained puberty and a function was held for her and they wanted to invite my family for it. Initially they planned to send my mother and sister but I too went with them. It was Wednesday morning that we reached their place. At the auspicious time she was called to the centre hall and was made to sit on a wooden plank. It was an all ladies function. I was the only male there except a few close relatives. I was asked to dress with pattu pavadai and ofcourse the earrings. So I was one of the ladies now. Pavithras mother was the first to apply sandal paste on her and inserted few bangles on her. Then I was asked to do the same and i sat next to her. My sister had no interest in it and standing there. I was a long day. Even sitting next to her made me tired. The function ended in the late afternoon and she was taken to separate room and I was not allowed to talk to her. We left to our place and the day just went on. My sister thought the whole ritual was torture and warned mom never to make her undergo such function. Mom just kept quiet but was worried as my sister has not yet attained her puberty.
It was the next day when we were about to leave my sister did not join us for breakfast. We called her a few times but there was no response so my mom left to check on her. Then after few minutes she called my grandmother to her room. They came out smiling. Only then I realized that she too had attained her puberty. They asked me not to disturb her as she was not in good mood and they started to make the preparations. When they asked her to prepare for the function they just fainted. Soon a doctor was called to check on her. The doctor said that she was physically healthy but is in very emotional state and not to add any pressure to her. Now we had a problem in hand. Before we knew the news of my sister has reached every ears in the village and a crowd started to pour to our house. But my sister refused to leave her room. We scared to force her as it may lead to any complication but we had to prepare her for the function the next day. Also all our relatives were on the way to attend a function as she was the only girl child in our family tree and they expected to make it a big function.
shemalesana (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:40)
Mookuthi 5
All our relative had arrived but still my sister refused to come out. She even refused to wear the family jewel. All our relatives started to gossip as it was false alarm. My grandma had no other choice. She wanted someone to be seated on the centre fall to perform the function to save the family name. just then mom looked at me and asked if I can replace her for few hours. I was shocked to hear this from her. How can I replace a girl. After a little thought my grandma too agreed for this but I wasn’t convinced. Then mom made an offer to help me get admitted in our village school if I help to save the family name. Even before I could answer I was taken to my mother room and they applied the hair removing cream brought for my sister. I had a weird smell. Then they gave me a warm water bath and was made to wear a half saree. It revealed my navel which felt weird. Then came the earring which I missed, a pair of bangle, rings on my fingers and anklet. Then I was made to sit on the dressing table and was asked to close my eyes. When I checked in the mirror I saw myself with earring not like my sister. After a brief time I was allowed to open my eyes but mom blocked the view of the mirror. I was hurried to the centre hall and was make to sit. The switch between me and my sister was known only to the four of us and was agreed to be maintained as such.
Sitting in the function and being the cause of the function are two separate things. I was nervous if someone will identify me that will lead to complete humiliation. But I also started to enjoy being the attention. After almost the entire day I was covered with sandal and turmeric paste, hand full of bangles and forehead full of kumkum. At around 5.00 pm I was taken to my room was some rest. I just laid on the bed and dono went I dozed off. I was woken by my mom and had some milk and fruits to eat. I ate in half sleep and dozed off again.
shemalesana (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:40)
Mookuthi 6
I was woken up early the next morning. I thought I had a weird dream. But I realized that I was still in half saree and I was in deep trouble. My relatives had stayed back because there was another problem in hand. Being a traditional family it is our custom to pierce a girls nose within the first week after puberty. I was not aware of this. We thought that they has stayed back to visit the family temple or so. It was the third day we again tried to convince my sister but she was in no condition to hear us out. But our family name has to be saved. On third day they started to ask about mooku kuthu ceremony to my parents but they just skipped the topic but they knew that cant do the same forever. When they asked me I was dead against it. I told the holes will be clearly visible and I cant go back to normal male life. They said if I remove the stud within 10 days there will be no mark of the piercing. The scar will be made only if you wear for a whole month. It seemed logic but I was not convinced. Mom asked pavithra to convince me but I said first pierce your nose then tell me. For which she answered she is ready to get her nose pierced with me. Now I had no choice except to accept it.
My mother announced the mooku kuthu function on next day to everyone. It had gathered all their attention. That morning again I was asked to take head bath. Then I was decorated with jewels and new saree. We went to our family temple. There a jewel box was kept in the goddess feet and I was asked to pray. Our entire relatives had gathered in the temple. It was more like a carnival than a temple. After prayer the priest handed over the jewel box to us and blessed me for a bright family life. I just blushed. I came to know that my nose will pierced by the same aasari in a traditional manner at 3 pm at the centre hall. Now I was scared of the pain. I request my mom to have a gunshot or even better a non piercing magnetic stud. But I know that was impossible. I asked to get some beauty sleep and rest. Like I could even close my eyes I had vision of the painful nose piercing.
shemalesana (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 06:41)
Mookuthi 7
I was woken up at 3 pm was asked to get ready. I was made to sit in the centre hall. The hall was filled with ladies of all age. All of them sported rettai mookuthi nose stud on both side that too bigger and heavy. Now I was scared am I going to double pierced too or on a single side. But I dare not speak bcoz if I do they may recognize me by my voice. The aasari came there on time and started to make initial preparations. I searched for pavithra but she was no-where to be found. I just felt tricked by her and promised never to talk to her again.
Just then one of the relative put a garland on me and asked to do the nose piercing in a painful way to ease the child birth. I just cursed her. Mom just whisper me that she had spoken to the aasari to make it really painless. Now I had my grandma holding both my arms and my mother holded by head covering my eyes to prevent me from shaking my head. I could smell the needle being headed. This time in was in fear like the end of the world. Within few second I had a pain in my right nose. But it was bearable I thought it was over. But I was wrong. He had just pinched my nose to prepare for the piercing. Just as I let go of my breath came a sharp pain, smell of burning flesh. I screamed at top pitch. I stood up pushing my mother and grandma. The needle was only half a way inside. Now a dozen of our relative came together, caught me and made me sit again. The aasari again pushed the needle inside my nose but now my eyes was not covered and I could see his hands. His hands came again to put the thirugani the nose screw in the place. I begged him to let it be and to put the screw after the pain had reduced. But he just laughed. He said the pain will not go for few days. He pushed my hands away which was caught by my mom and forcibly flipped my nose and tightened the screw. Till now I was holded my by relatives. I thought I was over. But one of them told to tighten the screw with molten wax or she will remove it. Had a second phase of pain he then remove the screw took some wax from his box applied in on the screw showed in it in flame. Again she flipped my nose and screwed it tightly. I just fainted. Now I will be with nose stud forever in my live.
ex-q-zit (Wednesday, 31 August 2016 07:11)
Hi friends,
I have requested you to please contact me on my blog inoted of posting here so that the 1000 post limit can be utilised well.
Anyways, I have posted my solution in my blog for those who cannot afford to buy them. This is the least I can do. Hope you understand.
Also I have posted a preview of a couple of chapters of my new story THE REVOLUTION. Hope you will like it. It is currently in progress and will post by this weekend.
Any comments you have for me please make in my blog.
Regards,
Tulasi
priya (Thursday, 01 September 2016 01:02)
mookuthi pls continue your story really nice. ex q zit thank you for accept our request..
Srs (Thursday, 01 September 2016 02:02)
shemalesana this the first time iam reading ur story an is simply awesome, i don't know y i can't write such kind of stories please continue don't stop.
Srs (Thursday, 01 September 2016 02:17)
shemalesana i request you to please make him double pricing in ear and nose, it would be nice. Make him by forcing
Shemalesana (Thursday, 01 September 2016 06:21)
Part of my story is true
I am still working in an engg college
Yet to be a house wife & mother of two
priya (Thursday, 01 September 2016 10:23)
really awesome ur truly blessed
Kumkum (Thursday, 01 September 2016 21:34)
Nice story writing Sana. Please update as early as possible. You are doing a great job.
Srs (Friday, 02 September 2016 00:51)
Shemalesana i can't believe this, how do you feel please continue
Vaishali (Friday, 02 September 2016 03:47)
The video game
No.... i can't do this?? I can't wear this and get fucked by a girl!! No god please help me get me out of these please but if i don't cross these stage i will be captured in this video game for forever...
10 year ago!!!
my name is Vishal. I am very very fond of playing video games and i am working in video game company online and so i never go outside for more time just stuck in home with my games.
Because of not going outside i have long hair and don't get contact with sun so my skin is very fair.
I am so talented and this video game is my passion so i give my 100% to it. Whenever i design games all go viral and i get best game award.
One day i get offer of making a game of wwf worth rupees 5crore from sneha. I fixed a meeting in 5star hotel at 5pm.
I went there and we met and ordered two Cappuccino.
Sneha-- hi Vishal nice to meet you
Me--me too tell me some more details about the game
Sneha-- Vishal i want a wwf game in which a girl who is very muscular..longer...and...stronger
Me-- yeah i will design no problem
Sneha-- yeah but i want also that make boys thinner and shorter and less stronger and make fight b/w them and always make girl winner
Me-- sorry sneha but it can't possible i can make this type of game but after publishing it will go flop because no one play game if they know that the opposite side player will Win. So dear i will not make
Sneha--no you have to make..i will raise the money offered you
Me-- i don't want money but i can't flop my name i am very successful game designer and don't want to put stop point in my life. No bye.. and i leave the hotel
Sneha got angry and told me You will have to make it otherwise what gonna with you... you can't even imagine it.
I reached home and started my work...past 5years i was researching a technology to put a humen in video game but still i didn't get success
One day....
I was playing games and got and idea that if i can make a living things scanner i will be successful in my research and started to make the scanner and in 2 years i made the scanner i was very happy but i will be 100times if the scanner will connect to video game and i connect. i scan a rabbit through it and started the video game and it was just a miracle yeahhh my research is completed.. now i will change the whole world i was very happy.
I offered my company about these technology....they also got very happy and offered me 100 billion USD but they bet that the technology will be the name of company i refused i told no i will be on my name otherwise i will offer other company the company CEO got angry and scared he told me ok dear MR. Vishal come to the office and meet me we will purchase this technology and will give your name but don't offer other company.
Vaishali (Friday, 02 September 2016 05:04)
The video game--2
I reached the company office and CEO offered me a coffee and i give the technology for testing i took coffee and i slept.
When i waked up i found myself nude and handcuffed. I saw a man and woman were sitting near to me. Saw that man was CEO and he introduce other woman as his sister she is none other than she is sneha.
Sneha-- you told me no than i came to my bro and told about you and we are waiting to take revenge...now see what gonna be happening...
We have also another game designer and we will put you in this game with your technology and will humiliate you so much...and for going out of the game you will have to complete all stages. You know the game name....--transgender---
Hahaha....lets see than they scan my full body and import me into the game...
1 stage-----. Make a girlfriend
Now i am in the game and it is looking like real game than i read instructions and found that it is a real life game what i will do in game i will also be happen in real life and my goal is to find a girlfriend to complete the stage. Instructions told a girl to make me approach amd she is also sneha she is also import herself.
I told myself she will never accept my praposal and i will be captured for lifetime in this game but i told lets try what gonna happen...
When i praposed to her to be my gf she accepted easily i was confused how can it be possible but she told that she has some conditions if i change myself according to condition she will be my gf i told what conditions she told
1. You will have to put 24×7 chastity lock
2. No body hair
3. Have to wear lacy penty and bra insight the male clothes
4. Get always painted nails.
5. Nose and ear and naval pierced.
Me--- no i can't do this i am not a Sissy slut..
Sneha---ok as your wish you asshole... always stuck in this stage i am going to out of the game than you will never ever complete the stage and prisoned in this game.
Me--ok ok please don't go i am ready please...
Sneha--- yeah good my little sissy slut
Shemalesana (Friday, 02 September 2016 08:48)
I got my ear pierced along with my sister in childhood
My nose was pierced instead of her during her puberty function but with a gold wire by our family goldsmith
I had to do my schooling from home for a year to recover from trauma I got bcoz of the function
I still have the mark on my right nostril
Now I am working as an assistant professor in reputed engg college & am in search of a life partner who can fulfil my wish
I would like to have a organ transplant; bear two kids & live as an homemaker
kavi (Friday, 02 September 2016 09:46)
vaishali very super pls continue
Srs (Saturday, 03 September 2016 01:12)
Shemalesana is story end?, please continue one by one
Parikalpana (Saturday, 03 September 2016 06:53)
It was little late ..... but I am happy - Part 8
As soon I stepped in institute I realized I need to recognize seniors for which I was not prepared and I expected I was the one who recognized least number of seniors. For next one month my seniors used me as model instead of dummy for trying out there creation. They dressed me up in variety of their creations for males and females both but mostly females. I liked when I got chance to wear male cloths but wore female cloths as part of punishment. Some times dressing as female involved makeup and jewelry as well. I was OK with male cloths and unwilling but without any fuss I did what they asked for mostly trying out their creations again and again. I didn't speak much either. For male cloths I did model for mix group of seniors (male and female) but one day I found all female seniors are gone and only male seniors showed up which was surprising to me. An announcement was made that now they will work on female costumes and handed me a bra and a pair of big breast forms to fill the cups. I didn't like this and said no for putting on bra. Seniors threatened to publish my pictures and videos they have taken earlier. I agreed to put on bra with breast forms but my behavior was not any different then a dummy. In short no cooperation. They tried to work with my attitude which didn't help them a lot. After couple of days when I reached to room where all this was happening, I found a change there were snack items and all seniors did welcome me and they started talking with me but I didn't show any interest. One senior explained me why my cooperation is important for them. They even deleted all the video's and pictures from cell phone. They said there career depends on the cloths they are designing. They need to exhibit their creation as part of final exam where big cloth makers do visit and if they like designs they may offer employment or contracts. While working on designs they can ask me to try their work and they will not hesitate to touch me (my body) to get the accurate measurement for adjustments they need to make. They cannot touch female models freely.They can ask me to stand in a certain pose which is not possible with dummy. For final trial they have arranged a model who has same body structure like me and she has 38DD breasts and this the reason they picked the breast forms they picked. They started begging me for help and I agreed and said sorry to them for not cooperating. Now I started having fun modeling.
Rajibalan Reader (Saturday, 03 September 2016 18:41)
Sorry, i have a question.
Where are the post from 835 to 1000 in EngCom15-16 section?
Please include that post back. There are many stories in that range.
thank you.
Shemalesana (Saturday, 03 September 2016 23:51)
Srs my last post is not my story but my wish & statement
Parikalpana (Sunday, 04 September 2016 13:57)
It was little late ..... but I am happy - Part 9
We went through male dress one more time quickly then cam turn of ladies dresses, I did spend almost three evening half naked in my under pants and bra with breast forms. Relationship with seniors was getting better day by day and all of them were teasing me and I was also pretending like girl, acting to be irritated and this made evenings very enjoyable. They tried all types of dress from salvar kameej to lehanga choli, tight jeans to shorts.
rajesh (Monday, 05 September 2016 09:32)
any one pls wriiite story like slowly forced feminize by mom sister in law sister and gf
pls wrte with concept of hair ..... Shemalesana ur story super
Pooja (Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:48)
Turning it around-Part 1
Pooja and Ranjit were a happily married couple, based out of Mumbai. From the outside the couple was what they call a 'normal' couple. One day while watching TV, they happened to chance a song from an old Hindi movie, Kismat. The song had Biswajeet dressing up as a woman and Babita as a male Pathan.
Pooja found it very interesting, while Ranjit claimed there was nothing much to it. "Why do you say that,?'' enquired Pooja. "Even I have played female in plays in school and college. In fact before we met I played a female character in professional plays with a theatre group," said Ranjit as a matter of fact.
This was a revelation for Pooja. She was shocked. Her husband as a female. Pooja's mind started working over time.
She had a lot of questions for Ranjit, which he answered patiently. Ranjit did not find the whole thing strange or hillarious, but for Pooja this seemed to be a life changing experience.
That night, Pooja was waiting for Ranjit in the bedroom. "What?," asked Ranjit. "Why are you looking at me like this?," he enquired. "Did you wear a saree or a dress?," asked Pooja. "Oh my god, you are still on that subject?," said an exasperated Ranjit. "Tell me please," begged Pooja. "I wore all feminine dresses, did make up, wore inners. I even got my body waxed. Anything else?" said Ranjit.
Pooja smiled. She had got her replies.
That night while making love, Pooja took the on top position and was decidedly more aggressive. Ranjit found it a bit odd, because in three years of being married, this was the first time Pooja had shown this much aggression.
Next morning, Pooja woke up a little late. Ranjit got up early and made some tea for both. He woke Pooja up. Pooja woke up smiling and said:"Thanks meri chamakchallo (my beautiful)". Ranjit ignored it and carried on.
Little later Pooja came towards him with a night gown. "I want to check if this gown fits you. Can you wear this for me?,''asked Pooja. "No way," hollered Ranjit. "You never for a moment hesitated wearing this while acting, why not now?," said Pooja in response and showed some mock anger.
Pooja (Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:49)
Turning it around-Part 2
Ranjit felt bad for her and said, "okay give it to me". Ranjit wore the gown and it fitted him perfectly. "Something is missing...hmmmm...now it fits," said Pooja as he applied some lipstick even before Ranjit could react. "You know what would help?," said Pooja. "If you also wore a bit of inners...here put these on and remove those ugly ones," she said as she threw a panty and bra. Ranjit looked confused. "Do you want me to wear these?", he asked. "Yes, why not? Just for now, wear it, please, pretty please?" said Pooja. Ranjit did as he was asked. Pooja turned to him after he had worn everything. "Now there look at yourself in the mirror. I now get an idea about how you would look with a bit more make-up, hair etc. You must have been a knockout chamakchallo," teased Pooja. Ranjit went into a trance as he was reminded of his acting days. "Yes, had a lot of admirers and fans. But that was then," he said snapping out of his trance. "Now can I go back to be dressed normally?" he begged.
"Not now, just for sometime today, continue wearing this," she said. Ranjit just shrugged his shoulders and carried on his work. He worked as a creative designer, whereas his wife worked as an automobile engineer. They had a close group of friends, who all incidentally grew up together in the same neighbourhood. They were a group of five married couples. They would spend a lot of time together on weekends, driving down to nearby hillstations.
Pooja was always keen to try adventure just like the other guys, but she would be forced to stay indoors with the wives. Ranjit on the other hand would love to spend time indoors with the females. At the time, the group did not think this was odd. But there was a feeling among the other members that they do not quite fit in.
Pooja had been a basketball player in her school and college days. She was always considered to be a tomboy. Ranjit was a homebody and preferred to be indoors, drawing and pursuing creative interests. He had also been trained in stitching and cooking.
Ranjit's revelations about his acting days as a female switched something inside Pooja. She thought of something. That evening she old Ranjit to take care of the house.
Pooja had long flowing hair and would be the envy of the group. But that evening when she came back home the hair was cut short like a man with short side locks. Ranjit opened the door, Pooja smelled of cigarettes and beer!
Pooja (Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:49)
Turning it around-Part 3
This was a first for Ranjit. But it turned out that Pooja used to smoke and drink when in college, but had given up just before courtship with Ranjit.
Pooja seemed to have changed her look completely. She was decidedly wearing a man's trousers, shirt and shoes. It was almost as if Pooja went out as a woman and came back as a man. Ranjit was stunned to see Pooja.
But Pooja was in her senses as she tried to make sense. "Listen...Having seen you dressed as a female, really switched something inside me. I have always wanted to be a guy, but somehow suppressed my feelings. But seeing you like this has really revived those thoughts.
"I have thought about it long and hard. We don't need to take any drastic steps right now. We can start off by dressing and living as we are really meant too. You can really be the wife and I can really be the husband. This way we can correct something that should have been done at the birth. This is not about you, but about us."
Ranjit stood shell shocked! He really didn't know what to say.
Pooja made him sit and just shook him a bit. "I know it is all a bit too much for you. But I guess...I think this is how it was always meant to be."
"But I just mentioned in passing.." said Ranjit as Pooja cut him off. "You must see yourself you are a natural as a woman. You carry yourself off very very well. The nuances that you have, are something that I have only seen in girly girls. I am clearly not one of them, because I am not meant to be a woman. You are," cornered Pooja in a strong voice.
Ranjit still wondered what what was going on.
"See it is simple. We start living as man and woman. We start going out with our group. We can start getting more authentic with our dressing, make-up etc. Eventually we can...down the road...go the whole hog. I have really thought this through," said Pooja.
"But...what about our families...." said Ranjit."Our work places..Our friends won't they all find it odd," he added.
"Do you love me?," she asked. "Yes I do," replied Ranjit. "Then from now on just follow my lead. We will break this slowly to everyone. First our friends circle, then our families and then our work places," said Pooja.
Pooja (Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:50)
Turning it around-Part 4
"As a matter of fact I have spoken to our group. I have not told them anything in detail. Just said that we are inviting them over for dinner this weekend," she revealed.
"Oh my..." said Ranjit. "Don't worry we will manage," she replied.
"...And one more thing....I think we need to pick names that suit our lifestyle from now. I like Raj and Ranjita fits you well. Agree?" she asked. Ranjit was just staring at the floor not knowing what to do.
For the next four days, Raj (earlier Pooja) just pushed Ranjita towards feminity, even as he embraced things that a guy would do. Raj started watching football again, drank beer, while Ranjita did all the household work. Raj also handed over jewellery which he expected Ranjita to wear and even bought her a long wig.
Then as the lock struck 8 pm on Saturday, the group of friends, a group of four married couples knocked on the door almost at the same time. But when the door opened, they were left speechless. Standing in front of them was Raj dressed in a suit and tie, whereas Ranjita stood there all decked up in a saree, flowers and jewellers and payals.
It was all a bit too much as they walked in. The ladies went over to one side and the gents to the other.
Raj cleared his throat and explained.
"Guys I know it is a bit too much for you. But this is the real us. We are meant to be this way. Her (pointing towards Ranjita) as my wife and me as he husband. I have always wanted to be a guy. You know go out biking with you (pointing towards the men), smoking a cigarette, drinking beer and watching sports.
"Ranjita here...did not want to be one of you (men)," he added.
Ranjita looked down. But Raj motioned her to speak.
"It took a bit of time for me, but I realised that there was a woman inside me. I never felt comfortable. When I looked at the ladies, doing girly things, cooking and generally chatting, it really made me feel like wanting to be part of it," said Ranjita.
There was a moment's silence...but then one of the guys Ravi stood up and embraced Raj. He shook his hands and said. "You are ready to go to a pub tomorrow to watch the EPL match. Guys you are joining right (looking at the other three men)," said Ravi. Soon Vijay, Rahul and Rakesh got up and high-fived Raj.
It was almost instantly that Raj was inducted as a man.
The ladies meanwhile looked at each other and then smiled at Ranjita. They too got up and welcomed her to their group.
The ice had been broken and the group was back to being what it was...a fun gathering of friends. The old Ranjit and Pooja had been forgotten. It was almost as if they did not exist anymore.
Pooja (Thursday, 08 September 2016 10:51)
Turning it around-Part 5
They met regularly as a group together, sometimes the guys met separately and the women on their own.
"You know Raj you really fit in...This has really added life to our group," remarked Vijay as the others agreed as they drank beer and watched their favourite EPL match.
The ladies meanwhile ran their own small kitty club, cooked together and discussed about dresses and other things that make ladies comfortable. Ranjita found herself right in the middle very soon and loved being part of these coffee kitschs. It was almost as if she was always there.
"You know Ranj, we have really loved having you here. It is so much fun. We can learn a lot from each other, " remarked Sunita.
Ranjita had a tear in her eyes as the other women came close to her and embraced her.
That night when Raj returned home, Ranjita in her night gown awaited her.
She had a smile as Raj entered. "Thanks for opening my eyes. I am feeling finally comfortably in my skin," said Ranjita.
"Guess this is what it was meant to be. Maybe Gods are happy too," remarked Raj as he kissed his wife and called it a day.
NEXT PART 2: BREAKING IT TO THE FAMILY
Radha (Thursday, 08 September 2016 11:45)
Hi Pooja,
I just loved your story. It's very enjoyable. Looking forward to hire the family reacts to the reversal. Hope ranjit gets to keep her first karwa chauth fast attend weddings etc
Nisha please continue your story
preeti (Thursday, 08 September 2016 13:25)
wowo poojia lovely story please continue
mahesh (Thursday, 08 September 2016 13:45)
Amazing pooja
Outstanding
Kashmiraa (Friday, 09 September 2016 08:50)
Salute to pooja. It's been a long time we had such a nice and well written story. Pooja, it was mind blowing . Really looking forward for next updates. I will recommend my friend to read your story.
Kumkum (Friday, 09 September 2016 08:58)
Pooja your story is very good. Like Raji used to write.plzz continue the story quickly.
vasantha (Friday, 09 September 2016 09:26)
hai pooja i like your stories p a
Ashima (Saturday, 10 September 2016 00:57)
Pooja absolutely amazing . Have not heard such refreshing story in a long time. Please please continue.
Shalma (Saturday, 10 September 2016 04:10)
Monisha Part 1
------------------
Hi My name is Monish. I am working in a MNC company. I am a middle class boy. I was not done the haircut for past six months. Just for a change, I didn't do the haircut.
One weekend I was working in office and I was having lunch in cafeteria. There was not that much of crowd in cafeteria because that day was saturday. While I was having lunch, a beautiful girl sat near by me for lunch. And she introduced me as Shalma. I also introduced with her. She was wearing nice little transparent short top and jean. While having lunch, we discussed our projects and while we finishing lunch, she said we will meet in coffee break and left from that place. I also went to my seat.
She pinged in the office messenger for coffee break and I came to cafeteria and we chit chat our personal life for sometime. After that, daily I was going with her for cofee break and lunch. I am not going with my project mets. She always worn jean with t-shirt or sort top only. As because, she don't like traditional dresses. Day by day, we became close friends.
It was her birthday on one weekend saturday. So, I gifted makeup items(Mascara, eye liner, lipstick, nailpolish) to her on friday evening itself because saturday is holiday. She opened the gift pack there itself and she liked the gift very much. She invited me to her home tomorrow for her birthday.
She liked my gift but she wants some other gift. I asked her what she wants. She said, she don't like my moustache. so she asked me to shave permanently. I got shocked and I can able to shave but how it can be permanently. She asked me to do a laser hair removal for moustach. she convinced me and in the friday evening itself, she booked an appointment in a parlour. I went to parlour in the evening. She was not came with me. They removed my moustach permanently. I am not having beard and also hairs on body.
I went to home and I seen my face in the mirror. I got shy because my face is not like a guy face. because I am having hairs upto my shoulder because I was not done the hair cut for past 6 months. Saturday morning, I woke up and I worn Jean and tshirt and I went to Shalma's home @11am.
Shalma was in full length gorgeous white gown with full makeup. I went inside to Shalma's house. Shalma was very happy about my attire. she hugged me and she said thanks for shaving the moustach. I am also very much happy because that hug gives that much happiness. Along with shalma, her friends also was there in her house. She cut the cake and celebrated her birthday.
Her friends are planning to leave. So, I also said bye to Shalma. But, she asked me to wait for some more minutes. Her friends are left. We both only in the house. She hugged me and she given a deep kiss and she proposed me. Whatever she is asking, I am doing. So she liked me very much and she proposed me. I was in a shock because I didn't expect this. Because, I am a middle class guy but she is well rich girl. I just explained about my situation to her. But she said, those things and all not an issue. She convinced me to accept her proposal.
She presented me a ring for her symbol of love. Its like a ear stud with pearl stone. I asked her what is this. How can I wear this. She said, it is a navel stud. For my symbol of love, you have to wear. By using ear gun, she pierced my navel and put that pearl stud. I dont like that stud in my navel but I like her love. so I worn.
Mohini (Saturday, 10 September 2016 05:13)
Hello Rajibalan ....You have been doing wonderful work by creating this page since many years. Ya It did well.Hope it will be running like this in coming future too. This is better way of communication between writers and readers. Its right platform from them. It also encourage the beginner to know about crossdressing....so congrats all writers they gave their best and will do again I think.....espc. pooja u did a nice start....write like this again..
Thanks
Mohini
Maddy (Saturday, 10 September 2016 09:11)
Sharma great story just simply awesome
mithra (Saturday, 10 September 2016 09:27)
Superb story shalma continue plz
Nisha (Saturday, 10 September 2016 09:29)
Sorry for the delay friends. Happy to read the story of Pooja. Awesome writer you are. Dear friends, come with your new stories. I will continue my story from here.
So the dreadful first night of my life got over. As due to extreme tiredness, I slept like a log and it was around 7 in the morning, I was sleeping peacefully; I heard some sweet voice calling “ wake up ji” “ someone knocking the door”. I slowly opened my eyes, it was my sweet hubby referring me as ji. I immediately jump and sat on the bed due to astonishment and surprise that my husband is not taking my name.
I felt wet at my panties due to extreme happiness and sexual excitement. But, I then realized it was not the time for it. I quickly went near to door and peeped into a key hole, it was my mom, so I made myself untidy like removing my flower, shrinking my dress, I asked asif to pretend as he was sleeping. I don’t want to make my parents get upset about my first night.
So, I went and answered the door. My mom was extremely happy, and she had a look into my room and found asif was sleeping. She asked me to take bath immediately and wear new saree, jewels and flowers, oh my f*** I thought in my mind, but I cannot help myself. So again reluctantly , I dolled up myself, asif was witnessing everything, but he didn’t dared to speak with me. I just ignored him.
Then he prepared to get his bath, to my surprise, he took all his clothes and went inside bathroom, and I was waiting, it was more than 30 mins, I decided to knock the door, as my mom said, both of us should come for having breakfast. He told me, it will take 10 more minutes. I was wondering, being a girl, I completed my bath in 10 minutes, but a guy taking around 1 hour. I was happy that, I was marching towards my dream comes true life.
Finally after an eternity, he came outside fresh like a flower. He was wearing blue shirt and cream pant, I liked that color combo, I imagined wearing that costume. Even though I was tomboyish, I was wearing mostly girly western wear or casuals. I never tried formals so far. I thought for myself, that day is not so far.
So we joined with the entire family for breakfast, it was a usual routine. My mom made me serve him the food, which I didn’t like, but as I was left without any option, I did served. He finished his breakfast and after that I had mine. Rest of the day, he was with men, and I was with ladies, I felt very much bored.
Like this manner, three more days flew away; nothing big happened between us, I too didn’t want to initiate anything as of now. So all the relations went and it was the time for us to leave to Chennai from our native. My parents gave me a tearful bye. Even I was emotional and cried my heart out.
My father gifted us a 4bhk flat in one of the gated community in omr road. Along with that, he gifted us a Brand New Audi A6. All this luxuries were new for Asif. I made myself very clear that, even though if I going to dominate him, let I should not make him feel inferior in terms of wealth or his earlier financial status. Whatever that belongs to mine is now his too ; So we landed in Chennai, and went to our new home. I really loved my palace, yes it was beautiful like a palace and we set the things, and fixed people like paper, milk and other errands.
Mohini (Saturday, 10 September 2016 21:18)
The life has changed
(Disclaimer: This is fiction based story.Character names are also imaginary .Its not related to anyone life If it relates to anyone life then it would be a as only co-incidence only so keep enjoy reading this story and gives your precious feedback)
Episode: 1
There was a boy named Rishab age 27 who always used to tease and tried to dominate the girls in his society.He used to think him so handsome and proudy guy that he is superior over girls. One day he was going towards college . A unknown van comes near him and their some gang of women kidnapped him and took him away. After few hours when he regained his senses he found himself in dark basement tied with rope and also gagged his mouth with a smelly cloth and tape on it. He found himself weak and wanted to shout for help but couldn't. Then after few hours , He got tired for struggling to release for that situation but couldn't and then he heard a sound of feet coming towards him.Then after few minutes a woman around came near to him .He became strange after looking to a woman. The woman is around 45 years and she was just looking him and replied.Her name is Kanti bai.
Kanti: Hey handsome! what are u looking at me .Aren't am I looking hot..huh? I am Kanti bai leader of gang. I am a shemale .I used to kidnap a boy like u and make them shemale and used them in our work.I earn money to make them whore and also sell them to those who wanted to buy them ,Now you will also do this job and become the whore. Now you no longer will be guy now we will make u shemale and now on we called you Radhika.Nice name huh!
(now on 'HER' denotes radhika). Then Kanti bai removed gagged from Radhika mouth and Radhika replied in anger.
Radhika: WTF! What are u saying? I will not accept your job and will leave from here. what are u saying u bitch! untied me I will show you who am I and what can I do with u.
then kanti behen called a named 'Bhairav' then a 6'6" tall black face and bald head around 35 years 85 kg guy came with a sword in his hand.He was looking so dangerous and ugly like devil. then Kanti behen called girls Hema and Malini .Hema was 25 years girl weaing kurta salwar and Malini was 23 years girl wearing modern dresses.they both are looking so hot and beautiful.No one said that they are not real girls but they are shemale too and They are left and right hand of Kanti behen and bhairav was a special guard of their team. Then Kanti behen told to bhairav throw lt of water over Radhika and untied her .Bhairav did same .Radhika didn't do anything due to feared from bhairav. When Radhika got wet then bhairav looked Radhika just like hungry dog such as he will jumped over Radhika and fucked her ass but he respect the Kanti behen so coudn't tell her because she helped him for police case he killed many guys and very furious guy and still police used to arrest him but they coudn't have a any crimnal record of him and also feared from him.Everyone used to frightened with him. But Kanti behen read his face and told to Bhairav
Kanti:Hey Bhairav what are you looking at ? I knew U liked Radhika . Yeah she is looking hot but wait till she changed into shemale. then you can do whatever you wanted to do with her. She is all yours.
Bhairav : Thank u didi. After her transformation she will be mine first. Hey Hema Malini .Do fast and transformed into shemale I can't control myself,
Hema: Of course Bhairav g I and Malini will do our work. We will make her beautiful shemale.Don't worry after transformation we will take her with u with in 1 months.
Then Kanti behen and Bhairav went outside away and then Hema and Malini started transforming Rishabh into Radhika.
ramya (Monday, 12 September 2016 01:45)
kajal hi im a straight guy but just get relaxed by reading the cd stories only cd and among all the others on the net u got some sensibility of close to life reality stories so pls allow me to read your stories
Deepak (Monday, 12 September 2016 05:58)
Ex-q-zit,
Ur muslim girl story is super... but seems incomplete after marriage... I have expected more dominance from salman on Asifa... and expected satwika to come back for revange ... but he should became 2nd wife (the modren wife) to Salman. Include more sex and romance... Keep writing... keep it up.
ex-q-zit (Monday, 12 September 2016 07:26)
Hi Deepak,
Even I thought of making Sathwika Salmans 2nd wife. But so ready the story was lengthy do I spotted it at that.
Thanks
Shalma (Monday, 12 September 2016 08:01)
Monisha Part 2 (Continued from #96)
-----------------------------------------------
Thanks for the valuable comments.
I worn that navel stud. I got confused after wearing that stud. because, how I am going to face the life with this stud. I just seen my navel in the mirror. Its so cute with that stud. Shalma noticed, what I am doing infront of the mirror and she teased me. I got shy and I hided my navel with t-shirt.
Next day, we both met in cafeteria and we are having cofee together. At that time, she asked me whether I am still wearing stud or not. I said, I am wearing. But she wants to check whether its there or not. She put her hand in the gap between the 2 buttons and she touched the navel stud. And she is happy as I am wearing that stud still. She told me to not to remove that at any situation. I promised her.
She wants to check everyday whether I am wearing or not. I am wearing top inner wear called banian inside the shirt. But she dont like that banian. she cant able to touch the stud directly because of that banian. So, I informed her, I will not wear banian from tomorrow onwards like that. But she told, you have to wear the top innerwear. But it should be upto your navel. I asked her, whether any kind of inner is there like that. she told yes and we will purchase today evening. I just said ok to her.
SRS (Monday, 12 September 2016 11:25)
Shalma nice, its completely different than another stories. please continue.
mithra (Monday, 12 September 2016 12:05)
Shalma going very nice eager to read nxt part
Jay (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 05:26)
Pooja shalma pl continue
Kumkum (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 06:33)
Salma really nice story. Please post more parts.
Shalma (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 07:59)
Monisha Part 3 (Continued from Part #105)
------------------------------------------
Thanks for the valuable comments..
In the evening, she called me and she reminded me as we need to go for shopping. I said ok and I informed her I will be in the office reception in 5 minutes. She is waiting for me in the reception and we both started from there. We went to one unisex shop. First time, I am going to that shop and its a very big one. She said, they are selling only unisex dresses.
We went directly to inner wear section. Whole one floor, inner wear only it was there. so many types of inner wears were there. She asked me the my banian size. I said its medium size. She asked the salesgirl in the floor, we need small size top inner wear and It should be upto navel only. I asked to Shalma about small size because I am using medium size only. She said, medium size is not fit for you. Try small size, if its not good then lets see like that she told.
Salesgirl shown some inner wears which was in cotton material and she told these are all sort camisole and it will come upto navel only. While seeing that inner wear, its too small. I dont know, whether it will fit for me or not. And length also too sort. Salma asked her to show some satin type transparent inner wear. Salesgirl shown gold color satin type inner. Salma took that inner and put it on my shirt and she said it looks nice and it is too good for you.
Salma asked me to try that it in the trial room. I just took the cloth and went inside the trial room. Salma also came along with me. I asked her to wait outside. But she didnt go outside. I removed my shirt and banian. I am standing infront of salma with half nude. She seen my upper body and said wow. I am not having any hair in my body. She liked that and she told you are having perfect slim body with no transe of hair. Superb and I like you very much like that she told.
Please post comments on which knot you are liking from this part. It will encourage me to write more.
sudha (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 08:00)
nisha pooja salma pls continue ur stories are really gud
Jay (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 08:58)
Shalma pl continue
Puneet (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 11:48)
Salma super story plz write fast I am waiting to read
mithra (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 12:07)
Awesome shalma wtite more parts
mansi (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 13:04)
Kajal maam pls send me invitation to read ur stories pls i m big fan of ur stories
Pls
Kumkum (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 14:52)
Amazing writing salma please continue. Nisha , pooja , mohini... All please continue your stories.
Ashu (Tuesday, 13 September 2016 14:55)
Salma plz continue Your super cool story. Don't stop.i am
Enjoying Your story very much.all the best.
Shalma (Wednesday, 14 September 2016 08:11)
Monisha Part 4 (Continued from #110)
------------------------------------
I worn that camisole with the help of Shalma in the trial room. It is perfectly fitting for me. Shalma is too happy and she hugged me and she said, its too good for you. In this inner, you are so superb like that she wished me. I just seen me in the mirror in trial room. It is exactly coming above my navel. and It is fitting perfectly.
Because of the correct tight fitness of camisole, my chest is exposing like small boob. Shalma also noticed that one and she teased me like a booby guy. I got shy and I put hands on my chest. She said, I like you very much. I liked your attidude and I love you so much like she praised me.
I got confused, How I am going to go to office wearing this like that and I asked her. She said, you are going to wear inside the shirt only. So no one is going to see that. And atlast, she convinced me. And after that, I tried to remove that camisole. She stopped me and she told don't remove. from now onwards, you have to wear this inner wear only. We can pay for this like that she told. I also said ok to her. We came outside from trial room.
Salma informed to salesgirl, that gold color camisole is perfect fit. So, please show the same size satin camisole in different colors. Salme picked dark red, pink and light blue satin camisoles and already I am wearing golden color camisole. So totally four camisoles, she selected.
Salesgirl informed to shalma, if you buy one more camisole, you can get 2 panties with free of cost. Salma got excited and she picked one more dark grey color satin camisole. Salma asked the small size satin panty to salesgirl. She shown some of the panties. Salma picked golden color and dark red color panty which is matching for the camisole. I thought the panty is for her thats why she is not asking my size like that.
After selecting the panty, salma asked me whether you like these 2 panties. I said, these 2 are good for you. Salma told, hey these two are for you only. you only going to wear these two like shalma told to me. I got tensed, how I will wear panty. panty is for girls only naa. Salma got sad after hearing my words and she said ok. let us leave now like that she said. After that, I said sorry to shalma and hereafter I will not make u sad. I will do whatever u said like that I promised to Shalma. She got happy while hearing those words from me and She said I like you very much. I love u so much.
Please post more comments. As it will encourage me to write more parts.
SRS (Wednesday, 14 September 2016 09:12)
shalma ur simply awesome, please continue pleseeeee
mithra (Wednesday, 14 September 2016 12:35)
Shalma really superb story i loved it
Chameli (Wednesday, 14 September 2016 13:28)
Shamal
Very nice story, please write more and post fast please
SRS (Wednesday, 14 September 2016 13:29)
"fashion part 3 from 810 engcom 15-16
At that time my aunt got a call from her phone an she was shocked on hearing that an after she started to cry,i asked her what happened an she cant able to tell instead she was crying a lot after few minutes i took her phone an dialed last no an asked what is the problem an i too get shocked on hearing the news. They told that due to short circuit our company an business is catch up fire an i too shocked an i told that dint worry aunt v will claim the insurance but she told due to money crises she dint pay the insure an now v dint know what to do at that time my 3 Gf told that if they want they could help an for that v have to me them 50% partnership then they will take care of everything , on hearing that my aunt was happy an told to sing me i too dint think about only thing to get rid of this problem and i do as per the contract an after she smiled an told to get relax an they give a room in hotel so that they will clean the repair which is caused in my house an told to join from next month. our everything was destroyed includes cloths now v r staying in hotel. From next day i started to join in company, yet v dint have house right now so v stay in hotel for few days, i dint have dress so i sold my bike an bought some dress to go for company.Next day i woke up get ready for company, i wore a jeans an formal shirt, my hair is up to my shoulder an i felt sad about that an on seeing that my aunt told that y cant u put ponytail cause its usual for boys having that an she took rubber band an put low ponytail an i start to go by bus. after when i reach the office every girl start to see me cause am the only guy over there, they told my post in the company its a data entry operator but i felt anger for giving me such low post for my qualification, an this went for few days, what ever it is i showed my best in my work an i started to become macho guy, an i always tease girls for there weakness , i grow big mustache like mangal panday, i used to start wearing tight jeans an on seeing the girls i get rock hard an girls started to notice my bulge, many like it an some not. 1 day i was doing work an i went to took a coffee from machine an that time 1 girl put the document paper in the floor an i dint help her for picking it up but instead i went back to her an started to rub her butt through my bulge , the girl like it she dint tell anything but my gf who is the MD of the company saw this an call me inside the room an warned me , i told if any girl complained about this than u can take action other wise u dint need to warn me an y ur so jealous about that an i came out of that room an saying that , this make her angry. 1 day there was going a board meeting about the growth of the company i just went inside to know what was going on an there all talking about to inverts a money in another company so that they can get a profit an they r lill bit confuse for which company they can ponscer an at that time i just went inside an i was laughing an told for so many years ur working but u all dint able to guess which 1 is best r not such a waste an at that time 1 girl told mr if u can do it then do it other wise just shut up, after i chose few company but they dint want to take risk an i told what u only ask for then y u r afraid an after long discus they have been agreed an by my luck what ever i told about the company everything was get success an in short time i become popular but thus my boss dint like it. After i become popular they discuses an increased my salary from 30k to 80k an given the post of manager an i was too happy an i got a car an separate cabin , in my under there also a secretary working its was so happy but they r all planing to get me down. 1 day my secretary came in an gave me a coffee an by accidentally she spilled the coffee in my pants an she took the tissue paper an started to clean on doing that when she touch i got hard an she saw that an smiled an she suddenly took open the jip an suck my cock it was awesome now this become routine, i became the chockalte boy in my office but my 3 boss is jealous an she dint like this, even i used to ponser the company who r all only female owner an have a sex with them. After few months complete my house is still in under process an i earn a lot with side income an now bank balance is more than 20 lack.
SRS (Wednesday, 14 September 2016 13:30)
"fashion part 4
1 day a rich female owner come to know that i was doing the same to all of the female owner an had a sex so every company female owner joined an come to suggestion that they will not pay the signal amount to my company so that my company will get loss an they will through me out. But this and all i dint know. after a weak i got a call from my boss an when i entered in the boss cabin i saw my 3 gf which r the boss of the company is sitting an they r angry but i dint care i just went inside an they never told me to sit but i do an done like a macho an tough they told that i believed in u an put a risk but for few weak the payment is not coming what happens an i told that its happens man from starting u have earned a lot an this the first time they payment delay an u have to believe me cause u woman cant do anything except dressing like a whore an on saying that i leve from the cabin an they r angry an priya told to divya better through him out of the company an divya told that can be happen cause v have inverts a lot for his plan ya but what about his behavior is worst he even dint respect us if continue this than everyone will not respect us at that time Ramaya told look at his dress an beard an hair if u say yes than i will grab his hair an make him blad an divya told if u did like that an that too he will consider as a style, then priya told what if v do instead of making him blad v completely shave his beard an mus touch an oiled his long hair make it tight bun an put a jasmine flower than he will not consider as style by saying this 2 of them started to laugh an told but who v can do this an priya told i have an idea about this let him go.this went another month an again they called an this time also i behave harsh an they too shout i i told that if u dint like then i will quit from here on saying this they shout u busted v inverts on u an u singed a contract v r now 60% major partner of ur aunt company an v through u out in jail for black money an bribe an v have so many complainant about ur harassment an here u go for jail an ur aunt come to road did u want this ? i was shocked on hearing this an she through 1 document to me an told that here is the rules if u dint wan to do this to ur aunt .no 1( if u dint got the payment in every weak then u have to loose any 2 item from ur manhood that will be either permanent r temper very) No 2. ( this changes will cost by ur own) no 3 ( u did not to tell anybody about this that includes ur aunt) No 4( an for every weak if u dint get the payment u have to loss ur position in this company untill for the last an basic post). These r the condition an agreement if u agree this then its good other wise just 1 phone call v will send u to the jail an through ur aunt in the middle of the road. I was scared about this my entire color in my face was drain i dont know what to do.
SriRamya (Wednesday, 14 September 2016 15:01)
Hi raji balan, I would like to contact you about crossdressing. Discuss like friends..please mail me at sriramyanishapriya@gmail.com
Radha (Wednesday, 14 September 2016 22:09)
Superb story add more humiliations.
Sanju (Thursday, 15 September 2016 04:37)
Nice start Salma waiting for next part...
SANJU (Thursday, 15 September 2016 05:26)
After a long gap starting a story..hope all will like it....
Sanju..1
Life was all fun for sanju he is a successful fashion designer..happily married to Shweta for more than a year...life was going good..one fine day he got sad news that his father in law passed away shweta was broken and he took care of in laws family & wife..His in laws remaining family is of all ladies his mother in law, her daughter who is not married and daughter in law who is widow..Hence sanju has to do all the rituals and take care of all of them..
Shalma (Thursday, 15 September 2016 08:03)
Monisha Part 5 (Continued from #118)
-------------------------------------
Thanks SRS, Mithra, Kumkum, Puneet, Ashu and Chameli for your valuable comments.
Salma told that whatever I am doing that is for our comfort and happiness only. I will not do anything against about you. I
love you so much. I will make you to feel more happy and I will show you the different world with full of happiness like
that she told. I said I love you so much and hugged her there itself.
We paid the amout for the camisoles and we left from shop. Salma started the two wheeler and I just sat beside her and my
both the legs are one sided. Salma teased me like why you are sitting like a girl. She asked me to sit like two sided
legs.She drove very fast. She put sudden break in a speed breaker. because of that, I hugged her hip suddenly. She stopped
the two wheeler and she turned and saw my face in an anger.
I said sorry Salma because of that sudden break only I kept my hand there. She pulled my left hand to her shoulder and she
pulled right hand infront of her stomach. And she said, Sit comfirtably and you are my lover. unknowingly my fingers
roaming her navel above her dress.It gives a superb feel for me. My room came and she stopped the two wheeler. I get down
from two wheeler. She said she enjoyed my touch and she wants more from me like this. I said I also liked these moments and
I got shy. We just both hugged and said bye. And she left from there.
I just went inside the home and I removed my shirt. Golden color camishole is shining like a star. I just feel its too
comfort and it gives something superb feel. I seen me in mirror. My shape is clearly visible in that camisole. I was
touching my body above that camisole and it gives superb feel.
My chest is exposing like a boob and I can able to see my nipples shape also in that camisole. I really like it and I am
enjoying by touching my chest and nipples.That camisole is too light cloth. While touching the camisole itself, I can able
to feel the sensation. It gives good immense feel. In that camisole, my navel is fully visible. In my navel, stud is there. While seeing me in that dress with navel stud, I feel like I am so sexy and I got shy.
Once shalma reached home, she given a call to me. She said she was very much enjoying those moments in the two wheeler. She
can't able to come out from those moments and it gives full of happiness like that she told me. And she wants to show the
same feeling to me also in future like that she told. I said love u dear and thank you so much to her. We chit chatted all
the things happened today for an hour in mobile.
I didnt change the camisole in the night. I slept by wearing camisole itself. I got a good sleep after a long time. I thought because of this camisole only. I took the bath next day morning and I came out by wearing towel only. I opened the shopping bag which was purchased yesterday. In that, I took the red camisole and I just worn that. For bottom innerwear, I just searched in my cupboard. After that only, I thought I have a panty for me in the same color. So I took the red panty and I worn. I just removed my towel and I seen my whole body in mirror. I feel like I am a sexy guy in that dress. It gives good feel. I seen my full body shape in that dress. Red panty fits me very well. That material gives superb feel. While touching itself, I got some sensation feel. Nearly half an hour I enjoyed me in front of mirror.
Please post more comments. As it will encourage me to write more parts.
Kumkum (Thursday, 15 September 2016 12:03)
Enjoying your story very much dear. Making of sensation story I guess. But because of teasing only Plz post quickly other wise flow gets ruined.
mansi (Thursday, 15 September 2016 12:34)
Nice story salma
Srs (Thursday, 15 September 2016 13:36)
Salman u mentioned that he had a long hair, y can't you do something about that.
Salma (Thursday, 15 September 2016 19:55)
Hi
@kumkum, Thank you so much. I really liked your comments. I will post stories as early as possible.
@srs, thanks for your suggession. I have a idea about that. I will write.
@mansi, Thank you mansi
Regards
Shalma
Salma (Thursday, 15 September 2016 23:48)
Monisha Part 6 (Continued from #128)
-----------------------------------
I went to office in the morning by wearing camisole and panty inside my shirt & pant. I am having so much of work and I was deep in my work. Around 11am, salma pinged me and she asked shall we go for a walk in a garden. There is a garden in our office. I said ok and I came to reception at that time itself. She is also there in the reception. We both went to garden. There we both are walking slowly by chitchatting.
Salma is taller than me. She is around 6 feet and I am 5.5feet only. So she put hand in my shoulder and walking with me. She slowly put her hand inside my shirt in my shoulder and her hands are moving inside while walking. I am just thinking what she is doing and after she said I just checked whether the camisole is there or not. It is there. I am happy like that she told.
And after that, She put her hand in my hip. On that day, I didn't inshirt my shirt. So her hands slowly moving inside and her hands are touching my camisole and it gives superb feel. I got shy and took her hand from me. I just ran from there. She chased me and she hugged me from behind. No one was there in the garden. Salma removed 2 buttons in the top of my shirt. And she was rubbing my chest from behind. I was not in a sense and I am just enjoying her touches. Salma is pinching my nipples above my camisole. I got sense and I came out from her. I liked her touches very much. I got shy and put my buttons. Salma asked hope you are wearing panty also. I said yes and its too comfort for me. I really liked it. After sometime, we left from garden and we went inside the office.
In the evening, Shalma pinged me and she is planning to leave now and she is having some work near by my area. So she is going on the way to my home. So, She asked me to come with her. I also left at that time itself with her. We both left from office in her two wheeler. She drove fastly. My hairs are flowing in hair and she seen this in mirror. And she stopped there itself and she said your hairs are flowing and it will damage your hair. She told we have to do something for this. She said let me think on this and I will inform you after sometime like that she said and started the two wheeler.
She dropped me near my room and she asked me to come to her home tomorrow because tomorrow is weekend. And in the next day morning, I had a good bath and I worn golden color camisole and same color panty. I liked that golden color so I worn that set inside my jean and tshirt. And @11am I went to Salma's home. She is watching TV in her home. She greeted me and I am also sitting with her to watch tv.
While watching TV, I said my hairs are disturbing. Its flowing near my eyes oftenly and its disturbing very much. So I am planning to cut my hair like that I told to Shalma. She said, for this reason and all who will cut the hair. Then how the girls are growing hairs upto hip. Even nowadays boys also growing hairs. I asked her what is the solution for this. She went inside her room and she bring the headband and she said this is the solution for this. Nowadays so many guys also wearning this. In our office itself, some of the guys are wearing na. I said ya and I seen so many guys in our office itself. She put that headband in my hair and hairs are not coming in front now. She said she likes my hair very much and she asked me to dont cut ur hair. I given a promise I will not cut my hair.
I am watching TV and she went inside and bring the coffee for me. I am watching TV and I didnt take the coffee cup properly. because of that, it is splitted on my dress. She asked me to remove my dresses. So that she will give it for wash otherwise those stains will not go like that she told. I asked to give some other alternate dress. She said first give me those dresses. I am having a dress for you like that she told.
Please post more comments. It will encourage me to write more parts.
alone 133 (Friday, 16 September 2016 00:24)
Great going Salma.. Can't wait to read the rest..
Pooja, we are waiting for your story equally..
Srs (Friday, 16 September 2016 00:43)
Salma thanks for including the hair part, and ur updates r super fast really thanks a lot.
Shalma (Friday, 16 September 2016 04:11)
Hi All,
I have posted my story (Monisha) from part 1 to part 6 in my fb page.
My fb id link is
https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5
Please like my story and give valuable comments.
Regards
Shalma
Kumkum (Friday, 16 September 2016 05:59)
Nice update again.keep it up sweetheart. Your story is so exciting.
mithra (Friday, 16 September 2016 06:02)
Awesome shalma i felt very happy while reading ur story
Shalma (Friday, 16 September 2016 07:20)
Monisha Part 7 (Continued from #133)
------------------------------------
Thanks Priya, Shathya & Kumkum for your valuable comments.
I went inside one room in her house and I removed my shirt and pant. And I asked her the alternate dress for me. She asked me to come her outside then only I will give dresses to you like that she told. I said I will not come outside. She requested me to see me in the new innerwear. I asked her to come inside the room. She came inside and I hided my body by using one towel in that room.
She came inside and removed that towel and thrown it outside. Now I was in camisole and panty exposing my navel infront of my lover. I got shy and I hided my face with hands. She was stunned while seeing me in that dressed. She said I am maintaining my body perfectly. She likes me very much. She teased me as I am having good shape. She came near me and she touched my navel and suddenly I got some sensation and I hugged her.
She said I am so sexy in that dress. she requested me to stand in some sexy pose. For fun, I also given some sexy pose. she taken picture of those poses in her camera. We seen those poses in her camera and it came very sexy. Salma said pictures and all it came good but we need to some touch up to make this poses into excellent sexy pose.
I am sitting in Guest room and she went to her room and bring some makeup products. At that time, My mind says I wants to give a best pose. So that whatever salma said I just accepted. She sat near me and she put Kajal and eye liner to my eyes. And she tried to increase my eye brow thickness by using kajal pencil. And also she put false eye lashes to my eyes and she put mascara.
Salma took deep red color lipstick and she put it to my lips and for shining, she put something to my lip. I just seen my face in the mirror. My eyes are so gorgeous and its like heroine's eye. And my lips are so sexy. Those things made me into sexy mood. I am just wearing sort camisole upto my navel and shining golden panty. That sexy mood make me to give more sexy poses in that attire. I given so many sexy poses. She captured so many photos.She asked for some bed poses also. I given those sexy poses also. I liked all those things.
As per Salma instructions, I have given 30 different poses near wall, near mirror and in bed. Salma captured all the poses in her camera. If any poses are not came properly, she asked me to give a pose once again and she took those poses perfectly. She wants something more and for that, she put table fans in the table in my both the sides and my hairs already loose free hair only. It is coming below my shoulder. She started those table fans with full speed. She asked me to give poses now and my hairs are flowing in the hair and I am giving too sexy poses. Those poses and all came very well and Salma satisfied with those poses. While seeing those poses in camera, its too sexy.
I was so hungry and I asked her about lunch. She also having hungry. She said, she will buy lunch for us from outside. Meanwhile she asked me to have head bath. She given some lotion for my hair and for my body. I went inside bathroom and I had a good bath and came outside by wearing towel in my hip. She forgot to keep dresses for me in the room. So I was sitting in towel dress only. She came after thirty minutes. I asked her why u forgot to keep dresses for me and I am wearing only towel for more than 15 minutes. She said, I did purposefuly only and I have a plan to dress up for you.
Please like this story in my fb id (https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5) and write more comments.
Ritu (Friday, 16 September 2016 09:25)
Shalma your story is nice. GARDEN PART of the previous post was extremely good. Slow feminisation is good, keep some Twinkling moments like the garden part. And please keep posting. Dont stop like the other busy writers.
Kashmiraa (Friday, 16 September 2016 09:31)
PUJA, SHALMA , NISHA , MOHINI , SRS .... Thanks for keeping the page alive with your lovely contributions. Puja , Nisha both had tremendous potential stories, but stopped now... Salma giving quick updates , that's great. Few more writers are also trying to contribute, deseve application.
Kumkum (Friday, 16 September 2016 09:33)
Super story Shalma . You are a great writer.
Srs (Friday, 16 September 2016 13:48)
Salma please make him priced ear and nose and don't stop thanks a lot for quick updates
Heena (Friday, 16 September 2016 23:33)
Salma make him pierce nose
Nidhi Shah (Saturday, 17 September 2016 02:12)
what a story salma. keep it up
vasantha (Saturday, 17 September 2016 03:04)
salama story nice pa pls continue pa
Shalma (Saturday, 17 September 2016 03:48)
Monisha Part8 (Continued from #139)
----------------------------------------
Thanks Ritu, Kumkum, Srs, Heena and Nidhi shaa.
I am wearing only towel and I was asking some dresses to shalma because its too chill. She gives her night dress which is having satin pant and satin top and she said wear these and we will have a lunch and after that I will do a dress up for you and we will have one more phtoshoot.
While eating lunch, I asked her about her cooking skill. She repeated same to me. I said I know cooking but not that much. She wants me to learn cooking and she wants I have to be expert in cooking. I said for time pass I did cooking. Salma knows one aunty and she is expert in cooking. She said she will speak with her about teaching cooking for me. She requested me to learn cooking. I said ok because I dont want to make sad her. So I just accepted.
After having lunch, Salma asked me to come inside her bed room. She asked me to remove the night dress which I am wearing and she gives dark red panty to me to wear. I worn that red panty and sitting in her bed. She asked me to sit in the dressing table. This time she put heavy thick dark lipstick to me. And she put mascara, eyeliner to my eyes and eyebrows.
And after that, She took one satin black color cloth and she tied that cloth above my eyes. Now I cant able to see anything. I asked her why you have tied my eyes. She said for photoshoot purpose only I tied that cloth in ur eyes. That cloth also gives a romantic attire for you. She took a push up bra and put it on me. I am not aware, she is keeping bra on me because my eyes are tied with cloth. With a romantic touch, she put bra hooks on me. It made me to go to the romantic mood.
She changed my navel stud. Previously I was wearing Pearl stud. She took one dangling navel ring and put it in my navel. While I am walking, It is moving and it is making me crazy. Her fingers are making me so romantic. She is behind me and her hands are going inside the bra and she is rubbing my chest. It made me heaven. In that mood, I given so many romantic poses in that attire itself. I am wearing bra and panty only. But I am not aware I am wearing those dresses only. Without knowing what I am wearing, I have given so many poses. She took each and every poses in her camera.
Shalma (Saturday, 17 September 2016 03:49)
Monisha Part 8 Continued
------------------------------
After finishing the photoshoot, she didnt remove the cloth from my eyes. She removed that pushup bra and she put her red camisole on me. And after that only, She removed that cloth from my eyes. I asked her, which dress I worn in the photoshoot. She didnt tell what I have worn in the photoshoot and also she didnt show me the pictures also.
I have seen me in the mirror. Her red camisole also coming upto my navel only. My navel is clearly visible. And In my navel, dangling ring is there. Its too so cute. I liked it. But I just said to shalma, pls I dont want this. Please put stud itself. But she wants, I have to wear that dangling ring only. At last, I accepted and I just seen the wall clock and it was around 6pm in the evening. So I asked her, I have to leave now. She said ok and she gives my dresses and I worn those dresses and I left from her home on that day.
Next day is sunday. So I thought to have a long sleep. And I reached room and I removed my shirt. And that dangling ring is making me too shy. Next day morning, salma called me and asked me to come to her home for cooking class appointment, we have to meet her aunt.I had a bath and I went to Salma home. We both went to her aunt home.
Her Aunt name is Khusboo. She is staying alone in her home. because her husband is working in foreign. We went inside Salma's aunt home. She greeted us. I thought her aunt will be aged person like that. But she is so young. Salma requested her aunt to teach cooking for me. She said, nowadays I am not teaching anyone. But I am searching a maid for me who will help me in cooking and cleaning the house.
Salma just thought for a minute and she said to her aunt that Monish will work as a maid in your home. Her aunt said, I am so strict and I want a perfect work from my maid. If anything is wrong, I will get tense and I will give a punishment for my maid. Aunt asked if you are fine for this, then I can appoint you as my maid. Shalma called me separately and said just accept it. And she said I want to show best in cooking. So she convinced me to accept it.
I said ok to Khusboo aunt but I said I dont know cooking. She said I will teach you everything about cooking, cleaning house and washing dresses.And also she said daily 2 hours in the morning from 6am to 8am I have to work. She will provide food for morning and afternoon and she will pay 2000Rs as salary. But if you are not listening or not doing properly whatever I am saying, I will give you a punishment like that she told. I said ok for that and I am going to work in Khusboo aunt home from tomorrow morning.
Please like this story in my fb id (https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5) and write more comments.
Amutha Valli (Saturday, 17 September 2016)
Shalma your story is awesome, please right more with some humiliation scenes
Jay (Saturday, 17 September 2016 06:21)
Nice plot shlama. Slowly feminisation is best. Keep it up.and thanks for writing
Jay (Saturday, 17 September 2016 08:30)
Shalma if possible pl made fingering of boy.
shilpa (Saturday, 17 September 2016 15:55)
@pooja:what a story dear...
after many days i have read such beautiful story....
plz plz plz continue.. so exciting and beautiful story...
archana (Saturday, 17 September 2016 16:07)
@ shalma: very nice story...
but according to me. dont add anyone in cding story..
lets be cding between them only.
Cding is very private thing..
and exciting..
Rashmi Patel (Saturday, 17 September 2016 21:40)
Shalma your story is awesome
Srs (Sunday, 18 September 2016 05:25)
Salma remember to make him always force and that should be against him without his willing, please concentrate in his hair to make girly it would be great.
Pooja where r u (Sunday, 18 September 2016 08:06)
Pooja please comeback we are waiting for your great story's continuation
Kumkum (Sunday, 18 September 2016 13:11)
Shalma great writing going on. Keep it up dear
Ritu (Sunday, 18 September 2016 13:13)
Such a nicely written story , Shalma please don't stop , we are waiting for more and more.
payal (Monday, 19 September 2016 13:11)
Riya plz complete ur story amir to amina
Shalma (Monday, 19 September 2016 21:09)
Monisha Part 9 (Continued from #148)
-------------------------------------
Thank you all for great comments.
I woke up on monday morning. I had a bath and got ready. And I went to khusboo aunt house @6am sharp. Aunt invited me inside. She shown her house hall and after that kitchen. Kitchen is so neat and clean. And She showed each and every room of her house. Aunt asked me how is the house and I replies its so beautiful, neat and very clean.
Aunt asked me to take care of the house same like this now onwards. And she agreed to help for this. If Its not clean, then she said she will give punishment for me. And after that, we went to kitchen. So many vessels are there in the wash basin. She asked me to wash all those vessesls. She explained how to wash a vessel properly. And after that, I washed all the vessels. It took half an hour time. She checked the washed vessels and some of the vessels are not cleaned properly. She asked me to do it with proper care from next time onwards.
Aunt called me to her bedroom. Aunt kept several clothes in bed and she said these clothes are washed yesterday and she was not folded and put it in her cup board. So she asked me to fold those clothes and she asked me to put it in her cupboard. Aunt took one saree from that and she given to me to fold that saree. That saree is so soft and silky. Without folding the saree, my hands are touching each and everywhere of that saree. Aunt asked me about what i am doing. After that only I realized and I folded the saree. But I dont know why I did like that. I have not folded the saree properly. She taught me to fold the saree.
Some of the sarees are too transparent and so silky. While touching those sarees, it gives nice sensation to me. Her blouses are so modern with lots of design and deep neck. Some of the blouses are sleevless and some of them are half sleeve with transparent cloth. All of the blouses are so superb. Aunt bras also so modern. most of the bras are so silky, satin type and also transparent bras. around more than half an hour I took to fold all of her dresses and put it on her cupboard.
Aunt asked me to wash her dresses every sunday and she asked me to wash her inners alone everyday. Her inners are in bathroom and I went inside the bathroom. Pink color panty and satin bra is hanging there. I took those things and washed those things. While touching those inners, it gives a superb feel. I came out from bathroom and my dresses are wet. But I have to go to office with this dress only. But its too wet.
Aunt suggested me to have a bath in her house and get readied to office in her home itself from tomorrow. I got fear, while hearing this. because, I am wearing camisole and navel ring inside. If I am having bath in her house, she may get noticed. I got fear because of this. I returned to my room and change the dress and I went to office.
one hour late to office because of wet dress and I got scold from my manager. So, I planned to get ready in aunt home itself. In coffee break, I met Shalma. Shalma asked me about the maid work in aunt house. I just said, I cleaned vessels, I folded her dresses and I washed her clothes like that. I didnt express my sensations and all to her. Otherwise she will teaseme or she may do something to me like that I thought and I didnt say those things to her. But I am having a fear inside, how i am going to face aunt with camisole and navel ring. And also, why i felt like that while touching those dresses. I just confused because of those feelings and I didn't do work properly in office and I got scold from my managers.
Next day morning, I kept my pant, shirt and camisole & panty in one bag and I went with that bag to aunt house. I went to wash vessels. While washing vessels, my hairs came front and it was disturbing me oftenly. Aunt noticed that one and she put hair clip to my hair and she said it will not disturb you now. But I said, aunt please I dont want hair clip. Because I am a boy. But Aunt said who is there here. you and me only are there and also your hair is disturbing you. thats why I put hair clip on you. If you are not keeping, you can't work properly. So you must keep the hair clip while doing work like that aunt said. And atlast I just accepted.
Please like this story in my fb id (https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5) and write more comments.
vasantha (Tuesday, 20 September 2016 02:57)
Monisha pls continue your story very super pa
Srs (Tuesday, 20 September 2016)
Salma while u telling about the hair it's getting interesting. Please continue
Hari as hema (Tuesday, 20 September 2016 20:16)
Hi SRS im big fan of you please continue ur stories im dyng to read yours please post in eng and tamil too
kavi (Wednesday, 21 September 2016 00:38)
Monisha very superb...eagerly waiting for next part
Srs (Wednesday, 21 September 2016 11:44)
Hari iam really happy that after so long still i got 1fan for me, please wait i will continue soon
guru (Wednesday, 21 September 2016 11:54)
i have read all stories of you it was awsome plz contine Shalma goooooooooooooooooooooooooooooood and awsome friend
Hari as hema (Wednesday, 21 September 2016 20:34)
Please make soon as posible
rajesh (Thursday, 22 September 2016 00:13)
hi guys i am rajesh i crossed with my sister its big story i complete afterwards now i want ur help to grow my hair up to hip i want the reason to tell my family so pls tell ur suggestion & ideas pls dont tell vow because i am not religious person so easy caught if i told that...so pls give idea...
Kajal's Big Fan (Thursday, 22 September 2016 00:44)
Hi friends I am big fan of Kajal and her stories. I got link of her personal fb page. here I am sharing with you. guys
https://www.facebook.com/kajal.kapoor.1426
pooja (Thursday, 22 September 2016 20:23)
Hai I read some beautiful stories from "Shilpabindanicrossdresser.blogspot.in" That is very realistic and heart touching stories . So Plz read these stories. you will also like these stories...
Jay (Friday, 23 September 2016 08:02)
Hey have heard abt Gaurav Arora???
Ritu (Friday, 23 September 2016 09:30)
Yes I saw post about gaurav Arora... Now gauri arora
aj (Saturday, 24 September 2016 05:55)
well gauri arora looks beautiful
Ritu (Saturday, 24 September 2016 08:51)
Gauri Arora is like goddess
ash (Saturday, 24 September 2016 09:00)
gaurav has such nice legs
rajesh (Saturday, 24 September 2016 10:13)
Hi. My name is Sunil and i am 30 years old. Last month i had to go to a official trip to pondicherry. My company provided me a beach resort. My room was very big and the balcony was facing the beach.
I finished my work early so i still had 4 days to spend in this city. I went to a bar in the evening. I was having my drinks when i saw a girl entered the bar wearing jeans a top. The top was little short exposing her belly button. She was fair in complexion and a nice well toned body and very beautiful. I could not take my eyes of her. Soon after getting her drink she looked here and there and started coming towards me. She said if she can sit here. Well how i could say no to her.
After few sips she asked me about myself and i told her how i have 4 days time to roam here. She said she can give me company for 4 days but she will charge money for that. I suddenly was taken back. I said “O so you are a slut”. She immediately stared at me and replied “i think you should learn how to respect a girl”. I said i am sorry. she said i can call her a call girl or escort but better if i call her by her name Sunaina. She asked me if I have got any place. I told her my resort is there and no body knows me there so we can go.
We entered my room. she was really impressed by the resort and was very happy to see the view from balcony. She was carrying a bag with her. I asked what is there inside the bag. She said i will come to know soon. Then she asked me to take a bath. As i took my towel and was about to move she said what are you doing. will you take bath in these clothes. I said no then she said take of the clothes here only and go. I smiled at her. I started taking off my clothes in front of her. My shirt, pants and vest.
Now i was in underwear only. She was smiling at me. She said look at your body fair slim smooth curvy hairless body just like girls. You have got girlish body. Hearing this some current went inside me and my dick suddenly jerked. She noticed that. Her smile became very broad. She oh look at that. You liked it when i called you a girl. You like being treated as a girl? and she blinked at me. I got very embarrassed and just looked down and nodded my head in no. She said “Ahh look at that you are even blushing like a girl”. The tent in my underwear was rising now which she noticed.
rajesh (Saturday, 24 September 2016 10:13)
I immediately wrapped the towel around me and took off my underwear and threw it on bed along with my other clothes. She suddenly said “Hey are you going to take bath in towel.No na. Then take it off too and winked again at me”. I smiled and went inside bathroom without taking off the towel. Then i opened the door little bit and my hand came out holding the towel and threw it at her. She started laughing loudly and came to the bathroom door and asked me what are you wearing darling? I replied back “Nothing”. she replied “Means?” . I said “Main nanga hun” (I am naked as in male). She laughed and replied “Nanga nahi nangi ho tum” (you are naked as in female).
After my bath i called her “Sunaina please hand me my clothes” . She came and handed me the clothes from a small gap in the door which i opened. I was shocked to see the clothes. It was a one small girls teddy and a padded bra and a backless thong the one which only has a thread on the back. I asked her what is this where are my clothes? She replied “These are your clothes only”. I said what is this joke give my clothes. She said “If you dont want then give them back and stay like that. You are getting this or nothing. Your choice”. I knew i dont have any option now. So i wore those clothes and saw myself in the mirror. I was shocked. I was looking just like a girl. The dress was hardly reaching my thighs and from top it only had straps and the bra straps were visible.
I slowly came out of the bathroom trying to pull the dress down a bit. She saw me in that state and started laughing loudly. She was pointing a finger at me and was continuously laughing. Then she said “How are you feeling standing in such a short sexy dress in front of a fully dressed girl. Well now this is what i call… A SLUT!” . I immediately looked at her hearing that word. She said “Yes baby now i will teach you what a slut is.Now for next four days you are not Sunil but Rani.
Now Rani move your hands above head and make a 360 degress turn. And make sure you turn very fast like a dance move”. I begged her please return my clothes. She said if you want your clothes then do what she is saying. I raised my hand and made a very fast turn. But that made the dress go up in air exposing my thong and ass. She laughed so loudly and said “Wow look at that. You have got such a beautiful girlish ass. It is so much fuckable”. I was getting red in embarrrassed. Then she ordered me to go and turn towards the wall. The she asked me to put my hands on the wall and bend. As i did that the dress rid up exposing my ass to her. She was still laughing.
She went and sat on the sofa just behind me so that she can get clear view of my ass. Then suddenly my heard dropped a beat when i heard a click sound. I turned and another click sound. She was holding her mobile and taking my pics. I begged her and she ordered me to go back to my position or she will leave me like that and all my clothes are locked and she has the key. I had no option so i turned back and she went to her mobile. 10 minutes went like that and she was laughing loudly after every few moments and when i turned to see she was doing something on mobile and laughing.
She then got up and came to me and said “You know what is the difference between a call girl and a slut”. I nodded no. She said “The call girl do everything secretly but the slut tells everyone openly that she is a slut”. Saying this she turned her mobile towards me and my jaw dropped. It was her facebook page and there my photo she had taken from the back bending and exposing my thong and ass was posted on her wall. It already had 100+ likes and 30 comments in 10 minutes. She said if I dont obey what she says for next 4 days then she will post my other pic also which has my face exposed and the whole world will know that such a slut i am.
And then she said that she had asked suggestions from people on what should be done with such a slut and the replies included some girl suggesting to push me out of room like this or spank my ass and some of the guys had suggested to make me do a mujra (sexy dance and post the video on facebook) and few guys even wanted to fuck my ass.Saying that she laughed and said “Wow you have already become a very famous slut”. Then she grabbed my hair and pulled my face back and said “Now you will do what i say for next 4 days. Got it you bitch.” I nodded my head with yes quitely.
Amutha Valli (Saturday, 24 September 2016 11:19)
Above story also avaliable in https://www.indiansexstories.net/couple/slut-part/
Written on 2014-10-16
rajesh (Saturday, 24 September 2016 13:22)
Taken fron site oly Any one write aft this....
Sanju (Sunday, 25 September 2016 12:40)
Part 2
After all the rituals i came back to my place leaving behind my wife.. My in laws family was completely broken..My wife stated their for more than ten days a use to talk to her daily but not asked much about when will return..My wife suggested me to look for a big house as she wants to bring her family to stay with us..Firstly I thought I will loose privacy with my wife but still I searched house I hot one three bhk house and shifted their than my wife came with her family..
Let you tell you about my mother in law she was still good looking but bit on heavier side her name was Vidya..her daughter in mid thirties was bomb shell her name was Veena and her sis in law was similar her name was UshA..
It took few days to adjust for all of them..Veena got her job transferred to our city..and joined the same..My job was more or less from home only I use to design than send the images to tailoring shops by mail..and go out once a while..
I got isolated in home as all ladies use to spend time together..I complained to my wife she told you are well come to join ladies club and just had a smile on her face..I told I will join..
The journey begins:
In the morning after Veena left for job..Usha and shweta were in kitchen I joined them..Just had casual good morning and tea..Then started discussing of some daily soap and new type saree worn by heroine as I was fashion designer I got fascinated as how much detailed explanation Usha gave about that saree.. Shweta told I can design like that..Than Usha asked me to join to watch daily soap which I obliged immediately..
SRS (Sunday, 25 September 2016 13:10)
"fashion part 5 #123
After deep thinking i was ready to sign an i was lill bit afraid an i know that i will con vise them to pay the amount so that i can escape from this torture.An after that they i give me a card in which there was an address they have told to go there an this was the first punishment starting an i took the card an saw the address an start living while i was living they r giggling an i dint know y , my work was complete it was 5pm an i went to car parking an start to move for the address i just type the address in my google maps an i went quickly found it.i park my car side an went inside there was a young lady about my age an she saw me an smile she was gorges an i told my boss name an company an after that she laugh an told ohh its u i have been waiting 4 u come in an i saw that it looks like some sort as clinic as i went inside she took me to an room an asked to remove all my cloths an give 1 towel to were it ,i was afraid after she forced an done it an she lie me in table an started to apply oil to my whole body i was so relaxed an felt sleep after she finished she told to lie down in bath tub after when i did i thought that she will do cleaning as a nice bath , i closed my eye in there an kept my hands in 2 coiner when i relisted an click sound i saw that she locked my two hands in both side an except my face everything is in under water , she give 1 rubber like thing an asked to bite it i did it after she opened some bottle like liquid an pore it into the water an took to electrode rod an dip it under the water an told this would be lill pain so for preventing screaming i gave u rubber an she bring some sort of electrical equipment which look like current voltage etc an turn on it while doing i get jolt of electric shock to my whole body an my whole body started to burn like a hell after it was done she took me an again make me lie down in bed an she took sponge an cleaned my whole body an apply lotion now she started to shave my face an side burs i protect but nothing use n again she took a small device an she placed 1 dark glass both of our eyes an now again she started to work , she is doing whole area in my face beard, mustache which has been remove an side burs after it done my face started to itch like hell an burns she took cream an apply in my face an few hours she told that it was done. After when i get up i saw my whole body is completely hairless an smooth an my face too i dont know what to do i went near to mirror an saw that without makeup an bushy eyebrow i look like a girl if they dint notice, i saw that my side burns r removed i dint ask anything she just keep on smiling an asked do u like it , i told that everything was ok but y u removed my side burns its not fair with this long hair i look ugly an for that c told ohh no u look pretty u need not to worry an i felt shame an came out from there. I took car i started to went home on the way i got tensed that how iam going to show my face to everyone its total shame what my aunt going to tell while driving i stop to the near by shop i saw a monkey cap which used to were for not getting cold , it covers my ears an comes up to my mouth only my nose an eyes will be opened an i bought it , it was only 100 bugs an i gave 1000 bugs cause i dont have a change an on seeing that shopkeeper told what madam u dont have change for 100 u give 1000 ok wait i will look for a change in another shop. i was shocked on hearing that he called me as madam. after he came with change an i took it an went to home. I put the mask i went home my aunt open the door an get scared i told that it was me an i got cold tats y i straight went to bedroom in told that i ate b4 i will go for sleep an i removed my dress an put the blank sheet into me an slept.Next day morning my aunt came i was in deep sleep she came an saw my hair r all get mess an iam still wearing the monkey cap she removed my blanket an i used to were shorts only i dont were banyan an she was shocked on seeing my hairless body n she removed my cap an get another shock on seeing my hairless face with out side burns. she smiled an took my mess hair an put it like a bun an put hair clip.
SRS (Sunday, 25 September 2016 13:14)
fashion part 6
After when i woke up i was shocked that my face mask is been removed i was scared whether my aunt did this r not , if she then what iam going to explain i got tens an went silently to bathroom an started to brush my teeth after finishing it i wash my face an i was shocked on seeing my hair , i through the clip an went straight to my aunt for y she put the clip but when i went there on seeing me my our servant an aunt both started to laugh , i felt shame in front of them. My aunt asked y i did this but i cant tell the truth to them so i lied that i our office there is a new rules that nobody should grow beard an mus touch cause iam the only male. my aunt asked then y u removed ur body hair, i dont know what to tell an i got 1 idea a told that i want to be male model with six pack tats y an my aunt was silent. After i got ready an went to office i took 1 nose mask i were it, every body asked about that i told it was dust allergy tats y an i went to my cabin after some time my bosses called me an i went to them an while seeing me they told u can fool every body by wearing the mask but not me please remove it u have to face it tats the punishment, an removed it slowly an they saw an lol i felt shame, i came out side an every body started to ask about this an i told its a new trends an they asked then y u removed ur side burs i told by mistake an told dont worry it will grow, an my boss noted the chatting an came closes to me an silently told in my ear that u have to worry cause its permanent on hearing that i felt shocked i dont react anything just went silently .i got really tense i dont know what to do at that time 1 woman game an told sir there was some file is missing in ur sap so can u please get me an i went to her system an sat there 1 girl about 11 was there an asked her who was she she told that it was her daughter she bring her with her , i told this is office u should not bring her here an she asked sorry for that an i started to work in her system at that time that lill girl asked to her mom that ( mama who was this aunty , an she told it was my superior an she told that i was beauty full, an she came near to me an smiled an said hi an i too told hi an give her a chock let an she told thanks. an i started to work an she told ur hair is nice but u dint get proper style shall i , i dint concentrate to her an told go a head but dont disturb me an i keep on working at that time she went to her mother an took something an came nere me an started to work on me she slowly comb my hair an i felt really relaxed cause her hand is so soft an after she started to took small section hair from the top of my hair an gather it an do something after she took a rubber band an place it in bottom of the hair an she went to her mother an her mother told something an give it 1 thing to her she again came to me an placed something in my hair an went , i thought that b4 my hair disturb me cause of lose hair but now i dint get any disturb cause it is neatly arranged an i too finished my work, after my boss called me to come to her cabin i went there an she asked that tomorrow is 2nd weak an what u going to do whether i will receive any payment r what , i told to not worry that i will get the payment an she told i hope so an while iam living she stopped me an told nice hairstyle an i said thanks it was 1 of our worker daughter who did it an she smiled an told she did a nice work on u, i cant understand i went off from there an i was getting scared about tomorrow.
SRS (Sunday, 25 September 2016 13:15)
fashion part 7
i reached to my aunt an i went slowly there my aunt saw me an get surprised i dont know y an she too asked about my hair i told n she was happy, our servant too saw that an lol but i dint understand that y, my aunt took her phone an started to take selfie with me an my servant came an give my aunt a rose an she placed to my aunt hair an told that now it will look same an she took many pic, my servant took the phone an started to take pic an while me an aunt sitting in the sofa she went back side an from the top view she took another pic an came near to aunt an told that from back side we cant tell who is who an they both started to lol, i got irate an asked her y u laughing like mad an while i tell my aunt show me the pic an i saw tat many pic in that 1 pic my aunt sat in the sofa an the photo was taken from the top view in that my aunt was in french braid in that was rose flower an the same hairstyle was in the other an i dint understand that when it was taken an i told nice on seeing the pic an asked her that who was the girl an by asking 2 of them cons tally laughing an my aunt told my my u dint saw ur hairstyle it was u ideate an i was shocked an i touch my hair an the rose flower came an i through it an undo the hair an get shame an went to the room , i was scared that every body in my office saw me in this hairstyle it was really humiliating. Next day i woke up an get ready for my office my aunt dint asked anything about yesterday an i too live for my off n i asked for the payment to my client but there was not proper response i was afraid an get digressed i dont know what to do an my boss called me an asked about that an she know that an she told ok than ready 4 ur next punishment 1 v will start with inner than v will go 4 outer an by telling she again give me a address an told to meet there i was scared now what they going to do an how i will face it.
vasantha (Monday, 26 September 2016 02:49)
thks of srs
Radha (Tuesday, 27 September 2016 01:19)
Dear all, plz don't post comments here, we have just 1000 comments space here.
Hari as hema (Tuesday, 27 September 2016 20:55)
Lovely SRS you are awesome write more
poonam sinha (Wednesday, 28 September 2016 04:42)
Wife's new doll -I am mohini. My wife anuradha's new doll. I was not mohini earlier it all started as i was having extra marital affair with my gf named pooja. It had been 2 yrs of our marriage but i was not happy with itEven anuradha was not happy. I used to spend time with pooja alot. From starting pooja thought i am little feminine as i had hairless body. She used to take me all the time for shopping sometimes while trying lingerie she putted on me to see how it looks, i ignored it. She used to say me to apply her nailpaint. We were madly in love.We wanted to be together but anuradha was not ready for divorse. One day pooja came with idea that if we make anu realize that i like to be lady she will leave me but i was not sure of it. With no option i agreed and pooja took control of me. Firstly she made me feel how to wear bra panty. When ever we meet she made me wear her diff. Styles lingerie. Then she made me understand about makeup. Even applied alot of makeup on me.I got used to it and i used to ask pooja about wearing her tops and skirts. We now were besties rather than gf bf. Intentionally i used to talk about makeup with anu. I used to wear pink shirts. Then pooja taught me to wear saree and webought few wigs and pierced my ears.Pooja thought i am ready now and we planned one day anu was out for shopping. I called pooja. She made me wear red lingerie. Red anarkali style dress of anu. Heavy makeup. Earrings. Lots of bangles. Heels. I was looking way better than anu.As anu came pooja was hidden in bathroom. I saw anu and pretended to be shocked. Anu was surprised seeing me as lady. I told her i want to be a lady and suddenly she blushed came close to me and kissed me. And said honey i love ur look. From now on you are my doll. From now we both ladieswill stay here nd love each other come on bed now.. seeing this me n pooja knew how much trouble we are in and this way i beacame anu's doll
Srs (Friday, 30 September 2016 00:45)
Shalma where ru please continue, iam eager to read ur story pleaseeee
amit (Friday, 30 September 2016 09:21)
does guys here remove body hair , if yes how do you do it
i shave all over every 2-3 days , it takes lots of time and lot of times i get small cuts too
ash (Friday, 30 September 2016 10:13)
u should wax , its best way to remove hairs
Grammer (Saturday, 01 October 2016 06:22)
SRS, you seriously need English lessons, reading your posts gives headache.
Ritu (Saturday, 01 October 2016 10:39)
Dear
SRS (Saturday, 01 October 2016 11:54)
Mis Grammar ,am not writing any exam here an sorry am not forcing u to read my story, so u need not to teach me a English lessons.
Pooja please come back (Saturday, 01 October 2016 13:38)
Pooja we are missing u pls come back and finish 'Turning it around' story
Grammer (Saturday, 01 October 2016 16:37)
SRS, at least use an editor like microsoft word for spelling check and statement constructs. May help with your carrier
Riya (Saturday, 01 October 2016 17:32)
Serendipity
Intro
Riya looked at her reflection in the mirror and let out a deep breath. The makeup girl was giving the final touches. . Her face was adorned with jewels. A big nose ring which touched her red pouty lips. A maang-tika which sat perfectly between her brown silky hairs. Big dangling jhumkas decorated her ears. She looked at her hands which looked lovely in the mehendi with bright red nail polish. For a moment she couldn’t believe its all true. It was all too hazy for her. Her chain of thoughts were interrupted by a message alert on her phone. It was her soon to be husband Amit. She blushed as she read “Lene tujhe o gori, a rahe hai tere sajna”. The makeup was complete by now. She got up and took many selfies with her new friend Rekha. She sent the one with shades to Amit with #kalachashma. Rekha reminded her that the cab is ready and they should leave. Riya found it difficult to walk with the heavy lehenga and all that jewellery but a part of her was cherishing this experience of being a bride.
They started from the Makeup studio, Riya sat at the back and Rekha sat next to the driver giving him directions to the wedding hall. It was Wednesday evening and Gurgaon traffic was moving at a snail pace. Riya started getting tensed again started typing a message to Amit: “ We are stuck in the traffic, why did you choose a Tuesday day for our wedding. You could have choosen weekend but you had to do this and make me late”. It was followed by some angry smilies. The bangles filling her both hands made sounds while she typed those messages angrily, she both loved and hated these feminine sounds. She took a few deep breaths and remembered how Neha used to get angry with him when things didn’t work out as per his plans. Yes, he alias Vaibhav alias Riya had a complete female mind now and even giggled at her thoughts. She remembered Neha again:the damsel who had proposed to Vaibhav: “She might have been my wife today, sitting here in my place and me being the hunk Amit out to get her”. She felt pity for Vaibhav, how he still lives inside her, how he has gone quiet nowdays and wondered what kind of life he might have had if things were different today.
> Please tell if you guys liked this intro, I would write more if you feel its good, thanks<
Kumkum (Sunday, 02 October 2016 00:58)
Yes Riya,I like your story . But I am frustrated coz like everyone before you will also stop writing in the middle with our completing the full story. This has now become a bad tradition here, leaving story in the middle. Pooja, Neha, shalma and others also did this before. I guess you will also follow them. So do as you wish.
kavi (Sunday, 02 October 2016 01:24)
Riya pls keep going <3
Nisha (Sunday, 02 October 2016 09:20)
Sorry kumkum and others.
Due to my hectic schedule, i am unable to continue my story. Hope i will finish this within this weekend and upload.
And request people to write more stories. We have abundant creativity with us. Let's utilize it.
Srs (Monday, 03 October 2016 06:44)
Grammar it's nice but i have not getting time to write story itself better u write then it would help to gain knowledge.
Riya (Monday, 03 October 2016 08:30)
Guys, I have written a very long story. It will take around 13 posts here. So I have posted it on fictionmania. I hope you guys enjoy it:
http://fictionmania.tv/stories/readtextstory.html?storyID=1475437312343276205
pooja (Monday, 03 October 2016 08:46)
Riya . what is story name?
Riya (Monday, 03 October 2016 09:45)
The name is Serendipity: the life of Riya.
I have posted the link above.
Sia Shah (Tuesday, 04 October 2016 07:04)
Pls someone write story on crossdressing in navratri
Sanju (Tuesday, 04 October 2016 11:44)
Riya.. nuce try...ending letter was best part.. try to be short and write here .. episode wise next tym
Priya (Tuesday, 04 October 2016 12:35)
Yes, we need a crossdressing story on navratri theme where elder sister takes brother to garba in ghagra and humiliates him.. Send him in ghagra to school garba function too..
Anonymous (Tuesday, 04 October 2016 13:39)
@Riya: Awesome story.
Neha (Tuesday, 04 October 2016 15:55)
I have posted a new story in hindi on my blogspot.
Rashmi Patel (Tuesday, 04 October 2016 21:09)
@Neha: pls shar link...
Sandya (Wednesday, 05 October 2016 13:13)
great stories by Neha and Riya .. there is no shortage of talent on this page.. keep entertaining us sisters..
Anisha (Saturday, 08 October 2016 00:08)
Nice story
Shalma (Sunday, 09 October 2016 20:47)
Monisha Part 10 (Continued from #160)
-------------------
After finishing the work, I planned to go for bath. Aunt wants to check whether I cleaned the vessels properly. today also, I have not cleaned some of the vessels.
Aunt gives a warning to me. If it happens one more time, she will give punishment surely. I said I will ensure it will not happen once again. And after that, I went to
bath in aunt home.
While going inside the bathroom, Aunt said her inners are hanging in the bathroom. She asked me to wash those things, while I am having bath. I just said ok and went
inside the bathroom. Aunt bra and panty are hanging in the bathroom. Both Panty and bra are deep red velvet cloth. While seeing those clothes itself, I am getting
sensational feel. I touched those clothes and it made me to wear those things in the bathroom. Somehow I managed and I put the bra hooks. I am feeling so sexy. Around
30 minutes, I was enjoyed in that dress. Aunt shouted from outside, how much hour you will take bath like that. After that only, I realised and I had a quick bath and
came out from bathroom.
After coming out from bathroom, I quickly put camisole and panty and I wore my office formals. because If aunt see these things, then it will be a problem for me.
After dressing up, I said bye to aunt to go for office. Aunt asked me to have break fast and she already prepared breakfast. While I am having breakfast, Aunt styled
my hair with hairbrush. Aunt is a professional beautician. She owns one beauty parlour in the city.She styled my hair very nicely. And she said, you are so cute in
this hairstyle. And after having breakfast, I just seen my face in mirror. I also feel its nice and I asked to aunt its like girls hairstyle. Aunt asked me to go
office in this hairstyle itself. If someone teases me means, she will leave her job like that she promised.
Aunt put cream to my face and she put some compact powder on my face. It gives some shining to my face. Aunt said you are so cute. I got so shy. I left from Aunt house
and reached the office. While going inside the office, I am getting fear because of my hair and shining face.
In my team, two girls are there. Those girls names are Sana and Ridhi. I didnt speak freely with them previously. And even they also not care about me previously. My
manager name is Mohini. She also strict on me always. While I am going to my seat in the office, I have to cross these 2 girls Sana and Ridhi. Sana noticed me while I
am crossing. Sana comes with Ridhi to my seat. And they both praised about my new hairstyle. It looks good on me like that they said. Suddenly Sana hugged me and she
said you are so cute. Sana took her mobile and she wants me to take selfie with me. She took some selfies in the seat itself. She asked me to sit in different poses
and she captured only me.
While Sana hugging me, She noticed I am wearing camisole inside the shirt. After taking those selfies, Sana called me personally. She asked me what you are wearing
inside. I got fear and I was so silent. Sana said she will not tell to anyone about this. its so nice and she likes me very much. Salma noticed that I am sitting with
Sana. And Salma came and said she was the owner of this beauty(me). I just introduced salma as my lover to sana. Sana said you are very lucky girl.
Please like this story in my fb id (https://www.facebook.com/shalma.cutee.5) and write more comments.
vasantha (Sunday, 09 October 2016 22:54)
monisha your very good pa continue story pls & srs pls continue your story very very pls i am your fan i early wait for story pls contiune pa pls pls
ZARA (Tuesday, 11 October 2016 00:39)
nice story shalma ..
Tejaswini (Tuesday, 11 October 2016 04:01)
Shalma
Please continue your story, just waiting for the update...
Srs (Wednesday, 12 October 2016 00:05)
Vasantha it's nice that fan, but here someone tells that i make huge grammar mistakes i already told that I am not good in grammar so you all have to decide whether i continue or not.
Srs (Wednesday, 12 October 2016 00:12)
Shalma it's nice to see after long, please continue don't live please
vasantha (Wednesday, 12 October 2016 03:06)
Srs Don’t think about person who are saying that grammar mistake don’t think like that person pls pls continue story I really I like your stories pls pls continue pa
Grammar (Wednesday, 12 October 2016 13:58)
srs tre maa ke bhosada dont write your fuucking story
Unknown (Thursday, 13 October 2016 00:29)
Grammar you son of whore, if you can't able to write then just shut up you fucking bitch.
Another grammar (Friday, 14 October 2016 03:51)
Srs please stop writing
Kajal tilak (Friday, 14 October 2016 03:55)
You don't have that talent srs ....so stop kardo yaar
Mean girl (Friday, 14 October 2016 10:48)
This is site for stories of special girls not for Grammer, if you want Grammer, go away this is not place for you, SRS is a best story teller and one of the best creator in this site,
If you don't like it, don't read it, go away
Menaka rani (Friday, 14 October 2016 10:55)
Hey Grammer, best place for you is to stay with dictionary not here
You better look up your grammar skills, seems you are not so good at this to advice another, you skills are only with MS WORD I this. Stop acting like genius and get away from her
Nikita (Friday, 14 October 2016 10:57)
Those who speak about talent, first write a story here and then speak, fucking bitches
cd lover (Friday, 14 October 2016 13:23)
please every stop fighting @plz some one write a genuine cd story
Grammer (Friday, 14 October 2016 19:36)
Thanks to all Grammers for speaking up their mind, SRS stories suck
Ashwini (Friday, 14 October 2016 19:46)
Sisters, I think both views are right...... one should not write because their english is poor is not correct. The rich content and an exciting plot is the main reason why we come here to read. Yet, as an author, having written 2-3 long stories ( 60 plus long chapters each ) here I feel it is our moral responsibility to write in correct english. The flair, the originality will differ, as it should. Each sister writing here is unique, special and respectable. ......I think with the help of simple tools like spellcheck - that are available just on the right click of mouse..things can be improved...... writing is an act of creating a captivating plot and making it presentable, so the reader becomes one with the main character and 'feels like her'.....hence both are vital.... so sisters, cheer up our sisters who write, and sisters who write, with little effort, you can also improve.
Kumkum (Friday, 14 October 2016 22:20)
Srs continue writing and ignore negative comments
SRS (Friday, 14 October 2016 23:37)
La directora de Expansión del Grupo Meliá Hotels Internacional, María Zarraluqui, ha dicho que «están emocionados» por ser la compañía que «va hacer realidad» la puesta en marcha el Palacio de Congresos», y ha mostrado el «compromiso» de la cadena hotelera «para que comience a dar sus frutos a la sociedad mallorquina lo antes posible».
En declaraciones a los medios de comunicación, Zarraluqui ha remarcado que están «muy satisfechos» por haber sido los adjudicatarios del Palacio de Congresos y el Hotel anexo, y ha recordado que la empresa «ha hecho una apuesta muy importante por esta infraestructuras desde hace años, presentándose a todos los concursos públicos».
«Nuestro compromiso es absoluto y haremos todo lo posible para lo antes posible que el Palacio comienza a dar sus frutos a la sociedad mallorquina, que lleva esperando más de diez años», ha afirmado la directora de Meliá, quien ha dicho que el proceso de apertura del centro de convenciones se hará «sin prisas, de forma correcta, con calidad y cumplimiento con todos los pliegos de condiciones».
«Por supuesto, será para la fecha concreta de marzo, pero si puede ser antes, bienvenido sea para todos», ha enfatizado Zarraluqui.
Gabriel Escarrer y María Zarraluqui
«Creemos que la captación va a ser muy importante»
Con todo, la directora de Expansión de Meliá ha explicado que han realizado un plan de negocios «muy exhaustivo» sobre la captación de congresistas, y que tienen «focalizado dónde quieren crecer y cómo hacerlo en los principales mercados», como puede ser el alemán, inglés, escandinavo y el español.
Así, ha afirmado que la captación de congresistas «dará sus frutos casi de forma inmediata», teniendo en cuenta que Palma es un «destino nuevo» para los segmentos. «Creemos que la captación de congresitas será muy importante», ha recalcado
Grammar (Friday, 14 October 2016 23:49)
Never said don't write, suggestion was to write in correct English to make reading more fun. One should learn from criticism instead of defending.
Unknown (Saturday, 15 October 2016 00:42)
Grammar if you think your best than start writing your own stories you mother fucker and i know you wrote the fucking word in #231. better go away from this blog busted grammar.
Unknown (Saturday, 15 October 2016 07:45)
I am sorry Grammar. My English knowledge is poor but I am addicted to stories and SRS is one writer who is writing regularly.
cd lover (Saturday, 15 October 2016 11:50)
plz plz Stop fighting @some one write role reversal story
SRS (Saturday, 15 October 2016 14:05)
#231 is not from me
Raghav (Sunday, 16 October 2016 07:07)
Part 1.
This story is about tarun. Tarun’s parents were very wealthy and he was the only kid so he got pampered a lot. Tarun loved to crossdress since his childhood and every day after coming back from school he would crossdress in his mothers clothes and spend time at home as a girl till his parents came back from office in the night. This was his daily routine for many years until he finished his schooling. For his college education his parents decided to send him to ooty in one of the best colleges. Tarun was sent to his aunt’s house in ooty where he was supposed to stay and attend college which was very close by his aunt’s house.
Tarun did not want to go to ooty as it would not be possible for him to crossdress and tried to convince his parents but his parents did not listen to him and finally tarun had to agree with his parents and go to ooty. Just before he left to ooty he had one last day to crossdress so he decided to make the most of it and as soon as his parents left to office he went into his mothers dressing room and opened her wardrobe and started looking at all the clothes and was thinking what to wear. As he was looking at all the different types of sarees, salwars etc. He found a red colored velvet bag and to his surprise when he opened it he found his mothers wedding saree and all other accessories that his mother was wearing when she had got married. Tarun got very excited after looking at all this and taught since this is his last day and was going to leave his parents and go to ooty just like when a girl gets married and leaves her parents home, he quickly decided to wear it and took the bag and kept it on the bed.
Now let me tell you about taruns appearance. Tarun was thin and very fair and did not have any facial or body hair, he looked very feminine and was 5 ft 3 inches tall, he looked just like his mother and also had shoulder length hair to which he would attach extensions when ever he crossdressed. Because of having a very similar body like his mother her clothes would easily fit him.
After keeping all the clothes on the bed tarun went into the toilet to take bath and applied hair removal cream to his body making it even more smoother and shiny and after taking bath he came out of the toilet by tying the towel up to his chest like a girl and stood in front of the mirror and admired his beautiful body.
First tarun wore a bra and filled it up to give him the perfect looking breast and admired himself in the mirror then he wore a panty and tucked his cock between his legs so that his panty did not have any bulge. Now he was standing in front of the mirror just in bra and panty and was looking very very beautiful and no one could tell that he is a boy. He already had a hairless and feminine body to which the bra and panty added the need curves and made him look just like a girl. Next tarun wore the petticoat and then the blouse and adjusted his breasts to give the perfect look and shape, and finally he draped the saree. Tarun used to crossdress every day so he had become an expert in wearing girls clothes.
Once he wore the saree he added the hair extensions and tied his hair and put some fancy hair clips and did his makeup just like bride would do on her wedding day and finally he wore his moms necklace and clip-on earrings and completed his makeup by applying lipstick. And took a full look of himself in the mirror. He looked so beautiful that he couldn't control himself and had tears in his eyes. These were tears of a mixed feeling. First of all he was sad that he is going to ooty and secondly he was happy looking at himself in his mothers wedding clothes and was feeling himself as a bride who is going to get married and leave her parents house.
As his mind was flooded with different taughts he controlled himself and wiped off the tears and came out to the living room covering his head with the palo of the saree just like how a bride would cover her head on her wedding day. After coming to the living room he sat on the sofa and was thinking of all his wonderful memories in the house when he used to crossdress and spend his time every day and the fact that he would not be able to do this from tomorrow made him very sad.
Next he got up from the sofa and walked around the entire hose and every thing reminded him of all the wonderful moments he spent in the house as a girl and made him extremely emotional and couldnt control himself and he ran to bed room and sat on the bed and started crying just like how a bride would cry.
To be contd...
RIA (Sunday, 16 October 2016 09:34)
It felt a bit unusual and why wouldn’t it wearing a bra was not what my life allowed me. Done she said giggling as I tried to cover my empty padded cups with my palms. She brought some foam already cut into pieces to look like breasts and filled it in my bra. There came the added weight. She altered the hooks on the strap a little bit and then it felt comfortable.
Not normally does it happen with a guy that he stands in front of his wife wearing a sexy frilly piece of women innerwear but this happened in my case. Before proceeding and explaining everything letme introduce myself. My nave is avinash, 26, extremely fair, fair like my wife feels envious of me, rather short just 5’5’’ tall, slim like a babe married to a beautiful software engineer suhani.
It had been just 3 months that we had come together in this arranged marriage and things were going rather sweet. The love the bliss surrounded us always. Mornings in each other arms, nights in each other’s lips, things were way above romantic. The eagerness of knowing each other more, the anxiety to know about how would she act when something happens or the responses, everything was making life so exciting, and in the course of this exiting journey came a point when I was standing in front of my wife as Avantika in her bra.
It was a weekend when I just brought my old pend drive to show her my college pics. Eager she sprang up, going through the pics she found something, it was me, but a bit different, initially she was not able to recognize but when she did she was all around the couch laughing. Maybe you people would had guessed, it was me posing as a housewife in a beautiful silk saree and a lots of ornaments, holding a clutch in my hands with beautifully painted nails, and a face made up so brilliantly that even I loved the feel of the makeup. No! it was not out of fun but a college fest in which I had to act as a women, I did it convincingly but the real applause came 7 years later from my wife.
RIA (Sunday, 16 October 2016 09:41)
Later that night as we sat having dinner my wife asked, how was it, I mean how did it feel like being a women. I was shy to answer and just said it was good. She giggled hearing my answer, so was it fun wearing a saree, a saree I had to wear three of those I blurted out, she was in tears laughing, literally you wore three of those she said, and what else did you wear, nothing I said, oh! Don’t lie dear Avantika she said teasing me, ok I wore a gown too but nothing more than that, and now she was out of control.
When on bed, I went to the wasroom to change for the night, as I came out I found a cunning smile on suhani’s face, what is it I asked? Jaanu she said playfully, you love me na!! where is it coming from I asked, do you or do you not, I do I said, would you do anyting for me, yes I will I replied, be sure will you, of course I said, then please wear my nighty naa, wha…why!! Please I wanna see you in that, but how could I
SRS (Sunday, 16 October 2016 11:56)
Sisters pleese belive me #231 is not from me . Somebady writing my name and destroy my great image. My readers know that I am best .
Unknown (Sunday, 16 October 2016 12:25)
Great Image !!!! SRS, you sound Like Donald Trump now.
SRS (Sunday, 16 October 2016 14:18)
some body mis using my name
Story fan (Sunday, 16 October 2016 21:47)
Some fucking bitch is trying to disturb writing. Stop it you idiot bastard .
Raghav (Monday, 17 October 2016 00:41)
Part 2 – Ooty
From here the story will be said in Tarun’s words
.
As the bus took sharp turns in the ghats I could see small houses and realized that I will be reaching very soon. Even though I was sad as I can’t crossdress I was eager to meet my aunt. My aunt is my father’s elder sister and is in her 60’s and lives alone as her husband died 5 years back and that was the last time I had seen her. My parents used to visit her once in six months but she has not seen me in the last 5 years. The last time she saw me I was in 5th grade, since then a lot of things have changed and i was sure she will not recognize me. The constant honking of the bus driver made me come out of my taughts and wen I looked outside the bus I realized that I have reached the bus stop and everyone started getting down the bus.
After getting down the bus I looked around but could not find my aunt. I waited for few minutes and then called her up, she told me that she is waiting for me outside the bus stop in a taxi , on hearing that I quickly went out with my luggage and as I walked outside I saw my aunt right in front of the gate. I went close to her and touched her feet and hugged her to which she responded with equal excitement and caught me by my shoulder and looked at me carefully and said that I have grown big kissed me on my forehead and that’s when I realized that she was struggling with her vision and had to look at me carefully for 2 minutes to see my face.
Tarun: aunty why are u struggling so much?? Is your eyesight ok ?
Aunt: no tatun my eyesight is extremely weak
Tarun ; then why don’t you wear specs ?
Aunty: I don’t need that tarun, I am old now and will die soon so there is no need for all that
Tarun: please don’t say that aunty. You still have a long way to go.
Then we sat in the taxi and left for aunt’s house
Few days later..
Its been almost one week since I came to ooty and I have settled down in my aunt’s house, my college has also started and everything is going on smooth but still my mind is restless and constantly keeps wanting to crossdress but I have to control my desires.
One day after coming back from college I saw aunty cleaning the house so I went and started helping her to which she stopped me and said its ok and she can manage. My aunt has strictly told me that I have come here to study and should only concentrate on that and she will do all the work but I cant see her doing everything alone and no matter how hard I try still she doesn't let me do any work I started feeling as a burden on aunty so I decided to talk to my parents and tell that I wanted to stay alone by renting a house for myself. Initially my parents did not agree but after much persuasion they finally agreed. Once my parents agreed I immediately started searching for a house, in ooty there are many colonial houses with a huge garden and the rent is also affordable and since I was going to stay alone and fulfill my dream of living as a girl full time I wanted to rent a house in a calm location where there was no disturbance from any neighbors so that I can comfortably live.
Soon I found a house and started packing up my stuff, my aunt was sad that I was leaving her but I promised her that I will be with her every Sunday. As I left my aunts house there was no limit to my happiness I was so excited that I couldn’t control myself thinking of the fact that I will be all alone in the house and can live like a girl 24x7, just this taught gave me a hard on and soon I reached my new house.
As I reached my new house I now knew that this is going to be the beginning of a new chapter in my life, perhaps the most beautiful chapter of my life
To be contd…
sudha (Monday, 17 October 2016 02:35)
riya raghav ur stories r fantastic pls continue
Raghav (Monday, 17 October 2016 03:23)
Part 3.
My new house was a spacious 2 bhk villa with a huge garden in front that connected it to the road. It was a posh location with similar kind of houses and most of the houses were vacant so i was assured that i had complete privacy. I decided to keep all my male clothes in one of the bedroom and use that bedroom when i was a boy and on the other hand i had converted the other bedroom into a princesses room with pink colored walls, fancy curtains etc. My parents had always given me more money then i actually required so i always had a lot of money and this time since i was going to stay alone on my own they gave me even more money so that i buy all necessary items for my new house so once i bought all the necessary things like crockery, kitchen items, microwave etc. i was still left with a lot of money so then i decided to have my own cute girls wardrobe with everything from inner wear to dresses, frocks, sarees etc. i was very exited just by thinking about it as before this i never had my own girl clothes, as i always used to crossdress in my moms clothes so the taught of having my own wardrobe gave me Goosebumps and my face had turned red.
Thanks to all online shopping websites it has become dam easy to buy stuff, otherwise imagine if i had to go to the store to buy bra and panties it would be so embarrassing for a boy to buy that stuff. So i quickly made coffee for myself and took my laptop and sat on the dining table and started browsing through different websites. First i decided to buy innerwear as thats the most important component to dress.. unless you are comfortable from inside and your body has the perfect breast and ass how can you feel like a girl..?? so i decided to buy inner wear first.
I started off with bra’s and bought different types of bra’s – padded, non padded, bikini top, non strap etc.. and all in many different colors and once i selected all the bra’s i was shocked to see that i had selected 11 bras and 11 panties to match that.. i was surprised but did not worry as i had a lot of money still left to buy other things so i quickly placed the order and couldn't control my imagination and in my mind i had already started visualizing myself wearing those bra and panties and it sent chills through my body.
Once i was done with bra & panties i ordered one sexy, short, sleeveless, black dress and one pink frilly short frock, one short skirt, one long skirt and one long western dress. so with that i was done with shopping for western dresses. Now i started placing order for Indian dresses. In Indian dresses i ordered 4 different colored salwaar’s, 4 sarees and 4 ready made blouses and petticoats to match the sarees. And i also placed order for 2 nighties and few jeans, t-shirts and leggings. Now i had finished ordering all types of clothes so now i was left with only foot wear and accessories, so without wasting time i ordered 3 pairs of foot wear and lots of things for makeup and finally few clip on earrings and jewelry, i did not order any wig because my hair had already grown till my shoulder.
Once i finished placing order for all the things i looked at the total bill which a huge amount but the amount was very small compared to the satisfaction i was going to get once i crossdressed. So with that i kept my laptop aside and was so excited that i wanted one week to pass by as soon as possible as my order was going to be delivered after one week
To be contd....
ishu (Monday, 17 October 2016 03:32)
ria ur story was awesome kindly continue that
ZARA (Monday, 17 October 2016 03:37)
@Rajeev excellent story, one of the best stories I have read so far, please continue. :-)
ZARA (Monday, 17 October 2016 03:38)
I Mean @ Raghav :)
Kareena (Monday, 17 October 2016 03:43)
Hi I am a cd,
I want Cd Real Cd Friend If Intrested Please give me your No.
I am areally beauty full
And want to be connected with beauty full cd friends
Kareena (Monday, 17 October 2016 04:10)
I am really desperate, I am new in crossdressing
I am married & and straight but after marriage I got the intrest in my wifs dresses
ireally wanted to explore
so I want cd friends please give me your watsapp no.
Only real cd please
Grammar (Monday, 17 October 2016 07:12)
A for Apple, B for ball, C for cat, a e i o u. iam the one who knows everything in grammar, i teach for my English teacher because I am the son of English man.
Rani (Monday, 17 October 2016 11:54)
Hai ....
Nice stories Raghav.keep write more stories, we are waiting for your stories
Do you like to wear saree with ghunghat (veil)? ,become bahu of a family
and undercontroled by strict mother in low.
Please replayyy
ishu (Monday, 17 October 2016 12:18)
hi kareena
Rupali (Monday, 17 October 2016 15:20)
Hi ladies
RIA you are one of my favorite writer. Your stories also help the girl inside me to be a bit naughty and have feel of outer world and it is my request to you to complete you story with the same aura that you have produced in your previos works.
Raghav your work is also got and have that essence keep it up and make it more beautiful.
Raghav (Monday, 17 October 2016 16:01)
Thanks for the comments Rani & Rupali.
Rupali I would like to inform u that I am not a crossdresser, and this story is not about me. This story is about a crossdresser called Tarun who I was in love with. But due to some unavoidable circumstances we had to break up. But I was really fascinated about taruns life story so I wanted to share it with the world and that's when I got to kno about this website so I decided to write
Kareena (Monday, 17 October 2016 16:03)
Hi is hu
Thanks for your reply. R u a real crossdresser u can contact me we can bee friends watsapp me please. Give me your number
Raghav (Monday, 17 October 2016 16:18)
Thanks for the comments Zara & Sudha
Grammar (Monday, 17 October 2016 23:04)
Raghav,
Nice job, engaging story.
tyuihjk (Monday, 17 October 2016 23:24)
bnm
Raghav (Tuesday, 18 October 2016 01:23)
Part 4.
It has been almost a week since i shifted to my new house and was very busy with setting up things and i had kept myself busy. It was the first Sunday after i shifted so as promised i was getting ready to visit aunt, so after taking bath i was getting ready and thinking that just one more day and after that my girl clothes will arrive and i will not have to wear these male clothes at home. In the past week waiting for my order to arrive was very bad, every single day felt like a year as i was very exited and desperate to become a pretty girl.
I spent the entire Sunday with my aunt and took her to the temple and we also had lunch outside, my aunt seemed to like the outing as she was always at home and never really went out, she thanked me many times for taking her out as she felt very good. After spending the entire day with aunt i left for my house after dinner with aunt and as soon as i reached home i quickly got fresh and jumped on the bed to sleep but was sure i would not be able to sleep as i was on cloud nine thinking about tomorrow and my order to be delivered, and for that reason i had also decided to bunk college and stay back at home and crossdress. Lost in my taughts i don't know when i fell asleep and woke up in the morning by the constant ringing of my cell phone. I did not pay much attention to the cellphone and just kept it on silent thinking it was my friends from college who had called to enquire why i did not come to college today and turned to sleep again and that's when my eyes fall on the clock and the time is 11 am. I got up with a sudden force as it was time my order was going to be delivered and quickly took my phone and answered the call the person on the other side was furious as he has been calling me from 10:30am and i was not answering the call.
Me: hello
Delivery boy: is this Mr. Tarun?
Me: yes
Delivery boy: sir i have been calling you from so long, don't you want your order?
Me: yes yes i want it.. where are you now ?
Delivery boy: sir i am near the park
I quickly guided him from that park to my house and ran outside to the main gate to receive the parcel. The delivery boy reached the main gate of my house and hands over the bill, i pay him and also give him tips and i carried all the boxes to my house. As i was carrying all the packages to my hose i felt i had quite a lot of things as it was very heavy.
I took every thing and went into my bedroom (girl) and kept it on the floor and started unpacking all the boxes and packets. The first box which I unpacked had all the makeup products, and one by one i unpacked all the packets and kept everything on the bed, once i had unpacked everything i picked up all the trash boxes, packets etc and dumped it in the dustbin outside the house and ran to my bedroom and when i entered i saw ha heap of clothes and other girly stuff on my bed. I was very happy to see all the things and got a little emotional but quickly came out of my taught and took each and every thing in my hand and one by one and keenly observed it. Every thing was so girly and colorful and felt so good when i kept it against my body and it gave a completely different pleasure, something that i had never felt like in the past 17 years of my life from when i was born, it felt like i was always meant to wear these clothes and be a beautiful girl.
After keen observation of each and every thing i decided to wear the short, black, sleeveless dress as i had never worn western dresses because i used to crossdress in my moms clothes and she never had any western dresses so wanted to see how good i looked in it so i took that dress, matching bra & panty and sexy heels and kept it in one corner of the bed and kept all the other stuff in the wardrobe and took my towel and went in to take bath as i was soon going to start a new phase of my life
To be contd.....
Raghav (Tuesday, 18 October 2016 03:59)
Part 5.
Once i finished bathing i came out and walked towards the mirror, every thing around felt so beautiful- pink walls, fancy curtains, sexy ladies dress on the bed, makeup kit in front of the mirror, it was like the entire world had changed for me, i sat in front of the mirror and applied body lotion which gave a very feminine fragrance and made my body smoother and shiny. After that i wore the panty followed by the bra and pulled my chest skin closer with tape which gave a nice cleavage and stuffed the bra with cotton to give it the perfect shape and size. Till now whenever i crossdressed i always wore my mothers bra and panty which was a little big and old fashioned but this time i wore my own padded bra which was perfect in size & made me look very very sexy and the cleavage made by pulling the chest skin closer added more substance and i looked just like a girl and any guy would drool looking at me. after that i wore the dress and using a hair straightener to straighten my hair which were below my shoulder and then gave them curls at the bottom giving it a very feminine look.
Once i was done with dressing and setting my hair i started my makeup, by now i had become an expert in doing makeup as i learned it by watching videos online. I took about an hour to do my makeup and the end result was just fantastic. I just stood there dumbstruck with my mouth open as i looked so sexy in the makeup and short dress that i couldn't recognize myself. I just stood there staring at myself and what perfect body i had and the dress looked just amazing. Next i sat on the chair and wore my new heels and applied more lotion on my hands and legs, as i don't have any body hair and my skin is very fair the lotion enhanced my beauty by making my skin look even more smoother and shinny. And finally to top it off i sprayed plenty of perfume. As i moved around in front of the mirror i could see myself and i looked like a dream.
Next i came out of my bedroom and walked around the house and after sometime i made coffee for myself and went and sat in the garden. This was the first time i came out in the open because before this when ever i would crossdress in my mothers clothes i would never come out. as i was sitting in my garden the cold breeze ceased my exposed legs and hands and blew my hair a little, this made me very very Horney and i could feel my boner get hard in my panty. I spent my entire day in the same clothes and walking around the house and in the garden, it felt so good as i had completely lost hope of crossdressing when my parents sent me to ooty.
In the night after dinner i changed into a semi transparent black nighty and slept and had a wonderful sleep, it felt like i have achieved everything in life. The next day i went to college and after coming back home i spent the rest of the day as a girl at home and this continued for one week, one day when i was sitting in the garden dressed as a girl i decided to walk down the road outside my house to a park that was there at a few minutes distance from my house and wanted to see if i can face the outside world as a girl but it was late evening and i was wearing a short skirt & the weather was also very cold so i decided not to go that day and planned to wear Indian clothes(as it is more comfortable in public) the next day and go outside, so i quickly went into my room and selected a very pretty salwar and a matching legging and kept it out so that tomorrow as soon as i come back from college i can get ready and go out. with this feeling and excitement i had dinner and slept thinking about the next day.
To be contd...
ZARA (Tuesday, 18 October 2016 05:16)
Hey Raghav superb story, its getting more and more interesting with ever part you post. you seem to be a very good writer
Rupali (Tuesday, 18 October 2016 15:47)
Wooow what a sweet story Raghav and also read about your inspiration quite interesting you know. So you both changed your rolls in the real??? Or something else is there you would like to share with your audience
Raghav (Tuesday, 18 October 2016 23:49)
Thanks for the comments.
No Rupali we did not have a role reversal, this story is completely about Tarun (girl name Tanya) and her beautiful transformation and how she opens up to the world, her parents abd how she finds love. it is a very long story and I intend to write it in complete detail so that the actual charm of it is not lost. I have just written about 5% of the story and there is still a long way to go so please bear with me
savita (Wednesday, 19 October 2016 03:13)
Great raghav plz continue
Raghav (Wednesday, 19 October 2016 06:47)
Part 6.
Today was a big day for me as it was the first time i will be going out in public as a girl. This is one thing that i was not prepared for but sooner or later i will have to mingle with people, just the taught made me extremely nervous and it was evident in my behavior, i couldn't concentrate in college i dint talk to my friends properly, there were many questions going on in my mind.. what if i get caught ? will people recognize me ? will people make fun of me? etc etc. My classes ended for the day and i quickly rushed home. As soon as i reached home i quickly got rid of my male clothes and ran to take bath and once i finished bathing i dried my self and sat in front of the mirror still in my towel and today i decided to first do my makeup and set my hair followed by dressing up.
First i cleansed my face and applied an even coat of foundation and did all the makeup – from eye liner to shadow to lipstick etc. and then straightened my hair and today i decided to braid my hair as i was going out in salwar i taught braided hair would look better. So once i was done with hair and makeup i removed the towel and wore my bra and panty and quickly filled it up to give the perfect shape and size and once that was done i first wore the legging and then the cute pink knee length top. I looked at my self in the mirror and believe me i looked very very pretty , infact much prettier than most of the girls i know. This gave me tremendous confidence and all my nervousness had vanished. After that i picked up a cute pair of flip flops to wear as i did not want to walk outside in heels as it is not comfortable. Once i was completely ready i did a light touch up to my makeup and walked out
I locked the gate of my house and started walking down the street, at first there were no people around so it was not that difficult but once i took a turn towards the main road there were many shops and it was a busy road with a lot of people around, as soon as i saw this i was out of my comfort zone and started shivering. The taught of getting caught brought butterflies in my tummy and i was fumbling a bit but just then a voice from within was telling me ‚‘ you have always been a pretty girl and even now u look stunning just be confident and keep yourself strong and then u see how wonderful u will feel“ it gave me tremendous confidence and i started walking with full on style, just like a girl will move around , i felt like its my daily routine and walked with grace and attitude. As i walked i noticed a lot of boys checking me out and a lot of girls were feeling jealous looking at my beauty and every one had just one question in mind – who is this beautiful girl ?? as they had never seen me in the locality before.
I walked into a coffee shop and sat and looked around and every one were staring at me. i felt extremely shy and my cheeks had turned red. In few minutes the waiter came and took my order. I spent around 1 hour in the coffee shop and it felt great. Every one addressed me as madam and i enjoyed all the attention i got. And once it was dark i came back home and finished my studies and finished everything else and changed into my nighty and slept.
The next day again after returning home i would dress up like a pretty girl and go around the locality and to the coffee shop and return home once it got dark, this became a routine for me and continued for a few days.
To be contd....
Raghav (Wednesday, 19 October 2016 06:48)
Part 7.
One Saturday as i did not have college i rested the entire day at home it was evening and i was still in my nighty. I had got up in the afternoon and did not change. In the evening when i was drinking coffee & browsing i saw breast foams with adhesive, i saw a small video advertisement on the internet. It was very good and looked like original breasts. I dint think twice and immediately called the store to place my order but the shopkeeper said that they do not have home delivery option. I was sad as the store was very far from my house and it was already evening but couldn't control myself so i decided to go get it. I quickly ran into my bedroom got ready in half an hour and rushed out of my house. It was already 7pm and the store was at an hours distance from my house so i quickly got into a taxi and asked the driver to go as fast as possible.
I reached the store around 8 and quickly went inside to buy the foam. Inside the store there was a salesman who was in 40’s but had a very cunning look on his face. He kept staring at my ass and breasts. He kept on coming close to me and i was getting annoyed and was feeling very uncomfortable. He was going on trying to talk to me but i was not interested and went towards another salesman and asked him to give the breast foams, he said madam please wait and went inside to bring the foams, as he went in the other pervert salesman came close to me and started telling – “you have such good breasts why do u need foam “ i got extremely angry and couldn't control myself and gave him one tight slap on his face and started shouting at him, hearing that the manager came running and asked what happened. I told him that this man is trying to misbehave with me, hearing that the manager caught him and asked him to apologize and once he apologized he threw him out of the store and came back and apologized on behalf of his staff. By then the sales man who went to bring the breast foam had also come so i quickly took it, paid the bill and left the store.
On the way back i could not control my self and had tears in my eyes, that's when i felt its not easy to be a girl. That mans words kept coming in my mind again and again.. i just couldn't control myself and started crying. i opened the window of the taxi and started breathing fresh air and as i saw outside i realized we were on the temple street. I remember this street as i had once visited the temple, as the taxi passes the temple i noticed a woman standing at the taxi stand waiting to a taxi. I asked the driver if its possible for that woman to get a taxi at this time because it was already 9:30pm to which the driver said its very difficult so i asked him to turn and told him that we will drop her. So the driver took a u urn and as we went close to that woman i got the shock of my life... my hear had just skipped a beat when i saw that woman's face.. that woman was none other that my own AUNT !!!!
To be contd.......
Chandini (Wednesday, 19 October 2016 07:50)
Hi Friends,
Just started a story "She is my Husband" let me know your views on the kick start page on the below links
http://dress2kill.jimdo.com/full-stories/she-is-my-husband/
or
https://www.facebook.com/profile.php?id=100008320322212&hc_ref=NEWSFEED&fref=nf
Raghav (Wednesday, 19 October 2016 08:40)
Part 8.
As soon as i saw my aunt i immediately started sweating & my body became numb, it felt like i was going to get a heart attack and before i could react the driver stopped the taxi.
Driver: Maji where do you wana go ?
Aunt: 4th street, near rose garden.
Driver: please get into the car i will drop you there.
Aunt: but looks like you already have a passenger inside
Driver: its ok maji the passenger herself has asked me to take you
Aunt: oh ok
Until this moment i am still numb and freezed. I am not able to move a muscle and aunt opens the back door and gets into the taxi and sits beside me.
Aunt: thank you so much dear
Me: i..it...it..its o ok Aunty
Aunt: is every thing ok? why do u sound so scared ?
As aunt was speaking she came closer to me in a concerned manner and my heart almost stopped beating i was sure that i am going to get caught. Aunt came close to me and touched my cheeks and since i was crying sometime back my cheeks were still moist and sensing that she said
Aunt: is everything fine dear ?
Me; yyy yy yess..
Aunt: i think you just cried.. tell me what it is.. you helped me by giving me lift now its my turn tell me.
Me. everything is fine please don't worry
Aunt: ok .. what is your name ?
I was stumped by that question, i had never taught of a girl name for me and this question completely knocked me. aunt asked again and with a fumbling voice i said- my name is tanya .
I had never taught of a name so just told whatever came to my mind.
Aunt: very nice name tanya
Me: thank you maam
Aunt: please call me aunty.
Me: ok aunty
As aunt was speaking she was constantly staring at me. i was getting scared that i may get caught and i was trying my best to speak in the most girly manner so that she doesn't recognize my voice. After looking at me for a while aunt said i am very beautiful to which i blushed and said thanks. Now i was sure she dint recognize me .
It was a half an hour drive from the temple to aunts house so on the way she asked everything about me so i told her that i am studying in a girls college and stay in hostel. While we were speaking i noticed aunt was laughing and smiling and talking so nicely, it reminded me of her when uncle was alive, she used to be just like this at that time. By the time we reached aunts house we both had become really good friend and were chit-chatting like 2 ladies. We reached aunts house and as she was getting down the taxi even i got down to say bye and i was relieved that she is going now and i was not caught so it was seriously a big relief. She gave me a hug and said
Aunt: tanya tomorrow is Sunday and i am sure you will have a holiday why don't you come home for lunch tomorrow?
I was shocked by this question i did not know what to say because tomorrow is Sunday and tarun will have to meet aunt so how can tarun and tanya be here at the same time so i told aunt i cant come, on hearing that she got sad and i couldn't see her sad face because after so many years she was happy so without thinking much i said ok aunty i will come. On hearing that she got so excited and hugged me like a young girl hugging her friend. then she said good night and went inside her house and I sat in the taxi and left for my house
To be contd..
Tinuu (Wednesday, 19 October 2016 10:38)
Nice story Raghav....keep write moreeeee
Rupali (Thursday, 20 October 2016 00:57)
Glad to hear that your stories will be coming for a long time Raghav
Shivaranjini (Thursday, 20 October 2016 04:33)
great write story raghav pls continue More part
Shivaranjini
Raghav (Thursday, 20 October 2016 05:48)
Part 9.
On the way back home after dropping aunt to her house i was still in a state of shock. I couldn't get over the fact that i had spent about an hour with my aunt and she dint catch me. my house was just 15mins away from my aunts house, as i reached i paid the taxi driver and went into the house, i was so tensed thinking about today and what's going to happen tomorrow that i dint even try the breast foams, i just threw it on the sofa and went into my bedroom and lied down on the bed. When i closed my eyes to sleep everything that happened today was flashing in front of my eyes. From the incident that happened in the store to spending time with aunt as a girl every thing kept repeating in my mind and thinking about tomorrow i had Goosebumps all over my body, with these taught i dint realize when i fell asleep.
I woke up early on Sunday as it was a big day, and the first thing i did was to call aunt as tarun and i informed her that i am going out with friends and if i return early then i will come to your house if not i will come tomorrow evening, aunt was little sad on hearing that but when i promised to come the next day she agreed, she also told me that she had invited her friend for lunch, but she didn't know that i am not coming for the same reason so that she can spend time with her friend.
Once i spoke to aunt i looked at the clock and it was 10am so i had 2 hours to leave but before that i had to buy a new sim card because if aunt asks for my number then i cant give my actual mobile number because she already has taruns number so i dint want to get caught hence i just wore a track pant and a shirt and went out to bring a sim and returned in half an hour as it is very easy to get a sim. Once i came back i got rid of my male clothes and took my towel and went in to take bath. Today was a special day as i would be spending time with aunt as a girl and moreover today i was also going to wear the breast foams which would enhance my beauty and make me feel even better. As i was taking bath i was thinking what to wear today, as it was a big day for me i decided to wear a saree, because i loved sarees and a woman looks the best in saree and moreover i had not worn a saree since i came to ooty so was really excited.
After bathing i came out and dried myself, then wiped my hair and blew them dry with a drier, after that i applied lotion and wore my panty then i went out to the hall and took the box containing the breast foams and came back to the bedroom and sat on the bed, i read all the steps mentioned in the directions to use and as mentioned i wore a bra and marked out the shape on my chest using eyeliner, then i removed the bra and took the foams whose one side had sticker material to stick on to the chest. Then i carefully took one at a time and kept it on my chest and pressed it and once i did both as advised in the manual i lied down on my back pressing my breasts with my palm for 15 minutes. After 15 mins when i got up i felt the best pleasure of my life. I could feel my breasts hanging and when i walked the breasts were bouncing. It felf so good and now i felt like a complete woman. The foam stuck on to my skin and due to the weight my skin was getting pulled downwards and i cant explain how happy i felt.
Keeping my excitement aside i wore a bra and when hooked the bra i pressed my boobs close to each other creating a natural cleavage. I now had sexy boobs popping out of my bra and the color of the foam was exactly the color of my skin and with some makeup at the joints i looked so real the no one could tell its fake.
To be contd ...
Raghav (Thursday, 20 October 2016 05:48)
Part 10.
After that i took out all the 3 sarees i had and kept it on the bed, i was unable to decide which one to wear as all 3 were equally good. Then i choose to wear a black saree with a thin red border. It was a very beautiful & simple saree and i was sure that many would drool looking at me after i wore it..
Once the saree was decided i took out the matching black blouse and petticoat and wore it. Today i had covered the mirror as i wanted to see myself in the mirror only after i was completely ready.
I started draping the saree ad as the cloth touched my skin it gave a very good feeling. A feeling that cant be explained. I carefully draped the saree and ensured that my fair and perfectly shaped stomach was visible. Then pinned up the saree wherever necessary and i was done wearing the saree. Next i took a hair brush and neatly brushed my hair which were now almost touching my back and due to regular straightening and conditioning it looked beautiful. After the hair i took out a small mirror and using that i started doing my makeup. Today i had decided to keep it simple as i would be with aunt in the house only so i applied little foundation and gave a light pink blush on my cheeks, then used eyeliner followed by lip-gloss. Once the makeup was done i took out clip on earrings and wore them and also wore a simple chain in my neck and after that sprayed some perfume and took out my simple 2“ heels that i had bought only to wear on saree, and once i wore it i was completely ready now and it was time to unveil the princess so i lifted my hand to pull out the cloth that was over the mirror and closed my eyes, once i pulled the cloth i slowly opened my eyes and saw in the mirror...
to be contd...
Zara (Thursday, 20 October 2016 11:40)
Superb story Raghav... I am your fan now ... please post next pat asap ... :)
vasantha (Friday, 21 October 2016 10:03)
raghav your very super pls continue srs pls continue your stories very earlier to read your stories pls pls continue i am your fan pa
Anisha (Friday, 21 October 2016 21:07)
Nie story raghav
Grammar (Friday, 21 October 2016 22:46)
Raghav stop writing this is the worst story i ever seen. It should be forced crossdressing not gay theme. Please stop writing i can't tolerate anymore.
neha aryan (Friday, 21 October 2016 22:58)
Great story RAGHAV.. Please continue
Raghav (Saturday, 22 October 2016 00:19)
Thanks for the comments
Grammar is it compulsory to write a forced crossdressing story ? I taught this place is for all types of stories ... guys if only forced crossdressing stories should be written then please let me know I will stop the story
sirisha (Saturday, 22 October 2016 00:38)
Raghav continue the remaining parts
khushi (Saturday, 22 October 2016 06:11)
If you cant tolorate then dont read and shut the fuck up @grammar.
Raghav you continue...
Chandani (Saturday, 22 October 2016 06:22)
Sweet story.. Please continue this
Grammar (Saturday, 22 October 2016 11:39)
Khushi i think you and raghav both are fucking each other and raghav please stop writing this story.
preeti (Saturday, 22 October 2016 13:01)
Ragav plzzz plzzzzz plzzzz write storiess.We are waiting for your stories
Grammar (Saturday, 22 October 2016 14:16)
i apologise raghav and kushi. i also wanted to write a good stories but i couldn't. that's why i m jealous of any story writers. i accept that i am nuts, kutriya, harami, etc... pls forgive me.
seetha (Saturday, 22 October 2016 21:01)
HaibRagav your stories is beautiful pleaseeee post stories
Srs (Sunday, 23 October 2016 01:00)
Shalma please continue ur story pleaseeee.
Vishakha kumari (Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:07)
Welldone. Raghav
Vishakha kumari (Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:10)
Hllo i am vishakha if any body in online friendship snd eould like to be feminised on my command reply with e mail id
Vishkanya (Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:14)
A Bet was all I lost to my Bhabhi and my fate was changed. I was on a trip to Delhi to visit my Cousin. After mingling with them for a few days, I and Bhabhi had become quite acquainted with each other. My cousin had to leave country for his usual overseas assignment for around a month. We two were left at home and were enjoying each other’s company. She often called my girly faced because I hadn’t grown too much of beard on my face for the age of 21. She used to tease me by calling me sweety, dolly etc. Little did I know that one of these names will be picked for me very soon. She was beauty of heaven, too fair, average body with flesh at right places, ample bust and hips. Always wore Sarees and Salwar Kameez whether at home or out. One usual day we were having discussion on some movies. We got into a bet and it came down that one who loses will comply to winner’s orders for 1 week. I eventually lost and had to submit gracefully. Now she dropped the bomb of her wish. She wanted me to be and live like a GIRL for a week. Do everything that girls do and try my best to become a girl for the period. I resisted, requested, pleaded to ask me something else to do but she was adamant and said I shouldn’t worry because I am almost half a girl already by looks and ways and behavior she will teach me. Besides, she got a little dominant with authority of winning the bet. So I had to submit.
Vishkanya (Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:15)
It started then, first Bhabhi took me to the bathroom and asked me to get naked. I was pretty embarrassed but had to comply as I had lost the bet. She started applying hair removing cream all over my body. I got a hard with sensations of her soft palm rubbing everywhere on my body. She rubbed a little longer on my nipples. Finally when she was done, she asked me to bathe and come out wrapping a towel in girls’ way. I did as asked. Then she gave me a black chudidaar salwar and kameez and asked to wear. It was too tight to get on and besides the smoothness of the fabric was sending tingling sensations in my now hairless body. I somehow managed to get in to the dress and appeared before her. I kind of liked the sensation on my skin and was embarrassed for the fact. She looked happier as my face got red with shame. Then she fixed a wig on my head and did the full girls’ makeup. Filled my hands with bangles and bracelets. Tied a pair of anklets to my feet with ghunghroos and jingling rings in little fingers of me feet. With nail polish and little brush up, my transformation was complete. She adored her work and my beauty as a girl and started taking pictures with her camera making me pose in different ways. I was feeling very uncomfortable with tightness and silkiness of the dress, jingling noises of anklets, bracelets, bangles and rings which I was carrying. Worst was the dupatta, which I could hardly carry on both of my shoulders at the same time. I could hardly believe what was being done to me and just wanted it to get over soon.
Vishkanya (Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:16)
After my whole transformation and photo session, she asked me to get along with the work. Moving around in such position was highly problematic and walking in tight high heels was almost impossible. When I did all the work she gave, she asked me to go on the terrace and gather dried up clothes. She wanted me to be displayed like this to whole neighborhood. I almost pleaded not to make to go up where anyone could see and recognize me wearing girl’s clothes. But she denied my request and said, first, rules are rules. I had to comply all her orders for the day. Secondly, no one will recognize or think that I was not a girl. I somehow gathered courage and moved towards the staircase. Hesitatingly and with all the trouble of dupatta, heels and jingles of accessories, I climbed up and found a lady on the roof adjacent house. I got frightened and bowed my head down and moved toward clothes. Quickly I gathered all clothes and rushed down as fast as I could fearing what would the lady say if she recognizes that I am a boy dressed as a girl. In the process I hurt my feet and ran down to the room.
Vishkanya (Sunday, 23 October 2016 02:16)
I then requested her to get this over as I have already hurt myself and gone through enough embarrassment. She looked even in more playful mood and said, this is just the beginning and you have whole week to stay like girl. Then she said, I will be called Dolly for my feminine avatar.
So Dolly, you have seen some of the troubles that girls get through in their lives and fortunately for you, you cannot go through all the trouble which they get as you are only half a girl. But I should learn to be a girl as much as possible and also enjoy pleasures that girls get.
What’s that Bhabhi please tell so that I get some relief in my ordeal.
Raghav (Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:21)
Part 11.
When i looked in the mirror i was simply amazed, it was a beautiful girl looking back at me. i could not believe my eyes as i had not seen myself look so beautiful. My fair thin waist line and navel was visible and since the saree was black my white stomach looked very cute, the blouse was perfect fit and the breast foams gave it a very natural look. Everything looked perfect with my silky smooth hair falling on my shoulders. i saw my fair, smooth hands and realized something was missing and that's when it struck me that i was not wearing bangles, so finish off my dressing i wore a dozen of black metallic bangles and trust me it gave a very very good feel and look. Finally i was done dressing and left for my aunts house.
I reached my aunts house by taxi in 15 mins and to my surprise aunt was waiting for me at the door. On seeing me get down the taxi aunt came forward and welcomed me and praised my beauty and said i look very very beautiful in a saree and i should wear it more often. She told me that her niece Tarun couldn't come today to which i just replied with an ok as i dint want to discuss on that topic because i dint want to get caught. We went and sat in the hall and started talking like long lost friends, i saw a lot of difference in aunt, she looked more happy and spoke so much, she was giggling and laughing like a young girl. After talking for an hour we decided to have lunch and while having lunch my aunt told me that she had a surprise for me. i was a little tensed after hearing that and many questions came to my mind. And as we were eating i was only thinking about the surprise.
To be contd....
Raghav (Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:25)
Part 12
Once we finished eating i helped aunt in cleaning all the vessels, i tucked my saree palo in my waist like a house wife and did all the work, that was an amazing feeling and i had completely forgotten that i was a boy, i felt like i was born as a girl and was doing this every day, my ant appreciated me that i carry off myself very well in a saree. Once the cleaning was done aunt took me to her bedroom and asked me to sit on the bed, she opened her wardrobe and took out a bag and kept it on the bed. She asked me to open it and after i opened it i saw many pretty designer sarees, the sarees were very very beautiful and looked new. I told aunt that these sarees are very beautiful and why don't you wear it. Aunt got little sad on hearing me and i very low voice she said “my husband loved to see me in designer sarees, every time we went for shopping he would buy me at least one designer saree there are 10 sarees in this bag which i never wore as i had many, but now my husband is not there i cant wear these so please take this as you can wear it and i will feel very good““ i was sad after hearing that, i consoled aunt and hugged her and told her that i cant take it but aunt was in no mood to listen she forced me to take it and when i was still resisting she said that she will not speak to me or meet me in future if i don't take this. Then i had to agree, i thanked her and hugged her and she kissed my forehead and blessed me. then aunt walked to the wardrobe and took out a box and kept it on the bed and opened it, there were many beautiful designer jewelry sets in it she asked me to take this also but i refused as it would be very expensive stuff but aunt said that this was artificial and not original and again forced me to take it so i had to listen. The box had many sets and beautiful earrings and danglers, there was a beautiful set of black jhumkas and necklace so aunt picked it up and put the necklace around my neck and tightened the end to make it look perfect, next she took the jhumkas and moved my hair to put it and that's when she realized that my ears were not pierced, she was shocked and asked me why have not pierced my ears ?? i was stunned to hear that, i dint know what to say i.. i was thinking that now i will get caught.. aunt asked again..“ tell me tanya why have you not pierced your ears ?“ i told her “when i was small my parents took me to pierce bout there i saw a girl who was crying when the pierced her ears so i got scared and started crying and did not let them pierce my ears and since then i have been wearing clip on earrings and when ever my parents would ask me to pierce i would cry so they never forced me after that““ on hearing this aunt started laughing and said “ o dear for that little pain you have not done it, there are so many ways now to pierce your ears and they pain vey little. Do you want me to get your ears pierced ?““ i immediately said “no no aunty its ok i will manage with clip ons“ but aunt said that you cant enjoy many beautiful jhumkas as clip ons don't have many designs, finally i agreed and told her that i will pierce but not now after few days. Aunt said ok and asked me to come to her as soon as i pierced so that she can see me. i agreed and with that we packed all the stuff and went out and kept it in the hall, we had our evening coffee and snaks and after that i left to my house with all the bags.
On my way back i was thinking about the day and was so happy to spend my day with my aunt as a girl as was happy and excited to get so many gifts from her. I reached home and kept all the sarees my aunt gave and arranged my wardrobe. I now had quite a big girls wardrobe and lot of pritty clothes and beautiful saree. After that i finiched my work for the night and did arrangements for college next day and slept. The next day after comming back from college i met aunt again and now it had become a routine for me to spend atleast one hour with aunt every day as a girl and on Sundays i would be with her as a boy..
to be contd...
Raghav (Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:31)
Part 13.
Slowly time passed and it had been 3 months since me and aunt became friends ( tanya and aunt) it was my birthday after two days and my mom was coming to ooty to spend a few days with me and also celebrate my birthday. During my moms visit she was going to stay in my aunts house and even i had to stay there which meant that no crossdressing for a week, i was sad that i will not be able to crossdress for a week and moreover i was sad that i cant crossdress on my birthday as i had planned a lot of things for my birthday. As i was sitting at home thinking about all this i got a call from my aunt.. that means tanya got a call from aunt, aunt told tanya that it was her nieces birthday (tarun’s) day after tomorrow so she wanted to buy him a gift and wanted my help so she told me to meet her tomorrow and also invited me for the birthday party but since tarun and tanya cant be there at the same time and since mom was going to be there for a week and i cant crossdress and meet aunt i told aunt that there is an emergency and tomorrow night i am going to my hometown for one week. On hearing that my aunt was sad and told to cancel my trip but i told her its compulsory to go so she agreed but on one condition that i spend the entire next day with her as she has to buy gifts and she also had some other things to do. So i agreed and we decided to meet at 11am at her house.
The next day i got up and decided to bunk college as i had to meet aunt. I was going to be a busy day as we were going out and will be walking a lot i decided to wear a punjabi salwaar suit as it is comfortable and girls look good in that. So i wore it and as decided i went to aunts house. Aunt was already outside her house waiting for me and as I reached there she got into the same taxi and me went to the ooty commercial road which was the main place for shopping in ooty. We got down the road and first went to a big hotel there and ordered food for the next day as aunt had invited many of her friends also to celebrate. After that we started walking and we reached a big ladies clothing showroom and as we were going to enter aunt asked me to get a bottle of water from the next store and by the time i came back aunt was outside the store, i asked her why she came out? to which she replied that she did not like anything so she came out.
After looking for a gift for an hour we got tired and aunt told me that she had an appointment at the beauty parlor and it was getting late so she said that we can resume shopping after her session at the parlor. I was shocked to hear that as my aunt had stopped going to the parlor after her husbands death, aunt saw my shocked face and said “I know that u are shocked but let me tell you that when my husband was alive i used to go to the parlor every month to set my hair, eyebrows and other things “ i nodded my head and said that's great u have stated to maintain yourself again to which she replied that is all because of me and she gets inspired looking at me. i was happy to hear that and hugged her, after that we went to the parlour.
To be contd..
Raghav (Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:39)
Part 14.
After we reached the parlor every one there was happy to see aunt, as she was a regular customer and everyone came and greeted her and were happy to see her after a long time. They taught i was aunts daughter and told aunt that she has a very beautiful daughter, aunt laughed and said that i was her friend and not daughter.
The ladies in the parlor took me and aunt to our seats which were next to each other and started to wash and set out hair, once that was done they saw my eyebrows and said i had beautiful eyebrows naturally and did not need threading. Next they did my facial and shaped my nails and asked me to choose a colour for nail paint , i was hesitant as tomorrow onwards i was going to be tarun and not tanya but aunt forced me and i taught its ok as i can remove it after going home so i selected a light pink color. After that they applied a nice and cool face pack and asked me to close my eyes and sit for half an hour, and in that that time i dint know when i fell asleep, i was woken up after and hour and when i opened my eyes i saw aunt and she looked so beautiful with a new hairstyle, shaped eyebrows and lipstick etc. we got up started to walk outside, aunt paid the bill and when we were walking outside i just glanced at the mirror to see myself, i was shocked, shocked beyond imagination, my hair looked different and i had a very girly hairstyle, it looked extremely good and made me even more beautiful, aunt saw my face and said “u look wonderful“
Me: thank u aunt but when did they style my hair ?
Aunt: when you were sleeping dear, i told them to style your hair
Me: oh
I was sure to get caught if my mom saw me in this hair style, it was the most girly hairstyle. I taught it was for aunts hipness and after going home i can straighten it and set it like before. I noticed my pretty nails and we walked out of the parlor. As we were walking i noticed that my aunt kept looking at my face with a smile. Initially i looked at her and smiled back but she continued looking at me and smiling so i got suspicious but before i could ask aunt she spoke.
Aunt: dear i am feeling hungry can we eat?
Me ok aunty lets go to that restaurant on the opposite side
Aunt: yes that's a good one
We crossed the road and entered the restaurant, we found a nice place to sit and ordered food, after that when i was looking around, i could still see aunt smiling. This time i asked her why she is smiling from that time ? aunt got up from her seat and asked to to come with her. I got up and followed, she went to one corner of the restaurant which had a big mirror and stood there, i followed and stood next to her. She turned towards me and gently with one finger she moved the hair that were covering my ears. After that what i saw shook me completely, MY EARS WERE PIERCED. I was shocked to see my ears pierced and couldnt control my self and started crying, i now knew that tomorrow when mom comes and wen i become tarun and go in front of them with my ears pierced and in this girly hairstyle aunt will find out and my crossdressing is going to end and thinking about that i couldn't control and started crying even more, aunt looked at me and said
Aunt: why are you crying dear ?
Me: why did u ask them to pierce my ears ?
Aunt : dear you look beautiful, just see yourself in the mirror
Me. no i cant pierce ... because ...
And i start to cry even more. Aunt suddenly pulled me towards her and gave a tight hug. I was still crying and dint stop at all, aunt gently started rubbing my back and said
Aunt: its ok now. Calm down tarun.
Me: WHAT ??? Tarun ?
Aunt: Yes sweetie its enough now i know everything
Me: no , i mean i am tanya
Aunt: Tarun now its no point hiding, i kno everything so its better u accept
On hearing that i hung my head in shame i dint kno how to react or what to tell i was still hugging her and dint know how to face her
Aunt: I know there are a lot of questions in your mind but first lets have lunch and then we shall speak
To be contd...
sirisha (Sunday, 23 October 2016 03:56)
Well continuation raghav maintain the same
Raghav (Sunday, 23 October 2016 05:42)
Part 15.
As we were eating i kept my head down and was eating quietly, even aunt dint say anything, i was so tensed that i couldn't even swallow the food and even my ears had started to pain and i was constantly touching my ears and that's when aunty spoke “they maid your ears numb before piercing, now it will start paining but don't worry it will be fine by tomorrow morning“ i just shook my head and did not utter a single word. As we were eating i slowly raised my head to see aunts face and she was smiling and i still had tears in my eyes, looking at me aunt said “o dear please don't cry, i am not angry“ on hearing that i felt a little relaxed and sat comfortably. After we finished eating aunt ordered for ice cream and as the waiter went she turned towards me and said
Aunt: yes tanya now we can speak
Me: aunty you the truth now so y are u calling me tanya ?
Aunt : because i love tanya and want you to always remain as tanya
Me: are u serious aunty ?
Aunt: yes dear i am serious and its no problem at all
I got so happy that i jumped out of my seat and hugged aunt, she responded with equal excitement and kissed me on my cheeks
Me: now tell me aunty when did you come to know about me ?
Aunt: i came to know the first time itself when i met you that night in the taxi but still i had a doubt but it was confirmed when you came home the next day in that black saree
Me: but how ?
Aunt: my dear girl you are like my kid, when you were born we were staying in a joint family and i have helped your mother in taking care of you till you were 3 years old. And when you were 2 years old you had hurt yourself and got stiches on your back, that day when you were in a saree i could see that mark on your back, and moreover u are like my kid and don't you think i will find out just by touching you.??
As aunt was talking i was feeling so shy and aunt said
Aunt: o my baby is blushing ?? now you tell me when did you become this cute little girl ?
i told everything to aunt right from the beginning when i used to crossdress in moms clothes and everything else. On hearing that aunt said
Aunt: o dear why dint you tell me or your parents about your feelings ?
Me: i was scared aunt that you people may not understand
Aunt: baby for all parents their child's happiness is the most important thing no matter what. If the kid is happy then the parents are also happy, now lets not waste time and get going as i have a lot of work to do for tomorrow.
I was so happy that i cant explain t was like i had got the entire world i was just too happy. Before i walked out aunt said
Aunt: my dear, beautiful girls like you always need to look perfect. You have ruined your makeup by crying. I will wait outside and you go to the washroom and do touchup to your makeup and come , and remember you are a girl so go to the girls washroom
To be contd...
vasantha (Sunday, 23 October 2016 07:37)
raghava your stories very super pa pls continue pa & srs pls continue your fan pa pls continue fashion stories pls pls pls i am request very very very much pa pls pls pls continue
Meena (Sunday, 23 October 2016 08:15)
@Raghav : Nice story..
guru (Sunday, 23 October 2016)
Yes raguv nice story i ever hear plz continue pa
Zara (Sunday, 23 October 2016 15:09)
Superb Raghav ... :) :)
Vani (Sunday, 23 October 2016 16:18)
@Vishkanya: Beautiful plot. Please continue the story
Raghav (Monday, 24 October 2016 11:15)
Thanks a lot for the comments everyone ... will post the next 4 parts tomorrow
Poornima (Monday, 24 October 2016 14:57)
Vishkanya, please continue your story. Its very beautiful
sirisha (Monday, 24 October 2016 15:46)
Nice go through raghav maintain same
sirisha (Monday, 24 October 2016 15:52)
Nice continuation raghav go on
JRS (Monday, 24 October 2016 23:53)
Changed
Hi my name is mark. I live in outer part of Chennai, a IT graduate and working in a software firm. I'm married and no children. Our life goes well when a regular change of shift happened, She works in morning shift 6 to 3 she will be home only by 3:30pm and my job timing is usual UK shift I go by 3pm we hardly meet only on Saturday and Sundays even if we stay at same home. We have a maid she usually come morning at 9 am and leave by 11 am and before I leave I'll handover the house keys to her. So this is a regular routine that happen. Let's move into story, I've a secret fetish cross dressing, I've stopped this after my marriage. after a break since me and my wife hardly meet I've decided to restart my dressing. One fine Monday, after my maid left. I quickly searched my wife old saree and other dresses abandoned, I managed to take few old blouses and stretched bra's and panties and few inskirts that lost colours, and her old sarees. I kept all these separately in a bag, and placed in a separate cover and hid it with my wife old abandoned junks. I kept looking at my new stash of dresses and desperately wanted to wear immediately, time is twelve and I got to start to office only by 3 so I had time. Quickly dressed up in her stretched panties and bra, I wore her inskirts and looked in mirror, yes it is a perfect fit, I'm quite equal to my partner size, but a little big, hence her stretched clothes were a perfect fit for me, then I wore her blouse, and took the saree,i touched the saree, same old feel the sexual pleasure without touching myself, that was a great feel I quick draped the saree as fast I was, and pinned the pleat in skirt and blouse i looked perfect, and a little makeup will surely give me a perfect picture, I don't usually keep beard on my face, so it was quick and easy to start my makeup with a little primer and a basic foundation and little bit of mascara with a bindi, wow I looked amazing, if my wife look at me now she will definitely fall in love with me, I had a little walk with my wife heels and went into my bedroom and had a peaceful sleep after so long years, I woke up by 2 and quickly removed all traces of makeup and got ready to office and left, and this has become a regular routine, everyday dress up for 2 hours to 3 hours and dream about dressing up in weekends, and this made our relationship more stronger than before.
To be continued….
JRS (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 00:27)
Changed 2:
And another usual day of my dressing, I dressed up with usual makeup and was walking inside my house, a quick heart attack came when I heard the front door knocked, I quickly peeped through the door lens and saw it's my maid,
Five minutes Selvi, my maid's name
I went to bathroom and quickly removed my little makeup first and found the mascara is still there on my eyes I took a cotton and dipped on coconut oil and wiped the mascara, and this already took a little long I only removed the saree and covered my skirt with a dhoti and wore a round neck T-shirt and she rang the bell again, completely covered in sweat I opened the door she looked at me and asked
Any problem sir? Why u look so wet? Fever? She quickly came inside and wait for 10 minutes I'll make a strong tea…
In that tension I didn't speak up Much and said ok yes. Just bring me a cup of tea.
She went to kitchen and I slowly walked to my sofa and sat, she was looking at me weird from kitchen, she quickly made tea and gave me the tea. She looked here and there and asked why is everything seems messy?
No nothing I just dropped my old collection coins , was searching that. Why did u come?
Sir I need my salary five days in advance I spoke to madam last evening and she asked me to collect it from you.
Oh is it! Wait I'll get that for you. I slowly got up and walked toward my bedroom and came with my wallet and gave her the salary, told her i was short with 1000rs I'll give the same tomorrow morning.
She said ok, shall I ask u something Sir?
Yes selvi, what is that?
Are u wearing something underneath your shirt and dhoti? She laughed.
I stammered, no ah.. why? Am I looking fat?
It looks like you are wearing a blouse and skirt, look it dhoti is strictly sticked to skirt and doesn't flow as it does normally when I see my husband wear and look at your back the sweat covered your T-shirt but not the blouse worn area. Why are u behaving like this Sir?
Selvi don't joke I'm not wearing anything like u imagine, u go on we will meet tomorrow morning.
Oh is it?sir if u r not wearing skirt then fold it above your knees! If u r not wearing a blouse remove your T-shirt !
I hesitated a bit and started sweating again, selvi please do me a favour,
Yes Sir! What is that?
Don't tell this to my wife please..
She laughed aloud, and so it's all true is it? So were you wearing a saree? Can I see you dressed like that please?
Selvi please don't joke, forget it u saw nothing and that's it.
So is it mark? Then I've to discuss about this to your wife tonight Sir… and I think I won't see you again as a SIR.
Don't threaten me, Selvi I'll do Anything for you, okay! But please don't tell to my wife. I need to go office let me go, bye I asked her to Leave.
She stood there and said, you said you'll do anything, now go wear the saree finish the little makeup and come here fast.
With so much tension I went to my room, removed my dhoti and t-shirt and wore the saree, stuffed my bra cup and as usual a little makeup and came out.
She saw me and praised wow Mark Sir you look so much like a woman, and why are you wearing an old saree, I too have these model sarees , and this is a cheaper one how did u got it?
Thanks selvi this is my wife's old saree she wore when she was in village, it's her mom's saree and she never wore it.
What do u call yourself when you wear a saree?
malathy … I'll call myself malathy..
Nice name malathy, I'll call you like this itself,ok I've to leave bye. Tomorrow morning I'll come for balance 1000rs. You be ready as malathy. I'll be here by 9am.
But selvi I'll wake up by 11 only I'll come home only by 1am.
That's your problem Malathy, you as malathy tomorrow 9am, else I won't come inside this house until I tell your stupid hobby to your wife.
I stood there in silence and said OK selvi.. bye now..
She left and I quickly changed and started to office.
To be continued...
Grammar (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 00:47)
Omg what's going on both raghav and jrs are writing the same concept story. You have to learn from Vishkanya. I beg you please please please stop writing your story.
obat alami kanker multiple myeloma (Tuesday, 25 October 2016)
thanks i verry understand about your article , verry nice
JRS (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 01:17)
Changed 3:
Next day morning I woke up late by 8:45 am I quickly dressed in saree and little makeup, morning face light makeup cheap old saree. My usual wig with tied bun behind, I looked in mirror and realised I look more alike my maid. Not big difference.
Doorbell rang, I peeped through the lens, it's my maid. I opened the door, Malathy look how you look, beautiful dear, I will take you home as the way you are, you are such cute you know.
Thanks Selvi, Here is your 1000rs.
Thanks dear, and one minute. Selvi went out and brought the mop and broom, and hold this malathy. I took the broom and about to close the door,
Suddenly selvi pushed me out of my door and locked the door. Now I am standing outside of my own house, panicked and in shock I rang my door bell, Selvi asked me to clean the terrace and come.
Selvi I'll get caught, please neighbours are office going time and if they see me. Please….
Malathy don't panic it's your Beauty, no one will notice finish and come back soon, if u stand still everyone will look at you, act normal and finish work asap and come ring the bell.
I quickly started cleaning and finished the Terrace, people crossed by, my neighbours crossed none give a big notice, a very few gave a look and just passed, I quickly ran to my door and rang the bell. Selvi opened the door.
I went inside with sweat, I looked selvi in anger, she smiled, look don't behave, I may have to tell your wife.
Selvi what is wrong with you ?
Shut up and go to kitchen wash everything That your wife kept.
I looked selvi in disbelief, what is she really thinking? How far it's all going to go?
I started washing and selvi was standing behind inspecting me in every action and guiding me how to wash properly.
After kitchen she asked me to make two cup of tea. One for her and one for Mark Sir.
I don't know how to make tea selvi, she came with me and taught how to.make it and advised me not to forget this. I did as she told.
Malathy arrange everything on this house and got back to your normal self, and I'll meet you tomorrow morning as Malathy.
Selvi this won't work out, we have to stop this. I said
Malathy you should stop this or else I have to tell your wife.
I stood in silence and tired from today works. Selvi left.
I went had my tea, and remained in saree for a while till 2 pm and refreshed myself and started to office.
Next day morning I again woke up same timing same makeover Selvi asked me to repeat the same. I did as she told. And Friday came usually we keep everything in washing machine and costly clothes to selvi for washing. And this time Selvi did the same thing to me i washed all the costly dress and she asked me to go terrace and dry all our clothes I did as she told, before she leaves I called
Selvi tomorrow and day after tomorrow is weekend and please don't make me do this , my wife , if she know I'll be in trouble.
Malathy tomorrow I'll be here and you as Mark. Our deal is deal, I won't let this secret to your wife. And you can still live your secret life, I'll help you…
thanks Selvi… and thanks for this wonderful experience.
My weekend job continued. I woke up early with my wife, and she was surprised to see me awake early, and selvi came by 9am and she started Her duties.
While me and my wife were talking, I was looking how selvi was working so fast and elegant.
To be continued..
JRS (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 01:27)
This story I write for myself and people are interested only to read, if not interested shut the fuck up and get lost. Don't mess with me I'll pull your balls to your hole and staple it and u don shit... Ass hole... Grammar..
JRS (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 02:27)
Changed 4:
My wife stood and went to take bath..
Selvi took all the clothes washed yesterday and whispered Malathy, tomorrow I won't come and you fold and iron all these clothes ok.. time up I got to leave by 11 am. I smiled and shoes thumbs up symbol to her.
Next day Selvi was in leave, my wife sadly told me, I told her ok dear today is your mark Day, I'll do all the works you take rest. And you sonyhe cooking I'll do the ironing and folding! What do you say?
My wife felt so happy and happily said ok mark now times on let's start.. full day I enjoyed doing all works and imagined myself wearing saree and doing all works.
Next day morning came, I eagerly dressed up as malathy and waited for Selvi, and she came as usual and I continued my work as well. She appreciated my works this week.
Selvi said from next week she will come only on weekends and I suppose to do all work in my home.
I asked so you will get paid for what I work?
She said yes, and if you like this living I'll arrange to earn by working 11 to 2 and I can still earn.
I was laughing and asked selvi how you think I can fool people and work outside.
Malathy you look perfect and you can easily fool anyone, you think any of your neighbours questioned in last 2 weeks who that new lady doing brooming the terrace?
No Selvi, if you think I can still perform, I'm ready.
A smile crossed in her face. Malathy I'll let you join in a local housekeeping, projects based on companies, no uniforms just a feminine coat over your saree, you interested?
I thought for a moment, I liked to cross dress and why is this? Is this really what I want? All the sexual feel I get by working as a women is making me urge to do more, being Malathy I said a quick yes.
Malathy tomorrow morning 8am be ready let's meet that leader and apply for that job. They only need your signature, so prepare one sign as malathy ok.. with that she kissed on my forehead and left.
Next day morning for the first time Selvi came and took me outside of my house, myself as malathy I took small steps looking at the whole world as a woman I felt different. The company was very next to my street, when I met the lead, they asked did selvi told you about the job?
I said yes. They pulled some papers and InkPad for sign, I said I can sign, selvi looked at me and gave a no look, I understood the situation and acted like a illiterate, and I didn't had the opportunity to read the papers, they asked me to sign the papers.
I looked at Selvi, she smiled and asked me to sign ..
I just signed… and the lead said. You have to report here by 10:30 and cab will take me to places where I have to do chores till 1:30 and they drop u by 2pm . I smiled and said ok.
While walking back home, I asked selvi. What is that paper I signed?
I don know Malathy, my mom is working there, while going back home we will meet her and get the details ok.
Ok selvi, we quickly reached her home. Her mom looked at me asked who is this beautiful girl. Selvi said she is her new housekeeping friend. I smiled to her MOM.
Selvi told her what happened and what I signed.
Her mom looked Selvi very seriously why did u took her to that place?
She looked me and said, Malathy it's an agreement you have to work there for next one year. Failed to do you have to face legal formalities. Saturday Sunday they will call all day. It's hard to take leave. But you have to forget all these in that two hours. Don't worry Malathy.only in year know adjust.
Hearing this I was completely shocked and looked at Selvi… I called selvi shall we leave?
Yes Malathy she came with me till home.
I was silent till I reach home once I reach home I came inside soon and locked the door.
Selvi what have you done? How will I work every Saturday and Sunday?
Sorry Malathy I gave them my address only the cab will come my house, you go there get ready and join the work with my mom. Our little secret will be secure…
It sounds to be a plan.. ok Selvi. But.. I dunno where this all going to end… if my wife knows my life will come to an end… sadly I started my work again.
Being Malathy…
To be continued...
JRS (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 03:06)
Changed 5:
Sorry to rush and finish this story. I've got only such time. This may be my last story for this year. If anyone talented please build up this story.
Second weekend started, I woke early in morning and my secret belonging are already taken by selvi to her place. Ive informed my wife that I'm going for a special work during weekends 2 hours all weekend and this will last for next 1 year. My wife looked me weird what?
Yes dear and I will get some 6000 every month. Hearing this. Ya ok. If it really give us some money. Yes I insist you go. I kissed my darling good bye and reached Selvi house, there her mom was smiling at me Malathy sir ah hmmm come get changed quickly we have to go… I quickly dressed and went with her. Cab came and as usual we reached a corporate and worked two hours cleaning all bathrooms and floors allocated to us. And I reached back home.
My wife called me and asked why do you smell so filthy, u look terrific! Tel me what exactly you are doing?
I said it's a human resource team we got to engage some little fresh up workout that will keep us fresh, but I actually end of smell bad. Ha ha..
She believed what I said…
Life was going smoothly for about two months, my wife never doubted.
One day that one bad day, I usually woke up and dressed as malathy was doing my chores, and went for job and returning home and when I try to enter, I found the door was open. Without any male clothes I can't even go to Selvi house to change back.
I sneaked inside the house she was Busy in the bathroom I quickly ran inside my bedroom and was removing my dress, and then I heard stop this mark, just stay as you are and open the door.
I slowly opened the door. To my added shock selvi was there. My eyes filled with tear I started to speak.
Honey I can explain…
Stop it mark I know what a bitch job you are doing. I saw you in one of my client branch clearing and cleaning those stinky bathrooms
But how did you found?
JRS (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 03:10)
Changed Final:
Last story for this year, sorry to rush and close..
How did I? Ive been living with you for past 4 years. I know how you'll do all stupid job. Just as you help me all weekend.
Initially I doubted and noticed you dressing up and working at home, I enquired selvi what the fuck is really happening, and she told me your stupid desires. as she was helping you to live your fantasy in secret I'll let you live that stupid fantasy 24/7. Today you are going to your company dressed like that as a maid.
What? Dear what about my job? Please don't do this to me?
What if that stupid housekeeping company sent you to company you work?
Sorry honey I didn't thought about that,
You will never think about that you shit. Ive emailed to you boss saying you got a better opportunity.
What? When? No please stop this. I can't take this anymore.
Oh yes you are. Come with me. She took me outside with Selvi to the nearest housekeeping company.
Dear please I won't do this again please don't come there honey please please please…
I was begging my wife and she never listened to me…
Selvi in the other hand In shock said only sorry to me..
Once we reached the place. She called the lead, they actually welcomed her. I was shocked, it was her friends actually running this firm. I was sitting quietly outside. She called me in.
They asked Malathy as you have some family issues and you wants to work as a full time in different projects for next 5 years? As you informed your madam you are ready for this?
I looked at my wife with eyes filled tears…
Oh look at her.. tears of happiness, come on girl sign this…
I silently signed the papers…. Before I reach home she gave me another set of papers.
I asked what this all about.
This is your property, bank accounts, Savings, FD’s everything to be on my name and you with nothing with your name changed as Malathy.
She looked at me straight… What?
You are serious honey? Me as a housekeeping lady and you survive alone?
No you goddamned fool. Look at Selvi, She is my lesbian baby… and we are going to get married officially and get settled in Delhi..
And my dear hubby, as a useless zero… you will stay here at Selvi place…. As MALATHY…
I looked at Selvi! Is everything planned?
Selvi started, yes dear, I told the very first day I caught you, and your wife shared her little secret and with my secret I gave her the life she Wishes… and thinking about you, we wanted to get rid of you somehow with nothing, with no identity… this plot we created… and everything is as planned…
Hope you are doing well Malathy…
Next day I woke up at 8:00am as Malathy in Selvi House and my new routine continues from here….
Vani (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 15:05)
Nice story SRS.
Jalaja (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 15:06)
Vishkanya, very nice story dear but why you stopped. Please continue
cara mengobati tukak lambung paling ampuh (Tuesday, 25 October 2016 20:12)
thanks your article really nice
Srs (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 00:47)
Jrs ur right the same problem is going on with me, telling that i made grammar mistakes and I told already that I am not professional story writer that's why I stopped writing my story.
PriyaSri (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 01:59)
The two men eyed each other with caution. Both were embarrassed by their near nudity and the displayed feminine items. Both men were in chastity both wore identical stainless steel chastity cages of the ball trap design. Their enclosed penis pointed down and the balls extended and were on display. Sneha sat in a comfortable chair and smiled at the boys. She crossed her legs and sipped her coffee. Helen had on a pair of wide legged comfortable jeans, a white tunic top with silver trim and comfortable silver boat shoes. The boy that was her husband was called Shyam. Shyam no longer had husband privileges. He was nude except for the chastity device, earrings, nosering, bangles, mangalsutra, bindi, payals, sindoor with a five inch heel. The other boy was called Ramesh and was a new friend of Helen. Ramesh was attired the same as Shyam except sindoor and mangalsutra.
Both boys hated the chastity device but were secretly glad to have it on today. Each boy was sexually excited by the appearance of the other boy and the exquisite humiliation of being exposed this way. Neither boy wanted Sneha or the other boy to see the erection growing in the cage. Both boys and Sneha saw the humiliating erection trying to form. She called the boys over and had them stand in front of her. Each boy was instructed to put a hand on the others cage and keep it there. Both Shyam and Ramesh did not want this intimate contact with another male and of course Sneha knew this but because she asked them to touch they touched.
Both boys worried about what she might ask them to do later on. Shyam was worried anytime there was another man around Sneha even if that man was in chastity also. Sneha's age was unknown to Tinker. She was in fact in her fifties, had black hair with flecks of grey, tall at five feet ten inches in flats, wore Jewelry with minimal make up. She was beautiful and very striking, Shyam was a handsome man but feminization process had taken its toll. Still good looking and if allowed masculine attire could turn a woman's head. In the sissy costuming he was required to wear the head turning was usually followed by giggles or the quiet "Oh my God - is that a man?"
Shyam lost his husband privilege the day he was locked in the device around his penis. He of course held on to the hope that it would someday be granted. Ramesh met Sneha on line and even dated her once or twice. He had tried to seduce her only to be rebuffed and told by her he was getting close to being spanked. He made the mistake of daring her to try it and found himself in the embarrassing position of being over her knees with his pants down. Ramesh learned this was not a game. Sneha paddled his ass till it shined then she switched from her hand to the sole of her flat shoe and Ramesh was in tears. With his pants still down he replaced the shoe and then received instruction on shoe worship. Ramesh was a quick learner and his erection told Sneha all she needed to know about him.
Sneha stood the sobbing Ramesh in front of her and told the poor man that the only way he would be allowed any of her time is to accept his position as a sissy in chastity. Once fitted to the device Ramesh was trained by Sneha in the sissy arts. She had decided that Ramesh should meet Shyam and the two of them would become matching sissies. Shyam was not taking this news well. Shyam very much wanted to return to his former status as husband with husband privilege and he knew that with another sissy around that possibility was very distant. Besides he did not want Ramesh to be assisting Sneha with the intimate tasks that he now did. His leg saving and the once in a while pussy lick and ass sniffing was as close as he was getting to his husband privilege He sure as hell didn't want to share that with Ramesh.
PriyaSri (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 02:15)
Shyam was almost sure that there were other men Sneha was seeing. He sometimes helped Sneha dress in very dressy outfits for an evening out. There was no explanation ever give to him as to why she was dressed so nicely or what she was doing. He just hooked the bra, buckled the evening shoe and clipped the jewelry closed as though he was the personal maid. And now this simpering sissy in high heels shows up and is promised the same serving position as him. Ramesh was hoping that the day would come when he would bed the lovely Sneha the presence of a husband even a sissy husband in chastity was making that dream fade. To make matters worse for Ramesh, he knew that Sneha had been looking for a man to date and to have casual sex with. Ramesh had hopes of being that man. Instead she had turned him into the sissy that was holding the caged cock of the woman he desires husband.
Sneha said Shyam meet Ramesh and Ramesh meet Shyam. You girls will become best friends, now kiss cheeks. After an embarrassed cheek kissing by the two boys Sneha went on to explain the new rules. The boys would greet each other with what she called sissy style. Ramesh would bend forward and Shyam would spread her rear cheeks and smell her special spot then she would kiss it. The positions would then reverse and Shyam would bend forward and present her ass and Ramesh would sniff and kiss in sissy greeting. Each boy would be the personal assistant of the other and would help with body shaving, hair, makeup and other deeply personal things such as making sure each boy was clean after using the toilet. The boys would care for the others feet and the hair removal around each other's anus. The boys would function as one and would both be punished for any infraction. Each boy would only be addressed in the feminine unless Sneha decided that the term boy was to be used. On the nights Ramesh stayed over they would share the bed in the cuddle position. Of course there would be no sexual contact between the boys unless Sneha requested it then both boys would do exactly as instructed no matter how humiliating it may be. Sneha then clapped her hands and said OK boys practice the sissy greeting.
A very red faced Ramesh bent forward while a totally humiliated Shyam sniffed and served at this most intimate of spots. It was a surprise to Ramesh to experience the sexual stimulation of the ass lick and to know that he was about to stimulate another male the same way. The excitement showed in the poor boy's partial erections that did not go unnoticed by Sneha or the other boy. Practice make perfect Sneha told the boys. As the boys were practicing Sneha was telling them that on the nights that Ramesh was staying over they would sleep together in the classic spoon position. When they were out in public they would hold hands. No matter how they were dressed they would always carry a purse and be wearing pretty shoes. Sneha reminded both boys that they had small delicate feet as well as a small delicate penis. Sneha told the boys that they would dress alike even if not the same colors if one wore a saree the other one would also, if one wore a salwar suit the other would also. They would help each other with body shaving, wiping, pedicures and the cleaning of each other's bits and openings. Sneha said that when she had a guest over the boys would serve as a team and if a guest was a man he may stay for just a short time or the night even a weekend or longer. The boys would give Sneha all the privacy she and her fellow desired Shyam was to never try to play the marriage card but instead would welcome any fellow of her's choosing and each boy or both would be available for sexual service should a man desire that. If service was not sexual the boys would be available for foot rubs, toilet assisting, shoe polishing and laundry duty should a man need that. The boys were told to kiss the tube to show they understood. Each very embarrassed boy bent and kissed the others chastity device.
The boys were back to back, bent forward at the waist and joined by a double ended dildo their hands were joined at the wrists and drew the boys back so as to make sure the dildo stayed in. Both boys wore their chastity devices and high heeled pumps and were practicing their movements. Sneha wanted them to "move as one" in this humiliating dance of submission. The boys kept moving and concentrated on smooth movements. Sneha had a small crop she was more than willing to apply to the back and legs of each boy. In fact she rather enjoyed the little yelps each boy emitted when struck.
PriyaSri (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 02:21)
Sneha was on the phone with her mother and outlined the training process to her. It seemed that her mother approved of humiliating Shyam and looked forward to meeting Ramesh as well as the new fellow she said she had in her life. Sneha told her how the new fellow had come up with the idea of the double dildo bondage and the training procedure. When the training was complete the boys would not need the wrist restraints and would be able to gracefully glide around and have their hands free for serving or to guide a penis to their mouths. It seemed that Sneha's new fellow was not opposed to a nice little blow job from a sissy and both Shyam and Ramesh had been gifted with that experience. Boys had become best friends forever and the close contact and mutual humiliation had formed a bond between them that Sneha enjoyed exploring and exploiting. Her mother as well as the new fellow would be over tonight and Sneha was hoping the boys would be trained to serve by then.
The boys finished their makeup and checked each other for any mistakes. They hooked each other's bra straps and made sure their sarees were wrinkle free they helped each other slip on the black 6 inch heels and then the humiliating jewellery, the sarees had opening at the front and back showing their chastity and butt holes, as they wore no panties or petticoat. Each boy checked the other's chastity device and the two of them walked in to the living room. Each boy had installed a condom on the other and reinstalled the chastity devices.
Sneha was on the phone with her mother and outlined the training process to her. Sneha wanted Shyam and Ramesh to be maids of the house, Shyam would be taking care of all the kitchen duties and being personal maid to Sneha and Ramesh would take care of cleaning house and washing clothes. It seemed that her mother approved of humiliating Shyam and looked forward to meeting Ramesh as well as the new fellow she said she had in her life. Sneha told her how the new fellow had come up with the idea of the double dildo bondage and the training procedure. When the training was complete the boys would not need the wrist restraints and would be able to gracefully glide around and have their hands free for serving or to guide a penis to their mouths. It seemed that Sneha's new fellow was not opposed to a nice little blow job from a sissy and both Shyam and Ramesh had been gifted with that experience. Boys had become best friends forever and the close contact and mutual humiliation had formed a bond between them that Sneha enjoyed exploring and exploiting. Her mother as well as the new fellow would be over tonight and Sneha was hoping the boys would be trained to serve by then.
The boys finished their makeup and checked each other for any mistakes. They hooked each other's bra straps and made sure their sarees were wrinkle free they helped each other slip on the black 6 inch heels and then the humiliating jewellery. Both wore identical red embroidery saree with strapless blouse, the jewellery included long earrings wording sissy, two noserings, big bindi, payals, 12 bangles in each hand, mangtika. Shyam also had sindoor and mangalsutra. the sarees had opening at the front and back showing their chastity and butt holes, as they wore no panties or petticoat. Each boy checked the other's chastity device and the two of them walked in to the living room. Each boy had installed a condom on the other and reinstalled the chastity devices.
Shyam carried a velvet lined wooden box and Ramesh carried a black velvet bag with a draw string, their payal and bangles were making sweet sound with heels clicking on floor. Sneha and her new fellow Rajesh sat on the couch and watched the humiliated boys approach them. Sneha and her fellow just smirked and waited. Shyam presented Sneha the wooden box and Ramesh opened the velvet bag. Rajesh could not suppress his laughter as each boy bent forward and Sneha used the personal lubricant in the bottle that was in the sack to lube up the double ended dildo that was in the box. Rajesh inserted the dildo deep into Shyam's back side and then guided Ramesh onto the other end. Both boys let out a small gasp as the dildo found it's home. The bottle of lube and the bag was handed back to Ramesh and the box to Shyam. The happy couple sat on the couch and watched the two sissy boys in this humiliating but graceful dance of submission return the box and bag to the bedroom. Each boy was quiet as the extent of their humiliation and submission sank in.
The end
Original: http://www.asubmissivesissy.com/index.php?option=com_content&view=article&id=427:the-boys&catid=9&Itemid=107
sirisha (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 05:14)
SRS and raghav continue your stories
JRS (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 05:59)
Srs don't stop your stories for some filthy scum bags ... U share whatever u write..
Kashmiraa (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 06:16)
Raghav... Great Great Story ... Amazed by your Story Writing... please cntinue Writing Such Superb Writing.
Jesika Rani Silpa...(jrs) great To Hav U Back ... nice Story by You Too... Please Keep Up The Great Work.
A request Too All Writers.... Please ignore negative Remarks About Grammar.... It Has never Been An Issue For The Readers And Fans... We Used to Enjoy Story before And Now Also... correct english was Never A Concern For Us Before And Even Not Now Also. Plzz Understand readers passion .... We Just Love The Story ... Please Give More Importance To Readers and Ignore others. SRs Plz Continue Ur Story If U Care For Readers.
Raghav (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 07:54)
Part 16
After doing touchup to my makeup i came outside the hotel and saw aunt talking over the phone, i went and stood next to her, i dint kno who she was talking to but after she kept the call i was shocked to hear that she was talking to my mom and when i asked if mom knows about tanya, aunt smiled and said that she had informed mom about my crossdressing and she also spoke to mom everyday and kept her updated. After hearing this i felt like the entire world was going to end, i just felt so scared that i dint move or speak. Aunt shook me and told not to worry as mom always had a doubt on me but never asked me as she taught i might get offended. But i couldnt get it out of my mind that now even mom knows about it. I quickly asked aunt if dad also knows to which aunt replied that dad doesn't kno and mom will tell him only after she meets me and discusses it with me. After hearing that i felt some relief but my tension did not decrease as mom was coming tomorrow and i dint know how to face her, i also told aunt that i dont know how to face mom, but aunt told me not to worry as mom is very excited and loves me even more now.
After our discussion we crossed the road and were walking towards the taxi stand and on our way aunt calls someone and tells him that we will be near his shop in 5 mins please keep the bag ready. I asked aunt what it is but she just smiled and said its a surprise. As we walked a little further we reached that big clothes showroom and on seeing us a man came out with 2 huge bags and gave it to us and thanked aunt for shopping in their showroom, then we got a taxi and left the market. On the way i asked what was in those bags and thats when i get the biggest surprise,
Aunt: dear tanya in this bag there is a dress that you will be wearing for your birthday party tomorrow.
Me: aunt there are two big bags .. how many dresses did you buy ?
Aunt: their its just one dress baby but it is a very special one and has a lot of accessories to it.
I was shocked and tried to guess a lot but the dress was not coming to my mind and as i was in my imagination we reached aunts house. As soon as we entered i quickly took the bags and kept it on the table and started to unpack and aunt also joined me, as i opened the bag there was another cloth bag inside, i pulled it and took it out, it was very heavy, i looked at ant and aunt was smiling, as i was opening the cloth bag i could see a lot of fancy stone work and purple colored cloth, i got hold of the cloth and pulled it out and my mouth was completely open after seeing that, it was a heavy ghagra with a lot of fancy stone work, it looked very very beautiful just like the one heroin's wear in movies it was very pretty and heavy, looked like a brides ghagra i looked at aunts face and immediately hugged her and kissed her cheeks,
me: thank u aunty, its such a beautiful ghagra, looks so elegant, i had never imagined myself wearing a ghagra choli
aunt: tanya u dont have to thank me. its your first birthday as tanya and i wanted to make it the best day of your life and this is just a small thing
me: thank you so much aunt. This bag has ghagra and the choli so what's there in the other bag?
Aunt: the chunni, your foot wear, purse, bra and panty and some makeup accessories
Me.: o my god aunty its just my birthday but looks like you have decided to make me like a real bride
Aunt: yes my dear its your birthday but all my friends and your mom will be seeing you for the first time tomorrow so i want you to look the best
Me: when is mom coming aunty?
Aunt: Sudha (mom) will come directly to the party in the evening
Me: aunty i am very scared to come in front of everyone
Aunt: dont worry baby i have also called 2 beauticians who will get you ready for tomorrow
Me: aunty i seriously dont know how to thank you, you are doing so much for me
Aunt: next time u say this and i will stop talking to you, its late now and tomorrow is a big day so lets have dinner and sleep early so that we wake up early as there is a lot of work tomorrow.
Me: ok aunty
With dad we had dinner and went to sleep and i was already imagining myself in that ghagra choli and couldn't control and had a hard boner in my panty
To be cond.....
Raghav (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 08:25)
Thank u all for the comments,
Sorry to keep the readers waiting. my story is very big and I have not been getting time to write so please bare with me. I want to take my time and write slowly because if I write in haste then the essence and charm will be lost.
vasantha (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 09:50)
raghav pls continue story good srs pls continue your story pa pls pls pls pls pls pls pls pls continue very early wait for the fashion stories pa ppls its rumble request pa
Rachna (Wednesday, 26 October 2016 14:29)
Great story raghav pls continue
Srs (Thursday, 27 October 2016 00:31)
Thanks for your support, I will continue my story soon
JRS (Thursday, 27 October 2016 01:43)
Prey
Milan and his wife Merlin a cute couple with no understanding. There couple life is as bad as they beautiful are. Merlin is a freak when she was a teenager and dare to go extended level of freak. Milan is a soft subtle and down to earth person and more a submissive person. Milan never interested in anything Merlin wish to and never oppose to anything. Merlin always seen Milan as a soft robot at her home doing nothing a jobless junk.
With her character she could never able to handle both of her office and home and thousands of time she has asked her hubby to take care of the house.but he never turned back. His things their room and his stupid old story books.yes Milan is a story writer and never sold a book in path 2 years. This made Merlin so frustrated about her husband.
Merlin appointed a maid from her freak friends reference. She looks like a freak. A dominant 30 year old lady. Looks she can handle anything , appointed as a maid.
Now story starts from here. Merlin before she leaves office she curse her useless hubby sitting in his room doing nothing before in front of her maid.
After Merlin leaves office, maid maya noted milan sitting in his room thinking about story. She went next to him slowly teasing his hair, milan ignoring her teasing and got up, asked what u want?
I dont want anything, ah can I call u mila?
I'm Milan,
Yeah I know Milan. Isn't Mila a short name.
Ya may b, what is all about my name? Why did u come here? Go do ur job.
I'm here to do my job Mila. I noticed your hair is getting longer everyday and I thought a little style touch can make it look beautiful, u know more manly.
I think I don't need such attention to my hair. I never did it.
Yes, never did it. So try once if u don't like it I won't touch your hair. If u like it I'll come and do it everyday. Is that a deal?
Ok maya. Try and this should b d end.
Only if u don't like Right?
Milan sat on his chair and asked maya to go-ahead.
Maya went in front of Milan pushed his head to her breast, making him breath hard but the scent of her breast and sweat gave a pleasure feeling to him.
Maya slowly cleared all the locks in his hair and started combing his back hair and finished and she gone behind and tilted his head towards her stomach milan got a full view of her breast shape even if she wore a saree.
Milan didn't noticed what maya was doing, she quickly combed in centre with small fringe in front and braided his hair as a normal girls do. Maya showed the mirror to him and asked whether he likes it. He looked and said this looks like a woman face if I shave I may look like one. Can u undo the braids?
Maya without saying anything and undid the braids a d arranged in messy bun style with fringe in front and said it's a normal men cut.
Milan found that to be attractive and said ok.
Maya said I'll try different hairstyle tomorrow, but only if u shave your face clean I'll let that happen.
Milan smiled and said ok. He liked the way how maya did today and the scent of her makes him horny he wanted to try next day.
Milan woke early next day and shaved his face and kept the same messy bun hairstyle. Merlin looked at him and said bitch and left to office.
Milan was waiting at his desk.. for Maya..
And there she slowly walked behind him…
To be continued..
obat penyakit multiple myeloma (Thursday, 27 October 2016 02:09)
thanks i understand
JRS (Thursday, 27 October 2016 02:16)
Prey 2:
Next day maya walked behind Milan and appreciated,
Mila u did what I told you? U like the hairstyle?
He stammered and said yes can we go for a different style today?
Mila I'm glad to give you one but on one condition.
Yea what it is?
Today I'll arrange your hair in my wish and you keep this till I come and change tmrw, deal?
Milan immediately said ok.
Maya did as she did yesterday, pushing him towards her, caressing him, his hair and making him more more horny she gave him Mose side swept and little bangs and side braided.
Maya said he looks very cute and asked him promise me you won't see your mirror and don't change even if anyone comment about it.
In pleasure, milan said ok. Maya finished her work and left. Milan was eager to watch him in the mirror but he made his words true and stayed in his room.
His wife came and when she looked and him she went next to him and gave a deep kiss and asked him to join the night, that night was his most romantic night. Next day morning he slept so long and woke to find his wife not available and maya is started her work. He went and fresher himself and met Maya and told her what happened last night and he asked her what hairstyle she gave him. She gave him the mirror and Mila was shocked to see how girly his hair was and took it positively as his wife likes it more.
Mila asked maya to give a different hairstyle again. Maya repeated her magic and gave him a long Bob look and this time she made him feel little more mood and took him to his wife bedroom and they were together. After she is done with him she gave her bra to him and asked him to wear it till tomorrow for her. Initially he hesitated, but thinking about the last night and what happened today he wanted to do more and said yes.
Maya helped him wear it and helped him wear his shirt.
Merlin came that night and appreciated how milan is looking good and how he changed like this. He explained about Maya magic work and suggested to have a hairdo for herself. She said she will think about it.
To be continued...
JRS (Thursday, 27 October 2016 02:43)
Prey 3:
Mila requesting maya to do hairstyle. She finally decided to teach him how to do each hairstyle and how to take care of his hairstyle.
Maya daily made Mila to wear her bra, she also gave him spare Bras and panties after few times they had *”” together, she made him wear bra and panty everyday and also taught him how to keep it washed and fresh everyday.
Following weekend maya went to Merlin room and half day it took and she finally came out to see his wife having a similar hair like the one he had a fishtail braid.
Following night Merlin and Milan were together and his without his wife revealing what he is wearing underneath, he managed to remove and hid his bra and panty that night and had gr8 n8 with his wife.
This routine was following Mila and Maya together on several weekdays and Mila and Merlin together for several weekdays. Being with Maya, Mila always wore bra and panties while together.
One day Maya asked Mila she will give him new style with little work on his face. He said ok. Maya started to begin her work on Mila face, and she was talking.
Mila your hair looks more beautiful with the little bangs on front and the braids I gave you at the back Will look more sexy. Like a desi girl… u like to be a desi girl right Mila?
Yes Maya… I like to be one…
Maya screwed his chest and asked what you like to be Mila?I can't hear u!
Maya I like to be a desi girl…
Yes… Mila wants to be a desi girl.. now what is missing.. a little makeup… and dress up.. and accessories…..
Hearing all this Mila had an erection noticing… Maya…
Maya slowly took a tweezers from her pocket and kissing Mila ear and said stay there my little darling a little prick.. that's it.. she quickly plucked his eyebrows neatly thin and feminine…
Milan was enjoying closing his eyes….
And look what , Mila darling is not having a pierced ears? Isn't it bad? Mila shud be punished right?
Maya…. Do anything… this feels so good…. Mila slowly cane to Maya lips and had a tight kiss…
Maya same time took desi non coloured ear rings and pushed in his ear, Mila felt a small prick in his ear, making him move, Maya holds him tightly and have him the deepest kiss and pierced another ear with just earrings, she screwed the earrings tight to Mila Ear..
After Kiss Mila felt something heavy and moving inn his ear, asking Maya what was that?
Maya said… shhhhhh.. Mila… I'll do everything for you to look sexy…… you will love it my darling…
To be continued...
JRS (Thursday, 27 October 2016 03:08)
Prey final..
After Kiss maya made little makeup like eyeliner lipgloss she took him to his bedroom..
When Mila was ready, Maya asked him to try wearing one of her wife skirt…
Mila without hesitation with his bra and panties he started searching for a skirt, asking Maya which colour she likes the most, she chose Red colour as it go with Bra colour.
Maya paralelly took one of Merlin Yellow colour blouse and saree and waited Mila to come.
After wearing the skirt Mila came and asked maya how does it look?
Maya asked yes u r as beautiful as me my darling… she hugged him and .. close your eyes and keep your arms loose.. I have a surprise…
Mila did as she told… she slowly slid the blouse to his hands and started buttoning in the back, and stuffed the blouse with some tissues…
Maya without wasting time, quickly draped the yellow saree around Mila and Pinned the Pallu to his shoulders and pleats to his skirt.
Maya asked Mila to open his eyes, Mila found him to be most beautiful, hung his head down in shy, told maya you did a great work Maya, love you so much, I never knew I have a beautiful women in me..
Mila now you know, and you go live with it.
Thanks Maya, this took a lot of hard work, I must appreciate your creativity for all the combinations.
They both together had fun together In bed, and Mila stayed in saree till Evening, while maya finished all her works and started chit chat with Mila
Mila realising it's time his wife will come. Asked maya to leave home and he will change back.
Maya hold's his hand and stopped.
Mila you are not.
Maya, stop joking, my wife will kick Me out If she ever caught me like this.
Maya smiled. No Mila , you think all the hard work I did with you is just to let you go? Come with me.. she took Mila to the centre of house and made him sit on sofa and wait for his wife.
Mila heard his wife car coming, fearing how she will react looking at him in a saree. He hid himself with saree Pallu.
Merlin opened the door and found, who is the new girl in my house? Oh is this Mila .. my pretty baby .. look how gud u are.
Merlin u are not angry with me?
R u joking? Maya and I are sexual partners since college, she always knew I like only girl's in d bed.
I married u looking at your subtle submissive character. Hoping one day I will be my prey as I designed to be. Maya really did a great work . You can stay and wear all the sarees in d wardrobe, it's all for you.
Merlin became the house husband, and Mila became her wife. Maya sometimes occasionally visit and have fun with her pet Mila, and Merlin got no objection about that.
Tq for reading...
JRS (Thursday, 27 October 2016 12:11)
#325 is not mine , sisters beware someone writing in my name. SRS you are the best
Kumaari (Thursday, 27 October 2016 13:22)
@JRS one of the best and hot story I ever read... Gr8 work... Keel tat coming... Waiting for a similar story....
SRS (Thursday, 27 October 2016 13:41)
JRS i think grammar is doing all this , must be careful.
Grammar (Thursday, 27 October 2016 22:22)
JRS I will never request SRS to write #325 is not mine either
Obat Benjolan Pada Buah Zakar (Thursday, 27 October 2016 23:03)
Thanks i understand
JRS (Friday, 28 October 2016 02:58)
I'm Jessica Rani Shilpa, #325 is mine and all stories I wrote is mine, y on earth i have to say this here? Who wrote #337 in my name ?, I refer the filthy scum bag is Grammar. So what? I know what I'm writing, my next story will be next year, I won't b in India and busy in my career, For your information, going forward any comments on this page in JRS name will not be mine. In 2017 i will b back with my next story.
Keep Writing Friends ! Miss u all.... Sweet candies.... !
JRS (Friday, 28 October 2016 23:45)
And ofcourse you idiots need to learn some grammar.
sirisha (Sunday, 30 October 2016 13:33)
Raghav SRS JRS nice stories and do complete them with more parts
Grammar (Monday, 31 October 2016 22:14)
Jrs you have to learn both grammar and how to write stories, your story are such a waste. You need not want to continue your story, please stop writing.
sirisha (Monday, 31 October 2016 23:50)
It's not a thesis to require correction GRAMMAR but just an aid to help our imaginations which do not require a perfect grammar so if you are not interested better not to visit this site but you have no right to suggest our writers to stop writing stories
Trollan (Monday, 31 October 2016 23:51)
Grammar Sir,
Where the hell did you learn grammar. I am not an expert but 'your story "are" such a waste' and a sentence creation using 'need not want' looks like a whole new level of grammar knowledge. Please don't write english comments if you don't know english (as per your logic used to annoy our good friends who are taking their time to write wonderful stories).
With hate,
Trollan
Sharmi(Sharmila Devi) (Monday, 31 October 2016 23:58)
Hi all,
I think you remember me (my sister-in-law made me her second wife) is my first story thanks for liking my story. And now am coming with my second story "I became sister to my wife" .Hope u will enjoyy
Aditi (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 01:55)
call me or msg me 08543059511
Aijt (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 04:14)
Super sharmila devi we r waiting for you plz write quickly
latha (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 04:38)
Hi friends I return to new story .the story name is satya turn to satyabhama how my story I think all likes this other wise I write another story please tell me friends.
Grammar fan (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 04:59)
Thank God , that some so called story experts left. Please go on and have a life JRS. We don't care even if you are some Jasoos Rascal Scumbag ...
vasantha (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 05:01)
latha pls write your story pa & sharmila devi wirte your story we are early wait for story pa
latha (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 06:56)
Satya turn to satyabhama part:1,
My name is satya.I am software engineer.I living with my family.my mother name is suverna I have sister also she's name is swapna.my father died last year.in my family one rule is their that is all family members name started with 'S' this is a main rule. But i am not like this ,thi is my family back ground.now i come to my figure i am fair guy and slim .my height is 5.7 inch,I working in gen pact software company in morning shift . I already in love with colleague Bhama. She is very buetiful and intelligent,she is also loved me .we both are same size and same hight,my love matter not tell to myother because she's not accept love marriage and she name not started with a S name that's why I am not telling to my mother,my sister is a fashion designer,she is one year smaller then me but we both are behave like a friends.now we now the bhama family background she's father is a Vithal K Rao, a renowned scientist who did experiments on cloning related subjects.bhama mother name is vasantha.she is a house wife.bhama also having one sister she's name is latha.I am not seen him. because she is out of station.
Please give comments to write next parts.
sirisha (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 09:22)
Nice starting continue latha
Sharmila Devi (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 13:14)
I became sister to my wife - part 1
Let me introduce myself and my family .My self sudhakar every one calls me sudha my age is 21 and currently am free searching for Job. I got married in a early age at 19 with kiranmayi everyone call her Kiran and her age is 21, yes she is also equal to my age and she is 1 month bigger than me. You heard it right as she is a orfan, my dad’s daughter in law she lost her parents in her childhood . So she was bought up along with us and my parents decided to make both of us married. My mom Malathi is a house wife and dad Rajesh is sales staff head in a cloth showroom. Even my wife goes along with my dad to work in cloth showroom as a sales girl but my father never told anyone in the showroom that she is his daughter in law as he felt shame. so my dad likes her very much and always scolds me being free with out job. And last member in our family sirisha my sister as she is very much intelligent my father sent her to banglore of free seat for finishing her Btech and her age is 20 one year younger to me.
Let me describe about my self I am very fair and slim and height 5.6(jus like a average young girl) and my wife is 5.8 height and she is taller than me so my parents asked her to where only flats and me shoes with high heels when we are going out. Daily my mom and me stay in home my mom working in kitchen and I watching TV and roaming out with friends which does not liked my dad and always scolds me. Even my wife scolds me now and then for not going to any job. The days are passing and we don’t have any problems in the house as both my dad and my wife are woking which is really enough for our house. But all the days are not same suddenly as one day we got call from my sister that she got married to rich guy and she is going to US along with him and asked us not to search for her. This made us feel unhappy and all are sad. Then dad and mom decided not to reveile it out and asked us to forget about my sister.
JRS (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 13:43)
Grammer thuje aiche gand madharchodo bhosade cha gup bas
Poornima (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 15:24)
@Sharmila devi: Welcome back. Hope to see this story being as good as ur previous one!!
Radha (Tuesday, 01 November 2016 21:27)
Sharmila devi garu welcomed.
vasantha (Wednesday, 02 November 2016 02:28)
latha & Shamila Devi both good pls pls continue pa thks return for shamila devi I like your stories before on pa
kavi (Wednesday, 02 November 2016 05:20)
sharmila devi pls continue ur stories
JRS (Wednesday, 02 November 2016 05:44)
Guys please note that I said earlier that I left the group for this year the following comments #357 are not mine. Fuck you Grammar.
Srs (Wednesday, 02 November 2016 06:08)
Grammar I have wrote more than 3 stories and i told my English is poor than y u irritating me. If u don't want to read my stories than don't read .
preeti (Wednesday, 02 November 2016 13:54)
plz dont spoil this site we all r were to drame our fantastic so plz whp can't write plz patently read or live the site & Jr's srs this is a humble request to u is plz write your story it nice &entertaing
Savita (Wednesday, 02 November 2016 16:29)
Hiya girls.
Pls suggest me sites and blogs for stories of cds
Obviously with saree dressing stories. .
But only indian content...
Cheers girls..
Enjoy..
RIA (Saturday, 05 November 2016 01:39)
contd #236
In tears of laughter she was when I came out in her nighty. It flowed down perfectly over my body, soft with flowers all over it, the ends had attached frills. And the bra ofcourse!! filled with some of her dupattas gave me an ample cleavage to call myself a woman. Seductively se came close to me and kissed me on my lips, I love u my Avantika she said as I blushed, I tried to kiss her back but she tapped my forehead to to give that sexy gesture of no, and she giggled hard, her smile was now notorious. So Avantika how do you feel she asked, in that inskirt of mine flowing down ur legs, uncomfortable I said in a low tone, accha!! Low she said, aaj I asked you toh u feel low, sexy I replied as an answer I feel sexy suhas I said gathering some courage to make my love feel happy. Yes you look sexy in lipstick and that bindi dear avantika. What??? When did that happen I thought and then it struck, all that seducing, the kiss gave me the lipstick and that tap on my forehead the bindi, lakin abhi kuch missing missing hai meri jaan as she came close, she inserted a few glass bangles on my wrists, and her mangalsutra in my neck and then finally covered my cleavage with her dupatta. Now u look like my wife Avantika…………
The night then ended me surrendering to my husband, she was all over me, makin me feel like a girl. It hasn’t ever happened but once in a while a little roleplay doesn’t hurt I guess, she enjoyed I did…..........
Grammar (Sunday, 06 November 2016 00:21)
Dear SRS, you are so funny..hehehe...bad that youre still here...
PriyaSri (Sunday, 06 November 2016 06:49)
fucking Grammar there is nothing use of you but that too your here then why not SRS. Get lost you mother fucker.
Raji (Sunday, 06 November 2016 09:13)
Sharmila devi it's not a fare u r not updating stories we are eagerly waiting for your stories.
Grammar (Sunday, 06 November 2016 11:56)
Everyone mind your language, I'm a sissy guy , doesn't mean I'll fuck every men I meet. I fuck only for money.
SRS (Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:30)
i dint care about those negative comments. if i got 1 fan to read my stories tats enough for me an Grammar ur nothing in front of us cause u cant only put negative comments instead of writing stories. show me ur talents to us.
SRS (Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:49)
"fashion part 7 # 181
I was scared about that an i took that card an search for the address an when i reached in that place i saw it was looks like some sort of clinic, i went slowly there an i there was a lady seems to be my age, she came near me an asked what do u want sir an i give that card to her after seeing that she smiled an told me to come inside, i was lill bit of scare what she is going to do . After i slowly asked mam may i know now what ur going to do with me an she laughed an told due u like banana an i told no an she told huh ur boss to dint like that , an i asked sorry i cant understand an she told u need not want to be sorry i will explain u everything an told ur showing ur bulge a lot to prove ur macho kind an that she dint like an for that only u came here tats all . on hearing this i was scared an started to shout for that what ur an she told relax an told dint worry nothing is permanent just relax an i told what nothing is permanent i have lost all my body hair with side burns an ur telling nothing is permanent who should i cant be worry. after so much of struggle she can near to me an asked me to remove all the dress an were a towel , i do as she told to do i went to lie on the table , after she came near to me an removed my towel now i was completely nude in front of her an i was lill bit of shy after she saw my penis an she was surprised on seeing that an told ya its looks like a huge banana an all the men will be jealous an suddenly she started to give blowjob an i felt great after she finished she told now u happy an let get to our work an she took an syringe an filed with some sort of strange liquid an inject directly into my penis i was scared due to the pain an its seems like burning after few minutes it went num i cant feel anything down there an she took some ice cubes an placed into my penis an after it was done she smiled an told huhh ur huge banana now become the size of my lill finger an she took some thing from the box it looks like flesh like material , she put on the surgical gloves an took some jelly like substance an started to rub down to my penis an abdomen an she fixed the flesh like object down there an it took hours to complete an after it came the boobs which it looks like artificial real like boobs which seems to be big an she done the same procedure an fixed, after she asked me to turn around an she cleaned my butt completely an she was mixing something in the bowel it look like white liquid paste after she filled with a huge syringe on seeing that i was afraid an started to getup an she quickly called 2 ladies an they strap my 2 hands an legs i started to beg cause i was afraid of injection an when i got fever on that time to i never went to the doc for this afraid of this injection but now this is the first time am seeing such a huge injection which filled with strange liquid. she came near to me an started to inject to 1 side of my bum an while she was injecting it was burning an i cant tolerate the pain an started to shout an while shouting the 2 ladies put cloth in my mouth so that i cant able to screem, after she did 1 side she started to do in another side an after an hour she completed all the bowl she made, an my bum was in huge pain.
SRS (Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:51)
fashion part 8
After i was felt week for this pain an she came near me an showed some videos an explained what she did. First she told about that fake vagina an how does it work, it has an small pouch inside it an in that my lill penis was fixed into it that pouch has an hole from the outside an when ever i need to urine i must sit an do it an no more erection an bulge its for temporary it looks like real vagina an that too it has a deeper hole even some body can fuck an she lol, i was scared on hearing that , an she explained about the next thing which is fake boobs it looks like real an big which difficult to hide an she told that this are fixed with some type of super glue which impossible to take it of if i try means my real skin will come of with it an the only thing can remove is by solvent an that too she doesn't have the stock right now, an the last thing she told what she did in my but it was some type of fat collagen to increase my bum size an shape cause before there was bulge in front an now there was bulge in my back an she started to lol. After she told me to were panties an bra which should were every day an i protest an after so much of struggle i wore it an i get dressed back but now i cant able to put my jeans it get lill tight in my back an the shirt button is too tight , i put it anyway an left that place an i start to my home , while going on the way i saw 1 shop there selling some sort of bandage etc, i stopped my car an went inside the shop an i saw that there is some belts to adjust tummy fat etc, i bought like that one an went inside the car an i opened my shirt an tuck that thing into my fake breast tightly an put on the shirt now its doesn't semis like first an its easy to put the shirt button but to breath is difficult , i start my car an went home. While getting home my aunt opened the door i dint say anything an she dint notice , i went straight to my room an locked down, due to the pain i got fever so i cant able to go for work, i took leave for 2 days. after my fever went down i come back to normal position. Now i got completely cured an am getting ready for my work, i went to bathroom an i saw my self that what was happened to me it was ridicules an i saw that there is no strand to see my penis all i can see is a clean shaved pussy. I sat down to pee after i dint i can feel my penis inside my fake vagina an after i got shower an put the panties an bra , it was difficult to were the bra, after so much of struggle i put the bra, now come the jeans , my jeans is difficult to fit in my bum like it will get tore an i hide my fake breast with that belt an put my shirt which is dark in colour so that no 1 can see inside me an i put the jacket too, i saw my butt it was huge an it look strange for me after came outside of my room. While walking i can fell that my butt are bouncing an my hips are swing like a girl , i cant able to walk like a boy, on seeing that my aunt asked what happened an i told that nothing i got injured in my knee tats y an after i took the breakfast an went to my office.
SRS (Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:53)
fashion part 9
I parked my car an enter to my office, i cant control my walk it real strange i went straight to my boss cabin an i was angry about what she did she came closer to me an told that this all ur fault we believed u but u showed ur manly ego tats y v did like this. An she observed me an told nice bum who do u like it , i felt shame an she watched my boobs but there is no trace of it an asked what did u do to ur boobs its impossible to get off an i laughed an opened my shirt an showed to her she was shocked on seeing that, an i told that u singed an agreement that what ever punishment u give i have to accept it an dint try to remove it but instead of that there is nothing told about that i cant hide it , so tats y i did it , on saying that she got really angry an told ok v will see how much u can escape. After i went to work i prepared some of the documents an i went to her to show it but she was not there after i came back to my work an at that 1 girl doing her work an she got some dubbed about it an i came close to her an remember she was the same girl whose daughter did my hair braid , i dont know y this woman offensively called me to clear some doubt after i cleared her at that time my boss came an i showed the document an she was checking, behind me there was few girls standing there an it was a main room but still they work as silently, if any 1 talk then the was can here clearly cause of the silent of the room. After she checked my documents she told good an say attention everybody see here is shyam who is only the male working here an he never mind about that but still he works hard for this company please claps together for him, i dont know y she was doing like this drama queen , after she told me to leave an i collect the documents from her an started to walk from her while walking she told excuse me 1 minute i thought now what, again everybody started to watch her an she asked how many months ur working for this company i told its 2 moths completed an she told vow for 2 months i dint notice u got a nice ass looks like sunny lieon an ur walking style is also like that which called cat walk, on saying this everybody started to lol i dont know y she did like this i felt humiliating in front of all the woman workers. I slowly started to walk from there, while walking they again started to laugh i dont know what to do after when i finished my work i started to go home at that time my boss came an told u have to come with me after i will drop u to ur home an i started to go with her , her car was rolls royce one of the top most luxury car i sat in that an after she started to talk with me an with her she got her personal secretary infarct she is the only reason who giving such kind of stupid idea, an she asked about my bum an how did i felt while she humiliating in front of all, i hung my heads down. After when the car was stopped an they started to get down an i saw where the place was an it was a lakme saloon , i told no problem mam i will wait u go an come, i thought i will njoy some sort of time in this luxury car , an she suddenly grab my hand an told to come in an she told that its for u only thats y we came here, i was shocked i told whattt an after i went silently inside there i thought it waste of struggling and fighting an what can she do more to me than the fake vagina an pussy.
SRS (Sunday, 06 November 2016 12:54)
fashion part 10
while we entered into the salon the salon manager came near to us an welcomed us , she is an young lady an she is very hot. My boss secretary told some thing to her after they took me inside 1 room an lie me down to the table an i thought that they will remove my fake thing but instead they took 1 sponge with liquid an cleaned my naval after they marked my naval i priced it an they put long dangling navel ring, i started to screem cause of pain, i have no idea what they did an i started to get up but they all garbed an tie it in the table post , after they again came to me an told to open my mouth but i dint, they forced to open my mouth by pricing my nose so that i cant able to breath an for that i will open my mouth after when i did that lady hold my toung i was afraid. that lady told please cooperate otherwise u will get cut ur tongue by mistake, on hearing that i was scared an let them do what they want. They took 1 small marker an marked in my lower of my tongue an they took 1 hot needle an priced, i cant tolerate that pain its incredible an my tears are coming constantly from eyes, they have put a stud in my tongue, i cant able to speak for that pricing an they again turned me in that table an unzipped my jeans an again they cleaned my lower back, After i can here an humming sound an slowly they started to do something which cause lot of pain to me. i cried a lot but there is no use of it an my total energy was out an i felt tired. due to pain i felt sleep so after that i dont know what they r doing, i can hear only the giggling sound. After they finished they bring me to the main room an sit me to the salon chair an they started to do the work. first they removed my hair band from my messy hair, after they started to wash my hair an started to apply some kind of sticky paste in it an they leave it for few minutes an after they again started to wash my hair an trim it. i can only feel they water an the cool air of paste but i dont know what they r doing to me. they put an hair straightener an doing for an hour after they have finished an they took me to the car. While i was sleeping they took some photo an after when i slowly woke up they i laughed i cant under stand y they r laughing ,my boss told that u only told that u can hide the thing what ever i dit so this time u need not want to hide the thing cause i did some hide-able thing but if u want to show than thats ur wish an she to her cell an showed to me. 1st thing was my naval it was long ring which hanging, i have seen this in sort song when the item girl dance, An the 2nd thing is tongue stud an that too i have seen in the item song were Mumaith Khan wore it, an the 3rd is a tattoo which is permanent in my lower back. while seeing all this my hair comes an fall in front of my eyes an i put my hand in my hair i noticed that there was no hairband thats y an my hair looks like smooth like silk while seeing she told ohh sorry i forgot 1 thing to tell u that v have did ur hair rebounding so now ur hair will always look straight like a shampoo add girl an they lol. After we have reached my home an i was scared how i will face my aunt an they took me inside my house an when they rang the bell my aunt opened the door an i was shocked on seeing my aunt, she was wearing the same dress like what i had were jeans an shirt, this is the 1st time iam seeing like this, she even dint used to were chudidar now she was wearing the jeans an shirt an her hair is smooth an silky, wait a minute my hair too is smooth an silky ohh my v two having the same hairstyle. my aunty saw this an get surprised an asked that what did u do to ur hair its look like mine at that time i dont know what to tell but by boss told that it was my idea that u and him to look alike for tomorrow work u will work in our company, i was surprised that my aunt is going to work in our company an my boss told yes she is ur superior an our partner from tomorrow so u have to work for her too. i was thank god at least my aunt will help me from this, after so much of struggle i have saved my aunt , while thing my aunt told to my boss that its not fair, iam his superior but here i have to dress like him y he wouldn't dress like me in saree, on hearing this i felt a jolt of shock an my boss an her secretary started to lol an told he will aunt after all he is the only male working there but not now an she left, i slowly went to my room an locked the door i dont know that if my aunt come to my office that will be good for me r not. ohh god please help me from these.
Chandrika (Sunday, 06 November 2016 20:06)
MAN WHO GOT TO BE WORSHIPPED AS GODDESS:01
Well,it is 1983 Kerala.A poor couple from Andhra migrated to there with their 10 months old boy child.As being uneducated and unable to understand the local language they got no job.And the starvation in their life is started.As they can withstand that but their child can't so,they began begging.With the begging experience they reliased that their child's life is going to be ruined if he grew and starts begging.So with all the money they got.They gone a forest zone village which is 100 km far away from Kocchi.At that village they left their child at a saint aashramam with deep sorrow and hope that his life is going to be good and not like to be theirs.And they left.As saint woman heard a baby's cry from bushes at the entrance.She found that boy and brought him to the Saint.
SRS (Sunday, 06 November 2016 22:21)
Grammar, he he he he .... posted load of crap. You cannot stop me
Srs (Sunday, 06 November 2016 23:56)
# 377 Is not mine, grammar don't play with my name you sissy.
shyam (Monday, 07 November 2016 00:14)
chandrika good starting pl continue
ishu (Monday, 07 November 2016 04:17)
SRS pls continue ur story
Srs (Wednesday, 09 November 2016 23:56)
Latha and sharmila please continue ur story pleaseeee
padmaja (Thursday, 10 November 2016 22:24)
latha nee story eppudu start chesthav please i am waiting for ur story Satya turn to satyabhama
Deepika (Saturday, 12 November 2016 09:39)
Kajal Mam please accept r invité ur stories to read..... Im big fan of u m'y mail id sdeepika290@gmail.com
Mansi (Saturday, 12 November 2016 21:55)
Kajal sis, please let me read ur wonderful stories...I love reading ur stories...pls pls
mail id rammy4835@gmail.com
Ashwini (Saturday, 12 November 2016 22:07)
All characters , places and references are purely fictional
Devi Maithika ---- Part 1
My name is Varun. I am a 21 year old college guy, born in a rich family as a single son to business minded career oriented parents, who provided me with all luxuries and amenities of the modern life, but not the time - the most precious commodity in the upbringing. Our Import - export Industry - Varun Enterprises was well known in the country and abroad.
I am a lone ranger, with very small friend circle. I made some so called 'friends' , the usual 'chamchaa' kind or some girls as well for that matter, who were pretending to be my friends , yet they were eyeing the single guy who was to inherit the VE Empire later on.
There was only one true single friend I had made in my college days, who resonated with me because our natures were matching. She was a nice peppy and chirpy girl called Divya. I could see that she could see my soul , my likes and dislikes and was a very open minded and expressive soul herself. A very rare attribute, I could see. She was like a lovely fresh rose in a group of thorn like other 'friends'.
Divya came from a town surrounded by forests and tribals around, which was about 500 Kms. away from the city. She also had a good financial background, although she had unfortunately lost her mother in her school days. Her father had remarried, but Divya couldn't relate with her step mother. The remarried husband was quick enough to 'send' the young daughter away from their home, for her 'better education prospects' not to add the 'precious privacy' the couple wanted for themselves. So there used to be monthly cheques for tuition and the rest of the expenses, but those were the only papers she received from her father. There were bundles of notes sent, but not a single letter of warmth and support. Things then had gone even worse, as Divya told me , that her dad had purchased a bunglow on the outskirts of their town and had sent the keys to her, informing verbally, that she is supposed to stay there if and when she is to visit the home town, as 'dad and mom' were planning to shift to another state.
So in a way, our very detachment from respective families had brought us closer, and we were satisfying our emotional needs.
so during the vacation, just after our final exams, we decided to roam round together, in the embrace of nature, away from the city, in the serene, quiet and inviting mother nature. We discussed a few options for visiting. Somehow the common options seemed unsuitable - too crowded, polluted and business like for our choice. Next morning, when we met again in the canteen, Divya shared the latest 'breaking news' , that her father had sold their ancestral house, and have left for the new location, where he was to stay at his new in-laws and look for another grand mansion, where needless to say she was not expected.
" Hmmmm....thats so sad Divya" I mentioned. After a gap of a minute or two, during which none of us spoke, strangely I could see a sparkle in her eyes. "hey, how about now visiting my native place? There would hardly be anyone who would recognize me...afterall I have been away from our place for about 9 years now. " I was listening." Plus I have the keys for MY bunglow. So we won't have to pay ......" It seemed a grand idea. She pressed my hands with enthusiasm. "That's the way it goes then Varun!! we would explore the nature around our town, wander into the jungle , really really close to the nature. I had been dying to go to the lovely scenic surroundings of our town in the jungle of Devi Maithika, the Mythological Goddess of the land there!!"
Xyz (Sunday, 13 November 2016 06:40)
Write stories
ishu (Sunday, 13 November 2016 11:56)
ashwini conyinue ur stoires
Jay (Sunday, 13 November 2016 12:27)
Plz continue Ashwini.u r awesome writer.
Suji (Monday, 14 November 2016 07:53)
Pls continue stories
Srs (Monday, 14 November 2016 21:18)
AsHWiNi nIce to see u again
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 02:53)
Hi there. In all these years I was just another silent reader, so this is my first post ever. Eventhough I planned to make a BLOG of my own couple of years ago with 6-7 stories in my mind; which didn't happen. So I gave out 5 of my storylines to one of the popular page in FB. Which they inturn published with their own imagination, but RUINED completely according to me. While browsing through my old files, lying hidden, dusting forever, I found this, one of my first story, which never found the light. As plans for my BLOG was alredy dead anyway, I thought why keep it there? So here I'm, with no names & places ever spoken through out, and completely based on forced crossdressing scenario in school era, (which is the only thing i like) each of you think of the protagonist as yourselves. I wrote this story with uttermost care for GRAMMER, but mistakes may be there, afterall we are all humans. For me this is a complete story in all aspects, including any missing portions. Please read it through the punctuations & comment me. Who knows, someday I may comeback with another one.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:03)
The Competition
By, Anjali
Mom where is it? I told you to wash it yesterday itself. While opening my closet I shouted. Oh god! Why are you shouting? She responded from the kitchen. Where is it mom? I asked her again. I was in my towel, right after from my bath. Couldn't find it anywhere mom. What? While walking towards me She asked. My shorts. I replied. Oh that’s so silly, if you can't find anything why don't you try that? Her finger was pointing to the farthest corner of my closet. Hanging there, moving with the wind, there was it, a skirt. Yes, you heard me, a knee length, pleated RED skirt. Oh mom, I’m not a girl. I moaned. Who else is going wear it? It's yours. She spoke with a naughty smile. Mom I’m not going to wear it again, where is it? it’s getting late, I took my stand. Your shorts, it's in the pile, I forgot to put it back. She said while walking towards kitchen.
I was at the table having my breakfast, then she started again, you could always wear it, inside the house, if you want? Mom not again, I startled. Without eating much, I hurried towards my buddies.
Mom was right. You heard her clearly. That skirt was; no is mine. Not only that, but also I’m the proud owner of another two knee length flowery pleated skirts, two long skirts, four tops to mix & match with them, a white fitted shirt, three lehengas, five salwars & of course a saree with necessary accessories & undergarments for all. It all started with a quote, on a Saturday, from my teacher. "it's not right". Yes, something is missing, mom added, who was sitting right beside her. I was happened to be one and only one boy in my school who can sing properly. And there was me, singing alongside my ten classmates who are only girls, for Monday’s competition. They can sing well, but it doesn't look good. Teacher Said. Yeah that's right, it doesn't look like a mixed group. Mom added. Are you sure no other boy can sing, mom asked. No teacher sighed. Then leave him; mom laid out the options. The teacher loved me, not only that, but also my voice synched with them very well. Most of our moms were there. Or you can make him dress like them, said one of my friend’s mom. Mom's eyes got sparkled, so does teacher's. They looked into each other. And planned something.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:09)
The Competition Part II
The planned dress code was school uniform, but that was before. As now it’s become an all-girls group, they wanted something more. Mom told teacher that a lehenga would be nice. All of them accepted and, planned shopping in the Sunday. Mom, teacher & some other girl’s moms went for shopping & bought us eleven same looking lehengas, reshaped them for our sizes. I was in no position to argue, but still asked mom & teacher weather this is necessary, they said it's a must, a dress won't bite me, & I kept mum. Girls promised me that, it will be our secret. As the venue was just 10km drive, & our competition starts at morning, we planned to get ready in school itself. One of my friend's mom is a beautician. So she took care of all our accessories and makeup. She did my makeup, nails painted, plucked one or two stray from brows & combed my hair in a feminine way. Mom told me to remove my shirt, and clasped a stuffed bra around me. Then she handed me a panty & petticoat, and told to change into them. As I was option less, changed into them in no time. Mom inspected the knot and retied to a much tighter way. Then came the lehenga, she told me to step into it, I could feel it, it was heavy & helped me to wore the choli. Next she put my legs into some nice two inch heeled lady’s sandals & readjusted lehenga’s hem length. We all draped the dupatta in the same way. Then came the jewelleries, all of us made to wear same designer payals, bangles & necklaces. Then came the real problem. Mom forgot to buy the clip-on earring that was supposed to adorn my unpierced ears. The only one available was the one came with my necklace set. Without much time left, they planned to pierce my ears, I fought with mom & covered my ears. So mom & teacher hold me to the chair while beautician aunt marked & pierced both of my earlobes with a pin. Mom promised me to remove them when we get home back. Aunt told me not to cry because I will ruin my makeup. Now we all spot the same danglers.
And we did sing well. When we came back to our moms & teacher, they already planned a trip for the rest of the day. Girls changed into their normal dresses, for me with a female face, that was not an option, so I stayed in them. Girls tried to cheer me up but it was hell of a day. My ears were sore & the danglers made it worse. More to that I was always forced by the lehenga to lift it up. My dupatta was flying away. Mom noticed it. During the lunch time she took me to a nearby dress store & bought me a salwar & camisole, reshaped for me there itself. I looked at her. Just for today; it will make you feel better, she said. I wore them but refused to wear the dupatta. mom scolded me, and put it on my shoulder. Without the lehenga your hands are free, so take care of it. She said. When we came back for lunch girls complemented on my look. It was almost evening when we reached home & I was reluctant to get out this costume, my ears were paining a lot. I told mom to remove them. No, not until the bedtime, it need to remove carefully she demanded. I threw away my dupatta into the couch, sighed and sat on it. Mom came towards me, told me to stand, took the dupatta & put it over my shoulder, not until bedtime she repeated & walked towards kitchen. Like a girl, I placed the rest of hanging dupatta in my lap & waited silently for mom to remove the danglers. I almost cried when she took them out. She wasn't happy. They will close; can I put a stud back in? she asked. No way I replied her & handed over my dupatta. You can sleep in your salwar, if you want she said. No & it's not mine I said in a tired tone. Of course it's yours, I bought it for you, she said as walked away. I cleaned my nails & slept.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:11)
The Competition Part III
Girls kept their promise, in school no one doesn't know. I was happy. During the break they inspected my lobes. When I came back mom already washed, folded my lehenga & salwar along with all accessories & placed them in my closet. A week flew by, my ears restored its former glory. Then the news came. We won. Yes, we won & selected for the finals. The moment I heard that, I know, I was in trouble. They will make me wear it again. Anyway this time I will ask mom to buy me a clip-on I thought. When I reached home, teacher already informed her. I’m happy, it’s time to use your lehenga again, she said. No mom, I don't want that old dress, I won't wear it. I rushed to my room. We'll see to that, she replied. Next day there was a meeting with us singers, moms & teacher. He doesn’t want to wear it, mom said. What his old lehenga? One of the mom asked. Yes, mom replied. Oh that's okay, we can buy a new one, another mom said. I don't want a new one mom, I moaned. Oh will you please shut up? she gave me a look. You don't want your old one, so here it is, I will buy you a new one. From there itself they went for shopping. After school when I reached home, she was there waiting for me. She told me to sit on the couch. And pulled out large shopping bags, there was it, a lehenga, of course it was beautiful, for a girl I think. Do you want to try it? If you want you can, any way its already fitted, she said. Then she came up with the jewelleries bangles, payals, and a necklace set with a dangling earring. Mom you promised me a clip-on I moaned. Yes, I was, and I’ll, I couldn't find the same design anywhere, I ordered them to make a new one, so unless anything happens, you don’t have to worry, and there is a surprise for you; go, have a bath & come back; she replied with a smile.
I was happy, at least they won’t pierce them again I thought as I stepped out of the bathroom in my towel. There was it, on my bed, the surprise. A long full length skirt along with its top. Do you like it? mom asked. Mom what are you doing, why are you buying these for me? Because you need it, remember how you walked in your lehenga? Without some practise it'll be another hell of a day, Mom replied. She took the skirt & top and put it over her shoulder, handed me a bra & panty, told me to change into them. I know it was brand new, the old ones were still in my closet. You can change into them or stay in your towel, unless I wish; your closet is closed for sure, she said. The only thing remaining was to change into them. When I done with the panties, mom helped me with the stuffed bra. Then she handed me a full slip I stepped into it & removed my towel. Unlike the lehenga petticoat this was smooth. Now with a camisole on, she put the long skirt over my head, then came the top, last she handed me a two inch heeled sandal, pulled down the skirt a bit. When I walked; skirt rustled, on the stairs, I had to pick it up. I looked like a freak mom, I said. No you don’t, and keep your voice down, unless you want to let the others know. I had a little trouble in selecting the length mom said, got my eyes on a knee length skirt first, so I bought both of them. She hanged it alongside the salwar & lehenga in my closet. I want you wear it tomorrow when you come home along with its top and this, as said mom hanged a half slip to the closet. No mom no way I shouted. Oh yes you will she said, otherwise the clip-on will get cancelled. She does know that for a clip-on I will do anything. The sleep was the worst, bra itched me. but I slept anyway.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:13)
The Competition Part IV
At school one of the singers came to me, how's practise going? she asked. Do you like it? What? Your skirts? My mom said they are beautiful, another said. Yes, they know, my whole team knows moms planned it together. So when I came back to the home without the help of mom I changed into my knee length skirt, I made sure to put on the half-slip. Mom was surprised to see me like that. She told me to sat beside her, when I was done, she asked me to stand up, and gave some feminine advices, like, while sitting always sweep under your skirt, keep your knees together, and she made me practise it for some time. The main problem with knee length skirt was, it's always riding up to my thighs, so I have to pull them down. each time I did that, mom laughed at me. Even in my sleep as I remembered, pulled it down. Next day girls wanted to see in my skirts, they didn't stop buzzing until I promised them. When I came back, mom told me to change into my long skirt. This became my routine. Whenever I came back from my school, I changed into my skirts alternately.
Another week flew by, on the Saturday, two days before competition, after singing practise; girls came with me. Mom was happy, and I modelled in my skirts for them. Today was Sunday, the singing practise was complete. As there is only one day to go for competition, they gave us this day for rest. I woke up in my knee length skirt and hurried to bathroom, came back in my towel. While searching for some shorts, I heard mom say, to change into my salwar. I didn't say anything. While changed into salwar I thought, only one more day to go. I left the dupatta there itself & went towards kitchen. Mom looked at me, am I missing something she asked. Do I mom? Yes, you're, where is your dupatta? she was literally in fire. Mom I thought, in home, do it really necessary? I mumbled. Yes, it is, otherwise you can kiss your clip-on goodbye. I know where it was going, so I hurried back to my room put it over my shoulder & came back. There she is, my good girl, mom patted me.
Mom packed my lehenga & accessories along with my salwar. And handed me my long skirt. Mom no, everyone in school will see me, I moaned. No they're not, that’s why we are not going to school. We planned a pre-makeup section for you, mom said. I don't want the long one mom, it's not easy to carry. Fine, she switched it with short one. Both of us got into car & mom drove it to the beautician aunt's home. To my surprise all of them were there. It's a nice skirt, moms complemented. As the venue was a long drive away we have to makeup & change at the venue itself. The pre-makeup session was only for me to look convincing as a girl before the driver. As I was transferred into the chair & aunt began quick works on me. My hair styled, brows plucked a bit, a little makeup done, then manicured & painted my nails. During the time of pedicure, because of the knee length skirt she noticed my hairy legs & pointed same to mom. She simply told her to wax them. While aunt was waxing my legs, mom came towards me. If you wore the long skirt, she wouldn't have noticed it, don't blame me, it was your decision. Some of the moms came into the room & hold me, I was screamed, and literally in tears. When waxing was done, mom put danglers on the table, the same one came with my necklace set. Where is my clip-on mom? I asked her with my paining eyes. Oh the clip-on? They couldn't complete it in time she said. I know that was a lie, her face was lying, in fact all faces around me wore a lie, even the girls may know; I thought. Aunt once again marked & pierced me. I felt them, the pain, the danglers, in my ears. Do you want more? two or three sets would be nice, aunt asked. I don't want to look nice, I replied. Then maybe another time, mom replied for aunt. With the aunt’s work, driver thought I was girl. We departed to the venue.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:17)
The Competition Part V
Mom helped me to get into my lehenga, aunt did my makeup again to look more convincing. This time I did carry my lehenga as a pro. Why did you pierce it? Girls asked. Don't you know? I said. No, we thought you're having a clip-on, they replied. Mom made me do it, I looked down. Don't be sad, it suits you, and you can always remove it if you don't want. They tried to cheered me up. We sang well as we could & came back to the green room. mom handed me my salwar, without much talking I changed into it. When I looked at the dupatta, mom came over & took it for me, then placed it on my left shoulder. As planned before, we went for a trip in the nearby places. While having lunch with them, mom announced that she brought a gift for me, a set of diamond stud earrings. Mom & aunt put them into my sored ears. Girls became jealous of my gift. While washing my hands dupatta felled of my shoulder mom scolded for me & told me to take care of it. I looked at other girls, whenever they feel a slight alignment in their dupatta that always pulled it back, not only that but also fiddled with in time to time. So did I, I took one end and began to start fiddle with my both hands. Mom noticed it, you were learning quick, I love you, mom said. While we were in beach aunt told me to cover my ears, as the piercing is new, too much dust & sunlight may cause problems. I'm not planning to keep it aunt, I replied. Oh that's okay, but for now, let me help you, she took the dupatta out of my shoulder & placed it over my head. Mom liked it very much, while coming back from there I pulled it from my head, put on my shoulder and started fiddling with it. When reached home, I waited until mom got some time. I was still in my salwar with dupatta when she came to me. Why are you still awake she asked me? You didn't remove my earrings? I replied. Why do you want to that? What will happen if you selected for another competition? If you removed it, we need to re-pierce it. No I won't remove it, after all it's a gift, who'll reject such a nice gift? You can remove it if you want. But I won't help you. She cleaned my nails & quickly walked away.
Even though all my tries in the night lost in vain; still I literally spend hours trying to remove it. I was afraid that my friends will know. But lucky me, there was a rain in the morning, so I put on my overcoat & walk fast towards the school. While passing through the school gate, I found one of the singer friend, and asked her to remove it, whenever she touched my ears; I cried a lot, all of my tries made it worse, but still she removed it and handed over to me. I was happy. When I came back mom spotted my empty lobes. Unlike me, she wasn't happy. Did you lose it? its costly she said. No it's with me. I walked into my room. Some another week passed by, near the two month holidays, the news spread again. We won the finals & invited to perform in a cultural event. Teacher called a meeting. All the moms were happy. They want to thanks us for our winning. So they planned an all-girls trip to the several nearby places during the vacation. The cultural event was in the midst of second month. As it's a big event we need to go there in our school uniform only. Not only that, they will check our identity cards, so I will be in trouble, moms & teacher discussed something about it. Then came the dress code for performance. It's a cultural event, so a saree would be better, teacher claimed. That's the best. What about the jewelleries? asked another mom. Well a jhumka will look good, another mom said, all accepted that. There will be practice in the holidays teacher said. While walking towards home, mom scolded me; I told you several times, not to remove it, do you see what happened now, we need to re-pierce it. I kept mum.
The vacation started. When my friends came to play with me, mom informed them that I have practice, so I won’t be able to go with them for some time. They left without me, and told me to call them when I’m free. One-day mom came back from shopping. I brought something for you. She said. There was another knee length skirt & a long skirt, two tops to go with them, & some innerwear. From today onwards you will wear your four skirts only; she demanded. I changed into the long one with all the necessary inners.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:20)
The Competition Part VI
When morning came mom woke me up & marched me towards the bathroom. When I changed into towel she handed me her hair removal cream. I looked at her with pleading eyes. Do you want to wax again? all over your body? she asked. I remembered about the pain, cream would be better, I thought. When I stepped out of the bathroom I was hairless. She handed me the new knee length skirt & sandal, and told me to bring down the diamond studs. When I was ready in them with my inners, we went to beautician aunt's home. Do I really need to pierce my ears mom? why don't we go for clip-on? I asked her. You pierced first, then you pierced again, does it really matters? Mom shut my mouth. When we reached there Some of the moms and all the girls were there planning on the trip. Are you here to pierce? aunt asked. Yes, mom replied. And handed over my studs. Suddenly aunt's daughter showed us her new earrings. While looking at her earrings, mom noticed her multiple piercings. She has two in each. Mom touched them, but didn't spoke a word. She examined other girls. Except two of them all has double pierced ears. Mom told me to sit there & went home, when mom came back we were chatting. She went directly inside, talked something with aunt. After aunt came out and asked me if I’m ready, I went with her, girls followed me.
I was sitting in the chair while aunt marked my ears. Then her daughter asked, "why are you doubl..." before completing, with one single look of her mother, she shut her mouth. The moms hold me tightly. Then aunt spoke, when did you got the idea? Right after I spot two in your daughter’s ears, mom replied. I smelled something wrong. Stud will go to the top, for bottom I bought something else, while speaking she took a box from her purse, I was keeping it to use after its healed, but more is good. Aunt bought a big needle and heated, it will make the healing faster, she spoke to me. Oh that’s okay, this time I will make sure that the hole exits, mom replied for me. When it touched my ear I did felt the heat, as the needle passed through the first mark, pain flowed towards my ears. But I felt something wrong. Aunt is it little higher? no it's right where it wants to be she replied. Next the stud went in, she did the same for the other side also & tighten the screw firmly. When I tried to get up, aunt told me to stay there, it's not over. Then came the box, inside there was two-inch gold simple hoops. Now I know, they are going to double pierce my ears. Mom please don't do this, I cried. She scolded me very well, you have to wear the jhumka don't you, without the lobe pierced how are you going to do that? If you don't want a second set you should have told earlier, before it's done. Now shut up. I was in tears while aunt heated & pierced my lobes. The hoops went in I could feel them moving to & fro. Aunt showed me a mirror. Looking at me the two unpierced girl’s mom also want their daughter’s ears double pierced. Within seconds their ears also done with gunshots. Now we all eleven "girls" ears become double pierced. They planned on the trip for some time more.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:22)
The Competition Part VII
From there itself, mom went for shopping with aunt again. I stayed there. When she came back she brought me another beautiful salwar, with something else, which she kept as secret. Girls liked them very much. When we reached home. I went straight to my room. My ears were paining a lot. Mom planned everything very well, I thought. This time she pierced my ears a month before the event, without any help I won't be able to remove it myself, and because of vacation I will be under her supervision, so healing won't be a problem. And with double piercing, she got a bonus. A week passed, I was always in my skirts with proper undergarments, every day mom cleaned the lobes, slowly earrings became part of me. Next morning mom woke me up, ordered me to have a body hair removal session. When I came out, my new salwar was placed in my bed. So I changed into them. As I never wore salwar past few weeks, it felt weird, mom never scolded me in these days, so I left my dupatta in the bed itself & came down towards mom. I was wrong, she was literally in fire again. Where is it? she shouted. Then dragged me towards my room while holding in one of my ear. She took the dupatta in her hand, & asked me. What is this? A dupatta, I replied. Whose dupatta is this? Mine, I moaned. She put it on my shoulder & said firmly, if I ever see you in a salwar without dupatta, I will pierce your nose, is that cleared? Yes, I mumbled.
After breakfast we drove towards aunt's house. I was due for a haircut by couple of months. Mom told her to give me a pretty feminine short haircut. After that for the first time, I went under a through makeup. My lips were painted; brows were thinned & arched. Manicured & pedicured, nails attached & painted. Then came the secret from earlier shopping. payals, a necklace & two bangles all in gold along with a lady’s wrist watch & a purse to go with it. I looked into mirror, there was me, sorry the girl version of me. mom took me to the nearby studio to have my photo taken. Then only I came to know about it, all these preparations were done for just a photo, to put it in my id card. When we reached home, she told me not to remove anything, everything except the watch in your body will go to bed with you, from today onwards you will wear salwar only, for sleeping you can use your skirts, unless I say so. Don't worry I will buy you some more salwar, she said. I transferred myself into a long skirt, with all the jewelleries adorning my body, I went to bed. In the morning I changed into my old salwar, while I was watching TV in the couch, dupatta felled out of my shoulder, I was still at TV, mom noticed it & came towards me, sat beside me, she took it and placed back on my shoulder. She came closer, be careful what you wish for, while touching my nose she said. This will be your last warning. She went for shopping & kept her promise, she brought me three more salwar. Next day we went for the trip planned, I was of course in one of my new salwar, always clinging to my dupatta. I know mom was waiting for an opportunity. So I did take extra care.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:26)
The Competition Part VIII
More than a week before the event we all joined in the beautician aunt's house. I was in one of my salwar. When we were there, moms went for shopping & brought us the saree & its accessories. The jhumka was heavy. As instructed earlier, tailor came there, & took my measurements to stich my girl uniform along with saree blouses. Moms talked about our makeup & all, meanwhile they came up with nose ring, which will give us a contemporary look. But none of us has a pierced nose, so they asked the girls, but luck was still with me. None of them really wanted to do that, some of the moms don't appreciate it. So the final vote came for a clip-on. I felt relaxed. The next day itself, while we were practicing in aunt's house, mom called me down, my uniform & saree blouses were arrived. A red knee length pleated skirt & a fitted shirt/blouse. I modelled in them for inspection. It fitted me well. We will try saree at home mom said & asked me to change back, I did and hurried to practice. I don't know how much time we practised, may be ten minutes after my uniform session, I could hear mom calling my name louder. I know something was wrong, so I ran. The moment I saw her, my body began shivering, there was it, in her hand, my dupatta. I forget to put it back after my uniform session. I searched for someone help. But none of them were, all the moms except mine were gone. She came towards me put it over my left shoulder and said, you will remember this day, forever. mom told aunt to keep an eye on me and left. I was still standing there, fiddling with the end of my dupatta, I know where she went. Girls found out something wrong. I told everything. They felt pity for me. When mom came, I pleaded her. Mom I don't want it, don't do this to me, my friends will know. Mom pointed her finger to the chair. I didn't move. She came forward & pulled me to the chair. I gave your last warning, still you made me humiliated in front of them, now no more chances, mom's face became red. Even the girls don't have it mom, I moaned. You are not a girl, by dropping dupatta you proved it, this will make you more differ from them, don't plan to run, your buddies are a call away, she said. Crying, feeling lost, I sat on the chair. Aunt was heating the needle. Mom took it from her purse, a beautiful diamond stud, then marked my left side. You can see your unpierced nose for one last time mom showed me a mirror. Moments after the needle pierced my nose, the stud went in. In the mirror, it was glittering.
While driving back home, she spoke, I’m really glad that you lost it. What mom? I asked. Your dupatta, she replied, that's the only reason why; you are wearing it, she touched my nose. Why did you do this to me mom? You don't have it, even your ears are single pierced, I asked her again. Because it suits you & I love it, she replied. When reached home I throw my dupatta to the couch. Mom looked at me. What? Should I care now? I was angry. Oh you need to, because your right nose is still empty, or we can go for some more in the ear, she replied. Now I know that she will do anything, so by myself I put it back on my shoulder. Mom smiled, she was happy, & handed me my saree petticoat. When I changed into it, she herself put the blouse on me. Next came the saree, she draped on me, one day you'll learn to drape it yourself, she smiled, then payals, necklace, bangles came. Now it was the time for jhumka, for the first time from my third time lobe piercing, hoops were removed, as jhumka added; my lobes pulled down. You look pretty, she said. After everything removed, my hoops went back. I changed into a short skirt.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:28)
The Competition Part IX
In the morning when I woke up, my nose was paining, I hoped it was a dream, but it wasn't. I looked in the mirror, tried to remove it, but again not only I was helpless, but also increased my pain so I never tried to again. Mom inspected it every day. After two three painful days when my nose looked normal. Mom took me to aunt's home I was in my same salwar which gifted me the nose ring. There I had the same makeover done which made for the studio session. Mom took me again to the studio. I looked at her. Oh its ok, I want to change the old photo, now with a nose ring you are more beautiful, mom said. At last the day came, after a proper hair removing bath, I wore my new school uniform, we joined in aunt's house the morning itself. All the moms were surprised to see my nose, they touched it, some of them even looked inside to make it sure that it's pierced or not. I felt embarrassed. With a little makeover, we travelled to the venue. Teacher gave my new id card, to my surprise the name was changed, it did rhymes with my male name add to that my nose & ears were glittering with diamonds, the two inch hoops were looking at me. I put the new id card to my purse. When we reached there, they checked us, after a brief other programmes, cultural event started. In the green room after a long makeup session we changed into saree which we did in the normal style, pined to the left shoulder, mom helped me to do it. All the jewelleries were added to us. All the girls brought new diamond studs to match with mine which adorned in their second piercings. After jhumka added, girls got a clip-on nose ring, for me mom brought an exact replica for pierced nose. Aunt removed stud from my still healing nose, there was it pain again, it lasted for some more time even after the ring went in.
The event got completed, we changed back to uniform. There were almost two weeks before the school reopen. So moms planned for a photo session to keep the memories for future, in our session we will pose in all three costumes. Next day in one of the girl’s house which has a beautiful gallery, our photo was taken. A complete makeover was done. I was still in my nose ring, so saree costume with jhumka, its own necklace, bangle, payals went first, after my ring changed to stud, next came the two lehenga session with its own danglers, necklaces bangles & payals, in each time mom took my single photo. Mom gave me all my golden jewelleries, when I put my payals, necklace & bangles, she helped me to change into golden hoops. After that all the girls went to shopping. For me session wasn't over, mom bought all my dresses, so I did pose in all my five salwars, four tops & skirts, and last in my uniform also. As instructed by mom, in every single picture, my nose was glittering. When girls came back the gifted me something & told me to change into it, they went to change themselves. Mom opened the gift for me, it was another lehenga but this time there were double dupatta, with all the jewelleries. After everything striped down, mom changed me into my new lehenga, then I took both dupattas & looked into it, mom noticed it & came towards me. She helped me to draped in the matched dupatta. I was still confused, why there is two? I asked myself. Then aunt came, after doing my hair slight differently, with some more makeup. The jewelleries went after, for the first time I wore a maang-tika, then she removed my nose stud. My still healing nose felt pain. Then I noticed the new ring, which laid in front of me, the ring was thicker, with a chain. When aunt pushed it through my pierced hole, mom held my hands. This time pain was huge. The ring touched my painted red lips, aunt connected chain to my hair. Then I found out, the use of second dupatta it went for my head. I walked towards the gallery to get photographed, all the girls were there, changed into their new dress, but by the look I was the only boy. Yes, that's right all of them wore jeans & tops. I felt betrayed. With me in the middle photos were taken, the I posed for single shot.
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:31)
The Competition Part X
When we drove back home, I was in salwar fiddling dupatta in one hand with my golden bangles, payals & necklace, nose owned diamond stud back, lobes got its hoop, my second stud was somewhat fixed for me, it never removed. When I got back, changed into one of my long skirt. When morning came, after bath, I know that the event was over, but to the fear of mom's wrath, I wore a salwar. Mom was in the kitchen; I went to her with my fiddling dupatta. You are early she said. Alter having breakfast, she asked me nicely, do you want to remove it? What? Your earring, mom replied. I know the holes are permanent mom, it's been two months, does it really matters? I asked. No, at this point no. She replied. But I like to remove my nose stud mom, I really want to remove it, my friends will see my hole, please mom please, I began to cry. Oh I will, but not today, let it heal, I want the hole to be permanent, what if another event occurs? do you want to go through all those pain again, the stud in your nose have the smallest gauge available, so the hole will be almost invisible, she explained. Is nose stud really necessary for another event mom? I asked. Yes, because you already have it, anyway you can have your boy clothes when school reopen, until I say so, please be like this, mom replied. While she was talking, my dupatta slipped, I quickly rearranged it back. Mom felt delighted, she told me that, I learned a lot & touched my ear, actually I planned three, one more in the top, exactly here in the cartilage, too bad I didn't go for it, maybe next time. She stood up, and touched my right nose, my warning still exists, she said. I picked the left over dupatta & placed in my lap as normal girls do. Mom smiled and walked away. On the remaining days at day I wore my salwars & during sleep changed into my skirts. Two days before school reopening, all of us planned another trip to the beach. I was in one of my salwar, and I carried my dupatta well. Mom was proud of me, so she promised to remove my nose stud on tomorrow itself.
On the night before the new school day, I was in one of my long skirt. Mom came to my room. She told me to remove my jewelleries, I took out my payals, necklace, & bangles. Then she herself removed my hoop earrings. Next the second set of studs came out for the first time, she inspected the holes & found perfect. Nose stud came out last. It's still healing, so I’ll put it back when you come home, otherwise I won't remove it, she made her stand. I nodded. And I also wanted you to be in whatever I like when you came back, mom spoke again. I nodded for that too. Mom handed me a mirror. The lobes piercings were visible, but the piercings for second set & nose were not much. Now a day’s boys have pierced ears too, don’t worry, mom tried to cheer me. Mom was still looking at my nose; she was afraid of closing it. She quickly went down & came back with a retainer. It's in your body colour, I brought it yesterday, please try to look away from your friends, you will be fine, while putting it into my nose she said. Moms face turned bright. She was happy now. I thought about my coming days at school, and tried to get on to bed. Hold on there, mom stopped me. Why do we take chances, when we have lots of retainers, let me put into your ears, mom was thrilled, I wasn’t? She slides four of them into my piercings. We will do something about your hair in the morning she said. I was surprised of the results, the holes become much less visible. I become happy for the first time. Thanks mom, I said. I love you & I’m proud of you, while walking towards the door mom replied. Because of my long skirt, I get into bed in a girly way. School was all over my head, but this time sleep came early.
The End.
Please post comments ........
Anjali (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 03:51)
Forgot to thank all the readers & the authors for keeping this site alive. And thanks RAJI for keeping this site up, as always ...
Maddy (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 06:17)
Anjali great story keep it up and pls post more stories will be waiting for your stories from now on!
seks telefon (Tuesday, 15 November 2016 06:54)
nasionnicowaty
Sneha (Tuesday, 15 November 2016)
Amazing story Anjali i cant stop myself from reading your stories. One of my favorite stories. Please post more stories. Loved this one. And thanks for sharing such amazing story.
Nandan (Wednesday, 16 November 2016 04:38)
Wheel of Life
This is story from a village in Mysuru, Karnataka. Janardhan Gowda was one of the Richest man in the village.He owned acres of Land and was also owner of a Huge manshion in the centre of the village, all the area around the mansion was also owned by Gowda , he had built small houses for the numerous of his workers who worked in his house and his farm. He was married to Narmada Devi, it was a love marriage and Narmada was from a relatively poor background. During her college days Narmada was friends with Neelaveni , both were so close that they were though of as sisters. Neelaveni who was from Janardhan Gowda's relation was from upper middle class and used to help Narmada financially whenever needed. Janadhan Gowda married Narmada and made her the queen of his mansion
2 years later Narmada gave birth to a son named Nandan. Gowda went on a spree and gave all of the village a huge feast on birth of his successor. During the feast a familiar face had returned to Narmada's life i.e Neelaveni. She was married 6 months ago to a relative, her husband who was an avid gambler had spent all his and Neelaveni's family fortune in gambling. Her husband also left the city 2 months ago, Neelaveni was then thrown out of thier house by bank officials and she was on road to fend for herself, add to that she was also pregnant. That is when she remembered her friend Narmada who was the only one left who could help her. Neela fell on Narmada's feet and begged for her help. But what she did not know is that Narmada was no the same person she thought her friend was, she was now a cocky owner of a huge fortune, her response was not excatly what Neela expected. But Janardhan Gowda was a man with a large heart, he consoled Neela and told her to have food at the feast, and they will discuss about her future after the feast. Neela was relatively relieved and agreed to Gowda and went and sat at the food table to have food.
Narmada then pulled Gowda to the side and told him I want to discuss about Neela. She said " how are we going to afford Neela and her baby's expences , i dont see her husband coming back again, that means there could be a chance that we should look after her for life,What i say is give her some money and tell her to leave". Janardhan was totally surprised by her view, Narmada had told so many stories about how Neela was there when she needed help both financily and mentaly, she also told him a story about how Neela had saved Narmada from drowning in river Kaveri when she slipped while bathing in the river. Janardhan roasted her for being so insensitive towards he friend when she needed her the most, he was admanent on helping Neela as he was gratefull to her for saving his wife’s life. Narmada was little digrunteled but later agreed of Janardhan helping Neela, but she had one condition, “Neela had to work as a Maid in the house until her husband comes and takes her, and she would also not get to stay in the mansion, she will have to stay in the slum that you call the worker quarters “, She was admant to this condtion and told Janardhan that this conditions has to be met, while they were conversing they were unaware that Neela was standing right behind them, she came back because she wanted to have food along with her friend and not alone, she had heard all their conversation. Suddenly both realized her presence and turned back Narmada gave a wicked smile, Neela told Narmda that she was happy to work as maid in her friend’s house and she also agreed to stay at the workers quarters. Narmada was very happy inside and said “OK, Go and have your food Neelaveni”. That evening she was ordered to shit into the workers quarters and told to join to work next moring
Next day Neela joined to work next day, Narmada just gave a slight smile and said “ Maids come to work here at 7 am, Please come early from tomorrow as I cant change the rule only for you hope you can understand Neelaveni” . To which Neela replied “Oh Sorry Narmada, I didn’t knew exactly what time I had to come and was also little tired after yestrdays journey, Don’t worry Narmada I will come at sharp 7 am from tommoro”. Narmada was little disturbed by Neela calling her out by her name in public. She pulled her to a corner and said “Neelaveni, No one here knows that you are my friend, everyone except my husband calls me Memsahib, It is sake of my honour, how can a maid call me by my name , Please refer to me as Memsahib in public”. Neela was shocked to here those words, she was taken aback by the changes under gone to Narmada due to her sudden change in social status, She could only Muster as Sorry and an Okay.
Nandan (Wednesday, 16 November 2016 04:39)
Wheel of life- Cont..
Days went past Neela continued to work as maid in the Gowda mansion and Narmada totally made Neela forget that she was a friend of anything. As months passed Neela was 7 months pregnant and she was given leave from her maid duties and was secluded to her workers quarters alone to fend for herselves, her only help were her fellow maids who brought in food and took care when needed. Narmada never visited her even once , In her 9th month of pregnancy she gave birth to a Girl child, She Named her Karthika as she was born in Karhika Maasa. After Two months of her delivery she joined back to her Duty, Narmada didn’t even ask her how she or the baby was, she just noded to Neela as a Owner to her maid. Even after so many months her husband had not returned and Neela thought to herself that she was destined to her Maid life and her only aim to live was her little daughter.
To Be continued
Sumathi (Wednesday, 16 November 2016 08:04)
Fantasy:1
Hi I am surabh from a wealthy family, don't have to work for next few generations, owned by mom and dad, everything has come to stepmother after my mom dad passed away when I was 13, my schooling changed to homeschooling, I am the only man of this house, we have few maid's inside and outside of our house working, and they have a maid's quarter. At the age of 17, one sleepless night I was roaming in my house, and I came to maid's quarter and I found their sarees in clothesline for drying, their smell was still found in the saree, and that cotton material gave me an erotic sensation, the first time I felt to try those dress, my heart was beating, I was looking here and there and found to be dead dark, I know how to wear a skirt blouse and bra but how will I wear these saree, I controlled myself, walked to my room, I hugged my pillow and start dreaming about how will I look on this saree. And how to wear these, I took my phone and started Google, how to wear a saree, yes i found, I looked inside my room nothing, just by boxers t-shirts tracks, how will I try , how will I learn, I took my bedsheets tried like a half saree first, then tried the pleats and tried everything, I somehow identified and felt so natural saree wearer, I believed I could wear saree. So I waited for next night, for the first time again i felt that erotic moment heart beating, an adrenaline rush....
I went to that place, found many sarees, all are cotton, every saree I touch it hugs my body and I felt the ultra feminity to wear, the urge made me to dress, I quickly took the saree and blouse skirt and bra panties from same clothes line and ran into my room and locked the door.
My heart beating was high, a fear of getting caught and a feeling that I'm going to be a girl for some time.
I quickly wore all the inners and wore the saree for the first time, the cotton sarees just hugged e around and exposed my structure more feminine, I thoroughly enjoyed the feeling and I sat on bad like a girl and tried sleeping for an hour and before the sun rises I removed everything and kept back from where I took. This happened several times. I've been doing this for months and it became a secret hobby for me. I stopped cutting my hair. My step mom commented me to cut my hair several times, she always praise me I look like my mom, so why shouldn't I try look like her I thought in my mind.
One day when I was having my breakfast with my stepmother, one of a maid was serving breakfast asked permission to spoke, stepmother said yes,
Mam, one of our maid left job today.
Any problem ?
Yes mam, while she left she said someone is trying on her dress and she needs privacy to her belongings, which is not here so she left .
Hearing this I started shivering, oh my god I was trying on one of a maid dress an now she left. Now I need to search for someone else dress, I mean that bra and blouse and skirt.
That maid looked at me and told my stepmother
Mam only we are in this house, how she says someone will use her belongings, I was shocked by hearing this.
My stepmother looked at me and said,
See surabh someone is trying on her belongings how rude isn't?
Yes mom that's too bad we have to find that theif and give right punishment, I added.
My stepmother smiled and told that maid, meanwhile you search for someone who can fit that role.
She said ok mam and left.
I looked horrified after that meet I went to my room and thought what to do.
Hereafter whose blouse and bra wil I can try.
The night came. I went to maid's quarter, I couldn't control myself all night since I'm used to wearing saree and sleep for a while has become a habit for me. I couldn't control myself I wanted to wear saree that night, i searched same clothes line and found same saree and blouse everything, without thinking while me on that erotic mood I took that saree and went to my room as usual I wore that saree and I was feeling the feminity, as I always do this at n8, nobody will be there so I never had a habit of locking my door, now that created a problem, i was rolling in my bed feeling the smell and enjoying myself as a women, I saw a girl standing at the door wearing a similar saree like me, shocked I suddenly woke up and tried to hide myself, then the voice came, calm down surabh, I'm your maid, and my name is reni,
Shocked and feeling cold I couldn't able to speak, I hung my head in shame and stood there like a statue.
Sumathi (Wednesday, 16 November 2016 08:25)
Fantasy:2
Maid spoke, what happened? Any problem in your tongue? U r such a fool, in front of u only I said one maid left, u found her saree in same place don't u able to realise it's a trap? Wat am I supposed to do with u? U look yes like a girl, a teenager, I have a plan for u. Meet me early at 7 in the kitchen bye.
She left, I stood there speechless, feeling nervous and shaking I quickly removed my saree and went to maid's quarter and kept clothes in clothesline just the way it was, as usual, I came back and slept.
Next day morning I was sleeping and someone was caressing me from behind and cuddling me, it was so seductive I slowly turned around and to find my maid, in that erotic mood I lost myself she made me cum. After few minutes she woke me up, I recalled what happened and hung my head in shame and asked her
Please don't say anything about last night and what happened now please.
Yes surabi, I know what to do. If u don't want anyone to know about this, u have to check your wardrobe now.
I quickly went and opened it to find a five sets of cotton sarees with blouse and bra and skirt with cotton panties. I felt ao happy and thanked her.
Not so fast, u have to wear now and come with me.
No mam please if my stepmother see me she will throw me out of this house.
Surabi, don't get panic ur stepmother never been to maid's quarter or to kitchen, she will only call, I'll manage. If u want me to go to your mom and sat everything then stay here.
Ok ok don't say I'll do Anything, pls wait, i quickly dressed in their cotton sarees and followed her.
She took me to kitchen.
You've been very bad, because of ur filthy behaviour we lost one maid, one slap hard on my face, I cried almost
Shut up u r here as a maid and remember your position, now as a punishment clean everything here, fast in Next one hour, she left.
I started to clean everything one by one, with a feeling, what if anyone see me, I made my work fast and quickly completed by 8 am. I heard my mom calling the maid reni. My heart was beating hard and started sweating, standing there speechless.
Suddenly I saw reni running fast to my mom, she quickly came and asked me to make a tea. I said I don't know how to make.
She taught me once and asked me to remember, and she won't teach m every time. I noted how she done that.
She came back again and started preparing breakfast regular chapathi with Chenna masala, she taught me and said next morning I should prepare something like this. I said I need your help, she said u do alone I will correct it. I said ok. After breakfast preparation she asked me to go my room and quickly change and come for breakfast as surabh. I asked her what f my stepmother is in hall.
Reni said, she Is in bath,go quickly before she come or else u will end up like me here.
I ran fast to my room and got ready as surabh and came for breakfast.
Me and my mom was having breakfast when reni spoke, mam I selected one maid she is in training period now, will very soon I'll show her to you, you'll be surprised with her work.
Mom said, hmmm I would be happy to have such pretty maids, train well.
I looked horrified and looked reni and in action I asked are u referring me?
She showed in action wearing a saree, are u interested?
I said no in action.
She smiled and In action said no not u.
With a relief I started having my breakfast.
Srs (Wednesday, 16 November 2016 21:47)
Anjali is nice that u also became a reader to writer, keep going on.
satya (Thursday, 17 November 2016 00:28)
nice story sumathi continue
satya (Thursday, 17 November 2016 00:37)
brother in law to wife
hi i am satya age 33 every day i woke up at early morning 5.30 and take the bath and cook food for lunch and maid will come at 6 and assigning the work to maid means cleaning the house washing cloths etc later after cooking i wake up my daughter and my husband and i will ready my daughter and send her to school later i will be ready me and my husband will go to office . this is my daily routine in every morning
actuallu i am not female from birth and i dont have any crossdressing habit but at my age of 27 one incident changed my life turn up to the age of 27 i am an software employ earning 50000 per month but now i am a wife and having one daughter every day i am wearing saree and night time having sex with husband. how i turned like this i will explain you.
satya (Thursday, 17 November 2016 00:51)
brother in law to wife 2
i am only son to my parents in home only me and my mom will live my father left us at early stage
and at the age of 22 i am studying btech final year i am having an girl friend name sindhu she will lives near to my house only my hobbies are playing cricket i am the highend batsmen inthe colony and while playing the cricket i have so many friends on that varun is my best friend . but i am very fair in color so many girls are follow me.
one day varun came to me and ask me help that he is loves a girl name sandhya please give some suggestons he said. . she is also loving him but tyhey are not expressing.one day they both expressed and married each other .now they are living fine after the i year they are having a daughter also.i also completed my btech and placed in it company my girlfriend also placed and we two also love each other but we did not tell to our parents she said i am also having the one brother and mother she said come and talk to my parents. first i asked help to my friend varun he said i will come ok i said then i and varun went to sindhu house varun get shocked.
satya (Thursday, 17 November 2016 01:02)
brother in law to wife 3
he said it is my house and she is my sister.i also get shock because i dont no she is her sister i went to delhi when varun marrage was held they are having two houses in same colony where sindhu and her moher lives another one is vorun and sandhya lives. sindhu get shocked i am with her brother.later all discussions their family and my family was accepted for marrage and we are also happy i and sindhu roamed each and every place in city in bike while riding a bike i put sudden brakes his breast will toches me she said what u r doing i ride slowly i am uncomfortable.i asked why if u were a girl then u will come to know she said.our marrage was also completed i give party to my collegues and one of my collegue satish invited to his house one day.one fine day we went to his house he and his wife welcomed me i and satish was talking in hall sindhu and her wife wwent to kitcen and talking each other and time is up toleave my wife is not coming i commented her what u r doing their she is seeing her saries and jeweleries of her and talking about that i commented girls are intrested in sarees and jeweleries and that is important than her husband later we take food and went to home.
satya (Thursday, 17 November 2016 03:32)
brother in law to wife 4
life was going peacefull after marrying sindhu vikriam was giving utmost respect to me. sindhu cousin name uma she was 22 years old and she was living with sindghu mother. one day i sindhu sandhya was going on a car from back one lorry came and hit us what was happend i dont know when i opened my eyes i was in hospital one nurse came i asked whta happened to me she said u are in hospital from four months u r in a comma stage.now only u recoverd after 1 hour my mother came me to see me that i was fine later vikram also came to me to see all are coming what about sindhu i think i remembererd i we met with an accident and i asked to my mom about the sindhu she is crying she said sindhu and sandhya are no more for us she said. ididnt understand later they said they are expired. iget shocked what about the daughter of vikram she said she is fine and she is living in sindhus home.i was recoverd in 1month and i was discharged. while i was discharging what about my health they enquired to doctor everything is fine but he is not fit for marrrage or sex his penis testiciles were damaged in accident and it is used for urine purpose only not for sexual purpose every one get shocked and everyone showing the sympathy on me.after 1 month i am going to office everyone showing sympathy on me. idid not like that after the theree months some changes were going in my body that my hair was growing fast and
ishu (Thursday, 17 November 2016 03:55)
satya great going
satya (Thursday, 17 November 2016 05:50)
brother in law to wife 5
i am becoming slim and my chest was growing and my penis size as been shrinked and after going to office every one touches me it makes me the uncomfortable. iam no t getting sleep in night times
so i think i need to consult a doctor so i said to my mom she consulted the doctor doctor checked me and test reports are pending so we came home my mother said that not go to office tomorrom .so i am free in home now so my mother only went to the doctor to collect reports so the doctor replied about my problem he said im accident his male genitials were damaged so he cant be father or not done sex so female harmones are producing fastly in his body so thats why theese changes are coming.so my mother asked what is the solution for this he said if he live like that bresat will come hair will grow but penis will belike that so society will see him like a bitch so my suggestion is that to becoming a female by doing the srs operation is the best solution such that his mindset will change he can live remaining life without any problem but if he changed into female he can do sex and any one of u given their ovaries he will get periods but he cant deliver a child now he is 27 still so much life is there to live.think once and we willproceed but it must be go in a slow and study dont tell him directly after 1 or two months he will bw getting more changes then u can say him hemust think he himself a girl then only we can do operation otherwise it will effect later.now i will give somw tablets please follow this procedure.it will take 8 to 10 months to became female doctor finally said name is no problem to your son satya name is to be set for both male and female. ok doctor i will go now
Nandan (Thursday, 17 November 2016 08:37)
Wheel of life- Part 2. Contiued from #407
We now take a 10 year Leap from the events of #407.
Janardhan Gowda and Narmada 's son Nandan was growing up , both were happy and enjoying seeing him grow up, Meanwhile Neelaveni had given up hopes oof her husband's return, she continued to strive as a maid in her former friend's home, her only source of joy was her little daughter Karthika who was also of same age as Narmada's son Nandan. Nandan went to a premier Private school of the village and Karthika went to a govt school as her mother couldnot afford it. Since both were of same age Nandan and Karthika used to like playing togather, but Narmada was strictly against Nandan mingling along to maid's daughter. So she debbared Nandan from meeting Karthika , she told Nandan that he should not mingle from people of the worker's colony as they were dirty people.
It was Nandan's birthday that day and Gowda family were travelling to Tirupati as they vowed to go pilgrimage few years ago. They finished their trip and were returing home when tragedy struck. Their Car met with an accident. Both Janardhan Gowda and Narmada were critcally injured. They were shifted to Hospital were they battled for their lives. Narmada's wounds proved fatal and she died two days later, Janardhan Gowda had lost his legs and was now bound to a wheel chair. Nandan was devastated by the death of his mother. He went into depression , He even skipped school for a whole year as he refused to leave home and was always in thoughts of his mother.
Janardhan was advised that Nandan be sent to a diffrent place as him being in his house may keep him in constant reminder of his mother. So Nandan was shifted to Delhi , were he was enrolled in a top Residential School. Janardhan now paralzyed had to depend on others for all his works, the only one he could trust in his house was Neelaveni who was not only his long serving maid but also his distant relative. Neelaveni was promoted to the post of head maid and was entrusted to look after the mansion. She was even granted a room in the Mansion and she and Karthika shifted into it. Neelaveni took great care in looking after the day today affairs of the house, she even installed CCTV cameras inplace to avoid misplace or robbery of items from the house.
Years passed and Nandan continued his study in Delhi, he who once was a bright student due to the skipping of one year was now a very dull student, his friends in delhi with whom he hanged out spoilt him even and converted him into a total low life . He hardly passed his 12th exam with passing marks, even though he was enrolled into a preimeir engineering institute by his father via management seat. Meanwhile Karhtika was a very bright student was topper, she aced her 12th but was still able to join BCA course due to her mother’s financial condition.
Nandan (Thursday, 17 November 2016 08:38)
Nandan had returned home for his 20th birthday to celebrate in his village along with 5 of his friends, Nandan knew that Janradhan will be angry seeing his son partying in his house so he made sure that the party was kept when Janardhan was not in the village.
The day of the party came, Nandan along with his friends had arrived in the house, Neelaveni was surprised to see Nandan, as he had not informed about his arrival. Nandan instructed her that he was going to have a party that night and will be needing her to arrange for the food. But Neelaveni said that she had sent all the maids for a weeks holiday as Janardhan was not in town and it will be though to arrange a feast in such short time. Nandan in a raged voice instructed her to not forget her status as a maid and quietly follow the orders of her Master. Neelaveni then put her head down and agreed to arrange for the feast alone, she though she and her daughter could somehow manage to cook.
Karthika then returned from her college and entered the house, Nandan and his friends were all in awe of her beaugty and were totally dumbstruck. Neelaveni then instructed her to go and freshen up as she wanted her help in some arrangement. Both Karhtika and Neelaveni left the hall and went into their room.One of Nandan’s friend pulled him towards a corner and said “Dude Nandan , what a sexy Maal you have in your house, dude the party will be more fun if she could do a strip dance for us tonight” and laughed. Another friend joined him and told “Come on Nandan, please I am too excited after seeing her, I totally want to see her Naked tonight”. Nandan thought for sometime and told “Lets see what can be done” and gave a wicked smile.
Neelaveni and Karthika worked hard and made all the arrangements for the night, during doing some work Neela slipped and had an Leg injury , the injury though not serious ,but still neela could not stand for a while. She told Karthika to take care of the Serving of food and retired to her chamber. The boys then were prepared to have food , Nandan called out Neelaveni to which Karthika came out and informed him about her injuty and told him that she would take care of the serving part. Nandan was ok with that and told her that they were ready to have food. Karthika then arranged the table , the boys sat around it and Karthika started serving the food.
Nandan (Thursday, 17 November 2016 08:39)
All was going well, Karthika was doing her duty without knowing that Nandan meanwhile was scheming to trap her into something. As the Meal was coming to an end Karthika went back to get the desserts, that is when Nandan got into action he Kept his costly Laptop at the edge of the table, Karthika unknowing of the fact went ahead to serve the dessert when disaster struck , the Laptop fell down as soon as she kept the utensil on the table. The force was enough for the laptop’s screen to break into pieces. Nandan stood up and hit a Hard slap on the face of Karthika, she was totally in horror and started crying and begging for forgiveness, Nandan shouted on her “ You filthy Bitch, do you even know how much that Laptop costs, its work 1Lakh 80 thousands, you have totally Brocken it apart”. Karhtika again begged his forgiveness and told that she didn’t dod it on purpose to which Nandan replied “What if you didn’t do it on purpose, who the fuck will pay for it? I am gonna fucking throw you and your mother into that streets and then lodge a police complaint and put your mother into Jail”. Karhtikas eyes were now full of terror of what she just heard , she started weeping even more all she could say now is “Please Master Nandan, My mother has worked for so long in you house, pls spare us, I am ready to do anything in return”. That is where Nandan wanted to trap her, he asked “What do you mean by anything?” she replied “Any punishment that you put me through I am ready, but please don’t harm my mother”. Nandan and finally achieved his Goal
“Okay Karhtika first things first, don’t worry we will not rape you, but if you don’t agree to me from now then we may even do that, agree?” Karhtika was relived to here those words,she thought Nandan would give some little punishment and let her off , she said “Okay ,Master” .”Then lets start now, we are going to have some drinks now, I want you to stay here and be our Bar girl and serve us drinks too” . Karhtika though taken aback by the term Bar Girl she was okay with it as it involved only serving drinks she said “Okay”.
Nandan instructed her to bring the bag that carried the drinks to the dinning table and start serving, she brought the bag and removed the Bottles, arranged for some glasses and started removing the Lid of the Alcohol bottle. That is when Nandan stopped her, “Hey Karthika, don’t start serving yet, you are not yet in the attire of a Bar Girl” . Karthika was stunned and became a statue of a second and looked at Nandan. Nandan then said “ What Happen Karthika, why are you stunned, Oh I think you don’t know the attire of a Bar Girl let me show you” . He then googled a Bar Girl in a Two Piece costume and showed it to her, Karthika fell on her knees at the sight of the photo she never imagined that Nandan would put this as a condition , “Oh please don’t start crying now, you agreed to do anything I say, Now this is what I Order, See this picture I want you in a similar attire, since we don’t have anything similar I would like you to strip to your Underwear instead ,and be quick come on” . Karhtika was now in a total shock , but she had no choice she had to undergo this trial otherwise her mother could endup in Jail and she on footpath. She stood up ,The boys then strated screeming “Strip Strip Strip “ .She Removed Her top first to the reaction of “Oooooo” from the boys . She then in Embarsment momentarily stopped and covered her breasts with her Hands, to which then Boys again started their chant “strip strip strip” . With tears in their eyes she then proceeded to remove her Pant to expose her Panty, she was wearing a matching black bra and panty that night. “Oh stop crying, let me cut you some slack , I will allow you to wear your Dupatta if you want HAHAHAHAH”. To which Karthika didn’t reply and put her head down , Nandan then shouted ”How dare you not accept my linecny, now I order you to remove your Bra and Put duppata Instead and that would be your attire a Duppata and a Panty, now hurry Up. Karhtika knew that she had no choice and proceeded to do that She was now in just Duppata and Panty. Nandan instructed her to start Serving the Drinks .Karthika with all the shame in the world started to serve the drinks . Nandan and his friends were enjoying embarsing her more and more, they started to pull her duppata from side to side, Karthika had no choice but to be their play tool. All she could do was to adjust the duppata each time and continue serving.
Nandan (Thursday, 17 November 2016 08:40)
“Stop Nandan!!!” Janardhan Gowda had returned from his trip which was cutshort due to a car failure. “What are you doing son, why are you hitting Neelaveni, Don’t you have respect towards elders you Idiot” He was really angry on seeing his son’s actions. Neela quickly got on to her feet and ran towards Janardhan, she fell on his feet and begged for justice “What justice?what just happen?” Janardhan was confused to which Neela told him about all that had conspired in his Absence. Janardhan was schocked, he never could have Imagined that his only son could have done this heinous crime, He shouted on Nandan “Do you agree to all these accusations?” To which Nandan replied “Yes I did that, but It was a punishment for Her crime, and these people are faking their crying, they want us to settle some amount so they are emotionaly blackmailing us, don’t fall for it Dad”. “Shut Up you stupid, How dare you spoil the heritage of my family, you are a black mark in my family’s history” . He then consoled and asked for forgivenss to Neela, He told her not to book a police complaint and told her that he would sort things for good tomorrow morning and asked her to return to her chamber. Neela stopped weeping and noded and returned to her room. Janardhan then went to his room, he could not get sleep for the whole night and thought about the situation that his son has created now and how he could set things right.
Next Morning 8 Am, Janardhan Insrtucted All three Nandan, Neelaveni and Karthika to be present in his room as he would announce his decision. All three arrived Karthika could not raise her head and see anyone eye to eye. Janardhan started speaking “First of all I would want to beg for forgiveness to KArhtika, child my cruel son as put you through eternal pain please don’t curse him and my family , I beg you to forgive him” He bent towards her Leg, “No Sahib, you are like god to us, please don’t do this”Karhtika said . Nandan was shocked to see this “No Dad what are you doing “he said. Janardhan slapped him and Said “You don’t have a say here, shut up and listen”,He continued “To set things right, I have decided that Nandan will Marry Karthika, and she will be the future owner of this house, that will stope her from cursing our Family, My decision is final and my son has no say in it” .Nandan was engraged of the decision he told he was not willing to marry a girl who her friends have seen Naked and started leaving the room . Janardhan then caught his hand and told him he will not leave until he agrees to his decision otherwise he will be discarded from is will. Hereing this Nandan was in fit of Anger, He Kicked his Fathers Wheel Chair so hard that it went outside the room , Janardhan’s room was opposite to the 100 floor steps, the wheelchair which was in motion along with Janardhan now flew down the steps, Each Thud of the steps hitting Janardhan’s body was heard throught the house. As he reached the bottom he was no more alive.
ALL THIS WAS CAPTURED IN THE CCTV CAMERA
To Be continued
Nandan (Thursday, 17 November 2016 10:05)
Sorry Readers there is a continuity problem from #420 to #421
I had typed like 3 pages and posting accordingly..
At end of #420 Karthika was serving drinks and then Neelaveni's charachter enters...but that part was not missed...and i unfortunately deleted that part to............Now i will post important points of that part
# Karthika Serves to the boys in Duppata and Panty
#Buys embarass her more by asking her to do snake dance and then ask her to go to room and wear Saree and come..and then ask her to do Striptease
#At the end of the striptease Neelaveni enters and slaps Nandan and threatens police action....then Friends of nandan leave at hereing her threaten of Police
#Nandan asks Neelaveni the price of Karthika's and tells she is nothing but slut....and hits Neelaveni....then Janardhan Gowda enters at #421...and the story continues...
Sorry Readers for the inconvinence...Please reply if you are confused or anything and what me to stop
Sumathi (Thursday, 17 November 2016 12:32)
Fantasy:3
After breakfast I was in hall watching TV. And my stepmother joined with me, I used to watch TV see with her. While me and my stepmother watching TV that maid reni crossed our place and she was standing in a corner and was watching me. Realising someone is watching me I slowly turned my face and saw reni, she gave me a kiss and in action she asked me to wear saree and come, my heart beat raised again, I told stepmother that I'm going to sleep and walked to my room, reni maid was standing there
and said now wear the saree and meet me in kitchen.
I replied mom s der if she saw me then we both will be in trouble
She replied if u want me to expose u wearing saree to ur mom then stay here I'll come with your mom in ten minutes, two choices, come to kitchen or wait for us.
I angrily went to my room And wore the saree and slowly walked down to kitchen, reni was waiting for me.
U talked too much today. I have a punishment for u.
I thought she will ask me to wash the vessels and cook. But she had other ideas.
Go to our maid quatres and ask anyone to tie your hair in high bun like we all do.
Mam I'm wearing saree, please they will know me.
I know, they won't open their mouth, if they ask tell them u r just having fun with reni.
I said ok, and stood there looking at reni, eyes filled with tears,
She said, Don't waste my time and pushed me outside kitchen and locked the door.
I panicked and quickly ran inside maid quatres and at entrance I found one maid she looked at me and asked why are u wearing a saree?
I smiled weakly and said just feeling what it's to be a maid for a day.
She said, wonderful, what kind of maid work u r trying?
I'm the kitchen maid, can u tie my hair like yours.
Oh sure, u will look good, here it is,
She took a black scrunchie and pulled my hair from behind and tied it in a high bun tightly.
I thanked her and quickly reached kitchen.
Reni was just simply waiting for me.
She made me wash all vessels. She prepares the lunch and she was teaching me how to work elegantly like a girl.
In some interest I was also interestingly learning that.
Now u go to your room our lunch preparation is complete. Go to your room change your dress and remove the hair scrunchie and go sit for lunch. While in lunch u have to ask me to teach u how to serve ok?
I said ok and changed myself and sat with my mom for lunch.
Reni came with the lunch and she started serving, I took a deep breath and looked at reni, she looked at me to ask, I nodded
Mom can I serve today for a change?
Oh sure son, ok go ahead, reni move Today he will be serving me.
Reni, can you teach me how to serve?
She said sure mam, sorry sure Sir with a giggle she taught me serving the table.
And she commented to my mom I will make a pretty maid if trained properly.
Mom smiled oh yea he is. He is good sh appreciated.
I thanked both and finished my lunch.
poojaa (Thursday, 17 November 2016 12:53)
Sumathi nice storiesss........plz post more stories
Can u plzz include dupatta bondage(blindfold, gagg, tiedup)as a punishment of maid.
satya (Friday, 18 November 2016 06:19)
brother in law to wife 6
my mother came home and i asked what was the results of reports she did not say full mater. she said only it is due to harmonal balance doctor given tablets and to use regularly and advised to take rest in house for two to three months. i aksked why she said k if u r felling fine u can go by next week.i said ok. days were going fine my facial hair was no getting befor i am having stylish beard after accident i am not getting hair on my faceand my chest wasincreasing.
Sumathi (Friday, 18 November 2016 13:48)
Fantasy:4
After lunch I went to my room and looked at the saree I wore with my sweat it looked more wet, so I locked my room turned on the fan and tried to make it dry. When I suddenly shocked hearing my door knocked, I quickly hid my saree and opened the door only to find reni, I smiled at her, she smiled back,
What are u trying?
Nothing!
I know u r trying to dry the wet saree.
Yes, it's wet because I sweat high
We all sweat while work dear, it's natural, that's why we wash every set of our dress during night.
Oh ok now I understood, I smiled.
She said, now who is going to work in the kitchen,. She looked at me smiling.
I weakly smiled, it's me isn't it?
Yes u are surabhi, wear your saree, same wet saree, and meet me in kitchen fast.
I said ok and quickly dressed and slowly walked to the kitchen.
Reni smiled at me, u think u r so bold? U dare to walk around the house wearing saree?
With fear I replied I thought mom is sleeping? She is right?
Yes, she is sleeping, what if she see you?
Please don't remind me such situation I'll die, I replied sadly.
Why u die? U look so sexy like a girl, and wen I asked you to wear saree and come u just did, so u r not a man either. Why u should worry anyway?
I hung my head in shame, I replied I'm a man only.
She smiled and replied, u r a man? Look what u r wearing, skirt, panty, blouse, bra and a saree, and WAITING to work in kitchen like a girlllll......
I hung my head in shame, I had tears in my eyes, and replied, it's because of u only.
She didn't said anything, she asked me to go and wash all the plates and cups we used at lunch and asked me to prepare tea and meet her outside in garden.
I said ok and started working, I looked my shadow frequently to admire how shape I am and touched myself several times to feel myself wearing a saree.
After I made tea. I slowly opened the door and found reni was standing near a tree watering, other maid's were busy doing other works, I covered my head with Pallu walked towards her, she turned back and found its me , she spoke,.
Why are u covering your head surabhi, come on, she pulled the Pallu from my head to expose myself and tied the Pallu to my hip as normally girls do, she then hold my hands and walked towards kitchen, I hung my head and walked fast.
She Tasted my tea and said, wow it's very nice. I must appreciate your first tea. Yes it's tasty, so what you do is go change yourself and sit watch TV, I'll serve the tea, I happily turned and started walking to my room, reni called me,
Surabi u were talking, i didn't like it, now after u change, u stick this bindi in your forehead and sit watch TV.
Please don't let me do this, my mom will think I'm a eunuch, please I beg u please.
No u must learn the hard way to obey whatever i say.
I'll do whatever u say but please no , not this.
She warned me, to do as she say, or she will tell mom about set of sarees in my wardrobe.
I went to my room changed my dress, and looking in the mirror, I kept the bindi, a bright red colour, traditional bindi. I almost cried in mirror, and took a long time to come out, I decided to cover with my hair in the front which is as long it covers my front face. So I covered and sat in front of TV.
Reni came and gave me tea, she noted that I hid the bindi with my hair and went and gave tea to my mom, they both came and mom sat beside me and reading newspaper,
Suddenly reni came next to me, and hold my hair and called mam look at him, he is wearing a bindi like you.
With anger mom looked at me and asked what is this stupidity? And she gave a hard slap, and asked reni to give me a proper hairstyle,so that I can't hide my face doing stupid things, quickly she took a scrunchie and tied my hair a bun style like all maid's do.
My mom looked at me angrily, look yourself in the mirror, I can only see your mom, not a man I expect, she blasted get out of my sight and left.
Reni smiled at me and said u look cute, I cried and went inside my room.
Rahul Singh (Friday, 18 November 2016 23:50)
I also want to became of someones wife
Rahul Singh (Friday, 18 November 2016 23:52)
my mail id is singh7732@gmail.com
satya (Saturday, 19 November 2016 03:50)
brother in law to wife 7
i asked my mother my chest was increasing she said u r not growing to gym thats why it is becoming like this next day onwards i started to go to gym for 1 week later also ithere is no any difference and my hair was grown up to m neckmy shirt size was became less but it is tighten towards chest area and my hip size was growing one day i am going out in a city some one seeing me differently and if any one man touches me i am getting some feeling while i am walking or running i am getting iritation if mychest nipple touches my shirt and it is swagging next day i explained tomy mom she said i will give you an idea she gave me one panty and one camisole but i dont know it is panty she said it is new underware to you and it is new fashionok i wera panty and next she given camisole i know this is camisole i asid why i need to wear this she said it is soft to your skin and it will be tight such that ou cant get any problem so i wear it later i wear one loose t shirt and one track and i went for jogging i feel some what better days were growing on and my face became pure smooth and no hair on my face and chest area also increased and i am feeling some weight on my chest and it became an girls breast again i and my mother went to dctor. doctor saw me and said i will give this case one specilized lady doctor and consult her so we went to that lady doctor doctor saw my reports and checked my total body she said to me wait outside. she told to my mother he is becoming lady day by day tell him to wear the bra it will supportes his breast doctor how can i say to wera bra to my son how can i say that u r not a male u r female she said dont worry first you tell him to wear bra now his hair also growing let him aloow to go outside his skin also become hairless his mindset also changes day by day you tell him to wera girls dresses but not force him what is his age 27 started allow him to wear first jeans later try salwar saree his harmones are fastly producing with in two months he will become physicall and mentally a female after that we will make surgery be careful theese two months i came out and we went home next day after taking bath my mother came to me and given bra i asked whu u given tome i am not girls she said it will helps your chest not to grow and swagiing i said no my mother shout me to wear i said i dont know she said first ou have to hook at front turn towrds back keep your hand in this trips and lift it to your chest and adjust it the two cups must be filled with them my mother siad to try again i unhooked the bra difficltly later after 10 to 20 tries i sucessfull in wearing bra later i wera tshirt it is dark color such that bra will not visible but after wearing bra my chest has to pointed out later my mothergive me new denim i wore it it a girls denim later i come to knoow freely i kept my hair and went for out. bra gives me a nice support but everyone is starring at meseeing my chest later i saw one girls is also wearing same tshirt what i am wearing i can come to know that my and her chest sime is same i confir that my chest is growing like breast i am getting some uncomfortable while every one seeing on me later i went to one mall while entering there will be checking the security didnt check me and said madam go thier for ladies checking i get schoked he tell me a madam with in aminute i went home and checked in mirror my face hair and chest and hips dress it was looking like an young girls of 25 and no one will say me iam aboy and my mother went for function for 3 days and i am only in home i removed all the dresses and wear night tshirt and shot went down of my apprtment and my tshirt is transperent so toatal brast can be view outside everyone is seeing my thighs which is smooth looking sexyly two them and seeing my top portion and one lady came to me and said why u r coming like this you have cover your breast lby chunni or dhuppata your mother doest not taught youso i covered my breast with my hand and went to my room and removed all dresses and checked my self in amirror again and i didnt go out for two days still my mother came.
Sumathi (Saturday, 19 November 2016 14:21)
Fantasy 5:
After that humiliation I felt too sad and I was crying in my room, by 7pm reni came behind and hugged me, I replied, I thought u were helping for my hobby, now u made me caught.
She replied it was a punishment that u spoke too much surabi, now be my darling, after dinner finish all the works in kitchen and wash your sarees and dresses, I'll collect your dresses in morning and keep in your room, ok?
I replied ok and waited for dinner. Stepmother came and said sorry, and she said i always wanted u to be the man of house, but u always looked and in everyway like ur mom, so I thought u will become one, sorry, I hugged her and didn't said anything.
She replied I will be going out for few days, so behave and be a gud boy, ok? and I'll bring u a surprise if u be a gud lad..
I felt happy that she won't be there for next few days, so that I can enjoy my beginning of feminine feel. I did what reni told and kept my panties Bra blouse and saree for drying in clothesline and came back to room.
I couldn't sleep, I looked at my wardrobe and I thought why not wear the other sarees and enjoy the night, so I quickly transformed into surabi and practising my feminine walks and then suddenly the door opened, it's reni,
Hi, sorry I'm shocked.
Surabi, you got to wake up early, so stop playing and sleep well, tomorrow morning same schedule as today.
I nodded, she left, I locked the door and shoved myself in bed and had the best night sleep.
Next morning I woke up became reni and finished tea making and breakfast and quickly changed back to myself.
As a regular morning me and mom had breakfast and reni served it, I was expecting my mom to praise my first cooking, but as for her it's maid cooked it.
She tasted the tea and breakfast and didn't said anything. While leaving the house she informed reni that the breakfast is delicious and keep the gud work.
I jumped inside my heart, it's my first cooking and I nailed it, I appreciated myself.
After mom left, reni came and smiled so u r ready for the play. I said yes, I transformed myself into surabi and worked with reni, for next two days I spent my entire time in kitchen in saree and I somehow liked it very much. Third day morning as usual I dressed and made breakfast tea and everything for myself and reni, we spoke a lot and I found my mom was also a great worker like me,i resemble her in every inch, I blushed at her comment, by 11 am she called me to go out for a small surprise, but I never been outside in saree, so i hesitated, but reni forced me to come with her, on every walk I faced the world hiding my face with my hand, reni smiled looking at my predicament.
We finally reached a parlour, a cheap parlour, I tried to run out but reni and the beautician pulled me inside and gave me a simple piercing in both ear with a big ball stone stud, I seen this all maid's wearing similar stud, my other side was enjoying this transformation but the other side was giving a fear what will mom say.
Sumathi (Saturday, 19 November 2016 14:53)
Fantasy Final
I felt happy with the stud, but the fear was increasing every day and I adapted this new alter ego and I didn't want to become surabh again.
After we reached home, I thanked reni.
She asked why? It's just a play, be ready to change, your mom will come by next week.
I took a deep breath and asked reni, I want to be this.
What? As Surabi? Don't want to be you?
Yes reni, u encouraged me, u said I'm not a man, I had a male ego, now it's gone. I don't feel man anymore.
Surabi, I know u always wanted to be one of us, that's why you didn't say anything when I kept all old maid's sarees and set of everything in your room.
Yes reni, now it's time, I wanted to become one of us.
Reni hugged me and said, so it's time to introduce our new maid isn't it?
I smiled with tears yes.
She took me to maid's quarters and introduced me to other maid's, everyone looked at me strangely, but we didn't react, we reached kitchen and started our work.
Next day morning I woke up and made myself as surabi again and looked at my wardrobe, I took a garbage bag and disposed all my male clothes in it and walked outside my house, the garbage van reached I gave it to them and found my handshaking , my alter male ego is trying to stop, but I won't let that happen, I went back to house, completed morning work, while at breakfast I explained what happened at morning.
Reni smiled and appreciated my boldness.
I thanked her and continued my work.
By 11 am a knock at the door only to find some lawyer at my doorstep, reni welcomed him, I quickly hid myself in kitchen, after a few minutes reni took me to him, he asked me, surabi with your true knowledge u like to be surabi the maid of this house under the contract of this house owner? I nodded yes. He took me a picture in his mobile and asked me to sign some papers and left. I asked reni What is this all about?
She said, u want to be like us, don't u need an identity, he is my friend a criminal in making fake profiles and proof and documents, with help of him u can stay with us as surabi the maid for the rest of your life. I happily hugged reni and thanked her for everything she did to me.
We both went on to do our work.
Next day mom came, as usual I finished my morning routine and was having my breakfast at kitchen, reni asked me to go and serve, I asked no not now what will mom say, on my 18th birthday I Don't want to give her this shock pls. She forced me to go, with shaking hands I finally reached dining room to find my mom waiting. I slowly started serving, she started clapping when reni appeared, mom gave her a bag and thanked her. She gave me a small document to find my signature, I asked what is this?
Mom spoke, thank you surabi , on your 18th birthday u have all the rights to sell or give this property business and everything to anyone, and you gave to me.
And not only that u transformed into your mom.
Mom, u did all this?
Yes surabi,i am, u look more your mom, I know you will never make a man, and what u will do with all these properties?
But mom, I like this and I will stay like this.
Surabi, u got nothing left, u must stay this way, legally u r a maid, and legally u r surabi. Once again thank you my sweet, she left to her room.
Reni asked me to discard the breakfast arranged and continue my work.
Without any guilty feel, I started my work.
My alter ego was saying she cheated, I said so what? Now I am surabi.
Thanks for reading & your comments!!
SRS (Sunday, 20 November 2016 12:05)
"fashion part 11'' # 375
Next day i woke up an get started to ready for my office with my aunt. I went to bathroom an saw my self my hair looks like girls hair an my toung is still paining, i saw it in mirror it was a small shiny stud an i rely hate that, i tried to remove but i failed, after i brush my teeth an took bath after i came out an started to get dress. each an every time its difficult to get dress with this fake boobs, an i still used to sit an pee. i looked my silky hair which is shiny an i was shocked for my tattoo which is at the back of my lower hip, so i tuck in my shirt so that no 1 can notice an when i came out i was surprised on seeing my aunt she also looks similar to me by wearing the same jeans an shirt with the same hairstyle. We did breakfast an my aunt came to me an told that she will restyle my hair, an i dint accept this an i told i dint want anything i will simply go like this on hearing this she got anger an told when u did french braid hairstyle on that time u allowed some stranger to do it but iam ur aunt who took care everything about u an here u not allowing me to do ur hairstyle, i kept silent an told ok aunty do what u want to do. After that she made me sit in chair an started to do my hair she combed my hair an she started to braid my hair from middle of my fore head to above my ear an she told it was finished, after she went inside an did the same hairstyle for her an i was shocked y she is doing like that. we get start an i came to my car at that time she told that from now on u need not want to drive this car cause ur company told that its belong to me cause iam ur superior after i gave her my car key an i sat in front she drove at that time i used to put my hair back side but it was not going 1 side of my hair comes in front an another side is completely braid on seeing that my aunt laugh an told it will not go back of ur neck cause its a style do u see shampoo add 1 side of the hair flow in front like that, on hearing that i felt irate. after she stopped the car in front of temple an told this the first time am going for a nice job so let v go an pray god after v go office, but i dint want to come cause of this hairstyle but my aunt forced cause she believe a lot about god. when v entered everybody looks me strange but i dint care about that v straight went an prayed she told me to close my eyes while am closing my eye some thing touched my hair an pined it when i opened i saw she is been fixed jasmine flower in her an mine hair too, i started to take off that but she dint allowed. i told that i dint need this please but she told that u r ember that u have put an rose flower b4 then y not now an of course its a god prices u should were it, i said OK then i will were cap on it an she told tats ur wish u were what ever u want. after the argument v started to move to the car an while i going to put the cap she stopped me an took selfie an showed to me see its really nice to see both of us. we reached to our office an we went straight to meet our boss an our boss announced to everyone that this our new GM here after she will work with us an she is shyam aunt. everybody welcomed her i too a bit happy. My boss called to her cabin an asked r u happy for ur aunt, i said thanks for that an she told u no need to say thanks to me just return my money who u gave to ur client otherwise ur next punishment will arrive soon.
SRS (Sunday, 20 November 2016 12:07)
fashion part 12
i kept silent an she told y ur wearing a cap inside the office please take it of, i asked y some of them r wearing whats wrong with it an she told ya but from now on there is a rule that no one should not were the sun glass,cap, swet were, gloves etc, an this rule is made by our new GM tats ur aunt, u dint saw the notice board, i was shocked on hearing that,after my aunt came inside an told to the boss that tomorrow v have to conduct 1 meeting for all the employees an while telling my boss notice my aunt hairstyle an prised about that my aunt told thanks an asked y ur shouting an she told that u made a rules but see he is not following it, i told to take off his cap but he is not obeying it tats y, my aunt told that i have warned him b4 entering office to not were the cap but he dint lesson actually he is lill bit shy about his hairstyle tats y,on hearing this boss told what hairstyle an she told the 1 u prisess me just now an took of the cap from my head an my hair flow out 1 side of my front, on seeing this boss get surprised ohhhmg u look dam pretty look at u have worn jasmine flower also good to be see u 2 look same, its shame that u have born as male at that time my aunt told there is no problem if u give permission then v will take him to hospital an made 1 operation then there will be no difference between him an me an they started to lol, i felt humiliating in front of them an my aunt told v r just joking dint take it serious. after i came out silently with shame an everybody saw me an started to laugh, i dint know what to do my aunt was standing with me at the time my coworker who's name is preethy came near to me an told sir this not fair , on that day my daughter accidentally did french braid for that u scold me hardly an i felt really bad for that but now look at u have braided 1 side in most feminine way an that too u have were jasmine flower an get tense on hearing that an shout to her shut the fucking mouth an get lost, on hearing her eyes tears r came outside an my aunt shout at me this not the way to talking towards the woman, u have to respect it an for that u will need punishment from her, told aunty this not fair an she told no more aunty here only mam an iam GM of this company if u dint obey her than she will rise a complaint to sexual harassment. i was shocked y she was giving idea to her like this, i went off from there an my boss called me i went inside she enquirer about her company dis it get pass r not i told mam they told that there is a problem going on between currency tats y it will took time mam, an she smiled evilly.
SRS (Sunday, 20 November 2016 12:08)
fashion part 13
at that time my aunt came with preethy an explained what i did after my aunt showed the memo it says for insulting an spokes bad words against preethy under harassment for that preethy will give small punishment for tomorrow what ever its u must accept it other wise it will took sever action an boss sinned the memo an my aunt smiled after boss told now were do u take him to go an preethy told he make fuss about his hair for that i need to do something to his hair so v r going to saloon an my boss also gave some thing to her an say that this from my side an v lived from there. after v 3 took a car an stopped at the same saloon were i have been met b4. v 3 entered into the salon an the lady welcome us, preethy told something to her i thought that she is going to chop my hair, after she told to sit in the chair an started to work, they combed my hair an took the middle of the hair an combed in front of my face, i told that i cant able to see an they told wait for a minute they will clearer it, after they took the scissor an started to snip my hair above the eyebrow carefully, i saw some sort of hair fell in my lap after they finished i can feel the hair above my forehead, i tried to pull it back but nothing happen an is short, preethy came near to me an told that this are bangs so u can try another hairstyle but this bangs will lay in ur forehead an laugh an after the staff of the salon started to do my foot nails an my hand nails, they cleaned an brushed it, they put some sort of paste an its looks like a plastic nails, iam getting nervous about that what they r doing, after the work is been finished when i saw i was shocked that my toe nails an hands nails r half an inch long which been painted in a metallic black nail polish, i tried to remove it but it looks like iam pulling my own nail an i have failed, they told that it was acrylic nail which some sort of plastic glue it get melted to my own nails after that they used to shape in different way, it will not come off an break it easily. i was shocked on hearing this, i dont know how to hide this an when i was thinking another hand grab me an that to having the same nail polish, when i saw it was my aunt, on seeing me she started to act ohh my i cant believe this ur going on copying me se first i cut my hairstyle as bangs n u did the same after i did my nail u did it same y ur copying me constantly an they both started to laugh, i told y aunty u doing like this for that she came near to me an kissed in my forehead an took me to the car. v 3 off them get into the car an stopped in the hotel there the barer called us ladies, come here mam , i dont know they have thing that iam a woman an preethy is constantly giggling. My aunt order the food an i was lill irate about the nails, i cant able to took menu card its self its getting slip for the big nails, on seeing that preethy told do u know y woman have always grow big nails cause they dint need to do work everything will take care by boyfriend r husband only thing v need to do is make a nice blowjob, on hearing this i felt really angrier an start to shout an while shouting she told do u need another punishment an on hearing this i felt silently an took the food silently. when v finished v leve from the hotel n my aunt drop preethy to her home an v came to our home, i went straight to our bedroom n locked the door i sleep of , i dint know what is going to happen next day, how i will hide this nails an hair in my office omg please help me from this.
Srs (Monday, 21 November 2016 01:12)
Nandan please continue ur story
Nandan (Monday, 21 November 2016 05:26)
That is what i wanted, thought no one was reading :D
Ashwini (Monday, 21 November 2016 12:28)
Nandan please continue with forced crossdressing
Saima (Monday, 21 November 2016 13:32)
Nandan awesome story plz continue. Ashwini my love sis plz continue story.. Ex q zit my darling plz write new story . SRS keep on going. Love u sis
Nandan (Monday, 21 November 2016 20:45)
Wheel of Life - Part 3
Continued from #421
Janardhan Gowda was declared dead before he reached the hospital. It was a tragedy that sent shock waves throughout the village, the most richest man in the village had died under confusing circumstances. Rumours about his death were circulating like wildfire, some said it was a mishap and some said it was a suicide in memory of his wife, some said his son who suddenly returned to the village may have commited the murder for his father’s wealth.
Outside the hospital morgue , Nandan signaled Neelaveni that he wanted to have a talk. Neelaveni responded with a terrifying look, she signaled “not now” she wanted to talk after they return to home. Nandan’s tension was raised by seeing his maid react in a commanding way, he knew it would be difficult to passify her now. There were just three eye witnesses for this case, and Nandan was a #1 enemy of both of the remaining witnesses.
The police inspector informed that the after body undergoing postmortem, Nandan was free to take it for final rituals he also informed him that he would come in the next day to record the statements of the witnesses. Nandan was relived for a moment that he had time to convince Neelaveni against giving statement against him.
The body was then taken to conduct final rituals which was done by Nandan himself and then in the evening he decided to have a meeting with Neelaveni to convince her not tell police that he pushing Janardhan led to him falling down the stairway. Nandan went to the hall and signaled Neela to come upstairs, instead of answering to his call she countered him to rather come to the maid room to have the discussion. Nandan had no option, he followed her to her room.
She sat on her bed and as he stood before her, she started to speak “Look Nandan, I am totally willing to send you to jail, but the thing is if you go to jail , what is there in it for me? You will go to jail and I & my daughter will come into road , that is why I propose that I will let you off this crime if you agree to my condtion that you have to marry my daughter”. Nandan was shocked , “You dirty little Maid, look att our status difference, how dare you take my and your daughter’s name together? , however you don’t have any proof against me to prove your statement, its Just going to be My statement vs Yours Statement”. Neela had a smile “Oh my little Nandan, Its not going to be only My statement vs yours” she opened a video in her Daughter’s Mobile phone. It was the CCTV footage of Nandan pushing Janardhan’s wheelchair and the video was so that only Nandan and his father were visible. Nandan fell on his knees ,he put his head down, he knew his life was wrecked .
Neela then exclaimed “ Nandan, now you understand how much control I have on the situation right now? What did you say? Filthy Maid? Now I am changing my offer, You will not only Marry my Daughter, you will have to undergo a punishment , this punishment will be for an indefinite time, and only then you will survive from going to jail” . Nandan was in tears now “Neela don’t do it to me , My father helped you when you needed it the most” to which she replied “Your father was a great man, and that is why I am offering this to you otherwise you would be in jail for what you have done to my daughter”. Nandan now he knew he had no other option rather than accepting her terms but before accepting he asked “what is the punishment?”. Neelas replied “You will know only after the marriage”. Nandan had no other option than to accept the terms.
Nandan (Monday, 21 November 2016 20:47)
The police arrived the next day and as expected Neela and Karthika both gave statements that they were not present at the scene. Police then registered the case as an accident and the case was temporarily closed. Neela went to Nandan and said “ Nandan, beware this case can be reopen any time when the video is produced, and also me and Karthika will not be accused of giving false statements as we are not visible in the video, so you should better keep your ends of the bargain. Nandan just noded.
After two week, Nandan and Karthika’s register marriage happen, the only witnesses were Neelaveni and few village heads. Then the couple and Neelaveni returned to the mansion. As the entered , Neela announced “Now that the marriage is over, Karthika is owner of this house and to make it official I want Nandan to sign this document which gives her the whole property”. Nandan was shocked to hear that, he wanted to refuse but seeing the terrorful eyes of Neela he was forced to agree to it, also he thaught Karthika is now however his wife so it would not make much difference, therefore he went ahead and signed. Neela was happy “ Thank you Daamadji, I would also what to say that now that I am your mother in law, I will no longer be the Maid of the house, now I am head of the house and will shift to your parents room, and all of your mother’s wadrobe will now belong to me” Nandan was afraid to say anthing he was sensing her taking full control of the house, but he could only reply with a nod. Neela continued her speech “And atlast now the newly wed can go to their chamber, don’t be confused by the bed being split, because I don’t want daamadji to have sex with my daughter before he undergoes his punishment starting from tomorrow. Nandan was now petrified after hearing the word punishment, he was not expecting her to still be hell bent on punishing him , he thaught after him becoming her son in law she would not let go the punishment and not insisit on it , but now it seemed it was not that way. “Now no need for discussion, go to your chambers, we will meet her exactly at 8 am tomorrow”. All Nandan could do now was nod, he and Karthika then went into their chambers, He asked Karthika “Do you have any clue about your mom’s punishment?” to which Karthika replied “I not only have clue , but planned your punishment my dear hubby,You always talk about your money and status right,all I can only say is that your status is going to change, now sleep hubby, you have a long day ahead tomorrow, Good night ”. Nandan was confused he didn’t understand what karthika just said , how is his status going to change he wondered.
Srs (Monday, 21 November 2016 23:27)
Nandan don't make the story by keeping surprised, please continue ur story pleaseeee
Aishu (Tuesday, 22 November 2016 01:00)
Gr8 story Nandan. Not able to wait for the next update. Kindly post the next posts soon. Srs ur fashion story also too good. Kindly update the next parts soon.
priya (Tuesday, 22 November 2016 08:27)
Nandan and Srs please continue your stories I am not able to wait.....both the stories are goingver very super.....
Nandan (Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:06)
Wheel of life - Part 3
Continued from #440 ( typing from mobile so please adjust)
Nandan couldn't get proper sleep all night, he was wondering about his fate tomorrow, what could possibly be Neelavenis punishment. It was 7.30 am next morning , he felt a splash of water on his face, he woke up to see it was Karthika his wife who put water on his face. He was angry on her and he abused her. Karthika " Beware of your actions my Hubby will have to face consequences , Its 7.30 am dont your remember your mother in law ordering you to be present in the hall at 8 am ,now get up and wash your face and come down, i will be waiting there". Nandan was suddenly reminded of his judgment day today, he picked up and slowly dragged himself into the bathroom and proceeded to wash his face , he wore his shirt and went towards the hall to face his predicament at the hands of his former maid turned Mother in law
It was 8.am, Nandan and Karthika were both present at the hall , Neelavenis footsteps began to hear as she came out of the master bed room, she had Janardhan's old walking stick in her hand. Nandan heartbeat began to rise, he had his head bent down as he couldn't see his mother in law eye to eye . Neelveni came down the staircase and had a seat on the sofa in the hall. "Karthika why are you standing, you are the owner of this house please have a seat my child " Neelveni said. Karthika sat besides her mother. Neela then turning to Nandan " Good morning damadji" , to which Nandan replied with " Good Morning Atthe(MIL)". Then she proceeded towards the important announcement.
Neela exclaimed " Damadji, 1st things 1st , this is the last time i will call you damadji till your punishment period finishes" , Nandan knew that this was the start of his debacle, he just noded, Neela then continued " This punishment is because your family on one hand has given me shelter and food but on other hand has given me even more embarssement, I was ur mothers best friend and also saved her from dieing once, but in return she humiliated me by making me her Maid , i was supposed to be guest of this house , but was turned into a servant and treated like a servant. For 20 years i became servant of this house and served it loyally, and after all this what did you give me? More humiliation, making my little girl naked and asking her to entertain you aand serve you..how dare you do this to my family , now is the time for payback, hear carefully , from now on till foreseeable future , you will know what is to be a servant of the house , you will be mine and by my daughter's Domesticaed servant , did you hear that you little bitch ". Nandan was almost in fainting mode , he didn't even dream of being put through this, he wa to be the servant of the house , he begged Neelaveni to not do this , he reminded her that he is her SIL , how can he became servant of the house to, Neelaveni replied to him " I remember you are the person who humiliated my daughter , now you have no right to argue, just tell me if you agree to the condition or not, if you don't agree to the condition i will have to send the video tape to police station and you may spend rest of ur life in Jail, what do you want to do? Do you want permanent Jail or Idefinate time Punishment" she asked. Nandan was in tears as soon as he heard words police and video togather, he fell on her knees and asked her " please dont give me to the Police , if you promise me that this punishment will not be for long time then i agree to become your servant, please atthe promise me that" Neela smiled and told him " Your period of servitude will depend on amount of willingness and submission you provide" Nandan quickly replied " I will do whatever ever you want Athe I promise".
Nandan (Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:07)
. Neela then exclaimed "Ok then Nandan , your servitude starts from now , you are my and my daughter's servant from this moment on, and my first command to you is to strip completely Naked" Nandan was stunned at her request "But atthe" he said, Neelavani quickly cut him short by shouting " You are my servent know , please remember your position, you will address me as Malkin from now on and Karthika as ChotiMalkin, is it understood?". Nandan had no option but to submit " Yes Malkin" he put his head down. " This is the last time i am warning you , dont argue just submit, if i ask to strip, you will strip, is it understood" ,Nandan knew he had been completely trapped now , he removed his Pant and Shirt and Neelavani ordered him to remove his underwear too. He was standing there with his hand covering his genitals. Neela ordered hin to lift his hand as she wanted to have a full view of her servant.. She then said " You made my daughter stand in her innerwear, now how is it to stand h naked infront of us in such a helpless state, Nandan just put his head down, Neelaveni then turned to karthika and saud " Karthika I suggest you to not refer him as husband anymore and treat him as a servant only" to which Karthika with a smile noded. Neela then continued " Loom at his pubic hair , Look at his hair around his chest and legs, I want my servant to be clean, Karthika can you please take him and make sure that he has no hair left on his body and sufficiently bathed? We will meat at the maid room in 1 hour". Karthika agreed , " Come follow me slave" ordered , Nandan followed her to the bathroom, She then proceeded to wax him and then forced him to shave his pubic hairs, she then ordered him to have a bath after whicg she took him still naked to the maid's room, were Neela was waiting for them
Nandan (Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:12)
Neela then started saying "You know servant Nandan, that thus great house has never had a Male domestic servant, And i am in no mood to cahnge it, so I will now inform you that your punishment has gone to a whole new level, you will not only be a servant of this house you will be a MAID servant of this house" Nandan was shocked this was not the thing he agreed to he complained " This is unfair, how can i became a women, i don't agree to this". Neela in an angry to exclaimed " Look you lowlife , don't talk about what's unfair, you have to submit to this or else you will go to jail, this is the last time you will ever argue with me, you dont have right to think about anything just submit to my orders or face jail". Nandan was again in tears , he felk on his knees he knew there was no going back from here, he accepted his future " Yes Malkin , as you say i will do , i will not argue again, I promise". ." Ok then it is settled then you will be our maid, and fron now on you will be referred by your feminine version of yourname Nandini, So now NandiniBai, let me introduce you to you maid uniform." She said pointing towards the clothes on the bed, It was a Cotton saree of Neelaveni herself which she used when she worked as a Maid, there was also her blouse which was laid out ob the bed, along witb a pair of her used Bra and panties. Nandan was terrified by those clothes, few days ago he was the owner of this house, but now he was here being forced into clothes of his former maid by his former maid. " Nandinibai , now i am sure you have opened lots of bra and panties in your time in delhi, now i order you to step into those same Innerwear, and do it quickly as we dont have much time, we have to dress you in that saree too before you start your work. Nandan knew he had no right to argue now , he submitted to her order without thinking moved towards the bed and picked up the panty, and wore it between his legs and pulled it up and then proceeded to wear the bra , he strung it between his shoulders and was struggling to clasp it , karthika then helped him from behind in clasping it. Neelaveni then inserted kirchief inside the bra to give a breast like feeling, Neela then asked Nandan to wear her blouse and. Petticoat Nandan took the blouse and tried to wear it but it wa not fitting him right and so was the petticoat, it was not his fit. " Oh No , what have i done , i thought my size would fit you, looks like it doesn't, neither Karthikas will fit you as she is slim, I think we have to stich new blouses and petticoats for you NandiniBai, " Nandan was relieved for a moment he asked" Malkin does that mean i ge to wear my Male clothes?" To which Neela replied " sad part is I have thrown away all your male clothes thinkibg you will wear my old clothes , that leaves you with nothing to wear until the stiched clothes cones which will take a week". Nandan was stunned he was now left with nothing to wear for a week except a pair of Bra and Panty. Karthika then strung unto action she went back to the room and brought back something it was a " DUPPATA". Karthika then with a cheeky smile " Remember this duppata Nandinibai, it was then same one with which i was humiliated and now this is what you will wear for a week,a Duppata,A Bra and A panty this will be your uniform, what say mother?" Neela " Karma bited Nandinibai, i didn't wanted this to happen, i wanted you to wear a Maids saree and go to work, but Karma has it that you pay for your cruel humiliation that you subjected my daughter to, this will be your uniform untill your new clothes arrive understand," Nandan was forced to just nd to his new owner, he was then handed over the Duppata which he pht around his shoulder. "OK ,this just for temporary , you will be subjected to more feminism later when the right clothes arrive, but for now we are set, follow me to the kitchen ,Now your Maid training begins" Neela ordered. Nandan followed his new owner into the kitchen to start his duty as a Maid of the house he owned few hours ago.
Nandan (Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:16)
Sorry for the delay, had no time, hurried up my last posr due to people demanding that they cant wait for next post :D
Nandan (Tuesday, 22 November 2016 15:17)
Missed to be continued in #446
Srs (Tuesday, 22 November 2016 23:43)
Nandan ur great, u took so hard to write for us. Thanks a lot.
Maddy (Wednesday, 23 November 2016 04:00)
Nandan great plot include more humiliation nice story keep it up!
Aishu (Wednesday, 23 November 2016 08:28)
Wow gr8 post Nandan. Waiting for next parts with more humiliations.
Monu (Thursday, 24 November 2016 12:10)
Hi everyone. I just saw this sight and found it adorable. I want to share my life story with you all. Just remember that mine are actual incidents while most of the stories that I have seen here are work of fiction and my stories may not be so interesting for you.
If you give your comments, I shall share further parts of my life stories. These stories already are a part of my blog.
“Let’s see what the fate has in store for me. Things are so bad that they cannot go worse” Thought I when my stepmother was on phone with my future wife. She was responding to an ad given by G in newspaper for a househusband. “Yes yes, he is expert in all household work” she said. Listening to the response from the other side, she smiled and said “ok. We shall wait for you on coming Sunday”.
My step mother had always trained me to be a househusband. She had refused to get me admission in a college after my 10+2 and I was doing all household work while my half brother and sister went to the college. Her logic was that when I leave this household, my right on the property of my father shall stand extinguished.
G and her father came to meet me on Sunday. My mother had forbidden me to speak unless a direct question is asked and even then I was supposed to speak slowly and keep my head bowed and my eyes on the floor. First her father spoke about what he expected from his future son in law. “Mrs. Gupta, To cut the long story short, I want a virtual housewife for my daughter. Do you and your son agree to it?” he said in the end. When my mother replied in the affirmative, G asked to talk to me alone. In compliance to her request, everyone left the room leaving me and G alone.
G lit a cigarette and asked me” Mr. Kuldeep, Do you understand the meaning of being a househusband” I only nodded and kept looking at the floor. “Do you understand that if we are married, I shall be the dominant partner? You shall leave this household and come to live with me in my flat. You will not be doing anything without my permission and you shall be required to show proper respect to myself and my family members. I don’t want any nodding and I want a direct answer this time. Househusband does not mean doing domestic work. You shall be virtually loosing your identity and take my surname.”
Now I had no alternative. I spoke with my head bowed “I understand and I shall not give you a chance to complain”. G smiled for the first time and said again “I would like my husband to remain in women’s clothing to remind him his place in household at all times. Do you agree? “
It came as a shock. I had worn a saree only a few times on the insistence of my step mother for dance practice and usually wore my sister’s worn-out dresses as my step mother was always short of cash when my turn for buying a new dress came. My half brother was shorter than me but my half sister was tall and stout and her size was a perfect fit. I had enjoyed wearing my sister’s dresses sometimes but it was a different matter altogether to remain in woman’s clothing 24x7. I decided that I had nothing to loose. In fact nothing could be worse than listening to my family cursing me all the time. “ Your wish is like a divine command for me madam” I said again with my head bowed. G laughed loudly and said “Don’t call me madam. My name is G……. but you shall call me G as in goddess. Your name Kuldeep is also too long. I shall name you Moni”. G went to the door. I thought that she had gone to call our relatives but she locked it from inside and kissed me on my lips. I struggled to free myself from her embrace and realized for the first time that she was more powerful than me. “My dear husband needs breasts. I don’t want you to take hormones for that. They have side effects. I shall get you silicon implants.”
“The wedding shall be in 3 months from now.” Declared G’s father as everyone was congratulating me for my good fortune. “As it happens sir, I am a little short of cash right now and it shall be difficult to arrange at such short notice” said my step mother as she had been short of cash since eternity whenever any money was required to be spent for me. “You don’t need to spend a single penny Mrs. Gupta. It shall be a court marriage and all expenses for his clothes and ornaments shall be borne by us” said G’s father. “As requested by you, my son in law shall also sign an affidavit on the day of wedding renouncing all his rights in your property and wealth.”
I raised my eyes for the first time. Neither G nor her father had discussed this matter with me. I was now beginning to understand what my future status was going to be in the household of my wife. All decisions shall be taken by her and I shall be a mute spectator.
Please give you comments if you like my story. I shall post further, only if you people are interested.
Banno (Thursday, 24 November 2016 15:09)
Monu nice story pls continue and go in details of clothes and intimate moments
Ananya (Thursday, 24 November 2016 19:31)
Good start Monu. Please continue. Give regular updates
Monu. (Thursday, 24 November 2016 20:06)
Thanks Banno. As I said earlier, this is a true story. I shall definitely give details of clothes and intimate moments, real problems faced and high/lows of our lives. I repeat that this is not fiction.
Thanks Ananya. Regular updates are not a problem since these are copy-pastes from my digital diary. The story starts in 2009 and there are many entries. Updates shall reduce once we enter the present times. Please keep in touch. Because of our peculiar lifestyle, I get lonely and really need good friends.
Monu (Thursday, 24 November 2016 20:10)
“What is this? What are you wearing” G was asking angrily. I was sweeping the floor of the verandah of my ancestral home wearing a torn and faded Salwar suit of my half sister when G had arrived, unannounced. We were engaged only yesterday. She was probably free because it was a public holiday and just wanted to surprise me by visiting without prior information. “I am sorry. I didn’t know that you were coming” I stammered.
G had a thoughtful expression on her face. She asked me to go and change in to a shirt and trouser and took a chair in the verandah itself. She refused my step mother’s request to come inside. We came out of the house and she motioned me to sit behind her on her Honda bike. “I have to take the permission of my mother to go out” I told her and ran inside to ask her. I came out 5 minutes later after her dire warning that she shall not open the door if I was late and sat behind G who was waiting with the bike already started. I didn’t know that I shall not be seeing that house for a long long time.
Within 15 minutes, we were sitting in a quite restaurant. G had lit a cigarette and asked me to share my life story with her. I told her about my mother’s death and my step mother’s cruelties. G was in turn sympathetic and outraged. She also told me about her mother’s death and her father’s decision not to marry again and raise her like a son. I had never felt so close to anyone. It was hard to believe that I knew this girl only since last evening.
“You are not going back to that hell again” she declared suddenly. “Come with me to my place. You have to come ultimately so there is no point in going back to your mother’s place.” I was taken aback. “Your father shall never approve. India is not yet ready for livein relationships.”I objected.
G lit a new cigarette and started thinking.” I had come to buy a wedding saree for you. Let’s go shopping and I shall think a way out”. With that, she called the waiter for the bill.
As I selected a gorgeous pink colored saree for myself, complete with blouse and petticoat, G was busy making phone calls, only nodding her approval. As I asked the salesman to pack the saree, G came to me smiling “make some more purchases. You need to have some more sarees and innerwears. As I had said, you are not going back. I have already spoken to my father and all arrangements have been made. We are getting married in the temple today as all courts are closed due to Republic day. Legal formalities shall be completed later”. With that she took my hand and we went to the lingerie section.
G had already informed me yesterday evening that after the silicon implant, my size shall be 36c and I made all purchases for that size only hence no one took note of a boy asking for blouses, bra and panty. As I was selecting a beautiful nightgown, G took me aside. “Don’t waste money on night wears. I am not going to allow you to wear anything at night”. My mouth gaped open and I could see that her eyes were twinkling.
We were married the same afternoon, on 26th January, 2009.
Rashmi Patel (Thursday, 24 November 2016 20:11)
Good start Monu. Please continue.
Monu (Thursday, 24 November 2016 20:16)
My Suhaag Raat was celebrated in G’s flat
.
G had not worn any traditional dress on our wedding and was dressed in simple T shirt and jeans as we exchanged woes and took 7 rounds of fire in presence of her father and a priest. My step mother had refused to attend the wedding and had told me that the doors of her house were closed to me forever. I was dressed in the bridal pink saree and wore all ornaments of G’s late mother. The priest was initially hesitant to marry us in view of a girl marrying a girl (He took me for a girl as I had worn saree and had done the makeup of a bride) but g’s father had showed a wad of notes to him and everything went smoothly after that.
While returning from the temple, G’s father asked her to drop him at the railway station as his train time was close. G asked him to stay but he had some urgent work to attend at his native place. I touched his feet as he was alighting from the car. He gave me a thick wad of notes “This is for you to buy some gift of your choice. Keep my daughter happy.” He said.
We reached home at around 8 PM. Both of us were not hungry as during the ceremony, we were given many ‘Laddoos’ to eat. G took my hand and we entered the bedroom. G went to freshen up and I went to the kitchen to get a glass of milk for her.
G was standing in the bedroom as I returned. I gave her milk and touched her feet as I had seen brides doing that in hindi movies. G took the glass and returned it to me half finished.”Finish it. It’s your duty to finish all my leftovers as a mark of your love and respect for me” she said.
As soon as the glass was finished, G started pulling my saree. All my protests were useless and I was standing before her only in a blouse and petticoat. “Take them off Monu darling. What are you trying to hide from me. Your body is now my property and I have a right to inspect it on my will” said she. I continued looking at the floor. G finally came near me and started undoing the hooks of my blouse and undid the knot of my petticoat. That left only a bra and panty over me. “Don’t get ashamed darling. We are married.” G said as she took off my bra. She undid the hooks of her jeans and made me lie on the bed. As she pulled my panty down, she squealed at the size of my member.”From your submissive nature, I was afraid that the size may be small but you have made my day” she said giggling.
“Every husband is required to give a gift to his wife on Bridal night. In our case I am the wife and I have nothing but my virginity to give you my love” I said as she took my member inside her and started riding me. Within 5 minutes, I cummed inside her.
“Don’t be sorry sweetheart. I had expected it as you are not experienced.” She said as I apologized. “What are you doing G” I asked as she took out a strange thing from her drawer and started tying it around her waist. “This is known as a strap on and I am going to put it inside you.” Saying this, she asked me to get on all 4s and slowly entered my ass. “It is going to hurt in the beginning but you will enjoy it later on” she said as I almost cried in pain.
It has now been almost 8 years since then and the ‘later on’ has not yet happened. G knows that I don’t like the strap on and uses it only if I cum premature. On my part, I try my best to climax at the same time with her which is not so difficult as she makes love to me almost daily.
Monu (Thursday, 24 November 2016 20:51)
Thanks Rashmi. As long as you people are interested and giving comments, I shall continue.
Nandan (Thursday, 24 November 2016 22:33)
Wheel of Life – Part 4
The Wheel of life had taken a drastic turn in Neelaveni’s life , Just days before she was a working maid of her best friend’s Mansion, where she had toiled all her life for 20years , But Now, Now she was the Owner of the House , She was owner of Her friend’s wadrobe, her friend’s jewelery and also the Owner of her friend’s Son.
Neela the strode towards the Kitchen , all Nandan could do is meekly follow her, he was feeling totally embarrassed of himself in walking around the house clad only in women innerwear, As they were walking Neela started talking “Nandini , I am telling this for your good only, obey me without arguing or hesitating and your punishment will be less severe if you obey me correctly” she continued “And one more thing , sumbit to me correctly you bitch , Keep your head down, how dare you look eye to eye to your owner?” Nandan quickly put his head down and said “I am sorry Malkin , I will obey all your commands Malkin” Nandan knew that only way this could end quickly is by pleasing Neelaveni and getting into her good books.
Then the next half hour was spent on teaching Nandini how to make coffee , how to make chapattis and how to cut vegetables etc , then Neela instructed Nandini to clean dirty utensils from previous night, Nandini was struggling to maintain his duppata while cleaning, Neela then jokingly said “Beware Nandini, you should always make sure that your duppata cover your breats” Nandan then embarrassingly adjusted his duppata, which amused Neelaveni . Neelaveni then started to make curry and instructed Nandini to closely watch how she makes it “Nandini , I want you to learn cooking all types of food by end of the week, or else I will not give even the Maid saree as you will not be fit to be the maid, and you will stay in Bra and panty for a longer while, understand” she said, Nandan just noded in approval. Neela tge continued " " Fron Tommorow you get up at 5am, go to the kitchen wash utensils of the previous night, then go to have bath, wear new set of bra and panty, by 6 am make bed coffee and offer me, then you go to kitchen make all arrangements for chapatis, cut vegetables and by 7 am you make ved coffee for Karthika, then i will come and help you make curry, after breakfast I will be there to instruct you. understand?" " Yes Malkin" Nandan said with a meek voice.After the curry was prepared Neela instructed “Go and call Karthika, tell her food is ready". Nandan Nodded and went to her room. " Kar...I mean Chotimalkin Breakfast is ready , Malkin is calling you" Nandan said with his head boweddown." Karthika said "Ok , Lets go Nandini". As Nandini turned Karthika pinched his ass,"Oh I so want to fuck your pantied ass Nandini". Nandini grimniced in pain. But still kept his head down and moved to kitchen.
Nandan (Thursday, 24 November 2016 22:34)
As he entered kitchen Neela said " Bring the food and plates to the dining table and serve" Nandini was quick in action, went ahead and took the food and kept it in the table,he then proceeded to bring the plates , but he was little negligent in holding the plates and one of the plate fell down and broke. Neela heard the breaking sound and hurried into the kitchen. She didn't ask Nandini for any explanation and just started to beat her with her walking stick." How dare you bitch, how dare you break the plate, dont you have any sense" she said while beating, Nandan was feeling the pain of the beating and started begging her to stop hitting " Sorry Malkin, it will not happen again, please i am very sorry" he begged. " You are not serious about your Maid job you bitch, now until you become serious and become better in your Maid job, you will not be the Maid. You will be the bitch of this house , do you hear that? You will act as a dog all the time unless you are doing a chore, you will not talk but Bark, you will walk on all four while going from one place to another unless you are told otherwise.understand bitch" " Please Malkin , dont do this to me . I dont want to be a dog , i will be more serious i promise" he was horrified at the feeling of being a dog to which Neela replied by hitting him him more with the stick " Bark bitch , how dare you talk" she said " But Malkin" Nandan started to speak, Neela theb started hitting more rigorously , Nandan was in excruciating pain now he had succmbed, "Bark Bitch" she said again "Woof Woof" Nandan now became tge dog of the house. " On you fours, Nandan went on his fours. "Follow Me bitch, serve us food , be fast". Nandan followed her on his four to the dining hall. " Get up and serve us".she said . Nandan started serving the food. While Karthika jokingly asked " Nandini , how are you doing" , Nandan was confuse what to say, he say terror in Neela's eyes, he knew what he was supposed to do " Woof Woof" he barked.That made Both Karthika and Neela to breakout in Laughter " Good Bitch, you are improving" Neela said.
As their break fast was going on, Neela put a chapati on the floor near her foot and little curry over over it, Get down bitch hace your food from the floor, be fast eat it only using you mouth". Nandan was sickened by feeling of eating from the floor like a dog, but seeing Neela's stick being raised a little he quickly fell down on his knees and started eating the chapati like dog, few hours ago he was eating his dinner from the golden plate which Neela was eating, now he is eating fron the floor like a dog, Wheel of life had turned for him too. " How is the food bitch" Neela inquired , Nandan knew what he had to say " Woof Woof."
To be continued
Srs (Friday, 25 November 2016 00:00)
Nandan please make Him feminisation by pricing his nose, ear, naval,don't make him dog its not interesting seems funNy
vasantha (Friday, 25 November 2016 07:53)
nandana super story make feminisation by his wife & srs pls continue story i am your big fan pls continue pa nandan continue pa
Monu (Friday, 25 November 2016 11:21)
I am a Househusband since last 7 years. I loved to crossdress in my childhood and was supported by my step mother. The day she came to know about my interest in crossdressing, her attitude suddenly changed towards me and she started supporting me instead of my half brother and sister. Without informing my father, she taught me all household works and the art of dressing in sarees and even dancing in female attire. I realized quite late that actually it was her ploy to devoid me of my parental property and wealth. My father was a very wealthy businessman who had very little time for me. Soon after he died, My step mother gave my hand in marriage to my wife who was a Tomboy, 3 years elder to me and also 2 inches taller.
My wife had already informed me when she came to see me that she was a very highly paid computer professional and she wanted only a househusband to take care of her daily needs and do all household work. I was supposed to live as a housewife, perform all duties like sweeping floor, washing clothes, preparing food, pressing her feet at night and entertaining my wife when she so desire. I was also to wear women clothing 24x7. I had agreed to all these points willingly as nothing could be worse than living with my step mother and I just wanted to be out of her house.
My mother in law had died when my wife was very young. My father in law is a very strict person and raised my wife like a son. Even though, we live in a flat in city due to the workplace of my wife, about 100 KM away from his house, he is always keeping a strict control over me, by asking about my daily routine on phone and instructing me daily about how to keep my home in good order. I keep all the fasts and celebrate all festivals like a housewife.
My wife had a very bad habit of smoking. She used to say that it releived her of tensions related to work. I tried several times to persuade her to quit smoking but i had a success only recently.
Hindu ladies keep fast on Karwachauth day for the long life of their husbands. As my wife is the sole earning member of our household, I observed the fast for her. As per custom, I wore my wedding saree and ornaments and did not take even a single drop of water for whole day. As advised by my Father in law, I spent the whole day performing puja and preparing delicious food for my wife. When the moon was out, it was time to break my fast and I touched my wife's feet to take her blessings. She gave me a glass of water. I took a sip from her hands as per ritual. Then I asked her to take dinner. She gave me a gift of beautiful diamond earrings.
After finishing her dinner, my wife asked me to finish my dinner and her leftovers as usual but I refused to take my meal saying that my fast was not yet over. It was very clear that she was sexually aroused as I was looking very attractive in my wedding saree and being on fast since morning, my face was also radiant. I had also done a very decent makeup of her liking.
Normally, my wife can make love to me as per her wish and I have no right to say a NO but that day she had been asked by her father very strictly not to break my fast under any circumstances. Also being a very kind hearted person, she was also concerned that i had not eaten any thing since morning other than a sip of water from her hands only.
I told her that i had asked a mannat from God that she should quit smoking and my fast shall be over only after she promises to God that she has quit smoking for ever. She smiled, knowing that she was trapped and promised likewise.
Her lovemaking that day was historical. In fact, at one time when she was smothering me, she suddenly pinched on my buttocks and i cried out so loudly that our neighbour thought that some thing was wrong and knocked on our door and i had to assure them that i had cried in dream. However, it was worth it as since that day, she has quit smoking.
Maheshwari (Friday, 25 November 2016 18:16)
http://everycddreams.blogspot.in/
shemalesana (Monday, 28 November 2016 04:28)
http://mookuti.blogspot.in/
please follow my story in the above link
priya (Monday, 28 November 2016 07:22)
Srs please write your story....I am eagerly waiting for your next part....it's more than a week....please write atleast 4 to 5 part...
mani (Monday, 28 November 2016 07:23)
Srs and Nandan please write next parts.....
shemalesana (Wednesday, 30 November 2016 10:00)
Dear reader
My ongoing series a Crossdress's Diary about a male being forced to replace his sister is available in the below given link. Kindly leave your comments if the blog is worth my time to continue.
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/
thank you in advance
Sia (Thursday, 01 December 2016 05:22)
Satya pls continue ur story. It looks so good
satya (Thursday, 01 December 2016 11:26)
brother in law to wife 8
next day morning my mother came to home i said each and everything happened to me and i asked to my mom what was happen to me and what was doctor said to you. my mother get cried and i got tension what happened she sad everything t me what happened to me why these changes were coming.i got shocked and fell down on floor after i opened my eyes was on bed
and i am thinking what was my future what i have to do now. i dont live this life my mother was not in my room so i decided to suicide so i drink poison but mother saw me and she stopped it and slap on my face throw that poison out but i cried and said i dont want to live then she said if you die what have to do now and ur father leave me at ur n small age if u want to scuide then first i will drink poison later u drink said no then she kept me a promise that i will not suicide next time i said. but i dont want to live this life she said what if u were a girl or lady what was difference i am a lady up to now u live life like a male now onwards u live life like a female and enjoy life like a lady and being a lady i said stop what ur saying how can i be like a girl leave me alone now she said ok i will be leave u now but tomorrow onwards live like female and start ur feelings inside like a girl . did not say anythng to her from next day on wards my transformation was started
satya (Thursday, 01 December 2016 12:42)
brother in law to wife 9
next days are going on my mother did not say anything to me to do like this to be like this and one month has completed my chest almost become breast and i am wearing bra regulary only bra panty and camisole are the girls costumes i am wearing till now and did not cut my hair such that is became more and long my age is 27 but i am looking like a 21 year girls due to breast and my face is become smoth with no hair and my total body became hairless and i am not going outside from that day i am in home only wearing tshirt and night pant only and i am getting irritating due to hair said to mom she keep my hair with bun and make pony tail and while i am sleepingshe tied like a bun kept on my head and my old clothes are became very tight and comfortable to wear i dont have money asked mom to give money i will go and buy clothes said she said which type of clothes u will buy and why do u buy u r not going anywhere why u need she said. dont have any answer for that ikept silent.whether u will buy girls dresses or boys fromnow onwards u have to live like female better to buy those like salwar saree halfsaree nighties.stop mom nonsense i dont want to wear like that i will take shirts jeans which suitable to me.oki also come to showroom be ready with in hour fastly wear bra tshirt and one jeans by breast are very tight to that tshirt and become loose to my tshirt lower side and mom also ready we two went for mall i came outside after amonth. and i observe that all the boys are starrng towards me due to bresat is some what visible and i feel uncomfort i did not tell to mom i observe that all ladies are coverng their breast with chunni and girls wearing tshirt also those tshirts are loose so noproblem whoose are tight they cover with scarf or duppatta once i remembered that when i was a guy how i wll see a girl.now i come to know how they will feel for boys who are seeing me i am eye feastng to them. so atlast we reached mall before starting from house mom said i will buy jeans and shirts what i will like ok i said we went directly to ladies section first time i went i was shocked to see the dfferent types of sections we directly went to western section where we will get tops and bottoms one girl came to me what u want mam got shocked she called me mam mymother said she want shits and tops my voice is between male and female so i didnt talkshe selected shrts and tshirts and came to bottoms section here tried differen types of jeans and my mom selected some 3 leggnings also i asked why it is aslo like pant and we went to innerware secton here i can find the different types of bra and sales girls ask whether u want bras mom first check her size she is wearing not good fitting bra go to change room and check she take me to trailroom and asked me to remove top i removed it and removed bra also she said u have a nice pair and bigger than me ur hubby wll be happy when u r having sex and she checked it was 34b andu r wearing wrong bra mam dont wear it will cause cancer wear right one after she checked sze wore new bra and tshirt and t was good fitting to me and came outside she packed 5and 5 panties and mother asked to pack the 3 ngjties alsoand we came out of mall.
sneha (Friday, 02 December 2016 09:27)
In his Shoes
Hi friends how r u all i am writing this stories after so many days hope u all enjoy it
Hi guys my naveena a software professional by work and a reticent by nature. my daily stuff includes lots of tasks which were putted over me by my director and in the evening regular lectures from my mom about my marriage. I got bored i achieved a level in my carrier even i want get settle down so i agreed for marriage my mom made her lines alert to search nice groom for me. But i have a little time to enjoy myself so my first desire i never expressed to anyone so i want to fulfill know this is the right time even from my financial side also. But issue is i don't have a good friends circle to help me out so i was trying figure out how to fulfill my desire.
It's almost a month i am thinking but i din't get any way to go so i was little depressed. I was cursing myself having this kind of a desire at that one day i got a call from my friend rajitha that her cousin is coming to Bangalore so she told me take care about him i said fuck what is this he is coming on Saturday. i reached railway station i pick him and we reached my apartment for me its is very hectic to drive in traffic he din't spoke single word. We entered to our apartment i shown his room and i went to sleep. i slept for 3 hours i got fresh up and i went to the hall he is still in the room i thought i made tea for us and i visited his room i offered tea he said he will only have milk i had my tea and asked his name he told shravan.
Both alike people we are not talkative i stayed for a moment and i had my tea going to he said what is your name time god at last he spoken i said naveena. i asked him for dinner what he like to have but to my surprise he asked me permission to cook dinner. i shocked and agreed he made a beautiful dinner he came here to do masters in home science.What is happening a young guy thinking of masters in home science i am saying it to myself and he said he will take care of all the house works still he was there at my apartment.
I said know you are my guest no need do all this you can stay how many days you want he face became red i don't know what he is interesting in after seeing his face expression i told him to cook us every day seems to be little cool down and i just ran from there to my bed room and next day my office started in a busy life i din't spoken with him a week paused one day i came from office which was my total surprise day. i reached hall i trying to remove my shoe i heard sound of anklets i was shocked did he brought any girl. i got angry i straight away went to his i was correct he brought a girl i moved towards her and i said hey bitch who are you and what are you doing here, where is that stupid fellow i am not giving chance him to speak yeah actually it happens when a person gets angry i took her hair into my hand tried to throw out but i pulled strongly wig came out i saw it was shravan.
I shocked and i left from there went to my room i am jumping with a joy because this is my desire i want to be husband and get all the respects and also who can take care about me i think i got a right person. i came out silently i acted like normal without seeing any difference he kept his wig and brought coffee i observed i din't took off my socks i said why are doing all this.
He: i want to live normal house wife life and i saw a husband image in you and thinking you as my husband i am doing all this even on first day
sneha (Friday, 02 December 2016 11:16)
In his Shoes
Listening this i said suddenly said stop because since i was enjoying this conversation i want to listen in partly like episodes. I said you have given me enough surprise to me today so please postpone this continuation for tomorrow and please arrange for dinner. he happily stood up i took my tea cup i said hey sharvan if you don't mind can you remove socks please hey saw with anger but just know he admitted the truth he want do all this what i don't understood so i said shravani please to my surprise he suddenly removed it without any hesitation oho know it awesome i felt he was standing their and waiting for my empty cup i handed my cup. i went my bedroom i removed clothes i had a hot water bath today i am feeling so light may be because of shravan sorry shravani. after completing my bath i cleaned myself with a towel i tied towel till my breast but after it i changed till my navel because i am feeling like a man. so i wore my track and t-shirt went to kitchen he is preparing lunch and he kept his sari pallu in his navel i felt oho know porr baby he adjusted himself like a typical Indian house wife and i just made a small uhhhh like a Lot of Indian men do he immediately adjusted his sari not to expose his body good i liked it.
I sat on the kitchen floor i said hey shravan or shravani which one you prefer i said. he said shravani ok then from know i will call you shravani. He said thank you i want test his male ego i said if you want to dress up full time like a woman i don't have problem he said i want talk about it but fortunately you said thank you. Then i asked is it okay with you if wear pant and shirts like a man i love this i have only this dresses even thought i have female dresses i don't want share this information with him. he said no problem i already told you that i seen a manly image in me and this makes more feminine i feel like more female if you were this dresses. I said whatever prepare the food fast i am waiting for you at hall i am hungry i started moving from there with a sweet and lovely he said naveen that made my inner very happy that i cant express i turned and said what. he with a low voice said naveen i hugged him this is my dream. i left her after a moment and left to hall in sat on the sofa i was thinking to open up.
So without any secondary thought i want to play a game and he came near to invite for a dinner i said will you listen to me for a moment. he said for sure i told him till know i don't know what happened in my life is very normal but today you have treated me separately and i don't know when i started loving it know i want this treatment for minimum some days so i request to be me my wife for some days.he kept his head down app order kijiye ji (you order me) i got acceptance for him from know i will play with him. So feed the dinner to your husband i said he brought the dinner for me and started feeding me this happen to me after 20 years in the middle i am biting his fingers mistakenly and wanted he like a house wife taking the pain. i don't want lot of mischievous to him i will do the things from which we both have to enjoy.
after my dinner she had a dinner and cleared utensils came to me with a lungi not so many people wear this in delhi but in south so man will wear this i changed into T-shirt and lungi i am looking like tamil movie hero. Next i ordered to press my legs.
Please post your comments
satya (Friday, 02 December 2016 11:46)
brother in law to wife 10
after comning out of mall i am gettng urine i want to go to bathroom whether i want to go to ladies or gents side i think
if i go to gents side they will see me differently and by look i am a girl if i go to ladies side i want t sit and pee
even now i am havng penis of small size so i am in a confusing mind i didnt say anything to mom if she is behind me darely
i hold for an hour until reached home,my mom said after 2 hourswe have to cnsult doctor be ready later we went to hosptal
and consult doctor and lady doctor saw me andsaid sirprised that changes are growing fastly and i wear ladiesshrt and pant
and doctor checked me and asked to strip total dress refused she said we two are same no need to be shy i removed
everything including bra and he pressed breast and nipple and i am getting some sense and he kept hands on my hipand
checked everythng and said to mom next week we will do operation i said no what will happen not do means lke this only u
haveto live like a enuch kojja.u have to be in hospital for 10days in thees every procedure we will completeincluding
vagina andbuttock size facialchanges after operation u can live like a normal girl u can participate in sex and u cant
concieve a child u dont get periods after u will look like a 23year girl and u can start to wear girlsdresses like salwar
and saree i will give some medicinesuse regularly till operation after we went to home it was late night my mother give me
nighty to wear i refused it and slept in my shoes and after 1 week time came for operton i went to hospital i siad to mom
last i dont want this she blackmailme that she wll die for that i acceptedi came to hospital room and they gave me a
hospital gown first time i wear it and sleep in bedoperaton was started after 7 days i opend my eyes i saw my mom and
doctor came to me and said tomorrow we will remove bandages and we will discharge they remove it and i am feelng that i am
missing some thng between my legsand i supposed to see down but breast are there i cant seedown clearly later i wake up
they kept me mirror to see my total body that i shocked to see that i am really looking lke sexy girls body stucture with
smooth skin hairless body but now my feelng are like a male only inside and went to washroom and mom said thatu have to
sit and pee i am getting very pain for first time andsaid that after peeing uhave towipe with water otherwse u will get
infection i listend silently and after coming washroom i tied twel down onlymy mother said totie up t breast i sad no one
is there na she said if anyone isthere are not uhave to tie and she gave me bra and panty wore it later i wear shrt and
pant and get started to go home we reached ne place and whent to one flat and said it is our new house i have taken we
changed it to and she said to start a new life and she said it is your room and opened it and i opened one almara to find
night pant and i shocked to see different types os bras panties salwasrs nighties sareesand ladies cosmetics i stunned
Jay (Friday, 02 December 2016 19:11)
Sneha Ur story is awesome pl continue...
shemalesana (Friday, 02 December 2016 20:16)
First time crossdressing
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/
I became my sister
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/11/my-became-my-sister.html
My forced nose piercing story
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/11/my-nose-piercing-mooku-kuthu.html
My aunt repierced my nose
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/11/aunt.html
I became daughter to my uncle
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/12/i-became-daughter-to-my-neighbor-uncle.html
My sister force nose piercing on both sides
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/2016/12/my-sisters-forced-nose-piercing.html
suraj (Saturday, 03 December 2016 03:13)
hi everyone if anyone intrested to become my shemale sissy mistress...jo mujhe humilatate kare...then plz tell me..i will give mh whatsapp number then
sneha (Saturday, 03 December 2016 10:07)
In his Shoes
He is handling my legs very carefully and pressing them and i twisted my foot seeing it he started rubbing my foot and pulled my leg fingers carefully then later he came up and started massaging my shoulders and back first i thought he is taking advantage but later i understood that he is not intentional doing this for me he want me to comfortable. later i switched on the Television he sat beside me i don't know i became more i fell on his lap he pressed my cheeks and said my sweetu general this word while be used my wife to appraise their loved ones. i want to kept leave for tomorrow i want to enjoy with shravani since it is starting of our relationship to keep my hold on relationship i have to act like Stubborn so after an hour i became drowsy and i want to sleep so i was going to my room i asked shravani where are u sleeping. he said my room i said it is not safe women to sleep single come to my room listening this he kept his head down i don't know what he is thinking even know he is over reacting like a girl.In a small voice he said i will join you i want to change my dress. i said come sleep this you look great in sari he started blush i left the moment for him.
I slept on the right side he came and slept on my left i acted like already slept i was admiring his beauty being woman i feel to eat him slowly i am scanning his figure first i saw his navel it is well shaped and he waxed his whole body then i moved his breast they are looking shimla apples and his lips are so juicy i want sip it totally in a one kiss. I am unable to control my feelings and he is beside me but i can do something slowly i kept my legs and hands on him. he i woke up i acted that i kept sleep he is seeing me like a little slowly he rubbing my hair generally lot of women do this when their loved ones sleeping but i don't how he is treating me so i moved my hands to his breasts he slowly removed my hands and adjusted himself and slept.
I woke up at 7.30 Am my house is filled with fog in that i saw a beautiful lady tied his hair to towel and carrying a cup of tea with a huge smile handed me tea cup i had it and got my bath went to dinning table for breakfast he made pasta nice i liked it i appreciated for that later on he tied my tie and put socks and shoes after all this i felt to do something i stood and he stood i caught his navel and pulled near to me kissed on his cheeks a smile on his lips said everything how he is feeling know.
In the office i started my work positively then before and coincidentally i promoted as a project manager since i spoke very less in the office so nobody asked me party. i don't want share this with my family i want say this first to my angel. So i took one wine bottle and jasmine flowers for him. went to my apartment with a joy i lifted him and rolled i shared the news to him and he felt very happy. I said shravani is my luck from know if you want change to shravan i don't accept he said if you want me as a shravani treat me like a wife or else i will became shravan with this words suddenly i remembered that i brought a jasmine flowers for him i kept in the car and i brought back from mt car.
I took jasmine flowers in my hand from know you are my property and my wife come and he showed his hair i kept flowers in it and he touched my legs i don't why he did but it boosted my energy.
Please post your comments
satya (Saturday, 03 December 2016 12:34)
brother in law to wife 11
at night i am uncomfortable to sleep in the tshirt and jeans so removed it and opened the cupboard to check the nght suit but didnot find my trackpant or short cheked thoroughly i find the pants of 3 different color so i wear it and it was so much tight then coming to know that it was legging and i sleep then also i am uncomfortable then go to my mom and ask where r my tracks and shrots she said from now onwards u must not wear those u have to wear the nighty it is very comfortable to sleep and for when going to washroom also so i already kept on top of dressing table the petticoat and nighty wear those it will be fine and i kept the earring on table choose one and keep.i get shocked when my ears are pearcd she said when after operation was done when u r in recovery i pierced it i saw n mirror it was shocked and she said that the dresses and sarees salwars are of your wifes i bought it for u because u and her having the same height and same body structure and the bra size also so i bought all the jeweleries and inners of her and once try thier blouses and cholis such that if there was any correction i can give to tailor for fitting i said stop mom.she said why u want to buy the new ones means i dont have any money i said for thatnot i dont want to wear theese worst costumes and i am getting the iritation when i heard the names and i asked her what happened to me that vikram amd my mother n law know that she said ur mother n law knows that but vikram dont no that he went to germany he will come tomorrow are after 1 weekshe said and why u dont wear theese dresses tellme u r a girl u have to wear theese only and u r wearing the bra ladies jeans and shiths what happen to theese if u want to sleep comfortable wear petticoat and night u wear a hosptal gown it is also smlar to that only nothing difference inthat and u have to cover ur breast that boys will see u thereonly there is no other opton tome she give me the petticoat i said i dont want i take the nighty and mom said to remove bra before sleeping such that u will feel some freenes so i removed bra and takenighty and wear it from top and it came to my foot and the two hooks were there at top it was open she sad tokeep hooks and t was free and comfort also i go and see n mirror that it was my wifes nighty only and i go for sleep next day i wake up and did my brush and came out my mom was not thereand she went out i thought and am watching tea and one calling bell was ring and opened the door there was a milk boy he said mam milk and went to bring bowl and i bent down to keep he pour it and he is sawing my breast and my nighty was transperent my total body was visble so cover my breast wth hand and went inside and days were going and i am n home felling bored and i want to go to job how now i am agirl and my certificates were onmale so i refused to not to think and after one day mom came after bath and she removed towel infront f me i asked why r u doing in front of me she said whats the differnce u and me r same and i saw total bdy its like me only and one day i came from bath open towel and i am nude in my room and rom was opened suddenly i was scared i kept my hands and hide breast and later i take towel and cover it and he came from germany to my home he didnt know what was happen to me man door was open and he came insde my mom went now only and keep door open i scared and wear the pant and tshirt went outside he is in the confuse manner thnking who is she and what she is doning n satas house she is thinkng i came out cover my facewith shwal and came he saw me and said sorry i dont know ur there it was my frend satya house only same address given and thought satya was in room and opened to surprise and asked where is satya and his mother i think he did not recognise me said i am cousin of satya he and his mother went out they will come evening i said he went out and again say sorry tome and when he went out i locked the door and feels relaxed and after 1 hour mother came and i am going everyday walking for outside with top and legging covering my face with scarf n my apartment every one saw me in western outfit.
satya (Saturday, 03 December 2016 12:37)
brother in law to wife 12
one day i was in home some other flat aunty with two ladies came to us and nvited to night to come for halfsaree function of my daughter and she kept red kumkum on my mother head and my mother callme to out and they kept to me also i feel shyand asked my name momsaid satya age 21 she said ur also in marrage stage and u have to come compolsory she said and asked me to come in halfsaree every time i saw u in jeans only mom said we two will attend the functon evening .i asked mom how can i come she said u have to come this is my order and igo tomy roomand crying momneglect me and tells me to take bath and i came out and she give me bra and panty iwore it then she gave me petticoat dont no how to wear she said to take it and keepfrom top and it came to my waist leveland she said to tie knot and i did and later the blouse means choli but it havng back hooks and she sad to keepy mu hands in and my mom kept the hooks at back and it was too tight and designer lehenga came i take it and keep from bottom and tied to my waist that petticoat not visible and finally the half saree and she taught me to keep one sde f that tuck in my lehenga and keep t around and came to front and pinned to my left sholder of choliand taught me how to adjust with it and after operation first time i am wearing the ladies outfit but my breasts are totally projectng outside n choli due to tightness next my mom said to me to sit infront of dressng table.
sudharani (Saturday, 03 December 2016 21:42)
is any one have the old 2011, 2012, 2013, stories saved, i cant find them anywhare, ihany has them re post please, email is also ok.
sanjana (Sunday, 04 December 2016 03:39)
cd-stories.blogspot.in/2016/12/here-is-some-of-images-i-love.html?m=1
Some girly photos hope everyone like them
Even i love old rajibalan pages of 2011,2012,2013 they have some amazing sotries if anyone have it please share.
Srs (Monday, 05 December 2016 00:16)
satya please don't stop continue
Priya (Monday, 05 December 2016 00:53)
Srs please continue your stories...
Teju (Monday, 05 December 2016 05:06)
Satya
Please continue...
anu (Tuesday, 06 December 2016 02:28)
Pls write
Riya (Tuesday, 06 December 2016 04:43)
Hi Anjali.. Your story is nice. Please keep on writing more stories. Raghav, SRS, please complete your stories.
SRS (Tuesday, 06 December 2016 11:11)
"fashion part 14 # 434
Next day morning i woke up i thought about the day how am going to face it, i went to bathroom to brush an i saw my face except my brows every thing looks like a girl an this bangs r disturbing me in my fore head after i got ready an came out for the brake fast an my aunt came an kiss me in my chicks is strange again she started to did my hair an i dint tell anything about that cause there is nothing use of it she combed my hair well an grabbed my hair in top of my head an put rubber band an after she insert 2 hair clips on the both side to make it grip. an i saw that she did the same hair style an now my hair dint tingle in my backside but in front is very difficult. after my aunt told that is been finished an she told that this called high ponytail with bangs an v left for office. we came near to the office an parked the car an started to get into the office while walking i can feel that my hips r swinging an my ponytail is dancing its shame, i hide my hand into the pocket for nails an went inside the office an i saw there was a huge crowd in front of notice board, when i came near to it i was shocked on seeing that i have been D promote from my post an in that preethy was there an i will work as her assistant. it was total shame an humiliating, i dint know what to do an i slowly entering into my cabin an saw that she was sitting in my chair on seeing me she welcomed with a huge smile an saw her daughter was standing there an she saw me an told hi aunty an i got angry an told am not aunty am a man on saying that she told but ur not seems like man ur wearing high ponytail an pretty long nails , what seems like a man an i cant able to answer, after the argument prethee told ok come get back to work an after i called her by her name an she got tense an asked me how dare u call my name call me as mam an i said ok mam an started to work an while working in system i cant able to type fastly due to the long nails on seeing that she started to lol an told to do fast otherwise u will again D promote, i was afraid on hearing that cause if i D promote than this time my place will be out side of the cabin an everyone can tease, so i concentrate in my work at that time her daughter came to me an again started to play with my hair, she un did my hair an i was relive cause of the tightness an she started to comb my hair again an i told mam that she was disturbing an she told that it was ur problem i dont know an her daughter started doing my hair she parted my hair in the center part an separate it in the both side an she pulled it in the back top of the hair in 1 side an put the band an the same did in the other side an put the hair clip an told finished. I felt that 1st there is tightness in center top of my hair an now i can feel it in the both side of my hair an i have no time to see what she done to me, after i finished my job there called that meting is been started come fast so i dint see an went for meeting. there everyone are sitting an i used to stand cause of my D promotion its felt shame. i notice everyone is smiling an giggling on seeing me but i dont know y an there comes my aunt an lady boss they also smiled an my aunt started to speak that ladies & gentle man ohh there is no man here opps sorry i dint she u an everyone lol, after she told that in every company there will be a dress code an uniform but here its not so u girls have to decide the dress code an they all started to discuss, after few minutes they told that it was an fashion company an causal to were western type dress but v should not forget about our traditional dress so v thought wearing a saree is the best uniform, on hearing this i was shocked an i shout that what about me an my boss told y u also were saree an i told that is impossible how can i were saree am a man an she told y being a woman ur aunt can were pant , shirt than y not u do u agree that men r weaker than woman u gys cant able to were our dress but v do.
SRS (Tuesday, 06 December 2016 11:11)
fashion part 15
I kept silent n after she told k girls v have to thing about him also so let v go for pant an shirt an on saying that no one agree an the stated to shout an 1 girl tell let it be unisex it would be like a pant shirt but also girls will were an after long they discus that the best thing for the uniform is sleeves less CROP TOPS with LEGGINGS an on hearing i again talk but but its a an my boss stopped me an told no more but if u make a but than v will put u that an pointed the finger towards the saree an i get scared an went silent. after i came out an preethy gave me notes out side the cabin an called miss-ter it was strange by calling me like this an i turned an told what mam an she told that u look like HARLEY QUINN will joker will come an pick u for a date on saying that everyone started to lol, at that time her daughter came by shouting aunty aunty did u like ur new hairstyle an showed me the mirror, i took the mirror an shocked on seeing that an i get real tense an her daughter ask aunty u like ur hairstyle an i shout to her that how many times i tell u am not aunty am a man an my name is sham an she told no ur shamala aunty an i felt anger an pushed her, she fell an brooked her teeth an started to bleeding on seeing that preethy got angry an screem to me how dare u pushed my daughter, she is lil girl u have to excuse her but u pushed her an she grabbed my hair an pulled towards my aunt cabin an she explained everything an my aunt too was shocked an she slapped me an told to my boss an she told to punish me all went fast i dont know what to do an after finished my duty v came again to the same parlor an that lady started to lol on seeing me an told nice hairstyle an preethy told something to her after she made me to sit in the chair an started to do her work i got afraid for what she was doing she cleaned my face an took one small machine which it looks like tweezers an she did by brows its was paining an i can feel some sort of small hairs are removing an after she wax it she took the laser machine an covered my eyes an started to do in my eyebrow an i can smell the burning of my eyebrow hair its extreme pain after see put some gell an finished it, next she came an told to close my eyes an she started to do something to my eyelash i felt relax an while i relaxing i felt sudden prick in my both upper an lower lip i saw that it was an injection with some sort of liquid putting. An ling time they told its finished an they dint allow me to see, my lip is num like some thing is bite into my lip. after she took me to the dentist i dont know y i came here an she talked to the lady doctor an they took me inside an they inject me after i felt dizzy an slept, they took me to operation room an did my teeth, after few hours they left me to my home an iam still in sleeping position i dint know what happened they lie down to my bed an left it.
satya (Tuesday, 06 December 2016 12:48)
brother in law to wife 13
i was sitting infront of dressing table and i saw me infront of mirror the dress was good and its perfectlt suit me but not at breast part and i ask my mother about it she said i measured when u r in hospital then two daysback i went to alteration to tailor with your wife choli and lehanga i am thinking how to try with u but today by god grace this function came and see which ear rings u want i am silent and my mom selected and keep it but it was pain and she keep facepoder and eye lash and nailpolsh and tied my hair into single plait and she kept sindhoor on my head and keep bangles on two hands and said to get up get up but the dress was very heavy to carry and i am slowly walking because lehanga up to floor and it inconvience and she gave me highheels to wear i wear it and ifelt on sofanear it is difficult to walk and after 10 mins mom came with wearing saree and we went to functionit is on terrace wewent i shock no male was there its ladies function all ladies was there aunty invited us and saw me in halfsaree and said ur lookng good when ur marryng she asked kept silent my mother went near to stage i am sitting alone in chair and my mom call me and aunty keep sindoor on my head and gave me blouse piece and one fruit and she said t keep turmeric paste on my daughter face i dont no how to do by seeng all ladies how they did i follow and mom order me to sit on one chair there so many girls arethere who not married and talkng about girls stuff about dresses boys one girl said only salwasr was free than wearing saree and halfsaree i am lstening simply andthen i thought when i was boy i wear drawer shirt and pant now bra panty petticoat hol lehanga halfsaree and cosmetics jewelery all theese thats why i thought girls will take so much time to come and it was completed my mom and me came to home and i removed my all the jewelery and i remove halfsaree and i ask mom to remove hooks of blouse she removed it and i remove lehanga and i wasn petticoat thought petticoat was very free towear when went to washroom wearng jeans i have to remove it to down and i sit to pee and wear it agan but with petticoat was free to wear and removed bra then i feel very free like my breasts are comng out from jail and then ask momi wont wear bra while i am sleeping she said ok later wear nighty only without panty and my mom ordered me to wear peeticoat inside if u wear it ur back was not visble t others and then feel every day to wear petticoat and skirts are also smilar to thatmom said i dont want and i went to sleep next day wake up and went to hall i am n nighty and ishocked to see there my mother n law
Srs (Tuesday, 06 December 2016 23:39)
Satya nice story pleaseeee Continue
vasantha (Wednesday, 07 December 2016 10:24)
Srs & Sathya your very nice continue your story i am wait for your story pls pls pls continue
satya (Wednesday, 07 December 2016 11:07)
brother in law to wife 14
i was go and sit infront of her and i saw she bought a big suitcase with her and i was silent and she asked me how r u and
and she said i lost my daughter and daughter in law i love to have girls in house but now not there and i am feelng alone
and vikram went to usa again and his daughter is in his mil house today my dil brthday and next week my daughter birthday
i dont have both of them so i bought all the dresses of my vikrams wife to here so can see the my daughter and daughter
in law in you because u r only girl in both families what was there for them was totally belong to you and i bought the
saree to my dil last year to gift to her birthday but now she is not there so please were this and we will g temple and
later evenng we will go for shopping for buy birthday dress 2 you means your wife birthday in next month i will buy now
and please were and come i can understand ur a boy once now u became like girl and once think what u will do now ur not
going anywhere ur in home and ur not working and u cant sit in home through out your life please think it and change your
mind and wear it ur lucky everry girl wants gold nice dresses sarees ur having two girls items with u wear and enjoy like
a girl and turn into woman live lfe happly and ofcourse u can marry also but u cant concieve child if u dont mind marry
vikram and be mother to his daughter i am not forcing u once think it he will come after two months till there ur havng
tme think and vikram dont no about ur issue and please were it come i listned her silently and my momalso beside me and i
went to my room and cried and mom came and consolme and said once think how she will cry when she lost her d and dil and i
convnced today and i went to take bath and came out i wear towel tied up to breast level and came out and mom and milwas
there mom give me bra i remved toveland wear it later pettioat i wear it from top she give me blouse and said ucan wear
try its front hooks only and i take with hand and wear it like shirt and hooks came at front i keep first hook and keep
second one while keepng it is becomng tight and keepall and last hook two threads are there my mom said to keep to second
one so it was fit and breasts are pointng towards blouse i wear blouse and petticoat came mom give me saree dont no how
to wear and mom ties one round and take the pallu frommy rght shoulder and keep at left later he take pleats and tuck into
my petticoat and adjust the saree towards the breast area and pnned to my blouse of left shoulder and it takes 5 mns to
finish saree later mom said to keep your hair loose only and wear chan and necklace bangels now i am ready got irrtaton
wearing saree due to my mil only today willwear i said to my mom . and we will go to temple now and first time i am going
to out in girls attire before iwear halfsaree and went to terrace for function now i am going out to face worldas a girl
satya (Wednesday, 07 December 2016 11:16)
brother in law to wife 15
i went down then i saw my wifes scooty here my mil said it is for u and ur bike has sold by ur mom and iam unable to walk
in saree it was heavy and cant walk fast and mil book cab we get into it we driver was seeng me differently and i saw in
mirror that bra staple was visible and so i covered with blouse blouse was fit but some looseness n sholder part that
blouse belongs t vikrams wife thats why we reached temple i get out and went inside before iwill go to temple to see girls
because they look good in tradtional wear now i am wearng saree and went inside we stepped to ladies line and one side of
of blouse awhere saree was not covered was visible guy are seeing me mom said to cover your saree properly and we went
near to god and priest blessed me long live lke a wife and havng good husband get shock listening like that and momkeep
kumkum on my forhead and given some flowers she kept it to her only because mne looase harir and mil came and hugged me
and said god by grace give me an daughter like u and we sat in one side of temple and eating prasad then i thought hw
girls will feel wearng a saree and with so many nsiade and live full day got iritation and think when u will go home and
change into normal clothesthen me momand mil went to home changed into nighty and ate food later in evenng shopping for
me we are ready i am n jeans and tshrt my mil saw me and get some angry she didnt show that to me because according to mil
girls must wear saree salwar ghagra chol etc but not jeans she say slwly satya go and change into salwar and come because
ts not good all gents will see u it wll be not good to u she said my momcall me and said to remove i removed and i amn
pantybra and camsole and she give me salwar top i am wearing first time she taught me how to wear after t was good and
free later pant wear it and dont have jip and button like petticaot it has thred whe have tot te it and it was free and
again mom gave me duppata to wear and mom show me how towear and adjust it and i came out and milsaid ur looking nice
salwar is nice but handling the chunni was difficult beacuse it was fallng every time we went ladies mall and we went to
sarees section theys show me so many ml asked what u like am silent and packed 3 and went to salwasr sectonand selected
few and went again to innersecton and they choose padedbras and for mathing petticoat they ask size to me dont no my
momsaid sndhu size and taken matching petticoat to my sarees and directly went to tailor shop for gving blouse sttches and
tailor is male and mom asked to take blouse measurements and he came and taking first ask me whch type front or back said
front and show me some designs and select one said mom ur wish and he checked my hand lenght then came to me said hands
upamd measure breast wth tape up to npple and while he touching my parts some sensaton has passed n me later the breasr
low part totallength he measured all sad wll give with in four days thank god today its completed today and mil went to
herhome me and mom went to our home i dont no what was hapening to me day by day my behavour was changing can notice in
some maters like costumes and cryng for simple reaons and when i am seeing handsome boy some feelngs comning and my
behaviour as a girls hiding parts and seeing my mom nude while changng dress iswa her breast some what big and one time i
think when i will get that bigger size lke her like theese changes can notice by me and reaching hme changed into nighty
and petticoat went for sleep and watching laptop while browsng internet i swa some bluefilms whlile seeing those i am
getting mood means my breast getfell hard and my nipples are erecting when i was boy i will rub my penis with hand but
dont have now what i hae to do what girls will do when they get mood i thought in my mind rub my breast in hand and went
to sleep.
anu (Wednesday, 07 December 2016 11:27)
Sathya and SRS good story super pls continue
anu (Wednesday, 07 December 2016 11:29)
Akka suppper pls pls pls continue story
shemalesana (Wednesday, 07 December 2016 21:48)
The two stories which I wrote is successful for the time being. It has reached around 7k+ visitors in the last two weeks. I thank the readers for their support and would request them to continue the same and take part in polls to encourage me in writing a better story.
A Crossdresser's Diary
It is a story about a teenage boy being forced to crossdress as he tries to help his sister. A series of circumstance one lead to the another and teen finds himself in feminine lifestyle. Soon he starts to love his life as a women and ends up being a mother of two.
Witness Protection Program
A teenage boy is forced to crossdress as a part of witness protection program when he becomes and eye witness to a murder. Further he is made infiltrate in the organization as a women were his feminization is continued beyond recovery.
They are found in the link
https://mookuti.blogspot.in/p/blog-page.html
Srs (Thursday, 08 December 2016 00:04)
Sathya please continue
anu (Thursday, 08 December 2016 07:51)
Pls continue story srs
priya (Thursday, 08 December 2016 08:15)
Srs please continue your story
Srs (Thursday, 08 December 2016 10:20)
I will please wait, sathya story is well going on please continue satya
satya (Friday, 09 December 2016 12:41)
brother in law to wife 15
next day morning i wake up and take bath and i came out and sat n bed wearing nighty and thinking that day bay day my thoughts are changing while any girl having big breasts i thought why i am not having like that and i also started doing some household works and i am seeing the boys having nice physic i am getting some feelings and i went out to take breakfast moom served me and said be ready nwe r going to hospital for checkup went toroom and wear jeans and tshirt and went out mom said to wear salwar and come it will be free to u so i go back and take one salwar wear top and pant and front it was vshape and curve ts looking like a girls exposing from salwar like looking so take the chunni and keep like v shape and mom came to me and pinned the chunni to sholder such that it will not fall and we went down amd mom gave me a scoty key and said me to drive take it and mom sat on back and went to hspital and doctor asked me how r u and she give some tests to perform on me to nurse and nurse ask me to come i followed nurse and went to room and she take some blood and checked and asked me to strip all clothes and to lie on bed and i got shy she saw that dont worry i am also a girl a i removed and lie on bed and she came with one thing and inserted into vagina she is moiving that two and fro into my vagina i am getting pain and moaning like a girl while she was fuckng by some one like i am moaning and she came to top and pressed my breasts and i am getting some feeling she noticed it and said wear alldress and went to doctor room and i went there and doctor said u r completly physically mentally u r a girl now u can give sexual pleasure to ur husband and u cant concieve a child and u r certificates are ready with name satya and gender as female u can collect it from recepton u can go for job or study or marrage what ever u can decide be a girl and enjoy life like a girl and me and mom went to house and i got a letter from office that u have to come and join in office with in two months otherwise u will lost job said to mom and she said two months is there no problem later u can think and went to my room.
satya (Friday, 09 December 2016 13:08)
brother in law to wife 16
days are going and i am in home not going any where the blouses and petticoats from tailor came to home mom orderd me to try those and show me and i wear pettcoat the size is k and later i take the blouseand i keepall hooks and show to mom and shecheked every thing and ask me any correction u want i didnt say anythng and went to see me n mirror wearng blouse and petticoat and i am looking like a girl exposing there body without wearing saree and mom said that tommorow the ladies festival u have to wake up early and take headbath and wear saree and u have to do puja and she said tomorrow onwards u have to wear saree halfsaree and nighty salwar and leggings with tops and tops must be upto the leg knee length and tomorrom from now u must not wear jeans and tshirts and i throw them all out and i fill all your cupboard with bras panties different types of sarees for diffrent occassions and salwars and jeweleries and u have to cover your breast means top with chunni and learn how girls will behave and momsaid to wear saree and learn how wear i willshow u then mom draped me saree and show me how to make pleats and how to adjust at breast side and and after 20 tries i came to learn how to wear a saree and i ask moom saree is too heavy cant wear every time thats why i bought to u tops and leggings tops are like ur tshirt but up to knee length and legging is like a pant only but suits to your body so i removed saree and wear it ts looking good and feeling free and mom went out and i am thinking how to manage from tomorrow and went for sleep next day mornng i wake take bath and wear saree and go to mom she saw me keep kiss on my forehead and after completng pooja and mom said today we r going to hotel to out and booked table alsoand now i am going out for some work and i will come t hotel and u come directly and table no is 21 and come in saree only i said ok evening came and i wear another saree and take my bike and going and while wearng saree i was driving and reached hotel and sat on table and waiting for mom and after some time vikram came there and sat infront of me and i got shocked
Srs (Friday, 09 December 2016 23:40)
Nice satya please go ahead, nandan where ru please continue ur story pleaseeee
sneha (Saturday, 10 December 2016 05:40)
Hi guys i have posted my new story comments no 473.474.479 kindly provide your comments to update it
akshay (Saturday, 10 December 2016 10:44)
Sneha vetu good story...plz add some humilataion..!
anu Radha (Saturday, 10 December 2016 11:10)
hi sneha akka i am big fan of your stories ,i like role revesal stories
update the story fast and if possible send u r FB or MAIL ID PLZ
kausalyas7 (Sunday, 11 December 2016 12:46)
hi friends, here many beautiful authors are here writing stories. write your whole stories here and give the mail id for ur comments, so that we communicate and shared ideas and so on... these blog have very little space so we share our comments but we cant read ur stories fully aftermath. plz i suggesting u write fully and u have our comments
can u read the stories in http://www.fictionmania.tv/
there also having many authors like us. but they doing it right way, like that we follow this blog also.
i finally found the web link like to share. http://kayathrirani.blogspot.in/
@kausalyas7 (Monday, 12 December 2016 07:15)
Fictionmania is the best in the business right now along with bigclostre happy to find a person who reads at fictionmania
Manish (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 00:22)
Part -1 of being Manish to Manisha.
Hi every one my name is Manish.
I'm from Hyderabad , I started to crossdress when I was 10. I was a complete closet crossdresser and use to wear my mother clothes whenever I use to get a chance to wear them. I was always excited looking at different colors and shades of feminine clothes and feminine ornaments. I started to crossdress with bra and panties.
One day, in the afternoon around 2pm when I was 16 and there was nobody at home and I had decided to crossdress and wear my mothers clothes.i had pick up a white bra and a cotton maroon panties with a light green churidhar & kameez and a pearl necklace with matching ear rings. These ear rings were stick on ear rings. Due to excitement and in hurry i forgot to lock my house door. I went to my room with all the clothes and started to undress my self. First i wore the maroon panty, it was so soft, then I wore the bra and filled it with thermocol balls, but the fitting was too tight and was giving me a feeling of actual breast. Then I wore the green kameez, it was a bit heavy as it had multi-coloured stones and jewels on it and the feel was so feminine for me. After wearing the kameez and adjusting it properly, I picked up the churidaar and wore it. Ohh the feeling was just too amazing, I just cant tell you how i felt after wearing it. The tightness and the firmness around the thigh and the entire leg, it was too good, then I grabbed the dupatta. After I wore everything and having a look at my legs I was getting a bit annoyed and was wanting to wear payals. Then I wore the earings and necklace. It was so beautiful when I looked at my self in the mirror. The light green kameez & churidhar was simply suiting my skin tone. I felt something missing on my face, so I ran towards my mothers room and opened her dressing and removed a big and round red coloured bindi and stick it to my head and when I looked into the mirror, I was feeling complete woman. I was posing in front of the mirror and enjoying myself being a woman. All of a sudden, the door bell rang and I started panicking, I thought it was my mother and she could enter using a key and i realized that I didn't lock the house door . I quickly undressed my self and got back to my men's attire kept back all the clothes and jewelry. I immediately ran to open the door, when I opened the door , it was our servant babu, he is of 18 years of age, dark and tall with a slim body. Babu was looking at me with his eyes wide open, he was silent and entered our house. I was not able to understand his reaction, I went to my room and when I passed the mirror I was shocked to see the big round red colored bindi on my head. I felt so embarrassed and frustrated that I couldn't control my emotions and just banged my bedroom door and Locked it. I sat on the bed with my head down and thinking about babu and what he must be thinking about me. Just after a couple of minutes, I heard a knock on the door and I knew it was babu, I was getting the worst feeling of facing him. I immediately removed the bindi and threw it and went towards the door to open it.
End of part- 1
Pls comment
ash (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 04:32)
can you suggest some stories to read on fictionmania
sanjana (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 06:22)
https://www.fictionmania.tv/stories/readtextstory.html?storyID=1475437312343276205
Serendipity: the life of Riya
it is amazing story and has indian theme. you will love it
AAAAA (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 15:16)
The Actor
AJAY was a 26yr old struggling actor who was searching for work.
Its been 4 years since he got a role in any movie. He was frustrated
One day he got a call from RANI a film director.
She offered him a 2 film contract . He was so happy with the offer that
he accepted the offer and signed the contract immediately without even reading a single word
AAAAA (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 15:33)
Later the movie preparation and casting started
Director RANI introduced everyone
AJAY was HERO
GEETA was 1st HEROINE. She was around 27yrs but hot 34-24-38
IN MOVIE She was AJAY`S widowed bhabhi
PRIYA was 2nd HEROINE. She was young 22yrs , sexy hot 32-24-36
IN MOVIE She was maid servant working
AJAY was believing that film revolves around him
HE was also happy to have 2 heroines
Later Director RANI was explaining everyone concept.
After listening to the story the girls burst into laughter while AJAY was shocked when he came to know that there were many crossdressing scenes of him.
She told him that it was written in the contract.
He requested that he could not do that but she told him that the entire movie concept revolved on his crossdressing and if he refuse to do this film then action could be taken on him.
AJAY had no other option left. So he agreed
AAAAA (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 16:55)
After few days the shooting started.
In the movie RAJU {Ajay} was living along with his widowed bhabhi in a big house.
His brother and parents died recently in accident.
His bhabhi was working in a nearby shopping mall as a MANAGER
RAJU was arrogant and stubborn in nature and never did any work.
He used to simply stay in house.
He always used to shout for smallest work in house on maid servant {PRIYA}
His bhabhi {GEETA} had told him several times to be courteous but he does`nt care.
Eventhough he was arrogant and proud he had a secret fetish for his bhabhi`s sarees.
He used to dress in those sarees secretly usually in the evening time after the maid left.
Daily he would dress for 2 to 3 hrs as his bhabhi usually returned by 8 o clock.
One day he dressed in his favorite pink saree when he heard the door bell.
The maid servant {PRIYA} had returned because she forgot something in the house.
RAJU had to change back into his pant shirt. After changing he went and opened the door and started shouting on maid that she had disturbed him.
The maid servant {PRIYA} asked casually what was he busy in.
For that question RAJU became angry and slapped her very hard
By the time bhabhi had returned and she saw RAJU slapping the maid servant {PRIYA}
Bhabhi tried to intervene. She told RAJU that he should not have slapped the maid servant.
RAJU shouted even on his bhabhi and left. She had to console the poor maid girl who was crying
Then one week later RAJU had dressed as usual in his favorite pink saree in the evening when no one was around but he had forgotten to bolt the main door.
On that day his bhabhi came to home early in the evening to get house ready for the next week festival. She had requested the maid servant also to come in the evening.
They entered the house as it was not bolted. On going to his room both his bhabhi and maid servant were shocked on seeing RAJU as he was dressed in pink saree.
They both slapped him very hard saying that this was the reason he always bolted the house and stayed at home.
They both slapped him till he started crying.
Then they removed his saree took him to the bathroom
They applyed hair removing cream all over RAJU`s body.
Then they wore him a pink half saree. They also did his make up.
They applied lipstick, kajal, nail polish, dangling ear-rings, big nose ring and a waist band also.
Half a dozen bangles were put on his each hand. Finally a wig was put on his head.
Now he was looking exactly like a girl.
They were laughing at him. He was feeling very embarrassed.
This was the end of first schedule of the shoot
Raju {AJAY} was feeling very awkward while doing these scenes while the 2 heroines were enjoying each and every moment of his feminisation
The film director Rani then gave 1 month break time before next shoot and she told hero Ajay to spend his total time in female dress and make up and learn to wear different female dresses like sarees, half sarees, ghagra cholis, middis, skirts as the entire next sequence of the film he had to be crossdressed and he would never be wearing pant not even a salwar kammez which is pant like again for the entire movie.
The film director Rani also gave him a summary of the second part of shoot in which AJAY would be turned into a obedient housewife{maid}. Sometimes he would also be doing tasks set up by his bhabhi and housemaid in sexy outfits like short skirts, french maid costume.
Along with that there would be 4 songs in which he has to dress sexily and expose his midriff navel and to add for sex appeal she told AJAY to get a navel ring inserted to his belly
The film director Rani told both the heroines GEETA and PRIYA to rehearse themselves for humilating and teasing AJAY
TO BE CONTINUED
AAAAA (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 18:17)
THE NEXT PART
After 15 days break Director RANI called the Hero AJAY along with both the heroines GEETA and PRIYA to shoot location. She told Hero AJAY to come getting up dressed in half saree with full makeup. This was mainly to inspect whether AJAY had learned Female mannerisms.
He came dressed in a blue blouse and pink lehenga with matching pink voni.
The voni was totally covering his midriff without exposing navel.
He had put up light makeup normal ear rings and a wig without any bangles or anklets.
The Director RANI told him that his makeup could have been better .
The Director RANI instructed the makeup women in the shoot to redo the makeup and place dangling ear rings, add half a dozen bangles on each hand add anklets to his feet and also put jasmine flowers on his wig.
She also told the makeup women to readjust voni of his half saree in a way to expose his midrift navel
AJAY was terrified on listening to director RANI`s words but he had to comply.
AJAY was taken to makeup room where the makeup woman redid the makeup, replaced his simple earrings with dangling ear rings that come to his shoulder. She also added half a dozen bangles on each hand add anklets to his feet and also put jasmine flowers on his wig. Now even slightest movement of AJAY made sound.
The makeup women readjusted voni of his half saree and pinned it in a way that his midrift navel was clearly exposed.
Now on seeing AJAY both the heroines GEETA and PRIYA were giggling while The Director RANI was pleased with his look.
THEN The Director RANI announced a cricket match for that day.
AJAY was happy that now he could remove his female avatar but to his shock the director told that the match would be played with guys in female dress {saree} and girls in boys dress
The girls team would be lead by HEROINE GEETA which included the film crew girls present
The guys team would be lead by HERO AJAY which included the film crew guys present .
The Director RANI would act as an umpire.
The Girls team got ready in matching YELLOW T shirt and Track Pant while the
Guys team had to wear matching Violet Sarees with makeup and high heels.
As it was a cricket match several other by passers also came to see match
The guys thought that they would easily win the match.
The toss was won by Girls Team Captain GEETA and she elected to BAT first.
The 1st over would be bowled by HERO AJAY while batting would be by both the heroines
GEETA and PRIYA got ready at the crease with GEETA taking the strike.
Before taking the strike both heroines GEETA and PRIYA teased AJAY by pinching his navel which was partly exposed in the saree and told him to be careful with the pallu of his saree.
AJAY started to bowl but he slipped several times due to high heels. He also faced difficulty in adjusting pallu of his Saree. The pallu of his saree was slipping and he had difficulty in adjusting it while bowling. Eachtime the pallu of his saree falls his midriff navel would be exposed which resulted in the crowd to hoot and whistle.
Due to this he could not bowl with intensity and all his balls were hit for 4 and 6 by Geeta.
The next over was bowled by other film crew guy, but he to faced same trouble of slipping in high heels and in adjusting pallu of his Saree and hence even all his balls were hit for 4 and 6 by PRIYA.
BY the end of 10 overs the girls team scored 120/4.
It was breaktime.
The girls team were cheering.
The guys team thought that the total was big but could be chaseable.
THE Guys Team batting started.
The 1st over would be bowled by HEROINE PRIYA.
HERO AJAY came to batting. He was adjusting the pallu of his violet saree before taking strike
TO BE CONTINUED
Srs (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 18:56)
AAAAA WOW ur awesome please continue
AAAAA (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 19:36)
This is my 1st story. I want reviews and also suggestions from best writers like srs, sharmila devi, ex q zit, priya, kajal, sneha and all the rest who are following this blog
Manish (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 20:32)
Part -2 of being Manish to Manisha.
The moment I opened the door, I saw babu anxiously waiting to see me after I open the door. I was so disinterested an was avoiding an eye contact with him. He told me that he needed to clean my room. I replied ok and went to take my phone and was leaving my room. Babu was adjusting my bed sheet and he picked that red bindi that I threw on the floor. Looking at that again my eyes were wide open and embarrassed. He picked it and threw it in the bin and didnt utter a word. I left the room immediately. There was no conversation that was taking place between us. After he finished the work, I decided to change my clothes and leave for gym. I was already in shorts and just need to change my t-shirt. While changing babu entered my room and was constantly look at my upper body. When I got to this notice and saw myself in the mirror, I was stunned to see the impression of the bra on my chest area. I was speechless and my throat was dry, I couldn't spk a word nor I could react as babu was still in the room. Looking at my state babu told me bhaiya, you were looking very funny in the red bindi but when I saw the impression on your upper body, a sudden current passed through my body and I imagined you in female clothes with you wearing ornaments and bindi. I was getting nervous and started to sweat. He told me bhaiya i know you wear women's clothes, can you please wear them once in front of me. Listening to this I was so happy and excited but didnt express it to him. All of a sudden he held my palm and was trying to seduce me by touching my skin smoothly and softly so that I get convinced to wear the clothes. I was enjoying this and I nodded and said a yes. Listening to this he hugged me and what an amazing feeling I was getting a feeling as if a man has held me in his arms and its a dream for every women to be in his man's arms. It was the first time I was in any man's arms. 2 mins passed and he slightly kissed me on my neck and then winked at me saying you apply women's talc na bhaiya, I was amazed at his observation as I actually use female talc cause if its essence. I nodded a yes and was shy.i told him that I'll let you know when I can plan to dress up for him, he was very excited and told me that he is waiting.
End of part-2
Manish (Wednesday, 14 December 2016 20:34)
Part-3 of being Manish to Manisha.
After about 4 to 5 day's, my mother informed me that she is going out of town day after for office picnic and she will be staying there for 2 days and I was super excited but made sure to control my emotions. I purposely asked her how will I stay alone as dad is in the navy. She said don't worry I will inform babu tomm to stay with you . When I heard this I was on cloud nine. I was eagerly waiting for day after. The next day when babu came to work my mother informed him that he had to stay at our place for 2 days till she returns and thn she left for office. He respectfully accepted to what my mother said and agreed. I was so excited that I wanted to dress up immediately, but to my luck the maid had come late and was still working. The next day, my mother was suppose to leave at 7 in the morning , I came till the veranda to leave my mom till the cab arrived. I went inside and I was all alone. I shaved and took a bath and was ready by 11 after completing my college assignment. I knew that babu would come around 3. So after my maid left completing her work, I decided to get ready. I went to my mothers room and opened her wardrobe. Removed a nice dark blue coloured anarkali with matching churidhar . The anarkali had golden work on it and also on the sleeves. I also took my mothers mustard yellow floral panty with a nice brown coloured laced bra. I changed to my inners and used thermocol balls, I then decided that I'll do the make up first. As to be comfortable to apply makeup, I grabbed one of my mom's nighty. I sat down at the dressers and started applying make up . I also applied eye makeup of a shade between mint blue or turquoise blue.
I applied a bright pink lipstick as I wanted it to be attractive and seductive. I then removed my nighty and wore the anarkali and churidar. The golden work on it was so blingy and shiny, as my mom made this for a relatives wedding and hardly used it. After completely dressed with make up, I went to my mothers dresser and wore a nice crystal necklace with matching long ear rings. My mother wears clip on's, so for me it's awesome, to wear them.
I also applied my moms perfume and it smelled very sweet and fruity. And was loving it . I found a long blue coloured zig zag bindi and applied it on my head. I also applied an artificial tattoo sticker on my palm and it was pink in colour and blingy. I wore my moms artificial gold bangles, 4 in each hand and was enjoying the sound. I was watching tv with bollywood songs and admiring the women dancing in it.
I was all ready and was awaiting for babu.
End of part-3.
ash (Thursday, 15 December 2016 04:47)
thank sanjana it was nice story
loved reading it
any other suggestions to read story from anyone
amit (Thursday, 15 December 2016 04:56)
plz cotinue AAAAA
its a great story
AAA (Thursday, 15 December 2016 05:46)
Pls continue your story!
AAAAA (Thursday, 15 December 2016 13:13)
THE NEXT PART {CONTINUED FROM #517} {EARLIER PARTS #514,515,516,517}
HERO AJAY was preparing to bat while HEROINE PRIYA was getting ready to bowl.
When HERO AJAY was about to take strike he was teased and his navel was pinched by PRIYA.
HERO AJAY was taken by surprise and he jumped when his navel was pinched. This resulted in everyone present there to laugh.
This incensed AJAY and he started arguing with Priya.
This resulted in PRIYA to challenge AJAY to first win the match before arguing.
AJAY was taken aback and his male ego was hurt.
He challenged her that if he won the match then he would pinch her navel and also spin a top on her navel.
PRIYA said she was ready for the challenge and to increase the stakes she added that if she lost, not only AJAY his entire team could pinch her navel and spin a top on her navel, but if he lost HE would have to undergo same punishment in the hands of GIRLS team.
HE accepted and the match resumed.
HERO AJAY started batting confidently. But he was not getting necessary support from his other batsmen.
After finishing 5 overs {half of the 10 match game}, the BOYS team score was 70/8.
HERO AJAY alone scored 60 and was still batting while almost the entire team could only score only 10 runs.
In the next over bowled by GEETA both the remaining batsmen were out
HERO AJAY despite of his best effort could not prevent loosing.
As soon as the last wicket fell the GIRLS started celebrating and both the HEROINES GEETA AND PRIYA ran towards HERO AJAY.
HEROINES PRIYA started pulling the PALLU of his VIOLET SAREE. He was trying to resist her pull.
But as all the girls team came surrounding him he was unable to resist her pull and the VIOLET SAREE he was wearing was pulled out.
Now he tried to cover his VIOLET COLOURED HALF SLEEVED JACKET with his hands and was feeling embarassed as all the girls were pressing and pinching his BELLY, WAIST, NAVEL.
Then they made him lie down on seat of a bike which was parked there.
He was feeling embarrassed as he was lying with a half sleeve violet blouse and matching violet lehenga, and exposing his midriff {navel}
All girls were surrounding him and teasing him. They held both his hands and legs tightly.
HEROINE PRIYA came with a top smiling.
She spinned the top on the centre of HERO AJAY`s navel.
HERO AJAY started feeling tingling sensation due to the top spinning and wanted to move but he could not move as his hands and legs were held tightly by the GIRLS.
All the girls took turns in spinning top on navel of AJAY while a few Girls were taking pics and video of top spinning on AJAY`s navel.
HERO AJAY was embarassed but he could not say anything.
When all the girls finished spinning top on AJAY`s navel he was allowed to getup from bike.
HEROINE PRIYA returned his VIOLET SAREE and told him to never argue with a girl and that too just because a girl pinched his navel.
HERO AJAY was embarassed and he could not even look into any girl present there.
He just wore his VIOLET SAREE and went to his home.
AAAAA (Thursday, 15 December 2016 16:14)
THE ACTOR
THE NEXT PART
Later it was time for next part of movie. Director RANI began the shoot.
The earlier part ended with the BOY RAJU {HERO AJAY} being dressed in a pink half saree by his BHABHI {HEROINE GEETA} and his Maid {HEROINE PRIYA}.
Now the boy RAJU was told by his Bhabhi {GEETA} that he would always have to dress in girls clothes. never even dream of wearing a Pant or Slack or even Salwar Kameez as it was pant like.
First he would be a maid servant who would have to dress in FROCKS and SKIRTS till his FRENCH MAID UNIFORM arrived. Later he would not be allowed any other dress other than his FRENCH MAID UNIFORM
He had to learn to do all house hold chores from his MAID SERVANT {HEROINE PRIYA} and also he had to always speak to her courteously and address her as Madam.
The next morning he was woken up early at 6 o Clock by PRIYA. He was given a Yellow colour FROCK to wear.
The FROCK had many flowers designed on it.
THE BOY RAJU wore that FROCK and it was very tight and its lower part came till his KNEES . He was feeling uncomfortable and told PRIYA that it should have been a bigger size.
PRIYA told him that it was his size and he should learn to adjust in that.
Then PRIYA applied makeup on him. She applied KAJAL, LIPSTICK, BINDI.
Even a wig was placed on his head and he was told to wear a wig till his hair grows fully like a girl
Then the BOY RAJU was taken to kitchen and PRIYA taught him cooking.
Then at 9oclock PRIYA told RAJU to wake his bhabhi and serve her tea.
RAJU woke up his bhabhi and served her tea. His BHABHI got up saw Raju in YELLOW FROCK and was happy with his transformation.
His BHABHI then went to PRIYA and told her to make him learn each and every household duty and also to keep her authority on him by giving him punishments.
RAJU started learning to do household chores. He had to wash clothes, iron them, cook for his bhabhi and maid, serve his bhabhi tea in the morning and also evening when she returns from office.
Whenever RAJU did not do any chore properly, PRIYA used to punish him by making him murga or kneeling down for an hour. RAJU`S BHABHI {GEETA} was more severe in punishments and he would get hard spanking on his bare back.
Initially for the 1st WEEK he had to dress in different colors of frocks and skirts like pink, violet, yellow.
After the 1st week his BHABHI {GEETA} brought RED FRENCH MAID COSTUME. He had to wear that.
Initially he had to wear RED BRA AND PANTIES, then the FRENCH MAID COSTUME
which consisted of a RED top and a short, short RED skirt with white ruffles that came down to his thighs. The top clung, but the costume was made in such a way as to hide the fact that he had no feminine waist, and the padded bra made RAJU look as if he actually had tits.
He was feeling shy and awkward. But his BHABHI told him he had to dress only in this dress and never touch any other dress and if he wore any other dress he would be punished severely.
RAJU was terrified but he had no choice.
From then on , He started to do all house hold chores in his FRENCH MAID COSTUME under guidance of PRIYA.
Eventhough PRIYA was initially dominant on RAJU she started loving RAJU. So 1 day PRIYA proposed him.
RAJU though did not love PRIYA but he thought that if he pretended to be in love with PRIYA he could escape from this thight FRENCH MAID dress. So he accepted her proposal.
Then one day PRIYA told his BHABHI {GEETA} about their love. His BHABHI accepted and told PRIYA that she was like her sister and she would never say no.
His BHABHI {GEETA} then called both RAJU AND PRIYA to her side and she told RAJU she accepted for his marriage with PRIYA & She liked the way RAJU transformed from being arrogant GUY to A sweet maid girl.
RAJU requested his Bhabhi that after marriage he be permitted to wear Pant and Shirt.
His BHABHI {GEETA} refused and told RAJU that even after his marriage he would have to stay like a maid.
RAJU pleaded with GEETA. Seeing him plead like that PRIYA requested GEETA.
GEETA agreed on condition that after marriage he would become an obedient wife to his husband PRIYA
He can wear PANT and SHIRT only once a week on SUNDAY and that too with the permission of his husband PRIYA
and The remaining days he had to dress in girls clothes and instead of wearing maid dress he can dress himself beautifully in Sarees, Half Sarees, Salwar Kameez like a perfect and obedient BRIDE to please his HUSBAND PRIYA
RAJU accepted and thought that once he wears a male dress PANT AND SHIRT he could run away from this place and start living life of a man.
AAAAA (Thursday, 15 December 2016 16:15)
The marriage arrangements of RAJU and PRIYA took place in the same house
A beautician women was called to ready RAJU
It took almost half an hour for beautician women to complete RAJU`S facial make up. The effect was astounding.
RAJU just could not believe his eyes shaped and lined with an eyeliner. The Pink lipstick looked wonderful. After the facial make up the beautician started working on his nails. She painted his nails with PINK NAIL POLISH. After the makeup RAJU had to wear the sari. The bra and panty came first followed by a tight small pink blouse and petticoat. The beautician fastened the hooks of the bra. The straps of the bra digging into his shoulder and the weight filled in those cups gave RAJU a feeling that He was having tits.
The pink blouse which was a low cut blouse and it revealed RAJU`S cleavage gave it more lovelier look.
At last it was the sari. It was also a Pink Floral Saree with the flowers in white and blue.
THE BEAUTICIAN then helped RAJU in wearing long hanging ear-rings, a nose ring, bangles and anklets
PRIYA got dressed in PLAIN WHITE PANT AND SHIRT that a man wears for marriage
At the Muhurat time PRIYA tied MANGALSUTRA TO RAJU.
He took her blessing and vowed to obey her for the rest of his life.
Then both RAJU AND PRIYA took the blessing of their BHABHI GEETA.
Then it was time for SUHAGRAAT.
RAJU entered the bedroom with a glass of milk in the same wedding pink saree in which PRIYA was waiting.
PRIYA drank half of the milk and she offerd RAJU the rest
RAJU refused saying he was not yet fully ready for suhagraat and needed sometime
PRIYA accepted as she was madly in love with RAJU.
The next week their BHABHI GEETA had planned a honey moon trip for RAJU and GEETA in GOA.
They left happily.
With this DIRECTOR RANI ended the second part of the film shoot.
SHE told that next part of film would be shot in GOA.
HERO AJAY told DIRECTOR RANI that he was uncomfortable dressed in skimpy frocks, french maid costume. But both HEROINES GEETA AND PRIYA told him he looked great and where teasing him.
DIRECTOR RANI assured him that in the next part he would have to dress only in revealing sarees
and except for few duets in goa he need not wear any tight skirts. HERO AJAY felt a bit relieved but both HEROINES GEETA AND PRIYA were constantly giggling and making fun of him.
AAAAA (Thursday, 15 December 2016 17:39)
THE THIRD PART OF FILM SHOOT IN GOA:-
In Kullu Manalli RAJU {HERO AJAY} told PRIYA that he would get dressed in PANT and SHIRT DURING THE HONEYMOON .
PRIYA refused saying that all the reservations done by his BHABHI GEETA in GOA have been done in name of him being a girl RAJI and herself as guy PRIYAN.
RAJU was upset.
1st DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
On the 1st day morning they had a trip to BEACH. RAJU refused but on PRIYA`S persistence he accepted to come.
PRIYA was dressed in BLUE T SHIRT, BLACK JEANS. She wore a sports CAP & GOGGLES.
RAJU wore a VIOLET sari with RED stripes. In the beach PRIYA pulled RAJU into the water.
RAJU though reluctant at first he started enjoying in the beach.
After playing for sometime in beach RAJU went to the shore where he was trying to dry his wet saree
PRIYA told him that he should have brought with him an extra saree to wear.
Then they left early to their hotel room.
On reaching the hotel room RAJU changed into green nighty while PRIYA wore a casual t shirt and shorts
They ate LUNCH in their room and were extremely tired
They relaxed till evening. In the evening they had a candle light dinner
PRIYA told RAJU to get dressed beautifully in marriage saree. RAJU though unhappy agreed
PRIYA wore BLACK FERRARI T SHIRT WITH BLACK JEANS while
RAJU dressed in PINK blouse which was a low cut blouse and it was revealing RAJU`S cleavage. he was unhappy but had no other choice
Then he wore his marriage saree which was Pink Floral Saree with the flowers in white and blue. After applying makeup he was very beautiful.
They had a memorable dinner and then they returned to hotel.
On coming to hotel PRIYA sat on a chair while RAJU was sitting on bed and relaxing.
PRIYA saw RAJU`s partly exposed navel through the PINK FLORAL saree and RAJU`S cleavage through the low cut blouse PRIYA got tempted and she tried pulling RAJU towards her. He refused her pull and told her he was still not ready.
PRIYA was loving RAJU so much that she left him.
2ND DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
The next day THEY went to a nearby famous FORT on HILLTOP
RAJU was dressed in dark GREEN sari with golden border while PRIYA wore BLUE T SHIRT WITH BLACK JEANS
At the hilltop they were waiting for bus.
Due to high wind RAJU was having difficulty in adjusting PALLU of his SAREE as everytime wind blows the pallu of his saree moves away exposing his navel. PRIYA saw this and was constantly trying to see his navel and always waiting for wind to blow.
After adjusting his pallu for 4 times RAJU told PRIYA not to stare at his navel.
PRIYA initially downplayed saying she was staring at some other thing.
But after RAJU`S constant prodding she told him that she saw his navel and it was nothing wrong to see his beautiful navel as they both were married.
RAJU just gave a serious glare to PRIYA. She felt awkward but felt ok
3RD DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
The next day THEY HAD RESERVATION FOR A MOVIE
RAJU got dressed in dark MAROON sari with white border PRIYA wore RED T SHIRT WITH BLACK JEANS
In the movie theatre RAJU refuses all the advances of PRIYA.
She became angry but had controlled herself
AAAAA (Thursday, 15 December 2016 17:39)
4th DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
They were free and had no reservations for that day.
PRIYA told They would casually roam along Goa and do some shopping.
RAJU got dressed in BLACK SAREE with white designer border PRIYA wore BLACK T SHIRT WITH BLUE JEANS
They had come across a famous tattoo centre in GOA.
They went inside. PRIYA immediately told the tattoo guy to draw a tattoo of RAJU ON HER HAND
The tattoo guy drew a picture mimicking RAJU in Saree on her hand
Then PRIYA told the tattoo guy to draw her picture on RAJU`S hand. RAJU REFUSED and went outside.
PRIYA became so angry on him that she came out and slapped him very hard. that he started crying.
She told him that he had exceeded the limit of her patience.
She could have easily ordered him and even force him to tattoo on any part of his body and even turn him back into maid.
RAJU felt afraid that if he did not listen he would be turned back into maid. So he agreed to get tattoo done.
PRIYA was still angry that he refused and told him that initially she thought only hand but now he had to get 3 tattoo`s done. 1 on his belly {navel} and 2 on the back. 1 above the blouse and the other on the back in the waist region between his blouse and lehenga
RAJU had to agree. He felt pain while tattooing but he remained silent and was tensed as if PRIYA wanted he could be turned back into maid wearing skimpy outfits and restricted to home . Much worse than now. So he thought to ask her apology and also to please PRIYA a little
Even after getting 3 tattoos done PRIYA was still very angry.
They went straight to HOTEL.
In the hotel RAJU fell on PRIYA`S feet and begged her to forgive him. He told that he just needed some time to adjust into sarees and he would definitely BECOME an obedient wife.
Believing him and the love PRIYA had on RAJU she forgave him.
5th DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
On the 5th DAY RAJU & PRIYA again went to beach
PRIYA wore RED t shirt and normal beach pant
This time to please PRIYA, RAJU wore a SEE through RED colored SAREE. His BRA was clearly visible beneath the BLOUSE . He looked sexy in the SAREE. He also did extensive makeup.
Seeing him PRIYA felt very happy.
They went to the beach. PRIYA pulled RAJU inside the water and they both enjoyed for sometime.
After sometime they both went to shore and lied down on the shore
Seeing RAJU wet in see through saree PRIYA was getting more tempted.
She started pouring sand on RAJU`S navel and started playing with it.
Even though RAJU did not like it he was just smiling.
After some time they went behind the rocks in the beach where no one were present.
PRIYA took a small fish and put it inside the blouse of RAJU
RAJU was shocked and he tried to remove the fish but he could not since it was moving.
He was feeling intense tingling sensation & struggling to remove the fish. PRIYA was laughing and enjoying every moment.
He was forced to remove his blouse. Then only he was able to remove the fish.
Now he was standing only in his bra in front of PRIYA.
PRIYA now unable to control herself she kissed him on his lips.
Initially RAJU was struggling to relieve but later he too started enjoying the kiss
After the kiss PRIYA was very happy.
THE NEXT 2 DAYS OF HONEYMOON
TO BE CONTINUED
AAAAA (Thursday, 15 December 2016 17:46)
I THANK SRS, EX Q ZIT, AMIT FOR THEIR REVIEWS ON MY EARLIER PART.
I WANT TO THANK EX Q ZIT ESPECIALLY FOR GIVING ME IDEA ON KHUSHI MOVIE SCENE WHICH I COULD WRITE SOMEWHAT IN MY STORY ON 2ND DAY OF HONEYMOON.
PLEASE CONTINUE YOUR SUGGESTIONS AND REVIEWS
Srs (Thursday, 15 December 2016 18:45)
Mind blowing stories AAAA PLEASE continue
AAAAA (Thursday, 15 December 2016 19:01)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED {FROM 530}
6th DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
PRIYA decided to enjoy this day only in the hotel room
Since RAJU told he was not ready for suhagraat she would not force him but she had other ideas
PRIYA brought a body painting set. RAJU was wearing a VIOLET SAREE with white border
She told RAJU to lie on his back.
SHE pushed aside the pallu of his saree. Now his navel was exposed. She started drawing different pictures on his navel
She used to practice one picture with temporary pen on his NAVEL and then erase it
Finally when she was satisfied with a picture she used a permanent pen.
She drew a butterfly with different colours on his navel
Then she told him to turn back and she drew similar pictures on his back in the waist area between blouse and lehenga
After this PRIYA told RAJU to dance for her in a exotic style{HERE a song would be added}
7th DAY OF HONEYMOON:-
ON the last day RAJU & PRIYA went for shopping.
Priya brought several new designer sarees for RAJU.
Then they went to night dress section where priya brought several baby doll nighties for RAJU
PRIYA also brought several high heeled shoes and makeupkits for RAJU
Finalli in the evening they started their return to home
The director RANI told that the entire shooting in goa completed except for 3 duet songs.
THE 1st duet would be placed on 5th day of honeymoon when PRIYA Kissed RAJU
THE 2nd duet would be an exotic dance done by RAJU which would be placed ON 6th day of honeymoon
THE 3rd duet would be a rain song which would be placed earlier
RAJU {HERO AJAY} was terrified on listening about the exotic SONG and the rain song and was constantly teased by PRIYA about it
The next morning the shooting for the duets began.
1ST SONG:- DUET The duet song had to begun after a lip lock with PRIYA
RAJU {HERO AJAY} would be Dressed IN 4 dresses i.e :- pink blouse knee length skirt, yellow frock, green middi, black short skirt with white blouse
PRIYA would be dressed in BLACK JEANS AND BLUE T SHIRT
RAJU {HERO AJAY} felt awkward in dancing in skirts and frocks. He was feeling shy especially when PRIYA was touching his waist , chest intimately & when PRIYA was kissing his RED PAINTED LIPS
2nd song:- EROTIC DANCE SONG
RAJU {HERO AJAY} would be Dressed IN 3 dresses i.e :- blue blouse and blue lehenga, pink blouse and lehenga, colourful dotted blouse and red bottom. IN all 3 dresses his midriff {navel} was exposed.
Even his cleavage was exposed as all were low cut blouses
In this song when he was wearing blue blouse and blue lehenga His navel had to be hit romantically with apple and grapes by PRIYA
RAJU {HERO AJAY} felt awkward as the scene of hitting his navel was shot many times as director RANI felt his expressions were not upto mark
After each take PRIYA had to suppress her laughter.
Finally when shot was done PRIYA broke into laughter
3rd song:- RAIN SONG
RAJU {HERO AJAY} would be Dressed IN 3 sarees i.e :- blue, yellow and red.
The red saree would be a see through transparent saree in which his bra was clearly visible.
In this song RAJU {HERO AJAY} had to show several expressions and also expose his navel
DIRECTOR RANI made him redo song many times as she was not satisfied with his expressions.
After many takes finally the song was completed
DIRECTOR RANI TOLD NOW TOTAL SHOOT IN GOA IS COMPLETED
HERO AJAY was feeling relieved
While HEROINE PRIYA was constantly giggling and told him that his expressions were better than a girl
TO BE CONTINUED
Maddy (Friday, 16 December 2016 07:50)
AAAA just keep writing too awesome
Kumaari (Friday, 16 December 2016 10:31)
Wowwwww wat a story AAAA simply awesome... Keep rocking.... We are waiting...
satya (Friday, 16 December 2016 12:49)
brother in law to wife 17
vikram came and sit infront of me and i got shocked and stand up for going back and vikram stopped me and said hi and i am vikram whats ur name he asked i got shock she did not recognise me completly and he said i saw u in satyas house that time he sad u forget i said remembered and he said my mom is coming and satya and satya mom are also coming here and i dont no that ur also comng there he said and ur face is same to same as satya only by the by whats ur name he asked i got tension that what to say i said my name is also satya only i said i will go to washrom and i will come in 5mins he said ok i go to washroomand i call to mom and she said she is not coming and she dropped the phone and i thought it was the preplaned by mom and mil and i want to escape from here and him slowly i went to table and he asked what about u and what ru doing now and i said simply living in home and he is seeing my body every where and his eyes are towards my breast and he give the compliment about the saree and said thank you and i said they mom is not coming she had some work i am also having i want to leave now and he said ok i will drop u in house and i sad i am coming by my scootyand can go i said bye and going home by scoty and he fllowed me and being a girl one boy was following me i got embaresed but inside i am happpy i reached home and go to roomremoved saree he said i am looking good in saree i see my self n mirror i am not intrested to remove saree when he said like that but for freeness i removed and wear the nghty i am wearng the salwar kamee of plain type not fashoinable there are different types of salwars are there like patiyala anarkali krapetops like so many i dont no whle i am seeing the adds in telivision i got those names and think i want to try those but i dont no how to buy and select later againg i wear the normal salwar and singly went for shoppng without any one and directly ask the sales girl about those and she checked my size showed them and went to trail and wear those are loking very good and some are very lightweight and heavy weight and stonework and packed the 10 pair and came from mall with bags and waiting for auto vikram was coming with his bike he saw me and stopped and he offered lift i said no but later forcable i sat on bike but not on two sides only sat n single side first time i sat like a lady on one side but it was uncomfortable iwe reached home i get down from bike and go to home mom was seeing me fromthe window and she asked me where u went i said for shopping loose dresses and ask how u came i said by vikram bike
satya (Friday, 16 December 2016 13:40)
brother in law to wife 18
mom said me to me go and change the dress and i want to talk to you i said k went to room and changed to nighty and came to halland sit nfront of mom she asked me how i am feeling now i said ok and she asked me how vikram will be i said ok nice guy and she asked me u have to marry vikram next month i got shocked and said no mom asked why i am friend of vikram and we know each other from childhood and bestfriend i am aboy i cant marry him she said ur not boy ur mentally and physically a girl now today u urself only went to mall and buy the girls dresses and came leave it now what r ur future plans tell me what ur going todo simply sitting in home through out ur life see u r girl u cant live singly u must have one partner so marryone men why i am askeing vikram tomarry means because ur mil know about u and u cant conceve child vikram daughter is thereu u can be mom to his daughter and wife and he is ur frend ffrom chldhood he can understand about u and ur problems think one next month vikram daughter is coming to home before her mother must be she is thnking her mom is alive and she dont know how she will be because she is 18months old and so be her mom before coming and vikram dont know about u and we will explain him and he will accept so please u r son n law to ur mother n law and now become daughter in law to her this is the best solution t ur life otherwse lve ur life dont ask me anythng u r seeng outside wthout life partner how girlslife will be and she said think again and to night and say by tomorrow morning and if u agree wear yellow saree and come otherwise ur wish and i went to my room and thinking sleep and i think to enjoy live happy and vikram also good guy only so i decide to marry and went t sleep and wake wear yellow saree and came out mom was so happy and talk to my mil and mil explaned each and evrerythng to vikram what was happened to me and he get schocked and accepted for marrage before that want to talk to satya he said k tomorrow u can go t her home and talk and satya only will be her mom went for out of staton and i dont know that vikram is comng tomy home know only he accepy for marrage i dont know about his coming am wearing halfsaree in home and watching tv door bell rang i opened the door and vikram was there i schocked and lowered my head and he lifted upand take me to hall and didnt speak any thing to shy and he said how r u satya and ur feeling comfortable dont be shy i amur friend and i acept marrege for my daughtrer she need mom and i came toknow about ur problem and please talkto me dont be silent before u talk to me in hotelas a girl now why ur not speaking please be move freely and said nothing and i dont know how to speek but smiled and k now ur feeling some shy k later i will talk and marrege ritualsand proceedng are gong on they kept the marrage in a small temple and we buy dfferent sarees and wear saree wth all jeweleries and went for mandapam and sat only 10 t0 15 members are thier for marrage and vkram wear the suit and she tied the mangalsuthra on my neck and kept bindi on my forhead and he kept toe ringd tomy foot and altalst the all marrage rituals completed and i got tired but night another thng is there that first night mom and two more girls are busy in readyng me for first night and girls are sayng u have to give ur coperation to ur husband u have to loose ur virginity to night and wear wight saree and flowers and mom gave me milk glass tome and sent into room and door was locked i am his friend from childhood and cricket players and husband to his sisternow i am his wife standing infront of him with glass of milk waering saree flowers and ready for first night.
AAAAA (Friday, 16 December 2016 16:05)
THE ACTOR {CONTINUED FROM 532}
FINAL SHOOT OF THE MOVIE:- The final part of the movie was shot in RAJU`s home which was a duplex building.
THIS PART would be more of a betrayal and love story rather than teasing compared to earlier parts of the story.
DIRECTOR RANI started the movie with a clap.
PRIYA and RAJU returned from their honeymoon.
Their BHABHI GEETA welcomed them and asked them about their honeymoon.
PRIYA told her that they enjoyed each and every moment of their honeymoon period and RAJU followed her like an obedient wife.
Their BHABHI GEETA was happy. She was also happy because RAJU transformed himself from an arrogant boy to a beautiful and obedient housewife.
The following weekend on SUNDAY RAJU requested his BHABHI GEETA that he wanted to wear PANT and SHIRT
Their BHABHI GEETA thinking him to be a changed obedient person agreed and told him he could wear PANT and SHIRT only on SUNDAY, but told him to first get permission of his wife PRIYA & also told him that even if he wears PANT and SHIRT he should not go out of the house alone.
He must always be accompanied by PRIYA or GEETA.
RAJU AGREED
He went and asked PRIYA for permission to wear PANT and SHIRT.
As she was madly in love with RAJU She immediately consented.
RAJU was very happy. He wore PANT and SHIRT for the first time since many days
He started now planning of his escape from this house.
For the following few days he acted as an obedient wife to PRIYA in front of his BHABHI GEETA and on SUNDAYS he used to dress in PANT and SHIRT but was not permitted to leave the house alone.
Finally on 1 day thinking he has adjusted fully to his new role his BHABHI GEETA & PRIYA both allowed him to go alone on SUNDAYS in PANT and SHIRT to meet his old friends
Taking this opportunity he met several of his old friends and was finding ways of his escape.
Finally 1 day he met a friend who told him that he could go abroad by applying for passport and visa.
He liked the idea and immediately applied for PASSPORT & VISA.
He gave his friends address as reference so that his BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA will not get suspicion.
In the following few days his WIFE PRIYA got a good manager job and he pretended to be very happy in front of her and promised her that he would support her as an obedient wife throughout her career.
He thought that since both his BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA go to job he can now freely roam in morning hours in PANT & SHIRT and can apply for a job abroad and also get passport and visa easily.
So now as per his plan he used to pretend as an obedient wife by waking up in morning 6oClock do all the house work and cooking in nighties. Then at 8o Clock he used to wear beautiful sarees and wear lovely makeup and serve tea to his BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA after waking them up.
AAAAA (Friday, 16 December 2016 16:07)
THE ACTOR
He also used to cook lunch in the morning & gave them lunchboxes so that they would not return in the afternoon.
As soon as they left he used to change into PANT & SHIRT and go out to find out about his passport and visa.
He also used to apply for jobs abroad.
By evening he used to return and change back into his SAREE & MAKEUP before 7o Clock The usual time of return of his BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA.
When they returned he used to welcome them with tea. When they sit down for having tea he used to remove their OFFICE SLIPPERS and rub their legs with shyness of an obedient wife.
His BHABHI GEETA & WIFE PRIYA seeing him never got a suspicion about his activities of applying for passport and visa. They were happy that he is an obedient HOUSEWIFE.
Initially he applied for high profile jobs but as he had no good educational qualification they rejected.
Finally he got to know about the job of a sweeper and floor mopping in abroad.
He thought that something is better than his present position. So he immediately applied for that job
After a few days he got passport and visa. But to buy plane ticket he needed money. He came up with a plan
He requested his WIFE PRIYA to buy him a beautiful and costly necklace.
Thinking that it was his first request after her marriage she immediately bought a rare costly necklace with all her salary.
Seeing the necklace his BHABHI GEETA told PRIYA that she should not have wasted all her salary for that 1 necklace.
But PRIYA replied that nothing is more than RAJU`S happiness.
PRIYA wore RAJU the necklace. After wearing for sometime he told that he will keep the necklace inside the almirah as it was costly and will only wear it only for important occasions.
Later He sold that necklace in a nearby gold shop and booked the plane ticket which was after 1 week on SUNDAY.
In that 1 week he started secretly packing things. He assumed that as on SUNDAY he would be allowed to wear PANT & SHIRT for the full day & in the name of meeting his friends he could go abroad and settle.
But on SATURDAY 1 day before his journey trip his BHABHI GEETA while eating lunch in a nearby hotel saw the necklace in display outside the gold shop. She got suspicious and on enquiry she found out that it was sold by RAJU.
She immediately met his friend who told her about RAJU`S job abroad and his planned journey the next day.
His BHABHI GEETA became so angry. She immediately went home. As It was afternoon time RAJU was not expecting that his BHABHI GEETA would return. So he was dressed in PANT & SHIRT and packing things.
His BHABHI GEETA entered the house with a spare key she had. The spare key would open the door even if it is locked from inside. She went straight upstairs into RAJU`S room.
RAJU was shocked on seeing his BHABHI GEETA and was even more tensed as she had seen him in PANT & SHIRT and was angry.
He tried to tell her that he wore PANT SHIRT only TODAY other than his usual SUNDAYS.
His BHABHI GEETA immediately asked him for his necklace which PRIYA brought him.
He pretended to search in almirah and tried telling her that it was lost.
She immediately showed him that necklace and also told him that she met his friend and knew of his entire plan and then slapped him very hard.
RAJU fell to the ground and was very frightened. He fell on the feet of his BHABHI GEETA and asked her for forgiveness.
His BHABHI GEETA was seething in anger and refused,
She told him that he had played with the emotions of her and also his WIFE PRIYA who was madly in love with him.
She told him that he betrayed his WIFE PRIYA`S love and was all the time playing with her emotions.
His BHABHI GEETA then hit him severely with her belt.
His BHABHI GEETA angrily told him that he is undeserving of the lenience he was provided and told him to change back into his skimpy FRENCH MAID DRESS and come to the hall. She left to the hall.
RAJU was very afraid. He took the skimpy RED FRENCH MAID DRESS which was in the almirah and was very dusty as it was not worn for many days.
He removed his PANT & SHIRT and wore the skimpy RED FRENCH MAID DRESS.
He was frightened to see his BHABHI GEETA.
But she called him and told him to come fast into the hall
AAAAA (Friday, 16 December 2016 16:10)
THE ACTOR
RAJU slowly and hesitantly came into the hall in RED FRENCH MAID DRESS . His BHABHI GEETA was still seething with anger
After giving him few more slaps, His BHABHI GEETA ordered him to “Turn into a cock and stand in front of the mirror”.
RAJU obeyed and to add to his humiliation, he saw his image in the mirror- a red coloured french maid dressed man forced to stay as a cock.
Then RAJU was frozen with fear when he saw a cane in His BHABHI GEETA`s hand.
Then she again ordered, ” Raise your hip and dont move a bit when I strike you.”
Needless to say, RAJU quickly raised his hip as high as he could have.
On raising his hip the skimpy skirt of FRENCH MAID UNIFORM went up and his back was exposed.
As even the red panties which he wore inside wear only designed to cover half of his back he was feeling almost like he was exposing the total bare back.
Then came the first stroke. RAJU jumped and screamed with pain. His BHABHI GEETA gave five more strokes for that and said, “If you move one more time, I will complete the rest of your punishment in the street.”
After that RAJU endured twenty more strokes on my buttocks and back of thighs without moving an inch! But this was not the end.
His BHABHI GEETA again told him to turn into a cock and stand in front of the mirror.
She kept him like this for two hours. When RAJU was about to fall due to tiredness, His BHABHI GEETA ordered him to stand and do ups and downs holding his ears. When he was tired of that, he was made to kneel down. This continued for another two hours.
Then the time was 7 o clock and RAJU`S wife PRIYA came home. She was unaware of all these things.
PRIYA as she entered the hall she saw RAJU kneeling down in RED FRENCH MAID DRESS.
His BHABHI GEETA was sitting in a sofa in the HALL and was seething with anger.
PRIYA asked His BHABHI GEETA what had happened
His BHABHI GEETA told PRIYA that RAJU never became an obedient wife and was fit only to be a maid.
His BHABHI GEETA told PRIYA about the whole thing that RAJU never loved PRIYA. He only pretended and played with her feelings in order to escape from this house.
His BHABHI GEETA also showed PRIYA his passport, visa, plane ticket for the next day which was bought with PRIYA`S gift necklace which she bought with all her hard earned salary.
After listening this PRIYA started crying
On seeing PRIYA cry His BHABHI GEETA`s anger even more increased. She took the cane and once again started hitting RAJU.
PRIYA could not see RAJU being hit as she loved him intensely.
So PRIYA fell on His BHABHI GEETA`s feet and asked her to spare him.
His BHABHI GEETA was moved by PRIYA and she left RAJU and went inside her room.
PRIYA took RAJU into their room and started telling that she had sincerely loved him and the only reason she had dressed him in sarees as being an obedient wife he would never go away from her.
PRIYA also told him that she had spent all her salary just for 1 necklace RAJU had asked for his happiness & when his BHABHI GEETA refused him to allow PANT & SHIRT she had requested her to allow him to wear PANT & SHIRT for atleast 1 day.
PRIYA also told RAJU that his BHABHI GEETA had secretly warned her that once he starts wearing PANT & SHIRT he would definitely revolt and go away from her but as PRIYA lover RAJU intensely and she wanted only his happiness she did not listen to her warnings.
PRIYA told him that all if he wanted was wearing PANT & SHIRT he can always wear them and even if RAJU wanted she would resign her job and be an obedient wife to RAJU.
If still RAJU wanted She would serve RAJU all his life like a servant maid she was. She even took a BLACK FRENCH MAID DRESS which was present in the cupboard which was worn once by RAJU and she wore it to please RAJU.
PRIYA told RAJU that she would stay her whole life in FRENCH MAID DRESS or any other skimpy dress RAJU wanted and do whatever work RAJU told but he should not leave her
RAJU was moved as well as little afraid and hesitant but he told PRIYA that he wanted to go abroad.
Even after intense PRIYA`S pleading RAJU was adamant to go
Finally PRIYA told him that he was free to go and no one would stop him. PRIYA also gave RAJU all the money which she had saved and had.
Saying this PRIYA left the room saying she would sleep in the HALL. Actually she was silently crying in the hall, but she did not want anyone to know.
RAJU became very happy thinking that he would leave tomorrow and be free. He planned to buy many shirts and pants in the foreign with the money which PRIYA gave.
He immediately removed the RED FRENCH MAID DRESS he was wearing and dressed in pant and shirt and was sleeping happily in the bedroom while PRIYA was crying in the hall.
AAAAA (Friday, 16 December 2016 16:10)
THE ACTOR
In the morning RAJU woke up got dressed in new pant and shirt and was happily about to leave.
Before leaving he thought to meet his BHABHI and PRIYA once and went to them. But both of them refused to speak to him.
RAJU was a bit SAD but thinking of life ahead he happily left the house and reached the airport.
RAJU was waiting for his flight when he saw an old friend who was coming after deboarding a flight
RAJU went to meet him. His friend was a bit dejected and told him that he went abroad 5 yrs ago for the job of a sweeper and floor mopping. Abroad he was made to work worse than a servant and he was forced to do several menial tasks like cleaning bathrooms etc..He was also made to clean drainage.
Worst part about the job was he had to sexually please his LADY boss as well. She made him dance naked in front of her female guests. She also used to lend his services for her female friends who had wild fantasies and literally used to sexually abuse him.
Since 5 years he was pleasing his lady boss and pleasuring all her sexual fantasies but recently a new person had applied for the job so she fired him instantly.
He had no money as the lady boss refused to give him even his salary saying she was not satisfied with his work. So now he came back home but was frightened whether he will find any job here either. Before leaving RAJU`S friend mentioned the name of the lady boss he was working under and on listening the name RAJU got tensed as it was the same name of his boss he was going now to work under.
RAJU sat in the chair in the airport and was worried. He thought that his life abroad would be better but after listening to his friend he was upset as it would be worse than a maid and he was more worried about the sexual fantasies of his lady boss.
RAJU thought that he had betrayed the love of his life PRIYA who loved him with all her heart and he played with her emotions.
PRIYA always gave RAJU true love and just to wear PANT & SHIRT he betrayed her.
After sitting and thinking for 3 hrs it was time for his flight.
But thinking about PRIYA , RAJU decided to go back to his house and win the trust and love of PRIYA at all cost.
RAJU went back home. His BHABHI GEETA opened the door but refused to speak to him thinking he might have planned something.
RAJU went to PRIYA who was inside in the bedroom. Her face was paled out as she was crying continuously and was inconsolable.
RAJU felt very bad and tried to speak with her but she refused. He tore his PASSPORT & VISA in front of her but still she was not ready to accept.
He went and pleaded with his BHABHI GEETA. She too refused.
RAJU decided that he will win TRUST of both HIS BHABHI GEETA & LOVE PRIYA at any cost and do whatever is necessary.
RAJU went to his cupboard and happily put on the RED FRENCH MAID DRESS and pleaded with PRIYA that he would rather stay a maid to her and serve his life. He told her that he would do whatever PRIYA wanted. But she still refused.
RAJU went to his BHABHI GEETA kneeled before her and said that he would never break her trust anymore.
RAJU told his BHABHI GEETA that he would forever remain a maid and always dress in FRENCH MAID DRESS and all he wanted was that both HIS BHABHI GEETA & PRIYA speak to him. He even burned all his PANT & SHIRT saying that he does`nt want to wear them anymore and vowed to never even touch a PANT SHIRT.
Seeing this BHABHI GEETA forgave him and told him that He should ask for PRIYA`s forgiveness and if she is unable then try to win her love back.
AAAAA (Friday, 16 December 2016 16:12)
THE ACTOR
RAJU went to PRIYA and begged for her forgiveness but still she was unable to forgive.
So RAJU decided to win her love back
He went to HIS BHABHI GEETA and asked her how he could win back his LOVE PRIYA.
HIS BHABHI GEETA told RAJU that she knew that even-though they went for 1 WEEK honeymoon they didnot celebrate their SUHAGRAAT.
So the best thing for RAJU to do would be to SEDUCE PRIYA by dancing for her in a dress which she likes the most and end it with SUHAGRAAT.
RAJU accepted. He got dressed in a maroon saree applied makeup and went for shopping first.
RAJU knew that PRIYA liked his clevage, back waist, thighs and the most is NAVEL. So he decided to buy dresses which would expose all these parts.
RAJU went to a mall and bought designer bra panty set, then he bought 2 sports bras which would be like normal blouse.
Then he went to skirts section and selected 4 miniskirts red, pink, blue, black.
Then he went to blouse section and bought matching blouses which were low cut exposing his cleavage and also will be showing his full navel when worn with a skirt
He bought all these things with the money PRIYA had given him before with which he wanted to buy shirts and pants.
But as destiny is he was buying skirts and blouses with that.
Then he went to makeup parlor and got his makeup done as suiting with the short skirts which he would be wearing.
Then he went to the house and told BHABHI GEETA that he would sing and dance in those short skirts and seduce PRIYA and try to win back her love.
His BHABHI GEETA accepted and she left as she did`nt want to disturb them.
Raju dressed in those miniskirts and danced for her to his full capacity by fully exposing {A SONG WOULD COME HERE DESCRIBED LATER} and which finally ended with PRIYA kissing RAJU`S navel and the beginning of their suhagraat
Next day morning RAJU`S BHABHI GEETA came and she saw both RAJU & PRIYA still in bed.
She felt happy and she did`nt want to disturb them.
The film ended on a happy note with RAJU fully becoming an obedient wife in SAREES to PRIYA & would always serve her and his BHABHI GEETA .
RAJU as promised earlier never again touched PANT & SHIRT. But sometimes he would dress skimpily IN SHORT SKIRTS just to seduce and tease PRIYA.
With this DIRECTOR RANI announced an end to the movie except 1 seducing song.
HERO AJAY {RAJU} was partly happy as movie shoot had been completed but he was still afraid about the seducing song.
AAAAA (Friday, 16 December 2016 16:13)
THE ACTOR
4th song:- EROTIC DANCE SONG
RAJU {HERO AJAY} would be Dressed IN 4 dresses i.e :- red, pink, blue, black skirts and matching blouses. for last black miniskirt dress he had to wear only sports bra and not even blouse as it would be the climax of seduction
IN all 4 dresses his midriff {navel} was exposed.
Even his cleavage was exposed as all were low cut blouses.
The song shoot began with PRIYA coming from first floor to ground floor on steps who would be followed by RAJU {HERO AJAY} dressed in red mini skirt and red blouse.
He would be dancing on the steps while coming down behind PRIYA
RAJU {HERO AJAY} felt difficulty as he had to shake both his chest as to show his cleavage and also shake his waist showing navel. This has to be with seductive facial expressions.
Director RANI made him do the shot many times till a perfect shot.
PRIYA had to act sad initially but seeing RAJU {HERO AJAY} seduction she was trying to control her laughter
After each shot PRIYA used to burst into laughter.
The next sequence in the song was when PRIYA after coming down sits in hall.
RAJU {HERO AJAY} now dressed in pink mini skirt and pink blouse had to climb on a bed in the hall and dance seductively. He had to move his hands seductively and also show seducing face expressions.
Then in the next sequence of the song RAJU {HERO AJAY} dressed in blue mini skirt with matching blouse would follow PRIYA as goes near fridge and starts drinking water
RAJU {HERO AJAY} asks her for some water. PRIYA pours the water in his mouth. BUT he had to open his mouth only half such that the remaining water tickles down his neck then blouse then the navel and finally go into his blue miniskirt tickling down along his thighs.
Then in the climax sequence of the song RAJU {HERO AJAY} dressed only in black sports BRA and ultra short black skirt seduces PRIYA as she sits on SOFA by going near her and shaking his waist and chest and romantically falling on her.
Now the song ends with PRIYA licking the navel of RAJU and finally kissing it.
With this DIRECTOR RANI announced the end of total film
RAJU {HERO AJAY} was relieved while HEROINE PRIYA & GEETA both teased AJAY that he acted better than a real girl and would definitely get an award for it
DIRECTOR RANI told RAJU {HERO AJAY} that he could go home and take rest but he had to come to the promotions of movie dressed in SAREE as whole story of the movie is based on that concept.
HERO AJAY requested DIRECTOR RANI that as he had a 2 movie contract with her atleast in the next movie he be projected as a HERO IN PANTS and not crossdressed.
DIRECTOR RANI replied that it was too early for discussion of the 2nd film and his role would be as per the theme and the story they choose which depends on the result of their 1st movie.
HERO AJAY accepted thinking that atleast in the next movie he would be a hero in pants.
But would he......?
TO BE CONTINUED
Kumaari (Friday, 16 December 2016 18:54)
@ AAAA wow Nice story gr8 plot and good story telling... Waiting for 2nd part... @satya ur story also too good to read...
Srs (Friday, 16 December 2016 21:46)
AAAAA nice keep going
ash (Saturday, 17 December 2016 04:42)
plz continue AAAAA
satya (Saturday, 17 December 2016 05:17)
wife to brother in law 19
i entered into room with milk and vikram was waiting there and i g there and sat on bed and gave the milk glass to him and keep my head down he take the glass and kept aside and lift my face up and ask talk now to me u r my wife r atleast think u r my friend in that way due to shyness i ddnt speak anything he asked how ru feeling in the girls attire and body i said ok and he said i want to see u fully once stand i didnt see u carefully when u became female.i stand nfront of him he see me carefully the structure and ask me to remove saree i want tosee u nude he said i shocked and said no why ur my wife he said ,then ithink i am his wife he can have a total access to my body i think he will have sex now and said i am tried now later we will do not now i said he said what ru saying i want to see ur body how ur female body is there i refused and he came towards me and i am going back atlast the wall is there he came near to me and i tightly breath mt air and he remove the saree pallu on top and removed the pleats and remved totally and kepp aside and slowly cooperated to him and i am in the blouse and petticoat and he saw my bresat and removed the thread of the peeticoat and i am in blouse bra and panty he ask to remove and said no and keep my hands on breast to cover he saw me and laugh and said u totally became female and he came near and take me to bed i said no and he removing the hooks of blouse while he removing the hooks one byone i am getiting sexualpleasure was increasing and i coperated him and he removed the bra also and my upper part was free and he saw my breast and pressing my breast and i am moaning and later he came to my navel and came to panty and he removed it also and he is keeping the hand near the vagina and askme tostand upi did he said ur perfectly nice figure and sexy ur looking no one will know ur transformation and ask me to sleep in bed and later he remved his all dress and hs cock was bg and long and becme hard by seeing me then i thnk his wfe s dead he didnt have sex after wife dead today he is having so he is happy i can see his happiness in his face he want to fuck me and enjoy the sex he came near to me and he started to insert his cock in my vagina and started fucking me and strokes was ncresing and i am getting pain i remember my wife also said i didint listen if i say also he wont listen so i bear the pain and moanng with sounds aaa aaa aaa aaa like that later after he released the sperms nmy vagina after some time my pain was reduced and i think girlswill have more sexualfeeling than boys like our night went we two sleep after some time nudely and go for sleep
alexvyaz (Saturday, 17 December 2016 19:56)
I like the story "THE ACTOR". It's always thrilling to read about gender role reversal family. I hope to see next part. ;)
Srs (Sunday, 18 December 2016 03:52)
Satya nice please don't stop continue ur story pleaseeee
bgs (Sunday, 18 December 2016 11:19)
Satya,please don't stop the story
SRS (Sunday, 18 December 2016 13:06)
"fashion part 16 # 490"
Next day when i woke up i dint know what happened to me, my jaws r paining i dint know what happen to me. I slowly looked up an i fell that my body is shivering due to cold. When i look up i was shocked that i was completely nude an my fake breast an vagina is clearly viable. I was scared an confused that who did that an when, while i was thinking my aunt was standing behind me an i get shocked an she seems to be angry, she came near to me an asked what the hell is this can u just explain about this, i dint know what to say n i started to say ia a aa am an on hearing this she shout what ur mermeing tell me y u have been doing like this please explain, she pulled my hand an steeped in front of full size mirror an told to look , i was shocked that i look like complete girl even though i was in fake vagina an breast. i look closely an saw that my eye brows r gone it was ultra thin arch eyebrow an my eyelash has been extend some how which looks like woman, an another think that make me shook completely is my jaws an teeth it looks completely different my teeth r in straight an white which looks like woman teeth an my lip is plum an pouty which looks like anushka sharma who did plastic surgery in lip i dont know but it looks like her. My aunt came neer to me an ask to explain about this i dint know what to say an i started to think if i told the truth to my aunt then my boss will throw 2 of them from the office an she will took all our property an me an my aunt come to the road so i cant able to tell her an told lie to her that i lost a bet to my boss thats y she made like this an my aunt dint believe an told ohh thats y u made a permanent tattoo in ur back lower hip an u priced ur navel an ur bum also looks big, an the breast an vagina doe sent seems like its fake iam doubt that u make an SRS surgery anyway i dint believe this made up story if its then ur boss had told me before , but i argue an told that it is true after she comes to conculation that if it is true than i also will make 1 bet to u that i will give an hour u have to remove this all bloody stuff otherwise u have to listen me what i will tell to do an then she left after i dint know what to do. i tryed my best but i failed to do after lot of struggle i cant take of the fake things an i started to cry. my aunt came after an hour an i still cant able to remove this stuff she got tense an say k ur wish but now u want to do what i tell an she throw some item in bed sn i was shocked on seeing that, she said that if ur not ready to remove this kind of stuff than u should were this thing an i started to beg an tryed to explain that this is been glued an cant able to remove but she dint try here what am trying to tell after she forced me to were the dress which she gave me an i saw that it was a bra,panties,petticoat,sleeveless less an backless blouse an saree. after seeing that i beg my aunt but she told that if u wore office dress code than it will short tops so that everybody can see ur naval priced an the tattoo at the back an i think for that an told to were it , i slowly started to were it first i wore bra an panties, after took the petticoat an blouse, the blouse looks strange when i wore it, it sleeveless an in back there is only 3 r 4 notch thread in the back an my aunt put the threads into it after she put the black saree to me an pined it. it felt like i dint were anything after she make me sit in the dressing table an started to do my hair she combed my hair 3 to 4 times an put the bangs in front of my fore head an did braiding from the mill of the hair an i can feel that it getting tight while each an every braid after when she complete an she took the hair jewelry an its look like tiny gold balls an she put it were the each braid is been crossed from my mill head to bottom, after she took jasmine flower an put 1 side of my hair an lift my jada an did in other side its looks like u type an she put the rose flower in the back center of my head. when she was complete i was in shame an seeing in mirror an i put my shoe, when she saw me she started to shout that due have any sens wearing a saree an ur putting shoes an i was horror on hearing that now what she is going to do, she came near to me an give black high satilo heels which i was shock an she forced me to put it after lot of struggle i wore it but its real tough to walk.
SRS (Sunday, 18 December 2016 13:07)
fashion part 17
she hold my hands for walk each an every step slowly i sat in car an v reached to our office. i beg my aunt that i will not come like this better i will take leave but my aunt dint lisson to it an she pulled out from car an v slowly walked into the lobby everybody was busy in work so nobody notice an there again huge crowd an v slowly entered to my boss cabin an on seeing me my boss lol she cant control her laughter this make me very humiliate an she came near to me an touch me an told ur wearing heels too good yesterday u argued to not were saree but today u wore it how, i dint reply an my aunt asked what i have told to her that its true that u make him bet an told to wore fake breast an vagina an asking she started to act an came near to me an told omg ur wearing breast an vagina an its fake were u get that i dint notice u , can u please show me an she pressed my boob, i was completely shock on her acting i dint know y she is doing like this. my aunt came near to me an told look dear until u dint tell the truth ur position will become worst that this, i tried again but she is not ready to here that, after my boss given memo for the yesterday matter telling that i was again DE promoter no am a office girl an ur out of cabin for work like supplying the documents for all etc,etc. i cant believe what is happening to me an y an i went out everybody is laughing at me an making fun an preethy came with her daughter an she told aunty u look beautiful, after my whole day went out like an laughing stock i just dint want to live an when my work to be complete i went to my boss cabin an told about this an my aunt too was there an after the think an told for that there is 1 solution so that u need not want to work here u can work in another place through this company. on hearing i relive an get relax, i thought at least i can escape from this all. she told that 1st time there is an add agency who needs our model which is pure south indian base, its an wedding jewelry add based so nothing like u have to were lots of jeweler an simply pose. b4 i say anything my aunt agreed she dint even consul to me.
SRS (Sunday, 18 December 2016 13:08)
fashion part 18
after when the work was complete she took me to the same parlor with preethy an her daughter. i dint know y they used to come with us for that she told that her daughter is comping for priced her ear. when v entered the parlor the resption welcome an told me that day by day iam become more beautiful i keep down my head an make me sit in the beauty chair after preethy daughter came an sat beside my chair an they priced her ear in both the side, i was watching her on that time i felt a sudden pain in my right ear when i look on right what happened again i felt the pain in left ear, they have priced my ear too. i started to shout on them for that preethy daughter told that iam a small girl i priced without any screem an ur such a big aunty y ur making screem, on saying that i became angry an slapped her. her mother an my aunt get angry an they discussed some thing after that they came near to me an hold my hair tightly an that lady priced 3 times above the 1st hole in both side of my ear. i was screaming for the pain opening my mouth an preethy told jokingly that close ur mouth other wise men r eager to put there cock in such a wonder cock sucking lips an make u blowjob an every body started to lol at that time my aunt came near to me an told well well what is here i can see that u have priced ur toung also. i closed my mouth an dont know what to say an she told i will have to do something about this an suddenly my two hands grabbed back side of my chair an they bring the pricing gun an priced my left an right side of my nose an put 1 small stud an they also priced my septum an put 1 hanging ring . i was crying an screening cause of pain, after when they have finished an v reached to our home an i went to my room an closed down an went to bed. i dont know about tomorrow what is going to happen to me an how they tease about the priced please help me i dont know how to escape from this all.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:05)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED {FROM#542}
THE ACTOR CONTINUED:-
The 1st movie of HERO AJAY, HEROINE GEETA & RANI was released and it was a sensational hit.
HERO AJAY became more famous with his girl name RAJI. He was also known as AJAYA.
He got calls from several producers and directors but he told them to wait as he had signed a two movie contract with DIRECTOR RANI.
He also got offers for endorsements of several cell phone companies and also home appliances but they all had a condition that he shoot for their add in SAREE. So he refused shooting for these adds.
During movie promotions also he felt awkward as DIRECTOR RANI always insisted in come for promotions in SAREE with LOW CUT BLOUSES to show his clevage. He was also supposed to flaunt his navel and look sexy during the promotions.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:07)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED:-
Then DIRECTOR RANI announced her next film would be a periodic film & would be of huge budget as their 1st film was massive hit.
She also told that the hit pair of HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA would be retained for the next film.
HERO AJAY felt very happy when DIRECTOR RANI announced a periodic film thinking he would get become very popular.
DIRECTOR RANI told she would ready the script in 1 month time and she told HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA to get ready by then and in the mean time they had to get ready in sword fighting.
DIRECTOR RANI also told HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA to sign a nudity clause.
HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA were initially a bit hesitant but when DIRECTOR RANI insisted that in periodic fims it is common to have sexual scenes they consented and signed.
While going DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY & HEROINE PRIYA to come after 1month suitably dressed,
HERO AJAY should dress like a KNIGHT with shining armor and sword and HEROINE PRIYA to dress only in BLOUSE and LEHENGA and she must wear chains on her belly and many bangles in her hands while showing her belly,waist and back completely as would be a normal attire of women in periodic films.
HERO AJAY became very happy thinking that in this movie he would be a real hero and never crossdress.
HERO AJAY also teased HEROINE PRIYA that during 1st movie she teased him a lot and now it is time for his chance for revenge and he would not spare her.
HEROINE PRIYA felt a bit tensed but she did not say anything.
After 1 month HERO AJAY and HEROINE PRIYA went and met DIRECTOR RANI.
HERO AJAY was dress like a KNIGHT with shining armor and sword and HEROINE PRIYA was dressed only in BLUE BLOUSE and LEHENGA and she wore chains on her belly that came from blouse while showing her clevage, belly,waist and back completely.She was amazing hot and was trying to cover her clevage and navel with a dupatta.
DIRECTOR RANI told them to sit in the waiting room as she was a bit busy and would later tell them the story.
In the waiting room HEROINE PRIYA sat on a chair was trying to cover her clevage and navel with a dupatta.
But as she was wearing a low cut blue blouse and only lehenga she had difficulty.
WHILE HERO AJAY was constantly looking at her and smiling.
HERO AJAY then said to her that he remembered all teasing she had done to him when he had dressed in SAREE during the 1st movie and he would suitably take revenge on her.
Listening this HEROINE PRIYA tried to say something but an arrogant HERO AJAY pulled out her dupatta.
She was covering her cleavage showing blouse with both hands crossed and pleading with HERO AJAY to give her dupatta back.
HERO AJAY told her to remember of the scene when he lost in the cricket match she pulled out the pallu of his VIOLET SAREE & then how the entire female team INCLUDING PRIYA pinched his navel and they made him to lie on a bike and SPUN A TOP on his NAVEL.
HERO AJAY told that he would give her dupatta back on the condition that HEROINE PRIYA allowed him to pinch her navel and also allow a top to be SPUN ON HER NAVEL.
As PRIYA had no option she consented.
HERO AJAY told her to lie on a table present there and he spun a top on her navel. HEROINE PRIYA felt tickling sensation.
HERO AJAY then pinched her navel very hard that she screamed.
HERO AJAY then gave her dupatta back. HERO AJAY also gifted her an ice pack and told her to keep the ice pack on his navel saying it would decrease the PAIN due to his pinching and HERO AJAY was constantly laughing and teasing.
HEROINE PRIYA took the ICE PACK and placed it on her navel where HERO AJAY had pinched her.
Seeing water tickle from the ice pack on her navel HERO AJAY teased her saying he was getting aroused and went out to have a tea.
HEROINE PRIYA was feeling embarrassed and her anger knew no limits. She was planning for an eventual revenge that HERO AJAY would remember for his entire life. She took the ICE PACK and kept it inside nearby fridge thinking that after revenge she would give back the ICE PACK to HERO AJAY.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:07)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
THEN DIRECTOR RANI came and she called both HERO AJAY & HEROINE PRIYA to her room.
DIRECTOR RANI then started telling the script for their 2nd movie.
This movie name was titled as RISE OF AMAZON KINGDOM.
Hearing the title HERO AJAY became tensed thinking it is a woman oriented film and he might have to crossdress again.
His fears became real when DIRECTOR RANI announced he had to crossdress and HEROINE PRIYA was smiling.
HERO AJAY requested the DIRECTOR RANI that he had felt lot humiliated for the 1st movie when he crossdressed.
He told DIRECTOR RANI that all are calling him with a girl name RAJI / AJAYA. He was also getting endorsements and adds only if he dresses in saree.
Hearing this DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that before the 1st film he was an unknown name for this world and today he was popular only because of his female avatar.
DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that GENDER ROLE REVERSAL films are the order of day and many films are coming with similar concept of their 1st movie
DIRECTOR RANI also told HERO AJAY that he would be shown as a ruthless prince and brilliant fighter in the 1st half and he need to crossdress only for the second half of the movie.
DIRECTOR RANI also gave him the option of selecting other boys who would also have to crossdress for the film along with him.
HERO AJAY had no other option so he consented.
He was more afraid that he had teased PRIYA and now he was again going to be humilated by her.
HEROINE PRIYA was just smiling and was planning for her revenge.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:09)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
Then DIRECTOR RANI announced that cast would be auditioned and selected the next week.
DIRECTOR RANI announced that all the guys who wanted to apply must follow these rules and regulation.
They were :-
1.The participant boy must be 20 to 25 yrs & send five photos
2.The participant must only wear traditional women clothes of 17th century in 4 photos. 5th photo need not be traditional
3.The participant must wear BLOUSE & Lehenga without dupatta in any 2 photos, Saree in 1 and half saree in 1 photo.
The 5th photo dress would be his optional{middi or mini skirt or knee skirt but not longer}
4.The participant must be flaunting his navel in atleast 2 and cleavage in 1 and show his back in remaining1.
The 5th photo flaunting is optional {thighs, or legs or back of his waist} and has to be unique
5.The participant must wear bangle in any two photos, necklace in any two photos and mangtika in any two photos.
6.The participant must wear half sleeved blouse, sleeveless blouse in above photos and it should be revealing his clevage
7.The participant Guy must be ready to model and wear any dress in the film as per requirement.
8.The participant Guy should be ready to flaunt and expose any part of his body in the movie. Not restricted to just navel, clevage and thighs
9. The participant guy must also sign a nudity clause ready for any sexual scene in the movie.
DIRECTOR RANI then announced for the required girl cast that all the girls who wanted to apply must follow these rules and regulation.
They were :-
1.The participant GIRL must be 20 to 25 yrs & send five photos
2.The participant must only wear traditional women clothes of 17th century in 2 photos. In the rest 3 photos she had to dress as a knight in shining armour with sword and give fearless expression.
3.The participant Girl must be ready to model and wear any dress in the film as per requirement.
4. The participant Girl must be ready to being teased by a boy as well as to tease a boy
5.The participant Girl should be ready to flaunt and expose any part of his body in the movie. Not restricted to just navel,
clevage and thighs
6. The participant GIRL must also sign a nudity clause ready for any sexual scene in the movie.
After this announcement several guys and girls applied for the film as the 1st film of DIRECTOR RANI was a superhit.
Eventhough the 1st movie was crossdressing seeing the fame its actors got no one had any restrictions.
AS this next movie was a periodic film with high budget, The Applicants were ready for any crossdressing and sexual scenes as well.
Seeing so many applications DIRECTOR RANI announced for auditions of the film.
In the auditions GUYS have to dress sexily wear women's clothes lehenga and choli with matching jewellary and makeup
exposing and flaunting their navel and clevage
In the auditions GIRLS have to dress as a knight in shining armor with sword and walk with self esteem.
The auditions began in presence of DIRECTOR RANI, HERO AJAY & HEROINE PRIYA.
HERO AJAY was feeling awkward to see so many guys dressed in different bright coloured lehenga cholis and exposing their waist and flaunting their cleavage.
HEROINE PRIYA was constantly giggling.
Finally they zeroed on 50 guys and 50 girls but they required only 30 guys and 30 girls.
So DIRECTOR RANI announced an extra competition of dance
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:09)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
DIRECTOR RANI said that she will give them a song and they have to prepare a dance on that song and perform on that song in front of her. But to make it a bit difficult she gave girls a boy's song and boys a girl's song.
DIRECTOR RANI told them boys have to dance on girl's song wearing girl's costume and exactly like girls.
And girl's have to dance on boy's song wearing boy's costume and exactly like boys.
It was easy for girls to dance on male song in jeans and t shirt.
But it was very difficult and embarassing for the boys to dance on girl's song. But they have to do it.
They started the preparations.
They first prepared the dance.
Then they removed their ghagra choli.
Then they wore their costume. It was a belly dancer costume consisting of a bra and belly dancer skirt. The costume was showing a lot of their skin. Their belly and legs were exposed.
Then they redid their makeup. and added eye liner, lipstick and kajal
When they came on the stage all the girls started laughing at them.
They were commenting and whistling on them.
The boys were feeling very shy.
Then they danced on the song.
It was very humiliating moment for them.
Finally the entire cast was selected and the preparations for the next movie began.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:13)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
START OF THE 2nd MOVIE:- THE RISE OF AMAZONS kingdom:- FIRST PART OF MOVIE:-
The movie begins with a great and wealthy kingdom ruled by KING RAJESH {HERO AJAY`S FATHER}
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} was the eldest son and general and also prince, heir apparent to kingdom.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} was a terrific warrior and sword fighter. He was a ruthless general
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY}used to always be the first to go to battles and he would bring back the crown of his opponents to his father KING RAJESH{HERO AJAY`S FATHER}
KING RAJESH{HERO AJAY`S FATHER} was so happy about his son victories that he forgot the misdeeds of his son AJAY.
PRINCE RAJU {Hero AJAY} had weakness toward girls and he used to rape any girl he liked in his kingdom.
He also used to rape the beautiful girls in the enemy kingdom.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} had a younger BROTHER
One day PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} BROTHER went for a swim in a nearby lake. There he along with his friends saw few village girls bathing in river. The girls had placed eir removed dresses on banks of river.
In order to tease them they silently went and stole their clothes and went and sat on top of a nearby tree.
When the girls came to know that their clothes were stolen & they were dressed only in bra and panties they were bathing they pleaded with the smiling boys who were lead by PRINCE RAJU`s BROTHER.
Despite their pleas PRINCE RAJU`s BROTHER insisted on them coming out dressed like that to outside and kiss each of the boy present there.
Only then they would get back their clothes or else they have to go to their home dressed only in the bra and panty they were wearing.
Fearing that, the girls came out of the lake 1 by one only in BRA & PANTIES and had to kiss each and every boy present there.
The girls felt humiliated but had no other option other than to kiss the boys dressed only in BRA & PANTIES.
When they asked PRINE RAJU`S BROTHER FOR THEIR DRESS he told them that just a kiss is not sufficent and they would have to strip completely and perform a naked dance for them.
The girls refused.
PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER then told them that it is a royal order and if they did not comply they would also be raped.
Fearing this the girls totally stripped and danced nudely.
Then they took their dresses from PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER and ran home crying.
They feared that even if they told anyone of the above incident only they would be punished as PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER belonged to royal family and no one would dare to punish him.
But one of the village girl thinking of the humiliation reported about this incident to a nearby secretive AMAZON WOMEN KINGDOM.
This secretive AMAZON WOMEN KINGDOM was all women kingdom ruled by QUEEN PRIYA {HEROINE PRIYA}
In this kingdom only girls were allowed to rule. Men were held as just slaves and had no rights
The kingdom was kept secretive as it did not have enough support and wealth.
Any women can come to this kingdom and report of any incident.
The guys who harmed the women would be captured, punished, crossdressed and turned as slave of that woman.
On hearing about the way the girls were stripped & made to dance QUEEN PRIYA became angry. She wanted to teach all the guys a lesson.
But her commanders told her that if they went to war with RAJU`S KINGDOM they would be outnumbered & die
SO QUEEN PRIYA made a plan to destroy them one by one.
1st on the list is PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER
2nd on the list is PRINCE RAJU
3rd is KING RAJESH.
First they laid a trap for PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER who was in a nearby FORT relaxing which was quite far from his capital.
First QUEEN PRIYA sent a beautiful girl. The girl LURES PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER out of the fort into jungles.
All the amazon warriors then surround and fall on the unsuspecting PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER.The village girls who were stripped by PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER were also present.
They make him strip down his knight`s armor and they tease him nakedly. Then he was given a PINK Blouse and LEHENGA to wear.
Then they applied makeup to him and turned him almost like a full girl. Then he was made to dance in front of all of them in girls dress.
Then the AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA asked him to come forward. He shyly went as he was wearing only PINK BLOUSE & LEHENGA.
AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA STRUCK HIS NAVEL WITH THE FLAT OF HER SWORD which was a meaning that he was now their slave
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 16:14)
Then the AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA thought of capturing the fort in which RAJU was there as it would serve them a purpose for waging war and building a new kingdom.
They redressed PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER in his KNIGHT DRESS and took him to his fort keeping a hidden knife behind him.
The unsuspecting guards of fort thought that PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER bought few damsels for his display and unsuspectingly opened the fort.
Once inside the fort QUEEN PRIYA killed all the guards and opened the doors for all her warriors.
Within minutes the entire fort was conquered by QUEEN PRIYA.
But QUEEN PRIYA did not want KING RAJESH PRINCE RAJU to know of these events so she made PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER write letter to his father for a secluded and disturbed life for few days.
In those days QUEEN PRIYA enlisted all the women in fort to join them and were dressed as knights and started learning sword fighting.
The men in the fort were made to dress only in BLOUSE & LEHENGA and were mere slaves to everyone there.
The men including PRINCE RAJU`S BROTHER was dressed in BLOUSE & LEHENGA and had to dance as well as please the girls present there.
AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA then even declared that their kingdom would now include the fort and jungle surrounding.
She declared herself a sovereign ruler and dared the surrounding forts knights for a 1 on 1 sword fight.
If she lost she would the fort which she had would be given to the captor and she would be turned into a slave and serve her captor for her whole life.
If she won the knight whom she defeated had to give her his fort, then dress like a woman and serve her for entire life.
Many KNIGHTS laughed at this proposal of a girl challenging them and many came forward.
QUEEN PRIYA defeated them easily. Some by force while some by guile.
For all those knights whom by force or guile she subdues QUEEN PRIYA treats them shamefully.
First QUEEN PRIYA despoils them of their armor, and clothes them in women's garments BLOUSE & LEHENGA.
Then with threats she compels them to work to earn their food--to spin, to card, to sew, to wash, to wring.
QUEEN PRIYA gives them nothing to eat but bread and water, or some such feeble food, to disable them from attempting revenge.
They even had to dance and please her sexually.
But if with manly disdain any of them withstand her insolent commands, QUEEN PRIYA causes them to be immediately hanged.
QUEEN PRIYA conquered many surrounding forts and gave the women inside the fort power while men in the fort were feminised and become slaves to their women.
One day this news reached KING RAJESH.
He sent his SON PRINCE RAJU{hero AJAY} with a huge force to attack and conquer all the forts in hands of AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} came with a huge force but was tricked by the jungle.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} lost so many men as he did not knew properly about the jungle while QUEEN PRIYA knew each and every part of jungle and has placed her warriors accordingly.
Fearing he loose more men he sent an emissary to QUEEN PRIYA requesting a 1 on 1 fight.
QUEEN PRIYA accepted and put her condition that if PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} LOST he would have to become a slave and serve her all his life only wearing BLOUSE and LEHENGA.
If she lost she would be his slave and serve him for rest of his life
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} accepted and both were begging for the battle the next day
WITH THIS DIRECTOR RANI SOUNDED CLAP AND ENDED THE FIRST PART OF FILM SHOOT
Alexvyaz (Sunday, 18 December 2016 19:15)
It's nice to read about the Change of the kingdom to the gender role reversal QUEENDOM. ;)
I like your parallel histories in the film and reality.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:30)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
HERO AJAY {PRINCE RAJU} was happy that till now he had not crossdressed and did a commanding role
HEROINE PRIYA too was happy as she had an equally commanding role but was waiting for the revenge on HERO AJAY as he had teased her by spinning top on her navel and pinching her navel and later giving an icepack to her on the day before the begining of the film shoot.
HEROINE PRIYA had placed that icepack in a near by fridge and was planning for a revenge that HERO AJAY would never forget in his entire life. She also had planned to give him that same ice pack after teasing him
SECOND PART OF THE FILM:-
DIRECTOR RANI began the second part of film shoot with the 1 on 1 war sequence between PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} & QUEEN PRIYA {HEROINE PRIYA}
As soon as day of their fight dawned, the warriors, PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} & AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA {HEROINE PRIYA} mindful of the fight before them, duly prepared themselves,
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} DRESSED as beseemed a knight, and
AMAZON QUEEN PRIYA {HEROINE PRIYA} in the way she liked best to dress in a KNIGHT`S SHINING ARMOR
Over that she wore for defence a small coat of mail. Oil her legs were painted buskins, laced with bands of gold; her scimitar was lashed at her thigh in an embroidered belt; and on her shoulder hung her shield, decked with glittering stones, so that it shone like the full moon.
Thus she came forth, stately and magnificent, from her fort, guarded with many other female warriors who waited
on her to defend her
Then forth from his tent came PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} ,armed from head to foot, and first entered the lists.
The trumpets sounded, and the fight began
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:31)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
The Amazon QUEEN PRIYA flew at PRINCE RAJU frantic with fury, but the more she raged the more resolute he stood. She hewed, she thrust, she lashed, she laid on every side.
At first the PRINCE RAJU bore her blows, and forbore to return them; but presently in his turn he began to attack, and so mightily did his strokes fall on her steel armour, that flakes of flame were seen flashing all round her as if she had been on fire.
But QUEEN PRIYA with her shield so well warded off the danger of his keen weapon that she safely guarded her life, until at last, with one stroke of his blade, PRINCE RAJU cut away half her shield and teased her to get ready to become his slave whore.
This so enraged QUEEN PRIYA that she flew at PRINCE RAJU with her sharp scimitar, like a bear on her prey, and wounded him badly in the thigh that he sank and his sword fell from his hand.
As soon as QUEEN PRIYA saw that PRINCE RAJU was standing there beside her with no weapon in his empty hands, she flew at him with fresh cruelty, and though he kept retiring she laid on him huge redoubled strokes.
The more he meekly entreated her to stay her hand, the more she increased her merciless attack.
PRINCE RAJU could do nothing but shun her angry onslaught, and ward off with his shield alone, as well as he could, the fierceness of her rage.
Finally PRINCE RAJU begged QUEEN PRIYA to stop her strokes, and said that he would yield himself; yet she would not hearken, nor give him time to breathe, till he had delivered to her his shield, and submitted himself to her mercy in the open field.
Then QUEEN PRIYA struck him with the flat of her sword, in token of true subjection to her power.
Seeing their mighty warrior PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} falling His entire army which was watching their 1 on 1 battle lost hope and started to run.
But QUEEN PRIYA had locked the exit door of fort.
Having no other option they to surrendered.
They were then led to thraldom.
QUEEN PRIYA ordered them to be disarmed of all the knightly ornaments.
In place of these she had them shamefully dressed in woman's clothes
First they wear shaved from top to bottom and then applied a special cream which wouldnot allow hair to grow on any part of the body other than their head hair.
Then each of them were given a bra & panty to wear.
This was followed by PINK BLOUSE & LEHENGA. PRINCE AJAY was given special RED BLOUSE & LEHENGA
The Blouse was lowcut designed to show their clevages. Then their eyes were reshaped as girls, apllied kajal, lipstick applied dangling earrings to all of them and also a wig.
All of them were made wear chains on their belly and many bangles in their hands.
All of them were showing their belly,waist and back completely.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:33)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
Thus dressed, she brought them from the battlefield into a long, large chamber, decked with memorials of the ruin of many knights whom she had subdued
Entering, they saw around them many brave knights whose names they knew well, who were there bound to obey the Amazon's arrogant law, all spinning and carding in an orderly row.
The captive knights were forced through hunger and want of food to do the work appointed them, for nothing was given them to eat or drink, but what their hands could earn by twisting linen twine, cooking, sweeping.
Each 1 was given a designated task. thus hard is it to be the slave of a woman! BUT ALL obeyed her without murmuring
QUEEN PRIYA and gave a distaff to FEW OF THEM and told them that they should spin thereon flax and tow.
QUEEN PRIYA appointed few as sweepers, few as cleaners few as dancers.
But QUEEN PRIYA told PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} that she had a special treat for him and she took him to her personal chambers which was a large bedroom which had a huge bed.
Beautiful flowers were tied to the bed as though it was a firstnight bed.
Few of her personal maid were present there.
QUEEN PRIYA then sat on bed & pulled PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} on bed.
Due to sudden pull he lie on the bed on his back.
As he was dressed only in RED BLOUSE & PINK LEHENGA his clevage & navel were in full front view of the QUEEN PRIYA & all her personal maiden who were present in that room.
Felling shy PRINCE closed his eyes AND TRIED TO COVER HIS MAKEP FACE.
First queen PRIYA kissed his pink coated lips
Then QUEEN PRIYA tore out the blouse and lehenga he was wearing. Now he was only in RED COLOURED BRA & PANTY.
Then even his panty was torn.
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was feeling a bit shy as now he was only dressed in red bra in front of QUEEN PRIYA and also her personal maiden
But PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was happy thinking he would be having sex with PRIYA.
But to his surprise he was turned to his back abruptly and he started feeling something on his back. He later felt a sudden JERK on his ASS & to his horror he felt something which was pushed inside his asshole.
He started sceaming and crying was terrified and tried to move away.
But PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was held firmly by PRIYA that he could not move even an inch.
PRIYA started pushing the object even deeper in PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} ASS eventhough he was screaming and begging PRIYA to leave him.
PRIYA was laughing so were the other women present in that room.
After continuously inserting for 1 hour PRIYA removed the object from PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} ass.
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was crying with pain and he was unable to move. He was still screaming to stop & crying unconsolably.
Then DIRECTOR RANI clapped & announced that their second part of film shoot was complete.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:34)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
HERO AJAY with great difficulty got up from the bed. He was dressed only his red bra as all others were torn by PRIYA
HERO AJAY was still feeling pain & crying. He even didnot remove his hands from his ass.
He was catching his ass and crying he came to DIRECTOR RANI & shouted on her that he was not informed of this scene. But she replied that HERO AJAY consented to all sexual acts before the start of the film.
DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that she didnot tell the actual content of the scene to him as if he knew priorly, he would not have given those expressions.
DIRECTOR RANI told him that the scene required of a rape scene and it was difficult to get proper expressions if he knew its content earlier.
DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that the way he screamed and cried was necessary for the film scene.
DIRECTOR RANI told HERO AJAY that she had discussed the scene earlier with PRIYA and was happy with the way scene came.
HERO AJAY was still feeling pain and was still holding his ass.
SEEING THIS HEROINE PRIYA was giggling while DIRECTOR RANI told him that he can take rest for 1 week before the beginning of final portion of filmshoot.
HEROINE PRIYA came toward HERO AJAY laughing and gave him the ice pack which he gave her earlier saying that he require it more than her.
HEROINE PRIYA teased him saying that by keeping ice on his ass his pain would decrease and she left smiling thinking her revenge was complete.
HERO AJAY took the ice pack and left.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:37)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED:-
After 1 week the third part of film shoot started.
When HERO AJAY came to sets he was teased by HEROINE PRIYA about how his pain in ass was to which HERO AJAY felt ashamed and could not even see into her eyes.
DIRECTOR RANI began the final part of film shoot :-
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} after being fucked was by QUEEN PRIYA was made to dress in PINK BLOUSE & PINK LEHENGA. His makeup was redone to being a perfect girl.
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} dejected was then appointed by QUEEN PRIYA as her comfort and he needed to daily please her sexually.
That night he was dressed in RED DESIGNER SUHAGRAAT SAREE.
PRINCE RAJU was fearing he might be fucked by QUEEN PRIYA again.
But he felt happy when he knew that another comfort would also accompany him.
When he went to see other comfort who was also dressed in suhagraat designer saree he went near her.
To his horror he found that it was none other than his brother.
He was looking like his sister and was similarly dressed as him except tat he was wearing a midsleeved blouse and a black saree. Other than that they were looking similar.
Both were shocked on seeing 1 another.
But didnot have the time to explain as they were called by QUEEN PRIYA.
They entered her room with a milk glass each.
PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} was dressed in red saree while his brother was dressed in black saree.
They both offered milk to QUEEN PRIYA.
QUEEN PRIYA drank the milk and told both the brothers to lie down.
She removed pallu of their saree.
She played with both their navel for sometime.
Then were told to lie on back. She played with their back waist region between blouse and lehenga for sometime.
She them pulled down their LEHENGAA and PANTIES.
Now both were only in their blouses.
She told them to bend at edge of bed and lift ass up.
Both were afraid thinking they would be fucked again but did not dare to say any word.
As usual QUEEN PRIYA TOOK A BIG DILDO AND FIRST APPLIED LUBE TO RAJU`S BROTHER ASS & FUCKED RAJU`S BROTHER.
After fucking RAJU`S BROTHER in different positions for 1 hour she finally left his brother and went near PRINCE RAJU.
AAAAA (Sunday, 18 December 2016 21:43)
THE ACTOR CONTINUED
QUEEN PRIYA told RAJU that she had used up all her lube on RAJU`S BROTHER and now he had to suck her dildo or else he would feel even more pain.
PRINCE RAJU tried but he could not as he had never done before.
QUEEN PRIYA told him it was his fault and he would now feel more pain and she started fucking him.
She then immediately lifted PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} up and took to the wall and now HE was standing in front of a wall hugged her tightly still .
She then lift one leg up of me and placed strap-on on his ass.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} begged her to do it soft but she slapped him & inserted it tightly at first only tip went and after some forceful insertions complete 8 inch weapon tore his ass & he was crying like a girl who lost her virginity to a mass man. PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} was still begging her, but she started stroking where in no time she lifted his second leg also he was on air with strap-on in his ass and she lifted him and fucking him in the air itself.
Then after some hot fucking she placed on the ground and forcibly take PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} to the bed and made him doggy style and started fucking.
PRINCE RAJU{HERO AJAY} screamed in pain but was fucked ruthlessly in different positions by PRIYA for 1 hour.
For 1 hour PRINCE RAJU {HERO AJAY} WAS SCREAMING and shouting in pain while all others in the room including heroine PRIYA WERE laughing and enjoying each and every scene.
Finally DIRECTOR RANI ANNOUNCED the shot was complete.
HERO AJAY wearing only his red blouse and catching his ass went and told DIRECTOR RANI of the difficulty in that scene.
DIRECTOR RANI told him that pain would be common and he would get adjusted to it after few days.
He was told to relax in his room for sometime before next shot .
He was to tired to wear anything.
He was already in blouse and just wore a towel and went to his room.
to be continued
Neelima (Sunday, 18 December 2016 22:24)
Hi
Srs (Sunday, 18 December 2016 23:31)
Satya please continue ur story pleaseeee
Meri (Monday, 19 December 2016 00:51)
AAAAA
Please do add some discription about queen priya wear.
Kumaari (Monday, 19 December 2016 01:13)
AAAA simply superb... Keep tat coming... Satya continue ur story too...
satya (Monday, 19 December 2016 10:04)
brother in law to wife 20
we went for sleep vikram slept but i am not getting sleep now i am getting sex mood more and i rub my breast with hands and kept sleep on vikram hugging tightly and we both are nude and sleep and next day morning i wake up and i gathered all the dresses and kept at one side and te towel and take saree blouse petticoat and inners and kept on bed went for bath and removed towel and mangalsutra was hanging on myneck and take out and kept on shelf and took bath and tie towel up to breast and came out vikram was wake up he is waiting to me and he took the saree in hand and said take dress and wear infront of me i want to see my friend satya sorry my sexy wife how she will wear and behave i got shy ididnt get any word from mouth and he said ur my wife yesterday i saw u nude no problem wear he said i removed the towel and whle taking petticoat my breasts are bouncing i kept one hand to cover breast and take petticoat and wear from top and bra take it to front and hook it and turn the bra towards back and adjusted the breasts in bra cup later came blouse keep all hooks and saree came last i wear it and he got stunnedme wearing the saree perfectly and tie my pleats below my navel and my cleavlage was visible and loking sexy to him and later i removed the hair toweland keepthe hair loose he came and ask me r u comfortable with saree he said i said i am okbut not evrytime t is heavy he said u can change to normaldress said mil said to wear sarree and come and take bath and come i said and went out of room to kitchen due to the sex at night i am not able to walk properly and mom was there and she saw me and ask wear is mangalsutra i said in desk she scolded me and said u have to wear it every tme u must not remove and went to deskand take and kept n my neck and it is hangng out od saree mom said mangalsutr must be inside saree it must not be out side and u must not remove toe rings whle u r walkng it will tells u that ur married and having famly and must keepbindi bangles and earrings coplesory and give coffe to me and said i will go and give to vikram and callng vikram mil came and said u must not call vikram by his name he is ur husband u have to gve respect to himand vkram went to office and came at evening and aganin night came wear the nighty and go toroom this tme he himself removed his and my dress and hestand and said me to sit and said to take hs cock and shake it and keep in moutn and swallow sperms he saidi shocked because lke ths did too my wfe also now i have to obey his order and i am doing and my breasts are bouncing and i taste it and he ask me how it is and went for sleep next day got letter from ffice said to join by next week and i got the marrage certificate and i ask about the office mater to mom and vikram and they accept it
Alexvyaz (Monday, 19 December 2016 13:53)
I would like to see the scene similar to the beginning of the film about the Amazons kingdom, only with female knights teasing boys in bras and panties. ;)
shila (Monday, 19 December 2016 22:34)
AAAAA niice story
Srs (Monday, 19 December 2016 23:45)
Satya nice keep going
shila (Tuesday, 20 December 2016 00:21)
AAAAA. Please make a third film with hero ajay and heroine priya
Here suggation for you
1) heroine priya father was a don and under world king of india. He wished his legecy another level by his son and his son became the world king and don. A baby girl born by his wife, who is priya . after priya birth his wife died. First priya father unhappy with baby girl. Later he acept his girl as son.
2) later all aceapt priya as a boy. After 25 years underworld singal handly rule by priya.
3) police want arrest heroine priya but no avidance against her. Polic want a undercover mission lead by ajay, who is a cbi officer.
4)in this mission , first hero ajay propose priya. He said he deeply love with her, and want to marry her. Priya reject it, and said 25 years of her life she live like a men. She did not want to some body wife.
5) after 1st mission failed. Police convice ajay to go another mission. Where he cross dress and propose priya and want to her wife. After priya convice his father and marry ajay, where priya is groom and ajay is bride.
6)after marriage ajay live in priyas house as priya wife. He secreatly search proof of priya crime.
7) after 3 month ajay collect manny proof of priya crime and her illegle buissness. But he did not send proof to polile. Becaise he is fall in love with her.
8) priya gang know that ajay a cbi officer . when priya know that , priya want to kill ajay. But she relise she is love with him. And forgive him.
9) ajay told priya that he is no a cbi officer anymore. Now he is wife and queen of priya. Priya said under world know me as king. Verry soon underworld know you as queen. We rule underworld.
10) AAAAA please write it. Here describe priya has handsome hunk wear shirt , trouser, jeans , tuxedo , lathers pant, jacket. Boot, shoe etc. Ajay as sexy item wear stylish saree, mini skrit, gown, short dress
. also wear high heel, sandal , bangle , payel, bindi, sindoor , mangal sutra, toe ring , shoulder gloves, wedding ring etc.
ash (Tuesday, 20 December 2016 05:19)
great story AAAAA . waiting for next part
i would love to see boys getting their ear pierced ,
and take them to salon , get them waxed and make them get eyebrows done too
satya (Tuesday, 20 December 2016 11:58)
brother in law to wife 21
next day my mom and mil left home they went t thier home from now me and vikram only there and next month vikram daughter wll come and from tomorrow onwards i have to go to office i am thinking how to go to office and how to face my friends and collegues they dont no about my surgery and my marrage and i am going after the long back and today evening vikram came to home and i said to him and i said my problems to him vikram i cant wear sarees every time in home ur mom and my mom said to me wear everyday i dont like this its heavy and please allow me to wear jeans and shirts and salwars in home as well as outside and he said ok satya i can understand and wear what u want but when mom and mil came u have to wear but wear the good lookng dresses not like esposing and tightfits if any one saw it must be look good and behave like girl hiding breast with dppata or go out by tieing scarf on face u know how we will comment girls while dressning and behaviour keep in the mind u r a girl now what about ur office u have to go tommorow what u will wear i said will go in saree and tellmy situation to manager and i dont have any office costumes and jeans we will go and buy i said he said ok ready in 10 mins and i went to my room and remove saree and select salwar and wear and keep bndi and came out it take me 30 mins for ready he said why girls will take so much time to ready u got answer satya he said because it was late and we came out and he start bike today i wear salwar so i asked will sit on bothsides he said ok after lng time i sit on bothsaides and he is driving and one time he kept break mybreast has touches his back i shout and drve slowly he said u only say tome to do for my wife so i did now he said i got schock and now i am fellng now i come to know how girls will feel and we buy some jeans and tops andvikram select one long frock to me and said me to try and it need some one to fix at back s ask salesgirl to come and we went for changng room and i remove my top and bttom i am in bra and panty and she saw my structure and said ur havng nice structure and ur hubby is happy withu i think and i got shy and wear it and she tighten at back and came out and i am lookng like a heroin wearing it vkram ask to pack it and we came back to home nextday mrning i wake up and wear saree and ready for going to office and take scooty and went to officemy manager is lady i took appointment and meet her by name satya no one recognsed me and i get nto her cabin and sad good mornng mam i amsatya and show my srs and marrge certfcate she got schock and ask what happen and i said to her she sttunned to listen and sak me stand up and she saw me totally she thnk one was a nce guy now a wfe to one person wearing mangalsutra toerings sareeblouse lke traditonal housewfe and she said want to change all your documents ids and she said i will send to another team wear most ladies will be and u will be comfortable to work i said thanku mam and she said u came come to office in slwar or pnjabi or western no need to wear saree i sad thank u mam and went for seat to work and by evenng all know about me and came to me and askng and sad we wll go out for dinner i said no my husband s thier and i am wife i want to go i said they shocked the dramatic changes on me and one frend name sunil me and he was every timecomment on girls abut ther dressing and seeng breast through one side ofsaree and sayng breast was saggng means she completed sex wth her husband last night and walking styles like that sunil came to me i shocked to see him because we coment on girls now i am a grrsl he cane see my brestfrm blouse which one side sareecan visible andbras and sexy structure how wll coment me now i am a girls he said how r u now and i said ok andhe lift later last i went to home and remove saree blouse and bra and nudely i am n bed i am feeling free wthout dress and vkremcame suddenly by opening door of duplcate lock and closed came to bedroom and see me nude cover my breast with he laugh and he got mod and he fucked me i am enjoyng next day i take bath and come he kept saree on bed said happy birthdya and said to wear saree and wearbre panty pettcoat and blouse i dnt because of back hook and i take and i ask vikram to keep hooks he kept it and wear saree and we went for temple and after ne month daughter came and she call me mom and i got happy she is callng mom and i cant be mom or dad realtime and living life happily with vikram and my lovely daughter this is my story
the end
Srs (Tuesday, 20 December 2016 23:42)
Satya please continue another story soon
Ajit (Tuesday, 20 December 2016 23:55)
Satya plz continue brother in law to wife more
satya (Wednesday, 21 December 2016 11:12)
thank u for ur supporting above story is pure imaginaton not a true story. the main part of story was taken from one story plot and according to that i narrated above from my writings
if u want more stories please suggests some taglines according to that i will write
thank u
Priya (Wednesday, 21 December 2016 19:47)
Satya ur storie very super n wonderful. Please like write girl friend make his boyfriend change to her girl friend
ex-q-zit (Thursday, 22 December 2016 15:42)
Hi All,
You can find my latest story 'THE PERFECT FUTURE' on amazon at https://www.amazon.com/dp/B01MY0WKAF
Alternatively you can access it at the amazon site of your country of residence by typing EX-Q-ZIT and in my list of books you can access the above story.
For all those who couldn't afford/access my previous story 'YOU ARE THE WIFE, I AM THE HUSBAND' I shall post it in my blog tomorrow for a few days so that you can read it.
I am currently writing a new story called 'THE ULTIMATE SACRIFICE' where a circumstances make a guy become the wife of his mother-in-law. Shall let you know once its done.
ishu (Friday, 23 December 2016 00:49)
Ex Q zit can't wait pls post ur story
Priya (Friday, 23 December 2016 02:00)
Ex q zit thanks for privilege please post stories soon we are exited...
Jay (Friday, 23 December 2016 03:34)
Ex q zit pl post story
Divya (Friday, 23 December 2016 06:15)
Ex q zit thank u for ur Christmas gift pls posted the story soon..
ash (Friday, 23 December 2016 07:40)
ex-q-zit waiting for story
and really appreciate what you are doing
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 08:46)
This is not my stories but i like this type of stories enjoy.....
There is an all women family in our village. The widow mother &
her three daughters. Labanya is the eldest. She is 26 years old.
Though she is beautiful & has a good figure of 34-26-34, 56 kg
weight & 5’7” height, no one in the village likes her for her
tomboy type nature. Her family is poor & her mother worked as
domestic cook in some of the rich families in our village.
My father expired 3 years ago. He was the librarian in the village
school. After her accidental death my mother got a clerical job in
the same school. I completed my graduation from the nearest town
college & after examination I came to village for 2 months &
waited for the result out. Since I was good in study, I was sure
about good result in graduation & prepared myself for higher
study. I also have a sister who is studying plus two in our
village school. She is 3 years younger to me & 18 years old.
Since my mother & sister have to go school early in the morning,
she does not get time to cook in the morning. So, she hired the
widow for cooking @Rs.1200/- per month. Since the widow is a good
cook we do not have any problem.
Every morning within 9 A.M. my mother & sister goes for school. I
stay in the home & study. One day the widow did not come to cook.
The next day again she was absent. Before leaving for school my
mother asked me to go her house & know the matter.
Her house was in another side of the village. This is the poorest
locality of the village. I went her home. Labanya, the eldest
daughter comes out from the room. She does not recognize me. I
give her my name. Then she recognizes & requests me to come
inside. I go & discover that the widow is ill. She promised me
that if she is unable to go tomorrow then Labanya will go & cook
instead.
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 08:48)
Next day Labanya comes to cook. She is not so good cook & also she
is very slow. So, my mother & sister were compelled to go the
school without eating. Labanya told them that, after completing
cooking she will take the food in Tiffin career & will go to
school before the launch hour.
That happens for the next 6 days. Every day she completed her
cooking after one hour my mother & sister went to school. Then she
packs the food in the big tiffin career & goes to school. On the
7th day after cooking she comes to my room. I was alone in my
home. She begins to start talking. She told me about her
childhood, how her father died without getting good medical
treatment, how she stopped to study after getting good marks in
plus two exams. She got very emotional. I felt pity about her &
wanted to give her a lump some money. That makes her angry. “I do
not need your money. I do not need your pity. After seeing you I
liked you. That leads to love. Like love at first sight. I want to
marry you. I want to be the bahu of this family. Will you marry me
Mridul? I will be a good wife to you.”
I am in a fix. I don’t like her. I never felt like that. Besides,
there is a huge difference in our status. We belong to higher cast
& they belong to lower cast. Also they are no match with us in
money. I have plan for my forthcoming life. I have to complete my
post graduation, then I will do my MBA & then I have to get a good
job in a good MNC.
So, I definitely reject her rudely & advice her not to keep those
things in her mind. That makes her very angry & she said,”you have
done a big mistake by rejecting me. I will make rest of your life
very painful.”I laughed.
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 08:49)
Next day she came to cook wearing a transparent white sari.
Immediately after my mother & sister gone to school she comes to
my room & suddenly hugged me tightly. Then she begins to start
kissing all over my face. Then suddenly she tears her sari &
blouse & bra & makes herself half nude. I also become very excited
with a sudden physical movement by Labanya. Soon she made me nude
& takes my erect penis into her pussy.
Keeping me very tightly in her arms & taking my erect penis in her
pussy she begins to shout for help. I sensed her plan & wanted to
free myself but I did not succeed. She has huge power in her arms.
Immediately after her shouting for help, some people come inside
my room & take her away from me. They begin to bit me. I cried.
But they don’t stop. Then some elders of the village came. They
rescued me. But they order them to tie my hands & legs with rope
tightly.
After half an hour the sarpanch comes. The elders tell them what
happened. He orders to arrange salishi sabha at 4p.m. in the
village community hall. Till then, I will be tied with ropes &
some villagers will guard me.
15 minutes later my mother & sister come. After hearing everything
from the villagers my mother comes to me & slaps. I wanted to tell
her everything but she did not listen.
At 3-45p.m. the villagers took me to the community hall. All the
villagers are present there. Sarpanch takes his seat. Then he asks
my family to sit right side of the front & asks Labnya’s family to
sit left side of the front. Though Labanya’s mother is ill, she is
present here. Labanya is also present. Her full body is cover with
a blanket. She did not comb her long hair, what acting!
First Sarpanch asks Labanya to tell what happened. She told them
that at the first day I offered her money in exchange of physical
intimacy with her. When she refused, every day I irritated her &
finally I raped her today. I Shout & tell the sarpanch that every
bit of her words is damn lie. He does not believe. She had also
some fake witness. They supported her story.My mother & sister are crying. The sarpanch asked them whether
they will accept his decision or he will advice Labanya to go to
police. My mother says that she will accept his decision.
Then sarpanch says, since Mridul raped her, he has to marry her.
“Will you agree to marry her Mridul?”I have no other way. I
accepted. Then he asks Labanya. Labanya says,”ok. I will marry
him. But, I have a condition. The sarpanch surprises.”I don’t
understand your word.”the sarpanch says. ”Sarpanchji, He took my
virginity in a brutal way & if I accept to marry him, he will rape
me rest of my life. That is not punishment. That is a reward to
him. That is what he wanted. So, I want humiliation. I will marry
him as groom & he will be bride & rest of the life he has to spend
as my wife & I will be his husband for the rest of my life. If it
is accepted by his family & him, only then I will be agreeing.
Otherwise I will go to the police.”
I shouted. But none listen to me. The sarpanch discusses the
matter with the elders & after ten minutes he says,” Ok. The
proposal is accepted. There is an auspicious marriage date after 1
month. Till then Mridul’s mother & sister will prepare him for his
marriage. And, in the mean time, if Mridul escapes, the entire
responsibility goes to them. They will be punished for that. The
meeting is over for now.”
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 08:54)
Nxt day...At exactly 9pm the sarpanch takes his seat. He then says,” you
know what type of punishment we gave to Mridul for his behavior
upon Labanya & his family also agreed upon the punishment. But,
what I now come to know that they did not obey my order & tried to
bribe Labanya’s family.”
My mother tries to interrupt, “No, this is not true…”The villagers
shout at her.
Then again the sarpanch says, “This is a bigger crime & so, all of
the family members deserve punishment. After discussing the matter
with the other members of the committee, we have decided that the
fixed marriage between Labanya & Mridul will be held on tomorrow
instead of one month later. There will be two more marriage
tomorrow. Mridul’s mother & sister will be married with the
brothers of Labanya. Labanya’s elder brother Lalan will marry
mridul’s sister & Labanya’s younger brother will marry mridul’s
widow mother. I am asking the village girls to prepare them for
tomorrow’s marriage. The meeting is over for now.”
Hearing the ordeal of the sarpanch my mother fainted. My sister
started crying.I silently think how our fate is going to change.
The village girls took us with them to our home.
In the night we never talked with each other. We only changed our
dress & went to bed.
Next day, in the morning, some of the village girls & married
women came to our home to prepare us for the marriage. Among them,
there were some, who worked as beauticians in a beauty parlor of
nearby town & used to prepare the would-be brides to their marriage.
First they talked with us. My mother and sister were crying. I was
nervous. Mother asked them to request the sarpanch to withdraw the
ordeal. They knew that is not possible. So, they advised my mother
to stay calm. My family was very much known to them & they had
regards for our family & so, they understood somewhere there were
some sorts of conspiracy. But, they were like doll to the
sarpanch. So, they had no courage to talk against the sarpanch’s
ordeal.
We understood, we had no other option but to ready ourselves for
the upcoming marriages in evening. One of the elderly lady told my
mother, “ Sumita ( My mother’s name), you both go from here. We
will prepare both of you after noon. We do not need more than 2
hours to prepare you. But, you know, to prepare Mridul as bride,
we need much more time. So, we should better start with him now.”
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 08:56)
They took me to the other bed room where there were attached bed
room available. Since this is the bed room for my mother & sister,
so, there were a man-size mirror, a dressing table & make up &
dressing kits & other things any lady needs to keep in her bedroom.
First they ask me to strip. I reluctantly striped. Then they
shaved my whole body & messaged my whole body with hair remover
cream & then ask me to take bath. After bath they again message my
whole body with another cream to smoothen my skin. Then another
lady cuts my short hair in feminine style. Then she did some
electrolysis in the upper portion of the upper lip( in the
mustache area). Then she plucked my brew in feminine style. One
lady then handed me the panty & bra to wear. One lady brings an
artificial breast & puts it in my breast with glue.
Then they took me in front of the mirror & dressing table & asked
me to sit in a stool. There were my mother & sister seated also
wearing only bra & panty like me. Seeing me they blushed & I felt
shy. However the ladies begin to dress us in bridal wear. One lady
pierce my left nostril & both the ear lobes. Then they put ear
rings in my ear & put a nose ring with chain in my nose. The other
end of the chain she attaches in the left earring. Then they put
all the other jewelries in my body. Then then give us to wore
other underwear & silk sari.
At last, at 4pm all three of us are prepared in our bridal dress &
ready for marriage.
The marriage is arranged in the community hall of the village. All
the villagers are invited. So when we three reached, there was a
big crowd. The sarpanch himself is in charge of everything & he
also bears the cost of the marriage. Labanya & her two brothers
are already reached there. Her brothers as well as she are ready
in male bridal dress. The purohit asked us to sit beside grooms
respectively. I sat beside Labanya, my sister sat beside her
brother Lalan, my mother sat beside her younger brother Lakhan.
Purohit begins chanting.
After completion of the puja & other duties performed by the
purohit Labanya & her brothers put vermilion on our forehead &
mangalsutra on our neck respectively. We touch our head to their
feet to take their blessings as tradition.
Then the sarpanch orders us to stand in a queue. After we stand
that way, the sarpanch asks the widow cook Sudha to come in front.
When she comes in front, he asks her to sat beside him. The he
says, “Look Sudha, from today this is your full family.You are now
a happy mother of three married sons. Yes, from today the
villagers will consider Labanya a man too. She should deserve the
status of any man gets & should be referred as ‘He’ as she has
married as a groom. Labanya is a male name also. So, she should
not need to change her name. And, from today, Mridul will be named
as ‘Mridula’ & he will get the status of ‘She”.
“Shudha, from today, you need not continue your profession as
cook. You are old, now all of your sons are married, they will
look after your happiness. Besides, your younger two sons are
already working. I will arrange a job for your elder son Labanya.
Your younger daughter-in-law Malati is a clerk in our village high
school, she may continue her job. Your 2nd daughter-in-law
Madhumita is studying in the same school. She also may continue
her schooling.
“You need not worry about your household work. Mridula will be
able to do all your household duties. She only needs your
training. I think, you will be able to train her perfectly. If she
does not obey, I am permitting you to punish her.
“Ohh, another thing to tell you. It is tradition to give dowry to
the groom’s family by the bride’s family. On behalf of bride’s
family, I wish to give their house to you as dowry.
“Now, Malati, come here & sign in this legal paper. Here, it is
written that, from today all your wealth & house will be
transferred in the name of Sudharani Devi. “
My mother silently goes & signs in the paper & comes back.
“ Now, Sudharani Devi, the proud mother of three wonderful sons &
the mother-in-law of three beautiful daughter-in-law, is the owner
of the house of the brides also.
“Okay. The last part of the rituals. The new wives should take
blessings from the elders. We can start from the elder wife.
Mridula, come here; take blessings from me, your mother-in-law &
others.”
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 08:59)
He orders a woman to arrange my veil perfectly. I came in front of
them, bend myself, touch their feet & came back. I know, it is
pure humiliation. I never know the other way out.
“Now, Madhumita, come & do the same thing & you also take blessing
from your Jethani Mridula.”
Madhumita did as order. She touched my feet also. Now it is the
turn of my mother. She is now my youngest sister-in-law. She is
also the younger sister-in-law to Madhumita. So, she takes
blessings from me & also from Madhumita after bending herself &
touching our feet.
“I have also some advices for the new wives.” the sanpanch says.
“ Since,Mridula is the eldest, she will be called as ‘Bhabi’ by
other two daughter-in-laws Malati & Madhumita & two brothers Lalan
& Lakhan. Malati & Lakhan will refer Madhumita as “Bhabi”. Mridula
& Madhumita will call Malati as ‘Bahin’ also.
“Now it is time for celebration. All of you enjoy your dinner. “
After dinner we return to our own home with our respective grooms.
Legally this is not our home now.This home is now belongs to our
mother-in-law & our husbands.
This house is already decorated lightings & there is a big crowd
to welcome us, the new wives. We have three separate bedrooms in
our home and those are decorated for our first nights.
Our mother-in-law handed each of us silk night gowns. We went to
the fourth bedroom & closed the door from inside. Then I start
stripping. My mother & sister hesitated to strip in front of me. I
feel irritation. Everything has been happened already. Our faith
has been sealed. We cannot change anything now. So, why is a lot
of shame, memory of the past & other pride and prejudice?
So, I decide to act as an elder sister-in-law both of them. After
all, I am the eldest in new relation and should behave like that.
I say, “Ohh Malati & Madhu! Why are you feeling same in front of
your elder sister? Now we are only three sisters married to three
brothers of a family. So, just do & act accordingly.”
Malati says, “But is ridiculous you know. I am an elderly lady, a
widow & your mother. How can I spend my rest of the life as
younger sister of both of you & youngest wife of the family?”
Madhu says, “ Mridula Didi is correct Malati. You are now wife of
the youngest brother of our husband, not a widow or our brother.
So, do not feel shame & strip before us. Besides, our humiliation
is not nothing comparing to Mridula didi’s humiliation. At least
we are being female married to male …and she is being a male
married to a female as her wife. So, do not hesitate & strip. In
the near future, we should play our role perfectly so that we can
take revenge in proper time.”
We then stripped & were the pink night gown. I never wore night
gown. Why should I? But when looked into the mirror, I see a
beautiful young woman. Only her makeup has been damaged. The night
gown also perfectly fit me. The gown is sleeveless & backless….and
now I feel the charm of silk in my smooth body; you know they
compelled me to shave completely my body hair. And the feeling of
the artificial Brest! Now I notice they are huge.. At least 36’ no
it 38’’…. the night gown gives a nice cleavage ! ohh no ! “ Madhu,
what is the size of my breast? Have you any idea ? ” “Yes didi. I
think it will be 38’…and look also at your hip…after adding pad on
your hip….it is giving you a nice shape….almost 40”…your husband
will definitely like the figure & adore you tonight…but didi, your
make up is in mess…may I fix” “yes Madhu,” I say.
“Then just go to the attach bath & clean the face with face wash &
come back”
I went to the bath…and before washing my face again I look at the
mirror..yes, definitely it is in mess….eyeliner has been damaged,
the lipstick is not In proper shape & the vermilion is in
everywhere in my forehead…I cleaned my face.
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 09:02)
Twenty minutes later I reappeared, my artificial hair wrapped in a
towel 'turban style' and a large white towel wrapped modestly
around my chest and over my thighs. My skin glowed a little from
using the body gel and I smelled divine from a lovely lavender
scented shower gel. Madhumita had used the time to fetch her night
gown for herself whom she had laid out on the spare bed. Girlie
time involved being as feminine as possible so this meant lovely
panty, bra and night gowns or dresses.
"There, you look better for that" she stated matter of fact as I
entered the bedroom. "So let's have a look at you then."
I giggled girlishly as I pulled open the large towel to reveal my
naked body still glistening from the hot shower.
"Wow Didi!" she said, "you are really making progress. God! Just
look at those tits. They are almost as big as mine," she teased.
"Yes, they are and you know it. But, you know, I am not accustomed
with those. In fact they are getting quite hard to handle at the
time of household work."
"I bet they are!" she laughed.
I covered myself up again and watched as Milati began taking off
her clothes stripping down to her bra and panties, showing
absolutely no embarrassment. I assume, in her eyes, we are now
just three wives together and that is how she is preparing herself.
"What do you want to do first?" Madhumita asked as she discarded
her clothes.
"Make up. I always feel much better when I have my war paint on!"
"Make up it is. Why not go for a sultry night look, you know just
a little more dramatic."
"Night it is! Our first night indeed!" I agreed as I fished out my
make up case and sat in front of a large vanity mirror. Madhumita
came and sat next to me on a separate stool and as she began with
my foundation, Malati started on her own make over too. Malati
watched me though, as Madhumita began to smooth on the light
foundation she had chosen for me.
"Not too much my sweet sister Malati. You have lovely skin and you
don't want to look as if someone has recently plastered you."
Madhumita warns Milati.
"I know, I know" Milati replied as she smoothed out the foundation
with a damp cosmetic sponge.
It took us twenty minutes or so to finish our makeup. Madhumita
chose lovely shades of gold and brown for my eye color and
accentuated this with lashings of black eye liner and mascara. She
used blues for herself and purples to draw even more attention to
her astonishing black eyes. Milati preferred the same color &
shade of Madhumita used as both of them are almost same in look.
Then, just as Madhumita had taught me to do, I outlined my lips
with a dark red lip pencil before applying a couple of coats of
lipstick. Finally, I used blusher and bronzers to shape and
contour my features, ultimately banishing any trace of masculinity
left in my face. Madhumita just beamed at me when she looked at
the finished result.
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 09:04)
"You, my dear didi, are getting really good with makeup." she said
complimenting me once again.
"Thanks, Madhu, but it is only because you have taught me so well.
However I never look as good as you do know." I said as I admired
my sister who looked utterly gorgeous.
"Yes you will" she replied somewhat mysteriously "just you wait
and see.”
Then Milati said to Madhumati “Now would you Madhu like me to do
your hair for you?"
She watched as Milati’s eyes lit up with pleasure. But she showed
her false anger to Milati. “Milati, you are now my sister. Please
call me didi and respect me accordingly.” Milati looked at her
obediently & soon corrected herself, “Yes didi. I forgot. May I
prepare your hair?”
“Yes my little sister.”
Really I enjoyed the situation. How we are trying to transition
ourselves with the demand of the situation! I know the whole thing
is humiliating. But, we must enjoy ourselves as the prisoners of
guilty verdicts enjoyed the last night before their death.
The changes, the new relations among us, my cross dressing
marriage & my mother’s marriage with the youngest brother….and
above all we penniless….I know, each of us is burning within
ourselves…we want revenge…..but, do not know, how & when.
Seeing myself in the mirror…..I am again feeling humiliation..I
wish to weep….no, I should not weep, it will damage my make
up……seeing my mother in that night gown, I again feel
humiliation…ohh, what will I do !
Only Madhu is the exception, She is in the right dress….I wanted
to see her married someday, I wanted to see her someday with a
gorgeous night gown…now, and she is !....but, why am I not happy
today ?
Madhu came to me with a small nose ring.” You have forgotten to
put it in your nose’
“Ohh, yes.” I removed the marriage nose ring attached with chain
but did not put a new one.
I know, for the first few months I will forget many things…..and
for that I will be punished from my husband Labanya & my
mother-in-law…will they bit me ?
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 09:07)
And someone knocked the door from outside….this must be our
mother-in-law.
“ Bahurania ! What are you doing inside for a long time ? Have not
you completed your makeup? It is already quarter past twelve ,
when will you go to sleep ? Your husbands are already angry. Come
on. Open the door quickly. Or, you will be punished.
I opened the door. Our mother-in-law is waiting for us. She says,”
why are you so late to complete your make up? We were anxious.
However take those glasses full of milk & go to your respective
rooms. Your grooms are waiting for you inside the room.”
I silently took a glass & went to my room. Labanya is waiting.
Seeing me she comes towards the door & receives me.”Ohh Mridula!
You look gorgeous!” I blushed in shame. I look at her. She also
looks very handsome. There is no sign of femnity in her body &
dress. She wore Kurta & Pajama, the groom generally wear in the
night of wedding. Her long hair was cut in short & in masculine shape.
She hugged me tightly. Then she kissed me. Then she begins to
start kissing all over my face. Then she unbuttoned my night gown.
It falls in the floor. I am now in my panty & bra. I also become
very excited with a sudden physical movement by Labanya. My penis
becomes erect. She noticed that. “Why those bulge in your
clitoris? You should understand that the clitoris of any wife
should not be erected by the hugging of her husband. Strip now.” I
denied. She slaps me. I cried in pain. She does not stop &
continue slapping until I stripped & become completely nude. She
noticed my erect pennies & suddenly slaps on it. I cried loudly in
pain. She smiles. “You know Mridul, when you rejected me to marry,
that day I took oath that someday I will marry you by hook &
crook. And see, today I am successful to keep my word. And not
only that, I married to you as husband…I compelled your mother to
marry my youngest brother & your sister to marry my other brother.
You the rich people! All of the members of the family always
showed us pity….always hated us….treated us like beggars…I wanted
to take revenge….I wanted all of you submit to us…and I did it in
reality.”
I silently listen to her words...maybe she is partly right. May be
she is right. We always treated them as the subordinate class. And
she is taking the revenge. Now I am nude before her. My penis
again becomes limp. She strips herself. What is that in her lower
abdomen? I noticed it is a dildo strapped on her waist. And it is
huge. She orders me to kneel down. “Now Mridula, my sweet wife,
please worship your God obediently. I know what I have to do.
There is no way to escape. I kneeled myself down. I take the dildo
in my both hand, kiss it & then begins to suck. After 10 minutes
she becomes satisfied. Then she orders me to pose in dog style. I
did. She comes behind me, takes the pennies in her hand &
forcefully enters it into my virgin ass hole.
I cried in pain. She does not listen. She again pushed it. The
dildo completely enters into my ass hole. As if someone has
entered a knife in my ass. I become senseless.
*
Rashmi Patel (Friday, 23 December 2016 09:09)
Next day when I wake up, it is already dawn. Labanya is in deep
sleep. She went to sleep keeping her naked body on top of me. I
somehow managed to keep her aside. And me, completely devastated &
tired by her physical & mental torture, begin to cry. I read
somewhere, a man never cries. I really never cried after my
childhood. But, now I am crying. Now I am crying thinking of my
future. I wanted to pursue MBA.I wanted to be a manager in a big
company & then look after my mother…..and what happened suddenly!
I do not know when I stopped crying & went to sleep again. I wake
up hearing the sound of the door bell. I look at the wall clock.
It is already 6-30 AM. The morning sunlight has entered into the
room through the east side window. I observe the room. The room is
very much dirty. Our cloths spread away all over the room here and
there. And both of we are naked. Labanya is still sleeping.
I first gather all the cloths & keep them in a chair. Then I go to
the attached bath. I feel fresh after bathing in cold water. Then
I open the Almirah. There was a new pink colored salwar camiz set.
I choose it to wear. And I choose a set of white colored underwear.
After covering me in salwar camiz I stand in front of the mirror.
There is no sign of manliness. And fact is that I am really
looking a newlywed bride who has lost her virginity last night. I
first comb my short hair. Then put vermilion on the partition of
my front hair. My right hand automatically touched my mangalsutra.
It is okay in my neck. I put shakha & pala (bangles) in my both
hands, toe rings in my both legs & a diamond nose stud in my nose.
Then I wear dupatta over the camiz & place it on my head as veil.
Now I am really looking a new house wife.
I open the door & went to the kitchen. My mother-in-law was there.
She was preparing tea. She looks at me angrily. “What have you
wore Mridula? Did not you know that the elder wife of the family
never wear anything other than sari with complete jeweler? Now go
to your room & change yourself in sari & do not forget to wear
every jewelry from toe to head & learn to cover your head with
veil always. And do it in hurry. You have lot of household things
to do. From today you will do every household work.
I again went to my room. Change myself in sari. Cover my head with
the part of the sari. Then I wear toe rings, payels & other jewelries.
Then again I went to the kithen. My mother-in-law looks at me
again. “You looks better. Now, sweep the floor first, then do
rangoli & then do puja. After completion of those you will prepare
tea & breakfast for all of us.
When I completed all the tasks, all of the other member of the
family have already gathered in the dining room. I served each of
them tea & breakfast. My mother-in-law taste the tea & says ‘the
taste is ok. But, but you have to learn more.” Then she looks
Madhumita. She sat besides her husband. She was in her sari. “Look
Madhu. You are the 2nd wife of this family. You should not wear
Sari within the house. Besides, you are still studying. So, you
should always wear salwar camiz. So, go to your room & change
yourself in salwar camiz.” Madhu obediently went to her room to
change her cloth.”Now, look Malati. You are the youngest wife of
the family. You also should not wear sari. You will look older
than your husband in your sari. So, you should wear modern dresses
like mini skirt, midi or Bermuda….go to Madu’s room, ask her a
mini skirt & sleeveless tight shirt, she does not need them at
all, you and she are same build, so, those will perfectly fit you.”
When they come back wearing the new dress, I completely taken
aback….even I first did not recognize Malati…she really looks
fabulous in mini skirt & a tight sleeveless shirt….I also noticed
the spark in the eyes of her husband. He will surely fuck her
again in his first chance.
What
mansi (Friday, 23 December 2016 11:15)
Pls ex-q-zit post ur story
Pls pls
ex-q-zit (Friday, 23 December 2016 16:10)
Hi all,
sorry for not posting the story today. had to takey wifey to dinner. Shall post it tomorrow.
Regards
ex-q-zit
Jay (Saturday, 24 December 2016 00:20)
Ex q zit still waiting forur story pl post.....
Srs (Saturday, 24 December 2016 00:31)
Rashmi Patel I have read already this story but anyways u have edited lil bit, I wish those fake hair, breast and vagina are real
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:09)
Story: Sisters
#1
Part 1: Beginning
Sisters
Bachpan se hi main ladkion ke beech main raha or bada hua. Ours was a modern but joint family. My dad and his brother were business partners and were staying together with their families. Me along with my 2 real and 2 cousin sisters were living together in one big room ( rather a hall) with two full size beds and a single bed on the first floor. I was the only guy in that room until I turned 16. The room was just too girly, right from the colours on the wall, bedsheets, rugs, and dressing table with lots makeup items. Girly things were all around in the room. They had beautiful bangles, ear rings, jewellery and so many accessories. There clothes were cute and pretty. There make up boxes and perfumes were intoxicating. There bras, panties and cute lacy night dresses were the things I always dreamt of wearing. I do not remember when I started dreaming about wearing there panties with sanitary pads. This world of girls was wonderful. My sisters used to talk a lot about girly things like fashion, make up and boys. Whenever I got chance I touched and felt their clothes. And it was not long I realised, I wanted to be girl. But after a few more years I realised, I was a girl. To be a girl I did not need the boobs, vagina and long hairs but the feeling of being a girl which I already had.
I was slim and fair, my way of talking was girly. The way I walked was very feminine, thanks to My sisters I grew up with. I remember the first time I tried a bra and panty, it felt so good that I knew would be wearing it for the rest of my life.
By the time I reached 12th, one of my sisters got married, and a few months later we moved out to new bigger house. Now My sister and I had a separate room. I was 17 then, and knew I was a girl from deep within. Now we were only 4 of us in the house, I go more chances to put on my sisters clothes and undergarments. I loved my small, dress up sessions which hardly lasted 30 mins. Till now I did not get a chance to do make and go all the way. But I was waiting for the opportunity, and started preparing for it. I ordered a wig which I did not have, rest pretty much everything I used was my sisters. My sister is 2 years older than me and almost same built as of me. Now to prepare for, all the way dress up as a girl, I wanted to learn to apply makeup. I started you tube videos I learnt easily as I had seen my sister doing it many times. I even started practicing with one thing at a time. Slowly I was even becoming expert in applying makeup.
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:12)
Part 1: Beginning
Sisters
#2
I got my chance which when our parents told me that they will be travelling to other town for three days to attend a marriage function. This means Me and my sister were alone in the house for next three days from Thursday to Sunday. Sat day was a holiday as it was a 2nd sat day. My only chance was Thursday, if I could somehow skip school and enjoy the day alone dressing up. I planned to pretend sick and skip the school. Wed day evening our parents left and my sister prepared dinner early and we were free by 8pm. I was excited and planning for tomorrow, with many things running through my mind. My mind was continuously making mix match of the clothes I will wear tomorrow right from lingerie to make up.
I just could not wait for tomorrow, then I saw my sister going to terrace with her phone. I knew she talks to her BF for long time in her room, but parents were not there so she went to terrace. Today she had freedom to do things. I thought why not to take something from her dirty clothes and spend night in it. Tonight I had no fear of my mom coming to my room and she will be going to her college tomorrow morning she will not be checking her dirty clothes until tomorrow evening. So I was convinced and went to her room. Right outside her bathroom there was laundry basket filled with her dirty clothes; I put my hands and started looking for something. I was shivering with fear of getting caught, and then this purple net and lace bra came into my hands. I took it out and as I was about to turn to move out of her room, I saw and took her regular cotton white panty with light pink flowers on it. It had some fresh stains on it, and I got to know that my sister was on periods. This thought of my sister being on periods made me to find a pad for myself too. I went and opened her wardrobe, and on the lowest shelf I saw an open pack of Stayfree. I carefully took one pad and kept it in my pocket. I stuffed everything in my pocket and ran into my room. I was so sacred and my heart was pounding. But was happy with what I had done. I kept things in my bag and turned off the light of my room and started waiting for my sister to come down and sleep.
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:16)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#3
. After 25 mins my sister came down and went to her room. And 10 mins after that she called my name.
Aneesha: Anshul
I thought, she found out about missing bra and panty. I skipped a heartbeat and was scared to death . I was thinking what to say if she asks. I thought I should apologize and beg to her for , not to tell mom and dad. I knew simply denying about it was not possible. Because she removed the panty took bath and then went to talk on phone and there is no way her bra and panty can go missing.
Aneesha: Anshul...Kahaan hai.
Myself: yes di.
Aneesha: Can you check if the gate has been locked, I am going to sleep.
I took a deep breath and said "ok". My sister went to her room and I went and locked the gate and came to hall and said loudly
Myself: Its locked and also only one light is "on"
Aneesha: ok good night.
I was happy and went to my room, locked it from inside and spread the curtains. I removed my clothes. I have no body hairs and very little shave. I shaved in the evening so this was not an issue. I turend off the lights and turned on my blue night lamp. I Inserted pad in the panty and wore it. And then hooked the bra behind and adjusted my bra straps like girls. I was so excited that my hard-on was pressing against my Stayfree pad. I came to my bed and lied on the bed. I took my pillow and hugged it like girls and closed my eyes. The soft feeling of pad in between my legs was making me mad. The bra straps and bra cups holding my small boobs were making my hard-on stretch my panty. My girly feelings were at its peak, I was dreaming like a girl for my tomorrow’s dresses and accessories. I was in heaven but still wanted more. I thought of walking like a girl into our hall till the kitchen to have a glass of water. I got off my bed and slipped into my t-shirt and shorts and started walking towards the kitchen. While walking I kept my legs closed and kept one foot ahead of other and stretched my arms outwards like girls. I was about to open the fridge when I heard my sisters room unlock. OMG I thought, what is going to happen if she notices the small bulge of bra cups in front of my t-shirt. There was no way to move out of kitchen without facing her so I decided to stay there and behave normally. I took the bottle and moved towards kitchen shelf. I was trying to hide my hard-on as well. My sister walked till kitchen and stood behind me.
Aneesha: Anshul ek glass mujhe bhi dena. Mujhe neend nahi aa rahi.
Myself: Haan mujhe bhi.
I poured the water in the glass and gave it to my sister without turning.
Aneesha: Achha kal shaam bhahar khaane chalenge, mom nahi hai lets party.
Myself: Haan sure, bahut din hum logon ne masti nahi ki.
I was so afraid that my fingers were shaking. I started opening random shelfs of kitchen I was hoping that she will go back to her room.
Aneesha: Tujhe bhookh lagi hai kya ? Maggi khaani hai?
Myself: Haan Maggi banane ki soch raha hun. (I said this to have some more time in the kitchen)
Aneesha: I know maggi kahan padi hai, hath main nikalti hun.
And she kept her hand on my shoulder and gave a gentle push to move me.
I froze with fear that she might feel the bra straps, but moved and gave her way, she opened the other shelf and took out the maggi and gave me.
Myself: Thanks di...
I was still hoping she would move back to her room. I heard her walking and felt relived. I took the lighter to turn the gas to cook Maggi but because I was still breathing heavily and shaking with fear, it slipped out of my hand, out of my nervousness I turned around and bent to pick it up. She was barely 5 steps out of kitchen and hearing the sound turned back. I and my sister were face to face while I was bent picking up the lighter. I stood up and quickly turned towards the shelf and started to light the gas (I was pleading god, please save me).
I heard my sister moving towards me. She grabbed my hands and pulled me to face her, I saw her tensed face while shivering with fear.
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:23)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#4
Aneesha: Anshul kya pahna hai tune ?
Myself: kuch bhi nahi.
She held my t-shirts shoulder and pulled it further, revealing my bra strap.
Aneesha: To ye kya hai ?
I didn’t say anything in fact I had nothing to say.
Now Aneesha had hint of smile on her face.
Aneesha: bol na , kuch to bol ?
Myself: Please mom dad ko mat bolna (And started crying)
My girly feelings and getting caught by my sister was making me cry.
Aneesha: Achha nahi bolungi ye bata, kyun pahni hai ?Accha chal mere room main wahan baith ke baat karte hain.
She held my hand and pushed me towards her room. After going to her room, she sat on one side of bed and I sat on other side.
Aneesha: Ab bata kyun pahni hai ?
Myself: Mujhe accha lagta hai.
Aneesha: Accha kahan se khareedi?
Myself: Aapki hai.
Annesha: OMG tune meri bra pahni hai ? kon si waali (she pulled my t-shirt up ). Ohh ye to maine aaj hi pahni the, tune kab li mere room se ? Ye meri fav bra hai pagal.
Myself: Jab aap phone karne chath pe gaye the.
Aneesha: Accha kyun phani hai ?theek se bata ..
Myself: Mujhe bra pahanna accha lagta hai.
Aneeshs: hmmmm or kya kya pahana accha lagta hai?
Myself: Sab kuch
Aneeshs: Sab kuch ? matlab!!!
Myself: Ladkion ka sabkuch ?
Aneeshs: OMG tu theek to hai na ?
I started crying aging and said,” didi mujhe ladkion jaisa banne ka man karta hai.”
Aneesha:Oh accha ro mat...
Myself:Mujhe ladki banana hai.
Aneesha: Achha ro mat (she came near me)and hugged me. Koi baat nahi main tujhe ladki banaungi.
I stopped crying.
Aneesha: Rona band kar or ja muh dho ke aa.
I went to her bath room and washed my face and was getting normal.
Myself: Di please kisi ko mat bolna
Aneesha: Nahi bolungi na. Achha or kya kya pahnaaccha lagta hai? Pahle bhi pahna hai ?
Myself:haan kaafi bar. Salwar kameez and wo pahle waale ghar main badi didi ke kuch kapde.
Aneesha: Ohh sirf bra or panty bhi pahni hai ?
Myself: Panty bhi pahni hai.
Aneesha: (She had big smile) OMG .... tu to bahut aage nikla gya .Kab pahni thee ?
Myself: Abhi bhi pahni hai.
Aneesha: Kya!!!! Seriously, show me ..dikha… She pulled me out of bed and said " remove your t-shirt and shorts.
I removed my t-shirt and shorts and was standing there in Bra and panty.
Aneesha: Ohh cheeeee, ohh ye to maine aaj panhi thee. Main periods pe hun pagal.Or ye kya!!! Tune pad bhi pahna hai, Anshul tu to pakki ladki ban gai hai.
Myself: Hearing it my hard-on gave a push to my panty.
Aneesha notiched it and smiled and said.
Aneesha: Ohh so ye sun ke tujhe maza bhi aata hai ? Ab samjhi tujhe ye wala maza aata hai!
Myself: Nahi aisa kuch nahi hai.
Sey Girl (Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:25)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#5
Aneesha: Accha jooth mat bol, i can see. I was trying hard to control my hardon.
Myself: Nahi sach main.
Aneesha: Accha to " Anshu ", tere bhi periods chal rahe hain? kon sa din hai.
Hearing this my hard on took 2 big jumps.
Aneesha:See (Big smile and clapped her hand) so u really enjoy it.
I didn’t say thing , she had seen it and proved.
Aneesha: Accha ab kya Karen.
Myself: Didi mujhe pura tayar karo na.
Aneesha: Saree pahane gi meri onion pink ? with macthing churiyan, Accha bata na anshu churiyan pahenegi na.
Myself: Haan didi mujhe churiya pahanani hain, mujhe churiya pahnao na.
I was enjoying it so much that I started dripping cum in my panties. And Aneesha was enjoying the tease.
Aneesha: Ohh tujhe churiya pahane ka itna shauk hai?
Myself: Haan
Aneesha: Acch main churiyan pahnaugi tujhe. Or kal teri pasand ki chowk waali Dukan se khareed ke , wahin pe dukan waale bhaiiya se pahanwaaungi.. Kush ..?
main sharma ke laal ho gya(gai),ye soch ke ek aadmi mere hathon main chudiyan pahnayega ....
Aneesha: Ohh Anshu to sharma gai.
Aneesha seemed to enjoy it.
Aneesha: Accha ear rings kaise pasand hai tujhe ?
Myself: loops and danglers for western dress and Jumkhas with sarees.
Aneesha: Pakki expert hai tu.Phir to Kal tere kaan bhi chidwayenge.
Aneesha: Accha kal mainecure and pedicure bhi karaenge sath main. Achha ab tere liye alag se saman lana padega, mera use nahi kargi tu ok?
Myself: ok
Aneesha: Ab to kal tere liye shopping karni hi padegi. Chalegi na ?
Myself: Theek hai didi and tried to control my smile to hide my happiness
Aneesha: Accha chal aaj raat ko or kya man hai tera pahanane ka ?
Myself: Mom ki new maroon satin nighty
Aneesha: Wow !!! choice to achhi hai teri mujhe bhi bahut pasand hai ruk main leke aati hun.
She went and brought it from mom’s room. She gave it to me, and I put it on. I was looking into her big dressing table Mirror. She smiled and said " ruk ek do kami hain.". She went to her wardrobe and brought her silicon bra insert. She inserted 2 inserts in each cup of the bra and adjusted it. This gave me a real jiggling B cup breasts.
Aneesha: bahut sexy lag rahi hai tu.
I smiled again and my face turned red further.
Aneesha: Ab baal bade kar le.
Myself: Mere paas wig hai.
Aneesha: To leke aa na jaldi, and ye bata or kya kya khareeds hai tune ?
Myself: Bas wig hai, baaki to sab aapke paas hai hi na.
Aneesha: Baaki kya ?
Myself: Make up and accessories.
Aneesha: Badtmeez mera make up bhi use kiya tune ?
Myself: Nahi pichle ghar main neha (cousin) ka use kiya tha. Wo lakem use karti the na, mujhe bhi lakme hi pasand hai.
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:26)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#6
Aneesha: oooooh brand consious. Anshu to sach main puri ladki hai.
I just smiled.
Aneesha: Jaa wig leke aa.
Myself: Di aapki heels pahan ke jaaun.
Aneesha: Haan ab kya kasar hain pahan lo. Badi didi ke shaadi se pahle unse roz ladaai hoti thee cheezen share karne ko leke, now I miss her too much. Ab bhagwan ne mujhe choti bahan de di. to share my things
Myself: Haan main bhi badi didi ko miss karti hun.
Aneesha:"karti hun" ... sahi hai anshu ab tu form main aa rahi hai. Unka kya kya try kiya tune jo mis kar raha hai ?
I smiled and said
Myself: her handbag and jeans top.
She giggled, I took her heels and put them on and went to my room. I took out my wig and put it on,it was straight black wig. After setting and clipping it on to my head, I started walking back to my room. I was enjoying my walk in nighty. The bouncing boobs and my hairs rubbing my back and my shoulders were making me go crazy. I slowly entered her room.
Aneesha: Wow anhsul tu bilkul bhi pahchana nahi jaa rha. And bahut practice ki hai tune heels main.
Myself: Haan,i smiled and said.
I saw my reflection in the mirror, she was right. Even I could not say that the girl in the mirror was not a girl.
Aneesha: Tu too badi didi se bhi sexy lag rahi hai, abhi tak she was the most sexy of us all. I will tell her.
Myself: Nahi didi ,please kisi ko mat bolna please . Wo gussa hongi and mummy ko bol diya to.
Aneesha: Arre nahi bolungi. Accha haan tujhe chudiya pahanne ka shauk hai na. Aaa tujhe churiya pahnaun.
She took some Maroon designer bangels. or mujhe 9-9 churiyan dono hathon main
Pahna di.
Aneesha: make up bhi karna hoga ?
I did not say anything and just smiled
Aneesha: haan haan jayda sharma mat.
She took one lip gloss, eye liner and macarra and applied on me. Then she applied some compact
Myself: Didi mascarra ka ek or coat lagao na.
Aneesha:Ohh to Anshu make up main bhi expert hai(She said while applying another coat).
Myself: Haan did purane gahr main ek hi room main the na sab, wahi dekh dekh ke.
Aneesha: Wahin dekh dehk ke tu bhi ladki ban gya. Accha kahre ho na and turn around.
I stood up from make-up table, and I saw myself. There was this sexy girl with straight hairs, long black eye lashes and glossy lips were making me look like a sexy girl.
My juicy glossed lips, lingerie, the perfect purple baby doll nighty (Loose fit as it was my mom’s), designer bangles and killer high heels had sent me to a state of trance. Aneesha took out her phone and clicked my pics.
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:27)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#7
Aneesha: I can’t tell u, how sexy u look. Accha tu itni sexy ban ke kya karigi ?
Myself: Kuch nahi
Aneesha: BF hai tera ?
I did not expect this question and got embarrassed.
And did not say anything.
Aneesha: Arre ladkiya BF ke liye hi to sajti sawarti hain. And mere Jay ko tu Jaanti hi hai.
Myself: Nahi didi kabhi socha nahi.
Aneesha: Jayada shreef banne ki zarurat nahi hai bata. Bata na.
Aneesha: Accha bata apni colony main kon tujhe kon hot lagta hai?
Myself: RickyHot hai.
Aneesha: oooo to ye ha tera pyar.
Mani sharam se main laal hui jaa rahi thee.
Myself: Nahi did aisa kuch nahi hai
Aneesha: Main set karun tujhe ? Ye jawaani BF ke bina nahi sambhalegi.
Myself: Pata nahi didi, jaise app bolo.
Aneesha: Means ur ready , chal main set karti hun tujhe.
Then aneesha's phone started ringing, it was her BF.
Annesha: Tu jaa ab so ja kal baat karenge.
Myslef: Ok didi bye.
I came to my room, but i was so horny. Also Aneesha's question about BF was make me go restless. I have never thought about BF but now my mind was only thinking about my BF holding me tight in his arms kissing me and caressing my breasts. I was so horny that I wanted him to rub my panty. I was not able to control my urges. I was feeling so girly that I did not want to think about my small cock and jerkoff. S o just imagined that I have a vagina under my panty covered by Stayfree. I was dripping pre cum in my pad. Unable to control my urges, I went back to my sisters room and knocked it. I heard Aneesha say "5 min main call karna, anshul aaya hai". She came till door and asked "kya hua".I told her did kuch ho rha hai. Jab aapko hota hai to kya karti ho? Mujhe bhi wo sab ladikion ki tarah karna hai
Aneesh: Main to BF se baat karti hun.
Myself: But mera to nahi hai , accha jab apala BF nahi tha tab kya karti thee ?
Aneesha: Pagal main teri bahan hun!!!!
Myself: Haan ab to hum sisters hain na, aap mujhe bata sakti ho.
Aneesha: okay aaja, and she took me inside the room.
She went and braught one skin coloured dildo.
Aneesha: (Smiling) ye le and now we share a secret. Go to your room, slowly think of your BF and rub your crotch and suck on it or take it as per your choice.
She was smiling to tease me. I took it from her; it felt so life like and came to my room. I lied on my bed and started rubbing my crotch from over nighty. Slowly I pulled my nighty up and started rubbing it over panty. Then I took the dildo and sucked on it, I got so much pleasure out of it that I started moaning. My saliva was all over the dildo and I kept on sucking it, at the same time I was rubbing my crotch from above my panty. After some time I came in my panties, my cumm was absorbed by my pad. I slept in the wet cum filled panties.
To be continue
Part 2: Day 1 (Next Day)
Plot: Full dress up in saree while sister is away at the college
Part 3: Day 1 (Next Day Evening)
Plot: Sisters invites her BF over, he flirts with me all day
Part 4: Day 2 ( Sister plans a loyalty test on her BF using me)
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 24 December 2016 05:29)
@ Raghav: Awesome story, waiting for your next story.
reinderr (Saturday, 24 December 2016 06:56)
Tulasi waiting for your story
vasantha (Saturday, 24 December 2016 08:14)
sexy girl pls dont write hindi language tanslate to english language i am request you pls in write pure english language pls pls
ex-q-zit (Saturday, 24 December 2016 08:15)
I have now posted it on my blog. It will be there only got a week. Please read it while is there. I will not be reposting it after that.
I might write a sequel n the future making Sathwika Salman's second wife. Till then hope you guys like this.
Please leave your comments in my blog.
mansicd (Saturday, 24 December 2016)
Thank u ex-q-zit for posting ur story on ur blog
I really love ur stories
shila (Saturday, 24 December 2016 20:03)
Amazing story ex q zit
We want it sequal
Poornima (Sunday, 25 December 2016 01:07)
@sexy girl : Beautiful story but please don't involve any other boys in the story. Let it be just between sisters and bring incest into story between sister and brother but not sister's bf please
Farzana Shaik (Sunday, 25 December 2016 08:57)
Pls raghav continue your story
Priya (Sunday, 25 December 2016 11:00)
Poornima are u the admin and writer for girlycrossdressing story blog...
Srs (Sunday, 25 December 2016 21:38)
Please write forced crossdressing stories
Poornima (Monday, 26 December 2016 15:32)
@priya: no
priya (Tuesday, 27 December 2016 09:37)
Srs please continue your story..
I am eagerly waiting for your next part...
GRAMMAR (Thursday, 29 December 2016 15:58)
srs please write your story
rani (Friday, 30 December 2016 06:22)
Sexygirl..wow zabarst story maza agya plz plz cont ur story
Sexy Girl (Friday, 30 December 2016 10:29)
Thank you Rani.
rani (Friday, 30 December 2016 11:50)
Jaldi likho na agay bohat amazing start hai
rani (Friday, 30 December 2016 11:52)
Sexygirl..jaldi likho sis mujh se wait nai ho rha ....
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 31 December 2016 01:15)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#8
Next day, I skipped college and my sister went to college. Before leaving she warned me to stay away from her makeup items and party wear clothing. I said, did please at least let me use lipstick and eye makeup and she agreed. By the time she left for college it was 9.30 A.M and I was still in bed wearing the satin nighty, bra and panty with pad in it. Finally I decided to get out of my bed; I went to bathroom and peed like girls sitting down. The entire feel, my walk and behavior was so girly, that I again got hard-on.
I wanted to dress up in saree, but without full make-up and jewelry it won’t be fun so I gave it a skip and instead decided to spend the day like my sister in her casual clothes. I took bath and changed in my sisters black shorts and Red lycra top on same bra and panty. I walked around in the house in sexy heels. I was living a dream of being a girl and loved it. I remained in the same clothes and did some cleaning of the house and prepared the lunch.
At 2:30 PM my sister came from college. She saw me and complemented me that I was looking cute in top and shorts. I told her that I did some cleaning and prepared lunch.
Aneesha: Mujhe pata hota tujhe Anshu bana ke bahut fayda hai.
Aneesha was wearing deep neck top, Jeans and flip flops.
Aneesha: Achha sun mujhe kuch batana hai tujhe.
Anshu: Kya didi.
Aneesha: Aaj college main jay ne mere phone pe teri pic dekh li. Main use bola ke tu meri cousin hai Anshu and weekend ke liye aai hai. Tujhe kal raat dekh ke koi bol hi nahi sakta ke tu ladki nahi hai.
I just smiled and was also worried what it Jay comes to know and this secret spreads.
Aneesha: Sun jis tarh se Jay tere pic dekh raha tha, mujhe ek idea aaya, Main usepe loyalti test karna chahati hun, tujhe use kar ke.
She had this smile on her face.
Anshu: Nahi didi , please use maalum chal jaayega . Sab ko bata diya usne to Didi please aap jo bologe main karungi , lekin ye nahi.
Aneesha: Main hun na kuch nahi hoga. Main use aaj shaam ko bulaya hai and tujhe use seduce karna hai.
Seduce karne ke naam se mujhe kuch hone laga, and felt so weak in my knees. i just nodded to what my sister said.
Aneesha: Use seduce karne ke liye tujhe bahut sexy banana padega. Kya phanaun tujhe ..hmmmm
Anshu: Aapki wo skyblue silk saree ya fir heavy wala fishnet lahaga
Aneesha: hey hey hey ,tere shaadi nahi karani!!! Use seduce karna hai. Tujhe kuch sluty look dena padega, like mere college ki bitch natasha.
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 31 December 2016 01:16)
Story Name: Sisters
Part 1: Beginning
#9
Natasha was a sexy girl of our colony and fuck fantasy of all the guys. Her dressing style screams fuck me. Thought of dressing up like her was a distant dream to me.
Anshu: Didi wo kaise hoga.
Aneesha: Wo mujh pe chor de.Waxing aati hai ?
Anshu: Apko karte dekha hai,kabhi try nahi ki.
Aneesha: Waxing kar full body. Tab tak fresh hoke lunch kar leti hun. Kuch problem hui to mujhe bata dena.
After one hour I was done with full body waxing and then took hot water bath and shaved my face.My body had become smooth and soft. Aneesha had kept padded underwired bra and her lace panty in my room. Wow it was so sexy to put on that sexy panty and bra.I put on that and wrapped towel around my self and went to her room.
Aneesha: Chal baith yahan. And she took out our nail polish and applied on my feet and hands.
I was so happy to be able to do what she was doing to me after all these years watch them do.
Anshu: Sis ye padded bra kyun, wo panty se matching lace waali bra do na.
Aneesha: Nahi lace nahi, Padeed will give you some size and also , Jay ka galti se hath lag gya to usko pata nahi chalna chaiye. Or sabse jaroori silicon inserts bhi apni jagah pe rahe chahiye.
Anshu: Didi leking silicon to real feel type hi hota hai na.
Aneesha: Haan but size bhi hona chaiye na.
Using padded bra and silicon inserts gave me good B cup size.
Ansheea: Wow now u look sexy.
Then what i saw was unimaginable, She took out her sexy very short skirt and black top.
Top was a club wear type, and it had written on it "Sexy Babe"
Aneesha: Put them on
I put them on and adjusted my wig. She told me to sit, to do makeup on me. Aneesha started her work with moisturizer, and then applied foundation and finished with matte compact. She applied think red colored lipstick and then brown lip liner. She used her liner, kajal and two coats of mascara. She used glittered light purple eye shadow. Then she applied a hint of blush.
Anshu: Did can I see myself ?
She said yes and gave me a clip on hoops. I waked to the mirror and could not believe myself, there was no way the reflection was a boy !!!! DIdi it just awesome and sexy.
Aneesha: while smiling said, yes you just look fucking sexy.
Then she gave me handbag and gave me compact and tissues to keep in it in case I need
to refresh it. I asked her to allow me to keep Lipstick and lip gloss and she allowed. After putting on high heels I was looking like a highway slut with so bold make up and sexy legs. My skirt was too short and would reveal my panties, if I bent even a little. Then me and my sister chatted about guys make up and fashion. She said how much she likes to tease guys in school buy touching them and holding there hands and behaving as if it’s naturally. Also how she seduced Jay by bending and her giving him a look of her cleavage and in sexy lace bra every time she got an opportunity. I was happy that my sister was sharing things with me and treating me as her sister.
taniya (Saturday, 31 December 2016 03:59)
Sexygirl great story cont plz
rajesh (Saturday, 31 December 2016 07:55)
wish u happy new year.....
my blog http://forcedfemine.blogspot.in/
friends share your ideas and stories to (r401238@gmail.com)
Chndni (Sunday, 01 January 2017 01:27)
Can anyone suggest Good chatroom?
sissy (Sunday, 01 January 2017 04:15)
Sexygirl superb story
SRS (Sunday, 01 January 2017 23:04)
Please write new stories
raji (Monday, 02 January 2017)
Sexygirl
I love ur story cont plz
mansi (Monday, 02 January 2017 04:49)
Hi all i wrote my first story on rajibalan hindi comment 2016-17
Title
How i become wife/ wife
Radha (Monday, 02 January 2017 11:49)
Hey Mansi, can you translate it into English?
preethi (Monday, 02 January 2017 12:02)
plz callme my number 7472001297 my name preethi
mansi (Monday, 02 January 2017 22:44)
@radha
Sorry i m weak in english so i write in hindi
Will try someday and post here
Priya (Tuesday, 03 January 2017 01:52)
Sissy father and Sissy son
"Dad, come on., You've got to do this right", Rajesh whispered to his dad. He was standing in the bathtub facing away from his father. He bent slightly at his waist and spread his ass cheeks widely. Shailesh swallowed hard and kneeled behind his son. He took the razor in his hands and started to shave his son's bottom. He was aware and was careful not to cut while shaving the part in the center. Rajesh cringed as he looked at his reflection in the mirror inside the bathroom. He could see his dad kneeling behind his back and shaving his back. He felt so embarrassed and pathetic given that he did the same act just few minutes back.
"All done son", your cute tushy is as smooth and soft as a baby", Shailesh spoke cheerfully and turned his son to face him.
"Get out of the shower both of you", they heard a sharp voice from outside just as they finished their daily shave. Suddenly the curtain in the
bathroom was drawn and two stern looking women were staring at the father and the son duo.
"I knew you enjoyed your sissy time but you have got to get it done fast", the younger woman, Sneha and Rajesh's wife said frowning. Her mother-in-law Rashmi, Rajesh's mom stood with her hands on her hips. "Ok, wash up now and you don't have to be modest before us. We have heard you in the speakers downstairs. We want to see how how two sissies take bath together", Rashmi said pointing at the mic fixed in the bathroom ceiling.
Rajesh and his father knew that they had no choice but to demean themselves before their respective spouses. "Oh Chameli, I love your smooth body. Its so girly", Shailesh said while rubbing soap all over his son's body. Rajesh was very uncomfortable by the touch of another sissified man, even more as the sissified man was his own father. He shivered but held his dad closely, "Oh Sheila, your touch feels so good on my skin"
"Thats hilarious. So you two picked out Sheila and Chameli as your names. I always knew you were little sissy girl inside" Rashmi said. The two emasculated men were not sissies from the beginning. They were forced, brainwashed and beaten to being pathetic sissies. Their wives had external help too. Rohit Verma, Sneha's lover and his father Karan Verma had helped the women change their husband into submissive sissies. The company under Shailesh's name was written in Rashmi's name and the Rajesh's stakes were moved to his wife's name.
The two naked men stepped out of the shower and stood with their heads lowered. The room was a small storeroom with a single bed in the middle. It had two full length mirrors side by side with a big vanity filled with girly cosmetics. The in-built wardrobe was open and it had a plethora of sarees, chaniya cholis, and salwars. The room was painted in pink everywhere and resembled nothing like a room for two grown men.
Shailesh and Rajesh dried their bodies with a single fluffy pink towel. "Ok sissies, You have exactly one hour to get ready and come down for the party. Its your coming out party so you don't want to be late unless you want a good spanking", Sneha said smiling at her husband and father-in-law. "Don't forget to be vocal while getting ready sweetie. Remember the mic and the video camera", Rashmi reminded the sissies and both the ladies giggled as they left the naked men on their own.
Priya (Tuesday, 03 January 2017 01:52)
Part 2:
"Son, .,, I mean Chameli, lets start getting ready. I don't want to get spanked by your wife again. She is a very tough lady. I am so glad you are under protection", so saying Shailesh held his son's hand and made him sit before the mirror.
"Sheila, what do you think we should get ready as? If we aren't girly enough, then mistress warned us that they would not release us this month"
"I have an idea. Lets dress up as prostitute. We will dress up in pink saree and low cut blouse and stick lots and lots of makeup on them like our names. That should impress our mistresses, don't you think"
"Oh yes... it is going to be soooo girly and cuteee", Rajesh clapped his hands like a little girl and blew a kiss to his dad. "Mistress, Thank you for helping us become the best sissies ever", he said making a curtsy gesture while looking at the video camera fixed at one of the corners of the ceiling.
"Ooooh..lets sit on the bed and apply nail polish", Shailesh smiled at the video camera too. He knew the rules. Whoever acts less girly will get spanked and should sleep on the floor.
The men were still naked. They got in a 69 position such that the other's feet is accessible. They chose bright pink and applied glittery nail polish. They painted each others hand nails following that.
Shailesh made his son sit before the mirror and started applying makeup to him. He applied heavy coats of eyeliner, lipstick and mascara, put sindoor and big nosering, Shailesh also put big dangling earrings and bindi. There was glitter allover the eyes. Rajesh returned the favour to his dad. They both then wore bangles, and anklets.
Shailesh then held his son's face in his hands, "You look so beautuful Chameli. We failed as men but we will definitely win as sissies". They both pouted their lips like they were about to kiss and made fake kisses on each others cheeks without touching. Their hands stiff with their palms facing down. They popped out their butts slightly while doing that most girly act. They knew that they were demeaning themselves beyond return but the rules are rules and they needed release desperately.
Shailesh then pulled a pink skimpy thong up his son's silky legs and adjusted the front so that it snugly cupped his son's tiny pink
chastity. Rajesh pulled up a similar pink thong up his dad's legs too. Both their asses were completely on display. They wore a similar thin and skimpy
blouse. He tapped the glitter filled hands on his son's trapped clittie which made Rajesh let out a sudden moan. He knew his dad got a brownie point for touching his penis so he thought for a while giggled like an excited girl," Ooooh Sheila., that felt tingly", He waved his limp wrist and giggled like a total fag. Soon both of them were standing in pink glittery thong andblouse. They were sparkling with all the shining material.
Then came the hair. "Chameli, lets tie our hair in a pony tail with a pink ribbon."
"No dad.. err. sorry Sheila, lets tie the hair into two flowing pigtails with two pink ribbons.
The father and the son, both had hair till their shoulder so they knew that tying either a ponytail or pigtails will make them look ridiculous
anyway. They flipped and decided to tie their hair in two pigtails. Their hair was long enough to get a pigtail and the flowing pink
ribbon below their ears.
The two men opened the drawer and wore their mangalsutra. "Isn't is good that our mistresses still allow us to be their spouse. They are so considerate", Shailesh said holding his son's hand.
Rajesh suddenly clicked his finger as if he got an idea. "Why dont we dress up as bar dancers. Here let me fetch something"
He came back carrying two transperent cholis. They wore the cholis. They were long till their ankles and flew when they moved.
Shailesh They took a deep breath. It was almost one hour. They opened the door of their small room and came out seductively. The living room was empty and nobody was seen anywhere.
They looked at each other puzzled and saw a note on the sofa table. It read " SORRY SISSIES BUT WE ARE OUT ON A DATE WITH OUR LOVERS. YOUR OFFICIAL PARTY HAS BEEN POSTPONED TO NEXT WEEKEND. FINISH THE LEFTOVER DINNER AND COZY UP AND SLEEP. DON'T WAIT UP"
Priya (Tuesday, 03 January 2017 02:03)
Story from petticoated.com
I was brought up by my mother following very strict rules at home and my hair dressing rules which is chiseled in stone and has not changed a bit even after my marriage.
My married life has been even stricter, considering that now I have 3 elderly females, who supervise every aspect of my life, now that I very well understand my place in this household and well trained to behave like a maid and follow the command instinctively to the word, my wife has started humiliating me in public, she likes to show off who is in charge, when we go out I have to carry a shopping bag and walk 3 steps behind her, I should never cross her if she stops I should stop.
Once when we were on our usual shopping trip I was not concentrating on her and started looking at some other things around, so when my wife stopped to see some articles in one shop I just kept walking and crossed her and went forward, I returned immediately as I knew about it but the mistake was already done and she doesn't believe in leniency, she slapped my face hard leaving her finger impression on my cheek, and she made me to stand there in public, holding my pigtail braids pulled tightly upwards for 30 minutes, it was so humiliating because few passerbys also asked me why I am standing here pulling my braids, I had to tell them it is a punishment for not following my wife's orders perfectly.
At home sometimes my wife uses my long thick braid as a leash to guide me around the house as required, I am responsible for keeping our house spotless and my performance is inspected randomly. During inspection she holds my pigtail as a leash and pulls me across to each and every room and checks that all the work be completed according to her specified standards else I am in for a severe spanking, I dread these inspection times. If any inefficiency is found I am ordered to prepare myself for the punishment i.e., I have to remove my clothes completely except my shoes and socks and stand at the center of our living room and wait for my wife to arrive. This doesn't change even if any visitors are present I have to stand at attention position displaying my private parts for everybody to see.
I have to stand at attention position during lengthy interrogation, where every now and then she hits my private part with a cane, finally she announces my punishment and immediately I should bend over a wooden chair and receive my caning. The number of strokes depend upon my mistakes though usually it would be between 15 to 20.
My mother also stays nearby on the same road hardly 150 meters from my wife's house, I should also attend and obey her, but now a days I am called only for some special duties or to receive punishment, because she has two maids who would attend her and my sister hand and foot, they are my Father and my sister's husband. I am fortunate that I have been trained on domestic duties since a young age, because I can see that my sister's husband is not used to doing house work prior to their marriage and now he endures sever punishments for not doing his chores properly, both my sister and my mother punish him for any misdeeds.
That's all for now I am getting late to go home, if you are interested in my story I will write again telling you other incidences of my strict and disciplined lifestyle.
Regards
Gunddukogile
ARUN (Tuesday, 03 January 2017 21:23)
@ex q zit
HI, Just read "the perfect future" on kindle and enjoyed it and now eagarly waiting for your next story. plz post it soon.
Priya (Wednesday, 04 January 2017 00:07)
A day in the life of chastity maid:
My day begins early in the morning, long before my Mistress wakes up. I start off my daily routine with shaving, showering and applying full make-up with sindoor, mangalsutra and bangles.
I then put on a bra, panties and nylons under saree. My uniform is completed with 4 inch patent leather pumps.
It’s now time for me to wake my Mistress up without any touching. As a sissy maid, I’ve learned my place.
I proceed to serve her coffee and fruit for breakfast and then scurry off to run her shower. While Mistress is in the bathroom getting ready for work,
I lay out her clothes for the day, as per instructions from the night before.
I now run off to my bathroom, as fast as my high heels will allow me, so I can get ready to go to work. Yes, I’m still legally married to Mistress and although I’m no longer needed to play the part of her husband, I’m still required to pay it.
The income from my job serves to keep my Mistress’s dresser drawer full of fine lingerie and her shoe closet packed with expensive high heels.
Then there are the costs associated with her hairdresser, manicurist, health club membership, massage therapist and tennis lessons to take care of.
I am also required to put away a good portion of my pay check in a vacation fund…..for Mistress and her boyfriend. Once, every so often, they take me along to serve
as their personal maid, dressed as such. I’m not quite passable, so it’s an overall humiliating experience for me.
Once my make-up is off, I jump into the shower and attempt to clean around and under my CB-6000. It hasn’t been removed for three straight months now as Mistress’s new boyfriend isn’t yet completely sold on my role as a chastity maid and feels a bit insecure with another ‘man’ living under the same roof as his girlfriend.
As a good chastity sissy maid should, I always wear a pair of panties, a garter belt and nylon stockings and mangalsutra under my ‘male’ work clothes.
Once I get to work, I can expect a daily text from my Mistress telling me to run an errand or two during my lunch hour. I usually forgo eating any lunch as I’m expected to keep my girlish figure in tip-top shape.
I rush home after work to re-apply my make-up, get dressed, don a saree and began preparing dinner. Mistress’s boyfriend is coming over for the evening and everything must be perfect. If it isn’t, she has a penchant for the riding crop and has proven that she’s not shy about using it on me when necessary.
My Mistress arrives home and I must greet her at the door, kneel down and kiss the tips of the toes of her high heels. I then take her coat and purse and brings
her water and tea before continuing with dinner preparations.
When her boyfriend arrives a bit later, I must greet him at the door, kneel and kiss his shoes. I absolutely HATE doing this this but Mistress claims that
this submissive behavior of her chastity maid produces a warm glow inside of her pussy.
Her boyfriend and her sip wine and make-out on the couch while I work on dinner. After eating, she calls me in to inform me that while she’s feeling exhausted and not up to any lovemaking for the evening, her lover is quite horny and will require some ‘feminine attention’.
I am instructed to clear the table, clean up the kitchen and then head upstairs to get all dolled up. I am told to freshen my make-up, apply extra long false eyelashes,extra jewellery then put on my sexiest lingerie and highest heels with chaniya choli. I am admonished not to keep them waiting long.
My Mistress always like to have her boyfriends set the proper tone early on in their relationship in order to show her chastity maid who the real man of the house is. Tonight is that night.
She has me swallow a muscle relaxant, gives her boyfriend a Viagra, sits back with a glass of wine, and watches the mayhem begin. It’s quite an erotic and
enjoyable show for her as I’m forced to show off my improving dancing skills with 2 hours of mujra and then eventually I get the shit thoroughly fucked out of me.
Her and her lover then head off to the bedroom while her chastity maid is left to clean up the mess.
The following morning I lightly knock on her bedroom door, fully dressed and made-up of course, to take their breakfast-in-bed order. The delicious eggs
and tea meal that I serve has rendered my Mistress quite horny and her boyfriend also seems aroused.
I am instructed to bring in a pad and pen so I can write down my chores for the day. As I prepare to receive my orders, she sits up and straddles her lover, guiding his now raging hard-on into her wet pussy.
Priya (Wednesday, 04 January 2017 00:08)
Part 2:
She then erotically gives me my instructions; vacuum the entire house, hand-wash her bras and panties, detail the car as they will be going out tonight, press her boyfriend’s shirt and shine his shoes.
Mistress begins to softly moan as she is telling me to wake them both at noon after making love followed by a short nap. She can now no longer talk so just snaps her fingers as a signal for me to leave so I can begin my work…. while she plays.
I wake them up on cue and my mistress is horny again. Her boyfriend doesn’t seem to be responding in like fashion so her chastity maid (me) is instructed to ‘fluff’
him up to size. I’m am then forced to stand there and watch them make love as a painful reminder of my inability to please a woman with my shrunken and caged-up dick.
The sight of her chastised, feminized and frustrated maid standing there, sexually denied, while she is free to make love with abandon is just too much for
her. It soon sends her tumbling over the edge, screaming in delight. Her lover follows suit shortly.
I used to be required to clean my Mistress’s my pussy after intercourse but I’ve since been cut off from all sexual intimacy and contact. I am made to perform ‘clean-up duty’ on her boyfriend however. I have learned to do this without flinching as the memory of one of her brutal ‘cock caning’ sessions is forever entrenched in my mind.
After showering, she has her boyfriend go out and inspect the car to make sure it is detailed to her satisfaction. When he returns, she calls her chastity maid in
as she has a little surprise for me.
It seems that her lover is having concerns over the security of my chastity. She has assured him that it is very secure and I’m rarely let out except for quarterly supervised orgasms of the most humiliating variety.
Never-the-less, he has insisted that I get a male chastity piercing for my dick as added security. She wholeheartedly agrees and instructs me to make an appointment that afternoon to get a PA piercing for the end of my dick. I’m told to request a young female technician to perform the piercing. She and her boyfriend
plan to accompany me and watch the entire procedure.
She then informs me that, from this point forward, her lover will be taking sole possession of the key to my chastity cage. I immediately turn pale and begin to visibly shake but I eventually calm down enough to re-assess my predicament.
I will now be performing sissy maid duties for two. I am instructed to go fetch my lipstick. When I return I am told to fall to my knees, crawl over to where her boyfriend is sitting and re-do my lips.
She then removes the key to my chastity cage from around her neck, hands it to
her lover and orders me to unzip his pants and gently pull his growing dick out. “He now has the key to your cage”,
she says to me. “If you want to cum again anytime soon, kiss it softly and sweetly, as if it’s the most important thing in the world to you.”
And I do.
I’m a perfect example that a sissy maid can only be at her best when her dick is kept locked up. Being kept in a constant state of arousal helps me to focus my attention where it should be, on my chores.
SRS (Wednesday, 04 January 2017 00:54)
Priya continue
Priya (Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:51)
Two Weeks with Mother-in-Law
It was 6:00 in the morning as Rama put my suitcase in the trunk, along with hers and Tushar's. I was ordered to sit in the back seat for the long ride to her mother's house in Bangaluru.
My travelling outfit was a red embroidered saree with heavy blouse and petticoat, lots of make-up including bright red lips, blue eye shadow, black eyeliner and long false lashes, sindoor, mangalsutra, big rend bindi, 24 bangles in hand, nosering, long dangling earrings, with 5-inch heels completed my sissy outfit. My hair had been freshly permed and colored the night before. Now it was a bright copper-red, short and tightly curled in a style reminiscent of the 1950s.
I sat nervously in the plush leather back seat of Tushar's Mercedes as my wife and her big, muscular black lover got in and we drove away.
Rama and Tushar were going on a two-week Caribbean cruise, while I was to stay with my mother-in-law and be her live-in sissy-maid. Rama had me locked in my chastity device for the past four months, and her mother Priya planned on seeing to it that I would remain in my state of total sexual frustration until they got back.
I thought I would die when we drove through the toll booths. Tushar made sure to give the toll collector a large bill to change, giving the woman plenty of time to see me sitting in the back seat in my humiliating outfit.
As we drove along in the frosty darkness of this mid-winter morning, Rama and Tushar discussed the several tropical islands they would visit. Rama snuggled up close to him, giggling and reminding him how romantic their two weeks together would be.
All the while I thought of what was in store for me: two long weeks at the mercy of my bitchy, castrating mother-in-law, who never liked me to begin with, and who had been waiting a long, long time to get me in just such a situation.
I was sure every driver that passed alongside us was took a double-take at the fluffy, ultra-feminine "girl" in the back seat of our car. Rama reminded me to sit up straight and not pay any mind to the other cars. My face was hot and flushed the entire ride.
After what seemed an eternity, we pulled up to Priya's spacious suburban home. As if by magic, the door opened for us, and we pulled inside.
"Okay, Sissy!" Rama announced. "Out you go!"
She got out and took my big pink suitcase out of the trunk, as I nervously got out of the car. Tushar just looked at me and laughed. I could see my breath in the chilly garage as Rama brought my suitcase inside, instructing me to wait until she returned.
"You know what, little sissy white boy?" Tushar smirked. "I am going to fuck the shit out of your wife the whole time we're gone. She wants me to give her a baby sooo bad .. the baby you never would, or could, give her with that soft little sissy-dick of yours."
I could only stand there and take it. I felt completely worthless as a man standing there in my ridiculous outfit, as this stud laughed out loud at me.
"Just think, sissy-boy. While you're here being bossed around by your ugly bitch mother-in-law, I'm gonna be pumping my hot load in your wife's pussy .. over and over and over. Two solid weeks of fucking and impregnating YOUR wife! Shit man, I am gonna have a GOOD time!"
Just then Rama returned and stood in front of me. Looking me straight in the eye, she gave her final instructions before departing.
"Remember everything I told you, Sissy. You are to obey mother as you obey me. Do everything she tells you, and don't give her a hard time or you know what will happen. I expect to get a good report from her when I return."
"Yes Mistress," I blinked.
She gave me one last look up and down, and could barely keep from bursting out in laughter and the sight of her pathetic sissy husband. Then she got back in the car with Tushar. As they backed out of the garage, Tushar looked at me and mouthed the words, "I'm gonna FUCK your WIFE." I could see Rama give him a big wet kiss just before they sped off to the airport.
I pressed the button to close the door, and nervously entered my mother-in-law's house - feeling every bit like the little sissy I knew I was. I closed the door behind me, and stood alone in the mirrored foyer, awaiting the woman who be my cruel, stern Mistress for the next two weeks: my mother-in-law!
"Well! What have we here?"
I spun around on my heel to see my mother-in-law enter the room. I felt myself swell pathetically in my super-tight gaff.
Priya (Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:52)
Part 2:
Priya was 60 years old, but had a body any woman that age would die for. She stood almost six feet tall in heels, and had a voluptuous figure that still turned men's heads. Certainly not a pretty woman, she more than made up for it with her beautiful body, lots of impeccably applied makeup, and her classic and well-practiced femininity.
I couldn't believe what she was wearing.
She wore a tight white athletic top, which made her large breasts look super-soft and lovely. A bright red pleated tennis skirt barely covered whatever she wore underneath, and her white kidskin-leather over-the-knee boots had "sensible" 4-inch heels.
Her full head of long platinum-white hair was fluffed and teased into a huge halo around her head. Priya had the most beautiful skin I have ever seen on a 60-year-old woman. Firm and darkly tanned, she looked magnificent -- and frighteningly sexy.
"Stand at attention!" she barked.
I obeyed instantly, feeling completely embarrassed dressed the way I was in her presence. She approached me, her high-heels clicking on the marble floor. Slowly she circled me, closely examining me from head to foot. I trembled, my face hot from blushing profusely.
"Come with me, Sissy!" she ordered.
I nervously followed her into the living room, my heart pounding. I briefly took a glimpse of Priya's sexy hips wiggling sensuously in her red-hot tennis skirt.
"Stand at attention in the middle of the room, Sissy!"
"Yes, Ma'am," I answered timidly.
"It's MOTHER, stupid!! You are to refer to me at all times as Mother! Do you understand??" she shrieked.
"Yes, Mother."
As I once again stood at attention in the center of Priya's beautifully appointed living room, she sat in a large green velvet chair and crossed her gorgeous legs. For a few moments there was silence. I was actually sweating.
"Turn for me, Sissy. Model your little sissy saree for me. And don't stop until you're told."
"Yes, Mother."
Slowly I rotated, like the models on TV that Rama had me closely study and emulate. Priya laughed out loud.
"What a SISSY!" she declared in a loud voice. "Look at yourself! Don't you feel just a little FOOLISH dressed like that here with your mother-in-law?"
I did feel completely foolish, and told her so. But that only made her laugh harder as she re-crossed her legs.
"I knew from Day One that you were no man. Certainly not man enough for MY daughter! I really am very happy she found Tushar. Now THERE's a REAL MAN!"
I never felt so humiliated in my life. To think that I would be spending the next two weeks with this witch was unbearable.
"Walk, Sissy. Walk back and forth for me. I want to see how you manage in those high heels!"
Priya settled back with a cigarette as I obeyed. Mincing daintily in my heels, I clicked loudly on the hardwood floor.
"Eyes straight ahead!" I was commanded. "Hands on hips! Do NOT stop until I tell you to!"
I felt like a complete sissy marching back and forth for her in high-heels, my face flushed bright red. Priya laughed long and loud.
"Alright, little sissy-boy. Let's get a few things straight. For the next two weeks, I will not require you to wear your little cage thing. But you will remain as you are now .. tightly tucked away. I assure you ... there will be no erect penises and CERTAINLY no disgusting male orgasms in MY house! Do you understand?"
"Yes Mother," I meekly replied as I continued my deportment.
"At night, you will be bound so those roving hands of yours can't get into any mischief! Also, we will also be utilizing a little demerit system. You will do whatever I tell you to do .. instantly and cheerfully. Any hesitancy in obeying will result in one demerit. If you get five demerits over the next two weeks, I will inform Rama, and she will keep you locked in chastity for a three-month extension. Each demerit over five will add another month. Do you understand?"
"Yes, Mother... "
"In addition, every day you will be given one full dosage of Viagra-Plus. I'm very interested to see what kind of effect that will have on your behavior!"
"Yes, Mother! Thank you Mother!"
Again Priya laughed hysterically, fully enjoying the total power and control she now had over her emasculated son-in-law. I wondered what humiliating orders I would be given during my stay with her.
"Stop walking, Sissy!" I was commanded. "Now come with me. Time to put you to work!"
Priya (Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:53)
Priya led the way up the stairs. As I followed behind, I looked up and got a glimpse of my mother-in-law's firm, sexy bottom, encased in shiny white satin tennis panties.
"You better not be looking up my skirt, Sissy!"
I quickly averted my eyes. "No, Mother, I'm not."
She led me into her amazing bedroom .. richly appointed and totally feminine. I stood there as she opened a dresser drawer and dumped an enormous pile of her panties onto the bed.
"Bring my panties into the bathroom, Sissy!"
"Yes, Mother."
I scooped up the enormous pile of luscious, obviously very expensive undergarments and followed her into her bathroom. There I saw a huge pile of clip-on hangers on the table. I dropped the mountain of panties next to the sink as instructed.
"There is the sink. There is the Woolite. You are to hand wash every single pair of panties and hang them on the hangers over the tub. You will not stop until every last panty is thoroughly washed and hung up to dry. Do I make myself clear?"
"Yes, Mother!" I answered instantly.
"SMILE WHEN YOU ANSWER ME SISSY!!" she screamed. "That will be ONE .. DEMERIT!"
I grinned like a humiliated child. "Yes, Mother! Thank you, Mother!"
Priya reached into the medicine cabinet and brought out a vial of big blue pills. She took one out and ordered me to take it. I swallowed the giant Viagra-Plus pill and washed it gown with a glass if water.
"Good. Now get to work .. SISSY!"
I started to fill the sink with warm water, and added a capful of Woolite. As the bubbles grew, I took the first pair of panties and immersed them in the sudsy water.
"You scrub each and every pair of panties good! I want them as clean as the day I bought them! Do each one separately. Rinse them in cool water and hang them neatly and carefully. I want you to show my panties the respect they deserve from a sissy like you!"
"Yes, Mother! Thank you Mother!" I cheerfully responded.
"Also change into a babydoll nighty before the chores, I don't want you to ruin this expensive saree" She said.
"Yes Mother, doing it now mother", I responded with forced smile.
I knew babydoll nighty will show my chastity clearly to her, as I was not allowed to wear panties. I changed into pink babydoll, but kept all the makeup and jewelry on.
Priya gave me a look of absolute disdain as she turned and left me to my sissy task. I felt completely defeated.
I don't know where she bought her panties, but they were of exquisite quality. Even better than Victoria's Secret lingerie. I'll bet that each pair cost at least INR. 200, and there were dozens and dozens of them, one prettier and sexier than the last.
Satin briefs, silk bikinis, and a huge assortment of beautiful control briefs and ruffly tennis panties awaited my attention. I paid close attention to each pair, scrubbing the crotches with a little brush. For each pair I would empty the sink, refill it with cool clear water, and rinse them thoroughly. Then, I hung each one on its own individual hanger and let them drip into the tub.
Priya (Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:53)
Part 4:
After about a half-hour, I wasn't even a quarter-way through the pile. It was then that Priya returned and sat in her makeup chair behind me. I could see her reflection in the mirror, as she looked me up and down.
"Well, pretty soon your wife and her lover will be settling into their cabin on the cruise ship. I'll bet the first thing they'll do is make passionate love. How does that make you feel, Sissy?"
I knew I had to give the correct answer or risk another demerit. "I'm so happy Rama is having a good time, Mother," was my pathetic answer.
Priya burst into laughter.
"How could any woman not have a good time in that situation, you moron? On a two-week cruise with a handsome stud who wants nothing but to FUCK her day in and day out! When was the last time YOU fucked my daughter, Sissy?"
"It's been over two years, Mother."
"You are nothing but a pathetic excuse for a man. No. You're not even CLOSE to being a man. Look at yourself! Dressed in a sissy-fag babydoll nightie and knee-socks like a little GIRL, hand washing your mother-in-law's panties while your wife is busy getting impregnated by a muscular, dominating black man! You .. are .. PATHETIC! AREN'T YOU?? ANSWER ME!!!!"
"Yes, Mother.." I said, my lip quivering. "I am pathetic."
As Priya marched out of the bathroom, I suddenly realized how horny I was. It had been four months since I was last permitted to cum, and I had at least another two weeks of total chastity staring me in the face. And I had a funny feeling Priya would certainly find ample reason to give me at least the five demerits necessary to keep me frustrated for an addition 3 months.
I wanted desperately to rip off the gaff and masturbate furiously .. to shoot my enormous, pent-up load of semen all over the pile of pretty panties that lay before me. But I knew if Priya found me in any way untucked or touching myself, she would see to it that I would never cum again.
Hot, powerful waves of intense sexual frustration coursed through my sissified body as I washed Priya's panties, until all I could think of was how much I wished I could cum -- though I knew that was completely impossible. I also knew that Tushar would have limitless opportunities to pump hot torrents of his potent, black African seed deep into my wife's fertile womb over the next two weeks, while I endured endless denial and frustration at the hands of my castrating mother-in-law.
I had no choice but to give up and give in to Priya's iron-clad control over me. I felt my mind breaking, and my entire purpose in life was to please and obey her, no matter how embarrassed or humiliated I was, just with the hope that I might feel the delicious release of cumming one more time before the next lengthy period of total enforced chastity.
Priya (Thursday, 05 January 2017 17:57)
My sexy wife is always working on ways to challenged me to work harder to earn the privilege of orgasm. Since I am now wearing a chastity belt, 24/7, and have been for 3 months, I’m "game" for anything. This time, she has me "puzzled." You see, she has found an interesting website that has a great variety of puzzles, both in terms of number of pieces, shapes, and levels of difficulty. The site has each puzzle timed.
After cleaning the entire house spotless, she has me sit down at the computer (I can only get on the computer when she allows me to do so). She chains me to the chair, leaving one hand unchained to manipulate the mouse. She will then select a puzzle. Depending on the level of difficulty she selects, she will give me a certain time limit. If I successfully work a puzzle on time, she will take the remaining seconds and apply them to the next puzzle. If I don’t work the puzzle in time, she will deduct those seconds off the next, more difficult puzzle’s time. I must attempt to solve 10 increasing difficult puzzles. If I miss the time on three puzzles, then no orgasm. Losing on 4 or more puzzles takes represents an additional month of chastity for each puzzle for which I don’t make the time.
One additional variable: She dresses in very sexy attire and does her best to distract my concentration. Anything goes. She makes all of the rules. It’s difficult to concentrate on solving a puzzle when she is giving me a blowjob, but what is more difficult is having to give her lover a blowjob for every puzzle I lose above 3 puzzles; that is, for every puzzle I lose after 3 loses, I have an added month of chastity and must give her lover or anyone she chooses a blowjob.
This last round of games, I didn’t get an orgasm, and I ended up having to give 4 blowjobs. These games are very difficult, even with full concentration. The web is full of challenging games that she is exploring, and I must always cheerfully play whatever games she chooses. Damn this internet.
A shorty:
I hate giving blowjobs. I am strictly heterosexual. When I have to give them, I am made to dress like a sexy bar dancer, in complete attire, including 5 inch locking pumps. After I finish, I have to go clean the lover’s apartment or house. How humiliating. To stay slim and sexy, I am required to follow a female diet and maintain a weight of 125 lbs. I’m six foot tall.
Chastity has changed my life forever. My wife has me just where she wants me. It
SRS (Thursday, 05 January 2017 23:38)
Nandana please continue ur story where are you
poonam (Friday, 06 January 2017 05:01)
Sexy girl where r u? Plzz complete sisters story
goppi (Friday, 06 January 2017 06:20)
Anybody know any good crossdressing story blogs same like this blog.
Plese post blogs names.....
crossdressers hangout (Sunday, 08 January 2017 01:35)
Checkout the page - https://mbasic.facebook.com/Crossdressers-hangout-210560955989187/?_e_pi_=7%2CPAGE_ID10%2C4443280752
dolly (Monday, 09 January 2017 13:27)
Hii, I am ankit. My height is 5.4 fair skin very hairless body slim size 21 by age. I am very shy kind of boy so I have no very few friends in my college. After completion of my college I became alone. We n my parents lived in city apartment . I worked on software design in home for earnings. Sach I way spend my boring life. After few days my parents forced me to attend of wedding of their close friend in delhi. But due to shy nature I refuse to go with them so they send me to my aunty’s home who lived 20km away from my home. My parents dropped me to my aunts home and they went to attend the marriage for 1 month. Aunt husband is no more, she have a big home 2 female servants for care and aunt have 1 doughter kavita she is 5 years older and taller than me she is tuition teacher. My aunt is social worker she always busy in her schedule. kavita is very frank by nature she try to be friendly with me and she come to know my shy naturevery soon. One day kavita says lets go for shopping in evening. She is asking about my girl friend and friends. I said I have very few friends we often meet once. On her scooty we go to the big mall for purchasing some dresses. In the mall she asking me to buy a shirt for me. I don’t know which kind of shirt suits me so for her happiness I selected one floral shirt. Kavita smiles and says stupid really do you like it? Yes kavita I said. Okkkk then its yours and you have to purchase one pant to suit it. I said I don’t know which pant will suits it I never purchase dresses for me mom always shopping for me. Kavita says okk then I wil help you. She selected one pant for me and I said okk. Kavita purchase some tops jeans skirts chudidar leggings for her. Then We come to home. Kavita taken me to the dressing room and says try the dresses and she tries her own. When I remove my tshirt she observes my hairless body and said u have girly body there is no hairs. I keep quite by shyness. Ok ankit wear your shirt now. When I wear it I feel confortable it is of my size and I wear my pant which is red in colour selected by kavita.
dolly (Monday, 09 January 2017 13:28)
When I wear it I feel it is very tight from my theighs and hip region but I said it is also confortable. Kavita smiles loudly. Ohhh do you really like it. I said yes it is very soft. Means you like these kind of dresses good choice ankit. Ok then remove it now u have no fashion sence now I wil select dresses for you. I said ok. She throws my dresses in cup board which I bring from my home and locked them. She gaves me one yelow colored slacks to wear and one white top for night. Top has no collers and no sleeves. It dont have pockets also but it perfectly fits my body very tightly. Kavita said u looks cute in these dress I smiles. When aunt comes she smiles to me and ask why you wears these dresses. I said kavita gave me these dress. She smiles and go in her room. In the dineer table two fe,female servants also smiles to me I don’t know why. Aunt says ankit you looking very good in these dress and both kavita and aunt smiles. I have to spend 1 month with them so I never complained for anything to them. Next day in morning kavita and aunt gone for work and I bath but I don’t have any innerwear as my all dresses were locked in cupboard by kavita. so I ask for servants malti and sona for keys but they donyt have keys. So I search for some innewears in dressing room. There I found one black color panty which is very soft by touch. I wear it and wears yesterdays top and slacks because I have no choice. In evening when kavitacomes she is searching for her innerwears so she asked malti and sona for her dresses. They also not found her inerwears so she wears another. I was watching tv she come to me. I ask her about cup board keys and said I have no innerwears so I wear one black innerwear in morning. She shocks and said means you weras that black innerwear? I said yes she smiles loudly and ask me how you feel after wearing it. I said I feel confortable it is very soft by touch and I have no choice. Ankit u r really very simple guy. Do u relly don’t know about dresses? I said I wear whatever mom brings for me. Oh she said means you like wearing soft dresses? Then she bring one blue color shorts and one white top for me to change the dress. I wear that blue short on that black panty. it is bit tight and it is 5 to 6 inch in size and very tight in my penis area.
dolly (Monday, 09 January 2017 13:28)
I remove old top and my hairless fair body visible to kavita. Ankit u have slim body before wearing these white top you have to wear matching bra it will suits you. Then she bring blue color bra. I wear it and kavita tie hook from backside. She says we have to added some cottons in bra it wil give you perfect shape. I said it looks like girl dress. She said girls and boys have common dresses now a days. Then I said okk. Then I wear white top which is sleeveless and my stomach area is open it is very short. I said kavita di I think i look like a girl in that blue short and white top. She said yes but these style suits you. U look sexy in these attire I like you very much in these dress. With some make up u will look again sexy. I shy and said how?? Then she told me sit before dressing table cross legged. I do as she says. She set my hairs in girly style from middle. she applys some creams on my face set my eye brows girly style added some black kajal, set small bindi on my fore head and apply red lipstick on my lips. She set small zumkas on my ears and one necklace in my neck. Finally 2 2 bangles in each hand and give hill sandle to wear. She makes me stand up. She observes me from top to bottom in blue short open legs and white sexy top. Hey ankit you look like modern girl in these attire !!!! when I see in the mirror I cant identify me I relly looks like modern girl. She really enjoys my company so I also behave as she said to me. U r not ankit u r now my close friend ankita okk??
dolly (Monday, 09 January 2017 13:29)
Sach a way she becomes my close friend as well my di also. I mentally thinks dat she is very careful about me and I enjoys her company. I enjoys the dresses which she brings for me. Those dresses are very soft by touch. I always work on my computer and apply for many companies for job. I am totally unaware about external world. Next day I wake up early in the morning and orderd malti and sona for tea. Aunty is always busy in her social work. Malti and sona brings tea for me and I ordered for bath hot water to them. I removed yesterdays clothes and entered in the bathroom and ordered malti for some dresses. As my dresses are locked in the cupboard malti says nobody is wake up till now why don’t you wear these Punjabi style salwar because I don’t have any dresses and I think u like these dresses. I said yes malti these dresses are very soft but I think I am wearing girls clothes yesterday don’t u think this short is girls shorts??? Yes ankit baby its girls short you was wearing yesterday she said. but you was looking really sexy in that dress it was very fun to see you in that girly attire. I also enjoys your all”s company malti but I feel shy unknowingly I like these dresses. Then malti says, don’t hesitate now then wear these chudidar welike to see you in girly attire and you hav no choice also. Okk malti but what about innewears. Don’t worry ankit wear these pink panty hanging inside bathroom and white colour slip. Okk I said and went inside the bathroom. I removed all my yesterdays make up. As I say I have no hairs on my body I admiring my nude body with blue shorts inside the mirror of bathroom. Unknowingly my passion about wearing girly dresses is increasing now. So I removed all dresses and bath. Now I wear the pink color panty inside the bathroom and white color slip. Ohh what a soft touch!!! I like the touch of silk on my body.
dolly (Monday, 09 January 2017 13:29)
After wearing these dresses I come outside the bathroom. On the bed there was a blue chudidar its touch also amazing. Iwear that chudidar its touch also very soft. I tied the knot of chudidar and I drying my hairs with towel. When kavita saw me she says wow ankit you looking typical modest in slip and chudidar. I think you like girly dresses. Yes na!! no di I have no option so I am wearing these dresss. Okk I m late for school but I want to see you in sari in the evening okkk. I just smile and go to my room. In my room I am thinking about how wil I look in the sari and eagerly waiting for kavita di. In the evening when kavita di arrives I feel very happy from inside. I am eagerly watching kavita di what will she do now. I just sat watching tv. After some time kavita di comes to me for chit chat. She was telling about her day life and says come with me in dressing room. I just walk with fear with her inside the dressing room. Ankit you like the touch of girls dresses na!! and you are for only few days in my home so I want take your photoshoot in sari for remember your company with me. I just smile and says but I am not a girl di. Don’t worry nobody is watching you here its just for fun I want to transform you. I said ok and I feel very glad inside as I never wear sari and I thinking about my transformation by kavita di. For help kavita di ask for malti and sona to come inside the dressing room. She ordered malti and sona we all have to play dress up game with ankit so we have to make him as beautiful as that he also enjoys the dress and his girly attire okk? They both laugh to me and said okk mam. Malti knows that I like the touch the girly dress so she said finally ankit youwill now become complete girl and u will love to be that. I will decorate you as bridebe ready. I also blush and shows my shyness to them. First they gave me hair removal kit and send me to bathroom. The I come out wrapping towel on my hairless body. sona and malti shows me different color sari’s which will perfectly suits on me. Kavita choose pink colour sari which is very heavy and have designer silver work on it. She asks malti and sona don’t you think ankit will looking very sexy in it? They both knobbed their head and here I feel very shy I put my both hands on my face. Sona says I think ankit like the sari see the shyness of happy. They all laugh loudly. Now kavita gave me pink bra and pink silk panty to wear. I again went inside the bathroom. Ohhh what a soft touch of panty. I wear that panty it was bit tight only covers my penis area and only string like from my ass part. Now I wear bra from my own and hooked from back and by covering my body with hands come out of bathroom.
dolly (Monday, 09 January 2017 13:30)
All girls looking with devil smile toward me. Don’t shy ankit we all girls here now be confortable, sona says to me. But I feel trapped in girls so I surrender myself to them. Kavita di fills bra with cotton balls and and brings one pink coloured blouse for me. She puts blouse on me and malti and sona tie the strings from backside. It was deep backless and sleeveless blouse and perfect fits to me. kavita then puts pink petticoat over me and tie the knot. They all checked the fittings of dress and all working for draping sari on me. They made pleats and puts in my waist. She adjust the sari small below for clear visible of my belly. Now she adjust the pallu on my left shoulder and pinned the pallu in left shoulder with pin. Now I am looking like typical Indian girl. They all now sat me on dressing table and working on my face. They wash my face with creams and applus foundation set my eyebrows with kajal. Applys pink lipstick with heavy coat. Sona is working on my nails for nailpolish and malti puts fake ear rings and nose ring. Kavita works on my girly hairstyle and puts pink hairbelt on my head. Silver bindi is set on my forehead. They choose silver color necklace and 1 dozon of pink bangles and puts on my both hands. When I saw on mirror my expression was speechless. I just say ohh my god is that really me? Unknowingly I just kept hand on my chin like girls and behave like girls by seeing my attire. They all watching and laughs loudly. Sona says ankit now you are completely being ankita enjoy and u are behaving like girl unknowingly. Yes sona I cant imagine myself that I will look so beautiful, great work!! Now I come to realize why girls are so good by nature. By seeing my girly attire I love to be girl. Kavita ekta sona all are enjoying my behavior. I asked them with curiosity why girls are doing sach a heavy make up? Then kavita told me, girls are careful and these all perform just to impress their bf or hubby. But kavita I don’t have any hubby or bf and I love to be impress him if I have somebody. And we all laugh loudly. Amongs them sona said don’t worry ankita you will be get your hubby soon jokingly. Kavita by serious said hey hey hey we have solution for it, We can arrange hubby for ankita just for today, and I have a plan. I by nervously looking at kavita, “ what kind of plan kavita has In her mind!!!!” kavita said one of us can be hubby for our dear ankita today. I just aww and listening carefully, what she is talking about. Look kavita said, amongst us sona is well build and ankita dear is very lean in front of her, she is heighted than ankita, means sona is perfect hubby for our ankita, don’t u think girls?. Sona saw towards me showing her eyebrows up n down for my permission. I just kept my hands on my face. All asking about me, is me like sona or change the hubby. I said, I feel shy I cant take decision, actually I like her but… but… what plan u peoples are cooking?? Kavita said, no plan dear just enjoy the company of sona for photoshoot, I just want to capture all moments of you and sona as gf bf.
dolly (Monday, 09 January 2017 13:31)
I just stunned by listening this. Okk I said to them just for photoshoot. Sona came by wearing black jeans and white tshirt on which she wears black blazer. She kept one cap to hide her small hairs. Her get up looks like a boy and she will going to be my hubby for photoshoot. Kavita and malti take out their mobiles and said me to stand besides sona. With shyness I adjust my sari and pallu and stand besides sona. Sona is heighted so kavita gave me sandles to wear and they take photographs. Malti shows me different pose how to stand as girl and I also enjoys the pose as sona my hubby. I one pose I have to keep my head and hands on shoullderof sona and In another sona held me from behind to my waist and kept her chin on my shoulder. Best pose is sona kissing my cheeks from behind and I have to smile. Sach a way different poses I have to gave for photoshoot. I observes that intentionally sona touches my boobs or hips during photosession when nobody is watching, but I just enjoys the situation. Then kavita said, ok girls more fun for today lets eat dinner now. We all ate dinner now kavita said to change the sari. I don’t want to change the sari but I have no choice because its kavitas sari. kavita then gave me yellow nighty to wear for night. Nighty was satin short frilly and up to my knee only and somehow transperant showing my pink bra and pink panty easily. I just remain on my girly make up with all accessories. My bangles continuously shouting I feel like bride innighty like first night of any bride. Now me and kavita vandering on terrace and we discussing more girly things. Sona still does not changing the jeans and tshirt. Whenever I look towards her I just imagine the moments of photoshoot with her. Sona also looking quite disturb and continuously watching towards me. I come to know what sona wants she wants to spend more time with me than kavita. When I was sitting alone sona said to come with her in backside room of bunglow. I said for what?? She said I want to kiss you plz ankita just one kiss. Okk baba wait. She saidokkk I m waiting in backside room come alone I am waiting there.I also wish to kiss her so just rush from terrace without knowing kavita. when I entered the room sona just push me inside the room and locked the door. My heart beats faster as I never kissed any girl before. I just stood stunned there. She comes more close to me , I closed my eyes with shyness when she come forward. She first kissed on my cheeks I also response her like girl. She then remove my nightys shoulder strap by side and kissed passionately on my neck and shoulder. I kept my hands on her back and response her like girl. She then kiss on my lips very hard i also gave her permission to use me. She kept her hand on my hip size and make my nighty upside and pressing my hips. I completely behave like girls and response her like girls. She throws me on bed and then she removed her tshirt she doesn’t wear bra her boobs clearly visible to me. She then lean on me and trying to remove my nighty. She succeeded to do so as I responsing to her. She is kissing my hairless theighs and all over the body. Now I am just on my bra panty. She then removes her jeans, I can see one dildo is hanging in her pussy area. I afraid as I never sex with any girl with dildo. She says calm down ankita dear I will not hurt you but you will enjoys it promis. She removes my pink panty to my knee and from backside she inserted the dildo with very hard. I just shout she kept her hand on my mouth and she fucks me like first wedding night. After some time I also enjoys the dildo she fucks me for 15mn. Now I just layed down on her body we both were nude. Suddenly door knoks I know kavita must be outside. Kavita from outside says, hey sona don’t make ankita pregnant today only, she is very soft girl don’t use her so much, and she is smiling from outside. I just stood from sona and wears my nighty and adjusting my hairs and dress with shy open the door and trying to rush from there. Kavita holds my hand and asking did sona hurt you dear or I disturbing you. I come to know that it is the plan of sona and kavita. sona again come to push me towards her in front of ankita I am also trying to rush out from there but sona was so strong and kavita also supporting her. I feel very embrassed in front of kavita and said, plz let me go sona I feel awkward here…!!! Some how I succedded to rush out from there and entered in my room with closing the doors.
Kanmani (Tuesday, 10 January 2017 12:51)
I'm a married secret crossdresser, and here I was in saree with matching petticoat bra and panties and blouse, I was enjoying the absence of my wife, and suddenly the door bell rang, I was enjoying my feminity in hall an people whoever stands near door can actually sense it's a guy or girl with the blunt image through the Matt finish glass window. I quickly ran back into my room removed everything including the little makeup and dumped everything in my bed and changed myself to my male self, I opened the door and found my MIL standing in the door, she said hi, I replied yea aunty, she called for her daughter, I said she is not here aunty she is @ office, I am using my leave balance and will be
On leave for a week, aunty replied but I just saw my daughter image through that glass, call her know don't play, I was shocked she saw me and how could I explain that's me. She told me you are alone and she asked me to help you, but it looks like you are busy with someone? She walked into my room to only find the saree in bed and she checked my bathroom and kitchen and nowhere she found she looked at me, where is she?
Aunty just calm a moment, she is not here and it is not she you think. That is me.
Mil shocked, aunty please let me explain and promise me you never tell this to your daughter pls.
What are u saying? Is that u?
Yes aunty I stammered.
My daughter always complained about sex now I know why you can't satisfy her. You are not even a man.
Aunty no I'm just a crossdresser, I love to dress up and that's it.
Oh let me see What you got first, turn yourself into a woman and comeback.
I'll do aunty but not now anyone may come now.
If u don't do what I say, you'll be in trouble, my last warning.
I shook In fear and thought aunty might be interested in my other half so I quickly went back to room, wore my saree adjusted my wig and a little makeup on my clean shaved face, I t transformed into a girl. I called aunty to come in the room. She came and she asked me turn around.
Oh what a shape you got, u must've born in wrong body, no where I could find a trace of a guy, how do you call yourself a man?
Aunty please this is just my hobby!
What is your name?
Kunal
No your name as what u r?
Kanmani
Kanmani my dear kanmani lovely name, lovely saree, I'll give u a choice, I'll give a two more set of sarees just run away from this home.
Aunty please I'll do anything you say, please don't let me go out please..
While I was begging she took me out of my room and took some photos, I tried to hide but she warned me and I couldn't help myself, suddenly the doorbell rang.
Aunty locked my bedroom and stood there.
Aunty let me go inside let me change someone is coming.
Who will that be?
My maid!
So ! Go open the door for your maid.
Aunty! What are you saying?
Go! Or get out of this house, I'll spare you some money and sarees.
Without choice I opened the door.
My maid looked at me and shocked laughing she locked the door. Wat is this?
Aunty intervened she is kanmani u can take her for any help in kitchen.
She laughed and said ok madam and called me with her.
Aunty was watching TV.
Me and maid was working together while she asked why am I behaving like this I explained her the whole situation, she said she will help me after lunch my aunty ate alone. She me to sit with Maid and have my lunch. With tears I looked at my maid she is signalled she will help me after lunch the maid spoke to aunty she is willing to continue as maid Since she deserves this. Hearing this I asked aunty I don't want to continue like this my wife will come tonight let me change I will do anything you say.
What will you do Kanmani?
I will do anything.
When you are not a man, why should I need you in this house? I don't want a sissy to my Wife.
Aunty please don't do this to me I got nowhere to go.
You can stay here as you are.
But please aunty Let live as a man.
As I told you you may continue as a maid.
I ran back into kitchen and started crying like a girl.
My maid came from behind and said Kanmani I will help you to live your life as a girl.
But why i don't need to be a girl..
But your wife hates you!
So?
So? I'll give u a choice live you're dream.
I thought for an hour and decided whatever happens I'm gonna stay as i am.
I spoke to aunty I'll stay as what i am.
She looked at me sarcastically replied whatever!.goaway!
Night Came, my wife at the door, i went and opened the door to wife, she realized that was me and slapped me hard, she pushed me out of the house and locked the door. I started crying, after few mins aunt came u shall continue as housekeeper or u can start walking, go anywhere!
I replied I'll live as housemaid...
End...
Amutha Valli (Tuesday, 10 January 2017 17:41)
Kanmani don't stop continue your story please
sarita (Wednesday, 11 January 2017 01:33)
Sexygirl
Where r u plz complt ur story yar
READER (Wednesday, 11 January 2017 03:25)
kanmani please dont stop write more loved your story please continue
sex telefon (Wednesday, 11 January 2017 10:39)
sacharoza
Kanmani (Friday, 13 January 2017 13:40)
It was a normal weekend i was on my way to office, i am a cd, i love to dress up, i live with my aunt, uncle is abroad and he hardly visits her. So I'm the only support for her, I'll help and do all works in Home she always praise me i suppose to born a girl, i like that comment, every night i dress up in my own room, ny using aunts old dresses. I never got caught, and this day i reached office, during weekends I'll be the only employee to work in peace. I enjoy weekends hours at office, i was walking inside office and reached parking to Polish my shoes, and then i noticed a set of house keeping uniforms, my eyes was locked on to that, and since no one use to come office on weekends how this things are there? I thought for a moment and decided to try this dress in outer restroom and keep it back where it were. I quickly took it went inside box toilet and wore the uniforms over my pant shirt and i felt its too tight i removed my shirt and pants and found a camisole inside the parcel so i wore that, and pattiala bottom with U cut chudi tops i neatly pinned the shawl with clips i found in that cover. I also found a cap to cover my head. I tried that too and wanted to take a picture from my mobile. As the box toilet doesn't have much of a light i decided to come out and take a picture. Even though it was a brave act my heart pounded heavily, also had a fear if anyone comes ill be a dead meat.
I slowly opened the door didn't noticed who were standing behind box toilet i camr out and took selfie, when suddenly one lady came and took my phone, we asked all to assemble here for today's work and what are you doing here?
She grabbed me and made me join with other maids in the team. I went last and tried to cover myself and prayed gos no one should find its me. Thank God i had the most feminine face and no facial hairs much and luckily i shaved too.
All maids listen here!
Each of you should go to their respective mentioned place and finish the activity i said before 1pm and report me.
Devi! she called one maid standing besideme. There is a new joiner i kept new uniforms for her who is she? Other maids turned and looked at me. I smiled, tried to smile, the fat lady called me you have to go all restrooms and clean the mirrors, take your things from here and start your work fast, i nodded ok mam, and walked to box toilet to get my dress, but when i went there i found my security took the dresses in a paper folded and threw in garbage bin.
Oh God! What i did? Why everything happening to me?
Why is my security threw out my dress in Garbage?
I slowly tried to talk feminine to that fat lady.
Excuse me.
What? You have not started your work yet?
Mam our security took away my old dress and threw in garbage bin. Shall i go and take it.
Ok ok! Go fast and finish your work.
I ran in my barefoot near garbage bin only to find my dresses were spoiled in shit, i don't have a choice to even touch it, suddenly realized my cards were there in pockets.
Hey u! Called the lady. I ran to her,
Go! Don't waste my time.
One minute mam my money to return home on my dress, I'll take and go.
She immediately took one fifty rupees note and kept in my pocket and screamed go!!!
I took the bucket and spray and sponge tissues and ran to the office.
I was working hard in each restroom till, 1pm my hands were painful and couldn't even able to lift the bucket i reached parking and sat in corner thinking how i will go home, everyone gathered and each of us got lunch in a parcel, i ate alone and waited patiently fat lady came and asked everyone to leave, but I waited there behind a car when suddenly someone removed my cap i shocked to see its the fat lady
She stood in shock!
U r a guy?
Yes mam! Please please don't shout, help me.
What? Help? U disguised as a maid? U did a good job, but you deserve this uniform. I thought of appreciating your works in all girls restroom but u r a guy!
Why should i help you?
Go away or I'll call my security.
Pls mam i don't even have my dress it is in that garbage bin.
That was cleared by corporations in morning itself she said
I started crying mam i lost my dress and my cards i have to travel 30kms from here please help.
She replied you have my fifty rupees go!
She started walking to office i quickly arranged my cap and slowly walked behind her to her office.
She saw me and inside office she screamed what u want from me?
Pls mam help i work in this company i have to continue my work i need spare dress pls help me to change my male self.
She smiled for a moment and took a blank paper and asked me to sign.
I asked why?
U asked me help and I'll help you with that no further questions.
Kanmani (Friday, 13 January 2017 13:41)
I paused for a second and signed quickly.
She took the paper and asked me to wait outside.
I waited outside for an hour and got tensed when i saw my boss car i hung my head down and covered my face. He went inside mam room. She called me inside completely shaking i walked inside she asked is this guy working in this office, he looked at me from top to bottom. He replied to her he was... Not anymore.. With that he stood up mam stopped him but he replied it's my final answer, get lost he said to me and left. I started to cry again badly. Mam came ans said
I just wanted to check u r really saying truth but your boss is so rude.
I was crying again she asked me to calm down and she completed some paperwork and shown me a job contract that I signed with a photo i took selfie this morning. I asked why she did that.
She replied your boss blackmarked your profile you'll not get job anywhere, so i helped u. I asked how will i go home? Like u r! Go home! She said and she also left.
I walked to bus stop took tickets and reached home people treated me as a lowly maid in that uniform and nobody really cared about my gender.
When i reaches home my aunt opened the door to see me in the dress of a maid she slapped me hard and asked what is this? I explained everything... She convinced me to go and take bath, i removed the maid dress and took a fresh bath and came out to see aunt standing with old cotton saree and with petticoat and blouse. Aunt u too? I cried!
See u r not a guy! Not man enough to get married with your feminine feature and u lost a job and downgraded yourself and signed a contract as maid for a year. Everything in a single day and this is the gift, wear the saree and come start your regular work.. Nothing changes except the dress. I always praise you for mistakenly born as boy, now... Get ready and start your work...
End....
Poornima (Friday, 13 January 2017 14:19)
You should have made him clean a ladies toilets and all ladies spitting on him
Jillian Clark (Saturday, 14 January 2017 05:27)
Ut quaerat doloribus magnam dolores quam officiis sed veniam, odio at ut et atque non.
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 14 January 2017 09:50)
Story Name: Pink and purple lace bra
Part #1
Note: I will complete my story Sisters soon, till then enjoy this one.
I was feeling restless, weak and lusty. I was trying to sleep with semi hardness in my pants but I could not sleep. The image of Pink and purple lacy bra I saw, was making it difficult for me to sleep. It was perfect color blend of pink and light purple and hints of blacks and red. The red bow in the center was so cute and sexy. The net lace made it the delicate and desirable thing. The silky fabric, the shine of it and satin feel of the bra was too much to handle. I just wanted to hold it, feel it, and inhale the scent of Riya bosoms in it. She is a goddess and her choice of perfume is so tempting that that I would want to get lost in that.
Riya is my sister’s best friend and she came today afternoon to spend the weekend with my sister. Today evening they went to club, that was when I thought of going to my sisters room and check out Riya’s stuffs. I guess you all know why do we check girl’s bags, to check there clothes, makeup and lingerie. I was lost in the dream of wearing all the things I saw while going through the bag full of clothes, makeup and accessories. Then I went to the bath room, to check what Riya left there. That is when I found this lovely pink 36c Bra hanging in her bathroom emitting intoxicating fragrance. As soon as I saw it, I knew I won’t be able to resist not wearing it. I wanted to wear it so badly that I started shivering out of fear and excitement. My heart was beating so fast and loud that I thought it would burst. My legs were shaking.
With my shaky hands I took it from the bathroom hook. The touch and feel of lace and silk along with Riya’s perfume had made the most desirable thing in my life. I lifted it and dig my nose into it and inhaled the scent for several seconds. The mix of Riya’s sweat and her perfume had made it smell so good, that I almost came in my shorts. I removed my t shirt and slowly slid strap on my shoulders and hooked it in the back. I saw myself in the mirror, with no body hair, long hair and clean shave (I hardly have any shave) I saw a sexy teenage girl in the sexiest Bra. I knew this image will be itched in my brain forever, and will never let me believe that I am boy externally. Other than the penis in between my legs, I am women complete women. My slim and soft body, walk, thoughts are so girly that you would not believe me if I have told you this while wearing my sisters dress. I put on my t shirt over the bra and went back to check her bag. Her bag had more bra and panties, a sleeping gown and 2 pretty dresses. I did not want to spoil the setting of the bag to avoid suspicion of bag being checked, so I did not touch the dress to see, what kind of dresses they were. There was a small pouch, filled with lots of makeup. Mostly Mac and Lakme brands shimmers, mascara, eye liner, eye shadow, lipsticks, lip liner, lip gloss. I was losing my remaining manliness and was getting into feminine world.
Sexy Girl (Saturday, 14 January 2017 09:51)
Story Name: Pink and purple lace bra
Part #2
I wanted to be the Riya, sexy and slutty. I wanted to own all her stuff. I wanted to dress up like her, like a sexy women with sexy lingerie and make up, put on those sexy high heels and hand bag and walk in into some club. I wanted to be so desirable and sexy that guys will have an instant hard on by just looking at me. I wanted to be so sexy that as soon as a guy holds me with one hand on my ass and other on my breast and puts his face in my hair and inhales the Victoria secret perfume, he comes in his pants.
With the fear of getting caught I removed my bra and kept everything in place and came back to my room and lied on the bed. I tried to sleep, but the pink lacy bra did not let me. I was feeling weak and vulnerable. I was feeling like a women in need, a women who badly wanted to be held, cuddled and kissed and then taken roughly. I wanted to be women, who want to be dressed as slutty as possible and go out and make guys drip cum by just looking at her. All these feelings made ma drip some pre cum in my shorts. I had this un easiness I was turning and tossing on the bed but could not find relief. Then my small and semi hardness dripped some more cum, and I realized that my periods have just begun.
I got off the bed and went to my cupboard and removed the big box. After unlocking it I took out my secret bag, which no one knows about. I took my lacy panty and Stayfree pads. I glued the pad in my panties and wore them and returned to my bed. I seemed to calm down. The wet and soft pad gave me much needed warmth to my crotch. But still my lust could not be controlled. Unable to control my urges I went back to my sister’s room. I removed my t-shirt and took Riya's Bra and wrapped it around my chest and hooked it in back. I adjusted the shoulder straps. The feeling was so intense that I was lost in the moment and forgot where and whom I was. It was a perfect fit all round and perfectly wrapped my boobs in it. The feeling of being a woman was at the peak, I wanted to dress up all the way and visit a club like my Riya and my sister did.
shemalesana (Saturday, 14 January 2017)
Caught chatting and forced feminization
Hi, Reader. This is my imaginary story of how I want my life to be. I am Viki aged 24 college student. I like with my family. Both my parents are working and we rarely meet. So most of the time I used to be alone in our house. I stayed in the first floor and my parents stayed in ground floor. We had a maid who used to clean our home and cook for us. Her name was mangai and she was older than me. She used to wear Saree, big earrings and lots of bangles. Her parents were looking for a alliance for her to get her married. One day while returning from college I got surrounded by a group of transgenders. They scared me and demanded money. In the group was a young pretty boy who has just started transition. He was wearing a half saree. He had flowers in his shoulder length hair. I started to blush looking at him. I felt the place as soon as I recovered. But I couldn’t stop thinking about the boy. So I started googling about boy dressing and acting like girls. To my wonder were numerous results and I got attracted to it. Then I ended up in a chat room. I was looking for options to chat with someone. I asked me for a membership. Fortunately the membership was free for one month so I chose the username shemalesana and was completing my profile. I chose some random details not to reveal my true identity. As soon as I finished creating my profile I started checking other profiles. There were two categories – crossdresser and shemale (transgenders). I chose the join the category shemale. Then I browsed under this topic. There was a profile by the name shemale goddess priya. She had five star rating and the comments on her wall indicated that she was popular. I tried contacting her but she wasn’t online at the moment.
The next day I left the college at the same time and took the same route to meet the transgender group but I couldn’t find them. This continued for 7 days in a row. I saw them again the next Monday. I gave them Rs.100 even before they asked. Instead of scaring me, they all blessed me. Again I searched for the new boy he was there, this time a little more feminine. As they left me I too started home. I started to chat in the website regularly. Soon I too started to gather followers. I started to discover my feminine side. I waited for the next Monday. This time I was prepared. On the same time I met them and gave them the money. As I passed them I found the boy and gave him a paper.
Sexy Girl (Sunday, 15 January 2017 08:47)
@Raghav: Waiting for your next story.
neeta (Sunday, 15 January 2017 11:48)
Sexygirl:
Complete ur first story
poonam (Sunday, 15 January 2017 20:47)
Sexy girl ur both stories are amazing. U should complete it fast
sneha (Monday, 16 January 2017 08:49)
Our identity
My name is dinesh and my wife name is disha she works as a software engineer and i will do digital marketing work from home. One evening i was doing my regular work in my laptop my came and sat on the sofa made ughhhhh sound seeing her frustration i asked her the reason she said she has to go Australia for On-Board Project. With a dull expression for how many days you have to go their she said may be for 3 years i said 3 years loudly.She said baby it is for future please let me go i said i don't know any about your job if this trip makes you happy then go a head she happily hugged me and kissed on my cheeks we had a good night in sex from the next day she started packing the bags 3rd day after discussion she had a flight. while she is leaving i hugged her desperately unwillingly she left me and she had tears in her eyes.While we are going to airport my MIL came to our house.
While we are leaving to airport i asked disha about her Mother stay she said she will stay with me and cook food in her absence and she is feeling in the village after her father's death. I left disha at airport and came back to home my MIL was watching TV i went straight to my bed room and had a quick shower and took my wig and make up kit and started my preparation first i arranged my hair wig and applied nail polish to my fingers and toes and then i dressed in sari and went outside after seeing my MIL said hey dear i am waiting for you please prepare food i am hungry yeah she know about me and treats me like daughter.
I went to kitchen started preparing food and she came inside and asked me turn round and said wow you are carrying yourself very good you are covering your body parts very nice and you are keeping expressions very natural and feminine now shown me your walking style i shown it to her and she surprised and kissed me on my forehead till know nobody listened me like this just with my messages you have made yourself so feminine and know i want you to submissive i have a plan for you i said thanks mommy. I completed my cooking we ate it and i cleaned utensils and i started working with my laptop while pressing keys on key board my bangles are making sweet sound which are making feel so feminine and nice. Suddenly i heard door bell sound i stood and going to open the door and while going my anklets making sound listening it my MIL said wow what a sweet sound. I opened door it is my maid she came inside and asked did mam left sir i said know i am the mam she is sir. Okie mam sorry she said and my MIL seeing her with naughty looks she called us both.
She told my maid Sarla to sit on the sofa and told me to bring tea for them i did it for them and served it to them. After serving i am going to sit My MIL told me to stay stand My MIL asked sarla is it ok for you stay here full day with us her and how many days you can afford to stay her. Sarla asked my MIL why mam why are you asking this question to me.My MIL asked please say i will tell you later. She said i can manage for 3 days my MIL ok nice But Sarla asked mam why are you asking me all. My MIL answered shocked my MIL said sarla please stay with me hear as my son in law for three and dinesha will be your wife for 3 days. Sarla said noway. My MIL said no you are lying sarla why should i lie to you My MIL said i saw you so many staring at men's clothes that's why i have given this offer after listening this sarla became dumb and said mom just wait a minute i will changing my clothes nobody caring about my decision and sarla given me evil look after that look i took my pallu and kept it over my head and took blessings of Sarla.
She told me follow her she went to bedroom and thrown clothes on me and told me to iron it and she went inside the bathroom and had a shower and wore my vest and brief tied towel to her navel and i was stood in front of her with clothes in my hand and she said so sweet pinching my cheeks that action made me blush i don't know why i reacted like that she dressed in front me in my clothes and then kept her hand on my shoulders and taken me too my MIL she asked my MIL mom how is our pair. My MIL said super .
Please post your comments
aagya (Monday, 16 January 2017 12:25)
Nice story sneha. Keep writing n go ahead
Teja ramya (Monday, 16 January 2017 18:49)
Hi akka.... U are back with a bang.... Continue.... We are waiting
Maddy (Tuesday, 17 January 2017 04:29)
Sneha write more pls!
SRS (Wednesday, 18 January 2017 00:05)
There is no forced feminisation story, it's getting bored
priya (Wednesday, 18 January 2017 07:56)
Hai Srs please continue your story we are eagerly waiting for your next part
Pls pls.....
Kanmani (Thursday, 19 January 2017 12:57)
I'm a secret selfish crossdresser I'm kanna, my parents are wealthy enough i can live my entire life without working, i hate maids i never gave respect to maids working at my house, after parents died I've asked all my maids to leave, but one maid selvi was working, i didn't like her grandma runs a shop, but still she works at my house, as i don't like it anyway, one day i gave her 500 rupees to buy groceries and told her to keep the change same day i said she stole the money and humiliated her in front of all neighbors, she left the job. Now being myself in my house, i moved all feminine garments and dresses left by maids to my room. Next day after i take bath i wore the used bra and panties found in maids quarters, the fragrance waa still there made me very erotic, quickly wore petticoat and used blouse to feel the scent of the maids and wore saree, used several pins to finish my saree looks more professional and finished my makeup. Finally i wore the wig and looked in mirror, god i can't believe its me, i looked so sexy and the whole house is mine so i enjoyed each and every moment on that day, looking myself at every mirror i crossed, and finally i relaxed myself in sofa watching some serials. This continued for a week, as usual i was in saree and watching TV suddenly i heard selvi voice behind, in shock i quickly stood and exposed myself in a saree.
She looked myself calm and didn't bat an eye. I hung my head down and told selvi please don't tell anyone.
She replied, why? I saw a boy wearing saree, why should I not share with my neighbors?
Pls selvi I'll do anything but please don't tell anyone about it. She looked at me for a while and she went and sat on sofa and asked me to go get changed and come, i quickly did and came to selvi.
She replied from today I'm working here, you'll pay me, but you'll work for me. I looked at her angrily.
Selvi said, kanna don't try anything it will not take seconds to call everyone and prove what u did to me and what you did now.
I stood silent and replied ok selvi I'll do that. She silently went. The whole day i couldn't sleep what if she tell them to neighbors, next day she came as usual,
She called me kanna, i got angry, she looked at me are u getting angry, sorry to call you by that name, I'll call you kanmani ok?
I got more angry she looked the eyebrows and said hey wait she took her bright Red bindi and sticked it to my forehead and said now can control your anger, girls like you should not get angry. I was silent.
Gud u r silent, if u dare raise your voice u will end up trouble i warn u.. She asked me to go near by shop and buy two earrings for myself with red bindi, i said people and neighbors will notice please don't do this, I'll do anything inside the house i said, she slapped me and replied final warning. She pushed me out of house and walked behind me. I almost cried people everyone noticed my bindi and started calling me by many names, i reached a fancy store found old aunty looked at me smiled asked what u want, i said earrings, she gave screw type earrings and asked ok? I silently paid for her and came out. Selvi was waiting for me, she saw my earrings said I've gud taste. She grabbed my hand and took to nearest pawn shop i asked her what are you doing please let me go, she shouted kanmani come with me people around everyone looked at me, not ready to get more humiliation i went with her, she said i want to be a girl and needs a piercing in ears now he recommended for nose also but Selvi looked at me my eyes already filled with tears, she said not now and got my both ears pierced....
Asha (Thursday, 19 January 2017 13:17)
http://fictionmania.tv/stories/readtextstory.html?storyID=1475437312343276205
Loved this one.
nisha (Friday, 20 January 2017 00:55)
Sexygirl : great story agay likho jaldi
mohit (Friday, 20 January 2017 06:14)
read my new story in hindi comments revange by gf i hope u all r injoy it nd comment m please
nd srs plese compleat ur story
lavanya (Saturday, 21 January 2017 10:35)
Mohit when u post next parts.
Deepthi (Monday, 23 January 2017 11:29)
Hi to all writers
We are egarly waiting for your stories
sirisha (Thursday, 26 January 2017 02:08)
We're are the posts guys
Ishu (Saturday, 28 January 2017 01:09)
Mohit pls continue ur story���
mohit (Saturday, 28 January 2017 05:36)
revange by gf
I walked in sand started talking the whole time watching her as she did her face.
She smiled at me doesn’t the makeup make my face look beautiful she asked? I said yes. She smiled again don’t you love the way it looks? Yes I said again. She smiled and it feels so nice, would you like to see how it feels sweaty? And without thinking I said yes. She smiled and gave me a wink. Okay dear but just a little. I stood there as she gently took her brush and put a powder in it. She tapped it off and then started to brush it all over my face. After a few moments she smiled what a wonderful glow you have. I looked in the mirror and my face did have a glow about it but you really couldn’t tell I was wearing any make up. Next she had me shut my eyes and she put the lightest of eye shadow on my lids, this is peach dear it will brighten your eyes. Again I looked in the mirror and my eyes did look better but you still couldn’t tell I was wearing eye shadow. Then she took out a lipstick and put some on. It was a very neutral color that just gave my lips and even color but you couldn’t tell. There we are sweaty a beautiful natural look. We don’t want to overdo it. I looked in the mirror and Rohini said you like it right. I nodded and said yes. She smiled and gave me the makeup powder, eye shadow and lipstick. You can have this that way you can wear it every day you want to wear it right. Again I don’t know why but I said yes and took the makeup. Rohini finished getting dressed and we went out for dinner and a move.
The rest of the week I would get up and talk to my mom as she did her makeup, I loved watching her. Then I would put on my make up very lightly so as nobody could see it but I felt batter knowing I had it on. On Friday night I went over to Rita’s house. Her parents were gone so we went up to her bedroom.
She smiled and gave me a kiss, how has my little girl been this week she asked? I smiled and said good. She took off her clothes down to her panties and bra and I did the same. We started to kiss and she was touching me all over and again I could not get hard. She smiled at me; I know what’s wrong I promised you that you could try a tampon again. That’s what you want isn’t it. Again I don’t know why but I said yes. She told me to pull down my panties and bed over which I did. She touched my butt and I felt her push something into my but that was cold then she inserted the tampon and pushed it in all the way. There we are my sweat; she kissed me on the lips and told me what a cute butt I had. I thanked her and this time I couldn’t feel the tampon. We kissed for a little while and then Rita and I went out for dinner.
mohit (Saturday, 28 January 2017 05:38)
revange by gf
Saturday morning I got up and again I was feeling sick to my stomach. I got up and went and had my morning talk with my mom as she did her makeup. We talked about spring break which was only one week away. Mom and Julli were going to the beach for the week and she wanted to know if I wanted to go. I looked at her and said no I would stay home. She smiled have you told the girls the truth yet? I smiled no I can’t. She just shook her head; when they find out they will be so mad. Do you have any idea what they will do, you will be lucky if they will even talk to you. In the mean time you are wearing panties and a bra to keep this little secret. I smiled I know mom but it’s not that bad I really don’t mind. She gave me a strange look, are we getting attached to your bra she asked? I suddenly felt stupid and just looked down. Mom touched my hand, I like my bra too sweaty but you better be careful who you tell.
Wednesday I could barely get my pants over my butt and my breast were starting to really show. I was a little worried about someone noticing them but for some reason I wasn’t worried about the breasts themselves. I put on a large bulky sweat shirt and went to school. After school I went over to Rohini’s house as her parents were gone again. Rohini took me up to her bedroom. We got out of our clothes and soon we were just wearing panties and bra. Rohini looked at me and smiled. Wow sweaty you are looking beautiful today. I looked at her and said I know I just can’t stop gaining weight. She gave me another one of her pills and told me these will fix you. I got the dizzy feeling again and lay down on the bed. When I woke up Rohini was standing there looking at me. Sweaty would you like me to make love to you she asked? I smiled and said yes. She strapped her thing on and then smiled. Turn around and be a good little girl. I did as she said and she pulled my panties down, put some cream on my butt and then slid it in and this time it didn’t hurt. So she was pushing in and out and I was moaning with each stroke. Rohini made love to me for over thirty minutes till I collapsed on the bed. Rohini and I talked for hours and she told me that she was going to be out of town for spring break but she would see me when she got back.
Thursday morning I got up and looked in the mirror. My breasts were huge now and filled out my bra. Instead of being worried about them I just wondered what mom would say and how I could hide them again put on a big sweatshirt and then when I tried to put my pants on they would not fit. I started to panic. What could I do? I saw Julli’s black sweat pants on the door and put them on. I pulled the sweatshirt down to hide Julli’s sweats and it looked okay. I went to school. At lunch I saw Rita and we talked. Her parents were going away for the week two so we planned on spending it together. She told me to come over as soon as my mom and sister left. Friday morning again I looked at my breasts and they were big and beautiful so I put on another big sweatshirt and the same pair of sweat pants and went to school. When I got home Mom and Julli loaded up the car. Julli said goodbye and got in the car. Mom gave me a hug and for a moment I thought she had felt my breasts under the sweatshirt. She kissed me goodbye and told me to be good. I went right over to Rita’s house and her parents had already left. She took me upstairs to her room. We stripped down to our panty and bra and Rita looked at me. Wow sweaty what a great body you have you should show it off more. I smiled and looked down and said thank you Rita. She gave me a hug I have a great idea for what we can do tonight. I asked what? Rita gave me a kiss, I will tell you but first I think my little girl needs her tampon for the night. I didn’t say anything I just turned around and pulled my panties down. She put her hands on my butt and said, wow sweaty I think you are ready for the super size. I felt her push something into my butt and then another and yet a third and then she inserted the tampon and pushed it in. I got such a sensation from it.
mohit (Saturday, 28 January 2017 05:39)
revange by gf
Rita took my hand, you look so cute and you have such a great body I want to see what you would look like in one of my dresses. We went over to her closet and started to hold up dresses to me. She finally decided on a low cut short black dress. Sweaty this will look great on you and show off your breasts. She put the dress over my head and as it slid down my body I got such an incredible feeling. Rita looked at me and gave me a kiss on the cheek. What a cute girl you make let’s find you some shoes. She took a pair of 4″inch heels and put them on my feet, Sweaty you love the way they feel don’t you. I said yes and smiled. She helped me stand and showed me how to walk. We went down stairs and had dinner and watched TV. Rita just kept telling me how cute and beautiful I looked. When it was time for bed we went upstairs. Rita gave a short pink night gown to wear and helped me get ready for bed. The feeling was so intense. We got into bed and she kissed me on the cheek and said, sweat dreams my little girl.
In the morning we got up and Rita smiled at me, how did my little sister sleep in her new nightgown she asked? I smiled and said terrific. We got up and Rita picked out a black skirt and pink top, would my sister like to borrow some of my clothes? They were beautiful and I blushed and said, can I? Rita kissed me on my cheek, yes sweaty I think you would look great but you have to wear it the proper way. She helped me get dressed and then gave me the same heels from last night. I looked in the mirror and I was beautiful. Rita smiled we are not finished, and she sat me down and started to put curlers in my hair. Then she smiled I think you are ready for some makeup. She started off putting foundation on my face. The feeling was so nice. Next she put some eye liner on and some eye shadow and then some mascara, the whole time explaining to me what they were for and how to apply them. She finished off with a deep red lipstick. I looked into the mirror and I was even more beautiful. Rita smiled; I think you like the way you look shall I do your nails. I just smiled and nodded yes. When she finished she had me stand in front of the mirror. I had never thought I could look so beautiful. Rita went and put on a skirt and top and her heels. She stood next to me; we look like sisters don’t we she asked? I said yes. She gave me a light kiss on the cheek as not to mess our makeup. How about we spend the day as sisters and go shopping. I looked at her with a scared look on my face. Go out in public like this. She smiled, you are a beautiful young lady nobody will know so you want to go shopping don’t you. I smiled and said yes. We spent the day at the mall and tried on all kinds of clothes and shoes. We even got my ears pierced. I had so much fun. When we got home it was late so Rita showed me how to take my makeup off and we got ready for bed. I put my pink night gown on and climbed into bed with Rita. I thanked her for an incredible day and gave her a goodnight kiss on the cheek. She smiled; sweat dreams and I have a big surprise for you tomorrow
mohit (Saturday, 28 January 2017 05:40)
revange by gf
Sunday Morning we got up and Rita helped me get dressed in a white skirt with a green top and again gave me her 4″inch heels to wear. She put on a little makeup and then she got dressed in a skirt and top and heels and again we looked like sisters. We grabbed our purses and we left. I asked where we were going but she just smiled. Relax you will love it. We pulled into a parking lot and parked. I looked out and there was a beauty salon. Rita and I walked in and the lady greeted Rita with a hug, so this is your Cousin she is lovely. I looked at Rita and didn’t know what to say. Rita just smiled and said Mohini, say hi to Linda. I looked at Rita and then Linda and said hi. As we walked in Rita smiled; just relax dear you are fine just remember to answer to Mohini. I asked why she called me Mohini. Rita smiled, sweaty looking like you do you can’t go by Mohit, and she thinks you are a girl so I gave you a female name. You do like it don’t you dear? Linda sat me down and started to wash my long brown hair which was now down to my shoulders. After she washed it she put a cream in my hair. Then she smiled, let’s start on your face dear. She put a cream on my face and then started to work on my eyebrows. She used a little wand that admitted a light and some heat. It felt strange and tingled as she went over them.
She washed the cream out of my hair and then started to wrap it in curlers. Soon my head was a mass of curlers and it felt like my hair was being pulled out of my head. I still had the cream on my face which was now drying and getting hard. She took me over to a seat and I put my feet into a little tub. It was so relaxing. Linda then took my feet out and massaged them. It was so incredible I have never felt anything so wonderful. Rita was in the seat next to me and noticed the smile. Are you enjoying your day of beauty sweaty? I knew I shouldn’t but I was so I said yes. When Linda finished my massaging my feet she dried them off and then she applied a deep red nail polish.
Jau (Saturday, 28 January 2017 23:33)
Nice story Mohit plz. Continue... Eagerly waiting...
Julee (Sunday, 29 January 2017 03:44)
Wife to my brother
Hi all of u i m from mumbai this story is between me and my brother
how i expressed him that i m a crossdresser and how i become his wife
my name is amit and my brothers name is suraj.
He is an mechanical engineer this story happened 2 years back when i
was in my 12 and he was in his final year of engineering my parents
were at bangalore and me and my husband (i.e. brother) are alone at
our house. I used to crossdress whenever i m left alone at home and i
used to do all the household chores like a women by wearing saree and
all other stuff which i had purchased. Everyday i used to sleep
seperately bcoz of my crossdressing habbit i used to wear nity and
sleep at nighyt but one saturday he came and knocked at my door and i
asked what happen he replied that he wants me to sleep with him i also
accepted that and i slept with him this goes on CONTINUING on every
saturday. But on one saturday night we both were not able to sleep we
were discussing about sex and in meanwhile he started telling me his
fantasy over our mom i stopped him and told him that what are you
telling she is our mom he told so what and compromissed me but i
should say that i would also started liking incest one fine day my
husband(i.e my brother) came home at 1 in the night i asked him where
did you go he told me that he had gone to attend his friends wedding
celebration so i told him to have dinner and i gone to bed after
sometimes he came to my bedroom. My goodness on that night i was not
wearing nity. I asked him what happened y did u come to my room and he
doesn't said anything and came beside me and slept and i also slept.
But after sometimes i was feeling some erection on my cock i slightly
opened my eyed and sw that my husband is rubbing my cock i was not
understanding wat to do i was also really enjoying that so i donot
said anything to him and left him. This was the day of climax it was
saturday and my hubby told me to come to his room i told him that you
sleep i will come after sometimes on meanwhile i shaved all the hair
in my body and made my body like a women body smooth. After sometimes
entered his room i can see him that he his sleeping but i was knowing
that he was acting like he was sleeping so i removed my shirt and i
was only in my short and go slept beside him after sometime i can feel
his hand over my cock so in rply i also put my hand over is penis he
paniced for a second and saw me i was seeing into his and he was also
seeing into my eyes on a sudden he came close to me hugged me tightly
and started kissing me over my lips we both smooched for 5 mins i
really enjoyed that he told me too suck his cock i sucked it for 10
mins it was really tasty and he told me that ok darling its enough for
today and in rply i also said ok and kissed in his lips and we both
slept. On sunday i decided to tell him about my crossdressing fantasy.
So on night when he came to bed and slept beside me i told him that
honey wait for a scond i will be back he told me that go take u r time
darling i kissed on his forehead and went to the kitchen where in the
shelf i used to hide my saree, bra, peticoat and all other stuff. I
decided to wear a pink colour chiffon saree i removed all the matching
stuff related to the saree like pink peticoat, pink panty and i
started wearing them and APPLIED make up in the face and kept a wig on
my head and in no time i became a beautiful women who is ready for is
first night with his hot husband. I slowly opened the door and i saw
that my husband is sleeping naked and i closed the main door and room
door and all other WINDOWS of the house. I go close to him and told
that honey wake up u r darling is ready to sleep with u. He opened his
eyes and saw me seeing me he was really paniced and asked me that
where is my brother and i told him that i m u r brother my hero and
told him that from now onwards whenevere we are at home i m u r wife
and u r my husband he was not able to say a single word so i slept
beside him and started kissing him passionately he really enjoyed that
he told me that show me u r ass i will fuck u. I was showing my sexy
ass he pinched my ass and said what a ass u lovely and he started
inserting his 8" cock into my ass i was deeply immersed in the pain
but i really loved that pain he started fucking me hardly and fastly i
satarted to moan like slut
Julee (Sunday, 29 January 2017 03:47)
like aaaaaaaahhhhhhhhhhh
hhhhhhhhhmmm ooooohhhhhhhhhh he said to suck his cock i was sucking
his cock while sucking his cock i can feel the smell of ass in his
cock and after sometime he mastrubated in my mouth and he asked me
what is u r name sexy i not replied bcoz i had not kept any name for
me when i m crossdressed. I tiold him that i had not kept any name
when i m crossdressed so he told me that from now onwards u r name
will be pavithra i paniced for and told him that it's our mom's name
he told it's her name and he told me that whenever he want
vasantha (Sunday, 29 January 2017 08:48)
mohit continued your story very nice
SRS (Tuesday, 31 January 2017 00:01)
Mohit please continue ur story
satya (Tuesday, 31 January 2017 12:39)
tomorrow i will start new story
ACCIDENT CHANGED DESTINY
satya (Tuesday, 31 January 2017 12:50)
ACCIDENT CHANGED DESTINY 1
early morning 5,30 alarm ringng i woke up and stopped it and stand i was in nighty and i went to bathroom and fresh up and take bath and came out and open the almirah today friday so take one yellow saree and wear petticoat bra blouse and saree and go to puja room and did puja and prayed about my husband and chldren and make tea and went tomy mil room and wake up her and wake up my husband and children one son and daughter both are 8 years old and make tiiffin t them amd cook food for lunch and i sended them to school and i send my husband to office and evening 5 children willcome and do thier work and sleep and at 8 husband will come and we ate foood and clean all utensils and went foe bedroom and he will enjoy me and sleep this is my daily rutine and frget to say my name is satya and my age is 29 now , this is my famly
but i am not female by birth i am male one accident changed my destiny up to my age 22 i am male studyng btech but now wife and mother of two children how it will happen let us see now
Ishu (Wednesday, 01 February 2017 02:43)
Everyone knows the story your story satya please write some new stories don't waste our blog
sneha (Wednesday, 01 February 2017 08:50)
Stress buster
My name Nisha a 22 year old engineer and Female to male cross dresser i stay alone at my apartment to fulfill my fetish but i am so thin and short i can't make good man only macho thing i have is height that i like it very much. i always dress like a guy but it not satisfied me i want something more and different one day while surfing in the internet i watched video where a young girl dress herself like a old man for frank. By seeing that girl i got excited i dressed myself like old man i felt happy and i saw myself in the mirror find satisfied watching myself i can easily pass away like a old man no body can suspect on me. So i took hand stick and started walking slowly with shivering like a old man Like that i visited temple and some places all are calling me grand pa i don't know why but whenever someone is calling grand pa it makes me so happy.
I had a dinner in the hotel i came out for taxi somebody pushed me from the back i turned i saw a lady she is looking like in 30's but she dressed like a young girl she wore mini up to her thighs and top her breasts is clearly visible from her top. She said sorry grand pa i am very sorry and given her hand she lifted me. I said ok beta you young people will always in a hurry by listening her face glowed like a bulb and she said grand pa i will drop you i said no beta i will find auto or taxi i don't want to trouble you. No issue please treat me like a grand daughter i said ok beta but i will find my taxi she took my hand and taken me to her car and opened the door and i sat inside and she kept my seat belt and took driving seat. I said beta why are you taking so much risk dear i will go. She said grand pa i thought you are like my own grand pa but you are its ok. I said i don't wanna hurt you my intention is you must reach home early because it is not safe girls to roam late nights. Oho poor grand pa we are new generation girls don't worry i will take care of myself.
I guided her to my home she said do you stay here i said yes i thought did she knew me but i din't seen her early we went inside i kept my hand on her shoulder and she taken me inside and she sat on sofa heavily after coming inside after she sat i stuck with a shock by seeing she said want happen and stood then she understood her wig fallen aside and immediately she fell on my legs please grand pa don't say this thing to any one i quickly regained my conscious i saw her in the weeping and i closed the door. i signed her to bring the water she brought it and i drank i sat on the sofa she sat on the floor and pressing my legs and started conversation said grand pa i am project manager in BIG MNC and my wife bullies me for my mental peace i will do this you are the first person to know about this i am not any sex pervert i will do this for my mental peace only. Immediately i stood and me too and removed my wig and he shocked. he is double of my age and his became red with anger and i was shivering.
He said you know what is your punishment for this you will become my permanent grand pa i got relieved and said come beta hugged her.
Please post your comments
Preethi (Wednesday, 01 February 2017 13:29)
Prologue....
Bhummida puttina prathi prani yokka thalaratha mundu gane nirnayinchabadutundhi....Ela ravalo, ela undalo, ela povalo antha aa layakaarudi kanusanallo jarugutundhi....Manishi ane vadu nimmittha matrudu matrame ....prema, kopam, jali, daya, paga, karuna, anadham, badha, vyamoham .... ityadhi bhavalu anni kevalam aa devudu – manishi chutti srustinchina Maya valayam.... ee manava manassu tho ivi mudivesukuni kalaniki anugunanga thama thama kartyamnni nirvartistuntayi... ee valayanni chedichukunnavadu Gnani avuthadu.....ee valayam lo chikkukunna varu kalam ade natakam lo kilu bommalu ga mari alamatistuntaru......
Kalam tho pate prayanichamtam anedhi manishi nerchukovalasina modathi sutram....alantappude bhummida manugada sadyam avthundhi....Vidhata rasina vidiratha ku ettivarina sirassu vanchalsindhe kadani kalam ki eduregi vellina endoro vyakthula jeevitha saramu mana puranallo enno udaharanaa lu chusam...atti vati nundhi manam telusukovalasinadhi jagarthaga undali ani...Enni tharalu, enni yugalu , entha gnanam sampadinchina manishi cheyyalendhi srusti ki prathi srusti cheyyadam.........Kadani kalam ki eduregi ratha rasina vadi yokka vidhi ni githa lla marchi srusti ki prathi srusti cheylanukunna neti yugam lo kondari vyakthula jeevana gamaname ....... Naa ee story.....
Part - 1
2014 , Banglore, night – 11: 45 Pm ...Dr. Rajkumar road lo ni Pvr cinemas lo second show complete avvagane janam bayataki raasagaru....vallallo oka yuva ganta ...bahusa athaniki 21 years undochu, ameku 19 years.....Iddaru white color T shirt and blue color jeans vesukoni okari chetilo marokaru cheyyi vesukoni kaburulu cheppukuntu navvuthu , tulluthu bayataki vachi main road mida naduchukuntu veltunnaru....
Road lo janam hadavidi taggindhi...ammai matladuthu.... Hey Raj...Ippudu time entha ani adigithe...Tanu watch chusi 11:50 annadu...Hmm sare anindhi..iddaru silent ga nadustunnaru...mari kontha duram poyaka malli time entha ani adigindhi...Oy ipuude kada cheppanu ani 11:55 annadu... Antha kopam deniki ani atani bhujam mida gillindhi...Inkasta duram poyaka tanu matladuthu ....asalu eroju date gurtundha ani adigindhi...enduku gurtu ledu...9th and inko two minutes agithe ...10th vastundhi indulo emundhi annadu.....Sare pada ani visuruga munduku kalidindhi ammai manasulo 10th na birthday ne marchipoyadu idiot vedi pani cheppali anukundhi.....Elopu 12 aipoindhi...Iddaru alane mellaga naduchukuntu veltunnaru...
Mari koncham duram poyaka ......Sudden ga Raj aa ammai cheyyi pattukoni lakkuni main road lo nunchi pakkane unna iruku chikati sanduloki tisukuvelladu...hatattuga raj ala tanani sandu loki lagesariki em artham kaledu aa ammai ki...Tanani oka goda ki anichi tana ki baga daggaraga nilabaddadu...Okari uchavasa nisvasalu marokariki vinapadentha daggaraga nilabaddaru...Ammai tadabaduthu Ey Raj entidhi kottaga ani adigindhi...haa niku teliyada enti pinky ani annadu....pinky gunde kottukune vegam perigipotundhi...siggutho tala dinchukundhi....Raja tana muni vellatho pinky face pi unna tana kurulanu sutaramga chevi venakki vestu...pinky nuditi mida vachina chiru chemata ni tudichi....Tana nudithi mida Kiss Chesi ...Wish you a very Happy birthday ani cheppagane...pinky tana chetultho raj chest mida koduthu poh...intha sepu nannu aata pattinchakuvu kadu ..you...ani mellaga chest pina kodutundhi......
preethi (Wednesday, 01 February 2017 13:33)
part 2
Raj pinky chetulani pattukoni tana cheti vella madylo pinky cheti vellu ponichi godaki adimi petti pinky pi valadu....Raj entidhi ani tana tala etti raj kalla llo kallu petti chustundhi pinky....Raja koddiga kindaku tana tala ni vanchadu.....vari iruvuri peduvulu anti antanattu baga daggaraki vachesai....Okari kallatho marokaru oosulu cheppukuntunnaru.....ematram alasyam cheyyakunda Raj ventane pinky adaralanu andipuchukunnadu.....sutharamga modalina chumbanam gatu ga maripoindhi.....Kalam kuda stambinchipoindhi vari pranayaniki....pinky tana chetulani vidipinchukoni muddu pedutune Raj ni tamakamtho penavesukupoindhi...Raj premaga tana chetultho pinky buggalu pattukoni muddu ni istune unnadu....Gali kuda vari madyna naligipoyi tanake oopiriki adaka ibbandi padutundhemo annathaga aliganam chesukoni unnaru....pinky udrekam tho tana rendu kallani Raj nadumu mida vesi tana chetulanu Raj juttuloki ponichi tana vellatho atu itu adisthu raj ki mattekkistundhi.....Raj tana chetulu pinky nadumu midaku vesi tana pedavulu vadili koddiga kindaku vachi tana gaddem mida muddu pettukuntu...Nadumu midanunchi tana chetulani pinky back side tshirt loki ponistu..face ni inkasta kindaku dinchi tana neck mida muddu petti....mari kasta digi tana notitho pinky t shirt ni pattukoni laguthunnadu yeda bagam kanipinchela........tarvatha em jarigiddo artham ayyi pinky ventane terukoni tana kalla pi nilabadi ......Haa Raj ika chalu....antha road mide chestava enti ani kannu kottindhi.....Raj navvukoni tana jebulo cheyyi petti heart shape lo unna locket okati tisi pinky medalo vesadu....
pinky Raj vesina locket ni pattukoni prema ga chustundhi...Raj matladuthu idhi kevalam locket matrame kadu pinky ...Idhi mana kalaikaku punadhi....Asalu manam kalvataniki oka karanam ...annintiki minchi idhi na manassu....Badram ani annadu....pinky tana arachetto pattukoni Idhi na pranam ani cheppi tanani gattiga hattukundhi santhosham tho....Ala vatesukoni oka 5 nimishalu gadichina alane unnaru....Raj matladuthu pinky ika veldamaaa antey....Uhu ani naku ilane undipovali anipistundhi ani Raj ni vadalledhu....Inkasepu unte chali ki iddaram gaddakattukoni ilage undhipotham eppatiki ..pada veldam ani kougili vidistunte pinky api enta tondara ..modduabbai ki channallaki mood vachi modati sari ila chestunnav..inthalo veldamante ela ...anindhi...Hmm ikapi ala jaragadule ammai ..niku nachinattu untaga ga ani annadu...Inthalo pinky ki Raj morning tanatho edo important matter matladali annattu gurtuku vachi ...Avunu natho edo important vishyam matladali annav kada ani adigindhi........
Haa baga gurtu chesav.... ani edo vishayam cheppabotunte inthalo valla mida bike focus light padindhi...Chikatlo okkasariga light valla mida padesariki kallu bairlu kammai ...em jarugutundho ani terukunelopu bike valla midaku dusukuravatam gamaninchi Raj pinky ni main road mida ku nettesadu .aa visuruki tana talaku debba tagilindhi..Bike vachi raj ni dikondhi...Tanu vachi main road mida paddadu...Raj terukoni lechelopu eduraga oka car ravatam tanaki dash ivvatam....Kshnallo tanu gallo levatam...melli melli ga tanu chupu boodara boodara ga maratam chaka chaka jarigipoyay....Baram ga swasa tisukuntu pinky ne chestu sruha kolpoyadu
Bebo (Wednesday, 01 February 2017 17:15)
Mohit pls continue one of the best story.... the way ria is treating him like sister similarly my gf also treats me like sister..
SRS (Thursday, 02 February 2017 00:02)
Mohit please continue
mohit (Friday, 03 February 2017 06:55)
REVANGE BY GF
She led me over to a little table and then started to work on my nails; again Rita was at the table next to me. We had been there for over two hours now. Linda filed my nails and then glued nail tips onto them. She cut them so they were about ½ inch longer and then she started to apply a paste on top of them. I was amazed at how quickly and perfectly she applied it to my nails. I looked at Rita and she smiled, just enjoy your day. Linda filed the nails again and then applied the nail polish. First a clear coat then two coats of the same deep red and then a top coat. I was took over to a seat and told to put my hands under a light to dry the nail polish. Rita sat next to me; beautiful aren’t they. Don’t you just love the way they look. They were beautiful and I know I should have hated it but I didn’t. I loved them.
When they had dried Linda took me back over to the where I started and took the curlers out of my hair and started to brush out my hair. She played with it for almost twenty minutes and then smiled. You are lovely dear. She then washed the dried cream off my face and started to put on my makeup. It didn’t take long to apply my makeup and I sat there and kept looking at Rita as the lady working on her did her makeup. She looked so beautiful just like a model and I wondered what I was going to look like. When we were all done Linda took me over to a full length mirror and I got the first look at myself. I was beautiful. My eyebrows had been shaped into a high thin feminine arch and my brown hair was now blonde, it was very wavy and very full. It looked like I had twice as much hair. My makeup was flawless and I looked completely like a young lady. Rita stood next to me; Mohini you are gorgeous and she gave me a hug. Did you like my little surprise dear? I said yes I loved it, I never stopped to even think how I could hide this or what my mom would say or how I could go to school. I never thought about anything except how I looked right now. Rita said we should go now. I thanked Linda and we left. In the car I couldn’t take my eyes off of my nails.
When we got back to Rita’s house she smiled. Mohini my dear I have one more surprise for you and gave me a hug again. I asked what and she said just wait. We walked into her house and there was Rohini sitting on the couch, Rohini looked at me and smiled. Wow Mohini you look beautiful and she came over and gave me a hug. I thanked her and shyly looked down. Rohini walked around me, I can’t believe how great you look nobody would ever know you were once a boy. We had talked for over fifteen minutes before I realized something was wrong, why was Rohini here in Rita’s house. I got a really scared look on my face and then I heard Rita; well I think you finally figured it out now sit down. I don’t know why but I sat down and just looked at them. I finally asked how they found out. Rita smiled did you like getting your nails done and the way we talked she asked? I said yes. She smiled again, that’s what girls do when they get their nails done. They chat with the nail tech and with the girls around them. Imagine my surprise when I was talking to Rohini and she was telling me all about her new boyfriend who by the way had the same name as my boyfriend.
mohit (Friday, 03 February 2017 06:57)
revange by gf
Rohini started to yell, how dare you lie to us and cheat on us. I thought you and I had something special. I said we did but she told me to shut up. When we realized you were dating us both I was so mad but Rita wanted to treat you a lesson. She came up with this idea and I thought it was a good idea. I looked at her, so you dressed me up as a girl to teach me a lesson I asked? She smiled you still don’t get it do you. We didn’t just dress you up, look at your breasts your hips and waist. I started to get really scared. Rita came over and looked at me. Sweaty did you like your tampons she said? I just looked at her with a horrified look. Well before I inserted it I put in several capsules of powerful female hormones and a male testosterone blocker. You are now more female then most women are. She reached out and cupped my breast in her hand and I looked down at them. What have you done to me I said softly. Rohini came over to me. You know how you have been worried about your weight because your pants didn’t fit anymore. It was the hormones that were making your hips grow. She put a scale down in front of me and told me to stand on it. I did as I was told and Rohini smiled perfect dear, you weigh 115 pounds. I looked at her with shock. It was imposable, I had lost 15 pounds and my pants didn’t fit. Rita took a tape measure and measured my waist and haps and bust. She looked at Rohini, you are right she is perfect 34-24-34 and at least a C-cup. You make a beautiful woman Rohini said and by the way those weren’t weight loss pills I gave you. They were a hypnotic drug that would allow us to get you to do what we wanted. I was really scared now; these two girls were trying to turn me into a woman. I looked at them and said in my most defiant voice, I will not let you do this to me. I will stop you somehow I will tell people what you have done to me. Rohini laughed; sweaty it is too late for that dear. We have already turned you into a female just look at yourself and remember we have control over you. I looked at them and said no you don’t and got up to leave. Rita smiled at me, where are you going sweaty she asked? I told her I was leaving. Rita smiled that’s fine dear but I think you better put your tampon in first honey so turn around and bend over. I don’t know why but I stopped and pulled down my panty and I felt Rita push several things into my butt and then she inserted the tampon. There you are my sweaty that is the last of the hormones and will finish the job. You will not remove the tampon till tonight. I looked at her and said yes and then realized what had just happened. I wanted to remove it but I couldn’t. They saw the terror on my face when I realized I would do what they said. Rohini smiled I see you now understand the hold we have on you now sit down. I sat down and Rohini smiled, for the rest of the week you will do what we say and you will enjoy every minute of it dear or we may make you do some things you won’t like. You will think of us as your big sisters and you will only answer to the name Mohini, do you understand Mohini? I just looked at them and said yes. The rest of the week went quickly and even though I knew what they had done I couldn’t stop going along with it.
On Sunday morning we got up and got dressed, I did my own makeup and had no problem with it. We drove over to my house and I asked why. Rohini smiled, your mom and sister will be home today and it would be nice if you were there to greet them. I begged them to stop and change me back. Rita gave me a little hug, sweaty even if we wanted to we can’t now. You are to female now. When we got there they gave me the same pink bikini I had worn before and told me to put it on. I did as I was told and looked at myself. The top barely held my now huge breasts in them, I looked totally female. I joined Rita and Rohini at the pool. I asked how they were going to explain this to my mom and sister. Rohini smiled you will dear. When your mom asked what you are doing you will tell her this was your idea. You came to Rita and told her you wanted to wear her bra and panties and begged her to help her. Rita smiled you liked it so much you then asked Rohini to help dress you up. We didn’t want to but you were are friend and after you kept begging we agreed. You then went on line and bought some female hormones and started taking them and didn’t tell us. When we found out we tried to stop you and tried to get you to talk to your mom but you told us not to say anything. You cried telling us how you longed to be a woman and that was the only way you would be happy. We finally agreed to help you. I can’t possible tell her that but before I finished Rohini smiled, sweaty you will tell her that
mohit (Friday, 03 February 2017 06:58)
revange by gf
About an hour later I heard the door to the house open and out walked Mom and Julli. I was as scared as they walked over to us. Mom looked at me, my god what are you doing she yelled. I looked at her and said, mom it’s not Rita or Rohini’s fault. I begged them to help me. I want to be a woman I have to be a woman. I couldn’t believe what I was saying. I told my mom exactly what Rohini had told me to say. Mom just stared at me and Julli was laughing. Mom finally looked at me and saw my breasts and I told her about the female hormones I had bought. I thought she was going to yell more or even hit me but she gave me a hug. I guess I have no choice but I wish you had come to me first, and then she told Julli to stop laughing. She looked at Rita and Rohini, you two should have also told me but I can see you are good friends to help her and not judge her. Mom then said well Mohit I guess I have a new daughter. I looked at her and wanted to scream but all I could say was, Mom I don’t like that name please call me Mohini. She just nodded and gave me another hug. Rita and Rohini stayed for dinner and after we ate we went back out to the pool.
Rohini smiled, how have you liked your day dear? I just said I can’t believe what you made me tell my mom. Rohini smiled again, it was so much fun but I think we are done. She looked me in the eyes, Mohini listen to what I tell you. Tonight when you go to sleep you will remember today. What you told your mom will become the truth. You will believe with all your heart what you told her. You came to us. When you wake up tomorrow you will be totally happy as a girl and know that it is what you have always wanted. You will forget about how you were once a boy. You will start to think about boys and how you want a boyfriend. I got scared again as she kept going on. You will not be attracted to girls. You will be attracted to boys. But you will only date boys who are 6′ tall as you will always want to wear heels that are at least 4’inches high and you will almost always wear dresses or skirts with very revealing tops. You will want to show off how female you are. Do you understand she asked? I said yes as the horror of what she just said went through my mind. Rita came over and gave me a hug. One last thing dear we are the best of friends now and we tell each other everything. You will not hid anything from us do you understand? I said yes and felt a little better that they would be my friends. They both gave me a hug again and then Rohini smiled oh by the way from here on out the drug will not have any effect on you and nobody can tell you what to do or control you anymore do you understand? I said yes.
We sat there and I could not stop thinking about tomorrow and how after tonight I would be a girl and happy about it and I would be attracted to boys. I looked at Rohini and Rita, I have learned my lesson please stop this before I go all the way. I looked so scared and Rita looked at Rohini, maybe we are going too far. I felt hope and maybe this would stop. Rohini smiled you may be right but we can’t stop it now. I looked at her just tell me not to like boys and that I don’t want to be a girl. Rohini smiled I can’t the last command I gave you was to deactivate the drug. What I said. Rohini smiled I thought we might feel guilty and change our minds so I made it so we can’t. Rohini then looked at me, Mohini I want you to go tell your mom your mom you changed your mind and you want your name to be Mohit. I looked at her I hate that name Mohini is much better. What did I just say; I refused to do what she said. Rohini smiled you see we can’t undo what we have told you now there is nothing any of us can do but tomorrow you will feel better and we will all be the best of friends. I went to bed that night and new tomorrow my life would change and the only comfort I had was I would be totally happy and I fell asleep.
I hate that name Mohini is much better. What did I just say; I refused to do what she said. Rohini smiled you see we can’t undo what we have told you now there is nothing any of us can do but tomorrow you will feel better and we will all be the best of friends. I went to bed that night and new tomorrow my life would change and the only comfort I had was I would be totally happy and I fell asleep
vasantha (Friday, 03 February 2017 09:15)
mohit your very story nice
Sunita (Friday, 03 February 2017 21:22)
Dear Sneha didi.
Superb stories. Pls Continue both the stories.. Make it a long one!!! We are waiting.
Prerna (Monday, 06 February 2017 07:05)
Please read my new Story
Prerna (Monday, 06 February 2017 07:06)
http://feminizationofaguy.blogspot.ie/
rajni (Tuesday, 07 February 2017 20:12)
sneha pls continue, awesome story
sneha (Wednesday, 08 February 2017 09:18)
Our Identity
Continuation of 676
We took blessings of MIL and my MIL told my told sarla from know on-wards your name in this house will be srikanth and you are my son in law. Srikanth with a wicked smile shown her acceptance. she settled on the sofa and relax and i went to kitchen and cleaned utensils and kitchen floor and cooked food started cleaning the floor tied my sari tightly to cover my breasts properly sarla alias srikanth starring at my body while cleaning. i felt ashamed but i did it then i started cooking while cooking sarla alias srikanth came to kitchen and asked for water i said ji and served water to her in the glass she took a sip of water and spanked my buttocks and said you have to shape it properly if not i will take a charge. i said ok ji she kept her hand on my shoulder and said i am enjoying to satisfy my ego please kiss my feet i said ok ji and kissed her feet. i completed cooking and served to both and after completion of their lunch i started cleaning my clothes after that i had lunch. Than sarla changed into short and told to press her legs i said ok ji and started pressing her legs if was not doing my job properly she is kicking me on my head.
I heard door bell sound and i saw sarla alias srikanth is in a deep sleep so i closed bedroom door and opened the main door i saw elderly in her early sixties and she said oho disha you are looking very beautiful my dear i was dumb listening this i simply said how r u aunty and given her water. i went to my MIL room and informed her about the visitor and she saw from the bedroom and said she is her old friend name malathi. I said malathi aunty thinking that i am disha then MIL said it is ok don't think to much my MIL and malathi discussed for some time and malathi aunty said she came her to invite for her daughter's baby shower and malathi aunty told me to stay with her for 3 days because she don't have any one to help i can't deny in that situation but i was thinking my MIL said ok to malathi aunty.
Malathi aunty left and i asked my MIL how can i manage 3 days like a woman My MIL said you can easily manage and if you find any problem call me i will guide you. Sarla came out and dressed in her sari and said she is leaving for the day. I was totally nervous from tomorrow i have to go to malathi aunty's house to help her. for the Whole day i was in sari and i slept in nightie in night and next morning i woke up and cooked break fast and dressed in sari and prepared lunch for MIL and kept in the HOT box. I took my car and visited aunty's house and aunty introduced her daughter her name is rani. Rani and disha are not meet before so i was happy if she known about disha she also knows about her habits so she can easily find me. I told rani and aunty to relax i took charge of the works i order cook to prepare sweets and hots for tomorrow and i prepared list of all items required for function and for guidance i called my MIL and i prepared garlands for rani beautiful and i supervised decoration of house and stage later i became tired and sat beside rani. Rani said thank you darling for help i said MY MIL will be alone so i will make a move malathi given food carriage for both us i took it and left to my home. My MIL opened the door and asked me how is ur day i said today i was reborn as a woman.
Please post your comments
sneha (Wednesday, 08 February 2017 09:43)
Our Identity
Next day i woke up early and i told my MIL to get ready early and we got ready i wore my wife jewelry and silk sari i was looking like a angel and i went to the hall my MIL waiting for me their and she surprised seeing me like that. We hurried to malathi aunty home i took my MIL to rani's room and introduced rani to her and she blessed rani and malathi aunty came in and she is looking nervously my MIL asked her what happen all the women are waiting their i am waiting for maid to apply turmeric paste to women's legs and to start the event. Rani said don't worry mom call her she will be their malathi aunty said i called her but she said her son is sick and she will come after visiting the doctor. My MIL said don't worry where is turmeric paste malathi aunty shown it my MIL and my MIL told me to apply it to all ladies.
Oho what a day for me know i am touching more than hundreds of women legs i think all my sins will go away so i want to each and every women and applied turmeric paste and wow after that i helped rani in dressing actually i forgot i was man i am doing all the women's work. One aunty kept flowers in my hair and other aunty applied turmeric paste to my legs and malathi aunty given me sari and told me to change i wore it and came to stage i saw rani is sitting in the chair and she called me their and told me to sit on the chair beside her i sat she told me keep my sari pallu on my thighs so that all the women will give their offerings i asked her why are telling me this to do. she said it is ritual they will make women who is newly married or who wants to have baby they will make sit beside the baby shower lady and all women will given their blessings to both so that pregnant women will get beautiful baby and other woman will get pregnant soon.
After listening this my eyes filled with water i can't explain i din't received this much attention or love as a man. Oho god why you have given male birth i cursed myself meanwhile i heard something from photographer and turned to him and asked excuse me what you said he told me to smile. We both sat all the women came one by one and started rituals they have given aarthi and every women kept thikka on our fore head and giving fruits as a offerings somebody given me money also and all women kissing us. i saw my MIL her eyes also filled with tears and later we had a bangles function in the night i got a one typical task.That i should dress two women as a men and for night party i said no aunty both the aunties came took my hand started begging me i said ok if wont say yes they will kill me.
Then we had lunch after lunch all the woman started gossips and jokes over their husband i was shocked and enjoyed later rani sat on the chair i prepared gift packets for everyone and i was giving it to rani and rani passing this to all women at four clock all the rituals completed all are awaiting for night and both the women said they will come by seven clock. I told rani i want to sleep i changed in to nightie and slept thinking of night disaster.
Please post your comments
Vaibhavi (Wednesday, 08 February 2017 20:48)
sneha di pls continue stress buster story pls
SRS (Thursday, 09 February 2017 00:54)
Mohit nice story
sneha (Friday, 10 February 2017 09:02)
Stress buster-2
There in no romance between me and rajesh my manager more than romance now we connected relational to each other. I asked him will you stay for today he said he want to leave for the night and every day after office hours he will come to my house to be my grand daughter i agreed and permitted him to leave.I am feeling proud know i don't why while eating also i am thinking about something and i don't slept well in the night. Next day as usual i went to office and i saw rajesh is still not in his cabin i am worried about him i don't why i am worried for him he can take care of him. he came a hour late and visited his cabin and he stood after seeing me and wished me good morning grand pa. I sat on the chair he said grand pa i was not slept properly whole night i was thinking about our weird meeting. I slapped him and said this is office don't i am not your grand pa nor you are my grand daughter. He said ok and i asked him reason for his late coming. he said he slept around 4 A.M in the morning and he woke up at late. i told him to do sit up's for breaking the reasons after that i visited my table.
I was busy whole day with my work and i left a hour late from office and i saw my house was opened i thought rajesh would have come and i went inside the house and sat on the sofa i shouted bring the water and closed my eyes. I felt that someone was removing my shoes i opened my eyes one women with a white hair removing my shoes i said excuse she lifted her head her faces seems to be familiar and her skin glowing like very young lady but her hair is white rajesh came out and said good evening grand pa and kissed me on my cheeks. I asked angel who is she and both are seeing me i am asking you rajesh you are my little angel i am your grand pa naa. she laughed and said grand ma I said i under stood that and who is he in really she said i am vaibhav i was shocked vaibhav is vice president in very young dynamic leader and handsome a heart throb of total our office now he removed my shoes. Rajesh said vaibhav watched what all happened in my cabin and he called me and asked about it i was afraid about my job so i explained him every thing so he got excited and he want to join so i brought him here. I said oho ok i will come in a moment i got freshed and dressed like a old man and came out. i saw rajesh leaving from their i said are your leaving he said he got a call for home and he has to leave i said love u beta see you tomorrow.
Vaibhav watching Tv i sat beside him and said hey vaibhavi he saw me in shock i said this is my house you must follow my rules he said yeah please.First tell me truth i said he said about what i said about this why you want join with that. He said after listening to rajesh i felt excited and this is exactly right because after visiting home everyday after work i will sleep or i will watch television today in the evening i cooked food and waited for you this is some thing different i have done and this gives me energy for next day to perform well. I said ok you can do all this as a men why you want to do this as a woman and why you are submissive to me you even removed my shoes. he was dumb he din't spoken a word i said you are excited come with me i taken him to my bed room and removed that old women hair wig and fixed young women hair wig and given him a beautiful designer sari told him to dress in that he said me to leave i laughed and left from there after 10 minutes vaibhav came their dressed in that sari. he is looking like women i just went near to him and just adjusted her sari to kept low and sided her pallu so that her navel will be visible oho know he don't have body hair and he is looking like perfect princess. i hugged him and kissed on the lips oho know he is soft like a young girl both physical and mental he said lets marry i want this for my whole life.
I was in cloud nine after listening this he served dinner for us while having he said he got raised like a girl from childhood he is not active in sports only studies even he said he don't like to do job he want to be house wife and he want to show me to his mom because she always wants him to get husband like me. Husband after hearing it i felt like earth stopped for a moment i was his perfect match. we had a dinner removed my plate and cleaned plates and table he said he want to leave and i said i food was great he blushed with my compliment and said thanks. He want to go sari to home but i stopped him and told him to change because he is such beautiful princess somebody will rape her if somebody saw her like that.
Please post your comments
rajesh (Saturday, 11 February 2017 08:30)
Hi sisters write stories on
Boys are forced to grow hair and forcefully getting braided and boys are slowly addicted to and wearing females dress by his sister in law (anni)
SRS (Saturday, 11 February 2017 13:07)
fashion part 19 # 552
Next day I woke a saw that my hands and legs all filled with meheindi which I hate. It’s up to forearm, after I slowly wake up an get fresh, when I came to hall I was shocked to see the parlor woman is standing along with pretty an my aunt told that they r came for u to prepare for the shoot, and I was ill scared about that, they took me to the room an started to prepare me, first they give me petticoat an bra and they have seen this fake thing an started to lol , after they drape the saree which is rose with backless an sleeveless blouse, and they did my makeup and they braided my long hair an put jasmine. now they started with the jewelry , they put payals in my legs which is making extreme sound and dozens of bangles in my both hands and necklace , after they came to ear they put long jumkas in both ear an diamond studs in balance 3 holes, and they put a long nose ring in left side in my nose an 7 stone diamond stud in right side and a small hanging in the mill of my nostril, they even put a long navel ring, after lot of struggle we came out side an my aunt was surprised on seeing me, my aunt came near to me and told to me hope if u wear a real woman than v look for a nice groom, I get angry on hearing that, after they took me to the studio an there lots of pose is been taken that become more humiliating an after finishing the shoot I got a call from that 3 woman who I gave the money through my company, they r the only responsible for a which happen to me, I dint think anything after the call, I dint care what I wore I simply went there cause they have promised me to return my money which I have took from our company , when I reach there they all got shock on seeing this new avatar, an I started to shout on them cause for this all they r the responsible , they told that because of cheating 3 of them so they dint give that money other than that they dint do anything , after hearing this all I asked about the money but they told that still want to take a last revenge an told after that only they will give my money , I thought for a movement after everything is been done an now what left to do an I accepted, they bring an paper in that its written something an told to tell in front of them, I was shocked on reading that.
SRS (Saturday, 11 February 2017 13:08)
fashion part 20 ( the end )
it says that from childhood u used to be a girl and I always played with the dolls instead of toys , I secretly cross-dress, am in the wrong body, an am a transgender, I like to be woman and that nobody knows an am afraid of telling that so please help me. After reading that notes I throw that a started to scream what the hell is that for, and they told that it’s for fun and there is nobody except v 3 of us, if u don’t than v will not pay the amount after that ur wish. After I think a lot an accept it and I say it louder an when I was finished they started to lol, after they given the amount an smiled evil that I don’t know y, I took the amount an came to my office an handover to my boss .I was happy at last that I was success, I wrote my resignation letter here after I will not work for this company an left , I went to my cabin an removed the dress and jewelry but still the permanent makeup and some pricing r left, I thought that I will do something about that afterwards, I cut all my long hair an came to my home an saw that my aunt welcome with pleasure, but she was surprised of my hair an she is behaving strange, I have explained everything to my aunt either she believed r not an she told to forgot about the past an tomorrow is ur birthday so I will give u surprise gift that u will never forget. after I took some snack n juice which she make an it was nice , I was in my old self with jeans and t-shirt an my aunt took me with her an telling that she had an small work after that she will give my surprise gift, we came nearby big hospital an she told that she want to meet her friend , I told that I will wait in car but she told that it will took some time some if u come inside so that u can sit in the A/c an relaxed while I will complete my work, after we went inside an she meet with 1 lady doc an she was most beautiful, I was keep on seeing her breast an body an she noticed me , after my aunt introduce me with her , we took a seat an she showed some video to doc after when I saw that video I was shocked on seeing that, it was me in the video telling that I was a transgender an I want to be woman, I don’t know how they make this video, after seeing this video I felt dizziness I don’t know y an my aunt told don’t worry baby we will full fill ur dreams , and I started to explain what had happened there but I dint cause my mouth is blabbering an I could not able to talk, my aunt told that she has drugged me which I took in snack on this for surprise an told take rest baby from tomorrow u will become my daughter on ur birthday and I slept. when I wake up I don’t know how many days is been passed, I saw everybody was surrounded me and my boss an aunt all smiling, I slowly tried to getup but I can’t an 1 nurse came an hold me an make it sit after I suddenly realized that I felt a weight in my chest , I look down an saw two large mount its looks like a breast an in my down there I can’t feel anything, after this I felt shock an scream but that too was shock on hearing my own voice its became woman voice , an my aunt told happy birthday dear who was my present an my life ends with complete girl.
vasantha (Sunday, 12 February 2017 08:55)
srs very very nice story pls pls pls continue with new story i am early wait for i am your fan for stories pls continue new storie pa
SRS (Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:15)
Thanks a lot vasantha , am real happy that ur my fan, i will fulfill ur wish
SRS (Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:22)
hai this my another story, i hope u like my story
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 1
The story happened on year 2020 where the male to female gender ratio is low as 70:30 and the government passed a new bill for young males in colleges for to fill the gender gap.
Hi my name is Shamala age 25 years old female.
Let me start my story when my age was 18 years old .My birth name is Sham born as a boy. Sham Krishna used to stay with my uncle and aunt in a very rich family where my uncle is industrialist and my aunt is housewife. My parents have been died when I was small age, and because of my parents my uncle have become so rich a some of the properties are mine. My aunt have two sisters sherya aged 20 and pranitha aged 16 .My uncle is well dominated man in our family and everyone has to obey his orders without any contest. My uncle always thinks and teaches me that women should not raise a word against man and they are only capable of household work and taking care of children. Because of my uncle impact on me I too started treating women in a different way by not giving any proper respect to my sisters and aunt. I always used to tease my sisters by pulling their hair bands and bra straps. They usually gave a complaint to my aunt regarding my behavior. What can my aunt do to me hahaha I always have a full support from my uncle , even though his own daughter he dint care an he always support me.I joined in one of the top engineering college in Chennai. My class strength is of 50 students where 35 are male and 15 are female. I am very good in sports and very poor in studies. Lot of girls try to hang with me because of my money and six pack body but I always treat girls as candies and try to use them and leave them as dustbins. I am the captain to my class cricket team and volley ball team. I have few enemies in my class one of them is Prakesh and he is a very big competitor to me in every aspect. He is the vice captain to the cricket team and he is from political background family where his father is Member of Parliament. He tries to dominate me and very often we are going to fight in the college.Two years gone successfully in the college and on one fine day I have seen a very beautiful girl named Kavita who joined as a fresher to my college.I tried to talk with Kavita and date with her. But she always smoothly rejects my offers as she is a very reserved and traditional girl. After some days I got frustrated because of her continuous rejections in my love and I started ragging (teasing) her in college. One day she gave a complaint to her brother as I am continuously teasing and what's the biggest shock I came to know was she is the sister of Prakesh my rival in the class. He warned me and asked me stay away from his sister. As usual small fight happens between us and this makes Kavita and me apart. She too starts hating me like his brother Prakesh. Life seems very bore to me and I didn't guess my life is going to completely change very soon. India is one of the top countries which are more advanced in space research and medical fields. It was year 2025 where the our prime minister Ramiya Krishnan who is the youngest female PM aged 35 years old held a top secret meeting in new Delhi. Top scientists and medical research girls in the country participated in the meeting and came to conclusion that they have start a revolutionary medical operation in the country by 2025.The operation is named as sakthi. The main goal of this operation sakthi is to neutralize the gender ratio as 50:50 by turning the access males to females very soon. As of now males are outnumbered as 70:30 due to there is a huge shortage of girls in the society .Marriage for boys is going to be very difficult and the rape cases on women is going high day by day. The main target of operation sakthi is twenty year old boys in the country. Every twenty year old boy has to attend a gender test on women's day march 8th every year. If someone misses the test then he is going to pay the price.Test results are declared by depending upon several analysis. Total marks for this test is 100.Blueprint for this test as follows.10 percentage for sports test,40 percentage for analytical test and 50 percentage of marks is for male hormonal count.The government of India announced operation sakthi and moved the bill to the parliament. What's interesting is none of the MP's in the parliament opposed because everyone knows the drastic things are going to happen if they are not going to pass the bill for future generations. So many teenage boys below 21 years old are protested against the bill. The government has taken necessary steps for these agitations and finally passed the bill in the parliament. The synopsis of this bill is once the guy fails in the gender test they are going to give a drug called sakti which will change the gender in three months of time.
SRS (Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:24)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 2
Once the news is telecast-ed my uncle and I were shocked because at that time I am 20 years of age and I have to go through the test. My aunt and sisters felt very happy inside even though they didn't express any enjoyment feelings outside as because my uncle is seriously watching the news. My uncle told me everything is going to be fine and be positive. On that night my sisters came to my bedroom and told me for sure, I am going to fail the exam because they are some analytical questions in the test which will almost worth of 40 percentage of the result. They waved their hands happily told me good night sister and soon you are going to join in our bedroom in between two of us. At that time my fear starts inside me what if I am going to fail in the test and what about my future and how the class boys treats me once I changed to female and what about Prakesh. How can I show my face to Prakesh and his sister Kavita. How my uncle treat me after the change and how my aunt and sisters take revenge on me. I didn't have proper sleep that night.On the next day every one is the class have a discussion regarding this issue. My college principal Priyanka Sharma conducted a assembly meeting to all the guys in the college and instructed everyone in the third year engineering guys to prepare well for the exam. She told us mostly last 15 guys in the class out of 50 were going to fail in the exam and after the result the class is going to maintain 50:50 gender ratio. Those who are going to fail in the test are going to follow special circular throughout the year. Everyone dispersed from the meeting with at most fears in their heart.On that day my uncle told me he appointed one of the top tutors in the city so that it will be easy to pass in the gender test. For 2 months I studied hard and prepared for the exam in mean time my sisters are teasing and disturbing me. I am just concentrating for the exam once I got passed then I will show hell to my sisters by abusing physically and verbally.Day by day I am gaining the confidence and tried to be very good in sports as well. One of my friends told me Prakesh had an accident last night and for him it is very difficult even to write the exam. Then sudden dreams came to my mind if Prakesh is not going to clear the exam then I will rape both Prakesh and Kavita. on that night I slept very happily by dreaming Prakesh will fail the exam and am going to harass both Prakesh and Kavita daily in the college.Then it comes to most awaiting day of the year March 8th gender test day. I attended the test in my college and what surprised me is my enemy Prakesh too attended the test with swollen face. In the evening we had to attend sports test and finally doctor takes our sperm and blood samples. On April 1st results are going to be displayed on the internet. After completing the test my uncle asked me how I have written the exam. I told him that I am very sure I cracked the exam very well and we are going to celebrate a big party on our home on April 1st. Because of over confidence in the exam I again started teasing my sisters and Kavita. Kavita is waiting patience for April 1st results. I asked Kavita about her brother result she told me he will pass the exam with the top in the class. I had a very good laugh for 30min as I know that he will fail in the exam because he didn't do well in the sports exam. On that day I finally dared to touch kavita breasts and ass because she looks too hot in the saree. she cried and went to her home.It seems I am very lucky she didn't inform to anyone about this harassment.
SRS (Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:29)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 3
Big Day: April 1st
I woke up in the morning by my sisters and aunt. It seems they went to temple in the early morning for to pray god that I should fail in the exam. My uncle called me and gave Benz car as a gift. I told him that we will go for a ride after 10am because they will declare results by 9am in the morning.I opened the website gendertest.com and entered my unique id in the screen. Result shows that Sham Krishna fails the exam. My heart explodes and i am unable to breathe properly. I am hearing very good enjoyment laughs by my sisters in their bedroom. It seems they already gone through my result. I got a phone call from unknown number says HI BABY..HOW ARE YOU SEXY DOLL..it's me Prakesh …in the background voice someone is saying brother I will take to her..Please I am eagerly waiting for this undaunted then I came to know she is none other than my lover kavita. She says HI SISTER-IN-LAW I am waiting for you in the college please try to touch me again you will see what is going to happen next..Then I switched off my mobile phone immediately.My uncle is shouting angrily from the hall and all the servants in my house came to know that I have failed in the exam and I am going to change into female in next 3 months of time .My aunt came to my room and told me bear your uncle words for today and never say a word against him. I slowly reached to the hall and uncle told me I have a lot of expectations in you but you have failed to reach my expectations. I always try to give the best and never asked you how much you are going to spend .But today I have lost my only one son Sham and gained a third daughter Shamala. please return your credit card and Benz car keys. Now onward your aunt will take care about you. I always plan to handover our company when you reach 25 years of age. But now it is out of question and I will try to get best husbands for my 3 daughters. The word husband once reaches to my mind my body starts shivering. Instead of going to office daily just take care of your husband once you got married then there will not be any problem to you as there is no more analytical test and sports test. Do you know how many marks you got just 79 out of 100.cutoff marks in your class is 81 marks. You have lost the race in 2 marks. Your sister pranitha showed me your marks sheet which is available in your college site. Just move from here and cry like a girl in your room. I went to my room and closed the door and just thinking how cruel my uncle is. From today onward I should not ask anything from him and just started crying like a girl what my uncle just said.On April 1st no one tried to console me because they know my condition and I am too much humiliated by my uncle words. On that night my aunt came to my room and told me that nothing is going to change in a big way so that I can resume my normal happy life from tomorrow. I returned the credit cards and car keys to my aunt and she asked me to sleep early as I have to attend the college tomorrow morning.The next morning I woke up early completed the bath and started dressing as usual in my jeans pant and body fit tight t-shirt .on seeing the mirror a very handsome guy resembles and I am too much worried about my body in the next 3 months of time. I tried to get my car keys as usual then I realized i didn't have car now. I complained to my aunt that how can I go to college without vehicle? In the meantime both my sisters sherya and pranitha joined the conversation and asked me to come with them in their scooty pep (why do boys have all the fun) bike. I told to them that I never sit in a girl's bike and both my sisters started laughing .They told me that soon I have to travel by only ladies bike to the college or I have an option to travel in a public bus where so many boys try to touch your new boobies and rounded ass. My aunt interrupted my sister's words and ordered me to go with sherya bike so that she can drop me in the college. I calmly listened my aunt words and started the journey in my sister's bike. sherya told me to sit properly and during the ride so many boys try to check my sister. I informed to her but she told me that we should feel happy when someone is watching you and you too will adopt all these things in the very near future. Then I didn't a say a word to her in the journey and finally she dropped me in my college and shouted "good luck sis" for your first day in the college.
SRS (Sunday, 12 February 2017 11:30)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 4
Then I slowly started walking to my class room and everyone in classroom is watching me as an alien and everyone is whispering with each other and then I saw group of boys are sitting very calm in the last bench. I occupied a place in the last bench and one girl shouted in the group that " sham please sit with us as we reserved a place for you" then everyone in the class started laughing .Then I realized she should be prakesh's best friend named tamanna and may be prakesh would have informed her to tease me. Apart from me and the other 14 boys who failed in the exam are sitting very lonely and they didn't have a life in their face. In the meantime prakesh accompanied with his sister kavitha entered the classroom with a bunch of roses and started walking towards me. My heart beat is up and he came to me and placed bunch of roses on my desk then everyone is looking to my face and they are very curious that how I am going to react. Then my masculine pride bounces back and started insulting both kavitha and prakesh but kavitha just slapped me on my face as everyone are watching and she told me this slap is because of what I have done in the past. Then I tried to slap kavitha but prakesh stopped me and as usual small words exchange between us. Then kavitha left from our class with pride that she slapped me in front of everyone in the classroom. Our principal Priyanka Sharma called everyone to attend an open auditorium meeting. Everyone just left the class to attend the meeting.Principal addressed the meeting and she gave a speech regarding operation sakti project and how our college successfully completed the mission. I am not able to concentrate on the meeting because of recent kavitha slap "How dare to touch me in front of everyone " and my mind is wandering for revenge on both kavitha and prakesh. Then my mind again came back to the principal's speech that we are going to follow new time table for boys who failed in the exam and she starts reading the names and everyone has to occupy the stage. Now on the stage everyone in the college came to know that I am going to be a girl. She informed to everyone as these boys are going to help our society we should treat them with at most respect as same as girls. From today we are going to call this group of boys as sakti girls. As the meeting comes to end everyone again went to their classrooms.One very beautiful middle aged woman named sneha entered to my classroom and every boy in the class have a lust and desire in their eyes including me and she introduced to the class that she is new teacher specially appointed for to address sakti girls group and mental orientation to all class students.She started announcing new time table for sakti girls group and I am frightened with the schedule what she has read.
SRS (Sunday, 12 February 2017 12:03)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 5
New Time table:
9AM - 10AM Yoga class
10AM -11AM Home economics class
11AM-12.30 PM Technical class combined with boys
2PM - 3PM cooking class
3PM - 4PM Singing and classical dance class
4PM - 5PM Beauty and Hair care class
5PM - 6PM Exercise and swimming class
Sakti girls today please go to the medical examination room so that all of you get your new medicines and injections for three months so that your bodies are going to blossom as sexy and all of you can gain curves in right places. Prakesh just saw my face reaction when my teacher sneha is saying all these things and I am very much embarrassed how the things are going to happen in future. Sneha told that for clothes and other accessories government is going to bare all the expenses so that no need to buy any extra clothes including swim suit for college. And coming to the hair department we are going to follow a very strict rule that every girl in the college should have a waist length hair and from today onward sakti girls should not cut their hair and they too have a target of below waist length hair. Then my body is in complete shock and just thinking me from backside that how I am going to resemble to boys?And coming to beauty department every girl including sakti girls should wear makeup and high heels for the college. Two days in a week has to wear a traditional Indian dress like half saree and the next two days is reserved for to wear a skirt and appropriate tops (tight). Only one day in a week is for jeans and t-shirt. As it will take time for transition, slowly sakti girls has to adopt all those things and we will give strict instructions to the parents regarding all these things so that it will help all the sakti girls to promote their feminine nature.As the time passes teacher sneha left from the class and in the evening we sakti girls went to the medical exam room for to collect medicines. Nurse took all the measurements from every boy and we injected with some pink color liquid in our hips. She told us we need to come to doctor's office for every 15 days. As curious I just asked the nurse what they have injected by seeing nurse beautiful breasts. She replied that they have injected with estrogen which will block our male puberty and you too will soon grow a beautiful pair like me. Then I am bit embarrassed by the nurse words and just changed the direction from her breasts to her adorable face. I called to my sister sherya in the evening as she told me she is going to pick me up in my college.My sister reached to my college and we started to our home. Once reaching to my home my aunt informed me about the new time table and instructions to the parents list as the college already send a mail to my aunt . In the mean time my other sister pranitha reached home and aunt instructed everyone to have a bath and should gather everyone in the praying room.I have completed my bath and went to the praying room where my aunt and sisters are waiting for me. She informed me that from today your new life is going to start and your name is going to change as shamala Krishna.
Shreya (Sunday, 12 February 2017 15:07)
SRS very nice start! Please keep posting regularly.
I am waiting for your updates
-<3 Shreya
priya (Sunday, 12 February 2017 20:01)
SRS your story is great.... Please write more..
kumari (Sunday, 12 February 2017 20:38)
srs very story is excellent . pl continue
sunita (Monday, 13 February 2017 08:28)
Dear sneha didi,
plz continue.... if possible pls write a maid owner role reversal long stories.
with love
Jay (Monday, 13 February 2017 20:03)
SRS nice story keep updating.i m Ur big fan.keep it up
vasantha (Tuesday, 14 February 2017 10:42)
srs your very very nice story pls pls continue pa i am ur big fan pls pls continue pa
SRS (Tuesday, 14 February 2017 23:45)
Girls now ur turn, please someone write story like this then I too enjoy.
shruti (Wednesday, 15 February 2017 02:40)
SRS please give update soon
sirisha (Wednesday, 15 February 2017 13:06)
SRS continue your interesting story
shruthi (Thursday, 16 February 2017 11:42)
SRS where are you it's been 4day's since you've updated.pls come fast we are waiting
SRS (Thursday, 16 February 2017 13:04)
please wait, its impossible to continue story immediately . i know ur feeling cause am feeling the same excitement when i read other stories.
Grammar (Saturday, 18 February 2017 11:43)
??????
Sirisha (Saturday, 18 February 2017 14:05)
Grammar why can't you post a story instead of question marks
Aishwarya (Sunday, 19 February 2017 18:58)
Continue stories
Unknown (Sunday, 19 February 2017 21:19)
I don't know what the grammar busted is doing here, spoiling the entire blog.
SRS (Monday, 20 February 2017 07:50)
Ohh no, not again. I'm tired of you. What's your problem grammar
SRS (Monday, 20 February 2017 23:55)
Sisters, last comments is not by me...
shruthi (Tuesday, 21 February 2017 00:18)
SRS please give update soon eagerly waiting for your updates
Susila (Tuesday, 21 February 2017 11:57)
Hi kajal
Please add me to your blog.
Susillshinde@gmail.com
AAAAA (Tuesday, 21 February 2017 15:10)
AJAY AND PRIYA WERE CLASSMATES SINCE CHILDHOOD AND LOVERS.
THEY WERE JUST ABOUT TO JOIN COLLEGE WHEN BOTH THEIR FAMILIES DIED IN AN ACCIDENT.
AJAY AND PRIYA NOW MOVED IN A SMALL HOUSE AND STARTED LIVING IN A LIVE IN RELATION.
PRIYA JOINED A GOVERNMENT COLLEGE AS SHE HAD HIGHER MARKS WHILE
AJAY WAS UNABLE TO GET GOVERNMENT SEAT AND COULD NOT JOIN A PRIVATE COLLEGE TO CONTINUE STUDIES. SO AJAY JOINED A SMALL JOB.
EVENTHOUGH AJAY WAS WORKING HIS SALARY WAS VERY LESS AND EVEN PRIYAS SCHOLARSHIP WAS INSUFFICIENT FOR THEIR NEEDS. ONE DAY AJAY WAS REMOVED FROM JOB.
SEEING THIS PRIYA THOUGHT EVEN IF SHE JOINED A JOB THAT WOULD NOT BE SUFFICIENT FOR THEM. AJAY AND PRIYA THEY STARTED TO FIND FOR ALTERNATE SOURCE OF INCOME AS THEY STRUGGLED TO MEET THEIR EXPENSES.
AAAAA (Tuesday, 21 February 2017 15:23)
AJAY FINALLY THOUGHT OF PROSTITUTION. HE WAS AFRAID TO ASK PRIYA DIRECTLY, SO HE ONCE BROUGHT A MAN TO THEIR HOME AND THE MAN TRIED TO DISROBE PRIYA. BUT PRIYA WAS STRONG AND SHE PUSHED THAT MAN OUT. LATER WHEN SHE CONFRONTED AJAY ABOUT THIS HE TOLD ABOUT THEIR DIRE CONSEQUENSES AND TOLD PRIYA TO ACCEPT THIS AS EACH DAY SHE WOULD EARN IN THOUSANDS. PRIYA SLAPPED AJAY AND BECAME SO ANGRY. SHE THEN STARTED SEARCHING INTERNET FOR SOURCE OF INCOME AND FOUND MALE PROSTITUTES REQUIRES FOR GIRLS SITE. PRIYA DECIDED TO ENROL AJAY IN THAT.
PRIYA TOLD AJAY THIS PROPOSOL AND TOLD HIM TO ACCEPT IT OR LEAVE HER HOUSE.
AJAY WAS INITIALLY HESITANT BUT LATER HE ACCEPTED AS HE HAD NO CHOICE.
THE NEXT DAY A GIRL SONAM MESSAGED IN THAT WEBSITE REQUESTING FOR AJAY IN A HOTEL ROOM .
PRIYA ASKED THE GIRL SONAM FOR 10000. SONAM ACCEPTED BUT SHE KEPT A CONDITION THAT AJAY WOULD COME TO HER IN A GIRL DRESS AS SHE LIKES MAN WHO ARE CROSSDRESSED.
AAAAA (Tuesday, 21 February 2017 15:42)
PRIYA LATER TOLD AJAY ABOUT THE CONDITION. AJAY REFUSED. PRIYA TOLD AJAY THAT THEY HAD NO OTHER WAY OF EARNING MONEY AND HE HAS TO COMPLY.
AJAY SAID NO AND STARTED ARGUING AND EVEN PUSHED PRIYA. PRIYA GOT ANGRY AND SHE SLAPPED AJAY . The impact was so severe that AJAY had to grasp the door to prevent himself from falling down. AJAY was so horrified by this unexpected assault that HE became speechless. She said in a loud voice "It is time for punishment and that will be in such a manner that you will think a hundred times before disobeying me.”
Suddenly, Ajay felt there was some unusual feeling in the inside of his undergarment. Actually, he had ………. urinated due to fear. Both were trembling. She with anger and AJAY with fear.
PRIYA stripped AJAY`S clothes and made him Turn into a cock and stand in front of the mirror”.
AJAY saw his image in the mirror- a completely naked man forced to stay as a cock.
PRIYA kept AJAY naked for an hour. Then she ordered him to stand and do ups and downs holding his ears. Then he was again made cock. This continued for two hours.
After that AJAY was allowed to dress. But not in pant and shirt. She said in a commanding voice, “You need to dress only as a girl. Go and wear that pink nighty kept in the wardrobe.”
Wearing that nighty was no better than being naked. It was a transparent thing that easily revealed AJAY`S private parts. For the whole night, she kept AJAY standing in a corner holding his both ears with his both hands, dressed in a pink transparent nighty.
AAAAA (Tuesday, 21 February 2017 15:59)
Next day,PRIYA made AJAY apply a hair remover cream during bath. After bath AJAY lost all his hair and even his skin was smooth due to cream applied by priya.
Priya then made AJAY wear a petticoat which he put on with trembling hands. Then came a white bra which he struggled putting on. PRIYA then gave AJAY a red salwar suit.
PRIYA then fixed a centre partition wig on Ajay’s head. She made him wear bangles, long dangling earrings, necklace and anklets. His face was neatly made and a quick threading done to make his bows more feminine. PRIYA told AJAY to be ready by evening after she returns from college
PRIYA then In the evening brought AJAY a new dress to wear.
It was a maroon top, a black skirt which hardly covered his knees and a pair of transparent stockings and of course the bra with implants. She did a proper make up for him.
When AJAY looked at the mirror, he was looking like a pretty girl.
AAAAA (Tuesday, 21 February 2017 17:46)
Then PRIYA gave AJAY a pair of black women slippers. Then PRIYA spoke with the girl SONAM and confirmed the appointment at the hotel. AJAY was embarassed to step out of the house dressed in that avatar maroon top and black skirt with matching accessories. He was afraid of the thought that what would happen to him now????
abcd (Tuesday, 21 February 2017 20:52)
aaaaa please continue
Vani (Wednesday, 22 February 2017 15:17)
Very nice concept Aaaaa. Please continue
cdmeera (Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:00)
The Bride - Part 1
My back was facing the mirror so I was not able to see what Jahnvi was doing with my face.
“I want to see whole the process.” – I asked her
“No, you can’t.” – She was firm about that.
“But, why not?” – I pleaded
“There’s no point in arguing Meera. Now sit back silently and let me do my work.” – She commanded
She started applying moisturiser all over my face and neck and gave a good massage. After that she applied foundation all over my face and neck and level it with a soft brush. Now my skin tone was even.
She started working on my eyes first.
She first applied primer all over my eyelids and up to the brow bones. After that she applied the gold shadow all over eyelid with brush. She then took the olive green eye shadow and applied it on outer V of upper eyelid. She then applied the same green shadow on the lower lash line too, applied it on full lower lash line except the inner V corner. With a fluffy brush, she applied the highlighter pink shadow on my brow bone area. Then with a pointed brush she applied gold shadow on the inner corner of the eyes.
Using liquid black eye liner she lined my upper lash line. She made a wing to make eyes look longer and suits with such colourful eyes. Then she got the kohl and lined my waterline and highlighted my eyes.
I was not sure how my eyes looked like but sure it was a good job done.
At last she attached false eyelashes and I could felt little weight put on my eyes. I never did anything like this to my eyes so it was a little uncomfortable for me.
She then curled the false eyelashes with a curler and applied a lot of mascara on upper and lower lases. She finally defined and filled my eyebrows using a black pencil. I have a thin eyebrows and Jahnvi did not feel like trimming them.
She then stopped and looked for a while. “Now just close your eyes and let me see.” – Jahnvi instructed me.
I did as she asked.
Finally she was satisfied with her work. “It looks good, our bride has lovely eyes.” – She smiled at me.
“Can I see my face now? “ – I pleaded.
“No Meera, just be patient. I am not done yet. It will take some time.”
She then started applying pink blusher to my cheekbones to highlight them. She defined my cheekbones with pink blusher having some red shade too.
She then started working on my lips. First she outlined my lips with red pencil. Then she started filling my lips with brush. She then applied bright red lipstick. She was taking extra caution to pout the lips.
She had chosen brightest red shade and she pouted my lips twice with cherry red lipstick and I knew they were too red by now. She then applied the gloss twice too. I don’t know what she was thinking of doing with my lips but I was sure that my lips by the time were too red and glossy that they were visible from far away.
Finally she was satisfied with the work and stopped applying anything more to the lips.
“You know Meera, you have very lovely lips. Any man would love to suck them.” – Jahnvi teased me and I blush a little.
cdmeera (Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:01)
The Bride - Part 2
“Now it’s time to apply bindis on the bride.”
She took a long bindi with golden base which had red and green small fake jewels. In direct light those jewels glow. She put it on my forehead in the centre. She then took the small matching bindis and started applying them on my forehead over eyebrows and applied towards my outer cheekbones. These bindis were the small jewels like they had in long bindi. She used alternate colours for them and she used red and green.
She then got a wig with long black hair. It was a perfect fit. She combed the wig properly and made a beautiful bun. She let 2 curls slid out from the bun at my both temples. Bun was a little high on my head. With bun I was clearly a couple of inches taller now. She decorated bun with some gold pins and chains to keep it in place and to decorate it. I was already feeling heavy above my head.
“Now stand up. We need to change the clothes. “– Jahnvi handed me a nice red panty. “Go to the bathroom and change it. You know what you have to do.”
“Ok”. – I took the panty and moved to the bathroom. Jahnvi had already covered the mirror so that I could not see my makeup.
I was still in my male clothes and thankfully Jahnvi was not able to see my erection, I was erect for a while. This whole process, makeup thing was getting on my nerves. I closed the door and removed my clothes. I was totally necked now.
Though I could not see myself but I could imagine it. I could imagine beautiful bride with a beautiful face was standing in the middle of the bathroom but below her neck was a horny male with erected penis.
I was the bride tonight so I was not supposed to have any erection. Brides don’t have a penis. I started stroking it and it did not take much time to ejaculate. I again started working on it so that there is no possibility of turn on tonight. In 15 minutes, I had 3 ejaculations and it was so empty that it was not going to wake up for next 2 days.
I then tucked my penis and did some tape job. Nobody could tell now that I had a dick. I came into the room now.
Jahnvi examined me thoroughly. “I must say, I am impressed.” – She said smiling.
“Now we should do something with your chest.” She got pair of silicon breasts from somewhere. I think she bought them. Surprisingly it was matching with my skin colour.
Jahnvi was putting a lot of efforts for this and I was feeling grateful.
cdmeera (Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:04)
The Bride - Part 3
“Ok, let see how it goes bought this for you Meera. They said that this will feel like real and they have very good glue with will keep them in place for a long time even if you play harsh with them. I hope they are telling truth. “– Jahnvi explained to me.
She applied glue all over the base of breast and waited for few seconds to get it a little dry and then she carefully placed it on my chest. It was placed nicely. Though we were able to see joints otherwise it was like real breast.
She did same to the other breast. Now I had breast which were passable as real breasts. She asked me to hold them in my hand to get some support unless glue is properly fixed.
After like 1-2 minutes she asked me release them. “Now walk a little and move them. See if they are fine.”
I did the same. While walking, I was feeling like some weight was attached to my chest and nipples but overall they felt nice. I even shacked them in sideways direction ad upward directions. Glue was really impressive. I did not feel like they were leaving their places for some time.
“Let me do something for those lines also.”
She found a rubber skin which had some glue at one side of it. It came with the breasts as she informed me. She applied it in round around the breast. It did hide all the joint lines but it was loose at many points and wasn’t looking that good. Then she started starching it on both directions, towards breasts and opposite direction. Now it was evenly placed there and it became so thin after starching that it was like the part of actual skin. Now no joint line was visible and it was like I had real breasts.
“Wow that’s cool” – I was amused by the product also by the efforts Jahnvi made.
Jahnvi smiled. “I hope you liked it.”
“I like it very much. Thank you.” – It was a genuine reply.
“Anything for Meera and Jai. “ – She said genuinely.
“I don’t think that you need a bra tonight. Your blouse is backless so bra will not go with it. I did not want to go for very big boobs for you because I did not want them to look unreal but I found that with your build 36” will be a perfect size though I know 36” is a little heavier for you.” – Jahnvi informed me.
“Yes, it is good. They are heavy but I think I like the feel of having some weight there. Is that how you girl feel all the time?”
“No, we are used to it.” – Jahnvi smiled. “Now let’s finish the clothing of bride.”
She put on a ghagra of red colour. It has very nice embroidery with green and gold work on it. It was a heavy lehnga but went nicely. Length was a little short, so Jahnvi tied it a little lower to make it proper. It was now a low west lehnga for me, well below my navel. If my pubic hair were not shaven then some of them would be visible at this length. But I think it was better that way. I had almost flat belly and I was smooth so it was looking quite good and it was giving a sexy look also.
Then she helped me with choli. It was a backless choli with straps to tie. It had very short sleeves or we could say almost no sleeves.
It was also a perfect fit, a little tight but felt really nice. It was also red with green and golden work on it. It was a low cut blouse so a lot of my breasts and cleavage was visible from it. It was also a padded blouse so it supported the breast which was a nice thing; otherwise I was afraid all the time that any of the breasts can come off. While it gave a nice support to the breasts it also pushed them further up and now they were even looking bigger.
“I think it worked very nice. But let me make some nice cleavage for our bride. I want your husband to jump all over you when he sees you tonight.” – She winked.
cdmeera (Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:05)
The Bride - Part 4
She first applied some bronzer down the middle of my chest in between my breasts. She then created a V-shape along the natural curve of the breast while blending the colour upward and outward. She then brushed light eye shadow on the top half of my breasts. She accentuated my cleavage with some makeup with a brush. She now blended the area where the 2 colours meet with a makeup sponge. Now my cleavage was looking deeper and nice. Jahnvi certainly knew how to make a girl more feminine and sexy.
“Mmmm, you look very beautiful Meera as a bride.”
“Really?” -I was blushing a little.
“Believe me.”
“Thank you.”
“Now let me do your nails. Sit on the chair please.”
I sat where I sat before and Jahnvi applied false nails which were a little bigger but not too much. He painted them red and after that she applied gloss also.
So now I had red glowing nails. She did the same thing to my foot nails also.
She then got the fake henna and applied it on my hands with stencils. She applied it all over my hands just above to the elbows.
Then she did same with my feet and did a little high above the ankles. Design was quite nice.
“Now it’s time to finish the work. It’s time for some jewellery. You can move now and see in mirror.”
My heart was beating a little faster now. I moved and I was almost shocked of what I saw there.
There was no trace of Sameer. I saw a beautiful bride, almost ready for her wedding was looking at me from the mirror.
“Did you like what you see, Meera?”
“Yes.” My voice was shaking. “Very much.” I was feeling hard to get over the emotions.
“I hoped.” – Jahnvi was smiling.
I saw again in mirror from top to bottom.
I had very nice black hair which was styled in a bun and it was also decorated with gold pins and chains. My eyes were done with golden, red and green colour which was looking incredible.
My forehead was covered with small bindis which were coming just above to the cheekbones.
My cheeks had the red and golden shade and my cheekbones were accentuated and they were looking very high and my face was looking thin and curvy.
Most highlighted part of my face was my lips. I knew it even before looking into the mirror. My lips were too red and glossy like I had just applied a lot of moisturiser all over them. They were looking like inviting everyone around to be sucked. In short, I had fuller gleaming red lips.
Below was a beautiful woman with a curvy body. I had very nice boobs and a very deep and nice cleavage.
I tried hard to find any trace of Sameer but I failed. I could only see a beautiful bride who was almost ready for the big day. I could only see Meera. Overall, Jahnvi did a fantastic job. I was overwhelmed by the sight.
I turned towards the Jahnvi and I hugged her tight. My voice was trembling with emotions. I just managed – “Thank you.” I could feel my eyes were getting moist.
She hugged me tightly also and patted on my bare back. “It’s ok Meera, I did nothing. You are already beautiful.” – She said in a loving voice.
cdmeera (Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:06)
The Bride - Part 5
“Ok now it’s time for some jewellery.” She grabbed a box from the drawer.
First she got a golden Mangalteeka and put on my head. It had a nice round hope at the one end which was coming to the just above my forehead and a chain was attached to it which covered my mang. While made my hair Jahnvi made sure that I had a mang. Jahnvi attached it to my head. It had red and green stones which were matching with my dress.
She then put beautiful round shaped earrings on my ears. These were a little big and heavy than usual but I could understand as all the jewellery for a bride is heavier. They were also nice golden earrings with matching red and green stones.
“Thank God that you have now pierced ears from the dare. Ear rings are looking good.” –She winked at me.
Earrings were good. After that she got matching set bangles which was matched with jewellery and dress and started putting on each hand. There will be at least 2 dozen bangles in each hand. My hands were full of bangles now and I could hear the chuckle of glass whenever I move my hands.
“You will need to be very careful with those bangles Meera. Those are glass bangles and if you put any force or weight during night they can be broken and cut your hands.”
I just nodded. I was going to take care of that.
She then tied a beautiful matching golden necklace with red and green stones around my neck which was quite heavy but went beautifully with dress and makeup.
Then she put few rings in fingers of each hand. Then she put a beautiful hand panja on both of my hands. She also put bajubands on both my arms.
She put beautiful pajeb on my feet as well and 2 bichuas on my each foot.
“You know Meera, only married woman are allowed to wear bichuas. I put them on because you are going to be married.” – Jahnvi informed me.
She also put a beautiful change around my west. This all felt so feminine.
“We are almost done.” – Jahnvi sighed. “Now tell me, how did you find it?”
“I have no words. – It was an overwhelming feeling for me. I was out of words. I was feeling every bit of a woman now and a wannabe bride.
“Don’t you like it?” – Jahnvi teased. “Then we can undo what we have done. I don’t mind going back.”
“No, I like every bit of it. Even though I never thought that I would ever like it. You have given me something for which I will always be grateful to you, Jahnvi. You have gifted me Meera and you are gifting me Jai. I cannot repay you what have you done for us. Thank you.” – It was almost feminine voice. I was feeling very lucky to have Jahnvi so understanding.
“You know Meera, I also never thought of it until that day. I never imagined that I will found Meera any day in my life. I don’t know but it happened like it had to be happened and I am too happy that it happened. I now have 2 more friends forever, Meera and Jai and I wish you both all the happiness of the world.” – Jahnvi was very sincere.
“Thank you Jahnvi for all the things you have done for us.” – I hugged her.
“And thank you both to let me do it for you.” – Jahnvi hugged me tightly.
“Ok, enough serious talk, girl. Jai should be waiting for you eagerly. Let’s finish here.”
She found something from box. “This is the final item which we need for our bride.”
This was a nath, enough big to cover my whole lips. She put nath on my nose and attached the string in the hair above my ear.
“I think you should pierce your nose also Meera. Married women mostly pierce their nose.” – She teased me.
“No Thanks. I know Jai will like me without pierced nose as well.” – I also replied in a naughty mood.
“You know Meera, why nath is too important for a bride?”
“Why?”
“Don’t you know about nath utrai? “ – She asked me playfully.
Now I got what she meant. I blushed badly.
“Don’t be shy Meera. Every bride has nath utrai. Today Jai will do your nath utrai and you will be a complete woman after that.”
I was beet red by now.
“Ha ha ha, don’t be embarrassed. It’s your right today.” – She winked at me.
“Stop Jahnvi, please.” – I was blushing hard.
cdmeera (Wednesday, 22 February 2017 20:07)
The Bride - Part 6
“Ok, we should move now but before that some final things.” – She handed me over a beautiful pair of golden colour sandals. Sandals were also matched with my dress and makeup.
It was 4 inch high heel sandals. I just imagined how I will look into those with Jai. With 4 inches heels I was now 6’2” also I had a bun which add extra couple of inches” into my height so I was almost 6’4” and Jai was only 5’4”. It was almost 1 feet difference.
It must be a pretty good sight to see a wife too long than her husband. A sudden smile appeared on my face.
“What’s that? Is there anything interesting?” – Jahnvi read that smile.
I told about what I was thinking and she also laughed at that. We both laughed together.
“That must be an unusual couple but it is an unusual marriage. Is it not?” – Jahnvi said.
“Yes. “
“But this is special because it is unusual. Just enjoy it.” – Jahnvi said lovingly.
“Yes you are right.”
“Ok, let’s go now. Let’s get ready for marriage, you should be also very excited to see your Groom” - Jahnvi teased me.
“But before that let me do something. “- She got a chunri and put it on my head. She covered my face so that I have a veil now. All of my face above lips was covered now. Only my chin, my red lips and half of my nath were visible to other people. I think she purposefully left open my lips so that Jai can get a guess of what he is going to get tonight. Jahnvi sprayed some ladies perfume all over. It smelt good. She was extracting every male aspect of my personally at every step.
I could only guess of the sight of a bride in veil showing her lovely red glowing lips like she was inviting her groom to take her in his possession and extract every bit of her love juice from her mouth.
I could not see anything properly except the floor down. I could see the objects but not very clear. I was not expecting this but it also made me excited.
“Every bride should have ghoonghat. Let’s move now.” – Jahnvi said to me and the she held my hand and started walking towards the door where Jai was waiting for us outside.
My heart was beating faster but I was excited to meet my Groom and about the whole wedding. After all, girls are too excited about their marriage. Don’t they?
heena (Thursday, 23 February 2017 02:20)
meera pls continue
Sharmila Devi (Saturday, 25 February 2017 06:11)
Hi alll writers after long time i could read stories and enjoy them .Good work keep going
anonymous (Saturday, 25 February 2017 10:05)
can anyone tell the name of tamil movie in which hero wears high heels and teased by girls
Rashmi (Saturday, 25 February 2017 20:45)
SRS pls update
Charu (Sunday, 26 February 2017 22:13)
SRS waiting for your awesome story... Thanks for writing such wonderful stories...
SRS (Monday, 27 February 2017 00:24)
Nice go on
NKSMB (Monday, 27 February 2017 07:09)
Became Her for Her- Pt 1
Naveen started a startup based in Bengaluru few months ago, it was an e-commerce startup which became an instant hit within few time of its arrival. Naveen who was a CS Engineer looked after the startup alone, but as the business grew he bought an office and also started hiring other people. He first hired Radha , another CSE Graduate who shared his burden of looking after the startup. As time when the startup grew even more and more people were required to share the burden. Naveen was out on 3 month business trip at that time so Radha was also entrusted upon hiring other people based on her contacts. She brought in two of her friends Kiran and Varsha from her college. As the office grew there was also need of maintenance of the office therefore a Maid cum clerk Amina was hired to look after the cleaning of the office.
Naveen returned from his trip few days later. He was sitting in his office when Radha knocked the door “May I come in Sir”. “Yes come in Radha” said Naveen. Radha then went inside along with Kiran and Varsha Radha then introduced them to Naveen , “This is Kiran and Varsha both are my classmates from college, both were toppers that’s why there were the preferred ones for me” . “Hello Kiran and Varsha , welcome to my company , hope you will help us take it to next level” Naveen welcomed both of them. Both thanked Naveen and all of them left for their work. Meanwhile Naveen was awestruck with Varsha’s beauty , she was the most beautiful girl he had ever seen. He could not stop gazing her from his office. He had lost himself and thought that if he would ever marry , it would be her.
Weeks passed , the startup continued to succeed under Radha and co. , Naveen became distracted by his love and tried different ways of expressing it to Varsha. "Varsha," he said, pressing the intercom switch on his desk, "could you bring in those documents for signature now? I'd like to get them out of the way before that client gets here. Oh, and could you make me a cup of coffee while you're at it? Thanks." When she entered his office a few minutes later, a sheat of documents in one hand and a coffee in the other, Varsha looked annoyed. "Is there a problem?" asked Naveen. "With all the work we have to do," she said, putting everything down on his desk, "I shouldn't be wasting time making coffee." "But workers have always made coffee for their boss," said Naveen, non-plussed, "it's part of the job." "Yes, well it's time that changed. It would be a lot more efficient for you to have a coffee-maker in your office." “You can be even more efficient in my bed Varsha dear” said Naveen. Shocked at hearing this “You cant be serious boss, that disgraceful way to talk to your female employer” exclaimed Varsha. “Varsha darling I am sorry for my tone, but the fact is that I am deeply in Love with you, I have been expressing my love indirectly all this time but you have ignored it, now I will ask you straigtly , will you marry me Varsha?” said Naveen. Varsha stunned at her boss’s proposal said “ Sorry Boss, I have never seen you in that way, you are almost 10 years older than me, you have given me my first Job, have seen you as a Father figure till now, Please sir I cant accept this and nor can I Quit the Job, I come from a poor family , my mother is Old and ill, My sister is still studying, Please don’t fire me”. Naveen though disappointed by hearing this ensured her that this would not affect her Job, She left the cabin sobbing, She went straight into the toilet so that no one would notice her. After a while Varsha went back to her job at the desk. Naveen kept his promise, even though his love for Varsha never became less , he still didn’t bring up the topic with her neither did he fire her. Varsha was also relived of the fact that her boss let go of the issue without embarrassing her again. The Under the Trio of Girls startup flourished even more.
NKSMB (Monday, 27 February 2017 07:10)
Continued from ^
Few days later, As she was working on a file Varsha recived a call, she had a friend named Raji , who had called Varsha telling her that her marriage had been fixed,and that the wedding card was posted on Raji’s FB timeline so she asked Varsha to check it out and to attend the fuction. Varsha opened her browser and instead of searching in facebook she absent mindedly searched Raji in google, up came the result Rajibalan Jimbo Page. She understood her mistake and opened another tab and searched her in facebook got the card and marked the date in the calender,after closing the tab, the old tab with Rajibalan site caught her eyes. She clicked on it and read few lines. After few minutes of reading she was totally engrossed in the Idea of Men being feminized, she went on reading for another hour before lunch, when Radha came to call her. She hastidly closed the tab and deleted the history. Over the next few weeks she was totally into reading TV fiction on Rajibalan and Various other sites, she found it exiting and Kinky and even imagined her as ruling as a Misstress over a TV. It took over her head so much as that she would imagine every Boy passing by her on the streets on Saree or Skirt or just a Bra & Panty. She almost was thinking about it 24X7 even in the office. Radha and Kiran were also wondering sometimes on seeing Varsha laughing while viewing the Desktop and also taking frequent loo breaks.
It was 13th Februaury , Radha and Kiran were wondering how to ask Naveen to give holiday the next day as they had promised their respective BFs to be with them the whole day as it was V-Day. They discussed with Varsha and three of them decided to go and ask it to Naveen collectively. The entered Naveen’s cabin and Radha told about the request. Naveen was okay with the request as it was offseason and also he knew the feeling of being in love(his one sided) “Everything is fair in Love, go ahead even If I don’t give Holiday I am sure you would risk you Job and bunk tomorrow, A person in Love will do anything and go to any stretch for his loved one “ He said, with the last line being said while smirking to Varsha. Varsha started blushing she knew he was refereing to her. All three thanked him and left the cabin. As Varsha sat on her chair and went back to reading, she was struck with an Idea, in many TV stories the same line of “Doing anything for you my love” said by submissive men, she thought if this could be even done, she could make Naveen her dream pet. She taught for all of the session after lunch. It was 5.30 everyone had left except Naveen and Varsha. Varsha went inside Naveen cabin , he was wondering why she had come “Whats the matter Varsha. Any problem?” he asked. “No, No problem boss, I was here to tell you that I had no plans tomorrow and I had come to ask holiday only to support Radha and Kiran, If you don’t mind I will come to office tomorrow” said Varsha . To which Naveen replied “Oh , good to see your dedication Varsha, but I have already told announced an holiday tomorrow ,even Amina(Clerk) was told not to come tomorrow” .”That will not be a problem. I will call Amina and inform about the holiday being canceled, I have some pending work to be completed tomorrow , that is why I Insist on working tomorrow also.” Varsha said.
“Okay then , I will see you at the office tomorrow, nice to see you dedicated to your work Varsha” Naveen agreed. To which Varsha noded and left his cabin.Both left her house for respective houses. Varsha was beeming with a big smile while entering her apartment, she knew there was a chance for her make her dream come true here, She knew that Naveen was mad in love with her and may even go any distance for her. She then started devising an emotional blackmailing plan to setup her prey, she made a list of items to be bought and then spent rest of evening in shopping for the items. Naveen in his on the other hand was sad that he had to spend another Valentine’s Day alone , he was desperate for love , he was frustrated that even him being so successful girls like Varsha still reject him , He drank to bed regretting his loneliness.
Things would change the next day, he would no longer be lonely, but he would he be him?
review please , if it is good start I will continue tommorow
Deepthi (Monday, 27 February 2017 12:50)
Good one NKSMB. Kindly Continue.
Radha (Monday, 27 February 2017 23:54)
We r waiting for u nksmb
SRS (Tuesday, 28 February 2017 00:07)
Nksbm nice
NKSMB (Tuesday, 28 February 2017 02:18)
Becoming Her for Her - Pt 2 - from #769
The next valentine's day morning when Varsha was getting dressed she put on a seductive pair of red Lingerie and then proceeded to put on a bright Red chiffon saree along with a sleeveless sluttry blouse and high heels which she had bought yesterday. She was dressed to kill, all set to trap her Boss. She was the first one to get into the office and sat on her desk trying to act as if working on some file. Naveen entered the office to find it deserted except for Varsha at her table , Amina would always be the first one at office , he noticed that she was not informed by Varsha about the cancellation of holiday. He went and enquired about it to Varsha, “Sorry Sir, the phone in Amina’s house may been not working, so couldn’t reach her” Said Varsha . “Oh, is it. Then we have to manage without a clerk today “He said jokingly and went back towards his cabin. While he was walking he was in sort of trance after seeing Varsha in that seductive saree, he then proceeded towards the toilet and masturbated imagining her. Varsha all this while was observing him, she guessed why he went to the toilet and thought she was successful in her first step of seducing him.
Naveen could not stop thinking of her, he was looking at her every other minute and couple of his gazes were caught by her. Varsha then thought this was the time to proceed to next step. She stormed into his cabin and asked “Whats the matter boss, why are you continuously staring at me?”. “No Varsha , that was just by mistake , sorry if you are offended “ Said Naveen. Varsha replied “I am a girl , I know automatically when someone is staring at me , we girls have this sixth sense, please tell me whats the matter is so that we can talk about it “. Naveen knew he had no option but to confess “ Varsha , you already Know I am in love with you , I did stop proposing it to you after your rejection, but I still have mad feelings for you , After seeing you today in this Gorgeous Saree , I totally couldn’t stop myself , Please forgive me if you can but I want to again propose to you , I want you Varsha , I will do anything to get you , you can take my company and house , I just Need you” saying this Naveen knelt on his knees.
Varsha acted as if she was dumbstruck , inside she was in joy she had caught her prey , now she just had to see if he can be pushed to the limits she wanted him to. She said “Naveen , I really appreciate your feelings, But there is one thing that stops me from accepting your love, I am Lesbian” . Naveen shocked at hearing this fell on the floor, “Oh , what , you are so beautiful , how can you be a Lesbian Varsha” He asked. “Yes Naveen, I am Lesbian , I like to make love to girls , though my lover died few months ago in car Accident and I am single now, I wore this Saree in her remembrance as she had gifted it to me last V-Day” She said ,now she was acting as if she was crying. Naveen knew now he had no other option he consoled her ”Oh sorry Varsha ,I didn’t know, you will get someone else don’t worry “ and then she left to her desk. As soon as he closed Naveen’s cabin door , she sported a cunning smirk on her face, she had completely cooked a story of her being Lesbian and her friend dying.
She had one final throw of a dice left now , After an Hour of thinking , she Knocked Naveen’s Cabin Door, “May I come in Boss” She asked. Naveen asked her to come in “Yes Varsha, What is the Matter” he asked. “Naveen, Since you are so madly in love with me , I think I have an Idea to make things work, to make our Love work” Varsha announced. Naveen was surprised at this “Oh Varsha, I would do anything to make this work , tell me” He said.
NKSMB (Tuesday, 28 February 2017 02:22)
“The thing is that I like to make love to my lover in a dress, and you like me. I think there is a way that this could work , that needs you to do everything I say , Think of this as just you proving me your love and we can make this thing work” Varsha exclaimed. Naveen was curious of what she was talking “As I said will do anything to get you Varsha, I will prove my love” He said. “Hear me carefully , This thing will be only between us , I promise , I just want you to Dress in Female Dresses whenever we are togather alone , you have to dress totally as my female lover down to your underwear, If you promise me this I will agree to be your love”.
Naveen was taken aback for a moment “How can I dress in Women’s clothes Varsha I am a Man Damit”. Varsha showing slight frustration said “ How can I Date a man?, I am Lesbian Damit, Naveen dear you will just be wearing dresses , you will still be a man inside, and whats your problem in dressing in private for your loved one? , cant you do such simple sacrifice, I am doing much greater sacrifice of my sexuality by dating a man even after being lesbian”.
Naveen had succumbed now , his love towards Varsha had pushed him over the cliff, He thinked for a moment , he thought that if he sacrificed this little ego of his he would finally be able to get Varsha. He stood up and announced his submission to her “ Ok Varsha , I agree to all your wishes , I just need you that’s all I know, will do anything to get you”. Varsha was overjoyed, She jumped in air and hugged Naveen and proceeded to give him a long kiss on his lips, Naveen was in heaven , he was finaly kissing a girl in his life.
“Ok Naveen Darling, from now on you will be my female lover, whenever you are in female dresses you will be my lover , and when you will be back to male ego , you would just be my Boss” she continued “ Do you know what Yesterday night I was remembering my old girlfriend, She came in my dreams and Said tomorrow She will meet me and to wear the dress she gave last V-Day ,I thought there was no chance of that happening, so for her remembrance I brought her dress with me , to keep it close with me, now I realize its purpose, please Naveen will you be my valentine” she knelt on the floor and gave him the bag which contained to clothes. Naveen hesitated for a moment and took the bag from her hands and said “ Yes Varsha, What ever you say”. She stood up and kissed him again
“ I will help you with your new clothes Dear, Don’t worry” she continued “ To start with just strip down now, Please don’t shy now I am your lover, I have every right to see all of your body”. Naveen was little shy he was stripping infront of a girl for the first time ,he proceeded to strip till his underwear and was hesitant to remove it, Varsha then took the Initiative and pulled down his underwear to reveal his erect member. Naveen was now standing naked in his cabin in front of his employee
“Nice one you got there Naveen dear, now head to wards the toilet we have a little cleaning to do” she ordered. Naveen in his naked form obeyed her command and rushed to the toilet, initialy he went to the gent’s toilet but Varsha pulled him by his year towards ladies toilet “What are you doing there silly , your place is hear now” . She then applied veet hair remover to all over his body and removed every strain of hair from his body below his neck.She then proceeded to rub his dry with a towel and tied it in ladies style, she gave a pat on his bum “ Off you go Doll, lets get you dressed”. In the cabin she ordered him to remove the towel and stand straight with his hands lifted above, she removed a pink bra from the bag and inserted it between his arms and clasped it behind his back , she stuffed few napkins inside each cup to get feeling a false breasts. She then proceeded to insert a matching pair of pink panty, Naveen though was embarrassed was succumbing to the feeling of satin , he was getting turned on and was in sort of trance state so he didn’t offer any resistance, add to that Varsha was giving a Kiss on his lips after inserting each clothing. She then proceeded to put the petticoat and a sleeveless blouse similar to hers, and then finally draped a pink chiffon saree on him. She then did a slight make up on him with the limited make items in her purse along with some pink lipstick and a shining bhindi to go with his saree. Every item selected to put on him was purposely selected as pink, “There you go baby, you now look presentable, but this is just the beginning , if I get to work with my beauty kit at home, I will make you more beautiful than myself, look at yourself” She said giving him a small mirror from her purse. He was shocked at his face , his bright pink lipstick made look like a slut , he still acknowledged her work and said “Nice work Varsha, Thanks”.
NKSMB (Tuesday, 28 February 2017 02:33)
Varsha was dieing with laughter within Naveen was more submissive than what she had thought , she knew that now she had him firmly in his grasp. “Ok one final thing, I feel awkward in calling you Naveen , especially when you are in this cute little pink saree , I think you like the color don’t you Pinky ,Oh wow That’s what your name will be , Pinky, understood?” she said holding his cheeks, “Ok, as you wish Varsha” Said Naveen. “Tell me whats your name doll” She started to tease him “My name is Pinky” he said in a low voice with his head bent down in shame, “Louder I cant hear you dear” she said .
“My Name is Pinky” he replied in higher voice, “Look into my eyes and say your name, confess me your love , and beg for my love for you”she exclaimed. “My Name is Pinky , and I love you Varsha ...”he started to talk ,when she stopped him and said “How dare you call me by my name , you are no longer my boss, you are just my female lover you are inferior to me now , when I was your inferior I didn’t call you by your name, now I would like you to call me by Madam or Ma’am”. Naveen was startled by her dominating attitude, but he had succumbed to her to such extent that there was no coming back he submitted to her domination by saying “My name is Pinky and Madam I love you , I will do anything for you to love me back , from now on your are my world, please accept me as your lover Madam” he fell on her feet. She lifted him to his feet and gave a kiss on his forhead, said “ I accept you Pinky , but I need to prove your love to me, I want to know to what extent you can go for me, you only have to do what I say without hesitation and I will keep you happy” as both of them hugged each other.
NKSMB (Tuesday, 28 February 2017 02:34)
“Ok Pinky poo, I have ordered for lunch , it may arrive after an hour, we will have it and leave for your house for some more fun , how about it?” She asked him. “That’s ok with me madam” he said.
“But before that, Look at the office, Amina forgot to close the main window yesterday , and all the office is covered with dust, if it is not cleaned then we will not be able to work here, I think we could do with some cleaning, don’t you think Pinky?” She asked. He looked around and agreed “Yes Madam, but Amina is not here today , what can we do? .
“What do you mean by what can we do Pinky?, don’t you have hands and legs that are working? .. You sure can clean it for the day, I would love to help you , but I am really busy with the work which I told you about yesterday, the broom and the mop is in the toilet if you don’t know” She pointed . Naveen put his head down, she knew Varsha was just doing this to dominate him, he went inside the toilet and brought the broom , mop and bucket full of water and started sweeping the floor.
Varsha went back to her desk and was having fun at watching her new Pet struggling to sweep while working in the saree, she shouted from her desk “Oh Look at your Poor thing, Struggling to control your pallu , do one thing Pinky , tuk your pallu near you waistline inside your petticoat, that would help”. He embarrassingly obliged to it. He took almost 20 minutes of struggle to complete sweeping the office and then proceeded to mop the floor using the stick attached to the Mop. Varsha observing this shouted “ No No Pinky, when you mop along with the stick is not that affective, detach the Mop, Bend down and Mop in traditional way how Indian Housewife do in their Houses, be quick we have 10 mins before lunch”. Pinky could just blurt out “Sure Madam, Anything you say”. He bent down and started to mop the floor and Varsha was enjoying seeing him mop and twirling his hips in the process. As soon he finished , Hotel Delivery guy knocked the office door , Varsha ordered Pinky to get them money from his wallet he did it and gave it to her, she took it from him and Inserted inside his blouse “Go , Pay him and get the Parcel Pinky , he is just random Delivery guy , No harm in going infront of him , Put Pallu over your head, that will help you cover your identity , Now go” she said covering his head by the pallu. He went and slowly opened the door . “Hello Ma’am , I am here to deliver the parcel you ordered” saying he handed over the parcel to him/her . Pinky didn’t dared to speak and motioned with hands to ask how much , he said “Rs1400 Ma’am”. She embarrassingly removed the money from her blouse and gave him the money and closed the door. Varsha then asked Pinky to serve the food and both of them had a great lunch. Then Pinky asked “ Can I change to my old clothes till we get home Madam ”. “Do one thing Pinks, you remove your saree until we get home, but keep the underthings, I want you to wear Lingerie all the time from now on so that you remember your submission to me , you can wear your office things in the day , but when you go back to home you will wear something girly for which we will shop tomorrow , understood pinky poo?” she said. Pinky nodded “Ok Madam, as you wish” . He got back to his old clothes and proceeded to fold the saree and keep it inside the bag, he opened the bag to find there were many more items inside the bag, He wondered that it may not be coincidence that she had brought the saree and may be Varsha had planned all this and trapped him. Before he could speak Varsha shouted at him “What are you waiting Pinky, lets get going girl”. He left the thought for the moment and followed her to the car parking and both left for their respective houses with Varsha promising him that she will be coming at 8PM sharp to his home to have some more “FUN”
Would love to hear the reviews, next part spoiler is Pinky finds out that Varsha trapped her , and tries to fire her, but he didnt knew she had Trapped him for Good.
ishu (Tuesday, 28 February 2017 03:16)
great going NKSMB
Radha (Tuesday, 28 February 2017 04:42)
Nksmb good story humiliate pinky in front of other girls. Write fast don't break
roopa (Tuesday, 28 February 2017 16:22)
nice story cdmeera..
plz continue
اسماء بنات (Wednesday, 01 March 2017 03:35)
Interesting topic for a blog. I have been searching the Internet for fun and came upon your website. Fabulous post. Thanks a ton for sharing your knowledge! It is great to see that some people still put in an effort into managing their websites. I'll be sure to check back again real soon.
Komali (Wednesday, 01 March 2017 19:53)
Hi NKSMB!!
Great going. I have never seen such an exciting story recently. Please please continue the story. Eagerly waiting for next part
rajesh (Wednesday, 01 March 2017 21:42)
hi friends please complete story @ Kanmani pls continue story
jrs pls write new story with more humilate
@mohit & NKSMB super story make him forced bisexual as well rocking story
pls write like this Boys are forced to grow hair and forcefully getting braided by maid and boys are slowly addicted to and wearing females dress by his sister in law bhabhi (anni) or maid
rajesh (Wednesday, 01 March 2017 21:44)
friends its my fb link rk8997588@gmail.com serch with is id especially vasantha and hari shemalesana give friend request
pls write like this Boys are forced to grow hair and forcefully getting braided by maid and boys are slowly addicted to and wearing females dress by his sister in law bhabhi (anni) or maid
Maddy (Wednesday, 01 March 2017)
Guys write more stories
NKSMB (Thursday, 02 March 2017 00:37)
I posted this story on fictionmania and one of the reviewer told that it was boring , so please tell me if its really worth to continue.
-NKSMB
sanjeev (Thursday, 02 March 2017 05:26)
you8 can see many storyes in this blog related to nose piercing and would love you to share your story toohttps://traditionsinlittleindia.blogspot.in/2017/02/nosering-in-india.html
Poornima (Thursday, 02 March 2017 05:42)
Its very nice nksmb. But please dont make it gay and add more humiliation and variety of girlie indian dresses and public humiliation in front of girls
sneha (Thursday, 02 March 2017 08:36)
NKSMB Your story is too good and your narration too please continue
NKSMB (Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:36)
Becoming Her for Her - Pt 3 from #776
Naveen reached his apartment building, parked his car in basement and headed towards his flat. The embarrassment of wearing women’s underwear made him aware of the surrounding and was in fear of someone noticing his bra through his shirt. As soon as he reached his flat he was relived, he went to his room picked a towel and headed to the shower. While he removed his clothes , he noticed that all the embarrassment of the morning has caused him to wet his panty, he knew Varsha would be angry when she knows that this happen, since he had 3 hours left , he decided that he would wash the panty and hope it will dry within her arrival, He removed it and put it inside the washing machine and proceeded to have bath. After the shower, he wore his bra back and a Tshirt over it , then since the panty was put to dry he wore his boxers for the time being. He came and sat on the couch watch News on the TV , all the while he was thinking how quickly things have changed for him and how he ended up in this situation, continuing this strange relationship would mean he would have to continue being humiliated, he thought of ending this by talking to Varsha when she arrives, but then thought about what she said while leaving “Having FUN”. She could mean having Sex, He thought if he could get to make out with her tonight and impress her with in the bed, he could get her to love him as Naveen not Naveen in Drag called Pinky, so he decided to play along till they get to bed. Every 20mins he checked of the panty whether it dried or not. Since it was evening time it took Long time to dry. It was 7.15 when he checked again, after touching it he thought another half hour and it could be wearable.
Just as he got back to his couch, he heard the bell ring. He was in shock, had she arrived 45mins early? He taught as the bell rang again. He went near the door and asked “ Who is this” to which a reply came which made his feet tremble “ Its me Pinky Poooooo” it was Varsha. He was in two minds whether to open the door straight away or to run back and wear his half dry panty and then open the door but then Varsha shouted “ Whats taking you so long Pinks, why are you keeping your Madam Waiting”. He knew now he will be caught , he made his mind up to beg her to forgive him and opened the door.
“Welcome Madam , Please come inside and have a seat” He said. Varsha was smiling as the door opened but when she saw him wearing boxers, her expressing changed to a dissatisfying grin, she was wearing red long maxi dress with long slit . She handed few bags she had brought for him and proceeded to sit on the couch, her 4 inch heels made click clock sound as she was walking. She was visibly angry, Naveen knew It , she started scolding him “Pinky what the fuck did I tell you in the morning , you are not to wear any kind of male underwear, how dare you not follow my orders?” to which Pinky put her head down “Madam , I am really sorry , It will not happen in future I promise”. “Sorry will not do Bitch , you will have to be punished first to make sure this does not happen again” She continued “ Remember one thing Bitch , whenever you are in Office , you can wear whatever you want , but when you are with me or Alone you have to be Pinky, Naveen dies that moment, did you understand bitch ? “ . “ Yes Madam , I Understand” said Pinky
NKSMB (Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:37)
“So if you understand , why the hell are you still wearing the Tshirt and boxers , Strip Bitch” , Pinky in an Instant removed her T Shirt to reveal her Bra and then pulled down her boxers with her member raised ,He stood covering his crotch with his hands just wearing a Bra. Varsha was surprised “ Now when you wore the Bra , why the fuck did you not put on your pretty panties Pinky?” Pinky now knew she was caught, without answering she put her head down in shame. “When I am asking you a Question you answer Pinky , Why are you not wearing your pretty Pink Panties?” Varsha got up and caught his ear.Pinky twirling in pain “Madam , I washed it and put it to dry , its almost dried up, I can wear it now if you want” “ What , why did you wash it pinky , did you fucking soiled it ?" Varsha asked Pinky could just afford a little nod. “Why cant you speak , tell me what you did?” giving a slap on his buts. “I soiled my Panties Madam, Please for give me” winced Pinky.
“Hahahaha My Little Pinky Pet, how cute of you to soil your panty , I find it funny and it also tells me that you like wearing Panties , it turns your little member on doesn’t it” she said playing with Pinkys’s member, she continued “ Not that doesn’t mean that you will be punished Pinky , if you didn’t have a panty , better stay naked, why did you have to wear a boxer when no one is around ? Now for the punishment , come hear and lean over my Lap” saying that she sat on the couch , Pinky knew what was coming , she had seen this in many Porn and BDSM movies. She went and leaned over Varsha’s Lap. Varsha looked around for something to Hit with she found a TV Remote on the couch and proceeded to spank Pinky’s bare bottom. “This will Hurt Pinky , But this the only way people will learn” Saying that she smacked her bum with a lound WHACK sound “Ahhhh” said Pinky . Varsha “Ask sorry to your madam” as she whacked again , Pinky wincing in pain “Ahhh, Sorry Madam , I will not do it again” another whack “What will you not do again bitch tell me” “I will not soil my Panty again Madam , I promise” “ And??” asked Varsha giving another heavy smack “ Aaaaaaaah” screamed Pinky as she said “ I will not wear Boxers again ever” “ Good girl, now tell me why you wet your panties” WHACK “I get turned on by wearing panties” said Pinky knowing what answer Varsha excpected. “ Oh my Poor Pinky , why do you get turned on while wearing pretty little panties” giving another smack “ I... I Like wearing them madam”... “ You like wearing what” giving another “I like Wearing Panties”... “I cant hear you girl louder” smack “ I like Wearing Panties” she shouted , “That’s a good girl Pinky , I will never let my Pet run around naked without wearing beautiful underwear, I went shopping this evening ,Along with other things I have bought you many pairs of pretty panties and matching bra sets. No Get up and get me that those Bags” she said.
NKSMB (Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:40)
Pinky got on her feet and went near the bags , bent over and picked up the bags. Varsha seeing his butts now pink in colour from all the whacking and smacking “ Oh Pinky poo, your bum bum has become pink too now, hahaha , please be carefull fom next time”. As Pinky then Handed over the bags to Varsha she removed each item and explaining each things detail to Pinky .”Come here knell besides me as I show you what I have brought for youLove” she called him “ These are different sets of matching Lingerie” There were 5 pairs with Red, Black, Light Brown, Dark Pink and White colours , “Arent these beautiful” “Yes Madam , They are beautiful” Pinky noded in approval Varsha removed another item “ These are called stockings , I want my girl’s legs to look flawless, understand” Pinky noded. “This is called a Garter Belt, which is worn round the waist , used to tuk the stocking from falling down”. “I want to you to wear these four items all the time except to bed or when you are wearing a Saree understand Pinky” “But Madam...In Office there will be Radha , Kiran and Amina, what if they notice.” “All the time means even to the office , none of them will be visible below your clothes, wear light coloured ones like white , pink and Brown to office under Dark couloured shirts , no one will notice I assure you”. “ No more questions for tonight remove that pink one and wear these Red ones, it valentine’s day night remember”. Handing him his new underwear.
Pinky stood up and pulled the panty between her legs till her crotch and Adjusted her member inside it. She then removed her bra to put on the new ones."Oh again for today we have to adjust with Napkins for your boobies babes, I have ordered online for fake boobs may arrive tommorow" she said inserting napkins inside his bra. Varsha then adjusted the gartle belt around her waist “Good, now step into your stockings” she said as she held one stocking for Pinky to insert her leg, Varsha rolled them up till her knee and then gave a kiss on Pinky’s pantied hip “now for the other one” holding out the other stocking and rolling it up Pinky’s other leg. She adjusted and tucked the stocking to the garter belt. “You look sexy my dear , You are turning me on, that’s your main objective of life from now on , Wear Sexy clothes for my Pleasure” Varsha said. “Even with your sexy lingerie there is something missing, Its your hair , its too short for my liking, I want you to grow your hair till your shoulder atleast, so no appointment with the Barber for you understand” “But ..”said Pinky. “No,Pinky I already said no questions for tonight, your only job is to do as I say you” Varsha retorted “And for the time being ,I want you to wear this”
She said holding out a brown colored wig with shoulder height curly hair “Don’t want my Girl to look like some boy in drag, get on your knees pet, I will adjust it over your head” pointing towards the floor. Pinky got down on her knees as Varsha adjusted it on her head. “Oh wow It looks awesome on you Pinks, the curly hair suits your hair very much” she complimented her look. And the proceeded to Kiss his entire body, from his hips to his head and finaly to his lips. Juices where flowing all around her body, She smiled as Varsha kissed her body and was stimulated by the kisses in regular intervals, she was in such a trance that she automatically did what Varsha had to said without being conscious of it.
NKSMB (Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:42)
“Your dress and make up will come later, for now I just want to have a complete look at your body”. “Stand Up and walk for me so that I have a look at your beauty Poo”. Pinky didn’t fully understood what she mean by Walk , she got up on her feet turned around and then walked a few distance and then again turned back to return near the couch. “Oh Pinky, By Walking, I didn’t meant that you take a random stroll you stupid girl, I want you to model your sexy lingerie for me, Haven’t you watch Fashion TV show, I want you to walk like a super model” She said “ Now wait, I want you to wear another thing” searching inside the bag she brought out a 2.5 Inch Red Heels . Pinky stood there staring at those Varsha was taking this to new level “Aren’t they beautiful baby, now be a sport wear them, I cant wait to see you wiggle your pantied ass in heels” Varsha ordered. Pinky obliged . At first she tottered like she was about to fall , then after few minutes of walking she understood that it was better to take small steps while walking on heels. “You are learning quickly babes, now if you would give that as a little more twirl that would be even more sexy” She complimented “Don’t for get to pose with your hands on your Hips when you come near the couch as a model does at the end of the ramp”. Pinky started to wiggle her ass as much as she can trying her best to satisfy Varsha’s demands, as she came near the couch she sulking olny the humiliation gave a pose with her hands on her hips. “Nice baby, very good. I Love the way you are keeping your promise Pinky, I will give you a treat tonight don’t worry” Pinky gave her a smile “Anything for you Madam, Hopefully I have proved my love for you”. “You are going good so far Pink that’s all I can say” said Varsha.
“Before we head to your dress , my head is aching a little , could you please go and make a cup of tea for me Pinky” “But I am in not wearing anything Madam” retorted Pinky. “Not wearing anything? Then what are these?Buy the way why do you need clothes to make a cup of tea? Go now as you are” Pinky shocked at her response she is now purposely degrading him, cursing her within She started to take small steps towards the kitchen “And Babe Be Quick ” Varsha exclaimed “Sure Madam” Pinky replied meekly. After few minutes tea was ready She poured it in a Tea Mug and he was to the hall when Varsha shouted “Would like some biscuits too Pinks”. Annoyingly she turned back to the kitchen, brought Biscuits and Tea on a tray and served it to Varsha. Varsha too the Mug ,but since there was no table near the couch, She ordered him “Oh , there is no table here to keept the tray , do one thing for me naa , Hold the tray for me Pinky till have the tea” pointing to the floor ask him to kneel before her Holding the tray. Pinky obeyed her, She was holding the tray with her head down in Shame, Varsha was treating her more like a slave than Lover he thought. Varsha had some biscuits and tea, she noticed Pinky’s expression “Why are you so worried Pinky, Tell me naa,any problem my love?”She asked ,Pinky rerplied “Madam , I am realy worried that you are treating me more and more like a slave than lover degrading me at everyturn , I don’t know how much more I can take it, I want to go back to being Naveen”. “Ohh Sweety,”She started playing with is nipples “That’s not like that , I told you naa this is a series of tests ,You have to prove yourself”. Pinky was getting turned on with all the nipple play “Actualy My former lover was 10 years older than me, she also made me undergo similar tests to prove my devotion to her” . “Okay lets make a deal , for one month prove me your devotion and when I am sure of your love for me I will play as your slave for the next month, hows the deal?” “I...I agree to it I guess madam” replied Pinky, “So Who are you now?” She asked “I..I am Pinky Madam ” “and what are you?”to which he replied “I am Pinky , your lover.” “My Lover in ?”Pinky was puzzeled after a thought she blurted out in hesitatingly “You Lover in Panties??”. “Yes that’s right baby,you are my lover in Panties” she continued “Now this is full and final, no more discussion on it, One question raised and I will walk straight out of this room” to which Pinky nodded. Varsha finished the tea and ordered Pinky the get ready to get dressed. She went and kept the tray in the Kitchen ,came back to the hall.
NKSMB (Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:44)
Varsha held out a long Red transparent sleeveless Shear Dress for Pinky, “How is it Babes?” she asked “Very Nice” replied Pinky. She ordered him to insert his hands inside the dress and then she tied its string in the back. The dress was so transpresnt that everything inside was visible , it also had along slit in the middle till his stomach with her panties almost on display. “Oh My God, this is looking better than I thought, My lovely Girl” Varsha pulling Pinky’s cheecks. “Now before we head for make up , lets order some food for tonight’s candle light dinner, Pick up the phone and order”. Pinky nodded picked his mobile and called a local restaurant and started ordering “Hello this is Naveen” ,Varsha grabbed the mobile and cut the call. “what the hell are you doing”She said “You are Pinky remember, Talk to him in a girly voice ,introduce to him as Pinky”. Pinky dumstruck for a second but was forced to call , in a girly tone he said “Hello this is Pinky speaking” and then proceeded to place the order.
“Good Girl, Now for your final touch up, I have brought my make up kit with me ,come here kneel before me”. He complied, First she worked the base coat of foundation into his skin. She plucked a few stray hairs from his eyebrows as well, causing a few yelps of pain. She then proceded to put mascara, eye shadow, blush and lipstick on his face. In fifteen minutes, he was transformed. Looking into the mirror, he could not believe that he was seeing his own face. “Look at you ,you Look Like Priyanka chopra in that Desi girl song from Dostana” she said chuckling . Pinky just gave a slight fake smile. “I complimented you babes, you shud thank me, that would what a women with manners will do” she said teasingly “Well thanks a lot Madam”. “What about thanking me for making you look this gorgeous?” “Thanks a lot Madam “ he said again “Thanks for what?” She asked “Well thanks for making me look gorgeous” “Gorgeous what?”she asked again ,Pinky again sulking her pride “Thanks for making me look like a gorgeous lady”. “Oh no need to thank me Poooo, I would always want my lover to look sexy” replied Varsha teasingly playing with Pinky’s nose.
PS : Pinky's Dress , but Colour = Red https://img.looksgud.com/blog/wp-content/uploads/2016/01/underwear-with-blue-sheer-dress.jpg
NKSMB (Thursday, 02 March 2017 15:53)
The Hotel was near to the apartment and delivery came within 15 minutes as the guy rang the bell. “Oh the delivery is here, Here take this purse and give him the money” said Varsha “But I am in this dress” retorted Pinky . “So what do as your told , Go” replied Varsha “Please Madam, I don’t want to go out like this” begged Pinky. “ What did I tell you just now, If you don’t obey me I will leave right now, He is just another random delivery guy, Go and open the door ” she shouted as Pinky dragged herself to the door “Don’t forget to talk in your girly tone” Varsha Laughed. Pinky opened the door “Good evening Ma’am” said the Delivery guy who was taken aback at seeing a lady wearing a transparent dress, he could even get a glimpse of her panty. “I am here to deliver the parcel”. Pinky noded and with great courage and girly voice “How much” she asked. The guy was surprised by the tone and after seeing carefully he noticed something is wrong “Rs 3500 Ma’am” he said. Pinky removed the money from the purse and handed it over to him “Thank you sir...I mean Ma’am” replied the guy he left. Pinky’s eyes widened, she was in horror , the boy had found out that she was a man in drag, he cursed himself for getting into this mess sulked his pride and closed the door.
“Could you please set the table quickly babe I am really hungry.” Pinky noded “Sure Madam” proceded to set the dining table . Varsha went and sat on one end of the table and Pinky opened the parcel and started to serve . “Keep a plate for yourself too, it valentine’s day, We both lovers will have a good meal”. Pinky was happy hearing that For the first time Varsha had called him lover and treated him as Equal. She sat with Varsha to have the dinner, throught the meal Varsha went on telling fake stories of her and her imaginary girlfriend, and how after her demise She was lucky to find someone so loving and devoted to her as Pinky. After finishing the dinner , Varsha went on switched on the Music player and played the song from titanic, “Pinky ,My dear valentine, will you dance with me” she asked knelling in front of her , Pinky willingly nodded and accepted as both started dancing , Pinky was finding it difficult dancing in the heels, Varsha noticed it and said “Oh Babes , Dance like a girl, follow the lead from me by taking small steps, I will dance you just follow me”. As they danced till the music ended and finaly Varsha took Pinky in her arms and gave her a long kiss, Pinky totally enjoyed the kiss especially how Varsha played with her lips.
“Pinky Darling I cant wait to make out with you” Varsha exclaimed. Pinky’s eyes lit up , this what she was waiting for a chance to make out and prove his manliness to Varsha “But first I want you to wear something appropriate for the night” she said pulling something out from he shopping bag, It as a short red transparent Negligee. Even though Pinky didn’t liked the humiliating night gown he forgot his pride for one last time. Varsha removed the straps of Pinky’s dress as she pulled the dress from her body. She then unstrapped the panty girdle too . Pinky then ordered slid the Negligee over her body. That is when when She lifted Pinky and proceeded towards the bedroom , Pinky was totally embarrassed by Varsha lifting him he offered no resistance though. As the entered the bedroom Varsha threw Pinky on the bed. Varsha then told him to close his eyes for surprise. As he closed his eyes , he heared a click sound , his hands were now both handcuffed to the bed, and was now lying helpless on the bed. Then Varsha her self started to strip , She was down to her innerwears . “Oh my sexy bitch , How is it feeling to be my plaything”She asked “Madam Please Open My cuffs” She replied. “No no no ,Enough of you speaking tonight” she proceeded to remove her Panty and insterted inside Pinky’s mouth, Helpless Pinky was now feeling disgusted with the panty in her mouth. Varsha then Pulled the negligee till her neck, and Started Licking her body, “Oh My Pinky, My strawberry flavoured Ice cream” This was turning Pinky on. Pinky didn’t visualize that Sex with Varsha would end up with him being helpless Ice Cream bar. She was so dominant and decisive about the whole thing. Pinky never imagined that Varsha would be so selfish , it was just her pleasure and his pain . Through out he was lying on the bed with her panty in his mouth and she sat over him, grinding herself on his cock, totally using it as a tool for her pleasure, not caring at all about Pinky’s pain, as though she wanted to tear it off. It was more than discomfort, it actually hurt, but after some time pinky started loving it and also she was happing seeing the pleasure written all over Varsha’s face. Atlast Pinky came strongly .
Thanks for all the support ,
@Poornima Never Intended to make it Gay , I myself skip gay stories.
Hoping for Reviews of Pt 3
Rashmi (Thursday, 02 March 2017 20:13)
Great going NKSMB......
@SRS pls continue your story....
Poornima (Friday, 03 March 2017 03:24)
Great story nksmb but just a suggestion. Story would be awesome with desi girlie dresses than girdle and stockings. Enough of western wear. Would like to see the dressing in saree, salwar, ghagra, half saree and long skirts.
NKSMB (Friday, 03 March 2017 04:47)
@Poornima ,
Right now Pinky is a owner of a multi million startup , So she is wearing what High class woman will wear. But with change of Class will come Change of Attire.
lover of feminity (Friday, 03 March 2017 05:22)
hello NKSMB first ever m writting any comment srs you and NKSMB like your story very much even i can't explain and please this my humble request use western clothes sexy clothes m unable to do all things in real but i can imagine all these things on me and become happy atleast i can do all these things in my imagination thanks for posting such a lovely stories and make me happy
Kumaari (Sunday, 05 March 2017 08:48)
@NKSMB great going.... Eagerly waiting for next parts....
sirisha (Sunday, 05 March 2017 11:57)
SRS plzz update the remaining parts
SRS (Sunday, 05 March 2017 12:44)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 6 # 729
when they have told that my name will be shamala form now on wards I was totally embarrassed an felt shy, after that my sis told that tomorrow is Saturday so u have 2 days time to get transformation an my aunt told that I have to change all my indent in my driving licence, voter id etc. This an all making me total shock I don’t know what comes next, we took dinner an my uncle is watching news , in that many sakti girls who are boys now attempt for suside an many of them dead , some of them became murderess while forcing them into famine and they to escape from house. I was thinking what to do whether I escape from this houses a go somewhere else, at that time my uncle told what ur looking for, if u want to go out from this house then ur welcome we will not stop u because I dint like you to stay as sissy boy. I was totally shocked on hearing that. There come small tears from my eye while my uncle told it. after we took dinner and I went to sleep in my room at that time my aunt told were ur going go to ur sis room an she took me to her room an told to remove all of my dress an were nighty on saying this my sis started to lol, I felt very humility an throw the cloth while doing this my sis grab me but I too pushed her and she felt down , my aunt was shocked on seeing my strength after that she took her phone an talked to someone an I too left from there I went to my room but unexpectedly there my uncle was standing there and he was really angry about what I did to his daughter , he told u have not allowed to sleep in individual room , either u go to ur sis room r there is lil place outside the house were our dog use to sleep, I felt sad while my uncle speak like this to me, b4 he loves me an respect me but everything turns upside down. I slowly went to sis room an my sis saw me in anger face for pushing her down an I dint were any of her cloth I lie down. in other side my aunt was talking to her close friend shoba she is an top most surgeon in India , but she hate me a lot cause my uncle showed interest a lot for me instead of his own daughter an my aunt complained to her an cried a lot about this, I too not give her respect an one day there is small fight going on between me an shoba telling that I dint respect woman not only I dint respect aunt an daughter an always took advantage with my uncle and I told men no need to give respect to woman cause they are slaves of men , they always want to serve men can do their needs, better u don’t interfere in this are else u too become my slave. on saying this she became anger an slapped me after I to slapped her too , the main thing is she is equal to my aunt age at least I have to respect to her age, I complained to my uncle and he came an told to get out from this house an never dare to come again. on hearing this she felt insult an told to me that ur not respecting woman cause u have those balls , make sure 1 day I will cut those balls of yours an hang it in both sides of ur ear as earring so that u can able to know how woman’s feels when they hurt, I told get lost bitch an she went off, after that several years she dint come to our hose nor talk, This are all happened in past now the thing is different cause everybody know that I get power before for only of my uncle support which I will not get anymore. Now my aunt request her to come our house , my uncle dint care about this convention cause he totally felt upset about me an he don’t care now. It was late night when shoba came to our house I was sleeping with my two sis, my aunt took here to another room. Shoba asked what’s the matter y u have called me urgently, is there any problem by that bloody sham, an my aunt started to explain everything to her after hearing all the thing she felt really happy an told look even god also support us an that’s he deserves this kind of punishment, an my aunt told not only god total government with us unexpectedly they make un rule an that’s turns our favor, an shoba asked ok now what kind of help u need ?, an she told that I have given first shot of Harmon an they told the dress code in school an activity but he is not accepting it an if then he is more stronger so v cant able to control it in fact today I told him to were nighty but he pushed my daughter an went off , I can’t understand how its possible while he is getting the female hormone!.
SRS (Sunday, 05 March 2017 12:45)
THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE part 7
Shoba told that it’s because of his male Harmon is more powerful so that it will take more time to change even though v put heavy does, my aunt told is there is any solution cause he is not listening anything , an shoba told that male hormones’ produce from testicle from where the balls locate due to high produce of sperm which he get that’s y it took long time to change, an my aunt ask that is there any solution for that an she told that did u remember that what I have told last time when I saw sham that I will cut those balls of yours an hang it in both sides of ur ear as earring so that u can able to know how woman’s feels when they hurt, an my aunt was shocked and ask if any problem will happen then we will go to jail ? an shoba told u have forget that he is suppose to turn as woman an if we do like this then government will encourage us cause we are doing this for our government also. My aunt ask them how will we operate to him and she told u bring him to my clinic tomorrow then v will see. An after long conversation she left an my aunt too went to sleep, here I was sleeping with my two sis sherya an pranitha , this is the first time am sleeping with woman an its loll uncomfortable in early morning when I was I deep sleep v three are in the same bed, I was dreaming about kavitha that we make a love an had a wonderful sex at that time suddenly sherya woke up and saw what am doing my penis get hard erect at that time my aunt came for woke us an she too saw that an told to here this is the last time my dear I promise next time it will not happen. An she left, after few minutes I wake up an my aunt told to get ready cause v have lot of work to do, I take a quick bath an wore my old dress and ate the breakfast an v four of them went an my aunt told that she want to meet her friend after that we will started our work an v stop in one clinic I told that I will wait in car but she told that it will took some time so better come inside an wait. we went inside in a cabin an there I saw shoba mam an she started to smile at me it was strange to me I thought that something is going to happen to me an suddenly I thought that what she told last time and I felt scared and I started to run from there an shoba order there nurse to catch me , I was running like hell at 1 point I saw police jeep is standing there I went for help there 1 lady inspector was standing an I came to her an told that they are trying to kill me an beg for help, she took me by jeep an went to that clinic an went near to shoba an started to enquirer I was now relaxed an thought that if the police woman arrest her an after long conversation an my aunt showed some proof an after that lady inspector came near me an told don’t worry my boy Indian will me so proud of u all an suddenly she grabbed me so tight an pushed me in the corner of the wall and that sister bring the injection an inject me in the left side of my arm after few seconds I felt into deep sleep.
shruthi (Monday, 06 March 2017 02:18)
SRS pls continue dear give the update fast
sneha (Monday, 06 March 2017 08:31)
Proposal
Due to Saturday Nick has gone for lunch to near by restaurant and when he reached his house he saw a packet in front of his house on the packet written as for you nick. packet is in rectangular shape it won't be much weight it hardly weighs half a kg he slowly went inside the house and opened the box. A sari is their in side the packet nick was mesmerized with the color of sari and he slowly kept that sari near his cheeks and enjoying the texture and slowly he went inside his room and want to try this sari when he opened the sari a letter was fallen from that sari. letter kept inside the sari he took out and read dear nikkie he immediately shocked till know he felt that no one knew about his secret know he got a stalker for him. Later on after a few minutes he took some courage and taken that letter once again.
Dear Nikkie,
First i want to confess some thing about you. I like your innocence and your stupidity and i love your non-stop chatter box your are the best cook that i met after my mom. You have a great taste of selection of clothes the way carry your self is awesome.
I don't know when i fell for you idiot i want you to propose me but you are in love with yourself that you can't see so i want to show you the world with my love. later i under stood that i won't get pretty girl like you in my life once again so with out any hesitation i decide to protect this beauty for whole life.
Still i fell embarrass when i think about it how my favorite idiot become my angel. hey baby get ready in that sari i will wait for you at our regular point. I explained about us to our families
Your Love Stefan
nick felt shocked after reading stefan real name is stephanie and they both are childhood friends he slapped himself strongly that he never found his love their near by him and some body opened the he saw his mom came inside and handovered dangling ear rings and designer golden bangles set. she said get ready dear he will wait for you nick shock listening that and says sorry mom. she says this is not time for this go head he immediately dress in the sari and his mom wears ear rings and bangles to he looks very natural no one differentiate him with women.
He came out his dad gives him sandals to wear and he was totally in front of his dad and he came out at gate he saw his sister waiting for him she is wearing jeans shirt and sat on his bike and told him come sis i will drop you he sat one sided like his sister regularly do but today she became brother she dropped him and said all the best he kissed her on cheek she left from their. stefan came their in a car and taken nikkie to near by beach and their he booked a total ship. they are childhood friends but they are not speaking from when they met at last stefan stood and kissed nikkie to break the silence nikkie slapped suddenly reaction happened both are shocked and laughed had some wine and stefan stood on the knees proposed nikkie. he took his hand and lifted her and gently gone nearer to her and they both came near very close and nikkie kissed stefan as a acceptance.
The end
Sushie (Thursday, 09 March 2017 20:36)
Please continue srs
Dream girl (Friday, 10 March 2017 20:50)
do all REAL MEN who have fit body, physique like a hunk or beast... looks dashing, handsome and bodybuilder.
https://m.facebook.com/profile.php?ref=bookmarks&soft=bookmarks
Dream girl (Friday, 10 March 2017 20:53)
to all REAL MEN who have fit body, physique like a hunk or beast... looks dashing, handsome and bodybuilder.
https://m.facebook.com/profile.php?ref=bookmarks&soft=bookmarks
send me frn rqst
Bebo (Sunday, 12 March 2017 14:53)
Nksmb please continue... its amazing story
Bebo (Sunday, 12 March 2017 14:54)
Who all are from delhi?
Monu Chaudhary (Monday, 13 March 2017 09:59)
Hi friends.
My name is Monu Chaudhary.
Prior to my marriage, my name was Kuldeep Gupta but my wife changed my name and ofcourse, after the marriage, I had to take her sirname.
I am a crossdressing househusband. My fb profile is Monu Chaudhary, Fb page- I am a househusband and my blog nameis cdhousehusband.
I had earlier written twice on this page but the stories were not very well received as they were my actual life experiences and didn’t have actual MASALA for the readers here.
Recently, a few of my fb friends wanted me to write some fantasies and I thought that I might as well paste them here too. Please give comments if you like it.
Monu Chaudhary (Monday, 13 March 2017 10:01)
My fantasy story is set in future in the year 2184.
After the World war III in 2036 and subsequent nuclear holocaust, in which almost half of the world population was wiped out, it was felt that all this could have been avoided had the decision making power been with the female gender. It was unanimously decided that to prevent such catastrophes, all major decisions shall be taken by females.
This led to females being promoted to all the highest positions while their male counterparts were relegated to lower posts and salaries. As the next generation arrived, females were more assertive, strong headed and demanding. Slowly, the changes appeared in social life also. Males started being submissive. There were very few job openings for males and majority of them started opting for lower jobs like office maids and secretaries. Even these jobs were not enough and since domestic helps were very costly, many of the couples decided that the males shall stay at home as househusbands and let the females earn the daily bread and butter.
The biological supremacy of the females of producing a new life was to remain with them but the job of taking care of the newborn was naturally shifted to the husbands. They started taking medicines to grow their breasts so that they may nurse the newborns. Initially, it was only for the househusbands but very soon, this trend grew like anything and the male breasts became a sexual attraction for the more aggressive females. Females did not need breasts anymore and took medicines to remain flat chested.
Male fashions changed and instead of shirts and pants, they started preferring the more beautiful dresses and sarees. Breasts had to be supported by bras and this led to virtual revolution in male fashion. Males wanted to look sexually attractive to their wives least they should start having affairs with their office staff or secretaries. Even the unmarried boys started growing breasts to attract their future wives. The marriage proposals were more for the girls who earned more and for boys who were more beautiful. The norms of the society had reversed.
Within a span of 100 years from World War III, The norms of male female relationship had turned upside down and my patents, who were born in 2140 belonged to the generation for whom female supremacy was not an exception but a norm.
Monu Chaudhary (Monday, 13 March 2017 10:02)
Now the story:
I am the third sibling of my parents. My mother wanted a daughter but after 4 sons, she decided that it was the wish of the Goddess and refused to marry another man for the sake of producing a daughter. My mother is a farmer and owns a lot of agricultural land. She wanted her sons to be good househusbands to their wives and all of us passed 12th class and did a diploma in home science.
My 2 elder brothers have been married and living with their wives in their respective homes. My parents have been looking for a suitable girl for me. I have no say in this matter. They have selected a girl for me. She is a doctor and has a good income. She is coming to see me today.
Last night, I overheard my father talking to my mother. My mother had taken her dinner and as usual, father was sitting on the floor besides her. He was wearing a saree and had sindoor in his maang. He had a mangalsootra around his neck and glass bangles on his wrists. He was pressing the legs of my mom and talking to her in a very low voice, “ Don’t you think that her complexion is dark, Our son is very fair”. Mother, in her stern voice, immediately rebuked him ”Don’t be silly. A girl needs to have a good income to support a family. Complexion is for boys. Consider yourself to be very lucky if she likes our son. These days, a doctor girl, who is not asking for a dowry is very hard to find”. “we shall be giving a dowry to our son. Won’t we?” said my father in a low voice keeping his eyes towards the floor . Mother laughed “As they say, males have no wisdom. You idiot, this is a multi-millionaire family. If they want dowry according to their status, we stand no chance. However, they want a boy who should always obey and serve his wife and inlaws. Our two sons are keeping their wives happy and this marriage proposal has come only because of this fact”.
As my prospective wife and her parents entered our home, I could hear my heart pounding. I was wearing a green saree, specially bought for this occasion. My elder brother, whose wife was a cousin sister of this girl, had come last night and had informed that her favourite colour was green. I had a matching blouse and my hair were in a bun. I had been thoroughly instructed by him for the occasion.” No matter what, keep your eyes towards the floor. Keep your head covered in presence of your inlaws but you must drop your palloo on some pretex when you are alone with her so that she may have a fair idea of the assets which she is going to own” she had giggled and I had thrown a pillow at her.
As I served tea to the guests, I managed a hidden glance towards her. She was staring at me and smiled. My cheeks got red with shame. Bhaiya took me inside so that elders may talk. Shortly, my father came inside with the good news. I had been approved but they wanted an early marriage as my future wife had a new job at a big hospital at Delhi and my father in law wanted someone to look after his daughter in a new city where she shall be living away from her parents.
I was married to Dr. Garima Chaudhary within 15days.
Monu Chaudhary (Monday, 13 March 2017 10:06)
My suhaag raat was celebrated at the ancestral home of my wife. Her brothers did my makeup and made me sit on the bed with a ghoonghat on my face. As she entered the room, my heart started pounding so loudly that I was afraid that she may hear my heartbeats. As she raised my ghoonghat, I got pink with shame. She remarked,” you are wearing a pink saree darling. If you blush like this, how would I know that I have disrobed you when the color of your skin and saree shall match like this” I blushed even more fiercely.
There was a knock on the door and as she opened the door, someone passed a glass of milk to her. I remembered bhaiya’s instructions and gotup from the bed. As she turned towards me, I sat on the floor and put my forehead on her shoes. She asked me to getup and gave me the glass of milk and went to the bathroom to change.
She was wearing a Kurta and lunge as she returned. I gave her milk but she refused. “Tonight, I have to drink from the original source” she pointed towards my breasts. I blushed again. “Please drink half of it for me. Its bad omen if you don’t take this milk tonight”, I said keeping my voice low and my eyes on the floor. She obliged and I took the rest of the milk from the same glass.
She pulled me towards her and slowly started removing my jewelry. She was constantly talking to me to relieve my tension. “ So, what are the instructions of your brothers for suhaag raat” she asked as she was removing my saree. I was dying of shame so I said “nothing”. I yelped with pain as she pinched me on my buttocks. She had already placed a hand on my mouth so my shriek didn’t come out.” Next one shall be on your cheek if you are not honest and then you shall have a hard time explaining to everyone as to what happened’ she said firmly. “ comeon. Tell me the instructions”. She started fumbling with the button of my blouse.
“They only asked me to place my head on your feet and take your blessings” I lied. My blouse had already been unbuttoned and I was trying unsuccessfully to cover my breasts with my arms. “lier again” she pulled the cord of my petticoat. “No pleeeeeese” I cried. “I am telling the truth”. “Didn’t they tell you to clinch your teeth when she pinches on your breasts like this” she asked again, pinching my nipples as she unclasped my bra. I knew that there was no escape so I told the truth. “yes, They did” “Good. What else” she asked. “They asked me to climax with your permission only” I moaned as she pulled down my petticoat and panties.
She had not removed a single stich of cloth from her own body as I was lying on her bed, stark naked, dying of shame. My penis was rockstrong as she mounted me without removing her clothes. She was not wearing anything beneth the lungee and she slid my member inside her body with a low moan.
Monu Chaudhary (Monday, 13 March 2017 10:09)
“Have you ever gone through this before” she suddenly asked.
“NO. Never. I am a virgin. I have kept this body sacred for you my Goddess” I whispered. She smiled” You must have seen someone doing like this” she remarked. By now, I knew that somehow, she could know if I was telling the truth. So I truthfully admitted” Once I saw Bhabhi doing a similar act with bhaiya”.
Actually After my Diploma in homescience was complete, bhaiya had asked our parents to send me to his place so that I may learn to manage the household. There I had seen that bhabhi was always scolding bhaiya and used to even slap him on little mistakes. I had asked that how he could tolerate all this and yet started doing makeup when she returns from office to look attractive for her. He had told me that when a wife makes love to you at night, you get so much pleasure that you become a slave to her. I had peeped in to their bedroom at night and a similar sean was being played on myself tonight. Next morning, I had confessed to Bhaiya that I had peeped into his room and there also, I had found that bhaiya was pleading with bhabhi to not to pinch him and give further pain but bhabhi was not listening. Bhaiya had just smiled and said that once your wife makes love to you, you shall know.
As My Wife started riding me with my member inside her, I remembered something and smiled. She immediately stopped and asked” What are you thinking”. I knew that there was no point in hiding something. Being a doctor, She could read my mind perhaps. “ Why all females are alike? When I saw bhaiya and bhabhi making love, there also, Bhabhi was wearing all the clothes and bhaiya was naked and here too, you have kept me in a similar position”. She smiled and said’ Its because we want to remind you that who is the owner and who is slave”. “But that’s not fair. I left my home and came here to serve your every need. Your word shall be my command. I shall cook for you, wash your clothes, eat in your used plate, wash utensils and press your legs at night. You have the power to takeoff all my clothes at your wish. That is only because I consider myself to be your slave. Why do you want to prove it now” As I said that, I bit my tongue, feeling afraid that I might have offended her but she was smiling, “ alright darling, I think that you are right” she said as she started taking off her kurta from her muscular but flat chest. “but remember, don’t expect any mercy from me while making love. I like it when a boy cries of pain when I push him to the limit”. As she increased her speed, my body was filled with pleasure that I had never experienced before. I was on the sky and she was with me and that was all that mattered now. We both climaxed at the same time.
Please give your comments. I shall continue only if you like my story.
rita (Monday, 13 March 2017 12:25)
amaizing story monu
please continue
Alexvyaz (Monday, 13 March 2017 15:45)
Monu, I like your story and want to see next parts.
Gender role reversal future is my favorite fantasy. ;)
shila (Monday, 13 March 2017 21:48)
monu great story......
we want next part of your stories
rajesh (Monday, 13 March 2017 23:44)
friends i am boy but want to be girl secretly any one make me as girl mentally i need forced feminization treat me as a girl like order me as mistress i will do it for u i no need anything from u ur photos identification or money just need from u oly friendship may be u think im fake but my inner feelings is true she killing me everyday to let her out but i cant bec if i let her out i lost everything my family friends everything i hold now so i cant let her out in society did any one here to help me secretly i just need ur help..thanks its my fb id rk8997588@gmail.com any one willing oly give request friends...
Monu Chaudhary (Tuesday, 14 March 2017 00:13)
Thanks Rita, Alexvyaz and Shila.
Its nice to know that you liked my story. As I have already told you that Iam a househusband and I have so much load of household work and 24x7 job of serving my wife that I dont get time to write stories. My wife is a software professional and whenever she is out of Delhi due to her job, I get time to write.
She is going to US in last week of march and I shall certainly post some stories for you at that time.
luv.
Monu
alpana (Tuesday, 14 March 2017 02:01)
monu great story and nice plot.
here three suggestions for you.
1) including both husband and wife clothing details
2) including bike riding
3) including strapon sox
overall nice plot and amazing story monu
please continue it
Monu Chaudhary (Tuesday, 14 March 2017 12:53)
Thanks Alpaana.
Will try to take care in my next part.
luv.
Monu
SRS (Wednesday, 15 March 2017 01:06)
Nice monu
SHRUTHI (Wednesday, 15 March 2017 02:01)
SRS COME BACK SOON WITH MORE UPDATES
Sushie (Wednesday, 15 March 2017 09:10)
SRS, Please continue
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:18)
mohit to mohini
Rita and Mohit were making love. He was on top and doing as goods he ever did. In their five years of marriage they made love at least one or two times a week. When they finished their lovemaking, Mohit felt great.
They laid next to each other and Mohit told Rita that he loved her. His euphoria ended when Rita said, "Mohit, I don't want to hurt your feelings but you have never been big enough to satisfy me. It is like you aren't hitting the spot. Your tool isn't long enough to reach it. I love you but it has come time for me to tell you. You may be satisfied but I am not. I'm sorry I have to tell you this."
He was thunderstruck. He had never imagined she wasn't being satisfied. He knew his tool was small but he thought it did the job. This was crushing to him. He felt terrible.
Rita turned his head toward her and kissed him and said, "Don't worry. I still love you and I have no intention of getting rid of you. You have many other qualities that I value. You are soft and loving and take good care of all the other things I want in a husband."
He felt a bit better after she told him that but still he felt like he was letting her down. He didn't feel any better when she jokingly added, "I love you. You are my moooohita."
The next morning they were on their way to work. They owned their own company, providing home medical supplies, the only ones in that business for forty-five miles around. They were successful, even getting customers from sixty miles away because their small town overhead allowed them to charge lower prices. Rita was nominal president and Mohit was chief financial officer.
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:19)
mohit to mohini
They treated their employees so well that everyone wanted to work for them. They had eighteen full-time employees, all women except for Mohit. The employees were like family to each other. Mohit was well liked as a boss and a person.
They were in a staff meeting and Rita asked for suggestions for where to hold the employee family picnic. Mohit said, "Why not go back to Veteran's Park? It was fun there last year."
Rita said, "Moooohita, we are having a record year. We should make this picnic special, like driving the forty miles to Anderson's Amusement Park. They have rides and a zoo there. I know the kids will love it. Who wants to help me set something up?"
Preety, Shalni and Vandna all volunteered. Mohit was going to volunteer but was miffed that Rita had called him moooohita in front of the girls. He went to his office and got to work. He was lost in work when Julie and Saroj knocked on his door and came in. They invited him to join them for lunch. He accepted and saved his work and left with them.
At lunch the girls asked him what the moooohita was all about. He told them it was a pet name Rita had for him. They enjoyed each others company and soon it was time to return to the office. Mohit sat down in his office and thought about Julie and Saroj. He thought they were the two nicest people in the office.
What he didn't know is what had transpired with Rita, Preety, Shalni and Vandna following the staff meeting. They had decided on the amusement park for the picnic. After it was all taken care of Preety had asked Rita what the 'moooohita' was all about, and Rita told them that Mohit wasn't overly endowed down below. They all giggled, and Preety said she had a boyfriend once who was that way. She said she put him in panties and a dress for two days and then sent him home in the dress. The four women all agreed that if a man can't satisfy a woman then he should be put in a dress. When the meeting was over, Rita asked Preety to stay for a minute.
The other girls left and Rita asked, "Did you really put your boyfriend in a dress?"
Preety told her, "Yes and he was really down at first but I think by the second day he enjoyed it. I had to use force to get him in the dress the first time but I got him there and made him keep it on."
Rita asked, "Do you think you could get Mohit in a dress?"
Preety said, "There isn't a man out there I couldn't do with as I want. I am stronger than most men and for those I am not I have other means."
Rita asked, "If I asked you, would you try to get Mohit in a dress?"
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:20)
mohit to mohini
Preety said, "Sure, I don't think he would pose a great problem."
Rita told her, "I'll think about it and let you know."
In a small group like that gossip like that spreads like wildfire. By the time Mohit, Saroj and Julie got back from lunch everyone but them knew what had transpired between Rita and Preety. And Mohit wasn't in his office ten minutes before Saroj and Julie knew.
Mohit called Preety into his office. She was his assistant. He asked her about the quarterly figures. They had had the same financial program on their computers but three months ago Preety asked if she could try another financial program.
Preety said, "I will have the figures done before I go home. That new program makes it child's' play to run the quarterly figures. It imports the last quarterly figures and all I have to do is enter this quarters figures. Then I can have it project next quarter's figures, once we have a year's statistics available."
Mohit said, "I might switch to that program instead of this one, where I have to enter each figure manually. How hard is it to learn?"
Preety said, "It isn't bad at all. It took some doing to enter the category headers and item names but once that's in place it's a snap. I can probably teach you in two days and then you'll be all set to use it."
Mohit said, "It will take me until Friday to do it with this program so why don't we use next Monday and Tuesday to install and set it up on my computer."
Preety said, "It sounds good to me, Mohita."
He immediately asked, "What did you call me?"
Preety said, "Mohita. If your wife calls you that why shouldn't we? We are all like family here, so we should all share nicknames."
He didn't answer. Preety got up and left. When he went out to the coffee machine three girls said 'hello, Mohita' to him. He was upset at being called Mohita but didn't say anything to the girls. He went back to entering figures for the quarter. He was only half way through last quarter's figures and he wanted to get it done. He was busy with the figures when his E-mail notifier flashed. He checked it, and saw it was Rita asking him to come to her office.
He saved his work and went to his wife's office. She told him she had some papers that he had to sign. She handed them to him and showed him where to sign. He signed them and saw she was smiling at him. He thought, she is in a good mood, so now is the time to talk to her.
He said, "I am hurt that you called me moooohita this morning. Now all the girls are calling me Mohita. We have to put a stop to it before it gets carried away. I don't like being called Mohita."
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:22)
mohit to mohini
Rita asked, "What do you like being called? Perhaps God or something."
He said, "Anything but Mohita!"
Rita stood up and when he stood up she directed him to the door. They stepped out and Rita said in a loud voice, "Please stop calling Mohit Mohita. Call him anything but Mohita."
One of the girls asked, "If we can't call him Mohita can we call him Mohini? It is as close to Mohita as I can think of. "
Mohit went into shock when Rita said, "Mohini's fine. You can call him Mohini then."
Mohit said to Rita in a low voice, "You can't be serious. Mohini is a woman name. Why did you say that to the girls?"
Rita said, "Because didn't you say they could call you anything but Mohita? Now, Mohini, get back to work!" She looked at him with contempt written all over her face.
The tone of her voice told him it was useless to argue. He went back to his office to bury himself in his work. He couldn't get into it because he was upset. He went to get a cup of coffee.
As he passed Preety's desk she said, "You're drinking more coffee, Mohini. Coffee will make you hyper."
He didn't bother to answer her. Every other girl he passed or met said hello to Mohini. He was upset but didn't argue with any of them.
He would have been more upset if he'd been in Rita's office at that time. Saroj and Julie were talking to Rita. Saroj took the lead and said, "There is gossip going around the office that you asked Preety if she would get Mohini in a dress. Preety can be very mean when she wants to be. I have seen her three times out with a man and she had all three of them crying. Both of us really like your husband and don't want to see him hurt like that."
Rita asked, "What are you proposing?"
Julie answered, "Saroj and I have talked it over. We would rather not see you put him in a dress but if you are intent on the idea and are not going to do it yourself then we would like to try. We will be gentler with him than Preety, that's for sure. What do you have in mind?"
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:24)
mohit to mohini
Rita said, "I love my husband but he is not much of a man in a manly way. All I want is to see if he wakes up to being more of a man. I just want to see him stand up for himself, just once."
The two girls said they understood. Rita said she had to get some clothes for him. They decided that Julie's apartment would be the best place for the transformation. Rita told Julie to meet her in an hour and a half at her apartment.
An hour and a half later the two women met and Julie carefully hung a beautiful dress in her spare bedroom closet. Julie told Rita how they intended to get him into the dress. Rita was glad that they intended on being gentle with him.
The two women went back to the office without Mohit even knowing that they had been gone. Rita told Julie she would let her know when and if they were to do something. Julie thought Rita went to a lot of fuss and bother to not know if she was going to do something or not.
On the way home Mohit told Rita about the program on Preety's computer and that they were going to install it on his for the next quarterly report.
Rita asked, "Do you mean that Preety is used to doing the reports?"
Mohit answered, "Yes, for the last two quarters she has done them with the new program and I used the one we have been using. She has been done two days before I am done. The new program will save us a lot of time."
Rita said, "That's good. It answers a big question for me."
Mohit asked, "What big question?"
Rita replied, "Oh, it was nothing much. What you are saying is Preety can do all of what you do and she is doing it faster?"
He told her that was about it. He didn't know why she was smiling so broadly. That night in bed she advanced on him and after they were done making love Rita got a pair of lacy panties out of her dresser drawer and handed them to Mohit. He asked what he was supposed to do with them.
Rita said, "Put them on. Your little tool belongs in panties not boxers. Now, do as you are told and put them on or I'll see how you look in a nightgown."
The ice in her voice was enough to make him put them on. He got into bed feeling foolish but noticed that they felt sensual to him. The next morning he was going to take them off and Rita told him to keep them on. He asked why and she said if he didn't she would give him another pair with a matching bra and make sure he wore them. He didn't argue with her.
Rita laid there thinking about how easy she got him to put the panties on. She wondered if he would ever stand up like a man and take control. She thought about how she never saw him get angry or really stand up to anyone when he was being challenged. She thought maybe a dress would wake him up. She decided to challenge him to the max and see if she could get him to act like a man.
All the way to work he felt the softness of the panties. It was disconcerting to him. It riled up his feelings knowing he had woman's panties on. He didn't know what to do about it. When they got to work he headed straight for his office. He felt as if every one of the girls were staring right through his pants at his panties
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:28)
mohit to mohini
Rita said, "I love my husband but he is not much of a man in a manly way. All I want is to see if he wakes up to being more of a man. I just want to see him stand up for himself, just once."
The two girls said they understood. Rita said she had to get some clothes for him. They decided that Julie's apartment would be the best place for the transformation. Rita told Julie to meet her in an hour and a half at her apartment.
An hour and a half later the two women met and Julie carefully hung a beautiful dress in her spare bedroom closet. Julie told Rita how they intended to get him into the dress. Rita was glad that they intended on being gentle with him.
The two women went back to the office without Mohit even knowing that they had been gone. Rita told Julie she would let her know when and if they were to do something. Julie thought Rita went to a lot of fuss and bother to not know if she was going to do something or not.
On the way home Mohit told Rita about the program on Preety's computer and that they were going to install it on his for the next quarterly report.
Rita asked, "Do you mean that Preety is used to doing the reports?"
Mohit answered, "Yes, for the last two quarters she has done them with the new program and I used the one we have been using. She has been done two days before I am done. The new program will save us a lot of time."
Rita said, "That's good. It answers a big question for me."
Mohit asked, "What big question?"
Rita replied, "Oh, it was nothing much. What you are saying is Preety can do all of what you do and she is doing it faster?"
He told her that was about it. He didn't know why she was smiling so broadly. That night in bed she advanced on him and after they were done making love Rita got a pair of lacy panties out of her dresser drawer and handed them to Mohit. He asked what he was supposed to do with them.
Rita said, "Put them on. Your little tool belongs in panties not boxers. Now, do as you are told and put them on or I'll see how you look in a nightgown."
The ice in her voice was enough to make him put them on. He got into bed feeling foolish but noticed that they felt sensual to him. The next morning he was going to take them off and Rita told him to keep them on. He asked why and she said if he didn't she would give him another pair with a matching bra and make sure he wore them. He didn't argue with her.
Rita laid there thinking about how easy she got him to put the panties on. She wondered if he would ever stand up like a man and take control. She thought about how she never saw him get angry or really stand up to anyone when he was being challenged. She thought maybe a dress would wake him up. She decided to challenge him to the max and see if she could get him to act like a man.
All the way to work he felt the softness of the panties. It was disconcerting to him. It riled up his feelings knowing he had woman's panties on. He didn't know what to do about it. When they got to work he headed straight for his office. He felt as if every one of the girls were staring right through his pants at his panties
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:35)
mohit to mohini
At the staff meeting Rita shocked the entire staff when she announced that there were going to be some changes in the company. She said she was shifting some people around.
Rita said, "I have decided to make an office manager. Shalni you are now office manager and Vandna you are assistant office manager. Vandna you take over when Shalni is gone. Also, effective immediately Preety you are chief financial officer."
Mohit immediately asked, "What about me. That's my job!"
Rita said, "Mohini, don't raise your voice. You will be a general assistant to all of the girls. You will help them get their jobs done and aid in any way to make us more efficient."
Mohit said, "That sounds like an office girl to me."
Rita said, "You're right. Effective immediately you are the office girl. Now, I would like a cup of coffee, Mohini, go get me one."
Mohini rose and got her a cup of coffee. He was bringing it in when the girls were leaving the office. Rita told him to sit down for a minute. He sat down.
Rita said, "You are now the office girl. Didn't you tell me last night that Preety had the quarterly figures done two days before you did? Didn't you say she could do everything you do and faster?"
He replied, "Yes, but I explained that we were going to change over to the new program also. You wouldn't want us to try a program when we don't know how it works until we've tested it. Why did you say I was going to be the office girl?"
Rita said, "Because that is what you are going to be!"
He said, "I am half owner of this business and I say I am not."
Rita handed him some papers. He looked at them. The top paper was a dissolving of the partnership and named Rita as sole owner of the business. The second one changed their joint bank accounts to being just in Ritas name. Another changed their home and cars to Rita's name. The final one gave Rita power of attorney over him. He saw all of them had his signature on them.
Rita said, "Now, you see you have nothing left. Everything is in my name. You have no money, nothing but what I see fit to give you. Do you understand that?"
He said he did. She said, "So now are you going to be the best office girl you can be or do I throw you out on your ear?"
He quietly said he would be the best office girl possible. She was all smiles. Then she said, "Julie needs some assistance at her apartment. I told her you would be glad to help. Go and tell her and Saroj that you are ready. They know what to do."
He got up and went to Julie and said, "Rita said I am supposed to help you at your apartment. I am ready."
He left with Julie and Saroj. He was in shock at what had happened to him. He was disoriented by the fact he had nothing left. He wondered why his wife had done this to him. The girls chatted and said things to him but he didn't respond. They thought it was because of his being reduced to being an office girl.
They got to Julie's apartment and Julie had him sit on the couch. Very gently Julie said, "Mohini, we are going to make you fit the image of a Mohini. Now, you can co-operate and work with us or we can use other methods. I would hope you would trust us to change how you look."
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:36)
mohit to mohini
He only half understood what they were saying and he didn't like it. He said he didn't want to change. They asked him if he wouldn't like a new dress and he said no.
Then Julie decided to try another tact. She brought him a glass of lemonade. He drank it and thanked her for it. Then he fell asleep. When he awoke he was groggy for a couple of minutes and then noticed he was near naked.
"What happened? Where are my clothes? What is going on?" He plaintively asked.
Saroj said, "Mohini, honey we are going to help you all we can. We are your friends and don't want to see you hurt any more than is necessary. Now are you going to work with us or do we have to put you back to sleep to finish the job? Your old clothes are there on the floor."
He looked at the pile on the floor. They had used scissors to get his old clothes off. There was a pile of strips of cloth lying there. He knew he would be naked or wearing new clothes when he left the apartment.
Mohini said, "Just tell me what is going on, then maybe I'll work with you. Rita said that Julie needed a hand and that I should help her. I don't understand what is happening."
Saroj said, "We are going to make you look more like a Mohini. We have a nice new dress for you and some other clothes and things to support the image of you as a Mohini. Now, are you going to work with us or do we have to put you back to sleep?"
Resignedly he said, "I'll work with you."
Julie got a pair of thigh high nylons and showed him how to put them on. They were black with a floral pattern woven in them. The she slid a black long line bra up his arms. When it was hooked he asked about the false breasts he had glued to his chest.
Julie said, "You were under endowed as a man but as a woman you are going to be well-endowed. Those are DD's. I didn't even know they made them that large. You will attract lots of attention with those."
Then she helped him put on a padded girdle, telling him it gave him a more womanly figure. Then came the black silk lacy slip. Saroj said the slip cost more than all the clothes she had on. Then came the wispy yellow dress with blue flowers. The scalloped hem falling enticingly around his legs. Then Julie produced a jet-black wig that was a mass of curls and placed it on his head. She arranged it so it looked presentable then wove a yellow ribbon in it. He was starting to look more and more feminine every minute.
Then Julie took him into her bedroom and sat him at her vanity. She applied make-up that she took out of a shopping bag. She applied it telling him what they wanted to achieve then wiped it off and had him apply it. She was amazed at how fast he could do a passable job. She teased him that he must have been practicing. As she put the make-up on him, Saroj was dong his nails. When he looked at them he saw a feminine hand with long thin fingers sporting long fingernails painted a bright metallic red. He thought he was ready and this was over.
Julie took a cosmetic case out of the bag and put all of he cosmetics in it and handed it to Mohini, He asked what was that and she explained it was his new best friend. Laughing, she said he always had to look his best and this was all the help he would need. He took it with two fingers like it was a cup of tea.
Then Julie brought a shoebox and said. "She must have been mad at you when she bought these. I don't have a single pair of heels this high. They must be five inches high!"
She took out the heels and placed them on his feet. They had him stand and get the feel of them. Then Julie guided him as he took his first steps. He did wobble at first but in a few minutes was taking short steps without mishap. Saroj told him to place one foot in front of the other to walk. He noticed that that helped him move. The girls noticed that that made his rear sway like he was in heat.
Julie noticed it was past lunchtime and offered to make them some sandwiches and milk. They both agreed and Saroj and Mohini went and sat down by the table. Julie brought the sandwiches and they sat and talked.
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:37)
mohit to mohini
Saroj said, "I noticed you were already wearing panties. They are very sexy and pretty. Where did you get them?"
He told them Rita had given them to him. He said he never saw her wear any like that. They said they understood.
Then Julie asked, "I know it isn't any of my business but how do you and Rita really get along? Sometimes you two seem to be of the same mind and other times you both are at opposite sides of each other."
He said, "I always thought we were a great couple. I loved her unconditionally. We had our differences and a lot of the time I gave in. The times I was proven right I never lorded it over her or anything. Just lately she has told me she was dissatisfied with me in the lovemaking department. That seems to have set her off. She was never underhanded to me until now. I don't know what made her do what she did to me."
Julie said, "It won't be so bad. You look great in a dress. No one is going to think of you as anything but a complete woman."
He said, "It isn't that. That's minor compared to what else she's done."
Julie said, "I thought feminizing you was all she was doing to you. Other than making you office girl what did she do?"
He told them about how she had slipped the papers for him to sign and how she now controlled everything they had worked for to get. He told how she had power of attorney over him. The two were stunned. Neither of the two girls knew what to say.
Saroj got up and came by him and kissed him on the cheek, saying, "I didn't know. I am sorry for you. If you need anything, anything at all, just ask. Julie and I only did this to you because we like you. Rita was going to have Preety do it but we know Preety can be mean. We didn't want you hurt any more than was necessary."
He said, "Thank you. Both of you are very sweet. I could never hate either one of you. You two are probably the only two real friends I have and I appreciate it."
He had tears in his eyes and Julie handed him a tissaroj. They both told him they would be there for him. Having eaten, they asked him if he was ready to go back to the office. He said yes.
On the way back Saroj asked him how good an actor he could be. He said he didn't know. Saroj asked him if he thought he could play a woman who knew she was good looking and thought the hell with the rest of the world. He said he probably could.
Saroj said, "Then go back to work with that in mind. Don't let anyone know you hate it. Make them think it is the best thing that ever happened to you."
He laughed and said that was exactly what he would do. The two girls felt better hearing him laugh. When they got out of the car at work Julie said 'go get them, Mohini'.
They breezed into work. Shalni met them and asked, "Julie and Saroj, where were you. If you are going to take a half day off I should know about it."
Julie said, "We were doing a special job for Rita. She knew we would be gone for quite a while. We were only doing what she requested of us
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:39)
mohit to mohini
Shalni said, "Oh, I didn't know. I guess that's all right then. Has anyone seen Mohini? I haven't seen her since this morning. She is supposed to be helping around here."
Mohini piped up, "Oh, goody. I am only an office girl but I am missed when I am not here."
Shalni's jaw dropped. She then recognized Mohini. She said, "I want to see you in my office. Follow me."
Julie and Saroj knocked on Rita's door and then entered when they heard Rita say come in. Julie said, "Well, it's done. It didn't go bad at all. He is in a dress."
Rita said, "Good work! You will find an extra check in your pay envelope next week. It's my way of saying thank you."
Saroj said, "There is one thing I must say but I don't know how you will take it."
Rita said, "Spit it out. I can take anything."
Saroj said, "Mohini told us about everything. We thought she was quiet because of the demotion but she told us all about how you took control of everything he had. We don't think that is fair. What you and your husband do is your business but it was wrong. We like him. He is kind and considerate. He wouldn't hurt anyone. Now he knows it doesn't pay to be a nice guy. We feel sorry for him."
Rita said, "I have given him chances and he backed off. You are right, what we do as husband and wife is our business. I thank you for being so honest with me. Your remarks won't change anything though."
The two girls left Rita's office. Meanwhile in Shalni's office Shalni was saying to Mohini, "I know being demoted hurts, but I want you to do the best job you can. Try to roll with the punches."
Mohini said, "You won't have any trouble from me. I intend on doing my job as good as possible. It's the only way I know. I'll try to be as cheerful and helpful as I can."
Shalni said, "Good! That answers any concerns I may have. If you have any problems with anyone let me know. I believe in standing up for and behind my people."
He thanked her and went out into the office area. Everyone was a bit shy about asking him for anything. A couple of girls asked him to get them coffee, which he did with a smile. His exuberance was contagious and the staff was amazed at how he conducted himself.
At quitting time Rita came out of her office and was surprised to see Mohini being very animated and talking to Beverly. She thought he was taking things very well. She told him it was time to go home.
They were in the car, and she asked him how things went that day. He didn't answer. He didn't say a word all the way home. At home she called him for supper, and during the meal she asked him several questions, but he didn't say a word. All evening whenever she said something he didn't acknowledge her. When they went to bed she said good night but he didn't answer her or say good night back.
The next morning he got up and when he looked in his closet he saw three new dresses hanging there. He thought, she didn't waste any time. He picked a blue one that had white lace trim. He went for breakfast.
Rita said, "Good morning Mohini. Do you want me to get you a cup of coffee?"
He didn't answer, but got a cup and poured himself a cup of coffee. Then he put two pieces of bread in he toaster. As that was toasting he poured a large glass of orange juice. The toast popped and he spread jelly on it. Then he took everything and sat at the table.
Rita said, "I went over the quarterly figures I got from Preety. We had a very good quarter last quarter. Do you think it will continue or do you think the economy will hit us like it has other businesses?"
He didn't answer. They left for work and on the way Rita asked him two questions but he didn't say a word. They arrived at work and he went about his business as if it were the most natural thing to do. He joked with a couple of the girls and they were soon all laughing. Shalni noticed how he picked up the girls who seemed to be preoccupied by something. He had a talent for getting people to smile. She had never noticed how much at ease he was with all the staff.
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:43)
mohit to mohini
At the staff meeting he didn't say anything. Rita asked for input on what would be good entertainment for the company picnic. She knew Mohit always had great ideas in that area. When he didn't say anything she addressed him directly. He didn't answer. He didn't move or show that he had heard a word she had said. Rita told everyone to think about it and let her know if they came up with something. The meeting adjourned and everyone went back to work.
Shalni asked Mohini to step into her office. When Mohini was seated Shalni told her that she was very disrespectful and rude to the president of their company when she did not answer a direct question.
Mohini said, "The president of this company does not need any advice from an office girl. Office girls are at the bottom of the ladder and don't know anything of importance. I am doing the job I am supposed to as well as I can. If you have a problem with that then further action will have to be taken. As far as answering the president of this company there is no law anywhere that says I have to answer anything. If that is grounds for firing then fire me. I do not threaten anyone but if you do this town will be buzzing about this company and I assure you it will not have the same reputation it had before. Now, if you are done with me it is lunch time."
He left her office and went with Saroj and Julie for a sandwich. He was glad he had money in his wallet before all of this started. At lunch he told the girls about his meeting with Shalni. They both told him bravo, he was doing right. The two girls said everyone was talking about him and how surprised they were at how he was taking it.
He said, "I am not taking it well. I am reacting to the situation as only I see it. I have not said a word to Rita since this happened. I do not plan on saying anything to her until she changes back to the loving wife I married. If she doesn't change back I don't know what will happen."
Julie laughed and said, "Spoken like a true woman. You sound more like a woman now than a lot of women do. You just hang in there and you will come out on top."
He laughed and said, "On top of what, the stove on one of the burners."
They all laughed and Saroj told him as long as he kept his sense of humor he would do all right. She also told him she saw a change in him that she didn't think possible that he now exuded a confidence that the old Mohit didn't have but that Mohini now had.
He thanked them for their support and for being his friends. They could tell he meant it and that he meant it to be special. It gave both of them a warm feeling. They both gave a kiss of reassurance on his cheek.
The afternoon went fast, as some of the girls now asked him if he would help them with some filing and other such office duties. He happily helped them.
At quitting time he got into the car with Rita but didn't say a word. He sat quiet all the way home and at home didn't as much as utter a peep. Rita was disturbed by his not talking to her but thought he would get over it. He knew she was bothered by his silence but was determined to continue the path he had chosen.
The next morning at work he was surprised when the paychecks were distributed. Shalni handed him one. He opened it and was surprised that he was being paid in the top end of the pay scale for office help in the area.
Five minutes later he was in the staff meeting with the rest of the staff. Rita started it by asking if anyone had any ideas for entertainment for the upcoming company picnic. One woman said something about getting a DJ to play music. Three other women shot it down saying it was too hard to dance on the grass. Rita knew that in every previous year Mohit had come up with prize-winning ideas.
Rita asked, "Mohini, every year you have come up with a great idea for a theme and entertainment for the company picnic. Share your thoughts with us. What do you say?"
He sat there with a blank look on his face. It was as if he hadn't heard a word that was said. Rita overlooked the silence and asked if anyone else had any ideas. She said if they were afraid to say them openly they could drop them in the suggestion box outside her office. She continued the meeting, covering small matters. It was winding down when she got an inspiration.
Rita asked, "Mohini, inasmuch as you can't seem to talk at these meetings would you like to be excused from attending them?"
He just stared blankly at her. She repeated the question. He didn't budge a muscle. She was getting angry and he saw it. She asked a third time in a very icy tone. He didn't answer.
She said, "Answer me or you are fired!"
He stared at her as if she didn't exist. She excused everyone but Shalni and Mohini
mohit (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:44)
MOHIT TO MOHINI
She asked Shalni what else could be done with him. Shalni recounted her conversation with him yesterday. Rita said that was a threat he had made. He was fired. Not only fired but also without a home. He sat and stared.
She told them to leave. Outside Rita's door Shalni asked him if he was happy. He told her it didn't make any difference. She told him he had to leave immediately. He said he would leave after he got his final check. Shalni went back in to Rita's office. While she was in there Julie came up to him and told him to meet them for lunch. He was given his last check and he left with a smile on his face.
At lunch the two girls told him how sorry they were that he got fired. He assured them that he would do all right. He didn't know where he would go or what he would do but he wasn't worried. He said things have a way of working out.
Julie offered to let him sleep on her couch if he needed a place to stay. He thanked her and told her he might have to take her up on it if Rohan didn't come up with something. After a pleasant lunch both girls kissed him on the cheek and told him they were going to miss him at work. He headed to see Rohan.
He told Rohan the whole story as he saw it from when Rita had said he didn't satisfy her in bed to his getting fired. Rohan said he wanted to talk to Rita. Mohit sat there as Rohan asked Rita to come over and told her to bring the papers that Mohit had signed.
Ten minutes later Rita came in Rohan's office. She handed him the copies of the papers Mohit had signed. He quickly glanced at them then asked Mohit to wait outside while he talked to Rita.
Rohan said, "Rita, the story Mohit told me is very disturbing. I have heard his side now I want to hear your side. What happened for it to get this far?"
Rita said, "He was slipping in his job so as president I demoted him. He hasn't been much of a man so I figured he could maybe function better as a woman. But he was insubordinate to me and I had to fire him. That's the whole story in a nutshell."
Rohan asked, "Then this didn't start when you told him he didn't satisfy you in bed in he lovemaking department?"
Rita said, "Maybe that was the starting point. He has never been able to satisfy me in bed and I told him so. I guess I started things rolling by making him wear a pair of panties because his little member didn't belong in men's boxers."
Rohan then asked, "You didn't buy the first dress and have a couple of your employees get him dressed and done up, did you?"
Rita said, "Yes, I bought everything and had two friends of his help get him in the dress and make-up. It was only to see if he would act like a man should or not."
Rohan asked, "What happened then?"
Rita said, "I saw him being a pal and talking with the workers but when I said anything to him I got nothing. He hasn't said a single word to me. I have asked him many questions but I get nothing, not an answer or shrug or any indication that he has even heard me. That not responding is what led to him being fired."
Rohan called Mohit back in. He sat quiet for almost five minutes. Then he said, "Communication is the most necessary tool in any relationship. You must talk to one another otherwise the relationship dies from neglect. Now. Mohit. Rita tells me you haven't said a word to her since this all started. Is that correct?"
Mohit nodded and Rita sat smiling. This was going better than she expected.
Rohan asked, "Why did you stop talking to her? You must have had a reason."
Mohit replied, "Yes, I did. She had a paper that said she had power of attorney for me. In other words she could speak for me in legal matters. So, I figured if she was going to speak for me then she could speak for me all the time. I found out she was just jealous of me."
Rohan asked, "How so? Why is she jealous of you?"
"Because she found out I am more woman than she is and more man than she can handle. That's what her problem is."
Rita got a look of pure shock at that. She never thought she was jealous of him. Rohan looked at her and said, "I don't like to have to say this but everything you did is wrong. You are supposed to work as a team, as husband and wife. It appears you have broken that bond that makes a husband and wife one person."
Rita was getting flustered. She didn't expect this to go this way. When she wanted him to stand up for himself she never thought he would be like this. Then she calmed down a bit as Rohan continued. "In any situation or conflict there is no one all wrong or all right side. Both sides have to share the blame. It looks like it is up to me to try to get you two back together on the same track."
MOHIT (Thursday, 16 March 2017 07:46)
MOHIT TO MOHINI
Rita said, "Rohan I know what you are saying but I am not going to take him back as an employee. It would ruin the morale of all the rest of the employees of my company. If he won't talk to me at all I can't see our marriage continuing. If it is to continue all I ask is that he talk to me."
Rohan looked at Mohit and asked. "Is it too much for her to expect to have you talk to her?"
Mohit said he guessed it wasn't too much but reminded him that she had power of attorney so she shouldn't expect very much. Rohan looked at the papers Rita had brought. He asked her these were copies of all the originals and she said they were. He excused himself as he made a phone call. They both heard his side of the call.
"Herman, Rohan here. I am looking at a power of attorney here. It has the signatures of the two people involved.... No, no other signatures. What about dissolving a partnership?.... What about removing one person from a joint bank account?.... What about removing a person from a deed or auto title? That's what I thought '... Really?.... In fifteen years as a minister you are the first person to tell me one of my sermons was stimulating. Thank you."
He hung up the phone, then sat looking at nothing in particular. Finally he said, "I afraid to tell you these papers are worthless. In this state you need two witnesses for everything except the transfer of title—then you need one person to witness the signing."
Mohit said, "So I still own 52 per cent of the company? And I still have my name on the deed to our house and I still own my car?"
Rohan said, "Yes to everything."
Rita said, "I had forgot that we set it up with you having the fifty-two and I the balance. I suppose you want to fire me, as you have controlling interest."
Mohit said, "No, keep your job. I'll let you know where to send the profit check. But I am afraid you are going to have to move. I am going to sell my half of the house. You can stay until it sells though."
Rita asked, "Does this mean we are through as husband and wife?"
Mohit said, "You divorced me this morning when you threw me out. Did you forget you said I didn't have a home? That is what I came to see Rohan for, to see if he knew of a place I could stay. I never thought it would end up like this."
Rita asked, "Can't we give it another try. I'll change, you'll see."
Mohit said, "No, I saw a side of you that I never knew existed. It is a side that I could never live with. You have shown me that no one stands a chance when you get an idea in your head. I'm sorry but you are not the woman I loved and married. I am going to file for a divorce."
Rita started crying and left. Rohan said he wished Mohit could forget what she did and forgive her. He said he forgave her but she wasn't the person that God wanted him to spend the rest of his life with. He said he thought he knew who that was and her name was Julie.
Rohan said he was sorry things had to turn out that way, but he understood. Mohit said he almost forgot something and took a checkbook out of his purse and wrote a check to Rohan for one thousand dollars to be used at the homeless shelter that Rohan was championing.
Mohit called Julie at work and asked her to meet him for supper. She agreed. At supper Mohit told her what had happened with Rohan and Rita. Then he told her he was going to stay at theHOTEL for about a week until he found a house to move to.
Then he shocked her saying, "I hope you will help me find a house that is worth buying. I have an idea and it is that you should like it also because I intend that you will be living there with me as my wife."
Julie got tears in her eyes and said, "That sounds wonderful to me. I never thought you and I would ever have a chance to be together. I have always thought you were special and I knew you have a lot of love and caring. You were always my ideal as man."
He said, "You all ready know I am not overly endowed."
She said, "With those breasts, no one is more endowed."
Post-Script: Six months later his and Ritas divorce was declared by the county judge. He sold his share of the company at a good price and bought the top dress shop in town. That way he could get his dresses at cost
Alexvyaz (Thursday, 16 March 2017 13:35)
Mohit, I like your story. It's always nice to see a happy end. ;)
lalita (Friday, 17 March 2017 03:02)
this is a amazing story u will love it
for more fun i am starting from middel
I awoke. Strange bodily sensations commanded my attention. An
uncomfortable weight on my chest -- sticking bandages on my face
and cheeks -- an indescribable numbness between my legs. And the
feeling that someone was holding my hand. I looked over to see
neha my wife ,
"Yes my love, my husband has had some remarkable changes but
together we will put our lives back together and continue on."
She comforted. ”The doctors expect that you will need about 6
days of recovery, then we will be home and begin
I'll be back tomorrow and we will begin to plan our future."
Neha rose and left the room, leaving me to contemplate my
horrifying situation. Struggling to right myself, I began
to take inventory. Chest protruding and heavily bandaged, legs
splayed apart with a tangle of tubing exiting a bandaged crotch.
My wildest imagination could not adequately form a mental picture
of me with a vagina and breasts. The very successful MD of a
famous private concern now struggling in a hospital bed with an
artificial vigina & breast. Sleep came fitfully, nightmares
of monumental proportions wreaked havoc on my psyche. I dreamed
of myself as a housewife, preparing dinner for my husband, even
pregnant!
The following days were filled with the standard prodding,
poking, and examining so dear to the medical community in the
early morning and my afternoons were filled with a torture known
as electrolysis. Each day at precisely 1:00 P.M a sour faced
matron armed with a vicious device terminating in a needle would
subject my sparse beard and chest hair to a 6 hour series of hair
removal. Her comments were short, excepting when she
complimented herself on how rapidly the treatment was progressing
and that I would be smooth as a baby's bottom by the end of the
week.
Day four proved to be the most humiliating and frightening day of
my stay. The morning started with the announcement that the
bandages covering my new (or perhaps lack of) equipment would be
removed. Following removal of the science fiction collection of
tubes, catheters and bandages, it was announced that I was to be
dilated. The chief physician produced what could only be
described as a long dildo, liberally coated it with K-Y jelly and
proceeded to insert it into my formerly virgin orifice. The pain
was unbelievable. My newly high-pitched voice screamed as in
pain, I felt as if I were being split in half. I squirmed and
cried and begged them to stop this torture.
cd fan (Saturday, 18 March 2017 12:01)
aaaa where are your stories
please post them
SRS (Monday, 20 March 2017 02:10)
lalita please continue with more humiliating
sneha (Monday, 20 March 2017 08:50)
Dear Friends,
I have seen a Beautiful article about transgender i am posting that link for you hope you all like it please read it
http://people.com/bodies/transgender-father-and-daughter-transition/
Rashmi (Thursday, 23 March 2017 21:13)
SRS pls continue your story....
Monu Chaudhary (Saturday, 25 March 2017 19:50)
Continued From 814.
The date is 10 February, 2184.
My name is Monu Chaudhary H/O Dr. Garima Chaudhary.
I have been married for 15 days and last fortnight has been a mixture of torture, pleasure and bliss for me.
The biggest torture has been to get up at 5.00 AM, take your bath, wear a Saree and assist my father in law in his daily morning ritual of Goddess worship. However, yesterday, I have shifted to my wife’s flat in Delhi, where she has joined a big hospital.
The biggest pleasure is when my wife undresses me at night and rides me like there is no tomorrow. I could never imagine before my marriage that a pinch on my buttocks or a bite on my breasts can send such a pleasure wave to my spine. Last night, she has done it with an extra zeal since it was the first night when we were alone in our home and there was no fear of someone listening to my cries of pain and pleasure.
Even today, I got up at 7 AM and prepared bedtea for her. As I went to wake her with the tray of tea, her alarm had already sounded. I was wearing a see through nighty with only a black bra underneath. I placed the tray on the sidestool and touch her feet to ask for her blessings. She simply pulled me over and started takingoff my nighty. I pleaded with her that the tea will get cold but she was adamant on making me nude and virtually raped me. It was a quick climax for her and as I was still trying to recover my breathing, she unmounted me and went to the bathroom, leaving me naked on the bed. I made a mental note that tomorrow onwards, I shall bring her the bedtea in a saree only.
As she was taking bath, I quickly wore a saree, placed her shirt and jeans on the bed, polished her shoes and prepared breakfast for her. I also packed her lunch in the tiffin box and as she was leaving, I sat on the floor and placed my forehead on her feet to ask for her blessings. She smiled, helped me to getup from the floor, kissed me and was off to the hospital.
I still had a lot of pending work like dusting, sweeping the floor and wash the clothes and utensils but first, I made myself a cup of tea and sat lost in thoughts about my parents, brothers and useful lessons from my father on my first visit to my parents home after my marriage.
To be continued----
alpana (Saturday, 25 March 2017 20:19)
nice monu
Monu Chaudhary (Sunday, 26 March 2017 13:29)
As per the tradition, my wife was supposed to take me to my parents place next day of our marriage. However, she didn’t want to extend any more leave as she was taking me on a honeymoon after a week and all her leave was already finished. Hence, she decided to drop me to my parents place in the morning and promised me that she’ll pick me in the evening.
As I wore a new Saree with matching blouse and accessories, She had already got in to the car and was blowing the horn. I hurriedly took blessings from my inlaws and got into the passenger seat as she put the car into gear and drove ahead.
As soon as the car was on the highway, she was back to her naughty self. She caught me by the hair and pulled my face towards her lap. I understood and opened the fly of her pants. She drove at a very high speed and I tried to match the speed of my tongue for her pleasure. She soon shuddered to a climax and let me remove my face from her pussy. I wanted to wash my face as it was wet from her juice but she said that it will get dry by the time we reach our destination and continued driving.
As her car entered the drive way of my parent’s house, my father was standing at the door with a plate full of lighted lamps {Aarti ka thal} for her aarti but she didn’t get down the car. She said that she was already late for her work and these traditions can wait till evening. She quickly reversed the car and sped away.
I could sense that my father was unhappy with me but I was in a hurry to wash my face. I excused myself and ran to my room to freshen up. I quickly got out of the saree and removed all my jwellary including Mangalsootra and bichuas ( A silver ring, worn on the toes by married males). I pulled over an old Kameez with salwar and came out of my room.
“You bloody fool”, my father roared at the top of his voice, “You have no manners. How did you dare to takeoff your Mangalsootra and bichuas.”. I meekly replied that I was not used to wearing jewelry. “You idiot, These are not jewelries. These are the symbols of your married status and to take them off is a very bad omen. Also you should wear a Saree all the time like all married males.” He roared again. I tried to stop my tears as I went back to my room to change in a saree.
When I came out in a saree, my mother was scolding my father for speaking so loudly. My father’s eyes were directed to the floor and he was asking for forgiveness. My mother came to me and placed her hand affectionately over my head. She was also getting late for her work. My father touched her feet and placed his forehead on her feet, for blessings. She curtly blessed him and left hurriedly.
Now, my father asked me to sit besides him and asked, “Why didn’t you touch the feet of your wife when she was leaving today morning”. I now understood as to why he was unhappy with me. I told him that I had taken the blessings from her in the morning but my father was not buying this argument. “Whenever, your wife is getting away from you, its your duty to touch her feet, place your forehead on her feet and say a silent prayer for her long life. Its an honour for a male to keep his forehead at the feet of his wife, Just remember that you got such a high status family only because your elder brothers were always respectful to their respective wives and if you don’t show proper manners, your younger brother may not be so lucky.”
“Ok father. I shall be careful in future” I said. “But she wants me to wear modern dresses and says that saree is for special occasions only”. My father smiled and said “My child, always remember, She is not only your wife but your owner too. Even if she wants you to remain only in your bra and panty or even if she wants you to remain nude, you have to obey. But that is only inside your house. In presence of the society, you have to maintain certain norms of a married male. Always wear a saree in presence of your in laws or guests.” I nodded in agreement as my younger brother entered the room.
To be continued--
Monu Chaudhary (Monday, 27 March 2017 14:24)
“Hi bro” he shrieked. “ Looking very tired. Didn’t get much sleep last night? Hiding the naval too.” The last sentence was aimed at my saree being tied above the naval. I blushed and got irritated at the same time. “Look dad. He is making fun of me again.” Father immediately rebuked Nimesh. “Don’t be a fool Nemo. He is married now and wear his clothes as per the wishes of his wife. Go to the kitchen and start preparing for tonight’s dinner. If your bhabhi likes the food made by you, she may suggest some good girl for you too.” Now it was the time for Nemo to blush as he ran to the kitchen.
I took a sigh of relief. Actually, My wife ( I shall call her G now) had given me a lovebite on my naval last night and the mark was still fresh. That’s why, I had tied my Saree above the naval.
G returned from her hospital in the evening. Both my parents, Nemo and family friends had gathered at our house to welcome her. She was dressed in a Three piece suit and a tie and was looking very smart and handsom. Father did her aarti with lighted lamps and I ( as instructed by my father very strictly in the morning) touched her feet and placed my forehead at her feet in full view of everyone. I was very very embarrassed. I was wearing a pink saree with a matching blouse and I was afraid that my new saree might get dirty but could not risk my father’s wrath. G smilingly asked me to getup and blessed me. Mother took her hand and guided her to our Drawing room. My father and myself served tea to her and all the guests. Slowly, the guests departed and G and my mother were alone in the drawing room.
G called me and asked me to give her another cup of tea. Mother excused herself that she had had enough and went to the bathroom. As I came with the tea, G asked me to sit beside her. I remembered father’s instructions and sat on the floor at her feet “This is my place” I told her. G had a naughty smile at her face as her hand slipped inside my blouse. “Leave me please” I begged her “Someone might come. Nemo is bringing snacks.” G was not in a mood to let it go and pinched on my nipple. “Pleeeease. Do as you wish in the bedroom. I am not going to run away.” I again begged her. This time she relented and removed her hand. It was very timely as Nemo entered the room with a plate of snacks, giggling at my status. “Bhabhi must be tired bro. Why are you not pressing her legs” he said. “Monu is waiting for you. He says that Nemo presses the legs better than him. Wont you prove it” smiled G. “Law allows me many husbands Nemo. Who knows, if you press my legs that well, I may get tempted.” Nemo’s face got red with embarrassment as he put the plate on the table and ran away, G’s laughter following him closely.
Alexvyaz (Monday, 27 March 2017 15:09)
I am glad to read your story, Monu. ;)
alpana (Monday, 27 March 2017 20:46)
monu waitting fir next
Monu Chaudhary (Tuesday, 28 March 2017 14:13)
Mother returned from the bathroom and G said that it was getting late. She had to reach the hospital early tomorrow and asked to leave. However, both my parents pleaded with her to stay for dinner and go tomorrow morning. She relented after Nemo requested her to at least taste the “Gulabjamuns” that he was preparing.
Dinner, as expected, was fabulous. G and Mother ate first with myself and father sitting on the floor besides our respective wives, pressing their legs and Nemo, preparing hot chapaties for both of them. After they had finished, myself and father sat at their places and ate in the plates of our wives and finished the leftovers.
It was time to retire to the bedroom. Nemo was giggling all the time as I washed my face. Applied some powder, applied lipstick and prepared hot milk for G. I scolded him when he pinched my bottom but he said “just keep your anger reserved for bhabhi when she does the same”. I tried to hit him but he ran away.
As I entered the bedroom with a glass of milk, G had already changed into a T shirt and shorts for night. I locked the door from inside and gave the milk to G. As she was drinking it, I sat on the floor and started a gentle massage of her feet. She caught me by my hair and brought my face towards her crouch. I understood as to what she wanted. I removed her shorts and placed my lips at her pussy. It was very warm and moist, a clear indication that she was already excited by my complete submission today. I went to work on thr lips of her pussy, teasing her with increasing and decreasing the speed of my licking. G was moaning with pleasure. She was pressing my face on her pussy with such power that it was difficult for me to breathe but I kept on licking and she ultimately came with a force, making my face fully covered with her juice.
I went to the bathroom and quickly washed my face and gargled with mouthwash. As soon as I came out, G started pulling my saree. All my efforts ( formality only) were in vain as she disrobed me. I was wearing a backless blouse with only two strings holding it to the proper place. G pulled the strings and removed it. Next to go was my petticoat and I was standing before her just in a bra and panty. G pulled me towards her and made me sit on her lap. She started kissing me and caught hold of the strap of my bra. She pulled it strongly and suddenly let it go. The elastic strap hit my back with such force that I would have shrieked had the fear of Nemo making fun of me tomorrow morning not loomed large.
Being a doctor, G was probably well aware of all the points of a male body which can make a male mad with pleasure. She was virtually playing a musical instrument with the precision of a master, alternatively pinching, biting and kissing the various parts of my body. My dick was so hard that it was ready to burst out of my panties when G obliged it by removing my panties. I was completely nude now with G still wearing her T shirt. She placed me on the bed, took my dick inside her well moist pussy and started riding me, slowly increasing her speed. My excitement reached a crescendo as both of us climaxed at the same time.
To be continued next week-----
SRS (Wednesday, 29 March 2017 06:43)
Lalita please continue.
pooja (Sunday, 02 April 2017 09:11)
Anybody can write" saas bahu "stories
lakshmi (Sunday, 02 April 2017 14:38)
Shall I post one beautiful story here.
Anybody can write second part of that story?
Please give me replay....
Sneha (Sunday, 02 April 2017 16:12)
Yed pls
Chitu (Monday, 03 April 2017 14:07)
Lovely Story Monu....Keep going. Let us know the rest of your lovely life with G
lakshmi (Tuesday, 04 April 2017 09:29)
Shall i post one beautiful story here.
Anybody can write second part of that story?
Please give me replay....
Monu Chaudhry (Tuesday, 04 April 2017 12:51)
Continued from 850
Its year 2183. Date 2nd April.
More than 3 months had passed since my marriage and it still seems like yesterday.
My parents were celebrating their 25th wedding anniversary and had requested the wives of all 3 of their married sons to come to their village to be a part of celebration. It was the first time since my marriage that I was meeting my brothers and I was very excited about it.
As usual, G was late in returning from the hospital and it was quite late night when we reached my parents’ home. As our car entered our drive way, my father came out with a large plate full of lighted lamps. He did aarti of G and we entered our home. Both my Bhabhis having already retired to their bedrooms. I sat on the floor beside G, pressing her legs while Nemo served the dinner. I, Nemo and father ate later with myself eating in the plate of G, finishing her leftovers as well.
G was so tired that she had already slept when I entered the bedroom. I changed in to my nightwear ( A front open gown with only a string keeping both the ends in place so that she may have full access of my body if she happens to awake at night) and slipped alongside her silently.
My sleep was broken when G’s hand crept inside my gown at 4’o’clock in morning. She wanted to make love. I didn’t like being woken up so early but I knew that she is my owner and I don’t have the right to say a “no”. As she removed my gown, my dick sprung to attention. She threw away her T shirt and shorts and started riding me in frenzy. I kept my moans to be minimum since everyone else appeared to be sleeping and soon, G had her climax, myself following immediately afterwards. G rolled over and almost immediately went back to sleep.
I awoke the next morning when Nemo banged on the door. I had again got in to my gown after sex last night but G was sleeping naked, I tried to wake up G but she didn’t want to rise from bed. I picked up her T shirt and shorts from the floor and gave them to the half-awake G to wear. As I opened the door, Nemo entered with a tray containing tea. I took the tray from her hand and virtually pushed him out as he was giggling constantly.
G picked up a cup of tea from the tray as her left hand again crept up in to my gown. I tried to avoid it but G was adamant. Both my breasts got squeezed and pinched in succession while she finished her tea.
G and both the Bhabhis had planned to visit the fields belonging to my mother and all of them left for the fields shortly thereafter. I wore a saree after taking bath and came to the backyard where both my elder brothers, Yashdeep and Vikas were sitting with father and Nemo. All of us were in saree while Nemo was wearing a Salwar kameez.
I have always had an inferiority complex in presence of my brothers. They are more fair, beautiful and smart than me and I am not very talkative too. Yash bhaia was telling mother about the latest developments in his sasural when the discussion turned towards who among all the three married brothers is more lucky. Father also wanted to be a part of the discussion but he had a lot of chores to do like preparing the lunch and washing clothes. Bhaia gave an idea that all of us shall bring the clothes of ourselves and our wives and simultaneously wash the clothes and have discussion too. Father also liked the idea and all of us went to our rooms to get the clothes. Yash and Vikas bhaia also brought the clothes of their infant daughters.
Yash bhaia said that he was the most lucky since he had been married for more than 5 years and Bhabhi had never beaten him. “I was very afraid since Mom used to beat Dad daily but luckily she loves me a lot and even when I do some mistake, it’s only a slap or two” Said Yash bhaia.
“Your Mom also loves me a lot” said father, immediately coming to the defense of Mom. “But he had to create an example in front of all of you so that you boys may learn to respect your wives when you get married”.
Vikas bhaia said that he is the luckiest one. “We are a joint family. Whenever she returned from office and I used to bring tea for her, my father in law insisted that I should sit on the floor at her feet and press her legs. It was very humiliating for me to press her legs in presence of the whole family so she started taking the evening tea in our bed room. I still press her legs but the humiliation is not there. She really loves me a lot”.
“As I was telling Monu last time” father said almost angrily, “It’s an honor for a man to press the legs of his wife and you should never feel humiliated by this. I shall see to it that during today’s lunch, you shall press her legs and do it in presence of your Bhabhi and Garima ji”. Nemo started giggling again and Vikas bhaia threw a towel at him.
Monu Chaudhry (Tuesday, 04 April 2017 12:52)
“Why are you silent Monu?” Yash bhaia asked. “You also tell us something about your luck”. I was washing G’s T shirt and didn’t even look up. “Must be tired bhaia” teased Vikas bhaia. “He was busy even at 4 AM. His bangles were making a lot of noise early morning”. My face turned red with shame. Father was examining my heap of clothes and suddenly he started rebuking me, “You boys never listen to me. I had told you that you should always wash the night wear of your wife daily even if it is not dirty. Where is her Kurta and Lungi?” “She does not wear Kurta and Lungi Dad. She wears T shirt and shorts at night and I wash them daily” I replied.
Suddenly there was an awkward silence. Father broke it by asking Nemo to go and bring tea for all of us. It was clear that he didn’t want to discuss something in presence of his unmarried son. As Nemo departed, Vikas bhaia asked “How can she make love to you if she is wearing shorts. My wife wears a lungi so that she may take me inside her anytime”. “She takes it off” Said I, my face crimson red with shame. “But a wife always remains fully clothed while making love to her husband, who is fully nude. This is the universal custom. How else is she going to remind her husband that she is his owner and he is a slave to her.” Said Yash bhaia this time. “I have no illusions bhaia”, said I. “I know that my place is at her feet and she is my owner but never during the last three months, she has ever reminded me that. She treats me like a husband, not a slave.”
There was a few minutes of uncomfortable silence after which Dad stood up, kissed my forehead and declared, “He is the luckiest one”.
Suddenly doorbell rang. G and Bhabhis had returned. The luckiest one and the not so lucky ones, all ran to place their foreheads at the feet of their respective wives.
My Love Story (Wednesday, 05 April 2017 13:02)
हल्के गुलाबी रंग की शिफॉन की साड़ी में श्रेया बेहद ही खूबसूरत लग रही थी. उसने साड़ी के बॉर्डर के रंग से मैच करता हुआ गोल्डन रंग का बड़े गले का ब्लाउज पहन रखा था. ब्लाउज एक तरह से बैकलेस ही था, बस पीठ पर कंधे से नीचे एक पतली सी डोरी थी और एक डेढ़ इंच का स्ट्रैप ब्लाउज के नीचे की तरफ था ,जिसमें हुक थे. केवल इनके सहारे उस खूबसूरत ब्लाउज ने श्रेया के 34 इंच के भरे हुए वक्षों (ब्रेस्ट) की खूबसूरती छिपा रखी थी. लेकिन श्रेया की खुली हुई दूध सी गोरी और मखमली पीठ उस ब्लाउज में से साफ झांक रही थी, जिसे पार्टी में मौजूद लगभग हर शख्स चोरी-छिपे देखने से खुद को रोक नहीं पा रहा था. श्रेया की साड़ी भी ट्रांसपेरेंट थी, जिसमें से उसकी 27 इंच की पतली कमर, जब वह चलती थी तो लचकती हुई साफ देखी जा सकती थी. ब्लाउज की आस्तीनें भी कंधे से बस जरा सा ही नीचे उतरी हुई थीं, इसलिए ट्रांसपेरेंट साड़ी में से श्रेया की पतली पर भरी हुई बांहें भी साफ देखी जा सकती थीं. तो गोल्डन ब्लाउज जिसमें चमकीला वर्क था, उसकी चमक साड़ी का वह ट्रांसपेरेंट कपड़ा रोक नहीं पा रहा था. श्रेया के काले घने लंबे बाल, जो कमर तक आ रहे थे और जिनके निचले सिरे पर लटें बन रही थीं, उसकी खूवसूरती में चार चांद लगा रहे थे. श्रेया ने अपने बाल बाएं कंधे पर आगे की तरफ खुले छोड़ रखे थे. जिससे उसकी खुली हुई पीठ को ढकने का एकमात्र सहारा भी छिन गया था.
श्रेया को पहली नजर में ही देखकर पता लग रहा था कि वह नये जमाने की एक ऐसी लड़की है जिसे पहनावे की बहुत अच्छी समझ है.
उसने जहां अपनी बायीं कलाई पर रागा की गोल्डन वॉच पहन रखी थी, वहीं दायीं कलाई में सोने के दो कंगनों के बीच 36 चूड़ियां, जो कि साड़ी और ब्लाउज के रंग से मेल खाती हुई हल्के गुलाबी और गोल्डन कलर की थीं. साड़ी का पल्लू उसने अपने बाएं कंधे पर खुला छोड़ रखा था, जिसे वह अपने बाएं हाथ से थामे हुई थी. साथ ही बाएं हाथ में एक गोल्डन कलर का क्लच पकड़ रखा था. जब वह बात करती तो अपना दायां हाथ हिलाती और बार - बार थोड़ी-थोड़ी देर में दायां हाथ अपने सिर के ऊपर से बालों पर फेरते हुए कमर पर लटक रही जुल्फों के कोने तक लाती और अपने बाल संभालती. जब वह ऐसा करती तो उसकी चूड़ियों की खनक पार्टी में उसके आसपास खड़े हर व्यक्ति को अपनी ओर देखने पर मजबूर कर देती थी. श्रेया का कद 5'6 इंच था, ऊपर से उसने दो इंच की हील पहन रखी थीं, 51 किलो की श्रेया का पूरा जिस्म मानो सांचे में तराशा हुआ था. माथे पर गोल लाल बिंदिया, काजल से भरी हुई आंखें, गुलाबी गाल, लिपस्टिक से सजे लाल सुर्ख होंठ, गले को छूते लंबे गोल्डन झुमके और सुराहीदार गर्दन में लटका उसका पेंडेंट जिसमें लाल हीरा जड़ा था. बिंदी, पेंडेंटऔर लिपस्टिक से मेल खाते लाल रंग की नेल पॉलिश से सजे उसके हाथ-पैरों के लंबे नाखून. पैरों में उसने गोल्डन पतली पायल पहन रखी थी. इसलिए जब वो जरा सा भी साड़ी ऊपर उठाती तो गोल्डन हील पहने और लाल नेल पॉलिश से सजे गोल्डन पायल में उसके पैरों की खूबसूरती से निगाह नहीं हटती थी.
आगे से तो वह थी ही बेहद खूबसूरत. भरे हुए जिस्म, गोर चेहरे और गुलाबी रंगत वाली. जिसकी बड़ी-बड़ी काली आंखें थीं.लेकिन उस दिन वह पीछे से भी उतनी ही अधिक खूबसूरत दिख रही थी. खुली पीठ, बलखाती पतली कमर, हर कदम के साथ दाएं-बाएं थिरकते उसके गोल नितंब और मदहोश करने वाली चाल.
यह सब श्रेया को किसी स्वर्ग से उतरी अप्सरा साबित करने के लिए काफी था. श्रेया वैसे तो 25 साल की थी, पर उस दिन 20-21 साल की कोई सुपर मॉडल दिख रही थी.
~ यह एक सच्ची कहानी है.. शायद मेरी या मेरे किसी दोस्त की... या फिर ... खैर...
श्रेया कौन है? उस पार्टी में वह क्या कर रही है? यह अगले हिस्से में...
Payal (Wednesday, 05 April 2017 13:17)
The Pornstar:
Hi my name is Piyush. This story is how I became a Female and a Pornstar. The story starts when I was a 23 yrs slim guy with fair looks and average height. I had no family was a orphan. For my graduation I got scholarship to study in US and there after worked in a good company. After 7 months of work the company started firing employee one by one and one day it was my chance. I had a small amount of saving so I thought I will be easy to survive till I get a new Job. But market was very bad there were no jobs. My saving was about to finish. One day saw a advertisement of a job. I went there were lot of persons for interview. The interviewer ask me some questions and and told that I passed and called me for second round. I was happy. Next day I went and the interviewer told me that the job was for a Pornstar and the company was porn movie production company. They offered me a very good pay way better than my previous job. I thought were running in my mind about how wouldi I survive if I refuse this job. At last I told yes and the asked me to sign a contract of 5 yrs with a signing big amount . I happily without reading signed the agreement.
Payal (Wednesday, 05 April 2017 13:34)
The Pornstar 2:
Next day was my first day. They called in a studio. I went. They gave a script to read. It was a porn movie I had to fuck another lady porn star. I was nervous at first but after seeing the porn actress I got confident and my dick was up. I did well fucked her so hard that the director praised me a lot. There after for next six month I did many movies and all were hit.
I was invited in many porn parties. Ladies were crazy to take my dick. All my movies were hit by hit. But after six months the demand for porn actors was falling shot. And the movies were going flop.
My carrier was now at danger. The production company was at huge loss. The company was about to close. At that time shemale porns were in big demand. So the company decided to make a shemale porn movie. They were trying to find a good shemale but all shemale Pornstar were hired by other companies.
Priya (Thursday, 06 April 2017 01:17)
srs please continue ur story monu choudare ur story is awesome please continue
SRS (Thursday, 06 April 2017 12:33)
Payal please continue
Meena (Thursday, 06 April 2017 13:04)
Srs please continue your story
swapna (Friday, 07 April 2017 11:36)
friend's wt hapeen to the site
dress2kill.jimdo.com
why it's not open
Ghost (Friday, 07 April 2017 17:35)
Same question here. Please resolve the issue asap.
Gayatri (Saturday, 08 April 2017 03:50)
Same, question here
sneha (Saturday, 08 April 2017 04:57)
It will take some time chandini is working on it
Saurabh (Saturday, 08 April 2017 15:45)
How to access ex q zit books in uae kindly help
my Love story 2 (Sunday, 09 April 2017 01:06)
श्रेया जिस पार्टी में मौजूद थी, वो श्रुति और वीर की शादी थी. श्रुति और वीर दोनों स्टेज पर हाथों में हाथ डाले खड़े थे और सभी की शुभकामनाएं और गिफ्ट स्वीकार कर रहे थे. श्रुति लाल कलर के दुल्हन के जोड़े में बेहद ही आकर्षक और खूबसूरत लग रही थी लेकिन श्रेया से ज्यादा नहीं, ये बात श्रुति बहुत पहले से जानती थी कि श्रेया उससे अधिक खूबसूरत दिखती है. वीर ने क्रीम कलर की शेरवानी पहन रखी थी. श्रेया स्टेज की ओर बढ़ी. उसकी नजरें झुकी हुईं थीं. वह पार्टी में सबसे सुंदर दिख रही थी, फिर भी न जाने क्यों उसका चेहरा उदासी से भरा हुआ था. श्रेया, श्रुति और वीर की ओर बढ़ चली. उसे देखते ही श्रुति कुछ पल के लिए चौंक सी गई. वह जिस तरह खिलखिलाकर सभी से शुभकामनाएं ले रही थी, अचानक श्रेया को देखकर उसकी वह खिलखिलाहट गुम हो गई. लेकिन दूसरी ही पल उसके चेहरे पर मुस्कुराहट आ गई. पर वीर के माथे से न जाने क्यों पसीने छूट रहे थे. वह घबराया सा श्रेया को देखकर नजरें चुरा रहा था. लेकिन श्रेया को दोनों के ही रिएक्शन से कुछ लेना-देना नहीं था मानो. वह एक अजीब सी खामोशी से श्रुति के करीब पहुंची. स्टेज की सीढ़ियां चढ़ते वक्त एक हाथ से वह अपनी साड़ी की प्लेट्स संभाल रही थी तो दूसरे हाथ से अपने चेहरे पर आती बालों की लटों को चेहरे से हटा रही थी. वह श्रुति के पास पहुंची. झुकी हुई नजरों से ही उसने श्रुति की आंखों से आंखें मिलाईं.श्रुति उसे देखकर होंठ को दबाकर मुस्कुरा रही थी. श्रुति उसे देखकर खुश थी, पता चल रहा था. श्रुति ने श्रेया को गले लगाया और दोनों गालों से डाल टच कर खुशी में किस की आवाज निकाली , "मुआआआ".
श्रेया ने दबी हुई आवाज में उसे congrats बोला. और श्रुति ने श्रेया को गले लगाते वक्त उसके कान में कहा, "you are looking so beautiful as usual."
श्रुति के इन शब्दों पर श्रेया ने कोई प्रतिक्रिया नहीं दी. बस एक हल्की सी स्माइल कर दी.
Chandini (Sunday, 09 April 2017 20:12)
Hello friends
I tried to fix the website dress2kill, however there seems to be problem with jimdo itself and have written to them to help fix it asap. Will keep you posted
Chandini
vasantha (Monday, 10 April 2017 02:50)
pls write in English
Ghost (Monday, 10 April 2017 13:23)
Dress2kill.jimdo page started working. Start reading.
Ankita (Wednesday, 12 April 2017 11:33)
beautiful cd
https://youtu.be/upuz--Ub-Ks
subscribe my channel pls
Rajini (Wednesday, 12 April 2017 14:38)
SRS please continue
Krishna (Wednesday, 12 April 2017 14:39)
https://m.youtube.com/watch?v=68ixY4077Vc&feature=share
sweet pussy fucking video (Thursday, 13 April 2017 13:56)
XxxSweetPussy: Get 100,000 sweet pussy fucking videos. Check out the best Barely legal Porn Videos site in modern world for you VISIT NOW!
Ray (Friday, 14 April 2017 16:21)
Superstar to SuperSlut
Bollywood had found its latest Angry young Man ,Aryan Khan . He debuted in SOTY 5 which proved to be a commercial success, but he gave another 4 consecutive hits within his first 2 years . But his most acclaimed role came in a somewhat controversial Erotic thriller named “Bondage” it was like an Indian version of The Fifty Shades of Grey. Here Aryan played a Psychotic lover who kidnaps his unwilling crush and subjects her to various bondages and sexumiliation which was his version of Harsh Love, In the end it was shown that he was successful in brainwashing her and she would willingly submitting to him. The film was banned in many states throughout India due to protests by Feminists against the portrayal of a woman in the film. But the film banner was a big one and had contacts in Media and the Government , the film was still released on Valentine’s Day. It had got quite a publicity due to the controversy and hence became a huge blockbuster hit throughout the country.
There was a press meet held to celebrate the entry of the film into the 100 Crore club , the film crew along with Aryan were attending it . After a few basic questions one of the guy asked “Aryan, What about the portrayal of woman as slave in the film, don’t you think its disgraceful?”
“What? To do what the Husband orders is it disgracefull? To oblige to Husband in the bed is it disgracefull? Woman are trained from their mothers how to keep the Husband Happy , its not like slave , its more like Boss- Employee or something like that , Someone has to take command right” Aryan bluttered out , everyone was in shock , they knew they had their headline for the day. Everyone got up for a group photo and that concluded the event .Aryan’s comments made the headlines, debates were made on National Television about “What was Woman’s status in the society”. He was condemmed by most of his colleagues from the Industry. Feminists around the country were enraged . One of those feminists was the Indian Ambassador to Maldieves , Akansha Sinha.
Akansha was 35 year old single widower, her husband who was a soldier had died in a gunbattle in Kashmir only 5 months after her marriage. She was sitting in her house reading an article about his statements , She had seen the film and was already enraged about him , but by this statement he had really crossed the line , in fit of rage she threw and broke the coffee cup beside her “How dare He, Son of a B*” she said to herself . Earlier that morning she had received a visa request from the very same Aryan Khan and his girlfriend arriving next week . Aryan was advised to run away from media for a while till the dust settles in from the controversy, he had chosen Maldives to be his escape holiday. Akansha had already accepted his request, She knew he was heading towards Maldives. She thought she would take him on and give him a piece of her mind about the issue when she meets him ,but then after seeing his careless comments she knew how arrogant and ignorant he can be , so her words would mean nothing. She thought for the whole night about the issue , it made her sleepless about how helpless she was in the case. For the next few days she had the same point lingering in her head ,She wanted to do something to make him pay. That afternoon while she was having her lunch in the embassy canteen, she could hear two people conversing with eachother about their Manager , one of the person uttered the line “Give him his own medicine, Tell him to do what he expects from others”.
That line stuck in her head , she thought and laughed for herself imagining Aryan Khan in the position of the woman in the film “Bondage”. In the evening she was back to her home ,the Idea thrilled her , she knew it was far fetched but still she liked the Idea. She while in her teens was actually an avid reader of femdom materials. She remembered her good old days and went to her PC and searched for some femdom stories and videos , she was engrossed in it through out the night. She particularly enjoyed some of the new TG content she had discovered. At some point she felt sleepy and went to bed as she imagining her as dominant and Aryan Khan as he submissive in her dreams.
Ray (Friday, 14 April 2017 16:22)
Few days later , Aryan Khan and his girlfriend Tanasha Kapoor arrived in Maldives , they went to their hotel, rested for a few time and then got ready for going to the Pub in the evening. It was fun filled evening for them ,they danced to the beats as they enjoyed their vodka shots. As the party went into the late night Aryan had had one drink too many , he was totally dozing off with booze , that’s when he saw one person trying to dance with Tanasha, he became angry by seeing this and screamed “How dare you son of a bitch , get off my girl” he threw was glass bottle towards him with all his might . The bottle hit the person’s head with a large force and he collapsed on the floor , Aryan went to Tanasha , He said “Bitch , you were getting cozy with him right “ and slapped her ,as he was drunk he had no control over his hand and that slap was ferocious ,it made Tanasha go into concussion as she fell down. The Pub security was then alerted , they caught hold of Aryan and they procceded to take Tanasha and the guy hit with the bottle to the hospital. Aryan had dozed of by the time completely.
He woke up few hours later , with his hands I cuffs , he suddenly realized his situation and screemed “I am a Star from India , and I demand to contact my EMBASSY”
To be continued .
randeep (Saturday, 15 April 2017 03:42)
my name is rajiv i was working in bpo. leaving away from family because of family pressure and stress.... so i stayed in mumbai had a seperate 1 bhk room and had a good salary.... i felt n love with a girl named manisha and exchanged numbers and finally she proposed me and i accepted her proposal she use to work with international airlines. and she was from rich family.. she had a good big house she use to stay with her mother, her mother was divorce... so we had a meeting and finally our marriage got fixed.. we didnt have much family members so we had a court marriage.. her mother made me her ghar jamai as i didnt have any issues i thought i may save some money...so we were happily married and life was going on... manisha was very beautiful and slimn... so let me tell you about myself i had long hairs and slim and fair body as i was from north side.. life was going on well when my mil and manisha was not happy with my job of night shifts so she said to me look for day job. so every day their was a fight between me and manisha about my night shifts...so one day my mil told me to resign from job she will get me a business deal or a showroom of electronics. so manisha forced me aswell. so i resigned from my job and took a months rest and manisha was in her flights busy in her job routine, i use to wait her daily at home and days passe almost 2 months passed.i was asking my mil for business deal daily and she use to ignore one or the other way.... so i use to stay at home and wait for my wife daily... one day i thought of searching the job again so i started to give interviews but things didnt work out because of salary packages or shift timings,i was done with the money which i had in my account... and the other account we had a joint account so i didnt ask manisha about money...
so one day manisha came from her flight tired and ask a glass of water to drink i went and got the water she gave me smile and ask me what i was doing entire day... i said i was watching tv and sleeping so i didnt have work to do.. then my mil came and said manisha that she is tired of doing kitchen work and ask manisha for assistance...as manisha was tired she said to me to help her mom. ( as you know that i use to stay alone before marriage i use to cook clean and do all the house hold work )i made face on manisha and she starred at me.. i said manisha why dont we keep a maid.. manisha said they dont believe anyone in todays world.,so i went to help her. mil saw me and gave me a smile and told me to cut some vegetables which i did cleanly and cooked rice and helped mil to make dal and subzis.. my mil was surprised after seeing my effort.. and manisha also appreciated me....
days passed i started to work in kitchen all the time and my mil appreciated my work and started to watch her fav programmes... manisha use to cme from her work i use to serve her food and clean the house.. one night manisha was in the room and i did my work and came to the room to sleep as i was tired
randeep (Saturday, 15 April 2017 03:53)
as i was sleeping manisha asked me about my job i said her am still searching as iam not able to find the right package and shifts she gave me a smile and kissed me on forehead...
and she said that for a week she is on off she will spend time with me.. so the next morning i had a bath and served tea to mil and manisha.. i woaked up manisha serve her tea she gave me a smile and went to take bath.. i prepared her breakfast and served both of them.. and got ready to give an interview in a new company but manisha stopped me and said that no need to give interview as she has enough income to take care of all our needs but i was not happy about that i shouted on her and got angry her mil heard me and said to do what manisha was saying or else i can leave the house.. so then i kept quiet and became calm
randeep (Saturday, 15 April 2017 04:10)
i explained manisha about my income everything.... she said to believe her and started to kiss me on my lips... then i surrendered her and we had a good sex that night after marriage first time.. then i asked manisha for some money to cut my hairs as it was little bit long lenght till my shoulders... she said that she will take care of it and took a hair brush and putted a pony using her rubber band and when i started to open that pony she slapped me and said not to do that and opened her ward drobe and made me wear her mangalsutra... and started to laugh and said you fit to be my wife and i like you doing house hold work.. never raise your voice again in front of me....she pulled my hairs and warned me stepping out of this house....and i was watching her sudden behaviour and was little bit afraid of her... then she kept her legs on me told me to massage which i did quietly.. and ask me to make her fav breakfast tommorow morning..
(manisha use to wear western clothes all the time as she was modern and working woman)
at that time she was wearing sating kurta and pajama and i was wearing t-shirt and track pant...
next morning i got up made tea served both of them and made manishas fav breakfast..
manisha saw me and asked me about mangalsutra i had kept on the table last nite i bought the mangalsutra and gave her. she told me to wear i wore the mangalsutra in front of mil and her she smiled and said good girl
randeep (Saturday, 15 April 2017 04:32)
then my mil started to laugh and said bahu go and clean the house.. i felt ashamed and was cleaning the house my mil removed her bangles and made me wear her bangles and tied a pony tail.....and my wife said me to prepare lunch no one helped me i prepared the lunch and was serving them both feeling very shy.... . then i took my bath came to my room was wearing t shirt and track pant with mangalsutra.. my wife saw me and made me to sit and asked me how is your new role rajni.... i said ok ..very good from now on wards you will take care of this house and your mil now you will be called rajni is it ok i said yes....she asked me to take of my clothes i said why? she said oh rajni you are a girl so you should be beautiful and look good for your husband.... manisha said i work in airlines i have a job... you sit at home like a woman wearing mangalsutra and bangles with a pony so from now onwards you will be a proper woman my wife rajni ... with proper shringar.... right rajni she said... my heart beat increased..... she opened her ward drobe she had good collection of salwar suits, nighties., punjabi dresses... when she was in her college days because now she wears jeans and t-shirts and westerns skirts etc... manisha told me i work in airlines so i dont wear this stuff so its all yours now rajni.....
randeep (Saturday, 15 April 2017 04:50)
so she told me to stripped of my clothes.... as i didnt have much hairs on my body she didnt have to work much on that.. she bleached my face i didnt have beard or moustache, she bought turmeric and forced me to take turmeric bath.......and cleaned my body completely...
and then she washed my hairs blow them dry and did some threading as she was expert in it..
did my face make up she applied kajal lipstick light make up she gave me a bra as her size was 38b it fitted me properly because i had a tender breast she made me wear her panty....then she saw me i was feeling shy and i had completely surrendered her.... manisha then went to wardrobe and bought a punjabi dress which was red colour... she made me wear it it was perfect in size as we both had same personality and height.and then made me wear bangles payal and artificial nosering and earrings (the press one which doesnt require Piercing ) and then lastly mangalsutra and then came the red nail polish and she tied my hairs with feminine style with red rubber band..and then the heavy red duppata was given on my head..... and she showed the mirror i was feeling shy and concious..... then she said rajni my wife you are awesome.... she gave me sandals to wear.. which i managed difficultly..the sound of bangles and anklets was making me concious.... i was sacred to face my mil,
manisha called my mil to room she came and saw me and started to laugh saying oh my beta has become bahu...then manisha told mom her name is rajni... she called me rajni mummy ka par chovo... i touched her feet then manishas feet her mom went and bought sindoor she applied in my hair...
randeep (Saturday, 15 April 2017 05:07)
then the both watched me and started to praise my beauty and work....and my wife took my entire clothes and locked in store room... i was sad because this was the first time iam in womans getup
then i was told to prepare tea and watched tv serials with them my mil thought me womans manners everything iwas feeling as if iam woman or wife of my husband.... at night i called manisha to change my clothes she slapped me and said her name is manish and she is my husband and iam her wife...she forced me on her bed and we had a good time and she made me wear pink nighty at night....so almost a month passed i felt like iam woman of the house.....
my mil use to taunt me like her bahu and teach me house work... manisha was on trip all the time i use to wait my hubby serve him dinner and sleep with him...everyday manisha use to drees me in morning in suits,punjabi dressess and nighties....now i started to wear on my own put make up and became woman my mil was happy with me... it was my birthday as manisha was on trip my mil wished me and kissed me on my forhead and she made my choti and then she dressed me in her saree this was the first time i wore saree which was in green colou my mil draped the saree made me wear her marriage jewellery and made me sit on my bed .... then manisha saw me in saree she praised me and we had a good time.... i became rajni bahu i started to like my new role very much.... so now nowbody use to recognize me as male.. i started to go out with my mil and my hubby manish they use to gift me sarees dresses etc
randeep (Saturday, 15 April 2017 05:20)
now manish my husband is trying for sex change operation... so that i can be completely woman and enjoy my woman hood.... hope you like my story plz do comments thankyou .......
SRS (Saturday, 15 April 2017 07:51)
Ray and randeep please continue ur story
firoja (Sunday, 16 April 2017 01:20)
Please write cd dulhan bahurani stories
bindani (Sunday, 16 April 2017 09:17)
Hai randeep
Please countine stories...include wear ghungat and heavy saree and bridal jewellery like good bahu.please include punishment like tiedup and blindfold with dupatta for his mistake.
Don't stop stories countinue more parts
Ray (Monday, 17 April 2017 04:14)
SuperStar to SuperSlut PART 2
“I am a Star from India , and I demand to contact my EMBASSY”
He kept on shouting the same, the police officers though annoyed by his shouting were still ignoring them but when Aryan started abusing them for not listening it irked one of the officer who had had enough of the screaming. He dragged Aryan from his chair and put him inside a cell and called his subordinates inside for help. The Police officers then took turns in beating Aryan blue and black , he was shouting and cursing the officers in the process “You can’t do that you fools, I am a big star in India ,Stop” he said wincing in pain to no avail . The officers showed him no mercy, all his arrogance had succumbed to the pain , he went on his knees and started to beg them to not hit him “Please Sir, Don’t hit me my body is hurting , I am sorry for what I did, Please just let me contact my embassy” he begged them . As he was saying this , “SMASH” since he went down on his knees, an officer’s hit aimed at his back had now hit his head. “Ahhhhhh” He screamed as he fell down on the ground unconscious.
He woke up few days later, in what seemed to be a Hospital. He saw the calendar besides his bed by which he realized he seemingly was unconscious for 2 days. One of the nurse noticed him waking up, she went and informed the officials. Few minutes later, A Lady in black suit had come to visit Aryan in his ward. She was none other than Akshana. “Hello Mr Aryan Khan, This is Akansha Sinha, The Indian Ambassador to the Maldives, you are now in the Embassy Hospital” She introduced herself offering a handshake, Aryan was relived at hearing this he shook her hand “Thank God you are her Madam, I was not able to contact you, the Police didn’t allow me, they tortured and beat me like an animal that day, Hopefully I am safe now” He said.
“I got to know about your situation through an internal agent, since you are a VIP I myself took to it to look after your safety” She Said. “Thank you Madam, Thanks a Lot for saving my life” Aryan thanked her.
“But you are not safe yet Mr Khan” Akansha said. Aryan was little terrified by that “What do you mean by that, I am in the embassy right, no police or anyone can enter the embassy right” He asked. “That’s right , Mr Khan , but there are police right outside the compound, they will nab you right after you exit the embassy, If you want to stay here for rest of your life then its ok , but if you want to go back to India , there is little problem” Akansha started explaining “ You remember why you were arrested? You hit that guy with a glass bottle? He lost one eye in the process, and that’s not it, He happens to be the son of the former Prime Minister of Maldives”. Aryan was terrified now “Oh My God, I didn’t knew him, It was an accident , I was drunk , Please save me , I am an Indian, You have to save me” Aryan pleaded to her holding her hand.
“Do you know what Mr Khan, you have a trial Date tomorrow morning, and they have all the evidence on you, since his father is a resourceful man, you may even get the Maximum punishment too” She said.
“What? You can’t be serious” Aryan was now almost in tears. “Yes I am serious, but the court ruling is the last thing you should worry about, My Internal Agent this morning gave me an message, It said his father’s Party workers are planning to Kill you on your way from the embassy to the court, They are planning to Kill you Aryan, they are not happy with just 10 year sentence”. Akansha informed him.
Aryan was shocked at hearing of the plot , he was now crying “What the hell , I was here to enjoy my vacation , now I am totally screwed here, What have I Done , Oh GOD “ he continued pleading “Please Madam , you have to do something , I am an Indian , you have to save me”. “That is why I am here , to serve the Indian people, And I have to admit I am an avid fan of you , So I went out of my way to search for an escape route for you Mr Khan, But it’s a Tad bit expensive” Akansha’s announcement lit up Aryan’s eyes the words escape route made him hopefull . “Whatever the expense I will fulfill Madam you please tell me what iss the plan, how can I escape” He said.
“There is a group of mercenaries that work in the underground, whom I know through my agents. They have expertise in providing the escape route. They have help many politicians to flee the country who were on death sentence. But problem is that they charge a lot, A 100 Crore Rupees to be exact” Akansha said . “100 Crore rupees!! Oh my God , Is it negotiable? I have about 75 to 80 Crore in my bank account, I can wire it right now if you want” He replied . “That will be tough, but I will see if they are ready to negotiate, Let me call my agent” She said. Akansha got on to her phone and made few calls, after few minutes her phone rang in again,
Ray (Monday, 17 April 2017 04:20)
“Yes , Yes.. Ok Fine tommorow Done” She said on the phone. Aryan was relieved to hear the word done, he asked her what they said. “Fortunately, they didn’t have any assignment for a few time, hence they were desperate for this one, they have agreed to the amount of 80 Crore rupees, you have to wire it to them within next half an hour and the deal will be booked”
Akansha informed him. Aryan clapped his hand “Yes, Thank God” . Akansha then gave him his phone which was seized by the police, he then proceeded to transfer 80 Crore rupees to the account number she provided.
“That’s It Aryan, Deal is booked, You will be Kidnapped from the Police vehicle on you way to the embassy by them, then they will take you to their Private jet which will then take you to Sri Lanka in their Jet, and there a vehicle will be waiting to take you to the Indian Embassy in Sri Lanka, then you are a free bird” Akansha explained the Plan to him . “Thank you for whatever you have done for me Madam , As soon as I reach India , I will tell the tale of you saving me, will make you famous I promise” Aryan said. “That wont be necessary Mr Khan , This is a covert Operation , no one including Indian Government officials should know about it, Do you understand” She said in a stern voice. “Sure , Sure. I didn’t realize that , you are going out of you way to save me, No one will know” He said. Then Akansha shook his hands and was leaving the room when Aryan asked “Madam one more thing , What about Tanasha? Is she Okay , I hit her when I was drunk, Where and how is she ?” , Akansha informed him about his girlfriend “Tanasha Kapoor is still recovering in the Hospital , She is safe and will Leave for India soon , Nothing to worry” as she left his ward.
The next morning, Aryan was taken from his ward and dragged inside a police vehicle, it proceeded on its way to the Court . As Planned the day before it was attacked midway, Aryan who was expecting them was over joyous at their arrival. They were successful in picking up Aryan ,shifted him to theirs and sped away from the scene. “Thank you guys , You guys were great, Every penny spent on you is worth it” He said patting their backs, He suddenly felt a pain in his neck and turned back. One of the guy had pierced a syringe inside him and had injected something, within seconds he fell asleep.
Few hours later , the Large sound of the Television woke him up. To his shock he was lying down on the floor of a dark room clad only in his underwear. He was terrified by his situation . He Looked around the room , it was pitch Dark , there was only one Door and a window in the room , He tried to open it , but it were both locked from the outside, but he could still hear the sound of a television being played some adjacent room . He started shouting “Hey Who is it that Has locked me here , Please open the Door, I was supposed to be in Sri Lanka by now, I payed full 80 Crore you know, Open the door” he started banging the door, the Television was switched off but there was no other response from the other side."Hey I know you are there Open the Door Dammit" Aryan shouted . After few minutes of trying to break the door , he was tired and fell on the floor. As he sat on the floor and his bum touched the floor, he realized that the underwear he was wearing felt different, as it was pitch dark he couldn’t see what he is wearing , but when he touched it and felt its sliky material and frilly ends, he realized he is not wearing an Underwear , but a Panty. That put him in shock , he was wondering what was he stuck into , He stared at the Door , helplessly waiting for it to be opened, gradually losing hope and falling asleep.
SRS (Monday, 17 April 2017 05:51)
Ray awesome please go on
Anjali (Tuesday, 18 April 2017 04:55)
Hi Kareena
In regards to your comments #247 & #248, would to make friends with you.
You can email me at anjali28@rediffmail.com and we can continue our friendship.
I am a cd and love to dressup...
Love
Anjali
randeep (Friday, 21 April 2017 07:44)
Hope everybody liked my story...
waiting for your comments
will start a new story soon
thankig all my sisters
men (Friday, 21 April 2017 15:44)
I appreciated your work very thanks
Monu Chaudhary (Monday, 24 April 2017 12:56)
You are awesome, Randeep. Waiting for your next story.
SHRUTHI (Monday, 24 April 2017 21:40)
SRS PLS GIVE UR STORY UPADATE
vana roja (Tuesday, 25 April 2017 11:34)
https://www.facebook.com/Crossdresser-diaries-488147644722978/
this link contains a lot of crossdresser stories
Suman Ganguly (Tuesday, 25 April 2017 18:53)
Monu please continue with your story.
shruthi (Thursday, 27 April 2017 04:18)
can anyone write the revolutionary story about gender change all around the world due to some reasons.and that effect in our state.pick me as a lead character. having gradual changes in body.admitting the future and ready to take up the girls life and their traditional functions like puberty function, pelli choopulu, pelli, first night,pregnancy,seemantham,conceiving the baby. pls right this in Telugu version. plsss plss
Monu Chaudhary (Thursday, 27 April 2017 13:38)
Suman,
I get time to write stories only when my wife is out of town. She is going to US tomorrow and I shall certainly write at that time.
Thanks for your comment.
DEEPU (Thursday, 27 April 2017 14:24)
SET IN ANCIENT PERIOD THERE WERE 2 KINGS RAJA AND SUHAS WHO WERE SWORN ENEMIES OF EACH OTHER. ONCE RAJA DECIDED TO WAGE A WAR AND DESTROY THE TOTAL SUHAS KINGDOM. HE ASSEMBLED A HUGE ARMY AND MARCHED INTO SUHAS KINGDOM. INITIALLY HE WAS ABLE TO GO DEEP INTO SUHAS KINGDOM WITHOUT ANY RESISTANCE BUT IT WAS A TRAP LAID BY SUHAS.
ONCE RAJA GOT TRAPPED DEEP INSIDE SUHAS KINGDOM HE WAS SURROUNDED ON ALL SIDES BY SUHAS ARMY.
RAJAS ARMY WAS DESTROYED BUT HE ESCAPED AND HID IN A FOREST NEARBY.
BUT SUHAS KNEW THAT RAJA HAD ESCAPED INTO THE FOREST AND HE SENT A HUGE ARMY TO FIND AND KILL RAJA BEFORE HE CAN REACH HIS KINGDOM.
RAJA WHILE HIDING IN THE FOREST SAW SOLDIERS IN FOREST AND WAS SURE THAT SUHAS HAD SENT IT. HE ESCAPED INTO NEARBY CAVE AND WAS THINKING OF THE WAY TO REACH BACK HIS KINGDOM. IN THE CAVE HE SAW A LAMP SHINING AND UNINTENTIONALLY HE RUBBED IT AND TO HIS SURPRISE A BEAUTIFUL MAIDEN CAME OUT. SHE WAS EXTREMELY BEAUTIFUL. SHE TOLD HERSELF TO BE A GENIE NAME RANI AND OFFERED RAJA 3 WISHES.
RAJA HAD ASKED FOR HIS ESCAPE TO HIS KINGDOM. THE GENIE RANI TOLD HIM THAT SHE DID NOT HAVE THE POWER TO TELEPORT HIM. BUT SHE HAD THE POWER TO DISGUISE HIM AND WOULD ACCOMPANY HIM TILL HE REACHED HIS KINGDOM SAFELY.
DEEPU (Thursday, 27 April 2017 14:34)
RAJA ACCEPTED. THE GENIE THEN TRANSFORMED RAJA INTO A BEAUTIFUL LADY AND GAVE HIM A MIRROR TO LOOK. RAJA WAS SURPRISED AS HE WAS NOW WEARING A HALF SLEEVED PINK BLOUSE WITH MATCHING PINK SAREE WITH WHITE BORDER. HE WAS WEARING BINDI EAR RINGS, NOSE RINGS. RAJA WAS A BIT ANGRY AND ASKED THE GENIE RANI TO CHANGE HIM BACK.
THE GENIE RANI REPLIED THAT IF HE CHANGED BACK THEN HE WOULD BE EASILY IDENTIFIED AND ALSO HE WOULD LOOSE HIS SECOND WISH. RAJA HAD THOUGHT THAT IF HE USED HIS SECOND WISH NOW IT WOULD BE WASTED AS AFTER REACHING HIS KINGDOM HE ASK THE GENIE RANI FOR A LARGER ARMY TO DEFEAT SUHAS . SO RAJA ACCEPTED HIS GIRLY FORM. THE GENIE RANI THEN CONVERTED AS A MAN SAYING NOW THEY BOTH WOULD POSE LIKE HUSBAND AND WIFE TILL THEY REACH RAJA`S KINGDOM. SAYING SO THE GENIE NOW TOOK A MANGALSUTRA AND TIED IT TO RAJA SO THAT HE WOULD LOOK AS A MARRIED WOMEN. THUS BOTH RAJA AND RANI STARTED THEIR JOURNEY AS A COUPLE.
TO BE CONTINUED
DEEPU (Thursday, 27 April 2017 14:36)
PLEASE GIVE REVIEWS AND WHETHER THE STORY WAS INTERESTING OR BORING
shyam (Friday, 28 April 2017 01:59)
nice story deepu pl continue
vasantha (Friday, 28 April 2017 02:50)
DEEPU make more intersing make full woman do this like girl
shruthi (Friday, 28 April 2017 04:48)
good start deepu.pls continue.make him waste his sorry her remaining two wishes and let him to remain as beautiful married women forcefully make her to become pregnant
Suman Ganguly (Friday, 28 April 2017 05:59)
Monu, I know that dear. Please ensure that you write as maximum as possible during that period. Thanks.
Monu Chaudhary (Friday, 28 April 2017 11:48)
Her US trip postponed for two weeks.
priyanka (Saturday, 29 April 2017 02:48)
Indian boy wearing his sisters dresses......
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=IGk946zMbpM&t=32s
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=21MRgtGdDp0
Sonu / Sonia (Sunday, 30 April 2017 01:50)
Hi everyone....
I i m sonu.... dressed a sonia... watch on youtube.....
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=fBS6WdGBDMc&feature=youtu.be
supply only laundry chutes (Sunday, 30 April 2017 10:25)
Thank you so much for sharing this great blog.Very inspiring and helpful too.Hope you continue to share more of your ideas.I will definitely love to read.
mandakini (Tuesday, 02 May 2017 02:05)
Hi to every one on this site
I want a house husband... iam working woman
iam getting married soon
so here is a video of future husbands...
watch it enjoy
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=U6ecF2kZqhg
soumya (Tuesday, 02 May 2017 02:12)
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=ox7DhzsLnn0
watch this video of juhi and anil
soumya (Tuesday, 02 May 2017 02:14)
https://www.youtube.com/watch?v=2jnkbY95Zfo
future of househusbands
jayshree (Tuesday, 02 May 2017 03:19)
plz send husband forced crossdressing stories
Anonymous (Tuesday, 02 May 2017 04:34)
This is a story taken from facebook deepa
its not mine
My name is vasu aged 27. I was recently married to a beautiful young lady. I was a software employee with more salary and besides with heavy tensions.
In my home I used to be more anger aty wife due to the irritation in work. One day the I beat her so harshly and she was hospitalized. I was so sad at my rude behavior. When she was discharged from the hospital , she didn't used to talk to me and just felt like strangers living in a home. I felt so sad on her. The next day I took leave from the office and thought to keep her happy. I begged her and she at last convinced and we went out for shopping. There she saw a beautiful blue Saree and brought a sleeveless blouse for that. She wored it and shown to me. I was with excitement. We reached back to home after having our lunch and I slept. She was somehow happy since our marriage.
When I woke up and went to the bathroom yo wash my face I found by face was empty without hair. My moustache and my beard was shaved clean and I even don't have any hair on my chest and navel. Suddenly my wife came there and asked me a favour for her. Since the marriage she didn't asked me anything. Do I promised her that anything ll be done for her. She asked me to wear the Saree which was brought on the morning. I was questioned and asked her the reason. Then she said we ll find a answer for our happy family life. So I agreed to wear. She made me to sit in front of the dressing table and she did some little makeup and painted my nails and she kept a shoulder length wig on my head. I was feeling like a girl. Then she make me to stand and wore me the bra and panty of her which suited me perfect and wore that Saree with sleeveless blouse. I was in the feel of feminine. That's really excited me. Then she took me to the kitchen to prepare the dinner. I was stunned to do so. But looking at her innocent face myself got pleased and helped her. Then hands are sounding tangled with the bangles. My wife is so happy I have ever seen in our marriage life. Then we sat for eating. She kept food for me in my mouth like my mom. On that day I have seen the love she had on me. For the first time I cried and she took me near to her and consoled me like a kid. Then she said me as a male you are so harsh. But when u r on female dress u r so sensitive. So from today onwards please dress like this in home and so we can be happy. I was agree with her. From that day onwards I used to be dressed like her and I even behaved like a women in my house. From that day we never go quarreled and even we used to go long drives as girls in my car.
Now I was having a happy life with full of tension relief at home as a wife.
And my wife used to call me as VASUNDHATA
Priya (Tuesday, 02 May 2017 20:56)
I am ready to be house husband for my wife..
SRS (Wednesday, 03 May 2017 12:06)
Please continue story
Anonymous (Wednesday, 03 May 2017)
@Mandakini i 'm ready to be house husband please can just message or reply to me
Thinku (Sunday, 07 May 2017 05:35)
Hi Friends,
I am Thinku. Some of you may know me. Me and some of my friends have a crossdressing videos compilation platfrom in facebook called Thinku's Crossressing gallery. Now we have started a story page called as Thinku's Crossdressing stories. Please visit, Like and support our initiative.
https://www.facebook.com/thinkucdstories
https://www.facebook.com/thinkucdpage
Thanks,
Thinku
Thinku (Sunday, 07 May 2017 05:38)
Posting the first part of our new story as a teaser.
The help
Part One:
Main Characters
Deepak : A macho guy. 27 yrs old. From Kerala. Rich. Software engineer in Bengaluru. 6 feet. 80 kgs. Witty and brave. Takes occasional risks
Deepa : Deepak's younger sis .fun loving young girl.
Sheela :Deepak's Mom. Very orthadox and traditional. Retired school principal.
Sneha :Deepak's ex-girlfriend. Modern girl.
Tarun : Deepak's roommate. 25 yrs old.Works in a part time job. Lives with help of Deepak. Slim,fair. 157cm 58kg with sholder length hair. Has mom and sis only. From poor background.
Anjali :Deepak and Tarun's common friend. Modern girl with traditional values. Tarun has a crush on her and she knows it too. Has a soft corner for Tarun.
Story:
It is 8 pm at night. Tarun returns to home after some shopping. Deepak is at the flat sitting with a gloomy face. He is sipping a beer and seems like is thinking about something. Tv is on but he is not caring about it..
Tarun: Hey bro..Still in that heart broken Romeo mode?..Its been months now. Why are you still holding on to it. Leave it and move on man.
Deepak: Tarun. U know perfectly well that i am over Sneha. Its true that i loved her and wanted to marry her. I even fought with my family at native and left home to marry her. It is not my fault she left me. Thats is not the matter..
Tarun : Haha.. i was just kidding bro. I knw u got over it but can't help telling somethng seeing you gloomy again. So what is the matter Romeo.
Deepak: Nothing bro..some issues with family again.
Tarun : That is a gud thing. Your family again contacted you?.after you left home i thought they casted you out. Such was your performance na. 'i love this girl and for her i will leave you all if needed'. Haha
Deepak : Ya..it was matter of my self esteem. They think me and Sneha is still together. I also made them think like that. Imagine how embarassed would i be if they find out the girl i left them a girl who has left me..
Tarun: (trying hard to hide his grin). Ya..so what is the problem. Let them believe that.
Deepak: They do believe that and now uncle called me and said they respect my guts and decision and they are ready to accept me and sneha..Also they want me return to native with her and get blessing from mom.
Tarun: Oh. That is one bad situation..Sneha has already gone from your life.. now there is no alternative bro. Tell ur family what happened.
Deepak: No man. How can i do that. I hurt my family so much and boasted about our love so much. It will be great shame to tell this. I will be a laughing stock for all the family. You know ours is a joint family na.
Tarun : ya..but what else can we do.
Deepak: that is what i was thinking. It wud be a matter for 2 days..just go there and get blessings and come back. I was thinking if i could go with someone posing as Sneha.
Tarun: That is an idea worth trying out. But will Anjali agree to it?. She is the only close girl friend of us. Have u called her?.
Deepak: Ya i did. U know she is a gud girl and will do anything to help us but the issue is she got to visit her parents in US. You know na this is her vacation time. She is leaving after 2-3 days.
Tarun : Oh..i forgot that.. so we are now back to square one. Can't think of any other girl who will help you.
Deepak: I also couldn't think of any girl but..
Tarun : what bro. Do you hav any other idea in mind?.
Deepak : I have one but i need your help in it.
Tarun: You knw i will do anything for you bro. Just tell me.
Deepak: Ok .This may sound wierd. But there is only one person who can help me. It is you….
Tarun: me?..how bro.
Deepak: I was thinking if you could come with me to my native.
Tarun: Sure. I would come with you. but that won't solve the problem na. They are expecting sneha along with you na.
Deepak : U didn't understand what i told. I was thinking if you could come with me to native..."AS SNEHA"..
To be continued in fb page : facebook.com/thinkucdstories
Rashmi (Sunday, 07 May 2017 20:49)
SRS PLS COMPLITE STORY THE NEW RULE THAT CHANGE OUR LIFE
shruthi (Monday, 08 May 2017 00:17)
yes reshmi wt you said was r8. SRS
SRS (Monday, 08 May 2017 00:48)
Please wait i will, thinku please continue ur story here
vasantha (Tuesday, 09 May 2017 02:56)
srs pls continue your story I am very very big fsn of you pa
Sripriya (Friday, 12 May 2017 01:28)
Mandakini i 'm ready to be house husband please can just message or reply to me
Sripriya (Friday, 12 May 2017 01:40)
If anyone want house husband or house wife i 'm ready to live those roles & i know house hold works and i know cooking verywell ...if any one have interest please can just message or reply to me my whats up number 8610707684....
Neha (Friday, 12 May 2017 21:48)
anyone from Jodhpur ? wanna have a cd session?
hema (Saturday, 13 May 2017 13:49)
deepu please continue your story. it is excellent.please continue deepu
Samriddhi (Sunday, 14 May 2017 13:56)
Journey to femdom
Hi! This is my first story.
I am a ca working with a reputed firm. I Frequently visit different places for accounting. I have girly feeling and desire to be like them. I spent days in closet dressed but never dared to come n open. My desire started growing to express my feelings with others and live life as girl. I wanted to feel like one. Most of the time I used to visit othe cities alone. There I used to remain dressed in hotel room at night and get back to male self during day for work. Frequently I visited Dehradoon in taxi for audit work. The same driver used to drive me almost every month and pick me up from there after few days when I finished work. By the way I live in Delhi. I am reserved person and did not talk to him during drive except when needed. He would also not bother me . He was very polite, at least he appeared and caring. He always asked before playing music and showed curtesy. He would carry my luggage to hotel room and bring food and other things when asked. Sunil was his name aged around 25 and 2 years younger to me. He was married and had a small daughter .these were occasional information which I gathered from hm during those travel. I used to be very happy going to dhradoon as I had little work and plenty time to dress in my hotel room. The hotel staff would also not bother me when I asked them not to disturb me in my room. My luggage used to be heavy as I carried most of my dresses and makeup with me. I had plenty time experimenting . Sarees, skirts, tops, leggings, kurtis all I used to wear and admire in front of mirror. I completely enjoyed myself .intentionally I used to delay work so that I get extra days to dress. After 3 to 4 such trips I got bored and wanted to explore more of my feminity. I needed an admirer or a lover but faithful and obedient who would act according to me. In Delhi I used to wonder how I will get my dream fulfilled. One day I decided to give the driver a chance. He was poor and gentleman. Although not of my expectation but I thought
He would be faithful. So I made my mind that on next trip I would try him. To my surprise next day my office asked me to leave for Dehradoon with same driver as it was urgent.i was very very happy but afraid too. What if he turn down my offer . What if he tell others and ........ Next morning he was to pick me up from my apartment. I had packed my dresses and makeup and all already. I also shaved my body which was Already clean applied perfumed moisturiser before sleep. I put on pink bra Nd panty and painted toe nail with same colour. My wig was ready and I was very excited. I would just put Tshirt and jeans before leaving. He came at 5 am and rang bell. He was supposed to carry my bags. As he lifted the he said it is heavy are you going for month sir. I blushed and smiled said no.
I sat as usual on rear seat just behind him. My heart started racing fast. I was to ask him the favour I always wanted.
Samriddhi (Sunday, 14 May 2017 14:42)
Journey to femdomfemdom 2
I sat like dumb for an hour thinking of way to start conversation.after tea at a dhaba I thought to speak up . I said Sunil.he instantly replied yes sir.
I :how is ur daughter?
He:good.little naughty. She is 4.
I :Does she go to school.
He: yes in mcd.we cannot afford private school.
I : oho. How much u earn. He said I am on salary by taxi firm get 10000 p.m
I said if he need any help he can rely on me. He refused said u will help once or twice that will not be sufficient. He will have to look for other permanent source of income. He said his wife is idle and wants to work. She can be good maid. He asked me if I had need of maid. I instantly said yea. I was looking for one. He seemed happy. I was more happier thinking things are going in right direction.i asked him to bring her when I returned.now that I sensed security I opened up. I started admiring him. Said I like ur nature u r good blah blah.he was floored he in turn started appreciating me. Said u r talented sir I am not etc. He instantly asked how much u earn sir. I smiled said 1.5 lakh p.m.his jaws remained open. I interrupted, said money is noteverything . U also work hard.in future you will too earn. He said laughingly are u joking sir. I was enjoying his talk but only wished he referred me madam instead of sir.anyway I thought this is right time to strike. I said I earn good money but am not happy in life but u r happy although u have less money. He asked why. I didn't reply. He seemed worried asked again. I thought to open up straight. I said stop the car let me come in front seat then I will tell u.he. Pulled down . I got up to front seat. Asked him to drive slow so that he would listen carefully. My face was red. He seemedconcerned. I took some water and started. I told him I have a secret and I want ur help. By now we reached a dhaba and he stopped the car. We kept sitting in car. I said I have a girl inside me. I want to explore it. Feel it. I need his help. He was puzzled. I kept my hand on his and asked him to calm down. I sensed his fear.. I said it's not like that. I know u r married and loyal. I just need a companion that's it. No physical type. He seemed calm now.ased what he will have to do. I said treat me like girl when I say. I said i need aobedient person like u. Above all keep it a secret do not even tell ur wife.
He sweared .
Samriddhi (Sunday, 14 May 2017 15:14)
Journey to femdomfemdom 3
I was now relaxed and happy.i said u obey me I will help u . He said ok sir. As u wish. I laughed and said not sir now mam.my name is Samriddhi and in private call me mam but never in front of others.
I will give u amount double ur salary every month to obey me.he said that will be too much. Just help me sometimes when I am in need and give my wife job as maid. I said I will give her job and decent salary beside u.he said thank you and paused and mam. I smiled patted on his cheek and said good boy. He started driving. He said mam do u wear ladies clothes also. I said yes and that is why the luggage was heavy.ok he said. I unbuttoned Tshirt and gave him a peek of my bra. He was surprised.
I said don't u like it on me. He said yes yes.i said to night I will be ur girl .would u mind joining me in hotel. He said no no sir I never went to such hotel they will not let me. I said not sir mam. He apologised. Said mam. I told hm not to worry I will do everything.i asked him now that he will earn extra money what he will do. He said he will save for his daughter. I was indeed impressed. When we reached I asked him to stop at a mall. He accompanied me . I took him to Levi's showroom. Ordered a pair of jeans and Tshirt for him. We shopped for him. Sandals, belt etc. I took him to saloon and had his hair cut and shaving done. He was shy to visit unisex saloon. In an hour his appearance changed from driver to a handsome hunk. He was good built and average height little taller to me. I am fair and slim.at saloon I got massage for myself and got eyebrows done .initially staff was reluctant to file eyebrows as it would look girly but did when I insisted.i bought few girly t shirts and a perfume. Sandal and hand bag. Driver carried all my baggage and I did window shopping like girls do all evening. We had snacks tougher her and occasional chats. He had put on his new clothes and got old ones packed. At escalators I held his hand. I was enjoying thoroughly.i had complete girly feeling all along . At hotel I booked room for two. There was no suspicion. I asked them not to bother us after dinner as we are tired and will sleep whole night.
Samriddhi (Monday, 15 May 2017 05:02)
Journey to femdom 4
I was all excited as we reached hotel room. He dropped luggage and stood near door. I went to the window looked outside with sense of triumph. I was on cloud nine. Then I realised he was waiting for my permission . I asked him to relax himself on sofa. Hesitatingly he sat in a corner. I asked "how do u Feel here with me". He nodded good. I put my hand on his shoulder and smilingly asked hm to be normal . "We r friends now" I said. He said yes mam. I sensed he would not be normal so I sat next to hm. I started looking at his face and he became more uncomfortable. I smiled and he smiled back. I put his hand in mine. By now I had removed my socks and he noticed my painted toe nails. He seemed to like it. I asked him to get fresh and handed him towel.when he went inside I quickly changed my clothes. I already was in bra panty . I put on floral top and legging. Put on eye liner. I looked girly and was sure he would be surprised. He came out in 10 min. I was facing away from him as I I did not notice him. I could see from edge of mirror he gazed towards me for long till he again rested himself on sofa. I kept unnoticing him and busy in phone. I saw him looking at my dress. I turned back and asked how I look. He stammered goo good mam. Now he was looking at my face. I came close to him and asked just good or more. He said "you r very beautiful mam" and started blushing. I came closer and pulled his face towards me. I said " you r handsome too. I want u to treat me like u treat ur wife but respectfully."he said yes mam. I liked him calling yes mam in every sentence. Earlier he used yes sir in every sentence. Drivers are like that.isaked him if he can paint my finger nails. He nodded and carefully started painting.he took his time and impressed me. When he finished I planted a kiss and said thank you. He blushed . I like it. I ordered food and we dined together .i handed him a Tshirt and shorts to change. I noticed hair all over his legs hand and chest.
Samriddhi (Monday, 15 May 2017 06:03)
Journey to femdom 5
I started doing my makeup. He sat quiet on sofa.i put on pink lipstick .i asked him how I looked now. He said very pretty and shyly lowered is face. I went to him again pulled up his face and said u r the Man U should not be shy .he nodded yes ma'am. I pulled him and asked "kiss me". He was motionless. I said again" kiss me or I will be angry".he pecked on my cheek. I patted him on his face"good". He is 4-5inches taller. I stretched my arms around his neck and looked up to his face" do u like me "he affirmed again yes ma'am . I said "treat me like ur gf. Hold me like u do to ur wife, make me feel like her. I will be happy. Be yourself. I won't mind anything . Trust me I will love u . "I was getting emotional.i continued " I am very happy with you. I will care for u . U just give me happiness." He asked "what I should do." I said " like a boy does to a girl".now he held me tight in his arms. He said " I love you . You are very nice ma'am .
Samriddhi (Monday, 15 May 2017 08:52)
Journey to femdom 6
he lifted me while my hands around his neck. I could feel his power. He squeezed me . I screamed "ouch" . He left his grip. Said " sorry" . I said it's ok I liked it. He was opening up now. I felt his hand behind me on my hips under panty. Now it was my turn to blush. He pinched and I jumped nstantly.i blushed more. He pulled me again turned me around and held me from back. Firming his grip he pulled me to sofa and I was there in his lap.He was acting beyond my earlier expectation. He was getting horny too. He said" ma'am your perfume is nice. I am unable to stop myself. " I said " just perfume and not me". He replied " you are very nice and sexy" I asked " how do u please your wife". He said" she is very shy and submissive. I never care for her. She does not mind.we just do the act". I said " u should care for her. I will teach you". He said yes ma'am. He planted a kiss on my lips. I was sitting crossed in his lap under his arms. His grip was hurting a bit but I did not complain.i was completely overpowered.i tried to free myself without requesting him but I couldn't. He kept kissing on face and neck.his small beard was pinching me on face and I felt helpless.i was getting more than I had asked for.simultaneously I did it want him to realise I was feeling helpless. So I requested I need water. He released me. I regained myself. Stood up and got a glass of water. I also asked him for water. I did not want to go to his lap at least for sometime . So I sat in front of mirror touching up my makeup. He started flirting " ma'am u look beautiful u do not need makeup. Just come to me." I smiled but kept on. I had styled my hair in girly look. I was not wearing wig. I applied more eyeliner. Another touch of lipstick.put on bindi and golden bangles in left hand. He came closer and put his hand on my shoulder and started caressing.i again was blushing. He lifted perfume bottle and sprayed some over my chest.his fondling increased . I asked him to wait and let me finish. He did it stop. He said" ma'am I gave u somuch time in between , I do not give to my wife". I said" slowly u will learn with me". He said" yes slowly but not to night and he lifted me". I was up in air in his arms. He was holding me wit ease.fearing I may fall I put my arms around his neck. He was not fair. His muscular body and black skin was contrast against my white skin.he put me on bed and got over me. I was screaming under his weight. He was in no mood to leave me. I thought to myself , this was the price of happiness which I have to pay now onwards. His cheeks were rubbing against mine and I was screaming louder. I begged him to leave for a moment. He released. I was relieved. He commented" ma'am u r more delicate than my wife. She doesn't complaint. " I was looking down .
Samriddhi (Tuesday, 16 May 2017 01:30)
Journey to femdom 7
Now I was a bit puzzled and was bit afraid. Afraid of something wrong. Will he start blackmailing after sometime. My life would be hell then. I am a bit pessimist and always doubtful. This was the reason why I didn't share my feelings with others for long. But, simultaneously I had a new found happiness and was super excited . For now things were happening as I expected. I quickly overcame my negative thoughts and said to myself" enjoy the moment Samriddhi, after all you waited for this so long".my thoughts were broken as I felt his hand under my panty. He pinched and I screamed. It was the second time he did it. I turned back to face him. My face was red. It was still hurting. I said " it hurts". He replied" sorry . You were lost so I thought to wake you up". I asked " do u pinch ur wife too, doesn't she complain". He laughed " she is used to it. I cannot control myself. Sorry again.you have smooth bottom too" . Let me touch I won't pinch now." I said no. He came to me and started massaging my shoulders . I liked it. It was very sensuous. It lasted short. He was getting horny. Again started kissing on my neck. I sat quietly just wondering what to do. His mouth smelled of PAN masala. Although he did not take any in front of me. I asked" when did u take that masala". He said" sorry ma'am but I have this habit. I haven't taken for long. Just now when u were turned back." I said" I don't like it . Never do again, beside it harms. " he said " maam , no harm, u also take some u will enjoy. It is good. " he quickly offered me . I denied. Sensing me angry he started apologising me. Said he will leave this habit in sometime but he is now addicted. I thought there was no point arguing. I asked " do u drink" he said no. I said " don't lie, I will verify from ur wife." He said "occasionally ". He was leaning on his chest while we conversed. His hands over my Brest Area under my top. He said" your sense of dressing is good ma'am. I always wanted marrying a modern girl.but me being illiterate was married to m wife." I said" why don't u ask her to wear such clothes if u like". He said " it won't suit her and we do not live in good society." I said" so I fit ur criteria". He nodded. He said" and u r educated too." I said " o I see " my mood was lifted. I started liking his words and continued " so u see me as u r modern wife". He said " girl friend ma'am". I asked " why gf and not wife". He replied" wives are submissive . Gf are dominating. " he was trying to impress me. I said" so to become wife I will have to obey u." He didn't reply. I said " ok let me see . Treat me as ur wife tonight but tomorrow morning onwards I will be the boss." He replied " ok ma'am". He said" I don't like calling u ma'am now. I said " but u agreed earlier". He said" ok will call from morning but not now. I don't like dominating girls". I relented with warning that from morning all will be like before. He agreed.
Samriddhi (Tuesday, 16 May 2017 02:12)
Journey to femdom 8
" thankyou" he replied. I was feeling happy inside as he was accepting me as girl completely. It was like passing with full marks in first attempt.i had little makeup and no wig and dresses still I was accepted.I was emotional at my triumph and wanted to please him. I said" so what I will have to do to please u". He smiled" let me play with u". I said " ok, but don't hurt me much. " he replied back" ab to habit daal lo. You r too sexy to be left alone". Before he would finish his words he was over me like a hungry animal. He lay on his back on bed and rolled me to top like a doll. These things were happening for first time in my life. I was both happy and afraid. I never felt so helpless in my life . My life was changed in a day. I had mixed feeling. Now my face was on his and he was hiding it tight to kiss me. His acts were crude, he was like wild. Forcing my lips over his beetle filled mouth. I was moaning but unable to open my mouth. Few beetle grains and saliva was on my lips. I had strong dislike for the smell of these masala all my life. Now I was tasting it. I was hitting with my toes on his legs to free myself but to no avail.i pinched him on his side but he did not. Now he was vigorously kissing me holding my face tight over his with both hand. He relented after sometime. Asked" did you enjoy. " I kept mum and head down but did not want to realise my helplessness and dislike. I got up " wait I will be back". Went to bathroom and flushed my mouth. And washed face. Lipstick was all smashed on my face. I cleaned and wiped with towel. Had some water and was back on bed. I offered him water too . He gulped two glasses along with his beetle saliva which was very annoying to me. He ordered" maam aa Joao . Let's sleep." I was avoiding him keeping myself busy with phone. I was relaxed with his offer for sleep as I did not want anymore encounter of now.
Samriddhi (Tuesday, 16 May 2017 05:00)
I got onto bed from other side and lay on edge gazing at ceiling . The fast turn of events was now bothering me. I again was wondering of the outcome and possible future danger. I was not able to judge whether I did right or wrong. It was desire vs dread. Was my life going to be happy or hell. The outcome was certain. I had never took any such step in my life which would put me in awkward situation. This was first time I was getting carried away. I tried soothing myself " nothing worst will happen. Samriddhi you can manage for sure. Do not spoil your happiness. He is good , he won't harm you." I closed my eyes and switched of my mind. The joy of dream come true was with me. As I rested motionless I could hear him coming out of bathroom. He filled water in glass and sat on sofa. I kept my eyes closed and pretended sleeping. Now I sensed him getting on bed. He searched for switches I could guess and switched off lights. I felt relaxed, thought oh god thank he is sleeping. I wasn't feeling sleepy as thoughts were racing in my mind. I always liked talking to myself before sleep. In dark the room was quiet and we were on the two ends. Me virtually on edge as I feared him coming close if I went centre. I could hear Betel chewing in his mouth and the odd smell. The chewing was annoying to me but I controlled myself. I liked sleeping in peace. I tried ignoring and sleep. I was immersed in thoughts suddenly I felt his face near me. He pulled me towards centre thinking I was in sleep. I opened my eyes and he said" maam ji sleep in centre you will fall. " he was smiling. I nodded but pretended sleepy. I saw h was bare chested and only in his lower vest. In the
Little light coming from window I could see a black demon looking at me. I didn't say anything. He slowly brought his hand near my waist and loosened my salwaar. I kept quiet. He said" you may be uncomfortable sleeping in them ma'am." I said " no I am fine." By this time he had pulled them to my knees. I had no option other than to remove them gracefully or he would force it out. I relented and pulled it out. Asked him" now u r happy". Sheepishly he said
Samriddhi (Tuesday, 16 May 2017 07:08)
Journey to femdom 10
He" you will feel relaxed now". u should remove ur top too. I said no, I am comfortable. He said "ok ma'am, I think u r feeling shy. U should not . " it was role reversal. I had those words for him earlier , in few hours he paid me back. I was looking away amazed at his boldness. I turned my back to him. He came closer put his arm over me. I said" now what." He said "nothing ma'am , I have this habit .it was annoying for me.i kept quiet thinking he would sleep soon. That was not to happen. He overlapped me under him. His left arm was encircling me and his left leg curled over me. His partial weight was over me . His bare leg over mine was strange sensation. I had never slept like this. But had never been in this situation earlier either. Sense of helplessness was continuously growing. Things which I couldn't tolerate a minute were being ignored by me. It was strange , I was out of myself. I had never been so tolerant. His armpit rubbed over my arm and the sweat was all over. I was like ewe. What's happening with me". Anyhow I controlled my urge to go and wash it. He was unmindful of it. I thought he is miles away from being civil and I will have to tame this bull. It will be a difficult task. I prayed that he sleep soon. It was already over midnight and I had to attend office next morning. I said" should we sleep now, I have work tomorrow ". He said " maam in driving job I am used to less sleep. I won't feel sleepy .u sleep". I thought to myself , "with you over me how I will feel sleepy". So I said" no problem I will company for sometime more" he replied" u r sweet ma'am." I didn't want to hurt him. He said" u r like my wife , she also says so." I said" ok so now I obey u then I am ur wife and when disobey I am gf." He laughs " no ma'am , u r my sweet ma'am. " I was wondering what he meant. Now I was facing up and his hand still over me. He slowly slid his hand inside my top and reached my bra. He said" it is tight, should I help u". I knew what I meant. I didn't reply. He pulled my top without my resisting . I was now cuddling and looking at his face. He was smiling. I never thought he would take so much interest in me. He murmured in my ear" you are too sexy. Should I complete u." I didn't understand. I asked" what." He said" give u pleasure". I said "how". He said " let me do u will know for ur self." I didn't reply. He took it for my affirmation.
Samriddhi (Tuesday, 16 May 2017 14:07)
Journey to femdom 11
Before I could think he rolled me on top and and to other side of the bed. His face was over mine and he planted deep kiss. My legs were held between his and I was helpless. I was gagged. Tried to free but couldn't speak. His one hand was under my neck holding my face and other down my waist. His betel smelling mouth over mine. I could scream ummmmmm and he was done with pulling down my panty.he pulled it further with his foot. He removed his mouth. I took long breath. I said" what u were doing." He said" didn't liked ma'am". I said nothing. I was thinking not to expose my helplessness to him. I pretended as if I liked it else I could have stopped him. But reality was different. I had no control. To hide it I said " pull off my bra". He rolled me back and unhooked it. I did the rest. I asked him" now what. Can we sleep." He said " maam I want to please u. Give u pleasure. ". I said but how. He said I will enter ur back. I was shocked. Quickly replied" no no I don't want. " he said" u r shying ma'am. I will not tell anybody. It is ur first time so u r getting afraid. U will like it very much." I asked" how u know". He replied" I have done it many times to others. They liked it". Now I was really worried. I never thought of it. The idea of being p net rated was annoying". I tried dodging him" we will try tomorrow. We do not even have condom." He " please ma'am now don't turn me down. I too have got chance after long. U will like it. I have condom too." He flashed a small sachet smilingly. I tried explaining him that I was straight and was not gay. He didn't listen. This was first time I thought why illiterates should be avoided." I thought he doesn't know the difference there is no point arguing. I had also not to expose my weakness else he would force me. I thought it was wise to relent than repent. I just wanted things to close. I was now fearful of the upcoming event. He asked" r u ready ma'am". I said" ok but only little and we will sleep. Have office tomorrow ." He smiled. Planted a kiss filled with saliva on my cheek. I wiped it off with hand. The first thing I wished to do in morning is wash myself thoroughly. His sweat his armpit all was recurring to my mind. I was lying flat with back towards him. I could sense him reaching my legs in squatting position. He pulled his underwear. Sound of sachet tearing entered my ear. And I was anticipating of upcoming danger. I closed my eyes lay motionless. He put a pillow under my belly. I was in awkward position. Still I managed composure and wished this ordeal to end soon. He patted on my buttocks and something sticky fell on the whole area. It was my moisturiser .i could smell it. The same moisturiser I used last night before sleep. I kept my eyes closed. He said" ready ma'am". I nodded. As soon his member touched me I was shivering . He soothed" Kutch Mahi hoga. U will like it". My helplessness was exposed.
Samriddhi (Tuesday, 16 May 2017 15:46)
Journey contained.....
Mixed thoughts were racing my head. I wasn't prepared for all these. I wished the ordeal lasted short and we go to sleep. I was over 1 pm . I lay there motionless like hunt waiting for the hunter. Hours before I was thinking of giving him some lessons . Now he was adamant to give me some lesson. What else I could do other than to accept it. He was off me and filling his mouth with masala. When he finished he asked something . I couldn't understand but thought he is asking for act. I nodded. He was back to his position. Pulled m buttock towards him. And got started. I closed my fist in anticipation of the pain. Held my breath. He was getting inside . It started paining. I started moaning. Issss converted to aaaah. He was quick like a professional. Ashe started stroking my moan got louder and faster became his strokes. I couldn't control my scream. I begged" pease leave me". But was unheard. He abused and was even more larger and deeper. It was uncontrollable pain. Tears started rolling down. I was sobbing now. It lasted few more minutes and he came out. I was relieved. I lay motionless.
Samriddhi (Wednesday, 17 May 2017 17:43)
Journey ......
I lay motionless.the pain was more mental than physical. Eyes were still wet. Fear of unknown was still there. Thoughts were broken by unusual pain and sensation in bottom.i felt the urge to wipe it to soothe myself and cleanse the area. I reached for towel , stood on my knees and started rubbing it. It was. Feeling better. I wiped the moisturiser from my thighs too. My metallic bangles were jingling with every movement .it was the last sign of feminism left on me. With my other hand I checked for my bindi, to my surprise it was in its place.my feminine feeling resumed. I realised my nakedness and urge to cover my body. He left for washroom soon after the act . I put on my salwaar. Looked for my top. It was under his pillow. Quickly I slid it on me. He was walking towards bed. I collected my bra and panty and went to bathroom. Hung them there .i looked in mirror , my pride, my bindi was there centre stage. Small happiness ran through me. I removed it and pasted on the mirror and washed my face. I wiped my arms and thighs. I returned to bed in sometime. He lay flat chewing his betel lost in some thought. Unmindful I got on the bed. He turned towards me from his position. Our eyes met.I blushed. He was continuously gazing at me. I was getting uncomfortable. Through corner of my eyes I could read the satisfaction on his face. I was ashamed to make eye contact again. He sensed my situation. Said" these things are normal sir. U r new and a gentleman. Don't worry. I will not betray you. You are safe with me. I am not that type of person. I will love u."he came closer. I didn't answer but was feeling more ashamed. The roles were reversed. He was dominating and I was submissive now. Like a caring husband he was lecturing me. He took my hand in his " u r very nice . Beautiful too." He was looking at my painted nails. He " I will keep u happy. U don't worry. " he now put my face in his arms close to his bare chest. I let him. Emotion and shame was running through me. Dreaming a fairy tale is another thing but living is different. I realised. I wondered how I will face him in daylight. Clueless and ashamed I lay in his arms. Soon we fell asleep.
Samriddhi (Wednesday, 17 May 2017 18:17)
Journey........
I woke up in morning happily unmindful of nights event. I looked at the clock , it was 7 am. Things of last night rushed through my head. I motioned my eyes for him. He was sleeping naked on other side. Reality struck me and the consequences I was worried. I had to attend office at nine. So I rushed to bathroom leaving worries for future. I took long to bath. Rinsing myself of the sins of past night. I was feeling relieved. He was still sleeping. Strangely, urge to dress started in me. I controlled but the feminine feeling was still with me. I repeatedly looked at him . The sense of hate had disappeared. I only wished if I tamed him. He be the same obedient fellow, he was yesterday . Simultaneously a sene of shame was towards him. The act of night kept recurring. How I was going to face him in real world. It was also true that he had filled the void in my life. Happiness resumed . I wished to forgive him for yesterday night. I felt I started liking him more than before. It was 8 now. I needed to wake him up but was shying. I dressed myself for office and could not delay waking him up further. I said"suniye jag Jaiye." The vocabulary was changed. Respect added. It reminded me of a newly wed waking his husband. No effect. I had to repeat . I was ashamed of calling. I shook him and repeated "jag Jaiye. Office hai."he opened his eyes gathered his underwear. I turned my face away. Full gimpse of the black man was captured in my eyes.
Samriddhi (Thursday, 18 May 2017 04:31)
I turned towards him when he put on his shorts. He looked happy. I said" I have to reach office by 9". He said " no problem. I will drop u before that. Tum tayaar ho Joao". I was little shocked. He had downgraded me from aap to tum. No sir, not ev n ma'am . Anyway I focussed on work. I had to order breakfast. He demanded only tea. I had forgot to remove my nail polish. I rushed to my bag and started removing it. We set off to office. He was to return to the room after dropping me. We drove silently. After reaching I instructed him to pick me up in afternoon as the work was not much but important. He replied" bye sweetheart." I looked around no one was close. I blushed . He said" there is no one here. You can even kiss me." I quietly walked away.
I could hardly concentrate on works. The events were racing in my mind. Anyhow I finished the papers and filed them. I was relaxed as well as anxious as I was to return to hotel . He picked me up and we returned. We had to drive back to Delhi same night. We had plenty of time left to spend. I was sleepy so thought to relax. I changed myself in white top and green pyjama. I had panty inside. I got over bed beside him. I thought to be bossy to him. I warned him that he don't dare try attempting on me now. He came closer said" no ma'am I won't. " devil smile was on his face. I said" I am sleepy let me sleep in peace. He said "ok, let's sleep. I won't do anything except this". He put his arm and leg around me . I said" remove it. I can't sleep". He said " without it I can't sleep." I thought there was no point arguing so I relented smilingly. I was getting accommodative and started liking it.atleast the loneliness was gone, I had someone who knew real me and give company. I was happy. I never thought we would reach so close in a day.since morning our greetings were changed. He referred me tum and i aap to him. I had accepted this change. With me in his arms he was busy chewing masala. With my ears so closed It was annoying. I said" why don't u leave it. U smell so odd. Ur teeth get so dirty. " he " I will try". We slept in same position.
Samriddhi (Thursday, 18 May 2017 04:55)
It was time for us to pack . We had snacks together . On sofa I cuddled to him. I was liking his company. I had to change to male dress for drive which I did not want. I asked him" can I disguise as female in drive". He said" yes , of course darling. I will manage everything. " it was too much . I was now his darling. I was afraid to travel dressed. I again asked his suggestion. He said" if someone asks I will tell u as my wife and u have to say nothing.i will also enjoy the drive peeping at you.we will dine late night on highway."To travel dressed was my cherished dream. I started preparation. I wanted to look pretty. I applied foundation. Makeup. I chose my fav coffee coloured dress . So my makeup should match it. I was getting ready as if going for some party. Matching lipstick, bangles and bindi. I put on clip on earrings.i had sopped them from different places with much effort. Occasion was worth it. After all I was returning from a single day honeymoon.i put on my wig. Let the hair flow on my shoulders. Organised stuff in my beautiful handbag. Soon we left.
Samriddhi (Thursday, 18 May 2017)
Journey.......
My heart was racing as soon as I stepped out. The first hurdle was checkout at hotel.So I got out first and asked him to do the needful. I stood on roadside waiting for him to bring the car. It was a busy street and people were unmindful. I felt relaxed . I was passing as a girl here too. I was elegantly dressed. I had put on goggles to avoid eye contact with people. I care fully examined every face which turned towards me. Most of them focussed their eyes on my dress. Youngsters fixed their eyes on my exposed legs. I had ensured they were extra smooth . My handbag also drew some female attention. I was constantly adjusting my hair in the mild breeze . Finally he arrived and I got inside the car. I chose the back seat to avoid public attention in city. I promised him to reach in front once we reached highway.i sat just behind him with my legs crossed . He was quick to adjust his rear mirror towards me. I liked his attention. But I had to get back my old position of mistress and servant. This was going to be real test for me. So I tried being rude and authorative with him in our conversation. I said" whatever has happened between us has happened. You should not forget my real position and your position.you had crossed your limit but this was possible because I let u. I don't like disobedience." He was all ears to me and looked worried and apologetic. I felt pity but I didn't relent.I had worked in senior position and knew the tricks of controlling juniors. I showed him my bossy way. Seeing things working I decided to seal the issue forever. In my female self I was more ruthless and effective. I warned him " if u displease me in future, I will throw u out of my life and get someone else in u r place. Beside me you will lose the monetary benefit I have assured u. I can turn ur fortunes if I wish. So just follow my instructions." He said" sorry ma'am, I will do as u say. I was carried away. Forgive me. We are poor people. " I was successful in my mission. It took me only few minutes. I thought experience always wins. He won last night coz he was experienced. I won now coz I had this experience.
Samriddhi (Thursday, 18 May 2017 14:02)
Thanks Amutha. Will try to live to ur expectations.
Samriddhi (Thursday, 18 May 2017 14:46)
Journey.......
One thing was certain that for sometime I will have to keep distance from him. I wanted to train him the way I want him to be. I had other thoughts for him. It would be win win situation for all of us (includes his wife and daughter.) it was true that I had started liking him. He was the man in my life . I wished he be my man for whole my life. But society has rules and every relation has restrictions. If left free he would harm our relationship . I didn't want to lose him. I wanted to control him the way a woman wishes to control her man. I fell asleep with my thoughts. When my eyes opened we were approaching Delhi. I asked him to stop for tea. He obeyed " yes ma'am". I got down at the tea stall. I was little cold outside. I was rubbing my arms for warmth. Cold air was waving to my thighs from underneath my dress. Still sense of happiness was there on my face. My poor man seemed eager to please me . He offered a piece of cloth to wrap on my body. I accepted it. Though it was dirty but I too wanted to please him. After sometime we left. I reached my apartment finally. It was my first entry in my home as girl. I wished it was my saturable. After all I had returned from my honeymoon. The groom soon arrived with my bags. He said " ok ma'am , I am leaving. " a s usual I opened my bag to give him tip. I handed him a generous amount. I motioned him to close the main door and soon after gave him a goodbye kiss. He was blushing now. I had left lipstick mark on his cheek which I asked him to get removed before he leave. He was rubbing it with his hand . I reminded him to send his wife in afternoon. I was on leave from office for the day. Still rubbing his cheeks he departed. I lay on my bed recollecting events . I had mischief in my eyes and future plans. Once again I was on cloud nine.
samriddhi (Saturday, 20 May 2017 23:04)
ok I give up. write , not to write and I have finally decided to write for sake of love u all have given me. I mean all of you. let me try bringing harmony to this beautiful place before I leave.
journey .................restarted
my afternoon nap was broken by the sound of door bell. my heart started racing. I was dressed. moreover my nails were poshished. I ran out to peep at the intruder. usually people do not visit me at home or I should say I don't want them to know about my secret. it was a delivery boy with my online purchases. I was undecided whether to show him as a male or female. I decided to present myself as girl. I quickly put on my wig and messed the hair to give a sleepy feel.i carried an id of male self so that I don't have to answer him. with my beating heart I opened the door . he confirmed the address.i nodded and presented the id before he asked. Handing over the parcel he asked me to sign. I took the pen from him and noticed he was looking at my dark polished nails.I was wondering whether to sign as my male self or the new me. with some hesitation I simply put samriddhi on it. he saw and was satisfied I thought. he left after giving me a good look from top to bottom. I was relieved that I didn't had to speak. I was eager to open the parcel to cherish my new assets. I had shopped for a ladies watch, a complete makeup kit and a pair of salwaar kameez.i quickly unboxed the watch first. Admiring it I slid it in my hand and clinched the metallic strap.I was proud now to possess it.i kept flaunting it in mirror for long. It was platinum polished grey with small heart shaped dial.Now was the turn of makeup kit but my phone rang in between. It was the driver so I quickly picked it up. He said his wife will be at my home in 10 min. They lived in the nearby locatity. He said "Sir I have a request. Please donot let her know about u and me." I also had a question in return" can I let her know about my secret of dressing." He said" that's up to you as I have not told her anything about u. I was always sceptic about my wife working out but I can confide in you sir. She is good at cooking and will take good care of your house." I thought It is not wise to present me like this in first meet. so I started getting back to my male self. after I finished I locked my dressing room and came to the living area . she arrived. I opened the door. I saw a beautiful lady hesitatingly standing outside. She was draped in saree with hairs elegantly plaited.Thin layer of lipstick and long red vermillion mark in her mid parted forehead. At least dozen Glass bangles were in both her hands.
samriddhi (Sunday, 21 May 2017 00:46)
journey .................
Red spade shaped bindi between her eyebrows and medium sized rings in her ears. She greeted" Namaste sahib" I too greeted. she confirmed my name and I asked her to get in. I asked her name and she replied " sunita". I seated myself on a dining chair and asked her to take seat too. she hesitatingly sat in chair on far side of the table. we sat there silent for few seconds. She waited for me to start the talk. I pointed her towards fridge and asked If she needed water then she can fetch it.she declined. she looked around and said" your house is clean . does some maid work here." I smiled said" not anymore ,I am taking care of it from past few months." she praised me. I accepted saying" I don't like keeping house untidy". She initiated now about herself and other details which she supposed I should know about her skills of cooking, cleaning etc. I was all ears with occasional "nice nice". within few minutes I got to know her brief history which I will let u know if need be. But one thing which made me happy was when she said she was a trained beautician which Her husband did not allow him to carry after marriage.I started dreaming of her helping me with my makeup. After all a trained beautician at my home was a luxury for me. I appointed her for house keeping and some kitchen help on week days. she would have my keys and she would cook for me on weekends and holidays when I be at home full time. She appeared very happy . she was full of life and was carrying herself very elegantly. I could notice the neat plaits of her saree affixed by safety pin to her blouse on her shoulder. She offered me for tea and I nodded. She started moving towards the kitchen and I accompanied her to introduce her . I came back and rested myself on sofa and switched on tv set but I was in some other thought. I couldn't hide the joy of being helped by her in my dressing and makeup. My imagination was at its peak now. I will have whole day in weekends to enjoy my feminity with her by my side. 'Sunita' was her name if I forgot to mention and she was 23 and mother of a four year old daughter.She has very pleasing nature .I wished we became friends and share our feelings. But I was cautious this time to be slow in building relation . I didn't want to lose her and neither wanted to offend my readers with choice of my words. Soon I was interrupted by her motion. She placed my cup in front of me and started moving away with hers. I offered her to sit on the next sofa which she seemed reluctant. I sensed her hesitance to sit so I made her comfortable that I wont mind her sitting here. she can feel at home I assured. Most of the days she would be alone here as she would visit my house in afternoon in my absence. I was to handover my spare keys to her. after having tea she asked for permission to leave and come from next day which was saturday. It was nice that I will be at home to help her on her first day at work.
samriddhi (Sunday, 21 May 2017 01:45)
journey.....
I was eagerly waiting for her to come the next day. I spend whole evening arranging my bedroom. I did not want her to know of my secret until she confides in me. I neatly folded and placed my dresses in my cupboard. My cupboard was full of my female clothes which I collected over years and was very proud of. though not open to outside world I had spent large time wearing them and admiring myself. The loneliness of my real self was weighing on me. so I wanted a companion and friends and admirers. I wanted to experience all the feelings a girl would and if possible live my life as one.But being a realistic person I knew it was very hard for all my dreams to come true. If not physically I was complete girl mentally. I wished to live the various roles a girl live. A girl friend, a wife, a sister, sister in law etc. To share the happiness and pain a woman goes through.Now there seemed some hope. So I was happy. AFter I finished arranging bedroom I got myself dressed in floral top and paijama. I headed to cook in kitchen.
Next day sunita arrived before noon. I was waiting for her in my male self. After greeting she started her work. She was looking very tidy and beautiful in her green saree. she had just few bangles which were matching her saree and blouse. Her trademark vermillion was like yesterdays. A big pendant was hanging from her neck above her saree. As she now had tucked her saree plait . My eyes were following her. I was examining every minute detail of her appearance. She was acting like a professional house maid but had simplicity in her appearance. With she in command of house work I had no work so I glued myself to tv. I immersed myself in an old classic female oriented movie. While she dusted she also gazed at tv in between and seemed to like it. In between she would read reactions on my face while watching movie.I too kept noticing her in between. The movie narrated the fortunes of rich girl married in a poor family after her father's wealth was lost. She was putting a brave face fighting odds bearing humiliation and trying to adjust to her fate. I was feeling her pain and my facial expressions resonated with the events. Sunita was noticing all this. The movie ended and sunita was over with cooking too. She served me and asked my permission to leave. I wished to talk to her but restrained not to initiate now. I nodded and she left.
samriddhi (Sunday, 21 May 2017 03:17)
journey...............
It was sunday. I was all planned to reveal myself to her. I was eagerly waiting for her. I wished to spend whole afternoon talking to her. I wanted to make it a super sunday. I did not want to disappoint myself today. I had an idea. I thought to do the house chores myself in morning and cook for both of us too before she arrived.She would be impressed and it will be easy for me to initiate. Beside I will have plenty of time confiding her and convincing her of my inner self. I happied go to the work. Cleaning dusting was easy as she had done it the day before. I took to cooking . I wanted to impress her with my skill. I was in middle of cooking when door bell rang . to my surprise she was an hour ahead of her schedule. To her surprise she found me cooking. she asked " didn't u like my yesterday cooking." I laughed " Its not that. I was getting bored , had no work so thought to help you. You too will get to taste my food." She seemed very happy and was all in praise of me. She started helping me and we finished it soon. I went to bath leaving her in sofa before tv. when I returned she was occupied watching repeat telecast of a daily show. now I was on sofa too. she tried getting up but I asked her to keep seated. She was in sawaar kameez and quickly adjusted her dupatta. Being sundayI guessed she was casually dressed and had little extra makeup. eyeliner and lipstick. Her earrings were dangling and looked more pretty. I could notice her nails painted fresh and matched her blood red lipstick. My heart was racing as usual before an important event. I was really a make or break situation. I prayed she doesn't get upset.
I complimented her for looking pretty. She blushed. Iwasnt finding way to start conversation . She initiated" you cook nicely. Where did u learn". I blushed and said" myself. I love cooking and doing house chores. I don't find much time from office fot it.Now u are there so u will help me learn more". She said "why not". She asked" My husband said u r not married. why don't u marry sir". I got the start. I said to, myself u have to clinch this opportunity to put ur point to her. Intentionally I ignored with smile and she repeated. I said" Its a long story. I am little different." I knew she would dig and try to know. She loved gossiping. As expected she enquired" any problem sir". I brought emotion on my face which was natural and now inner me took over. I said" promise me u will not discuss it with anyone else." She instantly sweared. without further manipulation I came on the subject. I said" I am a female trapped in a male body". Her reaction was of shock. She seemed sympathetic to me. My emotions were overwhelmed and tears were about to roll down. It was for the first time I was confessing in front of a female . I continued" I am like you. trust me I am not lying. " My facial expressions were real and she grew more sympethatic she was now sitting close to me. tears started rolling down my face. she started consoling me. Simultaneously she wanted to know more. I told her the whole story and my feelings. she heard them with attention. I showed her my wardrobe and my other collections. I was still upset. She too was sympathetic and consoling me. I said" I am leading this lonely life from years. I have none to share my feelings." we were back on sofa. She helped me calm and served water. She too was overwhelmed and took my hand in hers. she said " I will support u and will not tell anybody."Being a joyful person she tried making light of the situation.She quipped " whats ur name didi". with my head down I said" samriddhi". She said " nice name didi". I didn't raise my face. She tried diverting attention and served food . we both dined silently. when we were finished she smiled to me. I too responded as my emotions were settled. she said" you are beautiful and have figure of a young girl". I said " I am still young just 4-5 years older to u ." I was blushing. we had already settled on sofa and the gossip was on right path. I am slim and look young. Infact she was few kilos heavier than me I guessed and I looked younger to her. she smiled" will u not show ur beauty to me. " I blushed . we were now confiding each other. I took her permission to go get dressed. I opened the parcel and dressed in the red sawaar kameez.
samriddhi (Sunday, 21 May 2017 23:38)
journey ...........
I was very happy and a bit nervous. I was not used to dressing in others presence. The dress was high neck Chinese collar. I was looking beautiful. kameez had net sleeves. I could see through my thin arms. I was looking even younger in this dress. With shyness filled face I presented myself to her on sofa. She was smiling and looked impressed. She said" wow didi u r so beautiful."I blushed and seated myself. She was constantly looking towards me in amaze. I was only in dress. no makeup and accessories. I wished her to do the makeup. She soon got the hint. Said" let me do ur makeup."We went to the bedroom. I sat in front of dressing table. I presented the new makeup kit to her. She was very happy to see it. Said" I love to do makeup. It is my passion." she started. I thought it would be few minutes but she was taking longer but her worked seemed very professional. Taking care of minute error and details. Finally I was made up. Thick coat of foundation I could feel on my face but the mirror reflected a different me. I was beyond recognition. Prominent eyebrows thick eye lashes. Blushing red cheeks and matching lipstick. My lips were pouty and glossy. I was in my hottest avatar ever. She carefully fixed my wig on me. It was silky straight. she adjusted the hair on both sides of my shoulders parting midway. She doesn't liked it. so she pulled them back and let them hang on my back. She was bit satisfied now. I was constantly looking at the mirror admiring myself. She painted my nails with same red colour.I handed her metallic studded bracelet which she slid in my hand. I wore my newly bought watch. It was my first ladies watch. She took a final look at me and was satisfied. I was too happy. I got up and hugged her. I was emotional. I wanted to thank her . we came in the living room and seated ourselves side by side. She lifted my chin on her palm.
samriddhi (Monday, 22 May 2017 02:05)
journey ................. to womanhood
I was enjoying her compliments.we were gossiping on makeup, dresses and relations. She narrated her detailed story. I was enjoying listening to her. She had a extended family . She was brought up in a city and how she was married to the driver. She had four sisters and she was eldest. Her father couldn't have arranged for a more suitable boy. She was initially unhappy but now was ok with her life. She had to adjust for few years in a village with her in laws and she was back to city sometime back. She was happy to arrived back.She felt comfortable in city and enjoyed basic freedom. She wished to start her beautician profession some day and become self dependent and bring up her daughter in good way. It was now my turn to pay back. I assured her all help from my side. I said " you have helped me and I am indebted to you. I will ensure that u too get back ur happiness . I will someday help u opening ur own parlour." she looked pleased. She grew emotional too" didi I will always be there for u. I will work hard and pay back ur investment. I just want to give my daughter a good upbringing." Sensing overdose of emotions she lighted the atmosphere" I will make u more look beautiful in my parlour and will give u special treatment at ur wedding." she smiled. I blushed. She said" u are already beautiful and lots of boys will seek ur friendship if u want." I didn't reply. I recalled she was looking special today. So I asked" u too are beautifully dressed today. any resson. " she said " my husband is taking me and my daughter for movie in evening." I wished I too joined them but I didn't say anything. She asked " will u too join
...." then paused. I understood. I came closer to her. took her hand in mine and said" I want to tell u something. ur husband has seen me in dress. " I narrated the return journey incident and hid the earlier part from her. I feared she would be angry that none of us told her before. She laughed . I was surprised. SHe said" he had hinted me about u but not in detail and said he saw u dressed once." SHe said" u are nice person. Now that I know u in detail I wont mind. u can trust me and him. he is good at heart." I was relieved . She said " so will u join us didi , I will manage him u don't worry." I nodded. We planned to call him and her daughter to my house. She would first councel her husband in my absence and then bring me in front of him to face him. I was overjoyed. Now I was part of the family. She asked him to reach here. She now smiling towards me said" since I call u didi, so being my sister he will be ur brother - in- law. I smiled back. I was even eager to meet her daughter. Then she said" Beware of him, U look sexy today. Not only him but other men will too ogle at u. " I was blushing. SHe hid me in bedroom and opened the door when they arrived. I could hear part conversation between them. Things were as planned. Afterall it had to be . SHe knocked at the door and asked me to come out. I was again nervous although I shouldn't have been for him. BUt a unknown fear was there inside me. I was all dolled up sexy. He constantly stared at me. I thought he is finding me more beautiful than last time. sunita interrupted" don't look at her like this she is my sister now." They two laughed and I blushed. She seated me at some distance and herself in between. now I was facing her daughter who was very cute. she was shying away from me. I called her but she didn't. Her name was Shreya. SHe was beautifully dressed in a new frock. Sunita interrupted " she is your new mausi. say hello to her." to this she responded and greeted. I handed over a big chocolate to her which I luckily had in my fridge. Driver was contantly gazing at me and watching my activity. She said" u can call him jijaji."we both smiled. Leaving us alone she went to make tea for us. now I was getting more uncomfortable. we met our eyes and soon drifted away. I felt uncomfortable. I got up pretending to go to kitchen and help her. I offered her to help which she denied. She knew the reality and started assuring me" girls feel shy in new relation and slowly u too will adjust. " I just kept my head down. She was smiling and tucked away hair strands on my face behind my ears. I was not having earrings she noticed .
samriddhi (Monday, 22 May 2017 02:37)
Journey ................ womanhood
It was time for us to leave for film. By now her daughter was comfortable with me. I locked the main door and lifted her daughter . I did not want people around to notice me. That was my fear but I knew nobody would recognise me. We departed safely. we parked at the mall and decided to window shop till show time. I took them to a kids shop as I had decided to shop for Shreya. I shopped for her and they helped me finalise a beautiful dress for her. sunita was very happy. I also bought her accessories. She too was loving her gifts. At a ladies shop sunita intervened " Didi let me buy something for u too" . I said no But she went ahead and bought me a salwaar kameez and made her husband pay for that. He was glad to pay to which she quipped" u are happy to pay for my sister but u don't be so eagar to pay for my bill." she laughed. we blushed.
I could see salesmen and customers ogling at me. I was so seductively dressed and made up that they were turning eyeballs. I was enjoying and feeling shy same time.Shreya was by now used to calling me mausi. I too was enjoying her company. we spent good time watching movie and returned back.They dropped me home satisfied. This was the best weekend of my life. I was looking forward for next weekend.
(I have tried my best not to offend anybody but I had to control my natural and realistic style at some places. I think to bring an end to this story gracefully here.)
Siya (Friday, 02 June 2017 13:00)
SIL BECAME MY HUSBAND-1
(Sali sahiba bni mera pati-1)
My name is Vishu and i am an bigMNC's company manager but my life is not so usual as you can think.
Coz i have to wake up @4am. Then take bath than i go to my office. My wife(Vaishali) is too good without any reason only for me she also wake up with me.
Than i go to office and where i have one secret room where i do prepare myself for my husband and you will be amazed to know who is my husband. My husband is my SIL(shreesha) yeah you heard right i am a wife of my SIL's or you can say i am her personal property.
I go to my secret room where i first get undress myself and see is there any hair is not on my body otherwise my husband will beat me too badly than i use moisturizer and body lotion to entire body so that mybody became smoother than my husband can bite my body and she will not get hurt to her lips than i wear bra and penty and use tennis balls to give proper shape to my breast so that my husband can play with it than i will patticoat and matching blauch and than i drap a beautiful saree and than wig and have to adjust it. But yesterday my husband commanded me that i have to grow my hairs so I have to do that than after dressing saree its time for makeup I paint my nails with matching colour to saree if not i will get slap from my husband than mangal-sutra which i wear always with myself beanth my men's shirt. Than i wear jhumkas and payal and different types of bangals than i use lipstick which is also in matching colour to saree than i use maskara and some foundation and last one bindi and one necklace on which has written "SLUT" and last i have to wear high heels. These all the things i have to do for my husband and have to go my husband's flat @sharp 5am if i will be late 1min 1slap 2min slap. Than went there and i have a duplicate key of the flat so I enter into the flat and go to bedroom where my husband is use to sleep than i keep my head on his legs and started to press untill my husband get wake up and everyday he kicks me and say good morning i have to reply very politely good morning than i go to kitchen to prepare coffee and have to give my husband and if he is in mood he will do sex otherwise i have to prepare everything for his bath and ironing the clothes and make breakfast for him than i make him wear shoes and socks with myself and if i do everything right he will kick me only once but if not right he will kick me many times also with hunters. than my husband go to office i which i work and he is working in my under. I also go with him and change dress in my secret room.
What the fuck my life has became. From a macho man to a sissy bride.
Yeah if you want to know how I became like this we have to go in past.
Before 1year....
I used to very macho man, dashing body building and very musculine. Every girl used to got easily attracted towards me. than i merry to a beautiful lady named Vaishali we were living very happy everyday i tremendous for me and my wife. We go for trips. Vaishali's sister's name is shreesha she also became very close to us and life was going very well and than a beautiful girl got job of my secretary. I was too happy and after seeing me she was also too happy her name was neha a beautiful figure she had and she started flirting with so i also started flirting and soon we started affair at home there i enjoy my wife in office i was using my secretary.
#Vishi
Thanx so much friends.
If you enjoyed please like it and comment what you want in next parts
#Vishi